Skip to main content

Full text of "Life and letters of Edward Bickersteth, Bishop of South Tokyo"

See other formats


BX  5199   .B57  B58 
Bickersteth,  Samuel,  1857- 
1937  . 

Life  and  letters  of  Edward 
Bickerst-Pth     Ri<5hoD  of 


Digitized  by  tine  Internet  Arcliive 
in  2015 


littps://arcliive.org/details/lifelettersofedwOObick 


BISHOP   EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


PRINTED  BY 
SPOTTISWOODE  AND  CO.,   NEW-STREET  SQUARE 


LIFE  AND  LETTERS 


EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


BISHOP  OF  SOUTH  TOKYO 


BY 

SAMUEL  BICKERSTETH,  M.A. 

VIOAR  OF  LEWISHAM,  S.E. 


LONDON 

SAMPSON    LOW,    MARSTON    ^  COMPANY 

{.l.lMITF.m 

St.  2)unstan's  tjousc 
FETTER   LANE,  FLEET  STREET,  E.C. 
1899 


TO  THE   BELOVED  FATHER 

TO  WHOSE  PRAYERS,  EXAMPLE,  AND  TRAINING 
ALL  HIS  CHILDREN  OWE  MORE  THAN  WORDS  CAN  EXPRESS 
AND  WITH  THE  EARNEST  DESIRE 
THAT  THE  EXTENSION  OF  CHRIST'S  KINGDOM 
SO  DEAR  TO  HIM  AND  TO  HIS  FIRST-BORN  SON 
MAY  BE  ADVANCED  BY  THIS  RECORD 
OF  A  missionary's  LIFE 
AND  WORK 


PREFACE 


To  write  a  biography  is  an  attempt  to  prolong  and  extend 
a  personal  influence.  After  my  brother's  death  in  August 
1897,  a  desire  was  expressed  not  only  in  England,  but 
also  in  Delhi  and  in  Japan,  that  some  authentic  account 
should  be  written  of  the  work  which  he  was  called  of  God 
to  do,  first  in  the  East  and  afterwards  in  the  Far  East. 

At  the  request  of  Mrs.  Edward  Bickersteth,  my  sister- 
in-law,  I  undertook  to  write  this  biography.  I  had  hoped 
to  complete  the  work  within  a  year,  but  I  could  not  fore- 
see that  the  increase  of  population  in  the  parish  of  Lewis- 
ham,  rapid  for  many  years  past,  would  have  developed 
during  the  last  two  years  at  a  pace  in  excess  of  the  growth 
of  any  other  part  of  the  metropolitan  area.  This  has 
made  it  almost  impossible  to  give  continuous  thought  or 
study  to  the  Life,  except  during  absence  from  home. 

While  it  may  be  granted  that  the  choice  of  a  near 
relative  as  a  biographer  has  some  advantages,  there  are 
obvious  dangers  involved  in  such  a  selection.  I  cannot 
say  how  far  I  have  avoided  them  ;  at  least,  I  have  tried  to 
do  so.  As  a  Commissary  in  England  to  my  brother  during 
almost  all  his  episcopate,  I  was  necessarily  familiar  with 


viii  BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 

his  Japanese  work,  but  I  have  special  reason  to  thank  those 
who  by  the  loan  of  letters  and  documents  have  enabled 
me  to  deal,  as  fully  as  space  allowed,  with  the  years  during 
which  my  brother  was  head  of  the  Cambridge  Mission. 
I  am  thus  indebted  to  the  present  Bishop  of  Durham,  the 
Bishop  Designate  of  Lahore  (Dr.  Lefroy),  the  Master  of 
Pembroke  College,  the  Rev.  S.  S.  AUnutt  (now  head  of  the 
Cambridge  Mission),  the  Rev.  Dr.  Weitbrecht,  and  especi- 
ally to  Canon  Stanton,  of  Trinity  College,  Cambridge,  who 
has  been  intimately  connected  with  the  Mission  from  its 
start  and  kindlj-  allowed  me  to  read  over  to  him  the 
Chapters  II.  to  V.  As  a  graduate  of  the  University  of 
Oxford,  I  have  felt  it  a  special  privilege  to  be  allowed  to 
write  the  story  of  this  well-known  Cambridge  Mission. 

In  the  early  part  of  Chapter  VI.  will  be  found,  in  a  letter 
addressed  by  the  Bishop  to  the  Master  of  Pembroke,  a  terse 
and  vivid  account  of  the  state  of  Japan  in  1886.  But  I 
have  purposely  avoided  overloading  the  book  with  facts  and 
figures  connected  with  the  marvellous  story  of  Japanese 
enterprise  since  1868,  as  travellers,  artists,  and  journalists 
have  already  made  the  world  familiar  with  this  romance  of 
modern  history,  its  contrast  with  the  preceding  centuries 
of  apathy,  its  encouragement  to  believe  that  what  the 
Japanese  have  alread)-  done  is  but  the  preface  to  the 
volume  of  their  future  achievements,  if  once  the  gold  of 
Christianity  mingles  with  the  quicksilver  of  their  national 
temperament.  To  them  imitation  does  not  appear  to  mean 
limitation,  as  it  so  often  does,  because  they  are  careful  also 
to  adapt,  as  well  as  to  adopt,  western  ideas,  reforming 


PREFACE  ix 

them  where  necessary  to  suit  their  own  habits  of  thought 
and  life.  The  late  Sir  Rutherford  Alcock  once  pointed 
out  to  mc,  in  the  course  of  conversation,  that  more  than 
once  in  their  history  the  Japanese  had  shown  great  abilitj' 
in  seizing  upon  new  ideas,  but  for  his  part  he  was  doubtful 
as  to  their  power  '  to  keep  on  developing '  unless  Chris- 
tianity added  stability  to  the  national  character. 

I  have  intentionally  put  together  into  separate  chapters 
information  about  the  organisation  of  the  Cambridge  Mis- 
sion, the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai,  and  Community  Missions, 
because  happily  in  these  days  not  only  several  English 
Bishops  expect  their  Ordination  candidates  to  take  up  a 
missionary  subject,  but  also  young  Church  people  all  over 
the  country  voluntarily  submit  themselves  to  examination 
in  missionary  knowledge.  It  will  be  convenient,  I  hope, 
to  such  students  to  have  ready  to  hand,  and  disentangled 
from  biographical  details,  information  upon  such  missionary 
methods,  while  for  those  who  have  time  for  fuller  study 
the  intervening  chapters  will  illustrate  the  way  in  which 
the  Bishop  applied  his  principles. 

I  desire  to  take  this  opportunity  of  thanking  those,  and 
they  are  many,  who  have  sent  me  personal  recollections  of 
my  brother's  work,  which  every  reader  will  feel  to  be  a 
great  addition  to  the  value  of  the  volume,  especially  the 
well-known  traveller,  Mrs.  Bishop,  Colonel  Gordon  Young, 
the  Rev.  F.  Armine  King,  Warden  of  St.  Andrew's  Mis- 
sion, Tokyo,  the  Rev.  John  Imai,  and  others,  as  well  as 
Mr.  A.  C.  Benson  for  leave  to  reproduce  some  of  his  father's 
letters. 


X  BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 

Chiefly  I  have  to  thank  my  sister-in-law,  not  only  for 
putting  unreservedly  at  my  disposal  all  my  brother's 
papers  and  letters,  but  also  for  helping  me  in  every  way  in 
her  power,  especially  where  her  residence  in  Japan,  which 
I  have  never  visited,  enabled  her  to  supply  my  lack  of 
knowledge. 

Some  words  of  my  predecessor  in  this  parish,  the 
present  Bishop  of  Lichfield,  to  whom  I  had  written 
acquainting  him  with  my  purpose  of  writing  my  brother's 
life,  have  often  come  to  my  mind,  and  supplied  me  with 
an  inspiring  motive  :  '  Your  brother's  memoir  will  be  much 
more  than  a  valuable  contribution  to  missionary  literature. 
It  will  be  an  incentive  to  missionary  zeal,  and  to  self- 
sacrificing  love  for  the  Master  and  for  the  souls  He 
loves.' 

If  it  should  please  God  to  fulfil  this  hopeful  forecast,  it 
will  be  an  answer  to  many  prayers,  and  a  rich  reward  for 
any  labour  involved  in  the  task. 

The  Vicarage,  Lewisham,  S.E. 

Festival  of  S.  Michael  and  All  Angels,  1899 


CONTENTS 


CHAPTER  I 
INTRODUCTORY 

1 

Birth  at  Banningham — Parentage,  Edward  Bickersteth  of  Watton,  '  Edwar 
Henry,'  of  Exeter — Baptism — Childhood  at  Hampstead — Schooldays 
at  Highgate — Foreign  travel — Scholarship  at  Pembroke  College, 
Cambridge — Degree — Death  of  his  mother  and  of  two  sisters — 
Selection  of  assistant  curacy — Ordination — Work  at  West  End, 
Hampstead  —  Fellowship  —  Personal  appearance  —  Characteristics — 
Relationship  to  Church  parties  ....... 

CHAPTER  H 

RETURN  TO  CAMBRIDGE  AND  CALL  TO  DELHI 

Return  to  Cambridge — Recollections  by  Rev.  C.  W.  E.  Body — Desires 
for  missionary'  work,  to  what  due? — First  idea  of  the  Cambridge 
University  Mission — Influence  of  Dr.  Westcott  and  Dr.  French — 
Bickersteth's  offer  to  go  out  to  India — Testimony  of  Professor  Stanton 
and  Rev.  S.  S.  Allnutt  to  his  influence —His  paper  on  Cambridge 
Mission  before  Cambridge  Church  Society — The  four-fold  object  of 
the  CM.  —  His  paper  in  '  Mission  Field  ' — Why  Delhi  was  selected — 
Community  Missions  then  a  novelty — Affiliation  of  Cambridge  Mission 
with  S. P.O.— Statistics  of  S.P.G.  at  Delhi— Letter  of  Rev.  R.  R. 
Winter — Consecration  of  Dr.  French  as  first  Bishop  of  Lahore — 
Formation  of  Cambridge  Committee — Departure  of  the  first  two 
missionaries,  Edward  Bickersteth  and  J.  D.  M.  Murray,  for  Delhi 

CHAPTER  HI 

CAMBRIDGE  MISSION,   DELHI    (tHE  WORK) 

Arrival  in  Delhi — Visit  of  Bishop  (Johnson)  of  Calcutta — First  impres- 
sions— Teaching  in  St.  Stephen's  High  School — Training  of  Catechists 
— Christian  hostel  for  boys — Furlough  of  the  Rev.  R.  R.  Winter — 
Serious  illness  of  the  Rev.  J.  D.  M.  Murray — Bickersteth  left  alone  in 
charge  of  the  mission — Recollections  by  Mrs.  Parsons — His  efforts  to 
teach  the  teachers — Necessity  for  Christian  masters  in  secular  schools 
—Arrival  of  the  Rev.  H.  C.  Carlyon  and  Rev.  J.  D.  Blackett— 
Bickersteth's  views  on  bazaar  preaching — His  evangelistic  labours 
among  Kolis  and  Chamars — His  views  on  relative  merits  of  Hinduism 


xii 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


and  Muhammadanism  and  their  mutual  influence  on  India  and  on  each 
other — Arrival  of  Rev.  S.  S.  Allnutt  and  Rev.  G.  A.  Lefroy — Deci- 
sion of  the  CM.  to  prepare  candidates  for  the  Calcutta  (B.A.)  degree 
— Appeal  of  Bishop  French  and  Bishop  Lightfoot  to  Cambridge- 
Meeting  in  College  Hall,  Westminster — Speech  by  Dr.  Westcott — The 
beginning  of  the  Higher  Education — Visit  of  Rev.  E.  H.  Bickersteth 
to  Delhi — Bickersteth's  illness  and  enforced  furlough — Personal 
Recollections  by  Dr.  VVeitbrecht  ....... 

CHAPTER  IV 

CAMBRIDGE  MISSION,  DELHI   (THE  LIFe) 

Spiritual  power  dependent  on  devotional  life — Bickersteth's  appreciation 
of  Retreats  and  Quiet  Days— His  advocacy  of  intercessor)'  prayer — 
Other  plans  for  deepening  spiritual  life — His  vindication  of  '  rule  '  in 
prayer,  and  conviction  that  missionaries,  above  all  men,  need  a  regulated 
devotional  life — Effects  of  the  spiritual  fervour  of  the  Cambridge  mis- 
sion in  (a)  stricter  discipline,  (6)  more  definite  teaching,  and  (<r)  the  spirit 
of  brotherliness  among  the  members  of  the  mission — Recollections  by 
Rev.  G.  A.  Lefroy — By  Bishop  (Matthew)  of  Lahore — By  Col. 
Gordon  Young — Address  of  native  Christians  to  Bishop  of  Exeter  on 
hearing  of  Bickersteth's  death  ........ 

CHAPTER  V 

FURLOUGH — FRAMLINGHAM — CALL  TO  JAPAN 

Continued  ill-health — Letters  to  Rev.  G.  A.  Lefroy,  S.  S.  Allnutt,  H.  C. 
Carlyon —Forced  to  take  another  year  of  furlough  (1883-4) — Depar- 
ture of  Rev.  J.  W.  T.  Wright  and  Rev.  Arthur  Haig  for  CM., 
Delhi  —  Permanent  Relations  of  CM.  with  S. P. G.  — Endeavours  to 
organise  Zenana  work  into  a  Community  Mission  for  women — At 
Cannes  for  the  winter — Letter  on  the  unseen  world — Correspondence 
with  Allnutt  and  Lefroy — Summer  in  England — Again  forbidden  to 
return  to  India  (1884) — Acceptance  of  Rectory  of  Framlingham — 
Bishop  French's  offer  of  Archdeaconry  of  Simlaand  Indian  Chaplaincy — 
Correspondence  >-e  Headship  of  CM. — Refusal  of  Archdeaconry  and 
decision  to  return  to  Delhi — Again  forbidden  to  rejoin  mission  (March 
1885) — At  last  allowed  to  return  (Sept.  1895) — Called  to  Japan  as 
Bishop  (October) — His  training  for  that  post — Grief  at  giving  up 
the  CM.,  Delhi — Letters  to  Lefroy — Consecration  — Departure  for 
the  Far  East  ........... 

CHAPTER  VI 

A  MISSIONARY  P.ISHOP's  LIFE  (1886-1888) 

Outward  bound — Journal — Visit  to  Jesuit  Missions  at  Shanghai — '  Open ' 
letter  to  Dr.  Searle  on  the  State  of  Japan — Landing  at  Nagasaki — 


CONTENTS 


xiii 


Holy  week  at  Osaka — Important  conference  there— Arrival  at  Tokyo 
—  Meeting  with  Bishop  Williams  (American)  and  Bishop  Nicolai 
(Russian)— First  idea  of  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai  (N.S.K.)— Second 
'  open '  letter  to  Dr.  Searle  on  St.  Andrew's  Mission,  to  be  established 
at  Tokyo — First  missionary  tour  (Northwards)  to  Yezo  and  the  Ainus, 
(Westwards)  to  Kiushiu — First  proposal  for  Ladies'  Institute  (Educa- 
tional) at  Tokyo — Letters  to  his  fourth  brother  on  his  beginning  the 
clerical  life — Three  conferences  at  Osaka— His  first  ordination  in 
Japan — To  Nagasaki  again  and  back  by  Shikoku — Easter  (1887)  in 
Tokyo — First  local  council  of  N.S.K. —Visit  to  Korea  with  Bishop 
(Scott)  of  North  China  (Sept.  29-Oct.  6) — Beginning  of  St.  Andrew's 
and  St.  Hilda's  Missions — Holy  Week  (1888)  in  Tokyo  and  ordination 
of  John  Imai — Bishop's  First  Pastoral— Return  (May  1888)  to  Lambeth 
Conference — Five  months  in  England — Speech  in  St.  James's  Hall — 
His  part  in  the  Lambeth  Conference  — Summer  holidays  with  the 
Bishop  of  Exeter  —Return  with  recruits  to  Japan  (October  1888)      .  149 

CHAPTER  VII 

MISSIONARY  METHODS,   WITH  SPECIAL  REFERENCE  TO 
COMMUNITY  MISSIONS 

S.r.G.  and  C.  M.S.  jNIissions — Bishop  Bickersteth's  paper  on  'Variety  of 
Methods'  (1893)— Letter  from  Canon  Tristram — The  Ladies' Institute 
(Education)— Community  Missions  —  St.  Andrew's  for  men — The 
Bishop's  idea  in  starting  it — Its  first  members — Its  rule  of  life — Vows 
— Miss  Tsuda's  paper  on  the  position  of  Japanese  women — St. 
Hilda's  Mission  for  women — Exterior  rule  of  the  community — The 
Bishop's  letters  on  the  necessary  qualifications  of  its  members — Its 
special  work — Consecration  of  the  chapel,  with  the  Bishop's  address — 
Its  medical  work — Orphanage — Recollections  by  Miss  Thornton  and 
by  Miss  Bullock      ..........  206 

CHAPTER  VIII 

A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP's  LIFE  (1888-93) 

Landing  at  Tokyo  (St.  Andrew's  Day)  1888— Statistics  as  to  the  strength 
of  the  missions  of  the  Church  of  England  in  Japan  — Christmas  at 
Tokyo — Letters  from  the  Inland  Sea — Visit  to  Kagoshima,  his  most 
southernly  station — Travelling  hard  and  fast,  late  and  early — Second 
Lenten  Pastoral  (March  1889)  on  (i)  Reunion,  (2)  Standards  of  faith, 
-  (3)  Ritual  controversies  at  home,  (4)  Ecclesiastical  courts  in  their  effect 
on  missionary  enterprise — His  first  (English)  ordination  to  priesthood, 
Easter  1889 — St.  Hilda's  Hospital — Second  Biennial  Synod— Scheme 
for  Pastor  Funds — Journey  to  Vezo  (2,000  miles  in  17  days) — Tour  in 
Southern  Japan — Ordination  of  Rev.  John  Imai  to  priesthood — 


xiv 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


First  thought  of  bishopric  of  South  Japan  (January  1890) — Pastoral 
letter  to  university  students — Third  Lenten  Pastoral — Visit  of  Duke 
and  Duchess  of  Connaught — And  of  Bishop  Corfe  (of  Korea) — First 
extempore  address  in  Japanese— Autumn  journey  to  Western  Japan — 
Fourth  Lenten  Pastoral  (189 1 ) — At  work  on  Commentaries — Canon 
Barnett's  visit  and  reminiscences — Third  Biennial  Synod  and  visit  of 
Bishop  Hare  (American) — Letter  on  Prayer  Book  Revision— Visit  of 
the  Bishop  of  Exeter  and  party — Terrific  earthquake — A  year  of 
journeying  (1892) — Visit  to  Luchoo  Islands — First  baptism  of  Ainus 
— Return  to  England  (December  27,  1892)  via  Delhi  —  Conference 
with  Archbishop  on  Episcopal  Subdivision — In  England  February  to 
October  1893,  with  incessant  travelling  —  His  marriage  (September) 
and  return  to  Japan  via  Canada       .......  254 

CHAPTER  IX 

NIPPON  SEI  KOKWAl 

{Holy  Catholic  Churcli  of  Japan) 

Its  intention — Two  defective  views  of  a  missionary's  duty — Archbishop 
Benson  on  the  opportunity  thus  offered — The  Bishop's  sermon  before 
the  First  Synod  (1887) — The  resolution  adopted  at  Osaka — The  rela- 
tion of  the  N.S.K.  to  other  bodies  of  Christians— A  conference  with 
Protestant  Nonconformists — The  constitution  and  Canons  of  the 
N.S.K. — Was  its  formation  premature? — Letter  from  the  Bishop  on 
ritual  points — Revision  of  Japanese  Prayer  Book — The  principles  which 
underlay  it — Pastoral  letter  from  the  Bishops  of  the  Anglican  communions 
in  Japan — The  decision  as  to  the  Thirty-nine  Articles — The  marriage 
laws — Letter  of  Archbishop  Benson,  and  joint  Pastoral  letter  on  this 
subject — Successive  synods  and  their  work — Home  and  foreign  missions 
of  the  N.S.K. — Extension  of  the  Episcopate — Recollections  by  Bishop 
Fyson  and  Bishop  Evington.  ........  301 

CHAPTER  X 

A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP's  LIFE  {1893-97) 

Success  of  his  efforts  for  the  increase  of  the  episcopate  in  Japan — Con- 
secration of  the  Bishops  of  Kiushiu  and  of  Yezo — His  visit  and  appeal 
to  the  Church  in  Canada — His  impression  of  the  missionary  oppor- 
tunities of  that  Church — Fourth  General  Synod — Welcome  to  the 
newly  consecrated  American  Bishop  (McKim) — Special  General  Synod 
on  Episcopal  Jurisdiction — His  proposal  to  the  Archbishop  of  Canter- 
bury to  form  a  bishopric  of  Osaka  (June  1894) — His  appeal  to 
Canada  to  send  a  Bishop  to  the  West  Coast — The  war  with  China 
and  its  effect  on  missionary  inquiry — His  special  collects  for  use  of 
soldiers — Revision  of  Japanese  Book  of  Common  Prayer — Conduct  of 


CONTENTS 


XV 


the  Japanese  during  the  war — The  Bonin  Islands— Visitation  of  the 
West  Coast — Eighth  Lenten  Pastoral  (1895) — First  meeting  of 
Bishops  of  the  Anglican  Communion  in  Japan  (June  1895) — Summer 
holidays  in  Karuizawa — Summored  to  England  to  confer  about  Osaka 
Bishopric — Return  with  Bishop  (Awdry)  of  Southampton  appointed  as 
First  Bishop  of  Osaka — A  bright  Easter  (1896) — General  Synod  at 
Osaka — Letters  written  while  on  a  '  pioneer  '  tour—  Recollections  by 
Miss  Rankin — Disastrous  floods  in  Gifu — Serious  illness  and  final 
return  to  England — Recollections  by  Mrs.  Bishop    ....  360 

CHAPTER  XI 

INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 

His  natural  love  of  reading — Criticism  on  books  in  his  letters  home — 
Value  of  early  Greek  Fathers  to  the  modern  missionary — References 
to  books  which  attack  the  faith — To  biographies,  Manning,  Pusey,  &c. 
— His  views  on  the  Atonement — On  Sacrifice — On  the  '  Lux  Mundi ' 
school  of  thought — On  Old  Testament  criticism — On  Keswick  teach- 
ing— On  Reunion  with  Nonconformists — On  the  Pope's  Encyclical — 
On  the  Imperial  position  of  the  Church  of  England — On  Church  Re- 
form the  true  cure  for  lawlessness — His  defence  of  the  Miracle  of  the 
Resurrection  in  the  '  Japan  Mail ' — His  teaching  on  private  con- 
fession—  Non-communicating  attendance — Fasting  Communion  — 
Some  letters  of  spiritual  counsel — His  ideal  of  the  Episcopate  and 
efforts  to  reach  the  ideal — Appreciation  of  his  character  by  the  Rev. 
F.  Armine  King — By  Rev.  John  Imai — By  the  Bishop  of  St. 
Andrews  397 

CHAPTER  XII 

THE  CALL  HOME 

The  Bishop's  death  at  an  early  age  not  premature — Months  of  illness — 
Lambeth  Conference — Last  earthly  days — The  funeral  at  Chisledon — 
Reception  of  the  news  in  Japan — Address  from  Kobe  Christians — 
Extract  from  the  '  Japan  Daily  Mail ' — Memorial  services,  with  address 
by  Archdeacon  Shaw — Resolution  of  the  Diocesan  General  Synod — 
Permanent  memorials — Personal  letters  ......  454 

Appendices  475 


Index 


493 


LIST  OF  ILLUSTRATIONS 

Photogravure  Portrait   Frontispiece 

Pembroke  College,  Cambridge  ....  To  face  p.  20 

Cambridge  Mission  at  Delhi     ....  „  49 

Bickersteth  Hall,  Delhi   „  61 

Group  of  Cambridge  Missionaries  at  Delhi  .  „  79 

Framlingham  Rectory   ,,130 

St.  Andrew's  House,  Tokyo       ....  „  224 

Group  of  Clergy  and  Divinity  Students     .  „  290 

Vignette  Portrait   „  300 

Group  of  the  Members  of  the  Synod  of  1893  „  351 

Bishopstowe,  Tokyo   „  365 

St.  Andrew's  Church,  Tokyo     ....  „  368 

The  Bishop's  Grave  at  Chisledon    ...  „  474 

Memorial  Brass  in  Exeter  Cathedral  .  .  .  page  474 
Map  of  Japan 


« 


CHAPTER  I 


INTRODUCTORY 

Edward  BiCKERSTETH,  the  third  in  direct  succession 
who  has  borne  the  name  during  this  century,  was  the 
eldest  son  of  Edward  Henry,  Bishop  of  Exeter.  He  was 
born  June  26,  1850,  at  Banningham  Rectory,  Norfolk". 
He  sprang,  however,  from  a  family  which  had  originally 
come  from  the  North.  Nowhere  do  the  waters  gleam  and 
curve  with  greater  beauty  than  along  the  winding  banks  of 
the  Lune,  as  it  nears  the  little  country  town  of  Kirkby 
Lonsdale  in  Westmoreland.  The  old  pastoral  republics 
which  peopled  the  valleys  and  hills  in  the  good  old  days  of 
the  Cumberland  and  Westmoreland  estatesmen  produced 
many  gentle  in  heart  and  soul,  and  wise  and  shrewd  above 
their  class.  Of  these  the  Broughams,  the  Sedgwicks,  and  the 
Bickersteths  are  examples.  The  Bickersteths,  or  Bickcr- 
staffes — for  down  to  the  last  century  the  name  was  spelt  in- 
differently in  either  way — were  lords  of  the  manor  of 
Bickerstaffe,  near  Ormskirk,  in  Lancashire,  from  a  period 
anterior  to  the  reign  of  King  John,  and  played  a  not  in- 
considerable part  in  local  history  during  the  thirteenth  and 
fourteenth  centuries,  two  members  of  the  family  represent- 
ing the  county  in  Parliament,  Sir  Ralph  (who  was  several 
times  High  Sheriff  of  Lancashire  during  the  reign  of 
Edward  H.)  in  1313,  and  Henry  de  Bickersteth  in  1339. 
In  1376  the  manor  passed  by  the  marriage  of  an  heiress 
to  an  ancestor  of  the  present  Earl  of  Derby,  but  more  than 


2 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


one  branch  of  the  family  continued  to  reside  in  the  neigh- 
bourhood, and  a  second  Henry  de  Bickerstcth  acquired 
through  his  marriage  with  Malma,  daughter  and  co-heir  of 
Gilbert  de  Ince  {circa  1420),  an  estate  in  Aughton,  the 
adjoining  parish  to  Ormskirk,  which  remained  in  the  pos- 
session of  the  family  down  to  1736.  From  this  Henry 
was  lineally  descended  Thomas  Bickersteth  of  Aughton, 
whose  third  son  James,  after  studying  medicine  under  Dr. 
Longworth  of  Ormskirk,  settled  as  a  surgeon  at  Burton-in- 
Kendal.  He  was  the  father  of  Henry  Bickersteth  of  Kirkby 
Lonsdale,  who  as  a  surgeon  was  well  known  in  the  town, 
and  honoured  far  and  near. 

Henry  Bickersteth  married  a  lady  named  Elizabeth 
Batty,  of  Deansbiggin,  a  remarkable  woman,  shrewd, 
strict,  and  stately,  called  the  Queen  of  Kirkby  Lonsdale. 
They  had  five  sons,  the  eldest  of  whom,  James,  was  lost 
at  sea  ;  the  second,  John,  was  a  learned  divine  and  hymn- 
writer,  and  was  the  father  of  Robert  (Bishop  of  Ripon, 
1857-1884)  and  Edward  (Dean  of  Lichfield);  the  third, 
Henry,  became  Senior  Wrangler  (1808),  subsequently 
Master  of  the  Rolls  (1836-185 1),  and  was  called  to  the 
Upper  House  as  Baron  Langdale.'  The  fourth  was 
Edward,  and  the  fifth  Robert,  who  having  settled  at 
Liverpool,  became  one  of  the  first  medical  men  in  the 
north  of  England. 

This  fourth  son,  Edward  Bickersteth,  the  father  of 
the  present  Bishop  of  Exeter,  was  the  grandfather  of  the 
subject  of  this  memoir.  He  came  to  London  on  January  i, 
i8or,  when  only  fourteen  years  of  age,  to  take  a  clerkship  at 
the  General  Post  Office.  He  was  a  youth  of  eager  tempera- 
ment, possessed  of  great  energy  of  character,  and  had  a 

'  He  married  Lady  Jane  Harley,  daughter  of  Edward,  Earl  of  Oxford  and 
Mortimer,  but  had  only  one  daughter,  who  pre-deceas.ed  him.  He  was  offered, 
but  declined  on  the  score  of  health,  the  great  seal  of  England.' 


INTRODUCTORY 


passion  for  reading.  His  duties  at  the  Post  Office  occupied 
him  daily  from  lO  to  3,  but  within  four  years  vvc  find  him 
offering  his  services  to  a  lawyer  for  eight  hours  a  day  in 
addition  to  this.  These  hours  had  to  be  fitted  in  between 
6  to  10  A.M.  and  3  to  1 1  P.M.  In  his  new  work  he  employed 
himself  with  such  success  that  in  due  time  he  himself  became 
a  solicitor,  a  profession  which  he  only  relinquished,  together 
with  an  annual  income  of  800/.,  in  181 5,  on  taking  Holy 
Orders.  He  undoubtedly  bequeathed  to  his  grandson  his 
love  of  learning,  while  his  character  and  career  probably 
shaped  the  thoughts  of  the  younger  man  in  more  ways 
than  can  be  definitely  traced.  For  Edward  Bickersteth,  in 
exchanging  the  legal  profession  for  the  ministry  of  God's 
Word  and  Sacraments,  had  not  only  given  up  excellent 
worldly  prospects  for  the  kingdom  of  God's  sake,  but  knew 
that  he  would  be  at  once  sent  out  on  a  special  mission  of 
inquiry  to  Africa,  the  western  shores  of  which  were  then 
invested  with  peculiar  terror  owing  to  the  grievous  mortality 
among  the  missionaries.  He  had,  however,  for  years  been 
a  missionary  at  heart,  and  was  ordained  Deacon  (being  then 
twenty-nine  years  of  age)  on  December  10,  1815,  by  the 
Bishop  of  Norwich,  and  Priest  on  December  21,  within  eleven 
days,  by  the  Bishop  of  Gloucester  (on  Letters  Dimissory). 
This  enabled  him  to  proceed  in  full  orders  to  Sierra  Leone, 
where  he  himself  prepared  the  first  six  native  converts  for 
the  Lord's  Supper,  and  admitted  them  to  those  Holy 
Mysteries. 

Subsequently,  he  was  resident  for  many  years  at  the 
C.M.S.  House  in  Salisbury  Square,  E.G.,  as  one  of  the 
secretaries  of  that  society,  and  as  Rector  of  Watton,  Herts 
(1830- 1 850),  he  was  '  in  labours  abundant,  in  journeyings 
oft'  on  behalf  of  the  foreign  missions  of  the  Church.  He 
was  called  to  his  rest  on  February  28,  1850. 

His  only  son  Edward  Henry  (through  his  marriage 

B  2 


4 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


with  Sarah,  eldest  daughter  of  Thomas  Bignold,  Esq.,  of 
Norwich)  was  born  on  St.  Paul's  day  1825.  He  had  five 
sisters,  two  of  whom  became  widely  known  through  the 
book  called  '  Doing  and  Suffering.' '  After  taking  classical 
and  mathematical  honours  at  Trinity  College,  Cam- 
bridge, and  obtaining  for  the  first  time  then  on  record  the 
Chancellor's  medal  for  English  verse  three  years  in  suc- 
cession, he  was  ordained  in  Norwich  Cathedral  in  1848 
(where  his  father  had  been  ordained  twenty-three  years 
before),  and  appointed  at  once  as  curate-in-charge  of  the 
small  country  parish  of  Banningham  in  Norfolk.  He 
had  married  the  same  year  his  cousin  Rosa,  daughter  of 
Sir  Samuel  Bignold,  M.P.  for  Norwich.  Their  first-born 
child  was  a  daughter,  the  eldest  of  ten  sisters,  and  the 
next  a  son,  Edward,  the  eldest  of  six  brothers.  He 
was  born  at  the  Rectory  on  Wednesday,  June  26,  1850. 
Against  this  event  the  following  extract  stands  in  the 
Bishop  of  Exeter's  diary  :  '  The  mercy  of  its  being  a  boy, 
whose  birth  my  father  anticipated  with  joy,  and  whose 
blessed  standard  of  the  Gospel  may  God  grant  him  one 
day  to  uphold.' 

It  will  be  seen,  therefore,  that  from  the  first  day  of  his 
earthly  life  the  child  thus  welcomed  was  dedicated  by  the 
piety  and  prayers  of  his  own  father  to  the  work  of  uphold- 
ing, if  not  of  carrying  into  distant  lands,  the  Cross  of 
Christ.  For  indeed  the  father  himself  had  fully  inherited 
the  ardour  of  the  missionary  spirit,  and  although  in  God's 
never-failing  Providence  not  allowed  to  offer  himself  for 

'  This  book  recorded  the  correspondence  between  the  elder  sister  Eliza- 
beth (wife  of  the  Rev.  T.  R.  Eirks,  Professor  in  Moral  Philosophy  in  the 
University  of  Cambridge),  and  Fanny  her  younger  sister,  a  great  invalid, 
and  was  written  by  their  sister  Mrs.  Ward,  afterwards  the  devoted  godmother 
of  Edward  Bickersteth.  Of  the  other  sisters,  one,  Mrs.  Durrant,  is  now  a 
missionary  at  her  own  charges  in  connection  with  the  C.M.S.  in  North- 
West  India,  and  another,  Mrs.  Cook,  is  the  mother  of  two  medical  mission- 
aries in  Uganda. 


INTRODUCTORY 


5 


the  mission  field  (an  honour  which  he  had  in  early  life 
once  coveted),  yet  he  became  the  spiritual  father  and 
supporter  of  many  who  gladly  sacrificed  all  for  Christ's 
sake  and  the  Gospel's,  and  lived  to  send  his  eldest  son  as 
his  representative. 

Edward  was  baptised  by  his  father  on  Sunday,  July  28, 
1850,  his  godfathers  being  one  of  his  uncles,  the  Rev.  T.  R. 
Govett,  M.A.,  and  John  McGregor,  Esq.,  better  known  as 
'  Rob  Ro}-,'  who  had  been  a  bosom  friend  of  his  father's 
at  Trinity  College,  Cambridge.^  At  the  baptism  the 
father  preached  from  the  words,  '  Of  whom  the  whole 
family  in  heaven  and  earth  is  named ' — thinking  of 
his  own  father,  then  in  Paradise,  and  of  the  little  boy 
added  that  day  to  the  Church  below. 

In  185 1  Edward  Henry  Bickersteth  was  appointed  by 
the  philanthropist  Earl  of  Shaftesbury,  his  own  and  his 
father's  friend,  to  the  Rectory  of  Hinton  Martell  in 
Dorsetshire,  and  while  there  Bishop  Denison  of  Salisbury 
visited  the  parish  and  gave  his  blessing  to  the  future 
missionary.  In  1 855,  however,  Mr.  Bickersteth  was  chosen 
by  trustees  for  the  Vicarage  of  Christ  Church,  Hampstead, 
where  he  continued  to  reside  for  thirty  years,  until  he 
was  selected  on  the  nomination  of  Mr.  Gladstone  first 
for  the  Deanery  of  Gloucester,  and  shortly  after  for 
the  Bishopric  of  Exeter,  over  which  see  he  now  presides. 
The  change  of  the  parental  home  to  the  pleasant  vicinity 
of  London  (Hampstead  is  only  four  miles  from  Charing 
Cross,  and  was  then  much  less  built  over)  solved  the  educa- 
tional problem,  as  there  were  exceptionally  good  schools 
in  the  neighbourhood. 

The  vicarage,  built  in  the  time  of  Queen  Anne,  was 

'  It  is  interesting  to  note  that  another  Cambridge  friend  and  coteniporary 
of  his  father's,  also  of  Trinity  College,  the  Rev.  Brooke  Foss  Westcott,  had 
visited  the  rectory  shortly  before. 


6 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


a  roomy  house,  secured  for  Christ  Church  during  the 
vicariate  of  my  father's  predecessor,  Thomas  Pelham 
(subsequently  Bishop  of  Norwich),  and  commanded 
splendid  views  across  London  from  Primrose  Hill  to  the 
Crystal  Palace,  and  on  a  clear  day  as  far  as  to  Knockholt 
Beeches,  near  Sevenoaks ;  while  it  had  a  garden  which 
recalled  Tennyson's  lines: 

Not  wholly  in  the  busy  world,  nor  quite 

Beyond  it,  blooms  the  garden  that  I  love. 

News  from  the  humming  city  comes  to  it 

In  sound  of  funeral  or  of  marriage  bells  ; 

And,  sitting  muffled  in  dark  leaves,  you  hear 

The  windy  clanging  of  the  minster  clock, 
t 

There  man}'  happy  hours  were  spent,  and  a  healthier 
place  in  the  neighbourhood  of  London  could  hardly  have 
been  found. 

In  the  autumn  of  1859  Edward  went  to  a  dame's  school 
(Mrs.  Smallwood's),  situated  in  North  End,  on  the  farther 
side  of  the  Heath,  and  stayed  there  for  two  years  and  more. 
Each  morning  he  shared  his  father's  early  cup  of  coffee, 
and  was  then  accompanied  by  him  across  the  Heath, 
which  was  at  that  time  infested  by  very  rough  characters.^ 
Father  and  son,  however,  went  both  of  them  together, 
and  reached  the  school  daily  in  summer  and  winter  by 
7  A.M.,  at  which  hour  the  boy's  work  began. 

In  1862  he  was  sent  on  to  Highgate  School,  which  was 
founded  in  1565  by  Sir  Roger  Cholmeley,  Chief  Justice 
of  the  King's  Bench,  and  was  then  under  the  Rev.  John 
Bradley  Dyne,  D.D.  This  entailed  a  daily  walk  of  four 
miles  to  and  from  school,  in  winter  across  the  Heath  and 
along  the  high  road  which  led  through  Caen  woods,  the 

'  On  three  occasions  the  boy  when  returning  home  from  Highgate  School 
was  stopped  in  the  fields,  and  once  robbed  of  watch  and  chain,  and  another 
time  of  money. 


INTRODUCTORY 


7 


property  of  the  Earl  of  Mansfield  ;  in  summer  by  a  slightly 
shorter  route  across  the  fields  which  lay  to  the  north  side 
of  Traitor's  Hill.  The  father  still  accompanied  the  son 
daily,  unless  hindered  by  private  or  pastoral  duties,  de- 
lighting in  making  him  familiar  with  the  Latin  names  of 
birds,  trees,  &c.,  and  in  following  all  his  classical  studies. 
Within  a  term  or  two  a  cousin,  Edward  Bickersteth  Birks, 
came  to  reside  at  Christ  Church  vicarage  for  several 
years,'  and  the  two  cousins,  thus  thrown  together,  became 
almost  like  brothers. 

Edward's  seven  years  at  Highgate  School  were  in  every 
sense  happy,  and  while  proving  him  to  be  keen  in  the 
acquisition  of  Greek  and  Latin,  and  unusually  fond  of 
reading,  also  showed  that  he  was  not  devoid  of  a  healthy 
interest  in  games.  Football  he  never  cared  for,  but 
excelled  so  far  in  cricket  as  to  play  in  the  First  Eleven 
during  his  last  term,  obtaining  that  year  the  highest  score 
in  the  Old  Cholmeleian  match.-  He  was  also  fond  oi 
entomology,  and  collected  many  good  specimens  on  the 
Heath  and  in  the  Highgate  woods.  He  was  taught  swim- 
ming and  riding,  the  latter  accomplishment  giving  him  a 
firm  seat  and  confidence  on  horseback,  and  being  of  special 
use  to  him  in  after  years,  when  he  had  to  scour  the  plains 
round  Delhi  in  visiting  different  mission  stations,  or  make 
his  way  along  untrodden  paths  in  Japan.  At  school  he 
showed  no  aptitude  for  modern  languages,  though  as  a 
missionary  he  mastered  six  eastern  languages. 

Edward  Bickersteth  continued  at  Highgate  till  1869, 
in  which  year  he  obtained  the  school  exhibition  and  also 

'  Edward  B.  Birks  ol)tfiine<l  the  School  Exhibition  in  1867,  also  an  open 
scholarship  at  Trinity  College,  Cambridge,  in  the  same  year,  and  a  Eellow- 
ship  in  1 87 1.    He  is  now  Vicar  of  Kellington,  Whitley  Bridge,  Yorks. 

^  He  never  lost  his  interest  in  this  game,  and  in  his  many  voyages  was 
always  ready  to  join  in  a  deck  game  ;  and  the  cry  of  'Well  bowled.  Bishop,' 
was  not  infrequently  heard. 


8 


BISHOP  l'D\YARD  BICKERSTETII 


an  open  classical  scholarship  at  Pembroke  College,  Cam- 
bridge, thus  half  supporting  himself  while  he  was  an 
undergraduate  at  the  University.  His  father  wrote  in  his 
diary  :  '  His  scholarship  crowned  his  patient  diligence  at 
Highgate  ;  his  school  course  has  never  caused  an  hour's 
anxiety,  but  has  called  for  continual  praise.' 

Dr.  Dyne,'  his  head  master  at  Highgate,  writes  thus : 

Rogate,  Petersfield  :  September  24,  1897. 

Dear  S.  Bickersteth, — You  ask  me  to  send  you  any 
reminiscences  I  can  of  your  brother  Edward's  schooldays, 
or  of  the  influence  he  exerted  in  the  school.  I  gladly  do 
so  as  far  as  I  can,  for  the  whole  of  his  school  life  was  most 
gratifying  to  me  ;  although  from  his  living  with  his  parents 
at  Hampstead,  not  under  my  roof,  or  in  a  boarding  house 
at  Highgate,  but  merely  coming  over  to  school  daily,  I 
had  not  the  opportunity  of  knowing  his  inner  life  which  I 
had  in  the  case  of  boys  living  under  me  out  of  schooL 
He  was  of  a  retiring  character,  loved  his  home,  whither  he 
generally  went  when  work  was  over ;  so  that,  always 
without  reproach  and  happy  with  his  school-mates,'"^  and' 
sociable,  whilst  with  them  he  did  not  attain  that  command- 
ing influence  amongst  them  which  a  senior  eminent  irt 
school  sports  does. 

He  entered  the  school  in  January  1862,  after  the 
Christmas  holidays,  at  the  bottom  of  the  third  form. 
We  generally  printed  our  school  list  in  October :  and 
in  the  list  of  that  year  I  find  his  name  at  the  top  of 
his  form.  This  was  an  augury  of  future  industry  and 
love  of  study,  and  I  may  add  of  doing  his  duty  to  his 
parents,  always  a  ruling  principle  with  him.  From  the 
third  form  he  gradually  rose  through  the  fourth  and  fifth,, 
always  taking  a  high  place  amongst  several  clever  con- 
temporaries (E.  B.  Birks  being  one),  to  the  foremost  place 
in  the  sixth  form  in  1869,  when  he  was  senior  prefect,, 
and  left  the  school  carrying  off  not  only  the  Governors' 

'  Died  January  1899,  when  nearly  ninety  years  of  age. 

''■  The  boys  of  Highgate  in  after  years  collected  an  annual  sum  of  money 
for  the  Delhi  Missions  while  Bickersteth  was  connected  with  the  Cambridge 
Mission.  On  his  consecration  as  Bishop  his  old  school-fellows  at  Highgate 
presented  him  with  a  pastoral  staff,  still  in  use  in  the  diocese. 


INTRODUCTORY 


9 


gold  medal  for  Latin  verse,  but  the  first  exhibition  to  the 
university,  the  Burdett  Coutts  prize  for  mathematics,  the 
first  prize  for  Divinity,  and  several  others. 

At  one  time  several  boys  walked  over  from  Hamp- 
stead  with  him  to  school,  and  I  always  spoke  with  praise 
of  the  punctuality  of  my  Hampstead  contingent  led  by  him 
.  .  .  Pray  excuse  this  rambling  letter  from  one  many  years 
past  the  allotted  life  of  man — but  thankful  to  have  been 
so  long  spared. 

Yours  sincerely, 

J.  B.  Dyne. 

Edward's  summer  holidays  were  spent  as  a  rule  under 
the  roof  of  his  grandfather,  Sir  Samuel  Bignold,  who 
resided  at  Norwich,  but  who  had  also  a  seaside  home  at 
Lowestoft.  Twice  the  Lake  district  was  visited  while 
staying  at  the  house  of  his  aunt  (Mrs.  Robert  Bickersteth) 
at  Casterton  Hall  near  the  old  home  at  Kirkby  Lonsdale, 
and  once  in  1867  he  had  a  delightful  tour  in  Norway 
and  Sweden  with  his  father,  during  which  they  took  an 
extended  tour  up  the  Fiords,  journeying  over  2,000  miles. 
On  that  occasion  he  became  familiar  with  the  great  Uni- 
versity at  Christiania,  where  they  were  the  guests  of  Pro- 
fessor Voss,  and  with  which  in  after  years  (1886)  he 
compared  the  modern  University  of  Tokyo. 

It  will  thus  be  seen  that  his  boyhood  and  early  youth 
offered  no  striking  features  worthy  of  notice,  but  were 
essentially  '  home-spun,'  to  use  a  favourite  expression  of 
his  father's,  and  redolent  of  the  simple  joys  so  beauti- 
fully described  by  John  Keble,  himself  brought  up  in  a 
clerical  home. 

Sweet  is  the  smile  of  home,  the  mutual  look 

Where  hearts  are  of  each  other  sure, 
Sweet  all  the  joys  that  crown  the  household  nook, 

The  haunt  of  all  affections  pure. 

At  the  same  time  proximity  to  London,  with  occasional 
visits  to  St.  Paul's,  to  Westminster  Abbey,  to  the  Royal 


lO 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


Academy,  and  to  the  House  of  Commons  '  (in  the  pro- 
ceedings of  which  throughout  his  life  Edward  Bickersteth 
took  an  unflagging  interest),  prevented  any  stagnation  of 
mind.  His  father's  varied  circle  of  interests — parochial, 
ecclesiastical,  literary — widened  his  horizon.  These  early 
years  make  a  reposeful  background  on  which  the  eye  lingers 
fondly,  when  it  is  contrasted  with  the  far  distant  scenes  in 
which  the  boy,  thus  trained,  was  to  spend  his  strenuous 
life. 

Spiritually,  he  was  from  his  earliest  years  devout.  It 
seems  in  keeping  with  his  subsequent  well-balanced  judg- 
ment and  sagacity  that  he  never  passed  through  any 
violent  epoch  of  conversion,  but  '  grew  on  before  the  Lord.' 
As  early  as  December  1856,  among  his  father's  memo- 
randa occurs  this  note,  '  /  trust  prayer  is  a  real  thmg  with 
our  boy.'  He  was  then  six  and  a  half  years  old.  In  his 
fifteenth  year  (March  1865)  he  was  confirmed  at  Hamp- 
stead  Parish  Church  by  the  Bishop  (Tait)  of  London. 
His  father,  who  himself  prepared  him  for  confirmation, 
was  engaged  at  that  time  with  his  poem  '  Yesterday,  To- 
day, and  For  Ever,'  in  which  the  son  took  intelligent 
interest  and  delight.  Then,  as  throughout  life,  he  seemed 
to  have  a  shrinking  from  coarse  expressions  and  evil  ways, 
and  was  never  entangled  in  those  moral  difficulties  which 
threaten  the  soul  with  shipwreck. 

In  1857  and  again  in  1863,  God  gathered  from  the 
home  two  little  ones,  Constance  and  Eva  Mabel,  but  no 
desolating  bereavements  swept  over  it  till  Edward's 
Cambridge  career  was  nearly  over. 

Among  the  younger  members  of  the  family  the 
'  Brother,'  as  he  was  often  called,  being  at  one  time  the 
only  son  among  five  daughters,  won  himself  an  unques- 

'  He  was  present  at  the  great  debate  in  the  House  of  Lords  on  the 
Disestablishment  of  the  Irish  Church. 


INTRODUCTORY 


tioned  place  in  their  estimation,  while  in  after  years  the 
youngest  ones  looked  up  to  him  not  without  awe,  though 
with  much  affection.  He  stood  godfather  to  his  sister  Efifie 
on  her  baptism  in  1867,  and  greatly  valued  that  relation- 
ship. 

In  the  summer  of  1869  he  spent  six  weeks  travelling 
through  Belgium,  Germany,  Switzerland,  and  France,  in 
company  with  his  father  and  mother  and  three  of  the  elder 
sisters,  and  in  the  autumn  of  that  year  he  went  into 
residence  at  Pembroke  College,  Cambridge,  as  a  scholar. 
It  was  then  a  small  college,  but  had  already  begun  to 
expand  under  the  inspiring  organisation  of  the  Rev.  C.  E. 
Searle.  During  his  time  as  tutor,  and  since  1 880  as  Master, 
it  has  been  partially  rebuilt  and  has  doubled  its  size. 
Between  the  scholar  and  the  tutor  a  friendship  of  no 
ordinary  tenderness  and  tenacity  sprang  up,  and  through- 
out his  life  Edward  Bickersteth  could  always  rely  on  the 
confidence  of  Dr.  Searle  in  his  different  missionary  under- 
takings. 

In  the  autumn  of  1870  he  accompanied  his  father 
for  a  tour  of  some  weeks  in  America.  The  father  will 
never  forget  his  son's  '  exquisite  delight '  on  first  hearing 
of  the  plan.     He  was  always  an  excellent  traveller. 

Among  his  contemporaries  and  friends  at  Cambridge 
may  be  mentioned  C.  W.  E.  Body,  W.  Lawson,  Heriz 
Smith,  A.  F.  Kirkpatrick,  V.  H.  Stanton,  C.  H.  Prior, 
A.  J.  Mason,  A.  W.  Verrall,  G.  H.  Kendall,  with  some  ot 
whom  he  went  upon  a  reading  party  in  the  Isle  of  Wight 
(187 1)  under  the  guidance  of  his  cousin,  Professor  Joseph 
Mayor. 

Edward  Bickersteth  went  up  to  the  university  set  on 
obtaining  a  good  degree,  and  determined  to  take 
advantage  to  the  fullest  extent  of  the  intellectual  oj^por- 
tunities  there    abundantly   opened  to  him.    From  the 


12 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


first  he  and  two  friends  read  with  a  view  to  obtaining 
Fellowships,  and  consequently  his  failure  to  obtain  a  first- 
class  in  the  Classical  Tripos  (February  1873)  was  at  the 
time  a  bitter  disappointment  to  him,  probably  one  of  the 
keenest  trials  of  his  life.' 

In  April  of  that  year  he  visited  Rome  with  his  cousin 
Edward  Birks  and  an  old  school  friend  Dorsay  Cremer  ^ 
and  made  a  tour  in  Italy,  which  in  after  years  he  was  able 
twice  to  revisit.  Few  travellers  were  more  untiring  than 
he  in  absorbing  all  that  the  magnetic  influence  of  historical 
sights  and  scenes  is  able  to  impart. 

On  his  return  he  was  anxious  to  take  Holy  Orders  at 
once,  saying  that  enough  money  had  been  spent  on  him, 
but  yielded  without  delay  to  the  earnestly  expressed 
wishes  of  his  parents  that  he  should  continue  at  Cam- 
bridge and  read  for  the  Theological  Tripos.  The  college 
offered  to  extend  his  scholarship  for  another  year,  and  the 
following  spring  he  was  rewarded  by  being  placed  with 
two  others  in  the  first  class,  obtaining  also  the  Scholefield 
and  Evans  prizes,  so  that  in  the  spring  of  1875  he  was 
elected  to  a  fellowship  at  Pembroke  College.  But  his 
mother  was  not  spared  on  earth  to  share  in  the  joy  of 
these  successes.  On  August  2,  1873,  while  staying  at 
Cromer  in  Norfolk,  she  had  been  suddenly  called  to  enter 
nto  her  rest.  It  would  not  be  easy  to  reproduce  in  words 
the  perfect  sympathy  which  had  always  bound  together 
the  mother  and  son,  or  to  bring  out  how  great  a  depriva- 
tion to  him  was  the  loss  of  her  discriminating  judg- 
ment and  devoted  love,  for  which  he  had  never  looked  in 
vain.  The  death  of  the  mother  had  followed  upon  the 
'  home  call '    of  his  sister  Alice  Frances,  eleven  months 

'  He  was  bracketed  seventh  in  the  second  class. 
-  Now  Vicar  of  Eccles. 

'  She  was  aged  19,  and  inherited  her  father's  gift  of  song  ;  see  '  The 
Master's  Home  Call,'  by  the  Bishop  of  Exeter  (Sampson  Low  &  Co.). 


INTRODUCTORY 


13 


previously  (September  16,  1872),  and  of  the  youngest 
sister  Irene  (November  12,  1872). 

There  had  ahvays  been  the  strongest  affection  between 
Edward  and  AHce,  and  it  is  also  remembered  with  what 
poignant  sorrow  Edward  grieved  over  the  sudden  death  of 
Irene.  Thus  death  had  entered  into  the  vicarage  three 
times  in  twelve  months,  and  although  by  the  clear  insight 
of  my  father's  strong  faith  we  had  been  taught  that  those 
in  Paradise  were  the  living  ones,  those  on  earth  the  dying 
ones,  yet  the  earthly  home  could  never  be  the  same  again. 

Edward  never  destroyed  one  of  his  mother's  letters, 
which  unfailingly  reached  him  two  or  three  times  a  week 
during  his  undergraduate  life ;  but  they  do  not  offer 
material  for  quotation,  being  full  of  the  home  interests  of 
a  large  family,  in  which  then,  as  afterwards  in  India  and 
Japan,  he  never  failed  to  keep  up  an  unbroken  interest, 
and  in  which  he  expected  to  be  most  fully  posted  up. 
An  exception  may  be  made  in  the  following  three  letters, 
considering  the  intimate  influence  which  the  two  men 
therein  mentioned  were  to  have  on  his  life. 

On  November  12,  1871,  his  mother  wrote  :  'How  kind 
Mr.  Westcott  seems  to  be  to  you  and  your  companions. 
I  am  sure  his  teaching  must  be  very  valuable.'  Or  again  : 
'  It  is  interesting  to  us  that  you  should  be  enjoying  Pro- 
fessor Westcott's  lectures,  when  twenty-five  years  ago  he 
and  your  father  were  together.'  Such  allusions  are  fre- 
quent, while  on  November  28,  1871,  she  wrote  :' Father 
and  I,  with  Lily,  went  to  St.  Pancras  yesterday  and  heard 
a  most  wonderful  preacher  of  the  same  class  as  Mr.  Body. 
It  was  Mr.  Wilkinson,'  and  he  certainly  gave  a  wonderful 
sermon.  I  never  saw  anyone,  perhaps,  who  seemed  so 
vividly  to  realize  eternal  things  while  speaking.  It  was  a 
very  great  help.'  While  with  regard  to  his  first  curacy, 
'  Now  Bishop  of  St.  Andrews. 


14 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


which  had  been  already  under  discussion,  she  wrote 
(May  17,  1872):  'Did  father  tell  you  that  he  lunched 
with  Mr.  Thorold  one  day  this  week  to  give  him 
American  information,  as  he  is  hoping  to  go  there  this 
summer,  and  Mr.  Thorold  still  so  wishes  to  have  you 
for  his  curate  I  do  feel  it  would  be  a  great  privilege 
to  you  to  work  under  such  a  man,  and  your  position  in 
every  way  would  be  a  good  one.  It  makes  my  heart  so 
happy  to  think  of  you  in  the  ministry,  telling  of  the 
Saviour's  love  to  perishing  souls,  and  I  often  and  often 
commit  it  in  prayer  to  our  gracious  Father,  my  dear  boy. 
Father  has  said  sometimes  that  he  thought  if  he  could  see 
you  preaching  the  gospel  he  could  say  from  his  heart, 
"  Lord,  now  lettest  thou  Thy  servant  depart  in  peace  ;"  but  if 
He  spares  us  to  see  you  established  in  the  ministry,  and 
your  work  blessed  of  God,  it  would  be  indeed  a  blessing.' 
These  words  were  written  within  three  months  of  her  death. 

Mr.  Thorold  '  was  an  old  friend  of  Edward  Bicker- 
steth's  father,  and  godfather  to  his  son  Hugh.  He 
had  been  persuaded  by  him  to  leave  Westmoreland  for 
work  in  London,  and  a  curacy  under  him  would  have 
been  congenial  work  and  valuable  experience.  But  his 
mother's  death  made  Edward  wish  to  reside  as  near  as 
possible  to  the  old  home,  so  that  eventually  he  accepted 
the  offer  of  a  title  from  a  neighbour  of  his  father's,  whose 
parish  all  but  adjoined  that  of  Christ  Church,  Hampstead. 

He  was  ordained  deacon  at  St.  Paul's  Cathedral  by 
Bishop  Jackson  of  London,  being  first  among  the  candi- 
dates, on  the  fourth  Sunday  in  Advent,  1873. 

The  recently  formed  parish  of  Holy  Trinity  to  which 
he  was  licensed  was  administered  by  the  Vicar  (the  Rev. 
Henry  Sharpe)  on  more  extreme  Evangelical  lines  than 
his  new  curate  felt  in  sympathy  with,  so  it  turned  out 

'  Afterwards  Bishop  of  Rochester,  and  then  of  Winchester. 


INTRODUCTORY 


15 


happily  that  the  little  hamlet  of  West  Knd  (now  a  large 
suburb)  was  intrusted  to  his  care.  There  within  two 
years  he  succeeded,  with  the  help  of  many  of  his  father's 
friends,  in  building  an  excellent  mission  church  of  brick, 
which  has  now  become  a  centre  for  a  new  ecclesiastical 
district.  This  his  first  scene  of  ministerial  labours  never 
ceased  to  be  regularly  remembered  by  him  in  intercession 
up  to  the  end  of  his  episcopate. 

On  December  20,  1874,  in  the  same  place,  and  by  the 
same  Bishop  of  London  who  had  set  him  apart  for  the 
diaconate,  Edward  Bickersteth  was  advanced  to  the 
priesthood.  His  father  wrote  in  his  journal  :  '  This  day 
my  beloved  Edward  was  ordained  Priest.  His  diaconate 
has  been  full  of  promise,  and  full  of  realised  blessing,  a 
wise  tact  in  dealing  with  many  minds,  and  a  constraining 
desire  to  preach  Christ,  a  full  Christ,  to  his  flock.  And 
this  while  pressed  with  many  literary  works — the  Theo- 
logical Tripos  examination,  in  which  he  came  out  first 
writing  for  the  Hulsean,  trying  for  the  Carus,  and  prepar- 
ing for  the  examination  of  priest.  But  now  his  preparation 
work  is  over,  and  he  is  fully  on  his  ministerial  way.  The 
Lord  grant  that,  abiding  in  Jesus  Christ,  he  may  bring  forth 
much  fruit,  and  win  many  jewels  for  the  crown  he  will  cast 
at  the  feet  of  his  Lord.  His  dear  mother's  image  has 
seemed  so  present  the  last  two  days.  Surely  through 
Jesus  she  knows  all.' 

It  was  during  these  years  (1873-5)  that  Bickersteth 
greatly  enjoyed  the  friendship  of  Mrs.  Charles,  one  of  his 
father's  oldest  friends  resident  at  Hampstead.  The  gifted 
authoress  of 'The  chronicles  of  the  Schonberg  Cotta  Family' 
was,  as  all  who  knew  her  will  admit,  most  stimulating  as  a 
conversationalist,  and  very  sympathetic  in  her  power  of 
appreciating  the  intellectual  workings  and  spiritual  aspira- 
tions of  younger  minds.    He  also  regularly  attended  the 


i6 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


conference  of  the  London  Junior  Clerical  Society,  of  which 
he  was  one  of  the  first  members.  This  society  used  to  meet 
at  a  Lecture  Room  in  King's  College,  London,  and  among 
its  members  at  that  time  were  the  Rev.  H.  J.  Mathew 
(late  Bishop  of  Lahore),  the  Rev.  John  Oakley  (late  Dean 
of  Manchester),  the  Rev.  Brook  Deedes  (now  Rector  of 
Hawkhurst  and  sometime  Archdeacon  of  Lahore),  the  Rev. 
A.  J.  Worlledge  (now  Chancellor  of  Truro),  the  Rev.  J.  W. 
Horsley  (Vicar  of  St.  Peter's,  Walworth),  and  others.  The 
Rev.  Charles  Kingsley,  the  Rev.  Alfred  Barry  (afterwards 
Bishop  of  Sydney),  and  the  Rev.  W.  D.  Maclagan  (now 
Archbishop  of  York),  used  to  attend  the  meetings  from 
time  to  time  and  address  the  members.  In  all  such  intel- 
lectual discussions  Edward  Bickersteth  took  a  thoughtful 
part. 

In  appearance  he  was  tall,  being  just  over  six  feet 
in  height,  always  very  thin,  with  grey  eyes  and  some- 
what marked  features,  his  chin  being  unusually  long. 
His  voice,  though  not  powerful  nor  remarkable  for  its 
musical  cadences,  carried  well,  and  seldom  if  ever  failed 
him.  His  forehead  was  of  noble  proportions  and  marked 
him  out  as  a  man  of  thought.  His  eyes  shone  with  keen 
intelligence,  and  a  smile  of  singular  sweetness  lit  up  his 
whole  face,  and  revealed  as  in  a  moment  the  man  himself. 
All  his  movements  were  quick,  and  he  walked  always  at  a 
great  pace. 

Although  a  poet's  son,  Edward  Bickersteth  was  never 
himself  a  poet,  nor  was  his  expression  of  '  thought  much 
tinged  by  emotion.'  In  writing  he  aimed  rather  at  lucidity 
of  style  than  at  rhetorical  effect,  and  he  set  more  store  on 
introducing  an  historical  precedent  than  a  glowing  simile. 
From  his  father  he  inherited  his  strong  will  and  great 
tenacity  of  purpose,  coupled  with  a  gentleness  of  bear- 
ing and  a  singular  gift  of  patient  waiting  upon  God  ; 


INTRODUCTORY 


17 


while  from  his  mother  he  derived  a  marked  tenderness,  a 
cautious  sagacity  in  judgment,  the  reticence  of  reserve, 
as  well  as  a  disinclination  to  self-advertisement.  Like  all 
highly  strung  natures,  he  could  be  deeply  stirred,  but  by 
God's  grace  he  learnt  to  curb  his  impatience,  so  that  the 
peacefulness,  seldom  broken  in  upon  in  later  life,  carried 
with  it  a  note  of  victory.  These  characteristics,  disciplined 
and  matured  by  experience,  developed  in  him  not  only 
a  vocation  of  leadership,  but  also  made  that  leadership 
eagerly  looked  for  by  friends  and  acquiesced  in  even  by 
those  who  differed  from  him. 

To  the  fact  that  he  was  born  and  bred  among  the 
Evangelicals  may  be  attributed  his  early  sense  of  the 
seriousness  of  life,  of  the  necessity  for  personal  religion,  of 
the  reality  of  divine  mercy  and  judgment,  and  of  the  con- 
straining force  latent  in  the  words  '  For  Christ's  sake.' 
This  spiritual  birthright  he  never  lightly  esteemed,  and 
never  forfeited  by  a  rash  exchange  into  a  wholly  opposite 
school  of  thought  ;  but  his  natural  disposition,  his  love  of 
learning  and  of  precision  of  thought,  his  appreciation  of  first 
principles  and  of  historical  precedents,  and  his  balanced 
judgment  made  it  certain  that  fuller  sacramental  teach- 
ing when  presented  to  him  would  find  a  ready  response 
and  satisfy  the  deeper  instincts  of  his  nature.  Moreover 
in  God's  providence  he  went  up  to  the  University  two 
years  before  the  Cambridge  School  of  Divinity  received 
its  most  powerful  recruit  in  the  person  of  Dr.  Westcott 
(called  in  1871  to  be  Regius  Professor  of  Divinity),  and 
the  influence  of  his  Alma  Mater,  interpreted  for  him  by 
Lightfoot,  Westcott,  and  others,  completed  his  mental  and 
spiritual  evolution,  more  especially  after  his  return  to  the 
University  to  reside  as  a  Fellow. 

But  there  is  no  doubt  that  his  early  training  enabled 
him  to  see  from  the  inside  the  aspirations  and  methods 

C 


i8 


JilSIIOr  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


of  truly  spiritually  minded  men,  both  clergy  and  laity, 
belonging  to  the  Evangelical  school  of  thought.  The  re- 
membrance of  this  experience  was  of  special  use  to  him 
when  called  upon  to  supervise  the  work  of  strongly 
Evangelical  missionaries  in  Japan.  Many  years  later 
writing  in  Japan  from  a  mission  station  where  he  was  stay- 
ing, he  expressed  himself  thus  in  a  letter  to  his  wife  : 

These  are  people  from  whom  I  feel  one  may  learn 
much.  Their  hearts  are  really  in  their  work,  and  they 
pursue  it  simply  and  loyally  for  Christ's  sake.  Of  course 
I  do  feel  a  great  lack  of  church  privileges  and  of. the  sense 
of  need  of  them.  They  would  be  stronger  and  better  if 
they  would  only  superadd  them  to  what  they  have.  But 
their  lives  seem  otherwise  set.  Their  very  reading  is  in 
the  main  of  a  dissenting  order,  and  their  thoughts  get  that 
tinge.  Still,  with  it  all  there  is  a  personal  love  of  our  Lord 
and  a  loyalty  to  Him  which  makes  their  work — not  what 
it  might  be,  but  still — very  valuable  and  with  a  beauty  of 
its  own.  God  give  us  increasingly  what  they  have,  as  well 
as  all  the  truths  of  the  other  order  which  complement  it. 

Again : 

These  dear  people  live  as  if  no  great  movement  had 
ever  passed  over  the  English  Church  with  all  its  teachings 
fifty  years  ago, — (indeed,  almost  as  if  the  Church  were 
not,  in  many  of  its  aspects  and  directions), — though  un- 
consciously they  are  much  the  better  for  its  influence. 
But  I  had  even  to  remind  them  it  was  Lady  Day.  Would 
that  they  could  learn  to  add  the  idea  of  the  sv  a-cofia  and 
all  it  means  to  that  of  the  sv  irvsv^ia. 

'  In  1892  Archbishop  Benson,  speaking  at  a  meeting  in 
St.  James's  Hall  on  behalf  of  the  Society  for  Promoting 

'  Speaking  at  the  195th  Anniversary'  of  that  Society,  Archbishop  Benson 
said:  'We  talk  familiarly  about  people  being  "High  Church"  people,  or 
"Low  Church"  people,  or  "Broad  Church"  people;  but  there  is  an  un- 
occupied word  which  I  want  to  come,  if  not  into  our  lips,  at  least  into  our 
minds,  and  hearts,  and  lives.  It  is  the  word  "Deep."  What  I  want  is 
"  Deep  Church  "  for  all ;  Deep  Church  that  can  be  produced  only  by  Christian 
knowledge  and  by  the  "  principles"  of  Christian  knowledge.' 


INTRODUCTORY 


19 


Christian  Knowledge,  pointed  out  that  in  the  nomenclature 
of  Church  parties  one  word  had  been  left  unemployed,  and 
pleaded  in  favour  of  '  Deep  Churchmen,' as  distinct  from 
High,  Low,  or  Broad,  while  embracing  many  character- 
istics of  all  the  three.  It  would  be  presumptuous  to  imply 
that  Edward  Bickersteth  realised  that  description,  it  is 
quite  certain  that  it  expressed  his  ideal. 


20 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


CHAPTER  II 

RETURN  TO  CAMBRIDGE  AND  CALL  TO  DELHI 

'The  very  fact  of  their  having  received  the  training  and  education  of  one 
University  will  be  a  bond  of  sympathy  between  the  missionaries  of  no  ordinary 
strength.  Our  English  Universities  have  a  character  and  tradition  of  their  own, 
which  are  impressed  by  a  thousand  subtle  and  indefinable  influences  on  those 
who  pass  through  them,  and  will  naturally  engender  unity  of  feeling  and 
similarity  in  modes  of  thought.  We  refuse  to  regard  the  consideration  of  such 
influences  and  associations  as  merely  sentimental — rather  we  believe  that  they 
should  be  carefully  taken  account  of,  and  consecrated  Ijy  combined  action  in, 
the  service  of  Christ.'— Rev.  Edward  Bickersteth,  the  '  Mission  Field,'' 
March  iSjJ. 

In  May  1875  Edward  Bickersteth  returned  to  Cambridge, 
having  been  elected  to  a  Fellowship  at  Pembroke  College, 
on  which  foundation  he  had  already  held  a  scholarship. 
Those  were  the  days  before  the  last  University  Commis- 
sion had  reorganised  the  conditions  on  which  Fellowships 
are  held,  and  there  was  no  rule  of  compulsory  residence  at 
the  University,  nor  indeed  any  rule  attached  to  the  tenure 
except  that  a  Fellow  could  not  be  married. 

As  a  matter  of  fact,  Bickersteth  retained  his  Fellow- 
ship for  eighteen  years,  the  larger  part  of  which  time  he 
was  absent  from  England  either  in  India  or  Japan,  and 
only  for  the  first  two  years  took  his  full  share  in  lecturing 
and  other  collegiate  duties.  He  always  held  that  if 
Fellowships  were  ever  to  be  allotted  to  specific  objects, 
it  was  not  unreasonable  that  one  should  be  held  by  a 
missionary.  He  maintained  that  the  Christian  sons  of 
an  ancient  University  were  responsible  not  only  for  the 


RETURN  TO  CAMBRIDGE  AND  CALL  TO  DELHI      2  1 


•confirmation  of  the  faith,  but  also  for  its  propagation. 
He  had  reason  to  believe  that  his  brother  Fellows,  or  many 
of  them,  the  tutor  especially,  took  his  view,  and  approved 
■of  one  of  the  governing  body  being  thus  employed  on 
foreign  service  ;  and  there  can  be  no  doubt  that  the  news 
from  the  front  which  Bickersteth  from  time  to  time  sent 
home,  and  his  letters  from  Japan  addressed  to  the  Master 
•of  Pembroke  on  some  important  new  departure  in  his 
■work,  not  only  excited  interest  in  the  college  itself,  but 
■were  widely  read  in  other  colleges  as  well.  He  did  not 
retain  rooms  in  college  after  he  left  Delhi,  but  his  sermons 
in  chapel  and  occasional  lectures  during  his  enforced  and 
prolonged  absence  from  India,  or  on  his  brief  visits  from 
Japan,  brought  home  to  many  younger  men  their  own 
share  of  responsibility  for  imparting  as  well  as  for  retain- 
ing the  faith.  Certain  it  is  that  Pembroke  College  never 
failed  to  have  a  place  in  his  intercessions,  and  if  the 
mission  to  Delhi  gained  greatly  in  prestige  through  its 
first  leader  being  on  the  governing  body  of  a  college,  the 
-college  itself  lost  nothing  by  sharing  some  of  its  material 
resources  with  the  East,  and  by  giving  one  of  its  sons  for 
this  work  of  the  Lord. 

The  following  recollections,  contributed  by  the  Rev. 
C.  W.  E.  Body,  D.D.,  Professor  at  the  Theological  College, 
New  York,  and  formerly  Provost  of  Trinity  College, 
Toronto,  give  a  contemporary  picture  of  Edward  Bickcr- 
iiteth's  college  life. 

Amongst  my  most  valued  recollections  of  happy  Cam- 
bridge days  are  those  of  a  little  group  of  younger  Fellows 
and  graduates  who  were  accustomed  to  meet  two  or  three 
times  a  week  at  the  lectures  of  Dr.  VVestcott,  then  Regius 
Professor  of  Divinity,  or  at  the  meetings  of  the  University 
Church  Society,  a  society  founded  largely  at  Dr.  West- 
cott's  suggestion.  Under  the  influence  of  the  deeply 
spiritual  teaching  with  which  we  were  thus  constantly 


1  '> 


]5ISH0P  EDWARD  15ICKERSTETH 


surrounded  we  were  drawn  together  in  bonds  of  mutual 
sympathy  and  affection  of  a  somewhat  unusual  kind. 
Coming  from  various  colleges,  with  every  variety  of 
temperament  and  standpoint,  we  felt  ourselves  united  in  a 
living  harmony  of  developing  faith.  Such  intercourse  and 
fellowship  I  shall  always  look  upon  as  among  the  most 
precious  formative  influences  of  my  life.  Among  these 
friends  Edward  Bickcrsteth  occupied  a  foremost  place. 
He  possessed  a  remarkable  combination  of  qualities 
not  often  given  to  any  one  man  ;  on  the  one  side  one  was 
instinctively  drawn  to  him  by  his  affectionate  nature,  with 
all  its  delicacy  of  consideration  and  sympathy,  whilst  very 
soon  one  felt  oneself  to  be  in  the  presence  of  a  singularly 
resolute  will  informed  by  a  well  balanced  conscience,  and 
even  masterful  in  its  grip  and  influence. 

Strength  and  tenderness  were  blended  in  him  in 
singular  beauty,  and  to  the  last  the  attractiveness  of  the 
combination  was  felt  by  all  who  knew  him  well.  A  slight 
lisp  in  speech,  and  that  half-suppressed  laugh  which 
seemed  to  flow  instinctively  from  his  buoyant  nature,  might 
have  seemed  in  others  a  defect  or  an  affectation  ;  to 
Bickersteth's  transparently  genuine  nature  these  were  soon 
felt  to  give  an  additional  charm. 

The  Monday  evening  class  on  the  Epistle  of  St.  John, 
as  well  as  the  more  formal  professorial  lectures  on  the 
Introduction  to  Christian  Doctrine  in  the  quaint  old 
Divinity  Schools,  in  which  from  many  sides  we  were  led 
up  to  the  fulness  of  the  Christian  faith,  were  to  him  an 
unfailing  source  of  ever  fresh  delight.  I  can  still  re- 
member the  joyous  enthusiasm  with  which  in  our  afternoon 
walks  he  would  discuss  some  wider  thought  thus  opened 
up  to  him.  His  buoyancy  and  depth  of  faith  gave  a  special 
kind  of  inspiration  to  his  society,  marking  him  out  as  a 
future  leader  in  the  world  of  men. 

Hence  when  his  name  was  announced  as  the  head  of 
the  new  University  Mission  to  North  India  his  friends 
recognised  a  special  appropriateness  in  the  selection. 
How  memorable  was  that  service  on  Sunday  evening 
in  St.  Giles's  Church,  at  which  Dr.  Lightfoot,  with  even 
more  than  his  usual  forcefulness  and  sympathy,  gave  the 
farewell  address,'  and  the  Bishop  of  Ely  (Dr.  Woodford) 

'  As  a  matter  of  fact,  this  sermon  was  preached  a  year  before  the  Cam- 
bridge Missionaries  started,  and  was  entitled,  'The  Father  of  Missionaries.' 
For  some  quotations  from  it  see  p.  42. 


RETURN  TO  CAMBRIDGE  AND  CALL  TO  DELHI  23 


sent  forth  the  first  two  University  missionaries  (Bickersteth 
and  a  dear  personal  friend,  the  Rev.  J.  D.  Murray,  Scholar 
of  St.  John's  College)  to  North  India. 

We  felt  that  it  was  a  representative  offering  which  was 
then  made.  We  were  sending  out  in  faith  and  hope  that 
which  seemed  most  distinctly  characteristic  of  the  best 
Cambridge  life  of  our  day.  This  conviction  was  only 
deepened  by  subsequent  events.  Through  all  the  neces- 
sary difficulties  of  the  inception  of  such  a  work,  in  the 
delicate  task  of  remodelling  an  established  S.P.G.  Mission 
to  adapt  it  to  the  special  type  of  university  brotherhood 
and  educational  work  we  had  set  before  ourselves,  Bicker- 
steth's  affectionate  tact  and  unswerving  loyalty  to  his  own 
ideals  were  alike  everywhere  felt  ;  of  all  this,  however, 
others  will  speak  with  far  more  intimate  knowledge  than  I 
possess.  Two  or  three  years  after  Bickersteth's  departure 
to  Delhi  I  was  called  to  work  at  Trinity  College,  Toronto. 
When  we  were  again  brought  into  close  contact  Bickersteth 
was  Bishop  in  Japan,  and  we  were  endeavouring  to  send 
out  from  Trinity  a  Canadian  mission  on  something  like 
the  old  Cambridge  lines.  As  he  spoke  in  our  Convo- 
cation Hall  for  this  mission  the  same  spiritual  attractive- 
ness and  impelling  force  of  statesmanlike  conviction  were 
as  strongly  marked  as  ever.  There  was  nothing  limited 
or  negative  about  his  nature — all  was  positive  to  the 
highest  degree,  positive  to  the  point  of  a  bold  insistence 
as  he  depicted  our  opportunity  and  responsibilities.  To 
his  encouragement  and  zeal  whatever  success  has  attended 
the  mission  is  largely  due. 

The  same  qualities  were  conspicuous  in  his  earnest 
desire  that  the  Church  of  Canada  should  send  out  a  Bishop 
of  its  own  to  assume  in  its  name  chief  oversight  over  a 
large  district  in  Japan  in  which  the  Canadian  missions 
were  situated.  He  had  little  sympathy  with  that  point  of 
view  which,  contrary  to  all  apostolic  precedent,  assumed 
that  a  young  National  Church  should  first  prove  itself 
perfectly  able  to  bear  alone  all  its  own  internal  burdens 
before  it  ventures  forth,  in  obedience  to  our  Lord's  com- 
mand, to  plant  the  faith  in  the  regions  beyond. 

Although  at  the  last  meeting  of  the  Canadian  General 
Synod  the  proposal  of  the  Japanese  Bishops  was  felt  to 
be  at  that  time  impracticable,  one  may  confidently  hope 
that  the  day  is  not  far  distant  when  those  greatly  to  be 


24 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


regretted  obstacles  will  be  removed,  and  Bishop  Bicker- 
steth's  desire  is,  by  God's  mercy,  carried  to  a  successful 
realisation. 

In  what  so  unexpectedly  proved  to  be  his  last  illness 
I  was  privileged  to  be  with  him  once  in  New  York  on  his 
way  to  England,  and  subsequently  in  London.  The  same 
heroic  discontent  with  present  results  and  glad  pressing 
forward  to  new  activities  remained  with  him  to  the  last  ; 
that  in  some  sense  almost  unique  combination  of  faith  and 
hope  and  love  which  it  was  permitted  him  to  embody  and 
to  leave  as  an  abiding  legacy  to  the  Church  he  so  dearly 
loved. 

But  when  Bickersteth  returned  to  Cambridge,  had  he 
then  definitely  before  his  mind  the  idea  of  offering  himself 
for  mission  work  abroad  ?  There  had  been  various  pre- 
disposing influences  at  work  for  many  years,  leading  him 
to  '  look  at  the  fields  '  white  for  the  harvest.  At  Christ 
Church  Vicarage,  Hampstead,  he  met  many  missionaries, 
and  his  father  remembers  in  particular  the  deep  impres- 
sion left  on  his  son's  mind  after  a  missionary  meeting 
addressed  by  the  Rev.  Robert  Clark  (of  the  Punjab)  and 
the  Rev.  J.  Welland,  two  missionaries  of  the  Church  Mis- 
sionary Society. 

He  had  never  thought  of  offering  himself  either  to  the 
S.P.G.  or  C.M.S.,  so  far  as  is  known  at  the  time  he  returned 
to  Cambridge.  His  election,  however,  to  a  Fellowship 
after  he  had  experienced  two  years  and  more  of  pastoral 
work  in  England  placed  him  in  a  position  in  which  he  was 
bound  to  look  at  his  life  from  a  new  standpoint.  What 
was  to  be  his  future  ?  At  home  or  abroad  ?  And  if  the 
latter,  how  could  he  work  in  and  bring  to  bear  most  fruit- 
fully the  academic  resources  and  advantages  now  open  to 
him  ?  I  remember  well  his  expressions  of  surprise  and 
regret  when  it  was  pointed  out  (I  think  in  some  periodical) 
how  few  University  graduates,  and  how  much  fewer  honours 
men,  had  follov.-ed  the  lead  which  Henry  Martyn  had 


RETURN  TO  CAMBRIDGE  AND  CALL  TO  DELHI  2$ 


given  to  his  University.'  Whatever  occupied  Edward 
Bickerstcth's  mind  he  was  sure  to  pray  about.  It  is  not, 
therefore,  strange  that  he  who  had  already  h"stened  to  two 
out  of  the  three  most  memorable  commands  ever  uttered 
by  our  Lord — '  LooI<  at  the  fields  '  and  '  Pray  the  Lord 
of  the  harvest ' — soon  heard  with  increasing  clearness 
the  complementary  words,  '  Go  and  make  disciples  of 
the  nations.'  He  had  taken  stock  of  the  facts,  descried 
the  paucity  of  the  labourers,  and  in  his  perplexity  had 
turned  to  pray  ;  so  in  due  order  he  was  led  to  obey  the 
third  command,  not  by  securing  a  deputy  in  lieu  of  per- 
sonal service,  but  by  offering  himself.  This  seems  to  be 
a  sufficient  explanation  of  his  desire  for  missionary  work, 
and  of  his  decision  to  go.  What  led  to  the  realisation  of 
his  hope,  and  to  the  formation  of  the  Cambridge  Mission 
must  now  be  told. 

The  entry  occurs  in  his  father's  diary,  July  25,  1875  : 

My  beloved  son's  election  to  a  Fellowship  in  May  was 
indeed  a  signal  mercy  as  crowning  his  long  work  of 
patient  study,  and  now  he  has  opened  up  to  me  a  thought 
which  has  long  been  in  his  mind  of  trying  to  organise  a 
band  of  missionary  labourers  in  Cambridge,  and  himself 
going  forth  with  them  to  India  after  a  while.  I  feel  that 
it  is  the  greatest  gift  I  could  give  to  the  missionary  cause, 
for  I  had  often  counted  on  Edward  being  the  stay  of  my 
declining  years,  and  the  stay  of  his  brothers  and  sisters  ; 
and  if  once  he  is  called  to  missionary  work,  though  he 
may  come  home  from  time  to  time,  he  will  not  look  back, 
having  put  his  hand  to  the  plough. 

The  father's  insight  into  the  tenacity  of  his  son's  purpose 
proved  true,  but  his  foresight  could  not  tell  that  the  work 
begun  in  India  and  then  checked  through  disease  would  be 

'  See  Mr.  Eugene  Stock's  '  History  of  the  Church  Missionary  Society ' 
vol.  ii.  ch.  36,  for  an  interesting  account  of  '  Some  recruits  from  the  Uni- 
versities.' 


26 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


continued  in  Japan,  and  ended  so  far  as  earth's  activities 
are  concerned  at  the  comparatively  early  age  of  47. 

There  can  be  no  doubt  that  the  Cambridge  Mission, 
the  first  Community  Mission  sent  out  by  any  University  in 
modern  times,  is  greatly  indebted  in  its  inception  to  the 
influence  of  two  distinguished  men — the  Rev.  T.  V.  French, 
sometime  Fellow  of  University  College,  Oxford,  and 
the  Rev.  Professor  B.  F.  Westcott,  formerly  Fellow  of 
Trinity  College,  Cambridge,  who  were  each  in  the  Provi- 
dence of  God  recalled  to  reside  at  their  respective 
Universities  early  in  the  seventies.  Mr.  French,  as  Rector 
of  St.  Ebbe's  in  Oxford,  and  Dr.  Westcott,  as  Regius 
Professor  at  Cambridge,  were  both  deeply  impressed  with 
the  needs  of  India  and  with  the  special  aptitude  of  the 
Universities,  '  by  the  happy  discipline  through  which  they 
combine  reverence  with  freedom  and  enthusiasm  with 
patience,'  to  meet  those  needs.  The  one  had  formed  his 
opinions  through  his  own  prolonged  experience  as  a 
missionary  in  Northern  India,  especially  as  Principal  of  the 
Lahore  Divinity  School ;  the  other  had  arrived  at  the  same 
conclusions  by  independent  thought  and  study,  but  both 
alike  felt  that  '  the  Universities  are  providentially  fitted  to 
train  men  who  shall  interpret  the  faith  of  the  West  to  the 
East,  and  bring  back  to  us  new  illustrations  of  the  one 
infinite  and  eternal  Gospel.'  They  inculcated  their  views 
on  all  who  came  under  their  influence,  and  Edward  Bicker- 
steth,  as  it  so  happened,  was  naturally  brought  into  touch 
with  both.  Mr.  French  had  served  with  his  father  (the 
Rev.  E.  H.  Bickersteth)  at  Christ  Church,  Hampstead, 
during  a  few  months  in  1863,  and  their  common  love  for 
missionary  enterprise  had  cemented  so  fast  a  friendship 
between  the  two  men  that  Mr.  French  always  revisited 
Hampstead  when  he  returned  to  England.  Professor 
Westcott,  born  in  the  same  year  and  the  same  month  as 


RETURN  TO  CAMBRIDGE  AND  CALL  TO  DELHI  2/ 


Mr.  Bickcrstcth  of  Hampsteacl,  had  first  met  him  when  they 
were  both  undergraduates  at  Trinity  College,  Cambridge, 
from  which  time  dated  a  friendship  destined  to  be  lifelong. 
Edward,  who  had  been  himself  accustomed  to  hear  fre- 
quently from  his  father's  lips  the  wise  counsel,  '  Thine  own 
friend,  and  thy  father's  friend,  forsake  not,'  cannot  have  been 
uninfluenced  by  Mr.  French's  missionary  ardour  during 
his  visits  to  Hampstead,  and  when  in  due  course  he 
himself  had  gone  up  to  Cambridge  he  was  not  slow  to 
claim  an  introduction  to  Professor  Westcott  on  the  score 
of  being  his  father's  son. 

In  this  way  it  may  safely  be  asserted  that  the  younger 
man  was  gradually  put  on  terms  of  easy  friendship  with 
these  two  master  minds,  and  was  therefore  the  more  ready  to 
receive  the  contagious  influence  of  their  teaching  and  their 
ideals.  But  we  are  not  left  to  weave  together  conjectures 
on  this  point.  Professor  V.  H.  Stanton,  his  contemporarj' 
and  close  friend,  writing  in  the  '  Cambridge  Review ' 
(October  14,  1897),  has  recorded  that  Edward  Bickersteth 
had  himself  stated  that  a  letter  of  Mr.  French's  to  him  in 
1875  suggested  the  first  idea  of  a  Cambridge  Brotherhood 
to  his  mind.  The  paper  read  by  Mr.  French  on  the  in- 
vitation of  Edward  Bickersteth  before  the  Cambridsfe 
Missionary  Aid  Society,  February  16,  1876,  on  the  pro- 
posed Cambridge  University  Mission  in  North  India  is 
unquestionably  the  result  of  much  previous  correspondence 
between  the  two  men.  It  may  be  here  noted  that 
Bickersteth  himself  had  read  a  paper  on  February  9,  1876 
(the  week  previous  to  Mr.  French's  visit),  before  the  Cam- 
bridge Church  Society  on  the  same  subject. 

While,  therefore,  fully  acknowledging  all  the  indebted- 
ness of  the  Cambridge  Mission  to  these  two  leaders  for  their 
large  share  in  the  first  suggestion  and  direction  of  the  move- 
ment, there  can  be  no  doubt  that  the  Rev.  S.  S.  Allnutt 


28 


BISHOr  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


(the  present  head  of  the  Cambridge  Mission)  was  justified  in 
writing,  in  the  '  Delhi  Mission  News'  (October  1897) :  '  It 
is  certain  that  to  the  energy,  enterprise,  and  devotion  of 
Edward  Bickersteth  it  was  due  that  the  idea  of  a  Uni- 
versity Mission  did  not  remain  a  splendid  dream,  but  was 
so  speedily  translated  into  actual  concrete  form  and  em- 
bodiment. How  well  I  remember  the  walks  during  which 
he  unfolded  to  me  the  main  principles  on  which  it  was 
proposed  to  start  a  missionary  Brotherhood,  and  the  role 
it  was  to  seek  to  accomplish.  The  subject  had  taken 
entire  possession  of  him,  and  to  his  contagious  enthusiasm 
was  due  the  fact  that  with  only  one  exception  the  band  of 
men  who  with  himself  composed  the  original  staff  of  the 
Brotherhood  were  won  by  his  own  personal  influence. 
This  alone  testifies  to  the  force  of  character  as  well  as  the 
consuming  zeal  that  marked  the  man  then  as  afterwards 
throughout  his  career.' 

Professor  Stanton,  in  the  paper  already  quoted,  writes 
to  the  same  effect,  '  that  Edward  Bickersteth  made  the 
general  idea  which  he  derived  from  his  teachers  thoroughly 
his  own,  conceived  with  the  definiteness  and  force  that 
were  necessarj'  in  order  that  the  project  should  succeed, 
how  the  life  and  work  of  such  a  body  of  missionaries 
should  be  organised,  saw  from  his  own  study  of  foreign 
missions  what  the  defects  of  ordinary'  methods  were  which 
needed  to  be  remedied,  and  was  the  first  to  point  out  fully 
what  the  secrets  of  strength  of  missionary  work  conducted 
by  a  community  would  be.  He  stated  with  perfect 
clearness  the  advantages  of  the  proposed  plan  precisely 
as  they  are  to  this  day  insisted  on  by  those  \\\\o  have  had 
experience  of  their  working.  And  it  should  be  remem- 
bered that  there  was  not  then  any  mission,  even  belonging 
to  a  religious  order,  which  could  serve  as  an  example, 
certainly  none  which  would  naturally  occur  to  the  mind.* 


RETURN  TO  CAMBRIDGE  AND  CALL  TO  DELHI  29 


But  this  point  can  be  best  cleared  up  by  the  words  of  the 
present  Bishop  of  Durham  (Dr.  Westcott).  Writing  to  me 
on  October  8,  1897,  from  Auckland  Castle  he  says:  '  No- 
thing, as  you  know,  gave  me  greater  joy  in  my  Cambridge 
work  than  the  foundation  of  the  Delhi  Mission,  and  your 
brother  was  made  to  embody  the  ideas  which  it  represents.' 

What,  then,  were  the  advantages  which  Edward 
Bickersteth  hoped  for  from  the  establishment  of  a 
University  Mission  ?  In  his  paper  read  before  the  Cam- 
bridge Church  Society  he  sums  them  up  under  four  heads  : 

I.  Concentration  of  effort  on  a  particular  city  or  small 
district. 

II.  Continuity  in  work  done,  involving  the  possibility 
of  subdivision  of  labour  in  {a)  controversial,  (U)  literary 
undertakings. 

III.  (And  on  this  he  desired  to  lay  special  stress). 
Opportunity  afforded  for  united  religious  exercises  and 
services,  and 

IV.  The  connection  of  the  mission  with  Cambridge, 
securing  a  supply  of  men,  as  well  as  substantial  aid  by 
research  carried  on  at  home  in  libraries  and  colleges,  and 
thus  enabling  the  University  to  perform  one  of  her  most 
sacred  duties. 

It  is  suggestive  that  in  this  his  first  statement  he  fore- 
casts the  time  when  '  the  whole  would  be  handed  over  to 
Indian  teachers  and  the  Indian  Church,'  thus  incidentally 
showing  how  early  rooted  in  his  mind  was  the  value  of  the 
principle  of  autonomy  which  in  after  years,  by  the  Provi- 
dence of  God,  he  was  to  be  the  main  instrument  for 
securing  to  Japan,  by  the  organisation  of  the  Nippon 
Sei  Kokwai  (the  Holy  Catholic  Church  of  Japan). 

He  impressed  the  spirit  of  brotherhood  on  the  whole 
scheme  by  the  choice  of  the  three  words  which  he  placed 
at  the  head  of  his  paper  : 

avvarparicoTac,         crvvspyoL,  crvfiTroXiTat 

fellow  soldiers  fellow  workers  fellow  citizens 


30  r.isiior  edward  bickersteth 

In  drawing  up  the  memorandum  circulated  in  Cambridge 
in  June  1876,  Bickersteth  elaborated  with  greater  detail  the 
aims  with  which  the  Cambridge  Mission  was  begun.  He 
wrote  that  '  the  many  resident  members  of  the  University 
who  felt  that  Cambridge  ought  to  be  connected  with  a 
characteristic  missionary  work  believed  that  the  present 
needs  of  India  pointed  towards  fresh  efforts  in  the  direction 
of  education,  especially  the  education  of  native  Christians, 
a  work  which  would  naturally  belong  to  the  province  of 
an  English  University.  This  belief  had  taken  shape  in 
the  original  resolution  that — 

The  special  object  of  the  mission  be,  in  addition  to 
evangelistic  labour,  to  afford  means  for  the  higher  educa- 
tion of  young  native  Christians,  to  offer  the  advantages  of 
a  Christian  home  to  students  sent  from  mission  schools  to 
the  Government  College,  and  through  literary  and  other 
labours  to  reach  the  more  thoughtful  heathen. 

In  further  explanation  of  this  resolution  he  wrote  in  the 
'  Mission  Field,''  March  1877  : 

The  direct  work  of  preacJiing  and  evangelisation  needs 
no  comment.  .  .  .  All  recognise  the  importance  of  training 
a  native  pastorate.  Such  a  work  could  only  be  under- 
taken by  the  Cambridge  Mission  in  years  to  come.  It 
demands  a  full  mastery  of  the  language,  and  an  ac- 
quaintance with  the  customs  and  habits  of  the  people 
and  their  characteristic  modes  of  thought.  The  value 
of  co7itrovcrsial  literature  as  a  means  of  reaching  the 
more  thoughtful  has  long  been  appreciated.  A  more 
pressing  need  is  the  supply  of  doctrinal  and  devotional 
books  for  the  native  Church.  A  University  mission  will 
naturally  attempt  something  in  this  direction.  An  over- 
burdened missionary,  who  bears  alone  the  manifold  cares 
of  a  whole  station,  has  but  little  time  for  such  labours. 

'  It  is  a  strange  coincidence  that  the  very  next  article  in  this  issue  of  the 
Mission  Field  deals  with  the  progress  of  missions  in  Japan,  and  also  that 
Mr.  Bickersteth,  in  the  opening  sentence  of  his  own  article,  cited  India  and 
Japan  as  two  countries  which  illustrated  the  greatly  changed  character  of 
misiionaiy  work  since  Gregory  sent  Augustine  to  Kent. 


RETURN  TO  CAMBRIDGE  AND  CALL  TO  DELHI      3 1 


The  education  of  young  native  Cliristians  is  an  important 
part  of  the  machinery  of  the  native  Church,  which  has  as 
yet  received  comparatively  Httic  attention  in  India.  .  .  . 
The  only  other  object  specified  is  a  Home  of  Cliristiaji 
Students  at  the  Gove^'timetit  College.  At  Delhi  there  is  no 
Christian  College,  as  at  Calcutta,  Madras,  and  Agra,  and 
Government  education  is  purely  secular.  Now,  by  way  of 
comparison,  imagine  the  general  moral  efifect  on  an  average 
English  youth  who  had  been  brought  up  at  a  Christian 
school  of  spending  two  or  three  years  at  Oxford  or 
Cambridge,  and  finding  that  the  curriculum  of  study  and 
discipline  of  his  college  rigidly  excluded  from  first  to  last 
all  provision  for  religious  instruction  or  services.  But  this 
is  no  imaginary  case  in  India,  and  how  much  worse  is  such 
an  'ordeal  for  those  who  have  only  recently  abandoned 
heathen  practices,  and  are  perhaps  as  yet  only  partially 
instructed  in  Christian  truth.  How  likely  that  philosophy 
divorced  from  religion,  science  without  God,  history  apart 
from  its  moral  teaching,  should  lead  them,  not  to  their  old 
superstitions— those  they  have  abandoned  for  ever — but  to 
the  negation  of  the  atheist,  the  doubting  of  the  sceptic, 
or  it  may  be  to  the  cheerless  creed  of  the  Positivist  or 
Secularist. 

The  perusal  of  the  article  from  which  the  above  extracts 
have  been  taken  makes  plain  (i)  that  Delhi  had  been 
decided  upon  as  the  city  which  was  to  be  occupied  with 
all  the  strength  that  the  University  of  Cambridge  could 
put  forth,  and  (2)  that  the  Cambridge  Mission  was  to  be  in 
affiliation  with  the  S.P.G.  Some  explanation  is  necessary 
in  order  to  show  by  what  considerations  and  negotiations 
these  two  important  matters  had  been  settled. 

From  the  first  it  had  been  understood  that  India  should 
be  the  chosen  country,  but  at  one  time  Amritsar  and  some 
unevangelised  country  district  within  reach  of  that  city  had 
been  thought  of  as  the  best  field  for  a  University  mission. 
Characteristically,  Bickersteth  had  written  in  February 
1876: 

All  such  questions  may  be  safely  and  gladly  left  to 


32 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


those  whom  years  of  experience  have  taught  the  most 
urgent  wants  of  India,  and  the  most  fruitful  method  of  em- 
ploying whatever  resources  England,  and  especially  our 
Universities,  may  supply. 

Certainly  no  efforts  were  spared  to  find  out  what  city 
or  province  was  pointed  out  b)^  God's  Providence  as  being 
most  urgently  in  want.  The  influence  of  Mr.  French  was 
naturally  cast  in  favour  of  the  Punjab,  the  scene  of  his 
own  missionary  labours.  He  pleaded  for  a  district  to  be 
occupied  accessible  both  by  rail  and  steamer  to  the  Indus^ 
and  beyond  the  Indus  to  the  great  mountain  barrier — such 
as  Multan,  which  is  by  rail  only  a  night's  journey  from 
Lahore  and  Amritsar,  or  Alwar  in  Rajpootana,  from  which 
Jaipur  with  its  large  and  thriving  market-place  and  famous 
for  its  massive  temples  and  gorgeous  palaces,  could  be 
visited,  and  from  which  Ajmeer  and  Mount  Aboo  were 
an  easy  distance.  He  enforced  his  appeal  by  recalling 
the  opinion  of  Sir  H.  Lawrence,  who  had  urged  him  to 
get  a  mission  planted  or  to  go  himself  among  the  original 
Bheels  and  Minas — singularly  unprepossessed  and  likely 
to  be  readily  impressed  with  the  Gospel.  He  cited  the 
words  of  the  Rev.  Robert  Clark,'  a  veteran  missionary  of 
the  C.M.S.,  who  had  lately  written  : 

I  do  not  know  a  more  hopeful  field  than  we  have  in 
the  Punjab,  a  people  for  centuries  accustomed  to  conquest 
and  government,  and  who  have  in  them  the  spirit  to  con- 
quer and  govern  for  Christ,  when  once  God's  Holy  Spirit 
of  Life  has  been  imparted  to  them. 

Then  as  regards  affiliation  with  any  existing  Missionary 
Society,  many  considerations  suggested  an  appeal  to  the 
Church  Missionary  Society.  It  was  known  that  the  C.M.S. 
Punjab  Conference  had  urged  on  that  society  the  establish- 

'  The  Rev.  Robert  Clark,  of  Trinity  College,  Cambridge,  was  281I1 
Wrangler,  and  is  still,  after  nearly  fifty  years'  service  engaged  in  active 
missionary  work  in  the  Punjab. 


RETURN  TO  CAMBRIDGE  AND  CALL  TO  DELHI  33 


ment  of  a  Christian  college,  and  that  one  of  their  mis- 
sionaries, Mr.  Baring,  had  had  the  importance  of  such  work 
in  his  mind  for  many  months,  and  had  had  much  corre- 
spondence with  the  secretaries  in  Salisbury  Square  about 
it.  It  was  pointed  out  that  for  a  number  of  young  men  to 
go  out  without  ajty  connection  with  any  society,  and  with- 
out any  of  the  experience  gained  during  a  whole  century, 
would  endanger  greatly  the  success  they  so  desired.  They 
must  have  some  head,  or  the  body  would  suffer  greatly. 
They  must  not  be  independent  of  existing  missions,  or 
there  would  be  a  collision.  They  must  rather  work  in 
with  existing  societies  than  independently  of  them.  Mr. 
French  himself  in  his  visit  to  Cambridge  (February  1876) 
had  felt  at  liberty  to  plead  for  the  C.M.S.  '  as  the  society 
to  which  the  proposed  mission  should  be  affiliated,  on 
the  score  of  the  prolonged,  patient,  diversified,  and  costly 
efforts  made  by  that  society  in  North  India,  which  gave 
them  a  sort  of  claim  not  to  be  set  aside  in  any  decision 
arrived  at  regarding  the  Missionary  Order  to  which  the 
Cambridge  men  should  ally  themselves,  he  would  not  say 
identify  themselves.' 

It  is  certain  that  there  was  no  wish  on  the  part  of 
Edward  Bickersteth  to  set  aside  the  C.M.S.  On  the 
contrary,  his  grandfather's  connection  with  that  Society  as 
one  of  its  secretaries  (1815-30)  and  his  father's  devoted 
support  of  it  as  a  prominent  member  of  committee,  made 
it  natural  for  him  to  desire  that  the  Church  Missionary 
Society  should  be  approached  in  the  first  instance.  Besides, 
one  of  the  men  who  had  offered  to  join  the  Cambridge 
Mission  was  the  son  of  a  strong  C.M.S.  supporter,  and  his 
father  would  have  been  glad  if  the  proposed  connection 
with  that  Society  had  been  found  feasible,  though  when 
that  arrangement  fell  through,  his  hesitation  was  in  the 
end  removed  by  the  assurance  he  received  from  Professor 

D 


34 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


Westcott  that  the  lines  on  which  the  mission  was  founded 
and  would  be  worked  were  distinctly  those  of  moderate 
churchmanship. 

In  a  letter  to  me  from  Pontresina  (September  12, 
1875)  my  brother  wrote  : 

I  am  very  glad  you  like  my  plan.  It  will  have  to  be 
steered,  I  expect,  between  many  rocks  and  quicksands, 
and  maybe  will  never  reach  harbour,  but  I  am  hopeful. 
Its  three  masts  are  : 

1.  A  close  connection  with  Cambridge  and  Oxford. 

2.  An  affiliation  to  one  of  the  societies. 

3.  A  connection  with  one  of  the  missionary  bishops 
who  are  shortly  to  be  appointed. 

As  regards  the  C.M.S.,  I  should  not  myself  much  mind 
being  under  it,  only  I  think,  and  indeed  know,  that  this  has 
been  a  difficulty  to  some  men,  and  I  should  be  glad  to  lift 
it  out  of  the  way.  Still,  independent  work  would  look  like 
opposition,  so  something  must  be  excogitated  if  possible 
between  dependence  and  independence. 

Mr.  French  had  indeed  foreseen  the  possibility  of  '  an 
d  priori  dim  apprehension  of  not  being  able  to  work  in 
harmony  with  C.M.S.  principles  and  methods  of  action,' 
and  had  asked  that  if  the  way  was  not  clear  at  once  to  join 
themselves  with  the  C.M.S.  that  they  would  hold  their  judg- 
ment in  suspense  for  two  or  three  years,  and  make  them- 
selves practically  acquainted  with  the  working  and  workers 
of  both  C.M.S.  and  S.P.G.,  relying  meantime  on  their  own 
resources  or  funds  guaranteed  them  by  friends.  Clearly 
there  was  no  lack  of  deliberation.  Writing  later  to  me  in 
June  1876  from  Pembroke  College,  Cambridge,  my  brother 
speaks  of  a  missionary  conference  to  be  held  at  Christ 
Church  Vicarage,  Hampstead,  on  the  14th,  which  French 
came  from  Oxford  to  attend,  and  when  the  Rev.  H. 
Wright  (Chief  Secretary  of  the  C.M.S.),  the  Rev.  R.  Clark 
(of  the  Punjab),  the  Rev.  H.  U.  Weitbrecht '  (a  C.M.S. 
'  Of  Simla,  formerly  of  tlie  Divinity  School  at  Lahore,  and  now  at  Battala. 


RETURN  TO  CAMBRIDGE  AND  CALL  TO  DELHI  35 


missionary  himself  and  the  son  of  a  C.M.S.  missionary), 
and  General  Maclagan  all  met  under  the  roof  of  the  Rev. 
E.  H.  Bickersteth  to  discuss  the  affiliation  of  the  Cambridge 
Mission  with  the  C.M.S. 

But  discussion  only  served  to  bring  out  the  difficulties 
which  at  all  events  seemed  to  be  insuperable  at  that  time. 
There  was  no  lack  of  sympathy  with  the  missionary  ardour 
of  the  Cambridge  graduates  on  the  part  of  the  C.M.S. 
Committee,  but  the  idea  of  a  Community  Mission  called  a 
'  Brotherhood '  was  then  too  novel  to  be  acceptable,  and 
too  strange  a  method  of  working  to  be  easily  understood. 
Although  no  vows  were  taken  by  the  members,  yet  it  was 
understood  that  they  could  not  marry  and  remain  connected 
with  the  mission,  a  condition  of  membership  open  to  much 
criticism  in  the  judgment  of  some  C.M.S.  supporters. 
This  is  perhaps  worth  noting,  as  it  is  a  proof  that  during 
the  last  quarter  of  a  century  the  organisation  of  the 
Cambridge  Mission  and  its  success  has  done  much  to 
educate  the  opinion  of  Church  people,  and  to  familiarise 
their  minds  with  the  idea  of  Brotherhoods,  now  well 
known  and  adopted  in  England  as  well  as  in  the  mission 
field.' 

The  Rev.  A.  Clifford,  C.M.S.  Secretary  at  Calcutta  (now 
Bishop  of  Lucknow),  in  a  paper  read  before  the  Calcutta 
Diocesan  Conference  (February  9,  1889),  noticed  this 
change  of  sentiment  in  the  following  words  : 

Next  let  me  state  briefly  why  I  think  that  the  Com- 
munity system  represents  a  method  which  God's  Provi- 
dence is  calling  us  to  use.  Twenty  years  ago  if  it  had 
been  proposed  to  either  of  the  two  great  missionary 

'  At  the  end  of  the  Second  Report  of  the  Cambridge  Mission,  pubHshed 
at  the  University,  the  Cambridge  Committee  '  hail  with  deep  thankfulness 
and  satisfaction  the  prospect  of  the  mission  to  Calcutta  which  is  now  being 
undertaken  by  the  sister  University  of  Oxford,  and  llicy  rejoice  to  believe 
that  the  two  missions  will  support  one  another  in  ad\an(  ing  towards  one 
common  end.' 

D  2 


36 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


societies  of  our  Church  to  recognise  the  Community  h'fe  as 
a  practicable  missionary  method,  the  proposer  would,  I 
think,  have  been  told  in  very  emphatic  terms  that  his 
suggestion  was  entirely  visionary.  He  would  have  been 
told  that  he  lived  500  years  too  late,  that  the  Community 
system  belonged  to  mediaeval  times  and  was  contrary  to 
the  spirit  of  the  nineteenth  century.  Ten  years  ago  the 
reply  to  such  a  proposal  would  have  been  more  hesitating, 
but  it  would  still  almost  certainly  have  been  voted  unor- 
thodox. To-day  it  is  plain  that  a  very  great  change  must 
have  come  over  the  mind  of  the  Church,  when  not  only 
can  we  be  calmly  discussing  the  question  here,  but  when 
it  is  a  fact  that  within  a  month  we  may  expect  to  see  a 
Community  actually  started  in  this  Province  by  the  most 
evangelical  if  the  least  conservative  of  the  two  great  mis- 
sionary societies. 

In  answering  the  question,  What  has  brought  about 
this  change?  Mr.  Clifford  gave  as  his  first  reason  the  effect 
of  the  example  set  by  the  Cambridge  Mission  to  Delhi,  as 
well  as  by  the  Cowley  and  Oxford  brethren. 

The  selection  of  the  missionaries,  again,  was  a  point 
which  involved  some  difficulties.  It  was  felt  that  Cam- 
bridge graduates  who  would  be  willing  enough  to  be 
nominated  by  a  sub-committee  consisting  of  three  Uni- 
versity professors  (such  as  was  afterwards  appointed) 
would  not  submit  to  a  further  examination  by  the  com- 
mittee of  the  C.M.S.  Also,  it  was  felt  on  the  side  of  the 
Cambridge  men  to  be  essential  in  order  to  keep  up  the 
interest  of  the  University  in  the  proposed  mission  that 
reports  should  be  made  direct  to  the  committee  in  Cam- 
bridge, and  this  was  contrary  to  one  of  the  rules  of  the 
C.M.S.,  by  which  all  workers  for  whom  they  are  in  any 
way  financially  responsible  must  make  their  reports  direct 
to  Salisbury  Square.  These  considerations,  apart  from 
any  possible  doctrinal  differences,  were  in  themselves 
sufficient  to  make  co-operation  unworkable. 

The  result  of  the  failure  to  come  to  terms  with  the 


RETURN  TO  CAMBRIDGE  AND  CALL  TO  DELHI  37 


C.M.S.  was  that  application  was  made  to  the  S.P.G.,  whose 
rules  of  procedure  enabled  them  to  dispense  with  some  of 
the  conditions  which  the  C.M.S.  had  laid  down.' 

But  it  is  time  to  explain  how  it  was  that  Delhi 
was  chosen  in  preference  to  any  other  city  in  North 
India,  such  as  Amritsar,  Alwar,  or  Multan.  The  opinion 
may  be  hazarded  that  from  time  to  time  God  wills  that 
certain  cities  should  be  strongly  occupied,  so  as  to  make 
them  centres  from  which  the  gospel  of  His  grace  should 
.sound  out  throughout  a  large  region.  It  was  so  in  the 
Church  of  the  first  days,  as  we  may  see  from  the  forces 
brought  to  bear  upon  Ephesus  (Acts  xviii.  24-28,  xix.). 
He  guided  first  Aquila  and  his  wife  Priscilla,  then 
Apollos,  and  then  St.  Paul  to  come  to  that  city  and 
there  reside.  The  consequences  were  felt  throughout 
all  the  province  of  Asia.  The  Church  grew  and  mul- 
tiplied, and  a  fierce  opposition,  helping  the  cause  which 
it  attacked,  sprang  up.  So  it  has  been  again  and 
again  in  the  Church's  story.  So  it  has  been,  as  it  is 
reasonable  to  believe,  in  the  case  of  Delhi.  Missionary 
work  was  commenced  there  on  behalf  of  the  Church  of 
England  by  the  S.P.G.  in  1854,^  and  continued  with  great 
promise  till  the  Indian  Mutiny,  when  four  missionaries 
and  two  native  Christians  were  amongst  its  first  victims. 

'  It  was  settled  that  if  Cambridge  raised  500/.  a  year  towards  the 
continuous  maintenance  of  the  mission,  the  Standing  Committee  of  the  S.P.G. 
were  willing  to  supplement  such  contributions,  and  generally  to  afford  every 
assistance  to  the  mission,  while  leaving  the  nomination  of  the  missionaries  to 
the  sub-committee  of  Cambridge  professors.  Eventually  it  was  determined 
that  the  S.P.G.  subsidy  should  take  the  form  of  personal  grants  to  the 
missionaries,  each  of  whom  were  to  receive  jf^'j^  a  year  besides  a  grant  for 
their  outfit. 

-  The  Rev.  J.  S.  Jackson  and  the  Rev.  A.  R.  Hubbard,  both  of  Caius 
College,  Cambridge,  the  former  being  a  Fellow,  commenced  work  there  on 
February  11.  Mr.  Hubbard  was  killed  in  the  Mutiny.  The  Rev.  T.  Skelton, 
Fellow  of  Queen's  College,  Oxford,  offered  in  1858,  and  recommenced  the 
work  in  1859. — See  S.P.G.  Digest,  p.  615. 


38 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


The  mission  was  re-formed  in  1859  and  made  steady  pro- 
gress. Canon  Crowfoot  (now  of  Lincoln)  had  resided  there 
for  three  years,  and  had  kept  up  a  remarkable  iniluence  by 
lectures  and  private  intercourse  over  the  boys,  who,  having 
been  educated  in  St.  Stephen's  High  School  at  Delhi, 
were  afterwards  drafted  into  the  Government  College. 
There  also  a  devoted  man  of  great  powers  of  organisation, 
of  restless  energies,  of  impulsive  enthusiasm,  the  Rev.  R. 
R.  Winter,  with  his  wife,  had  been  labouring  for  eleven 
years  without  furlough.  Both  were  filled  with  missionary 
ardour,  and  had  taxed  and  even  over-taxed  their  strength, 
but  they  could  not  be  persuaded  to  take  any  rest  until  it 
was  possible  to  supply  their  place,  and  so  had  stayed  on 
year  after  year.  In  the  year  1875  there  had  been  ninety 
baptisms,  chiefly  from  the  Chamars.  The  agencies  con- 
nected with  the  mission  were  very  numerous,  and  of  a 
more  representative  and  diversified  character  than  was 
then  customary,  as  may  be  judged  from  the  following  sta- 
tistics, which  are  copied  from  a  statement  drawn  up  by 
Mr.  Winter  himself 

*  The  district  entrusted  to  the  mission  contains  over 
3,000,000  people.  Work  is  carried  on,  not  only  in  Delhi 
and  its  suburbs,  but  in  fifty  towns  and  villages,  by  three 
English  clergy,  two  native  clergy,  two  laymen  (voluntary 
Europeans),  forty- nine  catechists,  readers,  and  school- 
masters, thirty-eight  non-Christian  masters,  fourteen 
European  zenana  missionaries,  ten  native  Christian  mis- 
tresses, four  parochial  mission  women,  twenty-six  Hindu 
and  Muhammadan  female  teachers,  and  one  medical  mis- 
sionary with  three  assistants. 

'  Eight  hundred  and  fifty-seven  boys  were  taught  in  the 
higher  class  of  schools,  777  boys  and  young  men  in  schools 
and  evening  classes  for  the  lower  orders,  443  pupils  in 
zenanas,  and  396  in  schools  for  women  and  girls,  showing 
a  total  of  2,473  under  instruction. 

'  The  statistics  of  the  Medical  Mission  for  the  previous 
year  showed  9,058  separate  cases  treated,  with  an  aggre- 


RETURN  TO  CAMBRIDGE  AND  CALL  TO  DELHI  39 


gate  of  29,798  attendances  and  a  daily  average  of  lOl 
sick  attended. 

'  The  total  number  of  Christians  was  650,  and  frequent 
applications  for  Christian  teaching  were  being  received 
from  the  villages  round.' 

All  this  organisation  had  been  worked  bj^  mis- 
sionaries connected  with  the  S.P.G.  and  maintained  by  its 
financial  support,  and  Delhi  was  the  city  above  all  others 
in  the  north  of  India  on  which  they  had  been  led  to  con- 
centrate their  forces.  When,  therefore,  the  application 
was  received  from  the  Cambridge  graduates,  who  were 
prepared  to  go  out  to  India  and  had  been  advised  to  think 
of  Northern  India  as  the  scene  of  their  future  labours, 
what  more  natural  than  that  the  Standing  Committee  of 
the  S.P.G.  should  welcome  their  aid  and  direct  their  atten- 
tion to  so  hopeful  an  opening  as  Delhi  undoubtedly  was? 

It  so  happened  also  that  a  letter  written  by  Sir  Bartle 
Frere  early  in  the  year  1876 '  had  been  received  in 
Cambridge  and  had  excited  much  interest  there.  Sir 
Bartle  Frere  had  visited  Delhi  in  the  suite  of  the  Prince  of 
Wales,  and  had  thus  written  : 

I  have  been  to  call  on  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Winter  at  Delhi, 
and  find  them  both  much  overtaxed.  I  am  much  mis- 
taken if  you  have  not  a  larger  Tinnevelly  at  Delhi  in  the 
course  of  a  few  years,  but  they  need  more  money  and 
more  men,  especially  a  man  to  take  charge  of  educational 
work  and  a  medical  man  to  supervise  and  direct  the 
Medical  Female  Mission,  which  really  seems  doing  wonder- 
ful work.  Delhi  seems  quite  one  of  the  most  hopeful 
openings  I  have  seen. 

Yet  another  circumstance  was  overruled  of  God  to 
the  selection  of  Delhi.  Edward  Bickersteth's  article  in  the 
'  Mission  Field  '  (March  1877)  already  quoted  fell  under  the 
eye  of  Mr.  Winter  himself  at  Delhi,  and  led  him  at  once  to 

'  January  16. 


40 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


write  off  to  the  Bishop  (Johnson)  of  Calcutta,  recently  con- 
secrated as  successor  to  Bishop  Milman  : 

Your  Lordship  will  have  thought  me  long  in  writing 
on  the  subject  of  forming  classes  for  the  B.A.  degree  in 
connection  with  this  mission,  but  it  seemed  better  to  put 
off  doing  so  till  the  fate  of  the  Government  College  was 
decided.  It  has  now  been  closed  on  financial  grounds. 
I  F///  the  Cambridge  Mission  fill  the  gap  left  vacant  ?  Our 
plan  has  hitherto  been  to  educate  only  up  to  the  Matricula- 
tion examination  in  our  High  School,  and  then  to  draft 
the  boys  into  the  Government  College.  /  see  by  an  article 
in  the  '  JSIission  Field '  for  Ma^'ch  that  this  formed  part  of 
the  plan  of  the  Cambridge  me7t,  as  well  as  a  home  for 
Christian  students  in  the  Government  College.  .  .  .  When 
the  college  is  thoroughly  efficient  we  might  hope  to 
attract  students  from  other  mission  schools  in  the  Punjab, 
for  no  mission  whatever  in  this  province  has  B.A.  classes. 
In  that  case  it  would  be  most  useful  for  them  to  open  a 
boarding-house,  or  extend  an  existing  one,  not  only  for 
Christians  but  for  non-Christian  students.  If  the  Cambridge 
Mission  will  undertake  this,  most  of  tJie  educated  joung  men 
of  the  city  zvill  pass  under  its  influence. 

The  Bishop  of  Calcutta's  comment  on  this  letter  will  be 
readily  endorsed.  '  My  own  mind  [he  writes  in  reply  to 
Mr.  Winter]  is  that  this  seems  to  be  quite  providential  in 
that  an  opportunity  offers  for  securing  the  Christian  educa- 
tion of  young  men  up  to  the  taking  of  the  degree.' 
■  Yet  one  more  unforeseen  coincidence  may  be  regarded 
as  a  providential  sanction,  vouchsafed  by  the  Divine  guid- 
ance. In  the  autumn  of  1877  the  Rev.  T.  V.  French  was 
appointed  to  be  the  first  Bishop  of  Lahore,  and  Delhi  was 
transferred  from  the  see  of  Calcutta  to  the  newly  created 
diocese.  Episcopal  control  more  sympathetic,  more 
painstaking,  more  inspiring,  could  not  have  been  found 
anywhere  by  the  Cambridge  Brotherhood  than  was 
assured  to  them  by  the  fact  that  they  would  have  as  their 
father  in  God  the  very  man  who  had  come  over  from 


RETURN  TO  CAMBRIDGE  AND  CALL  TO  DELHI  4I 


Oxford  to  Cambridge  on  purpose  to  advocate  the  selection 
of  some  city  in  Northern  India  as  the  most  suitable 
place  for  this  new  departure  in  missionary  methods.  How 
little  could  it  have  been  foreseen  early  in  1876,  when  the 
first  proposals  for  the  establishment  of  the  Cambridge 
Mission  were  being  publicly  discussed,  that  before  the  end 
of  the  year  following  the  principal  speaker  at  the  meeting 
would  have  been  consecrated  the  Bishop  of  the  first  two 
men  who  had  come  forward  to  join  the  mission. 

All  the  pourparlers  were  so  far  settled  that  on 
November  29,  1876,  the  Rev.  R.  Bullock,  the  Secretary  of 
the  S.P.G.,  was  invited  to  Cambridge  and  attended  the  first 
meeting  of  the  Cambridge  Committee,  which  consisted  of 
thirty-four  well-known  resident  members  of  the  University. 
Among  them  were  the  Rev.  the  Masters  of  Clare,  Pem- 
broke, and  Magdalen  Colleges  ;  Professors  Westcott,  Light- 
foot,  Cowell,  and  Paget,  M.D. ;  the  Rev.  F.  J.  Hort,  D.D. ; 
the  Rev.  C.  W.  E.  Body,  now  Theological  Professor  at 
New  York  ;  the  Rev.  J.  W.  Hicks  (Sidney),  now  Bishop 
of  Bloemfontein  ;  the  Rev.  A.  F.  Kirkpatrick  (Trinity), 
now  Master  of  Selwyn  ;  the  Rev.  E.  T.  Leeke,  now  Sub- 
Dean  of  Lincoln  ;  the  Rev.  A.  J.  Mason  (Trinity),  now 
Lady  Margaret's  Reader  in  Divinity  ;  the  Rev.  C.  E.  Searle, 
now  Master  of  Pembroke  ;  the  Rev.  V.  H.  Stanton  (Trinity), 
now  Ely  Professor  of  Divinity.  The  Rev.  Edward 
Bickersteth  was  appointed  secretary,  and  in  a  private  note- 
book, where  he  entered  the  briefest  possible  memoranda, 
are  the  following  entries  : 

November  5.  —  Twenty-first  Sunday  after  Trinity. 
Pembroke  College  Chapel.  Subject  for  praise  and  prayer 
at  the  Holy  Eucharist,  that  '  the  S.P.G.  have  accepted 
our  scheme.'  Gratias  Deo.  This  week  I  am  to  speak  on 
the  subject  before  the  Church  Society.  Our  prayer  must 
be  constantly  for  His  direction. 

November  29.  —  First  committee  meeting   of  Delhi 


42 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


Mission.  Mr.  Bullock  attended  from  London.  So  far, 
gratias  Deo,  all  gone  well.  May  He  give  us  the  means 
we  need. 

November  30. — St.  Andrew's  Day.  Was  engaged  in 
drawing  up  circular.  Searle  sent  100/.  In  the  evening 
Bishop  Lightfoot's  sermon.  I  made  use  of  the  Cuddesdon 
manual  of  devotion  for  foreign  missions. 

It  may  be  of  interest  here  to  note  that  on  December  4 
and  again  on  December  5  occurs  the  entry,  '  Had  walk 
with  G.  A.  Lefroy,  who  thinks  of  missionary  work.' 

The  following  quotation  from  Bishop  Lightfoot's  well- 
known  sermon  (alluded  to  above)  on  '  Abraham,  the 
Father  of  Missionaries,'  will  show  how  vigorous  an  appeal 
w^as  made  to  Cambridge  to  support  the  new  mission. 

Taking  as  his  text  Hebrews  xi.  8,  the  preacher 
pleaded  : 

God  grant  that  this  noble  army  of  missionaries  may 
never  want  recruits !  God  grant  that,  as  from  time  to 
time  its  ranks  are  thinned  by  death,  or  as  new  levies  are 
raised  for  some  fresh  campaign  in  the  service  of  our  great 
Captain,  men  may  press  forward  from  this  our  own  dear 
Cambridge  to  fill  the  vacant  places,  and  do  battle  for  the 
truth ! 

I  need  hardly  say  why  I  have  put  these  thoughts 
before  you  this  evening.  You  yourselves  will  have 
anticipated  the  moral.  These  annual  days  of  intercession 
have  not  been  without  their  fruit.  Some  among  ourselves 
have  heard  the  call  and  are  ready  to  obey.  Steps  have 
been  taken  for  the  formation  of  a  Cambridge  Mission  to 
North  India.  Two  volunteers  have  already  come  forward. 
The  headquarters  of  the  mission  are  to  be  fixed  at  Delhi. 

Delhi  !  What  associations  do  not  gather  about  the 
name  ?  Delhi,  the  immemorial  centre  of  Hindu  tradition, 
the  chief  stronghold  of  Muhammadan  power,  the  capital  of 
the  descendants  of  Timur,  the  seat  of  the  most  splendid, 
if  not  the  most  powerful,  of  Oriental  monarchies,  the  city 
of  many  sieges,  Tartar,  Persian,  Mahratta,  English — Delhi 
the  beautiful,  the  cruel,  the  magnificent,  the  profligate. 
And  a  name,  too,  of  not  less  absorbing  interest  to  the 


RETURN  TO  CAMBRIDGE  AND  CALL  TO  DELHI 


43 


Christian  than  to  the  Englishman.  The  Delhi  Mission 
was  still  in  its  infancy  when  the  Mutiny  broke  out.  The 
Delhi  Mission  was  baptised  in  blood.  It  was  literally 
murdered.  But  here,  as  elsewhere,  the  blood  of  the 
martyrs  was  the  seed-plot  of  the  Church.  The  work  of 
evangelisation  has  revived.  A  memorial  church,  bearing 
the  name  of  the  first  martyr,  St.  Stephen,  commemorates 
the  death  of  these,  his  latest  successors.  No  missionary 
field  in  India,  we  are  told,  is  more  promising  than  this. 
Only  men  are  wanted  to  aid  in  the  work. 

And  to  Cambridge  more  especially  the  call  comes.  It 
is  the  blood  of  Cambridge  martyrs  which  cries  out  of  the 
ground  for  revenge,  the  noble  revenge  of  bringing  the 
gospel  of  love  and  peace  home  to  the  hearts  of  that  people 
by  whose  hands  they  were  slain.  The  Delhi  Mission  was 
in  its  origin  essentially  a  Cambridge  Mission.  Its  martyrs 
were  Cambridge  men.  Its  first  founder,  the  chaplain,  had 
been  a  Fellow  of  Christ's  College.  Its  acting  head  at  the 
time  when  the  Mutiny  broke  out  was  a  member  of  Caius 
College.  Another  student  attached  to  the  mission  was  a 
near  relative  of  one  who  now  holds  an  honourable  office 
in  our  University.  All  these  were  among  the  first  fruits 
of  the  slain.    Shall  their  blood  cry  to  us  in  vain  .'' 

It  is  therefore  in  some  sense  in  fulfilment  of  a  pledge 
which  Cambridge  has  given  to  Delhi  that  our  two 
volunteers  have  devoted  themselves  to  this  work.  Before 
we  meet  together  on  St.  Andrew's  Day  next  year  they 
will  already,  if  it  please  God,  have  left  our  shores. 

On  Sunday,  October  21,1 877,  Dr.  Vaughan  preached  the 
University  sermon,  and  the  Bishop  of  Ely  (Dr.  Woodford) 
preached  at  Pembroke  College  Chapel,  and  on  the  follow- 
ing day  he  ordained  Mr.  Murray  to  the  Diaconate  in 
Great  St.  Mary's  Church.'  The  ordination  sermon  was 
preached  by  Dr.  Westcott,  and  Dr.  Lightfoot  gave  a 
luncheon  party  in  his  rooms,  at  which,  among  others, 
the  Bishop  of  Ely,  and  the  Rev.  E.  H.  Bickersteth  (now 

'  Mr.  Murray  was  ordained  priest  at  Lahore  by  Bishop  French,  Arch- 
deacon Matthews  preaching  the  sermon,  on  December  21,  St.  Thomas' 
Day,  1878,  being  the  first  anniversary  of  the  Bishop  of  Lahore's  consecration. 
Mr.  Bickersteth,  as  examining  chaplain,  went  up  from  Delhi  to  be  present. 


44 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


Bishop  of  Exeter)  were  present,  as  were  the  first  two 
members  of  the  mission.  In  the  afternoon  a  committee 
meeting  was  held  in  Dr.  Westcott's  rooms,  and  in  the 
evening  a  farewell  service  was  held  at  St.  Michael's  Church, 
when  the  Bishop  of  Lichfield  (Dr.  Sehvyn)  preached, 
taking  for  his  text  Psalm  cxxi.  8.  Writing  a  year  later 
to  the  Rev.  R.  Bullock  (October  i6,  1878)  from  Faredabad, 
sixteen  miles  south  of  Delhi,  Bickersteth  said  : 

I  cannot  close  this  letter  without  a  reference  to 
the  loss  which  we  feel  the  Cambridge  ^Mission  has  sus- 
tained in  the  death  of  Bishop  Sehvyn.^  To  have  been 
allowed  to  listen  to  his  strong  and  loving  words  of 
counsel  in  leaving  Cambridge  was  a  singular  privilege.  I 
have  very  often  thought  of  his  parting  good-bye,  '  The 
Lord  preserve  thy  going  out  and  thy  coming  in  from  this 
time  forth  for  evermore.' 

That  same  evening  after  the  service,  Dr.  Lightfoot  gave 
a  soiree  in  his  rooms,  when  the  Bishop  of  Lichfield  was 
present,  and  also  three  former  workers  in  the  Delhi  Mis- 
sion, Mr.  Jackson,  Mr.  Skelton,  and  Canon  Crowfoot.  The 
next  morning  there  was  a  farewell  breakfast  at  Pembroke 
College,  and  later  in  the  day  Bickersteth  left  Cambridge 
and  returned  to  Hampstead.  The  day  after  he  went  down 
with  one  of  his  sisters  to  spend  a  quiet  day  at  Watton,  the 
scene  of  his  grandfather's  pastorate  (1830-50),  and  where 
his  own  mother  and  his  sister  Alice,  with  three  other  sisters, 
had  been  laid  to  rest. 

His  father  had  married  the  previous  year  as  his  second 
wife,  Ellen  Susanna,  daughter  of  the  late  Robert  Bicker- 
steth, Esq.,  of  Liverpool.  Between  her  and  her  stepson 
there  grew  up  a  true  affection,  and  twice  over,  once  in 
Delhi  (1881)  and  again  in  Japan  (1891),  he  was  able  to 
welcome  her,  when,  accompanying  his  father,  she  visited 
the  scene  of  his  missionary  labours. 

'  The  news  of  his  death  reached  Delhi,  May  4,  1878. 


RETURN  TO  CAMBRIDGE  AND  CALL  TO  DELHI  45 


Writing  to  me  at  St.  John's  College,  Oxford,  on  the 
night  before  he  left  the  old  home,  he  said  : 

Christ  Church  V'icarage,  Hampstead,  N.W. 
October  29,  1877. 

I  have  your  letter,  a  thousand  thanks  for  it,  and  for 
the  very  dear  little  Bible.  Fancy  me  translating  out  of  it 
to  a  Hindu  two  years  hence.  All  has  now  been  nicely 
arranged  ;  everything,  even  to  the  cake  for  Rosie,'  packed. 
Dearest  boy,  I  know  your  thoughts  will  be  with  me  to- 
morrow, and  very  often  all  the  time  we  are  parted  one  from 
the  other.  Thank  God,  those  who  have  the  same  Christ 
are  not  really  altogether  parted.  '  Peace  I  leave  with  you,' 
pray  it  may  be  true  of  me  and  pray  it  still  more  for  father. 
It  is  his  grief  at  losing  me  that  grieves  me  most,  and  will 
for  long.  But  I  feel  sure  he  will  be  comforted,  some  special 
gift  of  peaceful  comfort  will  be  given  him  of  God.  And 
may  He  comfort  you — I  know  He  will — and  guide  you 
in  every  difficulty,  and  strengthen  you  for  all  the  strong 
work  you  have  before  you,  and  give  you  the  happiest 
Oxford  life,  shall  ever  pray, 

Your  affectionate  Brother, 

Edward  Bickersteth. 

Next  day,  Tuesday,  October  30,  he  left  England, 
accompanied  by  his  father  as  far  as  Dover,  and  by 
Murray.  In  the  train  between  London  and  Dover  the 
father  engaged  in  prayer  with  his  son  and  his  companion, 
and  it  was  then  that  in  answer  to  a  request  from  the 
former  he  chose  the  words  svsKa  i/xov  koL  tov  svajyeXiov 
to  be  their  guide  and  inspiration.  These  words  were 
chosen  as  expressing  the  only  but  sufficient  consolation 
which  the  father  felt  in  giving  up  his  firstborn  son  to 
the  mission  field.  Ever  since  these  words  have  been 
preserved  as  the  motto  of  the  Cambridge  Mission,  and 
have  been  printed  on  the  first  page  of  all  its  reports,  and 
they  are  now  cut  into  the  coping  stone  of  the  grave  of  its 
first  head. 

'  His  eldest  sister,  Mrs.  Rundall,  then  living  at  Kharwarra  in  Rajputana. 


46 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


By  these  providential  leadings  the  steps  of  the  Cam- 
bridge Brotherhood  were  thus  ordered  by  God  to  the 
ancient  city  of  Delhi,  where  the  two  first  members  arrived 
early  in  December  1877.  I"  order  to  sustain  the  full 
efficiency  of  the  work,  it  was  felt  to  be  most  desirable  that 
the  mission  should  consist  of  not  less  than  five  men,  and 
if  possible  of  six.  The  first  members  left  England  knowing 
that  the  Rev.  H.  F.  Blackett,  Scholar  of  St.  John's  College, 
purposed  joining  them  the  following  year,  and  they  soon 
received  the  gratifying  news  that  the  Rev.  H.  C.  Carlyon, 
M.A.  (formerly  Scholar  of  Sidney  Sussex  College),  had 
offered  to  come  out  with  him,  and  that  his  offer  had  been 
accepted  by  the  Cambridge  sub-commitee.  Both  these 
missionaries  started  on  November  ir,  1878,  by  which  time 
the  committee  were  able  to  announce  in  their  '  First  Report 
of  the  Cambridge  Mission  to  North  India  (Delhi),'  that 
'they  had  reason  to  believe  that  before  the  close  of  1879 
two  others  will  be  ready  to  follow.'  These  two  latter  were 
the  Rev.  Samuel  Scott  Allnutt,  M.A.  (late  Scholar  of  St. 
John's  College),  and  the  Rev.  G.  A.  Lefroy,  B.A.  (Trinity 
College),  who  went  out  in  1879,  thus  bringing  the  mission 
up  to  the  number  originally  contemplated. 

Thus  had  the  great  Head  of  the  Church  heard  the 
prayers  offered  up  with  fervent  faith,  and  been  pleased  to 
send  out  in  three  successive  years  these  men,  '  two  and  two 
before  His  face,'  into  the  city,  whither  He  Himself  would 
come. 


47 


CHAPTER  III 

THE  CAMBRIDGE  MISSION  TO  DELHI 

I.  The  Work 

'  Certainly  I  feel,  if  possible  more  vividly  here  than  in  England,  that  the 
Church  will  never  regret  any  single  labourer  sent  to  North  India.' — Letter  of 
the  Rev.  Edivard  fiickersteth  io  the  Rev.  R.  Bullock  at  the  end  of  his  first  year. 

'  We  offer,  then,  in  the  name  of  our  friends  at  Delhi  to 
those  who  are  able  to  join  them  t/te  life  and  the  work.  We 
want  the  best  men  that  Cambridge  can  give,  and  we  have 
nothing  to  offer  them  but  the  life  and  the  work.'  In  these 
words,  on  May  24,  1882,  speaking  at  a  meeting  held  by 
the  London  Committee  in  the  College  Hall,  Westminster, 
Professor  Westcott  summed  up  the  situation  some  five 
years  after  the  Cambridge  Mission  at  Delhi  had  been  in 
full  activity. 

There  is  no  doubt  whatever  that  Edward  Bicker- 
steth  would  have  cordially  accepted  the  dichotomy  thus 
characteristically  drawn  between  the  inner  and  the  outer 
aspects  of  the  mission  which  had  been  undertaken  by  his 
University.  Indeed,  it  may  well  be  that  the  teacher  was 
quoting  from  his  own  pupil's  words,  for  writing  to 
Dr.  Westcott  on  September  i,  1881,  he  had  closed  his 
appeal :  '  Very  gladly  shall  we  welcome  to  a  share  in  our 
life  and  work  any  who,  otherwise  fitted,  will  join  us  in  the 
spirit  of  our  motto  "  For  My  sake  and  the  Gospel's." ' 
The  phrase  'the  life  and  the  work'  was  so  constantly  on 
Bickersteth's  lips,  and  his  own  example  showed  how 


48 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


important  he  felt  it  to  maintain  the  hfe  as  well  as  the  work, 
that  the  principle  involved  in  the  distinction  may  be  said 
to  give  the  key  to  his  character.  He  would  often  point  out 
how  choked  with  care  and  jejune,  work  must  become  unless 
it  is  continually  fed  by  the  forces  which  alone  refresh  the 
inner  life  and  keep  it  calm  and  vigorous.  The  spirit  of 
the  work  was  more  to  him  than  the  work  itself 

In  describing  Edward  Bickersteth's  share  in  the 
inception  and  organisation  of  the  Cambridge  Mission,  I 
purpose,  therefore,  to  devote  this  chapter  to  a  statement 
of  the  work  undertaken  by  that  mission,  so  long  as  he  was 
officially  connected  with  it  (1877-84),  and  to  attempt  in 
a  subsequent  chapter  to  discover  the  springs  and  secret 
sources  of  tJie  Hfe  which  took  shape  in  the  work  now  to 
be  recorded.  I  say  so  long  as  he  was  officially  connected 
with  it,  for  it  will  be  easy  to  show  that  the  Cambridge 
Mission  never  ceased  to  hold  its  place  in  his  affections  and 
in  his  daily  intercessions. 

The  voyage  out  was  in  no  way  eventful,  Bombay  being 
reached  on  November  21,  1877.  During  his  two  days  in 
this  city,  Bickersteth  saw  the  Robert  Money  schools,  and 
made  a  memorandum  that  there  had  been  no  conversion 
in  those  schools  for  twelve  years,  though  much  moral 
influence  had  been  exercised. 

On  the  23rd  he  left  for  Kharwarra,  where  his  eldest 
sister  and  her  husband  Lieutenant  F.  M.  Rundall  ^  were 
staying  among  the  aboriginal  Bheels.^ 

Mr.  Murray  had  arrived  in  Delhi  on  December  12, 

'  Now  Colonel  Rundall,  D.S.O. 

^  It  will  be  remembered  that  Mr.  French  had  quoted  Sir  Henry 
Lawrence's  opinion  that  missionary  work  among  the  Bheels  would  be  a 
promising  opening.  It  is  pleasant  to  know  that  although  Edward  Bickersteth 
was  led  further  afield  to  Delhi,  his  sister  collected  funds  to  build  a  church 
at  Kharwarra,  while  his  father  supplied  the  Church  Missionary  Society  with 
the  stipend  of  a  missionary. 


THE  CAMBRIDGE  MISSION  TO  DELHI 


49 


having  spent  several  days  in  seeing  the  principal  towns  on 
the  route  from  Bombay.  Of  his  own  arrival  Edward 
Bickersteth  writes  in  his  Journal : 

It  was  still  dark  when  I  reached  Delhi  from  Kharwarra 
on  the  morning  of  December  13,  so  that  I  had  no  oppor- 
tunity of  seeing  the  city  as  I  entered.  I  succeeded,  however, 
without  difficulty  in  finding  the  mission  compound,  which 
is  near  the  station,  and  in  arousing  Murray,  whose  room 
opened  on  the  garden.  I  need  hardly  say  that  I  had  a  very 
warm  welcome  from  Mr.  Winter,  when  at  daybreak  he  came 
to  see  if  I  had  arrived.  As  the  Bishop  (Johnson)  of  Calcutta 
was  to  arrive  the  next  afternoon,  all  that  day  was  engaged 
in  getting  the  necessary  furniture  for  our  house,  which  is 
on  the  other  side  of  the  compound  to  Mr.  Winter. 

The  Bishop,  who  was  then  engaged  in  making  the 
acquaintance  of  his  huge  diocese,  came  to  Delhi  to  visit 
the  work  before  ceding  it  to  the  newly  constituted  diocese  of 
Lahore,  and  stayed  there  from  Friday,  December  14,  for  a 
fortnight. 

Bickersteth  described  this  visit  with  all  the  enthusiasm 
of  a  new-comer. 

Our  first  work  was  to  arrange  a  whole  scheme  of 
engagements  with  the  Bishop.  Nearly  every  day  was 
occupied,  and  sometimes  the  Bishop  gave  three  or  four 
addresses  on  the  same  day  to  different  audiences,  hold- 
ing a  confirmation  on  Christmas  Eve,  and  first  baptising 
59,  of  whom  all  but  10  were  adults.  This  is  considerably 
the  largest  baptism  that  has  ever  taken  place  in  this  part 
of  India.  Nearly  200  were  confirmed.  Bishop  Milman 
was  about  to  hold  a  confirmation  here  at  the  time  of 
his  lamented  death,  so  that  there  has  been  considerable 
delay  and  the  number  has  accumulated.  This  and  the 
<:elebration  of  Holy  Communion  on  Christmas  Day,  at 
which  150  communicated,  were  perhaps  the  two  most 
intensely  interesting  services  I  have  ever  attended. 

The  Cambridge  Mission,  therefore,  were  clearly  happy 
in  the  hour  of  their  arrival,  so  far  as  the  Bishop's  visitation 

E 


50 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


led  to  a  review  of  all  the  forces  that  made  for  Christianity 
in  and  about  Delhi,  and  enabled  them  to  take  in  at  a  glance 
the  varied  work  that  had  been  started  by  Mr.  and  Mrs. 
Winter,  and  in  which  they  were  henceforth  to  take  so 
important  a  part. 

From  what  was  said  on  page  38,  it  will  be  remembered 
that  Delhi  and  its  districts  were  so  organised  by  Mr.  Winter 
as  to  be  able  to  satisfy  all  the  forecasted  requirements 
of  the  Cambridge  missionaries.  The  city  itself,  divided 
into  nine  separate  divisions  or  parishes,  each  with  its 
catechists  and  readers,  seemed  to  Bickersteth's  sanguine 
anticipations  '  to  fall  in  with  the  future  organisation 
of  the  Cambridge  Mission,  and  to  make  it  quite  easy 
to  arrange  to  give  each  English  missionary,  when  he  has 
obtained  a  sufficient  knowledge  of  the  language,  a  practi- 
cally independent  sphere  of  work,  in  which  he  will  be  able 
to  work  out,  with  the  assistance  of  his  own  catechists,  and, 
when  the  time  comes,  of  native  pastors,  his  own  plans, 
educational  or  otherwise,  while  he  himself  will  live  at  our 
central  Mission  House.'   ('Journal,'  January  1878.) 

St.  Stephen's  High  School  and  many  vernacular  schools 
which  were  carried  on  among  the  very  numerous  class  of 
Chamars  (workers  in  leather,  a  staple  trade  of  Delhi),  made 
educational  work  possible  from  the  first.  Bickersteth  wrote 
in  his  first  letter  to  ]\Ir.  Bullock  : 

A  low  caste  vernacular  school  in  Delhi  differs  almost 
as  much  from  St.  Stephen's  High  School  as  at  home  a 
ragged  school  from  a  public  school. 

And  again,  Jan.  3,  1878  : 

We  are  to  have  some  personal  experience  of  St. 
Stephen's  High  School,  the  highest  educational  institution 
of  the  mission,  almost  at  once,  as  Murray  and  I  have  agreed 
directly  the  school  re-opens  to  give  an  hour  and  a  half  each 
of  us  three  times  a  week  to  taking  a  class. 


THE  CAMBRIDGE  MISSION  TO  DELHI 


51 


The  school  had  been  worked  on  the  principle  of 
enforced  Christian  instruction,  on  the  wisdom  of  which 
Bickersteth  desired  further  light,  and  with  his  characteristic 
preference  for  wide  research  before  forming  an  opinion  on 
a  debatable  point,  he  wrote  home  : 

It  would,  I  think,  help  to  the  solution  of  this  difficulty 
if  someone  were  willing  to  devote  time  to  collecting 
accounts  of  the  various  methods  of  instruction  that  have 
been  in  favour  in  the  mission  schools  of  past  ages,  and 
accompany  them  with  such  opinions  and  judgments  on 
the  one  side  and  the  other  as  are  given  in  the  Allahabad 
Conference  Report.  I  have  not  seen  any  such  compre- 
hensive articles,  though  General  Tremenherc's  pamphlet 
and  the  late  Bishop  Douglas's  letters  are  heavy  blows 
aimed  against  the  present  system,  or,  as  its  advocates  say, 
against  its  abuses. 

With  regard  to  catechists,  he  wrote  that  Bishop  John- 
son's suggestion  of  assembling  them  for  some  regular  system 
of  instruction,  each  catechist  spending  at  least  two  months 
in  the  year  under  instruction  at  Delhi,  '  seems  to  open  out 
a  prospect  in  the  direction  of  what  should  be  the  most 
characteristic  work  in  days  to  come  of  the  Cambridge 
Mission,  as  some  of  these  men  if  further  instructed  would 
(Mr.  Winter  thinks)  make  excellent  native  ministers.' 
But  it  should  be  stated  that  although  the  catechists 
benefited  greatly  as  preachers  by  the  instructions  they 
received,  the  expectations  that  several  might  advance  to 
the  ministry  has  not  been  fulfilled. 

The  advantages  of  a  Christian  Home  or  '  Hostel '  for 
students  sent  from  mission  schools  to  the  Government 
College  had  been  one  of  the  plans  also  mentioned  in  the 
original  circular,  and  it  became  possible  at  once  to  take  up 
that  kind  of  work,  inasmuch  as  there  was  already  the  be- 
ginning of  a  Christian  Boys'  Boarding  School.  Bickersteth 
expressed  his  hope  that  they  might  become  an  important 


52 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


agency  in  training  the  members  of  the  native  Church, 
and  in  supplying  suitable  men  as  native  catechists  and 
pastors.  Already  keen  to  promote  any  work  which  would 
indirectly  build  up  the  native  Church,  he  agreed  to  take 
over  the  school,  the  headmaster  of  which,  Janki  Nath  by 
name,  was  a  graduate  of  the  University  of  Calcutta.  He 
had  formerly  been  a  Brahmin.^  The  boys  were  thirteen 
in  number. 

But  one  entry  in  the  Journal  already  quoted  needs 
some  notice.  '  I  must  hasten  to  mention  that  at  a  meeting 
of  the  Delhi  Mission  Committee  held  on  Saturday,  De- 
cember 21,  the  care  of  the  mission  during  Mr.  Winter's 
absence  was  formally  handed  over  to  us.'  This  entry  is 
explained  by  the  '  memorandum  on  the  Cambridge  Mission 
to  North  India  (Delhi) '  published  in  Cambridge  by  the  Uni- 
versity Committee,  March  29,  1878.  We  read  :  '  After  Delhi 
was  chosen  as  the  first  seat  of  the  mission,  the  Cambridge 
Committee  heard  that  it  would  be  necessary  for  the  Rev. 
R.  R.  Winter,  who,  with  the  help  of  the  Rev.  Tara  Chand, 
had  been  in  charge  of  the  S.P.G.  Mission  there,  to  return  to 
England  for  two  }-ears  in  the  early  part  of  the  present  year. 
Under  these  circumstances,  by  agreement  with  the  Com- 
mittee of  the  S.P.G.  they  authorised  Mr.  Bickersteth  and 
Mr.  Murray  to  take  charge  of  the  work  during  his  absence.' 

Accordingly  on  April  2  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Winter  left  for 
their  much  needed  furlough  in  England,  and  did  not  return 
to  Delhi  till  December  1 1,  1879,  on  which  day  Mr.  Winter 
came  back  to  India  in  company  with  Mr.  Allnutt  and 
Mr.  Lefroy,  Mrs.  Winter  returning  a  year  later. 

It  is  plain  that  although  the  Cambridge  Committee 
added  that  '  the  letters  which  they  had  received  satisfied 
them  that  this  arrangement  will  be  of  the  greatest  service 

'  The  Rev.  S.  S.  Allnutt  writes  :  '  Janki  Nath  is  a  man  of  verj-  high 
principle  universall)-  respected  by  all,  Christians  and  non-Christians  alike.' 


THE  CAMBRIDGE  MISSION  TO  DELHI 


53 


in  supplying  under  favourable  conditions  the  objects  of  the 
Cambridge  Mission,'  yet  the  whole  burden  of  responsibility 
must  have  weighed  very  heavily  on  the  shoulders  of  a 
young  Cambridge  graduate,  not  yet  twenty-eight  years  of 
age,  unacquainted  with  the  languages  in  daily  use  and 
unversed  in  oriental  methods  and  manners,  who  had  only 
been  resident  four  months  in  the  land  of  his  adoption. 
He  was  left  practically  alone,  for  a  great  misfortune  had 
befallen  the  mission,  of  which  the  Cambridge  Committee 
knew  nothing  when  they  passed  their  memorandum  just 
quoted. 

On  March  1 1  Mr.  Murray  fell  ill  with  a  slight  attack  of 
haemorrhage,  and  the  entry  in  Bickersteth's  Journal  is  : 

March  12-20. — During  this  time  Murray  had  one  or 
two  very  slight  returns  of  haemorrhage.  He  was  unable  to 
move  himself,  and  this  has  been  his  worst  day.  Very  weak 
and  depressed. 

March  21. — Murray  decidedly  better,  and  has  been  out 
in  the  garden.    Gratias  Deo. 

March  22. — A  return  of  haemorrhage — the  worst  he 
has  had. 

April  7. — Murray  has  been  going  on  well  since  March 
22.  To-day  he  has  been  walking  in  the  compound  ;  but 
on  the  nth  he  was  taken  ill  again,  and  on  the  22nd  he 
left  for  Meerut  en  route  for  Simla. 

Thus  Bickersteth  was  brought  perilously  near  to  the 
situation  which  he  had  described  only  to  deprecate,  and 
which  it  had  been  hoped  the  Cambridge  Mission  would 
render  next  to  impossible  :  '  An  over-burdened  missionary, 
who  bears  alone  the  manifold  cares  of  a  whole  station.'  ^ 

It  must  not  be  supposed  that  he  so  much  as  hinted 
that  he  felt  oppressed.  In  fact,  with  his  usual  reticence, 
he  said  very  little,  if  anything,  about  it,  not  only  nursing 
his  brother  missionary  with  unremitting  care  till  he  left 

'  See  chapter  ii.  30. 


54 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


for  Simla,  but  in  the  midst  of  that  anxiety  saying  farewell 
to  Mr.  Winter,  and  with  a  stout  heart  setting  to  work  at 
once  to  keep  pace  with  all  the  multifarious  calls  upon  his 
time.  In  writing  at  the  end  of  his  first  year  to  Mr.  Bullock 
to  excuse  himself  for  not  having  written  reports  of  their 
proceedings  at  certain  stated  intervals,  he  says : 

My  excuse  must  be  the  read}-  but  true  one,  that  when 
I  agreed  to  the  rule  as  proposed  I  had  no  idea  of  the  inces- 
sant demands  which  a  mission  like  that  of  Delhi  would 
daily  make  on  time  and  strength.  Life  in  Delhi  itself,  if 
any  progress  at  all  is  to  be  made  in  the  essential  work  of 
learning  the  language,  leaves  no  leisure  for  writing  reports. 
I  take  the  opportunity  of  being  out  for  a  fortnight  among 
our  distant  country  stations  with  the  Bishop  of  Lahore  to 
send  a  letter.  Since  the  beginning  of  April,  when  Mr.  and 
Mrs.  Winter  left  for  England,  the  mission  has  been  in  my 
charge.  I  had  thought  that  this  great  responsibility  would 
have  been  shared  by  the  daily  co-operation  and  counsel  of 
my  friend  and  colleague  Mr.  Murray,  but  God's  will  was 
otherwise,  and  owing  to  the  illness  v,-hich  prostrated  him 
in  March,  he  has  been  condemned  to  very  unwilling  exile 
in  the  Himalayas  for  the  past  six  months,  and  is  forbidden 
to  return  to  Delhi  till  this  time  next  year.  A  short  three 
months  in  Delhi  had  already  given  him  great  influence  in 
the  schools  which  were  under  his  charge.  His  time  at 
Simla  will  not  be  wasted,  as  he  is  at  work  on  the  language. 

Of  course  Edward  Bickersteth  could  not  be  left  only 
with  the  assistance  of  his  native  colleague,  the  Rev.  Tara 
Chand,  and  there  is  a  note  of  relief  in  the  brief  entry 
on  April  24 :  '  Telegram  saying  that  Hunter  is  coming.' 
Mr.  Hunter  was  assistant  to  I\Ir.  Bray,  the  S.P.G.  Secretary 
at  Calcutta,  who,  at  the  cost  of  greatly  adding  to  his  own 
labours,  spared  him  to  come  and  work  at  Delhi. 

Two  young  laymen  also  gave  their  help — one  Mr. 
Bridge,  whom  the  Bishop  of  Calcutta  had  brought  with 
him  from  Assam,  and  the  other  Mr.  Maitland,  of  Trinity 
College,  Cambridge.    The  latter  had  been  visiting  the 


THE  CAMBRIDGE  MISSION  TO  DELHI 


55 


celebrated  cities  of  the  world,  and  felt  an  especial 
attraction  to  Delhi  and  its  mission.  He  daily  taught 
English  to  the  boys  in  the  Upper  School,  and  passed  six 
of  them  into  the  Punjab  University  largely  by  his  exertions. 
He  also  helped  to  nurse  Mr.  Murray.  Mr.  Bridge  lived  in 
the  Mission  House  for  nearly  a  year,  '  making  the  longest 
stay  hitherto  of  any  of  my  companions  ' — Bickersteth 
writes  in  a  letter  dated  April  29,  1879,  a  fact  which  shows 
how  fragmentary  was  the  help  on  which  he  could  rely. 

The  recollections  sent  to  me  by  Mrs.  Parsons,  Zenana 
(S.P.G.)  Missionary  at  Delhi,  prove  how  others  appreciated 
his  efforts  at  that  time  of  stress. 

In  February  1878  I  had  the  privilege  of  being  engaged 
in  the  S.P.G.  Zenana  Mission,  and  placed  at  the  Ladies' 
Home.  The  Winters  were  going  on  furlough,  and  the 
mission,  including  the  many  branches  of  women's  work, 
was  to  be  left  in  sole  charge  of  Mr.  Bickersteth.  The 
Home  at  that  time  consisted  of  six  Zenana  teachers  and  a 
training  class  of  five  pupils,  all  quite  young.  In  allotting 
my  work  to  me  Mrs.  Winter  said:  'Refer  every  matter  of 
difficulty  to  Mr.  Bickersteth.  He  is  young,  but  very  wise 
and  good.' 

In  a  very  little  time  Mr.  Bickersteth  began  to  acquaint 
himself  with  each  of  the  different  institutions,  and  got  to 
know  all  about  everything.  Of  his  large  minded  sympathy 
and  tact,  which  seemed  to  extend  to  every  case,  one  could 
never  say  too  much.  .  .  .  Soon  we  learnt  we  could  always  go 
to  him  in  every  case  of  difficulty,  great  or  small.  .  .  .  One 
great  feature  of  his  character  was  his  treatment  of  the 
erring.  His  rebukes  were  given  with  the  gentleness  of 
a  loving  woman  and  the  firmness  of  the  Master.  His 
presence  among  us  seemed  to  bring  with  it  a  desire  for 
higher  aims  for  ourselves,  and  a  feeling  of  affectionate 
reverence  for  him. 

We  went  once  to  bring  some  orphans  from  the  Poor 
House.  (1877  had  been  a  year  of  famine,  and  there  were 
many  destitute  ones  left  in  1878.)  We  found  them  all 
looking  miserable,  like  bundles  of  dirt  and  rags,  some  very 
famished.    After  Mr.  Bickersteth  had  selected  as  many  as 


56 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


he  thought  fit,  as  we  were  going  away  he  saw  two  girls, 
one  rather  big  who  was  crippled  after  rheumatic  fever,  and 
one  little  one  quite  blind.  He  looked  at  them  and  said,. 
'  We  must  take  these  two  also,  and  see  what  we  can  do  for 
them.'  So  he  lifted  each  one,  and,  carrying  them  himself, 
put  both  into  his  tonga,  to  the  surprise  of  the  natives- 
standing  by,  not  one  of  whom  would  have  liked  to  touch 
them.  For  the  cripple  girl  he  got  the  best  treatment  to 
be  had,  and  after  some  time  she  could  walk  :  she  never 
forgot  the  Padre  Sahib's  kindness. 

Sometimes  if  a  matter  taken  to  him  were  rather  serious 
he  would  say  :  '  Come  to-morrow,  and  I  will  tell  you  what 
to  do  or  say.'  Then  we  knew  that  our  Head  was  going  to 
pray  over  it  before  deciding  what  was  to  be  done  about  it. 
Once  a  girl  in  the  Orphanage  was  bad  with  cholera,  and 
he  went  twice  every  day  to  see  her,  and  would  sit  a  long 
time  beside  her.  One  would  have  thought  the  girl  might 
have  been  his  own  kith  and  kin.  In  no  case  was  his 
sympathy  and  help  given  in  a  half-hearted  way. 

He  was  so  much  reverenced  in  Delhi  that  a  letter 
addressed  '  To  the  Chief  Christian  in  Delhi '  puzzled  the 
Post  Office  until  the  postman  insisted  it  must  be  for  Mr. 
Bickersteth,  and  so  indeed  it  proved.  In  the  Zenana 
Mission  we  all  felt  that  Mr.  Bickersteth  was  indeed  our 
guide  and  friend. 

But  he  could  write  at  the  end  of  the  first  year,  '  All 
the  old  machinery  has  been  kept  in  operation,'  and  this 
included  the  Sunday  and  daily  services  in  St.  Stephen's 
Church,  the  evening  services  for  Christians  in  different 
parts  of  the  city,  the  high  and  low  caste  schools,  preach- 
ing in  the  bazars,  the  Zenana  work,  the  hospital  and 
dispensary,  the  two  boarding  schools,  and  the  refuge. 
The  lamented  death  of  the  excellent  Dr.  Bose,  who  had 
been  suddenly  called  to  his  rest  shortly  before  Mr.  Winter 
left,  called  out  in  a  home  letter  the  expression  of  the  hope 
that  '  Cambridge  may  speedily  send  us  a  duly  qualified 
doctor  ; '  but  no  man  offered,  nor  has  any  medical  graduate 
of  Cambridge  yet  joined  the  mission.    In  the  autumn  of 


THE  CAMBRIDGE  MISSION  TO  DELHI 


57 


1878  he  writes  that  'the  medical  lady  in  charge  of  the 
mission  hospital  and  dispensary  broke  down  after  eleven 
years  of  Indian  work  under  the  great  pressure  of  a  fever 
epidemic  caused  by  the  subsidence  of  an  unusual  overflow 
of  the  Jumna  in  last  October  and  November.  She  has 
since  been  ordered  to  spend  two  summers  at  home,  and 
has  left  for  England.' 

The  principal  new  efforts  of  the  year  were  a  class  for 
the  lower  grade  of  catechists  or  readers,  and  a  monthly 
devotional  service  for  the  English-speaking  mission 
workers.  Of  the  service  something  will  be  said  in  the 
next  chapter,  but  he  wrote  of  the  class  : 

It  represents  at  present  a  very  rude  endeavour  to  improve 
the  attainments  of  our  native  teachers.  The  idea  of  the  plan 
we  pursue  was  given  to  me  by  Pastor  Luther,'  of  Ranchi, 
who  visited  us  last  winter  to  place  his  son  in  our  Boarding 
School.  The  village  readers,  who  are  employed  during  the 
week  in  teaching  in  their  schools,  come  into  Delhi  on  Friday 
evening  and  stay  till  after  morning  service  on  Sunday. 
In  company  with  teachers  of  the  same  grade  who  are 
employed  in  Delhi  itself  they  receive  during  the  time 
lessons  in  the  Bible  and  Prayer-book,  dictation  and  read- 
ing, besides  listening  to  parts  of  the  '  Pilgrim's  Progress  ' 
read  aloud  to  them. 

Periodical  examinations  were  held  and  an  order  of  merit 
published,  and  it  was  decided  that  the  amount  of  the  stipend 
they  received  should  be  partly  dependent,  as  in  the  case  of 
the  Bengal  Missions,  on  their  place  in  the  list. 

In  one  most  important  branch  of  the  work,  St. 
Stephen's  High  School,  the  lack  of  any  visible  results 
caused  the  young  missionary  much  thought  and  some 
misgivings.  Commenting  on  the  results  of  the  last  year 
he  writes  home : 


'  An  S.P.G.  Pastor  of  the  Kol  Mission. 


58 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


No  boy  from  the  High  School  has  this  year  become  a 
Christian.  Tliere  seems  no  other  means  for  reaching  the 
upper  classes  in  India  which  covers  the  same  ground  ;  at  the 
same  time,  no  doubt,  knowledge  of  Christianity  is  imparted 
under  extreme  difficulties  in  our  high  schools.  The  boys 
cannot  be  regarded  in  any  sort  as  religious  inquirers.  They 
are  sent  by  their  parents  to  the  mission  school  because  the 
fees  are  somewhat  less  than  the  Government  School,  and 
during  the  latter  part  of  the  course,  when  their  minds 
would  naturally  be  more  open  to  new  truth,  they  are 
engrossed  in  the  one  object  of  acquiring  sufficient  know- 
ledge to  pass  the  University  Entrance  Examination  as  a 
preliminary  to  obtaining  a  Government  post.  Under  these 
circumstances,  it  seems  to  be  the  opinion  of  the  most 
experienced  teachers  that  little  immediate  result  can  be 
expected,  but  that  success  is  rather  to  be  looked  for  in  a 
higher  moral  standard  in  after  years,  induced  by  contact 
with  the  moral  beauty  of  the  New  Testament  teaching 
and  a  certain  familiarity  with  the  example  of  our  Lord's 
life.  Something  more  might  perhaps  be  hoped  for  from 
the  personal  influence  of  Christiati  masters  who  would  be 
willing  to  lay  themselves  out  to  obtain  influence  over  the 
scholars  out  of  school  as  well  as  in,  as  was  so  remarkably 
and  successfully  done  by  Mr.  Noble  at  Masulipatam.  From 
this  point  of  view  the  iticrease  in  the  number  of  Christian 
masters  is  very  greatly  to  be  desired,  and  also  the  addition 
of  a  higher  college  class,  as  at  present  the  boys  are  often 
removed  under  alien  influences  before  their  education  is 
completed. 

Mr.  Winter  had  always  taken  a  somewhat  different 
view,  holding  that  '  for  secular  teaching  non-Christian 
masters  are  not  only  indispensable,  but  that  they  form 
a  link  between  the  missionaries  and  the  boys  with  their 
parents,'  bringing  '  an  efficient  and  thoughtful  body  of 
men  into  contact  with  the  missionaries,  and  whose  habits 
of  loyalty  to  their  employers  kept  them  from  acting 
against  Christianity.'  Bickersteth,  while  admitting  that 
there  were  collateral  advantages  in  a  mission  possessing 
a  large  institution  like  St.  Stephen's  School   and  its 


THE  CAMBRIDGE  MISSION  TO  DELHI 


59 


branches  in  a  place  like  Delhi — inasmuch  as  it  added 
greatly  to  the  general  reputation  of  the  mission,  bringing 
the  missionaries  into  contact  from  time  to  time,  in  a  way 
that  would  not  otherwise  be  possible,  with  the  native 
gentlemen  of  the  city — yet  was  thankful  when  he  could 
write  to  Dr.  Westcott  to  the  effect  that  '  we  have  been 
able  slightly  to  increase  the  number  of  Christian  masters 
in  the  High  School  and  its  branches,  sufficiently  to  give  us 
one  Christian  master  to  each  branch  ; '  and  he  added,  '  We 
are  still  very  far  short  of  the  standard  which  I  see  the 
well-known  native  Madras  clergyman,  Padre  Sattianadan, 
considers  essential  to  the  profitableness  of  the  school  from 
a  missionary  point  of  view — that  one  half  at  least  of  the 
masters  should  be  Christian.' 

He  was  deeply  thankful,  also,  when  the  arrival  of 
Mr.  Carlyon,  just  before  Christmas  Day  1878,  enabled 
him  to  put  him  in  charge  of  the  High  School  and  its 
branches,  and  to  entrust  the  keeping  of  the  Christian  Boys' 
School  to  Mr.  Blackett.  Mr.  Carlyon  also  started  a  Bible 
class  on  Sunday  afternoons  for  young  men  able  to  speak 
English  who  had  already  embraced  Christianity.  It  was 
the  same  feeling  which  led  Bickersteth  four  years  later  to 
begin  what  Mr.  Allnutt  described  as  a  most  useful  course 
of  lectures  to  masters,  on  the  Characteristics  of  the  Old  and 
New  Testaments,  a  course  which  was  only  interrupted  by 
the  illness  which  obliged  him  to  return  to  England. 

Delhi  itself,  of  course,  offered  scope  for  bazar  preaching, 
and  the  Cambridge  missionaries  were  able  to  increase 
somewhat  the  frequency  and  regularity  of  this  branch  of 
work  in  different  parts  of  the  city  and  suburbs.  Bickersteth 
wrote  : 

So  far  as  I  have  hitherto  observed,  the  only  opponents 
to  our  preachers  are  Muhammadan  moulvies.     One  of 


6o 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


these  is  a  Wahabi  preacher  also  on  his  own  account. 
He  generally  takes  St.  John's  Gospel  as  his  text-book, 
and  though  his  aim  certainly  is  far  more  to  invalidate 
the  Gospel  than  to  use  it  for  the  instruction  of  his 
hearers,  yet  I  have  sometimes  thought  that  he  is  not 
altogether  uninfluenced  by  what  he  has  read.  In 
argument  it  must  be  admitted  that  it  sometimes  so 
happens  that  the  Muhammadans  have  the  best  of  it. 
A  moulvie  one  day  in  my  hearing  stoutly  maintained  that 
Our  Lord's  words,  '  There  be  some  standing  here  which 
shall  not  taste  of  death  till  they  see  the  kingdom  of 
God,'  involved  a  plain  historical  inaccuracy,  and  the 
catechist,  though  not  an  illiterate  man,  had  no  answer  to 
give. 

This  led  Bickersteth  to  draw  the  conclusion  that 
'  knowledge  of  the  Bible  more  than  controversial  books 
was  the  main  need  of  their  teachers  and  preachers  ' — a  need 
which  he  at  once  set  to  work  to  try  to  supply,  not  only  by 
the  weekly  Bible-readings  for  those  in  Delhi  (as  mentioned 
above),  but  by  encouraging  the  Reverend  Tara  Chand  to 
hold  a  class  on  the  first  Sunday  in  each  month,  when  all 
the  catechists  came  in  from  the  districts.  Between  the 
monthly  meetings  each  catechist  was  expected  to  prepare 
so  many  chapters  of  one  of  the  Gospels,  the  commentary 
in  use  being  that  of  the  Rev.  Robert  Clark  (C.M.S.)  and 
of  Moulvie  Imad-ud-din. 

A  few  sentences  from  a  letter  to  Dr.  Westcott,  written 
much  later  on  September  i,  1 88 1,  give  his  more  matured 
opinion.    He  writes : 

Our  first  circular  also  referred  to  evangelistic  labours. 
All  work  in  a  heathen  land  is  this  more  or  less,  for 
even  a  sermon  in  church  may  be  listened  to  by  a  crowd  of 
Muhammadans  and  Hindus  in  the  church  porch.  But 
perhaps  bazar  preaching  has  the  best  claim  to  that  title. 
Its  value  is  universally  recognised  when  the  speakers  are 
intellectually  and  spiritually  qualified  for  the  work,  but 
the  criticism  to  which  all  missionary  operations  are  now 


UICKERSTETH  HALL,  DELHL 


THE  CAMBRIDGE  MISSION  TO  DELHI 


6r 


subjected  has  condemned  many  cfiforts  in  that  line  which 
once  would  have  passed  muster.  Two  improvements  may, 
I  hope,  be  shortly  possible  in  our  present  practice.  The 
one  is  a  preachers'  class,  where  subjects  may  be  carefully 
prepared  and  digested  beforehand  ....  the  other  a 
preaching-room.  The  difficulty  is  that  the  bazar  is  after  all 
common  property,  and  the  Christian  preacher  has  no  real 
authority  to  regulate  the  crowd  who  listen  to  him.'  The 
case  would  be  quite  different  in  a  preaching-room,  or, 
still  better,  a  chapel  by  the  side  of  the  way.  It  would,  I 
think,  be  specially  useful  among  a  Muhammadan  popu- 
lation. The  adherents  of  a  religious  system  to  which 
love  is  almost  unknown  enjoy  heated  controversy,  but 
get  no  good  from  it.  We  are  at  present  looking  out  for 
a  suitable  site.  If  we  obtain  one,  and  can  erect  a 
building^  on  a  sufficiently  large  scale,  we  hope  that  some 
of  the  most  able  and  thoughtful  of  the  native  clergy 
and  others  in  North  India  will  be  willing  to  deliver 
lectures  in  Delhi. 

Outside  Delhi  many  thousand  representatives  of  the 
Koli  or  weaver  class,  and  of  the  caste  of  Charnars,  or  shoe- 
makers, were  gathered  in  small  village  communities. 
It  was  among  the  latter  that  so  many  had  been  baptised 

'  '  The  preaching  in  the  bazar  (at  Biwari)  was  not  very  satisfactory ; 
very  large  crowds  gathered,  but  they  were  disorderly,  and  no  inquiries 
followed  as  to  our  lodging-place.'  Again  at  Kalanam  :  '  We  went  to  their 
little  bazar,  and  for  some  time  sat  and  talked,  but  the  place  was  too  noisy  to 
be  satisfactory,  and  the  cattle  being  driven  home  at  night  continually  broke 
up  the  audience. '  Again:  'A  little  friendly  conversation  resulted,  as  it  was 
meant  to  do,  in  a  request  to  sit  down  in  the  place  for  conversation  attached  to 
their  mosque,  and  a  little  crowd  soon  collected.  Such  an  opportunity  is  much  to 
be  preferred  to  preaching  in  the  open  bazar,  when  the  audience  consists  of 
Muhammadans.  The  Christian  is  on  their  ground,  so  to  speak,  and  if  he  came 
unasked  still  they  have  requested  him  to  remain.  We  talked  for  awhile  of  sin, 
and  of  escape  from  it,  not  without  some  attempt  being  made  to  get  the  conver- 
sation away  to  those  metaphysical  points  which  the  Muhammadan  always 
prefers  to  moral  teaching.  The  one  flatters  his  real  or  supposed  intellectual 
acuteness,  the  other  condemns  his  daily  life  ;  the  one  fortifies  him  in  the  sup- 
posed sufficiency  of  his  creed,  the  other  suggests  doubts  which  he  would  fain 
banish  as  to  whether  it  answers  his  real  needs.'    {Mission  Field,  June  1882.) 

'  Such  a  building  was  erected  in  Delhi  soon  after  Bickersteth  had  been 
obliged  to  leave  India,  and  received  the  name  of  the  Bickersteth  Hall. 


62 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


by  Mr.  Winter  in  recent  years.  Of  these  Edward  Bicker- 
steth  writes  : 

There  is  a  little  Christian  colony  of  the  Koli  caste, 
some  fifty  miles  to  the  south  of  Delhi,  at  Biwari.  They 
consider  themselves  somewhat  higher  in  social  rank  than 
the  Chamars,  but  botJi  are  very  low  in  the  social  scale. 
It  seems  likely  that  of  God's  mercy  Christianity  will  have 
a  rapid  and  wide  extension  among  these  classes.  More 
than  once  during  the  last  few  months  we  have  had  requests 
for  instruction  from  distant  villages.  The  Chamars  live, 
alike  in  the  city  and  in  the  villages,  apart  by  themselves 
in  small  mud  huts,  which  are  often  neatly  arranged  in 
squares  and  alleys.  Each  hut  as  a  rule  contains  one 
or  two  rooms,  and  possibly  a  very  small  verandah  to 
keep  off  the  hottest  of  the  sun's  rays.  The  furniture 
consists  of  one  or  two  charpoys  (bedsteads),  some  cook- 
ing utensils,  and  possibly  a  piece  of  carpet  and  a  stool 
for  a  visitor.  .  .  .  The  master  of  the  establishment  may 
generally  be  discovered  sitting  on  the  ground  in  front  of 
his  house  at  work  on  his  shoes  (an  active  worker  can  make 
a  good  pair  in  about  two  days)  ;  his  wife,  her  dark-skinned 
children  hanging  about  her  the  while,  is  commonly  engaged 
in  some  culinary  occupation  not  far  off,  which  frequently 
involves  the  whole  prospect  in  a  cloud  of  smoke.  In  the 
evening,  should  a  pair  of  shoes  have  been  completed,  it  is 
usual  for  the  head  of  the  establishment  to  make  a  visit 
to  the  bazar  in  hope  of  a  purchaser.  .  .  .  One  excellent 
native  custom,  by  which  the  chief  men  of  a  particular 
district  form  a  kind  of  court  of  arbitrament  among  their 
fellows,  Mr.  Winter  has  perpetuated  among  our  native 
Christians.  .  .  .  The  people  of  one  entire  square  of  houses  of 
this  kind  in  Delhi  are  now  all  but  entirely  Christian.  This 
square  or  '  basti,'  as  it  is  called,  lies  just  within  the  city 
walls,  not  far  from  our  mission  house,  at  the  north-east 
corner  of  the  city,  close  under  the  battered  and  shapeless 
mass  of  the  Mori  bastion,  a  name  very  familiar  to  those  who, 
twenty  years  ago,  followed  in  breathless  anxiety  the 
fortunes  of  the  siege  of  Delhi.  ...  I  believe  that  many 
will  be  found  to  pray  that  these  poor  Christians  may  live 
worthily  of  their  profession,  and  as  I  was  trying  to  teach 
them  last  night  (the  strangeness  and  picturesqueness  of  the 


THE  CAMBRIDGE  MISSION  TO  DELHI 


63 


phrase  seemed  to  strike  them  at  once),  be  '  fishers  of  men  ' 
among  their  heathen  brethren  around. 

Rohtak  (forty-four  miles  west  of  Delhi),  Kalanam 
(a  village  consisting  mainly  of  Muhammadans),  Biwari  (a 
large  commercial  city),  Dadri  (the  capital  of  a  native 
State),  and  many  others  were  places  frequently  visited  by 
Bickersteth,  accompanied  by  Mr.  Carlyon  or  else  by  Mr. 
Lefroy  as  well  as  by  a  catechist.^  Daryagunge,  a  district  of 
Delhi  itself,  was  always  accessible  and  was  visited  bi- 
weekly (on  Thursdays  and  Saturdays).  Bickersteth  had 
taken  special  charge  of  that  district.  On  arrival  the 
two  missionaries  and  catechist  used  to  pay  several  pastoral 
visits,  and  then  the  simple  evening  service  was  held,  if 
possible  in  a  chapel,  which  formed  one  side  of  the  court. 
It  consisted  of  a  bhajan  (or  hymn),  the  Confession, 
Absolution  and  Lord's  Prayer,  Magnificat  and  Creed, 
then  a  chapter  read  and  expounded,  after  which  followed 
the  sermon,  another  bhajan,  and  a  few  more  prayers.  The 
hymn  was  especially  popular,  and  it  would  scarcely  have 
been  a  service  to  these  people  without  one  or  two  bhajans, 
which  conveyed  in  the  roughest  metre  some  simple 
Christian  truth. 

The  more  distant  stations,  best  visited  in  the  cold  season, 
such  as  Rohtak  (with  15,000  inhabitants  and  twenty-four 
mosques),  were  reached  by  dakgari  (post  carriage),  or,  if  the 
road  was  very  bad,  in  ekkas  or  native  pony-carts,  '  a  method 
of  procedure  which  effectually  prohibits  any  use  of  books 
by  the  way  '  being  Bickersteth's  characteristic  comment.^ 
Here  is  a  shortened  account  of  one  of  these  periodical  visits. 

'  Yakub  Kishan  Singh,  who  was  his  frequent  companion,  was  ordained 
subsequently  to  Bickersteth's  departure  from  Delhi.  He  died  in  October  1897 
at  Gurgaon,  where  he  had  retired  with  his  son,  and  thus  was  called  to  his  rest 
within  two  months  of  the  death  of  his  English  friend. 

*  'iYakub  found  us  an  empty  native  house  at  Rohtak,  with,  of  course,  no 


64 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


January  12,  1882,  I  left  Delhi  with  Carlyon  at  10  P.M.  ; 
owing  to  the  dreadful  state  of  the  road  after  the  winter 
rain  we  did  not  reach  Rohtak  till  three  in  the  afternoon. 
There  one  of  our  two  native  deacons  is  placed,  an  old 
gentleman  with  white  beard  and  venerable'  aspect,  but  with 
natural  strength  unabated.  He  owes  his  Christianity  (it 
is  thirty-one  years  since  he  was  baptised)  to  the  zeal  of  a 
Christian  officer  in  the  army.  As  a  boy  his  father  had 
given  him  a  good  education  in  ancient  Hindu  learning, 
and  much  he  laments  over  its  decay.  He  has  known 
many  missionaries,  among  others  Dr.  Pfander,  who  used  to 
read  with  him  at  one  time  in  Agra.  Rising  early,  the 
missionaries  went  out  and  sat  for  some  time  talking,  now 
with  a  little  group  of  saltpetre  manufacturers,  now 
in  the  '  baithak,'  or  place  of  conversation  attached  to  a 
mosque,  later  in  the  day  spending  the  time  in  looking 
up  the  scattered  Christians,  mostly  poor,  and  receiving 
little  parties  of  native  gentlemen,  masters  perhaps  from  a 
Government  school,  and  in  the  evening  preaching  in  the 
bazar.  '  We  also  believe  in  the  Trinity,'  was  the  some- 
what abrupt  announcement  of  one  of  the  masters  [he  was 
the  head  master,  and  had  been  trained  in  the  mission 
school  at  Delhi  many  years  ago].  This  led  to  a  con- 
versation about  mysteries  and  our  duty  to  accept  them  on 
sufficient  evidence,  even  when  they  are  wholly  beyond  our 
power  to  comprehend.  This  is  a  point  which  the  more 
educated  Hindus  are  very  slow  to  allow,  though  it  is 
plain  that  all  men  do  it  in  a  multitude  of  instances. 

Sometimes  much  interest  attached  to  the  personal 
history  of  some  of  the  scattered  Christians.  Thus  Bicker- 
steth  writes  : 

Part  of  the  object  of  our  visit  was  to  see  Jumna 
Das.    He  was  formerly  a  sadhu,'^  or  holy  man,  a  Hindu, 

furniture  or  carpets,  but  it  is  wonderful  how  soon,  when  one  has  disposed  one's 
effects  about  one  and  got  out  one's  books,  &c. ,  one  begins  to  get  fond  of  one's 
abode  and  to  regard  it  as  a  kind  of  quasi-home  for  the  time  being.' — Letter, 
Jan.  12,  1882,  Mission  Field. 

'  He  was  ordained  by  Bishop  Milman.  The  other,  Asad  Ali,  was 
ordained  to  the  diaconate  by  Bishop  French  {18S0).  'A  special  interest,' 
wrote  E.  B. ,  '  attached  to  Ali's  ordination  by  his  former  teacher  at  the  Lahore 
Divinity  School,  where  he  had  been  the  senior  student  of  his  year.' 

-  Sadhu  or  saint  =  holy  man.    Fakir  -  poor  man. 


THE  CAMBRIDGE  MISSION  TO  DELHI 


65 


baptised  three  years  ago  by  Yakub.  A  special  interest 
about  him  is  that  he  still  retains  much,  perhaps  too  much, 
■of  his  old  manner  of  life.  Certainly  nothing  has  been 
done  to  alter  or  denationalise  the  outward  man  or  old 
surroundings  of  this  strange  convert.  Scanty  dress,  rough 
hair,  wcatherbeaten  countenance,  dwelling  and  occupation, 
are  all  just  as  they  were  before  the  Hindu  sadhu  took  on 
him  the  yoke  of  Christ.  He  lives  on  a  plot  of  land  of 
which  he  is  owner,  and  satisfies  his  wants,  which  arc  simple 
■enough,  by  its  cultivation.  His  house  is  little  more  than 
a  hut  of  reeds,  just  sufficient  to  keep  off  nightdews — quite 
insufficient,  I  should  say,  to  shield  him  from  heavy  rain. 
His  house  is  close  to  the  road,  and  travellers  often  stay  to 
get  water  from  his  well  during  the  hot  weather.  To  give 
water  to  passers-by  is  a  recognised  meritorious  action  of 
Hindus.  It  is  pleasant  to  think  that  in  one  spot  at  least  a 
good  work,  to  the  performance  of  which  by  Christians  a 
special  promise  is  attached,  is  not  neglected.  Who  can 
tell  the  results  of  the  quiet  talks  that  doubtless  go  on 
sometimes  between  the  Christian  guru  and  the  thirsty 
travellers  who  resort  to  him  for  water.  Jumna  Das  soon 
caught  sight  of  us  as  we  made  our  way  to  his  little  hut. 
Apart  from  his  own  conversation,  you  would  perhaps  onl\- 
find  out  his  Christianity  from  his  books,  but  you  would 
probably  not  discover  his  library  at  once.  It  is  contained 
in  a  large  earthen  pot,  such  as  is  commonly  used  for 
holding  water  in  India.  The  possible  dangers  attached  to 
this  method  of  storing  his  treasures  the  old  man  recently  dis- 
covered to  his  cost,  as  several  were  stolen  from  him.  The 
accomplishment  of  reading  is  an  immense  gain  in  the  case 
of  a  solitary  Christian.  For  instance,  he  is  shortly  to  be  con- 
firmed, and  I  was  able  to  give  him  an  excellent  little  Hindu 
book  on  the  subject  (S.P.C.K.).  He  will  study  it  word  by 
word,  but  without  this  his  preparation  must  have  been  con- 
fined to  the  very  scanty  instruction  Yakub  can  give  him  on 
very  occasional  visits.  We  stayed  with  him  some  little  time, 
and  had  reading  and  prayer.    He  is  very  honest  and  real. 

Again  : 

The  native  Christian  whose  name  is  Hassu  seems  to 
be  doing  his  work  ^  fairly  well.    His  early  life  was  a  strange 

'  I.e.  leaching  a  school  of  little  urchins  belonging  to  the  Koli  caste  on  the 
outskirts  of  the  city  of  Bihwari. 

F 


66 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


one.  He  belonged  to  a  Muhammadan  family,  whose  chief 
occupation  is  to  take  care  of  the  ruinous  tomb  of  an  old 
]\Iuhammadan  '  pir '  or  saint.  He  spent  his  young  days  in 
the  service  of  this  tomb,  and  participated  in  the  alms  of 
the  faithful.  He  was  baptised  some  years  since,  having 
heard  the  Gospel,  I  believe,  first  during  street  preaching. 
I  went  with  him  to  see  his  relations,  whose  countenances, 
as  is  commonly  the  case  with  this  class  of  people,  had  verj- 
little  to  recommend  them.  Degradation  had  too  certainly 
followed  on  the  idleness  in  which  their  ancestor's  sanctity 
enabled  them  to  live.  A  curious  part  of  their  story  is  that 
the  people  who  now  support  them  are  Hindus,  not 
IMuhammadans.  The  'pir'  seems  to  have  been  reverenced 
alike  by  both  classes  of  religions,  but  in  the  case  of  the 
Hindus,  who  should  naturally  have  been  hostile  to  him  and 
his  religion,  reverence  has  survived  to  later  generations, 
and  some  poor  idolaters  of  a  neighbouring  village  still  hope 
to  win  merit  hereafter  by  supporting  his  descendants  on 
part  of  their  produce.  This  is  but  one  of  the  many  curious 
instances  in  which  Hinduism  and  Muhammadanism  have 
managed  to  dissemble  their  differences  in  outlying  places 
in  India.  Islam  has,  I  think,  in  all  cases  been  the  loser, 
adopting  the  superstitions  of  its  natural  enemy  without 
inclining  in  the  least  towards  the  truths  which  the  super- 
stitions feel  after.  The  followers  of  a  system  based  on  the 
sternest  monotheism  have  been  saint  worshippers,  but 
none,  I  think,  till  they  accept  the  truth,  regard  incarnation 
as  within  the  limits  of  revelation. 

It  may  safely  be  asserted  that  at  no  time  was  direct 
evangelistic  work  (whether  public  preaching,  Bible  classes, 
or  the  care  of  three  of  the  Delhi  districts  and  three 
out-stations  in  the  surrounding  district)  neglected  by  the 
Cambridge  Mission,  nor  did  it  cease  to  have  a  powerful 
attraction  for  Bickersteth.  Preaching  in  bazars  in  a 
popular  style  was  not  his  forte,  and,  to  quote  a  Devonshire 
proverb,  the  fodder  he  provided  was  too  high  up  for  the 
cattle  ;  but  he  was  at  his  very  best  when  engaged  in  earnest 
conversation  with  some  inquirers  who  remained  behind 
after  the  audience  had  broken  up,  or  who,  Xicodemus-like, 


THE  CAMBRIDGE  MISSION  TO  DELHI 


67 


sought  further  light  in  the  seclusion  of  the  house  or  tent 
after  nightfall. 

These  longer  evangelistic  tours,  undertaken  on  the  apos- 
tolic method  of  journeying  two  and  two  together,  greatly 
enriched  the  experience  of  the  Cambridge  missionaries, 
and  led  Bickersteth  to  dwell  much  on  the  relative  good 
and  evil  of  Hinduism  and  Muhammadanism,  and  to  think 
deeply  about  the  best  method  of  presenting  Christianity  to 
the  adherents  of  both  these  religions.^  In  regard  to  their 
distinctive  tenets,  he  saw  how  '  the  impersonality  of  the 
Supreme  Being  is  a  fundamental  doctrine  of  Hinduism, 
and  affects  their  whole  system.'  '  This,'  he  writes,  '  seems 
to  be  frequently  forgotten  by  those  who  argue  that,  owing 
to  its  theory  of  incarnations,  the  system  of  Hinduism  is  far 
nearer  to  Christianity  than  that  of  Islam.'  In  a  letter  of  an 
able  Sanscritist  he  had  read  :  '  In  Hinduism  the  principle  of 
Divine  Incarnation  abounds  to  utter  extravagance.  It  is 
like  a  tree  which  needs  nothing  but  the  pruning  knife 
vigorously  applied.'  Upon  which  he  commented  :  '  If  the 
incarnations  of  Hinduism  were  incarnations  of  a  personal, 
self-conscious  Being,  it  would  be  so,  but  they  are  not. 
They  are  rather  means  by  which  a  being,  impersonal  and 
incapable  by  itself  of  attaining  to  conscious  existence,  is 
enabled  through  contact  with  matter  to  attain  to  person- 
ality.' 

In  answer  to  the  question,  '  Has  the  presence  of  Islam 
in  India  been  for  good  or  evil  ? '  he  believed  it  to  be 
'  impossible  to  give  any  simple  and  unqualified  reply.' 
In  a  lecture  which  he  delivered  after  his  return  to  England 
(before  the  Cambridge  Graduates  Mission  Aid  Society, 
March  1883),  he  argued  : 

'  With  regard  to  methods,  he  looked  forward  hopefully  to  the  influence  of 
the  Christian  'guru'  (Hindu  religious  teacher)  and  his  disciples  as  '  potent 
auxiliaries,  perhaps  even  chief  agencies,  in  spreading  the  Gospel  in  India.' 


68 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


On  behalf  of  Islam  it  may  fairly  be  contended  that 
the  protest  it  has  maintained  for  certain  fundamental 
truths  of  religion  has  not  been  without  influence  for 
good,  such  as  the  personality  of  God,  the  essential 
brotherhood  of  man  with  the  consequent  duty  of  charity, 
and  the  sinfulness  of  idolatry  and  drunkenness.  .  .  . 
But  heavy  counts  may  be  brought  to  prove  that  this  gain 
has  been  largely  counterbalanced.  If  it  asserts  the  person- 
ality and  unity  of  God,  it  also,  by  the  denial  of  the  fact  or 
possibility  of  incarnation,  places  an  impassable  barrier 
between  Him  and  His  creatures.  If  it  rightly  proclaims 
the  essential  brotherhood  of  all  men,  it  finds  a  false  basis 
for  it — in  fact,  in  a  common  submission  to  the  claims  of 
Mahomed.  Again,  taking  it  as  a  whole,  its  moral  code 
and  its  practice  is  lower  than  that  of  Aryan  nations.  A 
considerable  school  of  living  writers  has  so  minimised 
these  and  other  vices  and  deficiencies  of  the  system  as  to 
justify  a  verdict  almost  wholly  in  its  favour.  This  incon- 
siderate partisanship  produces  a  result  as  far  from  the 
truth  as  the  indiscriminate  condemnation  which  it  succeeds. 
Good  and  evil  are  so  intermingled  in  the  system  as 
necessarily  to  produce  results  which  cannot  be  tabulated 
under  either  head,  and  any  estimate  cf  Islam  which  neglects 
this  is  essentially  defective. 

More  quotations  in  the  same  vein  might  be  given,  but 
enough  has  been  cited  to  prove  the  spirit  in  which 
Bickcrsteth  approached  some  of  the  problems  presented 
by  comparative  religious  philosophy,  and  which  he 
aimed  at  impressing  on  all  who  came  to  work  with  him. 
His  was  a  mind  from  the  first  singularly  free  from  pre- 
judice, and  therefore  especially  fitted  to  draw  up  a  fair 
statement  of  the  strong  and  weak  points  of  any  faith 
which  has  claimed  the  moral  allegiance  of  the  human 
heart,  and  then  strike  a  balance  and  justify  the  position 
which  he  himself  held. 

Education,  especially  higher  education,  had  been 
from  the  first  the  principal  object  in  the  eyes  of  those 
who  started  the  Cambridge  Mission. 


THE  CAMBRIDGE  MISSION  TO  DELHI 


69 


The  arrival  of  the  Rev.  S.  S.  AHnutt  and  the  Rev. 
G.  A.  Lefroy  at  the  close  of  December  1879  had  greatly 
added  to  the  strength  of  the  mission,  and  justified  the 
serious  contemplation  of  a  more  elaborate  educational 
programme.  From  the  first  Mr.  Allnutt  identified  himself 
with  the  educational  work  of  the  mission,  for  which  he 
had  great  ability.  Between  both  these  two  valuable  recruits 
to  the  mission  and  Edward  Bickersteth  there  grew  up  the 
warmest  brotherly  affection. 

It  will  be  remembered  that  the  charge  of  St.  Stephen's 
High  School  (with  1 50  boys),  training  up  to  the  standard  of 
the  University  Entrance  Examination,  was  entrusted  to  the 
mission  at  the  beginning  of  1880,  as  was  that  of  several 
branch  schools  in  which  from  four  to  five  hundred  boys  were 
under  preparatory  training.  By  the  end  of  1 880  the  mission 
was  able  to  undertake  an  important  and  characteristic  edu- 
cational work.  It  was  decided  to  form  classes  in  order  to 
supply  the  need  felt  since  the  Government  College  at  Delhi 
had  been  closed,  and  so  to  prepare  candidates  for  the  B.A. 
Examination  of  the  University  of  Calcutta.  This  privilege, 
indeed,  had  always  been  possessed  by  St.  Stephen's  High 
School  as  affiliated  to  that  University,  but  it  had  long  been 
held  in  abeyance.  This  decision  was  not  arrived  at  without 
prolonged  inquiry  and  prayerful  thought.  As  long  before 
as  October  1878,  the  Bishop  of  Lahore  had  spent  three 
weeks  at  Delhi  with  Bickersteth,  and  they  had  visited 
together  for  the  first  time,  but  by  no  means  for  the  last, 
the  most  distant  out-stations.'  They  frequently  discussed 
the  educational  problem,  especially  an  Arts  College,  the 

'  Writing  to  Edward  Bickersteth  from  Peshawar  (March  16,  1885)  the 
Bishop  says  :  '  I  had  two  days  also  with  Winter  also  at  Balandshar,  and  looked 
with  happy  recollections  on  the  road  which  you  and  I  traversed  by  Toglaka- 
bad  to  the  villages  beyond  it  ;  journeys  it  may  yet  please  God  to  permit  us  to 
repeat  either  in  the  neighbourhood  of  Delhi  or  on  the  frontier.' 


70 


BISHOr  f:D\VARD  DICKERSTETH 


proposal  to  establish  which  fell  in  with  the  views  of  the 
Bishop,  who  had  himself  spent  the  first  years  of  his 
missionary  life  in  a  similar  college  at  Agra.  The  Bishop 
had  felt  (and  also  had  written  home  to  the  Cambridge 
Committee)  the  great  and  urgent  importance  of  there 
being  a  college,  as  complete  as  possible  in  its  proportions, 
religious,  scientific,  philosophic,  at  Delhi  and  in  connection 
with  the  mission  there. 

In  his  original  paper  before  the  Missionary  Aid  Society 
Dr.  P^rench  had  referred  to  the  Alexandrian  schools  of 
thought  and  inquiry  as  supplying  the  exactest  and  most 
practical  model  of  a  Christian  Educational  Institute,  which 
in  its  class-rooms  and  lectures  should  be  exhaustive  of  all 
the  great  branches  of  science  and  problems  of  thought  on 
which  the  human  mind  is  exercised.  He  had  pointed  out 
that  '  at  Alexandria  Christianity  found  ready  to  hand 
great  schemes  of  education  encyclopaedic  in  character, 
well  compacted  and  organised  in  system,  expansive  and 
even  tolerant  in  principle,'  and  that  '  it  needed  only  the 
mind  of  a  philosopher  and  the  heart  and  mind  of  a 
Christian  to  see  how  happily  all  this  might  be  fertilised, 
fecundated,  refined,  and  even  glorified  by  being  brought 
into  combination  with  that  seed  of  the  Word — God's 
divinely  appointed  instrument  of  growth  into  that  Divine 
Image  in  which  man  was  created  :  which,  while  raising 
him  out  of  himself,  makes  him  to  be  himself  in  the  truest 
best  sense,  humanises  most  while  it  most  divinises  him, 
when  he  is  most,  as  Hippolytus  expressed  it,  6so7roiovfi£vos.' 
He  had  further  brought  out  that  for  the  realisation  of  this 
ideal  there  must  be  an  enquiring  as  well  as  a  learned 
people  as  a  condition  of  hopefully  attempting  to  introduce 
the  Alexandrian  School  system  and  programme,  because 
unless  there  had  been  a  stir  and  a  ferment  the  scheme 
would  fall  to  the  ground  flat  and  abortive. 


THE  CAMBRIDGE  MISSION  TO  DELHI 


71 


Now  from  investigation  made  on  the  spot  in  the  daily 
companionship  of  the  head  of  the  Cambridge  Mission,  the 
Bishop's  spirit  was  deeply  stirred  within  him.  As  he 
mused  the  fire  burned,  and  he  wrote  to  Cambridge 
describing  the  opening  and  the  need  of  a  college  '  which 
should  (by  God's  help)  rally  round  it  the  more  highly 
educated  natives,  and  Hindus  trained  at  the  primary  and 
middle  Government  Schools,  training  them  indeed  for 
M.A.  degrees,  both  at  Lahore  and  Calcutta,  but  with  the 
loftier  and  purer  aim  which  Christian  teaching  imparts  to 
other  studies  when  that  teaching  is  seen  to  be  not  merely 
a  bye-end  of  an  institution,  but  its  quickening,  informing, 
and  binding  principle.'  He  drove  home  the  plea  by 
illustrating  '  the  happy  results  '  which  had  followed  the 
establishment  of  such  colleges  by  Theodore  and  Hadrian 
in  Canterbury,  by  Alcuin  at  York,  at  Alexandria  in  earlier 
times,  and  recently  at  Calcutta  and  Bombay  by  the  Jesuits, 
and  forcibly  clinched  his  argument  by  the  assertion  : 
*  This  is  the  very  crisis,  Delhi  is  the  very  place,  the 
Cambridge  Mission  is  in  several  respects,  to  say  the  least, 
the  very  instrument  which  seems  to  me  needed.'  Thus  he 
reaffirmed  the  verdict  passed  by  the  Bishop  of  Calcutta  in 
1876,  on  the  opportunity  opened  for  Cambridge  by  the 
closing  of  the  Government  College,  and  at  last  his  ideal 
based  on  the  Alexandrian  method  of  combining  theo- 
logical and  general  learning  took  shape  not  only  in  his 
Theological  School  at  Lahore,  but  also  in  the  Arts  College 
at  Delhi. 

That  Bickersteth  himself  had  already  made  up  his 
mind  in  the  direction  indicated  by  the  Bishop  can  be 
gathered  from  his  appeal  to  Cambridge,  when  he  had 
pleaded  for  the  establishment  of  a  college  where  teaching 
would  be  given  by  Christian  teachers  and  be  permeated 
with  Christian  ideas,  and  added  :  '  Will  two  laymen  of 


72 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


sufficient  attainments  and  of  high  aims  offer  to  undertake 
this  work '  ?  while  in  a  later  letter  to  Dr.  Westcott 
(September  i,  1881)  he  described  the  situation  thus: 

As  regards  the  college,  I  have  mentioned  that  our 
original  proposal  extended  only  to  establishing  a  hostel 
for  Christian  students  attending  the  Delhi  Government 
College.  The  Government  Institution  was,  however,  closed 
shortly  before  we  arrived  in  Delhi ;  and  we  found  that 
a  scheme  had  already  been  set  on  foot  by  some  of  the 
wealthier  inhabitants  of  the  city  to  establish  a  native 
college,  to  which  it  was  expected  Government  would  give 
the  usual  grants  in  aid.  We  were  anxious  that  if  possible 
nothing  should  be  done  by  us  which  might  prejudice  an 
independent  and  public-spirited  movement  of  this  kind. 
At  the  same  time  we  felt  that  far  more  beneficial  results 
might  reasonably  be  looked  for  from  an  education  which 
was  completed  under  Christian  influences,  than  if  boys 
who  had  been  trained  in  our  schools  passed  just  at  the 
period  when  their  minds  are  naturally  most  susceptible  of 
impressions  into  a  college  which  at  best  held  a  neutral 
attitude  towards  religious  truth.  Under  these  circum- 
stances it  was  during  last  summer  agreed  that  the  mission 
should  undertake  to  open  college  classes  from  January 
1 88 1  for  pupils  from  St.  Stephen's  and  other  mission 
schools.  The  limitation  left  a  wide  field  for  independent 
enterprise.  The  promoters,  however,  of  a  native  college 
failed  to  collect  sufficient  funds  to  secure  the  support  of 
the  Punjab  Government.  Their  scheme,  therefore,  has 
fallen  into  abeyance,  and  is  not  now  likely  to  be  revived. 
Since  this  happened  we  have  received  an  intimation  to  the 
effect  that  a  missionary  college  open  to  all  students, 
whether  of  Government  or  mission  schools,  and  conducted 
by  our  mission,  would  probably  receive  liberal  support 
from  the  Government.  Proposals  made  \)y  us  in  reply,, 
having  reference  mainly  to  the  amount  of  pecuniary 
assistance  we  should  require,  are  at  present  under  the 
consideration  of  the  Punjab  authorities.  If  these  negotia- 
tions have  a  satisfactory  termination,  i/ie  higlier  education 
of  so  large  a  district  as  the  South  Punjab  zvill  for  the  first 
time  have  beett  placed  in  Christian  hands. 

The  news  of  this  opening  was  received  with  enthusiasm 


THE  CAMBRIDGE  MISSION  TO  DELHI 


73 


by  the  Cambridge  Committee,  and  at  their  request  the 
Bishop  of  Durham  (Dr.  Lightfoot)  penned  a  vigorous  and 
characteristic  appeal  to  his  old  University  to  rise  to  this 
occasion. 

After  reminding  Cambridge  that  as  himself  responsible 
for  the  working  of  a  large,  populous,  and  undermanned 
diocese,  and  eager  therefore  to  welcome  zealous  and  earnest 
recruits  for  his  own  work,  he  yet  gladly  made  himself 
the  mouthpiece  of  the  cry  from  Delhi,  regarding  the 
mission  there  as  the  first  charge  on  the  evangelistic  zeal  and 
devotion  of  Cambridge,  he  then  proceeded  to  quote  the 
passage  from  Bickersteth's  letter  given  above  as  best 
describing  '  a  signal  opportunity,  unforeseen  when  the  mis- 
sion was  planned.'  In  conclusion  he  asked  for  five  more  men, 
two  for  the  new  University  and  three  for  the  more  general 
work  of  the  mission.  '  But  what  have  the  committee  to  offer 
in  return  ?  Certainly  not  wealth  or  luxury  or  ease,  but  a 
modest  stipend  sufficient  for  maintenance,  brotherly  co- 
operation and  sympathy,  opportunities  of  common  prayer 
and  devotional  exercises,  and,  above  all,  a  great  work  to  be 
done  for  Christ's  sake.  Are  there  not  five  true  sons  of 
Cambridge  to  whom  such  a  prospect  is  far  nobler  and 
brighter  and  more  alluring  than  the  immediate  comfort  of 
a  country  curacy,  or  the  ultimate  prospect  of  a  country 
rectory  ?  Are  there  not  five  men  who  are  prepared  to  lose 
their  souls  that  they  may  find  them  ?  ' 

This  appeal  was  circulated  in  November  1881,  and  in 
the  following  spring  (May  20)  a  largely  attended  meeting  ^ 
was  organised  by  the  London  Committee  at  the  College 

'  At  the  meeting  the  Rt.  Hon.  G.  Cubitt  (now  Lord  Ashcombe)  presided, 
and  the  speakers  were  Bishop  (Lightfoot)  of  Durham,  Bishop  (Harvey  Good- 
win) of  Carhsle,  Dr.  Westcott  (now  Bishop  of  Durham),  Bishop  (Benson)  of 
Truro,  Rt.  Hon.  H.  C.  Raikes,  M.P.,  Mr.  Dalrymple,  M.P.,  Canon  Farrar 
(now  Dean  of  Canterbury),  Rev.  E.  H.  Bickersteth  (now  Bishop  of  Exeter), 
Rev.  Brownlow  Maitland,  and  Mr.  C.  Raikes,  C.S.I. 


74 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


Hall,  Westminster,  to  make  the  opportunity  more  widely- 
known.  On  that  occasion  Dr.  Wcstcott  reminded  those 
present  that : 

In  the  other  Indian  universities  English  had  been  the 
one  medium  of  higher  education.  In  that  of  the  Punjab 
it  was  proposed  that  while  the  subject-matter  remained 
unchanged,  instruction  might  be  given  in  the  vernacular.^ 
Everyone  could  see  at  once  the  vast  difficulties  and  the 
corresponding  advantages  offered  by  that  scheme.  It 
involved  nothing  less  than  quickening  into  vigorous 
growth  the  language  which  answered  to  the  characteristic 
modes  of  native  thought.  Let  them  consider  for  a  moment 
what  would  have  been  the  loss  to  England  if  all  higher 
education  had  been  given  to  them  through  the  medium  of 
Greek,  what  would  have  been  the  loss  to  the  apprehension 
of  Christian  truth.  No  one  could  feel  more  intense 
gratitude  than  he  for  the  lessons  which  Greek  had  taught 
them.  But  the  Christian  truths  have  passed  into  our 
common  tongue  and  received  large  enrichments  in  the 
process.  This  represented  to  them,  he  believed,  what  we 
may  look  for  in  India.  Let  the  treasures  of  western 
thought  find  expression — it  would  be  a  long  and  hard 
work  he  knew — in  the  vernacular,  and  there  would  be  a 
double  gain  of  incalculable  value.  India  would  be  the 
richer,  and  they  would  be  the  richer.  Not  only  would  there 
be  the  power  of  conveying  all  that  they  had  learnt  of  truth 
to  every  native  in  its  most  effective  form,  but  they  would 
learn  in  due  time  those  aspects  of  the  one  Faith  which  in 
the  order  of  Providence  the  Indian  mind  was  fitted  to 
present  in  virtue  of  its  peculiar  endowment.  For  they 
must  be  blind  to  the  teaching  of  the  past,  if  they  did  not 
believe  that  God  would  enable  them  to  see  hereafter  more 
of  His  counsel  through  the  races  of  the  East.  He  con- 
cluded by  describing  the  educational  work  at  Delhi  as  an 
opportunity  for  sharing,  however  humbly,  and  it  must  be 
very  humbly,  in  moulding  the  moral  and  spiritual  bent  of 
a  great  people,  a  sacred  charge  which  had  been  undertaken, 

'  It  may  be  well  to  explain  that  all  instruction  in  the  arts  course  is 
given  through  the  medium  of  English,  though  at  the  same  time  there  are 
Arabic  and  Sanscrit  classes  connected  with  the  University,  which  have  been 
a  step  in  the  direction  pointed  out  by  Dr.  VVestcott  as  so  full  of  promise. 


THE  CAMBRIDGE  MISSION  TO  DELHI 


75 


or  rather  which  had  been  given  and  not  refused.  It  could 
not  now  be  laid  aside,  and  they  wanted  men,  Cambridge 
men,  to  fulfil  it.    koXov  to  adXov  kciI  7)  eXttI^  /xsydXr). 

On  the  point  of  language,  Edward  Bickersteth  himself 
used  to  point  out  that  '  there  is  probably  no  Christian 
doctrine,  however  deep  and  intricate,  which  the  copious 
and  pliant  language  of  India,  with  the  aid  on  the  one  side 
of  Sanscrit,  on  the  other  of  Persian  and  Arabic,  will  not 
eventually  be  able  to  express  in  a  suitable  terminology.' 
He  also  felt  that  there  was  a  profound  truth  and  insight  in 
the  forecast  of  his  old  teacher  Dr.  Westcott,  that  '  the 
intellectual  and  spiritual  sympathies  of  the  leading  peoples 
of  India  are  with  Syria  and  Greece  rather  than  with  Rome 
and  Germany,  that  they  will  move  with  greater  power 
along  the  lines  traced  out  by  Origen  and  Athanasius  than 
along  those  of  Augustine  and  Anselm  which  we  have 
followed.'  Bickersteth  held  that  this  opinion  would  in 
time  be  confirmed  by  all  experience  in  eastern  lands. 

The  St.  Stephen's  College  at  Delhi  was  eventually 
founded,  and  in  October  (1882)  the  Act  was  passed 
which  constituted  the  Punjab  University  College  at 
Lahore  a  college  complete  in  all  its  functions,  St.  Stephen's 
College  being  at  once  affiliated  to  it.  But  by  that 
tim.e  Edward  Bickersteth  had  been  invalided  to  England. 
He  was  forced  by  repeated  attacks  of  fever  to  leave  India 
in  the  August  of  1882,  confidently  expecting  to  be  back 
again  before  Christmas.  As  a  matter  of  fact,  he  never  saw 
again  the  scene  of  his  first  missionary  labours  until  the 
early  spring  of  1893,  by  which  time  he  had  been  seven 
years  Bishop  in  Japan. 

Among  the  happiest  experiences  of  his  Delhi  life  was 
the  winter  visit  paid  to  him  in  1 880-1  by  his  father  and 
stepmother.    After  Mr.  Bickersteth  had  been  twenty-five 


/O  BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 

years  vicar  of  Christ  Church,  Hampstead,  his  parishioners 
presented  him  with  a  cheque,  requesting  him  to  spend 
part  of  it  in  a  visit  to  India  to  see  his  son,  well  knowing" 
that  no  suggestion  would  be  more  agreeable  to  him. 
Accordingly  my  father,  leaving  England  in  October,  was 
met  by  my  brother  at  Calcutta,  and  travelled  with  him 
for  several  weeks,  ten  days  being  spent  at  Delhi,  inspecting 
missions  in  North  India. 

There  are  very  few  letters  of  this  Delhi  period  of  my 
brother's  life  preserved,  and  one  note  book  in  which  he 
jotted  down  scant  memoranda  is  missing.  The  absence 
of  these  must  be  a  loss  to  the  biographer,  but  enough  has 
been  said  to  show  the  part  and  lot  in  the  founding  of  the 
Cambridge  Mission  which  in  the  Providence  of  God 
Edward  Bickersteth  was  allowed  to  fill  ;  and  the  harder 
task  now  remains  of  trying  to  draw  back  the  veil  from  the 
inner  life  of  the  mission,  rightly  hidden  from  the  world, 
but  for  all  that  '  the  very  pulse  of  the  machine.' 

In  conclusion,  the  following  paper  of  personal  recollec- 
tions, kindly  contributed  by  the  Rev.  H.  U.  Weitbrecht, 
D.D.,  C.M.S.  Missionary  at  Batala,  will  be  read  with 
interest  : 

My  first  introduction  to  Edward  Bickersteth  was  in 
February  1876,  when  he  was  residing  at  Pembroke  College 
as  a  Fellow.  Having  resigned  my  curacy  at  Liverpool,  I 
was  on  the  way  to  London  to  offer  my  services  to  the 
C.M.S.,  and  spent  some  days  with  the  Rev.  T.  V.  (after- 
wards Bishop)  French,  whose  appeal  on  behalf  of  the 
Lahore  Divinity  School  had  drawn  my  attention.  Mr. 
French's  thoughts  were  naturally  full  of  the  plan  then  in 
hand  for  starting  a  Cambridge  University  Mission,  and  he 
offered  to  take  me  with  him  to  a  meeting  which  was  to  be 
held  at  Cambridge  to  discuss  and  set  forward  the  project. 
I  was  only  too  pleased  to  go,  and  still  more  gratified  on 
arriving  at  Cambridge  to  find  that  my  host  there  was  the 
man  who  was  the  moving  spirit  of  the  whole  scheme.  The 


THE  CAMBRIDGE  MISSION  TO  DELHI 


days  spent  in  Bickersteth's  rooms  at  Cambridge  saw  the 
beginning  of  a  lifelong  friendship. 

In  May  1876  I  went  to  reside  at  Cambridge  for  three 
months  for  the  purpose  of  reading  Sanscrit,  and  during 
that  time  we  had  many  opportunities  of  discussing  the 
work  of  missions,  past,  present,  and  future,  and  especially 
the  great  questions  of  how  to  influence  the  philosophical 
and  educated  classes  of  India,  and  to  train  the  clergy  and 
preachers  of  her  Church.  So  strong  were  our  sympathies 
that  Bickcrsteth  proposed  to  me  to  join  the  new  Brother- 
hood, but  being  already  pledged  to  the  C.M.S.  this  was 
impossible. 

It  was,  however,  a  delight  and  a  privilege  that  I 
repeatedly  enjoyed,  to  have  the  opportunity  of  intimate 
intercourse  with  Bickersteth  in  India,  where  he  followed 
me  a  year  later.  Early  in  1879  I  saw  him  at  Delhi,  and 
wondered  at  the  progress  he  had  made  in  the  language 
amid  the  enormous  mass  of  work  that  had  devolved  upon 
him  when  left  in  full  charge  of  the  widely  ramified 
mission  in  his  first  year.  Two  contrasting  pictures  of  him 
come  to  my  remembrance  in  that  year.  The  first  is  that 
of  a  little  service  with  a  handful  of  CJiamar  Christians  in 
one  of  the  bastis  of  Delhi.  We  sat  on  a  diarpoy  (cot) ;  a 
few  prayers  were  read,  a  rude  hymn  sung  to  ruder  instru- 
ments, and  a  simple  address  given  by  Bickersteth.  The 
other  scene  was  laid  in  Simla,  where  we  met  a  few  months 
later.  Bickersteth  had  readily  accepted  an  invitation  to 
lecture  in  English  to  an  audience  of  non-Christians,  con- 
sisting chiefly  of  well  educated  and  high-caste  men  con- 
nected with  the  Government  offices  in  Simla,  many  of 
them  adherents  of  the  theistic  Brahmo  Samaj.  The  subject 
that  he  chose  was  the  trial  of  Jesus  Christ.  In  his  keen 
and  polished,  yet  earnest  and  sympathetic  style,  he  drove 
home  forcibly  the  argument  for  the  divinity  of  the  Saviour, 
from  the  fact  that  He  staked  life  and  reputation  on  the 
truth  of  His  assertion  that  He  was  the  Son  of  God.  Not 
long  after,  when  we  were  on  a  walking  tour  together,  some 
remarks  on  the  same  subject  in  a  Brahmo  journal  called 
forth  a  letter  from  Bickersteth,  which  he  read  to  me  before 
sending  it.  It  was  in  the  same  style  as  his  lecture — that  is 
to  say,  a  specimen  of  what  Christian  controversy  should 
be.  One  cannot  be  too  thankful  that  the  Oxford  Mission 
to  Calcutta,  a  result  of  the  stimulus  which  Bickersteth  gave 


78 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


and  which  deals  with  the  same  class  of  people,  fully  main- 
tains the  same  tone. 

The  walking  tour  that  I  referred  to  covered  a  happy 
ten  days  of  that  same  summer  holiday.  We  had  for  com- 
panions Murray  and  (I  think)  one  other,  and  we  walked 
fifty  miles  out  to  Kotgur  by  the  Simla-Tibet  road,  returning 
the  same  way.  Delightful  was  the  first  nearer  approach  to 
the  great  snow  range  of  the  interior  Himalayas,  delightful 
the  talks  by  the  way  and  the  Greek  Testament  readings  in 
the  forest  or  the  hospitable  mission  house  in  the  secluded 
station  of  Kotgur. 

Three  years  later  came  the  sad  news  that  Bickersteth 
was  invalided  home.  The  meetings  at  Diocesan  Synods, 
ordinations,  and  like  occasions  were  at  an  end,  nor  did  I  see 
him  again  till  after  he  had  been  for  some  time  as  Bishop  in 
Japan.  In  April  1891  I  was  passing  with  my  wife,  who 
was  recovering  from  a  long  and  weary  illness,  through 
Tokyo,  and  there  we  were  warmly  welcomed  by  our  old 
friend,  and  spent  some  days  in  his  house.  Here  it  certainly 
seemed  to  me  that  his  special  gifts  had  found  a  fit  field  for 
their  exercise.  Faithful  and  strenuous  in  whatever  task  he 
was  called  to  do,  whether  small  or  great,  he  was,  I  take  it, 
more  especially  fitted  to  deal  with  the  larger  questions  of 
policy  and  principle,  and  to  teach,  influence,  and  guide 
educated  men  and  women.  How  effectually  he  did  so  his 
biography  will  sufficiently  show. 

The  last  time  we  met  was  early  in  1 893,  as  Bickersteth 
was  passing  through  India.  Even  two  years  before  he  had 
seemed  to  be  exhausted  by  work  beyond  his  strength,  and 
now  his  old  Indian  trouble  had  returned  to  some  extent. 
But  he  was  full  of  interest  in  all  that  he  saw  at  Batala,  where 
I  was  then  stationed,  and  ready  to  hold  a  Bible  reading  for 
the  missionaries,  which  brought  to  memory  our  Himalayan 
intercourse.  I  parted  from  him  with  apprehension  ;  yet 
God  allowed  him  to  work  a  while  longer,  and  when  the  sad 
news  of  his  departure  came  one  could  but  feel  that  a  full 
life-work  had  been  crowded  into  his  comparatively  few 
years,  and  thank  God  for  that  life  with  its  deeds  and 
memories. 


79 


CHAPTER  IV 

THE  DELHI  MISSION — THE  LIFE 

'  You  have  given  much  attention  to  the  methods  and  helps  which  con- 
tribute to  the  cultivation  of  the  spiritual  life,  and  I  am  sure  that  this  should 
be  the  distinguishing  mark  of  a  Brotherhood,  and  that  on  it  eventually^  all 
special  success  will  depend.' — Letter  from  Rev.  Edward  Bickerstcth  to  the 
Rev.  G.  A.  Lefroy,  November  20,  1 884. 

'  The  picture  I  have  always  had  of  him  is  at  the  close  of 
a  day  in  Delhi.  I  stayed  with  them  once  in  the  hot 
weather,  when  we  all  slept  on  the  roof  When  we  had 
all  laid  down,  he  walked  up  and  down  the  parapet,  as  I 
thought  praying  over  the  city  from  a  place  where  he  could 
look  down  upon  it.  His  tall  figure  against  the  dark  sky 
made  quite  an  impression  on  me,  and  I  feel  sure  that  the 
burden  of  the  city's  needs  weighed  on  him  nobly.  ...  It 
was  he  who  placed  the  Delhi  Mission  on  a  very  high  level 
of  continual  consecration.'  .  So  writes  (August  1897)  the 
Rev.  J.  H.  Lloyd,  now  Vicar  of  St.  Giles',  Norwich, 
formerly  Principal  of  St.  John's  College  (C.M.S.),  Agra. 
'  His  was  indeed  a  consecrated  life,  and  India  can  never 
forget  him,'  was  the  testimony  of  India's  late  Metropolitan 
Bishop,  Dr.  Johnson  of  Calcutta,  in  a  letter  of  the  same 
date. 

Now  it  will  be  conceded  that  spiritual  consecration 
issues  in  devotional  life  and  craves  for  expression  in 
devotional  habits,  and  it  is  the  purpose  of  this  chapter 
to  draw  aside  the  veil  as  far  as  may  be,  and  show  how 
'  frequent  opportunities  of  united  devotion '  was  the  rule 


8o 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


of  the  Delhi  Brotherhood  as  conceived  by  Edward 
Bickersteth.  In  his  first  paper  before  the  Cambridge 
Church  Society  (February  9,  1876)  he  summed  up  the 
advantages  of  a  Community  mission,  looked  at  from  this 
aspect,  in  these  words  : 

Then,  and  on  this  I  lay  especial  stress,  there  is  the 
opportunity  which  will  be  afforded  for  united  religious 
exercises  and  services.  Without  wishing  for  one  moment 
to  impugn  the  belief  in  the  special  presence  of  God  with 
the  solitary  labourer,  yet  to  most  men  there  is  no  greater 
help  in  a  work  of  abounding  difficulty  than  the  opportunity 
and  the  obligation  of  common  devotion.  It  is  striking 
to  notice  that  even  a  St.  Francis  Xavier,  after  one  of  his 
great  missionary  journeys,  refused  to  set  forth  again 
until  he  had  time  to  recruit  his  spiritual  force  by  staying 
awhile  in  the  retreat  of  his  college. 

'  Frequent  opportunity  of  united  devotion  '  was  there- 
fore quite  as  much  the  aim  of  the  Cambridge  Mission  as 
even  concentration  of  effort,  subdivision  of  labour,  con- 
tinuity of  teaching,  and  leisure  for  literary  work.  Edward 
Bickersteth,  although  brought  up  among  Evangelicals,  who 
twenty-five  years  ago  had  not  yet  made  up  their  minds  as 
to  the  spiritual  results  of  such  times  of  retirement,  was 
indeed  not  unfamiliar  with  the  blessing  of  retreats  and 
quiet  days,  for  his  father,  who  had  taken  the  lead  in  this 
as  in  other  matters,  had  for  some  years  planned  and 
carried  out  an  annual  Retreat  at  Christ  Church,  Hamp- 
stead.  Among  the  conductors  appear  such  names  as  the 
Rev.  Canon  Thorold  (afterwards  Bishop  successiv^ely  ot 
Rochester  and  of  Winchester),  the  Rev.  Canon  W.  H. 
Fremantle  of  Claydon,  Bucks  (afterwards  Dean  of  Ripon), 
the  Rev.  Canon  Garbett,  and  the  Rev.  W.  Boyd  Carpenter 
(afterwards  Bishop  of  Ripon). 

Another  help  to  his  devotional  life  came  to  him  through 
his  friendship  v/ith  the  Rev.  Canon  Wilkinson  (then  Vicar 


THE  DELHI  MISSION — THE  LIFE 


8i 


of  St.  Peter's,  Eaton  Square,  and  successively  Bishop  of 
Truro  and  of  St.  Andrews),  with  whom  he  stayed  in  the 
spring  of  1877,  and  who  became,  in  God's  providence, 
one  of  the  strongly  formative  influences  of  his  spiritual 
life. 

Bickersteth  therefore  left  England  for  his  new  work 
strongly  imbued  with  the  conviction  that  prayer  is  worth 
our  best  time,  '  more  things  being  wrought  by  prayer  than 
man  dreams  of,'  and  also  not  without  some  experience 
as  to  the  best  way  of  organising  concerted  action  in 
prayer. 

It  was  to  him  a  matter  of  special  thankfulness  that 
the  ten  days'  visit  of  the  Bishop  of  Calcutta  to  Delhi 
(which,  as  already  mentioned,  followed  close  on  his  own 
arrival  there)  ended  with  a  quiet  day  of  devotion  : 

A  practice  which  will  (he  writes),  I  hope,  at  intervals 
be  always  continued  in  our  mission.  .  .  .  We  found  the 
practice  quite  as  helpful  here  in  a  heathen  land  as  some 
of  us  in  former  days  had  done  in  London.  There  was  a 
peculiar  sense  of  calm  and  strength  in  the  gathering  of 
our  little  company  to  pray  both  for  itself  and  for  the  great 
heathen  city,  whose  cries  we  could  so  plainly  hear  as  we 
knelt  in  our  silent  church. 

While,  writing  after  a  year  in  India,  we  find  him  ex- 
pressing the  hope  : 

That  it  may  be  possible  to  arrange  for  a  longer  period  of 
withdrawal  from  direct  work  [than  is  afforded  by  a  quiet 
day].  If  this  is  necessary  in  England,  it  is  still  more  so  in 
India.  Mission  life  is  life  at  high  pressure,  and  in  itself 
seems  to  have  but  little  leisure  for  cultivating  recollected- 
ness  and  prayerfulness  of  spirit.  For  the  sake  of  the 
mission  itself  it  will  be  very  desirable,  I  believe,  from  time 
to  time  to  escape  from  missionary  duties  altogether. 

A  paper  on  '  Missionary  Training,'  which  he  read  in  the 


82 


BISHOP  EDWARD  ISICKERSTETH 


ScUvyn  Divinity  School,  Cambridge  (April  9,  1884),  sums 
up  his  experience  gained  at  Delhi  in  these  words  : 

No  men,  I  believe,  as  a  class  so  need  the  help  of  a 
regulated  devotional  life  as  missionaries.  Contact  with 
heathenism  and  Islam  tends  more  rapidly  to  exhaust 
spiritual  energy  than  anything  else.  Happy,  then,  those 
whose  spiritual  training  has  led  them  to  value  regular 
reading  of  Holy  Scripture,  meditation,  frequent  com- 
munions, daily  times  of  retirement,  retreats,  and  the  other 
different  helps  to  spiritual  progress  for  the  voluntary  use 
of  which  opportunity  is  now,  as  a  rule,  given  in  our 
theological  colleges.  The  exigencies  of  foreign  work  may 
in  after  years  cut  them  off  for  a  time  from  some  of  these 
blessings — as,  for  instance,  from  Holy  Communion;  but  if 
it  be  so,  they  will  carry  with  them  the  desires  and  habits 
which  the  holy  practice  of  their  years  of  training  will  have 
implanted  in  them,  and  that  sense  of  the  Divine  Presence 
which  regulated  practice  so  fosters  that  it  abides,  even 
when  the  practice  itself  must  for  a  time  be  laid  aside. 

Of  a  piece  with  this  was  the  great  value  which  Bicker- 
steth  had  learnt  to  set  on  intercessory  prayer.    He  writes  : 

The  Book  of  Prayers  published  by  the  S.P.G.  is  in 
daily  use  at  our  Mission  House  at  three  o'clock  in  the 
afternoon,  which,  allowing  for  the  difference  of  time 
between  India  and  England,  associates  us  with  you  in 
common  supplication  about  the  same  hour.' 

This  conviction  of  the  duty  and  privilege  of  regular 
and  detailed  intercession  only  deepened  as  years  went 
on,  so  that  during  his  episcopate  of  Japan,  and  right  on  to 
the  last  week  of  his  life,  not  a  day  passed  without  his 
bringing  before  God  the  needs  of  each  mission  station  in 

'  From  a  paper  issued  in  Cambridge  it  appears  that  a  short  service  liad 
been  started  at  9.30  p.m.  on  the  first  Saturday  in  each  month  at  the  Mission 
Ilouse  in  Jesus  Lane,  Cambridge,  '  as  Mr.  Bickersteth  had  asked  that  those 
interested  in  the  mission  would  specially  remember  it  in  prayer  that  day,' 
being  that  on  which  the  monthly  service  for  English-speaking  workers  was 
hekl'in  Delhi. 


THE  DELHI  MISSION — THE  LIFE 


83 


his  diocese  and  its  workers.  No  matter  where  he  was  at 
the  hour  assigned  to  that  duty  (generally  about  2  r.M.) — 
in  crowded  railway  train  or  busy  steamer,  or  in  the  quiet  of 
his  study — the  closed  eyes  and  recollectedness  of  bearing 
would  tell  those  who  knew  him  best  that  the  Bishop  had 
entered  the  presence  of  God  bearing  his  people  on  his  heart. 
The  following  letter  touches  on  these  points. 

Delhi  :  November  8,  1878. 

My  dear  Sam, — You  are  the  most  excellent  of  fellows 
in  writing  me  letters.  I  quite  look  forward  to  getting  them, 
and  I  am  the  worst  of  replyers,  if  such  a  word  there  be. 
But  I  must  send  you  a  line  to-day,  even  though  Hunter  is 
away  at  Kurnal,  and  I  have  both  churches  (station  and 
mission)  to  preach  in  on  Sunday,  which  meaneth  three 
sermons. 

Before  I  forget  it,  about  the  Highgate  boys.  I'll  try 
and  send  them  a  letter  for  their  magazine  in  December. 
I  have  already  sent  to  the  printer  a  letter  to  Mr.  Bullock 
of  the  S.P.G.,  of  which  I  will  send  copies  home  as  soon  as 
it  is  ready,  and  you  can  send  them — -I  am  afraid  it  is  not 
much  of  an  epistle — to  Wordsworth,  Holland,  Dalton,  &c., 
with  my  love. 

An  article  I  have  written  on  '  retreats '  in  the  '  Indian 
Christian  Intelligencer '  is,  I  hope,  better  worth  perusing. 
It  ought  to  have  been  out  now,  but  the  MS.  was  mislaid, 
and  it  will  appear  in  the  December  number. 

If  I  feel  one  thing  more  strongly  than  another  about 
this  missionary  work,  after  a  year's  thought  and  work 
(more  work  than  thought  though),  it  is  that  the  '  Wilkinson  ' 
idea  of  missions  is  the  right  one.  I  call  it  the  '  Wilkinson 
idea '  because  I  got  it  most,  and  realised  it  most,  in  talking 
to  him.  I  mean  that  the  results,  as  far  as  results  are 
granted,  will  be  in  proportion,  generally  speaking,  to  the 
spirituality  of  the  agents.  Increase  your  central  fire;  i.e. 
be  more  filled  with  the  Spirit,  have  a  stronger  hold  on 
verities,  live  more  in  the  sense  of  the  unseen,  realise  (like 
Brother  Lawrence)  the  overshadowing  Presence,  let  Christ 
dwell  in  our  hearts  Bia  r!]s  ttlo-tsws  (taking  those  words  in 
their  mystery  and  fulness  and  blessedness),  crush  down 
selfishness  and  sin,  and  then  through  perhaps  only  two  or 


V,  2 


84 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


three  such  agents  more  good  might  be  done  in  a  short  while 
than  by  fifty  ordinary  Christians.  Our  present  Bishop  '  goes 
towards  the  ideal ;  none,  of  course,  attain  it,  as  its  measure 
is  '  the  measure  of  the  stature  of  the  fulness  of  Christ ' — but 
he  exemplifies  to  me  to  some  extent  the  idea  one  can  form 
and  dimly  strive  after.  Such  men  breathe  a  power  around 
them  ;  they  are  not,  like  your  Evangelistic  preachers,  always 
aiming  at  conversions  in  the  narrower  sense  of  the  term  ; 
but  still  their  whole  life  tends  to  convert  people,  whether 
dead  Christians  or  inquiring  heathens.  They  are  not  always 
talking  about  the  Cross,  but  yet  they  lead  men  to  it  and, 
too,  induce  them  to  take  it  up  ;  they  deal  with  all  truths 
as  they  come  across  their  path,  thankful  to  set  men  right 
on  any  point,  or  to  plant  any  seed  which  may  grow  and 
fructify. 

What  a  wonderful  thing  is  that  peace  which  God  can 
give  to  those  who  '  walk  in  the  light.'  Emphatically  it  is 
a  gift :  it  is  no  use  striving  after  it  directly :  aim  more 
singly  at  God's  glory,  strive  to  be  purer,  holier,  better, 
and  God  gives  it  as  a  reward  which  indeed  passeth  under- 
standing. 

There  is  evening  church  bell,  so  I  must  hasten  on. 

Later,  after  cJiuirli. — Some  business  turned  up  just  before 
church,  so  I  had  to  stop  ;  but  I  have  given  up  my  '  basti ' 
service  to-night  to  our  schoolmaster,  so  that  I  may  get 
through  some  letters.  One  of  the  trials  of  this  life  is  the 
multiplicity  of  small  things  :  so  likely  are  they  to  disturb 
that  peace  I  was  speaking  of  if  one  lets  them — e.g.  since  I 
began  to  write,  a  letter  from  a  young  lady  to  say  she  would 
be  glad  if  I  would  send  her  a  cheque  for  travelling  expenses 
(I  have  just  engaged  her  as  Zenana  teacher)  ;  the  names 
of  my  class  to  be  called  over  ;  some  money  to  be  sent  to 
Hunter  in  the  district ;  a  man  to  be  talked  to  who  wanted  a 
tip  and  didn't  get  it ;  a  letter  about  a  house  which  has  just 
turned  up  and  might  suit  our  girls'  .school,  and  I  dare  say- 
some  other  matters  which  I  now  forget.  There  is  a  fine 
passage  in  chap.  iii.  of  the  '  Imitation  '  (wrongly  translated 
in  the  English  version,  the  'ones'  should  all  have  capital 
O's)  about  the  unity  of  work.  It  isn't  so  easy  to  see  that  each 
of  the  manifold  trifles  tends  towards  the  development  of 
'  the  kingdom  of  God,'  but  it  is  plain  that  none  of  them 


'  I.e.  Bishop  Thomas  Valpy  French,  of  Lahore. 


THE  DELHI  MISSION — THE  LIFE 


85 


could  be  omitted  without  detriment  to  that  little  part  of  the 
kingdom  where  each  little  trifle  arises. 

Ever  your  most  affectionate  Brother, 

Edward  Bickerstetii. 

A  new  feature  of  the  first  year's  work  in  Delhi  was  the 
establishment  in  St.  Stephen's  Church  of  a  monthly 
devotional  service  for  English-speaking  workers,  consist- 
ing of  a  lesson,  two  hymns,  a  missionary  litany,  and  an 
address. 

Among  the  subjects  which  have  occupied  us 
liitherto,  (he  writes)  have  been  '  Times  of  Retirement ' 
"  United  /\ction,'  '  Prayer,'  '  Holy  Communion,'  &c. 
This  and  the  daily  use  of  a  series  of  special  collects  have 
been  found  by  all  real  helps  towards  realising  the  oneness 
of  our  work  and  its  dependence  on  the  one  Source  of  life 
and  strength. 

Out  of  this  monthly  service  sprang  daily  morning 
prayer  and  a  Thursday  celebration  of  Holy  Communion 
for  English-speaking  mission  workers. 

Even  in  itself  (Bickersteth  writes  in  1879)  there  is,  I 
think,  real  use  in  the  bell  of  a  Christian  church  being  heard 
twice  a  day  in  a  city  where  the  cry  of  the  muezzin  is  never 
omitted  from  the  platform  of  a  hundred  mosques. 

And  in  1882  he  writes: 

Hindus  consider  us  a  very  irreligious  people,  and 
it  has  been  thought  that  one  reason  of  the  fewness  and 
the  want  of  stedfastness  in  Muhammadan  converts  is  to 
be  found  in  the  inadequacy  of  the  provision  for  public 
devotion  in  the  Church.  Muhammad  knew  what  he  was 
about  when  he  established  the  five  obligatory  hours  of 
prayer,  besides  three  others  for  the  specially  religious. 

A  weekly  devotional  meeting  for  catechists  and  native 
Christian  masters  was  started  in  October  1878,  and  the 
Bishop  of  Lahore  (Dr.  French),  who  was  then  on  a  visit  to 


86 


BISHOP  EDWARD 


BICKERSTETH 


the  mission,  conducted  the  first  of  these.  Bickersteth 
writes  that  '  it  will  be  calculated  to  give  a  tone  to  the 
week's  work,'  and  it  was  this  higher  and  more  spiritual 
tone  on  which  he  set  an  ever-increasing  value  as  he  saw 
more  of  missionary  success  and  missionary  failure.  He 
also  circulated  a  special  subject  for  prayer  every  month  in 
the  mission,  to  secure  that  prayer  should  be  offered  with 
the  understanding  as  well  as  with  the  spirit. 

The  need  of  pastoral  and  devotional  books,  which 
hitherto  had  been  infrequently  used  in  Delhi,  was  much 
felt.  Bickersteth  often  alludes  to  it,  and  regrets  that  the 
catechists  had  no  such  book  to  use  on  their  way  to  their 
work  and  again  on  their  return.  It  is  characteristic  of 
him  that  on  his  arrival  in  Delhi  his  first  present  to  each 
of  the  native  catechists  had  been  a  copy  of  St.  Augustine's 
'  Confessions ' — 'a  book  [he  writes]  which  has  been  recently 
translated  into  Urdu,  and  which  seems  wonderfully  to 
commend  itself  to  the  native  mind.'  ^ 

But  '  a  man's  praying  power  is  not  a  mere  arbitrary 
possession.'  He  cannot  command  it  when  he  will.  It  is 
the  result  of  the  growth,  generally  of  the  slow  growth,  of 
his  spiritual  character,  the  development  of  a  faith  that 
has  long  communed  with  God.  No  account  of  the  inner 
life  of  the  Cambridge  Mission  would  be  complete  without 
some  reference  to  the  private  habits  and  personal  religion 
of  the  first  head  of  the  mission.  In  God's  providence  he 
was  sent  to  Delhi  not  only  to  plant  the  Cambridge  Mission 
but  also  to  purge  the  mission  in  Delhi  of  many  weak 
adherents  to  the  Christian  Church,  and  to  raise  the  standard 
of  personal  holiness  among  the  Christian  converts  as  well 

'  It  may  here  be  noted  that  a  book  of  historical  sketches,  entitled  The 
Women  of  Christendom  (published  by  the  S.P.C.K.),  was  written  at  his 
request  by  his  friend,  the  late  Mrs.  Charles,  author  of  The  Chronicles  of  the 
Schonberg  Cotta  Family,  for  use  in  Zenana  work. 


THE  DELHI  MISSION^ — THE  LIFE 


87 


as  among  the  European  workers.  This  result  could  never 
have  been  attained  had  it  not  been  for  his  own  strenuous 
strivings  after  holiness.  He  was  not  a  man  who  kept  a 
devotional  diary  in  which  he  poured  out  his  soul  almost 
with  the  freedom  and  fulness  with  which  a  man  talks  to  his 
friend.  But  he  began  a  habit  (February  1 876)  a  year  before 
he  left  England,  which  he  seems  never  to  have  intermitted 
during  his  sojourn  at  Delhi  and  for  years  afterwards,  of 
noting  down  each  occasion  on  which  he  received  Holy 
Communion — the  place,  date,  and  the  special  subject  of 
prayer,  thanksgiving,  or  intercession  then  uppermost  in  his 
mind.  They  are  noted  with  the  utmost  brevity,  but  they 
supply  a  continuous  comment  on  his  life  of  spiritual 
endeavour,  and  few,  if  any,  of  the  chief  interests  of  his  work 
fail  to  find  a  place  in  these  entries  as  the  years  roll  on. 

In  giving  a  few  examples  as  a  key  to  some  of  the  self- 
discipline  and  training  of  the  future  Missionary  Bishop,  it 
must  be  understood  that  he  himself  would  have  been  the 
first  to  deprecate  their  being  regarded  as  other  than 
the  ordinary  practice  in  the  life  of  a  growing  Christian. 
Often  these  eucharistic  resolutions  (whether  made  in 
Pembroke  Chapel  or  in  the  cities  and  villages  of  Northern 
India)  were  of  the  simplest,  as  : 

To  look  day  by  day  for  a  happy  sense  of  the  Presence 
of  Christ ; 
Or, 

For  an  immediate  reference  and  obedience  to  Him 
such  as  was  that  of  the  disciples  to  the  Son  of  Man  in  the 
days  of  His  ministry. 

Or, 

For  early  rising  [which  for  long  was  a  difficulty  to  him, 
but  for  which  he  continuously  strove  until  he  acquired 
the  habit]. 

Lent  was  always  observed  with  special  attention,  care 
being  taken  at  Easter  to  note  down  with  frank  fidelity 


88  BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 

success  or  failure,  progress  or  defeat.  Thus  after  his  first 
Lent  in  India  he  notes  on  Easter  Day  (April  21,  1878): 

My  Lenten  Rule  has  been  much  broken,  partly  by  my 
own  want  of  zeal,  partly  by  Murray's  illness  and  the  great 
rush  of  work  which  came  in  on  me  on  Winter's  departure. 

Then  follows  reference  to  the  points  of  fasting  and 
self-denial,  which  he  had  set  himself  to  observe,  with  the 
characteristic  touch  of  common-sense  :  '  Remember  that 
any  fasting  which  weakened  would  be  wrong  in  this 
country,'  and  then  follow  these  resolutions  : 

A.  During  this  hot  weather  it  is  essential  for  me  to  rise 
and  go  to  bed  at  such  hours  as  at  all  cost  to  obtain  time 
for  prayer. 

B.  To  daily  pray  amid  the  great  responsibilities  of  my 
office  for  very  special  grace  and  power,  and  for 

C.  Calmness  and  the  sense  of  Christ's  Presence  amid  a 
multitude  of  little  things,  and 

D.  That  my  sense  of  responsibility  as  a  minister  of  the 
Church  may  not  be  weakened  by  isolation  or  residence 
among  heathen. 

At  times  he  would  take  one  main  subject  for  a  whole 
year,  and  e.g.  try  to  practise  humility  in  various  ways 
throughout  that  time.    So  he  would  resolve  : 

Not  to  read  for.  the  sake  of  having  read. 
Not  to  speak  for  effect  in  the  presence  of  superiors  or 
inferiors. 

Not  to  love  authority  for  its  own  sake. 
To  care  for  truth,  not  supremacy  in  argument. 
To  guard  against  over-sensitiveness,  probably  due  to 
pride  (think  of  Christ's  humility). 

For  guidance  on  the  subject  of  confession. 

Or  he  would  seek  for  a  '  love  of  souls  born  of  love  to 
God,'  and  would  pray  that  he  might  '  maintain  an  intense 
desire  for  the  conversion  and  helping  of  souls,'  and  that  he 
might  'let  nothing  interfere  with  the  actual  effort  to  draw 


THE  DELHI  MISSION— THE  LIFE 


89 


souls  to  God,  or  nearer  to  God.'  At  this  time  he  had 
been  much  impressed  with  the  burning  love  of  the  Rev. 
R.  Bateman,  C.M.S.  missionary  at  Narowal,  of  whom  in 
after  years  he  loved  to  speak  as  '  the  apostle  of  the 
Punjab.' 

At  another  time  he  took  a  year  of '  seeking  God's  glory 
because  I  love  Him,  and  progressively  as  I  love  Him  more 
— so  overcoming  (i)  passion  ;  (2)  self-seeking  and  selfish- 
ness, specially  in  unreadiness  to  give  up  plans  ;  (3)  unreadi- 
ness to  meet  others.' 

Sometimes  he  would  concentrate  his  thoughts  on  inter- 
cession, and  the  names  of  his  fellow-workers  (Carlyon, 
Murray,  Lcfroy,  Allnutt,  R,  R.  Winter)  constantly  recur 
in  this  way. 

Nor  did  he  omit  thanksgiving — e.g.  '  because  his  midday 
and  pre-Communion  meditation  had  been  blessed,' '  because 
he  had  been  able  to  control  his  thoughts  at  the  time  of 
consecration,'  or  '  for  the  experience  of  a  deeper  reverence 
at  the  time  of  reception  of  the  Holy  Eucharist,'  or '  because 
of  some  glimpses  of  His  Presence.' 

It  will  be  understood  that  these  resolutions,  which  I 
have  here  necessarily  strung  together,  were  used  by  him 
singly,  and  that  this  watchful  soldier  of  the  Cross  let  his 
whole  soul  go  out,  now  to  one  point  and  now  to  another, 
in  which  he  sought  a  closer  likeness  to  his  Lord.  Though 
he  framed  for  himself,  and  used  at  intervals,  a  carefully 
constructed  scheme  of  self-examination  based  on  his 
ordination  vows,  yet  he  never  practised  and  never  advised 
the  indiscriminate  use  of  a  long  list  of  questions  which  tend 
either  to  depress  or  to  deceive  the  questioner.  Those 
who,  in  India  or  elsewhere,  have  attended  retreats  and  quiet 
days  conducted  by  Edward  Bickersteth  have  borne  witness 
to  the  power  of  his  addresses,  not  only  as  uplifting,  but  as 
most  practical,  and  his  spiritual  counsels  to  others  could 


90 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


never  have  been  so  thorough,  so  searching,  or  so  stimulat- 
ing had  they  not  been  the  reflection  of  his  own  spiritual 
life. 

Further  proof  of  Bickersteth's  sense  of  the  great  impor- 
tance of  an  ordered  devotional  life  is  given  in  a  paper  on 
'  System  in  Private  Prayer '  which  he  read  on  his  return 
from  India  in  the  rooms  of  his  friend,  the  Rev.  Heriz 
Smith,  Fellow  of  Pembroke  College.  After  anticipating 
'  the  objections  often  brought  in  perfect  good  faith  against 
method  in  devotion,  on  the  ground  that  though  order  and 
form  were  necessary  for  public  worship,  yet  nowhere  is  a 
method  less  needed,  or  perhaps  more  out  of  place,  than  in  the 
access  of  a  soul  to  God,  and  in  its  personal  and  private 
approach  to  Him,  he  acknowledged  that  anything  which 
could  interfere  with  the  sense  of  filial  confidence  towards  God 
on  the  part  of  the  suppliant  must  be  opposed  to  the  first 
principles  of  our  Lord's  teaching,  and  he  wholly  refused  to 
admit  as  valid  d  priori  objections  to  a  systematised  religion. 
Taking  the  seventeenth  century  as  his  example — a  century 
which  has  not  yet  been  adequately  appreciated,  as  it  was 
the  century  of  Bacon,  Descartes,  and  Leibnitz  in  philosophy, 
of  Harvey,  Newton,  and  Halley  in  natural  science,  and  in 
religion  of  the  Oratorians,  Port  Royalists,  and  Quietists 
with  Fenelon  in  France  ;  of  Spener  and  the  Pietists  in 
Germany ;  of  Molinos  in  Italy ;  and  of  the  school  of 
Bishop  Andrewes,  the  Puritans,  and  the  Cambridge  Platonists 
in  England — he  went  on  to  cite  the  example  of  Bishop 
Andrewes  (once  Master  of  his  own  college) — a  man  great 
alike  as  a  scholar,  a  preacher,  an  administrator,  and  a 
linguist — of  Nicholas  Ferrar,  of  George  Herbert,  of  Bishop 
Cosin,  as  evidence  of  the  very  partial  application  of  such 
objections.  He  then  enumerated  the  positive  advantages 
which  had  led  men  of  great  spiritual  discernment  to  the 
adoption  of  system  in  prayer  and  the  other  parts  of 


THE  DELHI  MISSION — THE  LIFE  9I 

devotion.  Among  these  were  :  (i)  the  maintenance  of  due 
comprehensiveness  and  variety  in  prayer  ;  (2)  the  readiest 
help  against  wandering  thoughts  ;  (3)  security  for  terse 
and  simple  language,  such  as  becomes  creatures  in  the 
presence  of  a  Creator,  servants  before  a  Lord,  sinners  before 
a  Judge  ;  (4)  the  means  of  bringing  into  use  the  treasures 
of  the  past.'    In  conclusion  he  said  : 

We  have  had  a  great  deal  of  thinking  done  for  us,  and 
this  is  no  less  true  of  devotion  than  of  philosophy.  It  is 
not  possible  to  believe  that  God  can  have  so  endowed  the 
Church  of  later  days  with  the  bequests  of  the  past,  and  at 
the  same  time  have  meant  them  to  lie  idle  and  infructuous 
on  the  shelves  of  libraries,  instead  of  being,  in  proportion 
to  their  power  and  excellence,  still  used  as  the  vehicle  of 
prayer  and  intercession. 

In  accordance  with  this  was  Bickersteth's  frequent 
advice  to  use  at  the  time  of  private  devotion,  first,  '  a 
book  of  prayers  by  some  approved  author  or  collector, 
reverent,  sober,  and  full- — the  gain  being  great  if  such  a 
book  was  interleaved — and  secondly,  a  MS.  book  in  which 
each  missionary  should  arrange  and  collect  for  himself  such 
prayers  as  he  valued.' 

The  testimony  of  Dr.  Phillips  Brooks  (afterwards  Bishop 
of  Massachusetts)  on  this  point  is  striking.  Speaking  in 
1885  at  the  College  Hall,  Westminster,  he  thus  referred  to 
his  visit  iiearly  three  years  previously  to  the  Cambridge 
Mission,  Delhi  : 

I  was  struck  by  the  consecration  of  the  missionaries 
to  their  work,  and  by  their  sincere  piety.  I  shall  never 
forget  those  simple  noonday  services  in  the  little  mission 
chapel,  in  which  they  consecrate  themselves  and  their 
work  to  God.  I  have  been  present  at  no  services  which 
left  upon  my  mind  a  more  profound  impression. 

Enough  has  been  said  to  prove  the  spirit  in  which  the 
first  Head  of  the  Cambridge  Mission  girded  himself  for 


92 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


the  work,  and  it  is  time  to  try  and  trace  the  results  of  the 
devotional  system  thus  definitely  adopted  and  diligently 
maintained. 

To  it  may  be  attributed  certain  marked  features  of  the 
mission  :  (a)  its  definite  discipline,  {b)  its  clear  and  dogmatic 
presentation  of  the  Christian  faith,  and  {c)  the  singular  har- 
mony which  knit  together  the  brotherhood,  and  which  has 
characterised  the  community  from  the  first  day  until  now. 

{a)  Discipline. — It  will  be  remembered  that  Bickersteth 
was  called  upon  within  two  or  three  months  of  his  arrival 
to  take  over  the  supervision  of  the  complex  machinery  of  the 
whole  mission  at  Delhi.  While  he  found  much  to  admire, 
he  found  also  some  things  to  criticise,  and  in  his  judgment 
there  was  need  of  greater  firmness  in  the  administration  of 
discipline. 

During  the  few  years  preceding  the  establishment  of 
the  Cambridge  Mission  large  numbers  of  the  CJiainars  or 
shoe-makers  had  been  baptised  by  Mr.  Winter,  sometimes, 
as  Bickersteth  was  led  to  think,  upon  insufficient  proof  of 
faith  and  repentance.  Shortly  after  his  arrival  he  noted 
in  his  Diary  (January  1878)  : 

In  the  evening  after  service  we  were  surprised  by  a  party 

of  1 1  people  (7  men  and  4  boys)  coming  in  from  ,  all 

wishing  for  baptism,  Mr.  Winter  explained  to  them  the 
seriousness  of  the  step.    They  are  to  stay  the  night. 

The  next  day  he  adds  : 

The  eleven  Christians  were  baptised  this  evening. 
They  just  know  the  elements  of  Christianity,  and  had  an 
earnest  desire  for  baptism.  Is  this  quicker  than  St.  Paul 
and  the  jailer  ? 

In  his  first  formal  letter  to  Mr.  Bullock  (October  1878) 
we  find  him  uttering  a  warning  note  : 

Most  of  the  Christians  are  as  yet  very  poor  and  very 
ignorant,  understanding  but  little  of  the  step  they  have 


THE  DELHI  MISSION— THE  LIFE 


93 


taken,  but  they  have  at  least  been  brought  under  the  influ- 
ence of  a  new  and  higher  life.  It  is  true  one  sometimes 
reads  almost  in  despair  St.  Paul's  descriptions  of  his  recent 
converts  in  such  passages  as  i  Thessalonians  i. ;  but  never- 
theless it  would  be  faithless  not  to  thank  God  for  what  we 
have,  and  to  pray,  work,  and  look  for  both  their  social  and 
spiritual  advancement. 

In  the  following  February  (1879)  Bickersteth  took 
advantage  of  the  annual  church  meeting,  consisting  of 
mission  agents  and  members  of  the  '  Panchyats,'  or  local 
councils,  to  bring  up  for  discussion  the  desirability  of  a 
service  of  admission  for  catechumens.    He  writes  : 

All  agreed  as  to  the  desirability  in  many  cases  of  admit- 
ting catechumens  by  a  regular  service  in  church  ;  with  the 
less  educated  especially,  who  require  a  longer  preparation, 
it  would  prove  of  very  great  service.  .  .  .  Special  cases,  of 
course,  might  occur  in  which  baptism  could  not  be  delayed. 

The  plan  was  tried,  and  proved  so  beneficial  that  in  a 
letter  to  Dr.  Westcott,  written  two  and  a-half  years  later, 
Bickersteth  was  able  to  say  : 

Besides  this,  after  full  discussion  with  Mr.  Winter  and 
our  native  brethren  in  the  missionary  council,  some  rules 
of  discipline  have  been  laid  down.  These  relate  mainly  to 
two  points,  the  instruction  of  candidates  for  baptism  and 
admission  to  the  Holy  Communion.  With  regard  to  the 
instruction  of  candidates  we  have  adopted  the  plan  of  a 
catechumens'  class,  into  which  all  candidates  are  admitted 
by  a  short  service.  As  regards  the  difficult  point  of  admis- 
sion to  and  exclusion  from  Holy  Communion,  the  best 
criterion  seemed  to  be  attendance  at  the  ordinary  services. 
By  the  admirable  arrangement  of  small  school-houses  and 
chapels  which  Mr.  Winter  has  established  in  various  parts  of 
the  city  these  services  are  brought  close  to  their  very  doors. 
Great  negligence  in  attending  them  is  therefore  particularly 
culpable,  and  seems  to  warrant  exclusion  from  the  higher 
ordinance.  The  number  of  baptisms  and  communicants 
on  the  system  is  at  present  very  small.  Perhaps  this  is 
for  a  while  not  greatly  to  be  regretted.    Among  a  class  so 


94 


lilSHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


degraded  and  yet  so  comparatively  unprejudiced  rapid 
advance  may  I  think  be  looked  for,  when  once  a  few 
persons  alike  well  instructed  and  devoted  are  leading  the 
way. 

On  Mr.  Winter's  return  from  his  furlough  in  England 
(December  1879),  he  was  at  first  inclined  sharply  to  differ 
from  the  views  taken  on  this  matter  of  discipline  by  the 
younger  man  who  had  acted  as  his  locinn  tenens,  but 
eventually  he  himself  came  to  the  same  conclusion.  This 
change  of  mind  resulted  in  a  change  of  policy,  which  three 
years  later  bore  fruit  in  a  general  gathering  of  the  converts 
to  Delhi,  where  steps  were  taken  to  test  both  their  creed 
and  conduct.  A  picturesque  meeting,  lighted  by  the  fitful 
gleam  of  torches  and  prolonged  far  into  the  night,  resulted 
in  a  diminution  of  the  number  of  converts  but  in  a 
strengthening  of  the  morale  of  the  mission.  Although  this 
event  took  place  a  few  months  after  Bickersteth's  return  to 
England  on  sick  leave,  yet  it  was  the  result  of  the  more 
searching  standard  by  which  he  tested  missionary  work. 

ih)  Purity  of  doctrine. — The  same  spiritual  insight  led 
him  from  the  first  to  see  the  inherent  weakness  of  teaching 
Christianity  through  those  whose  grasp  on  its  fundamental 
doctrines  was  feeble. 

A  mind  less  trained  to  meditate  on  eternal  truth 
might  have  lost  sight  of  principles  under  the  superincum- 
bent weight  of  daily  details  loudly  calling  for  immediate 
attention  ;  but  devotional  feeling,  by  teaching  the  soul  to 
linger  in  the  presence  of  its  Lord,  teaches  Christians  '  not 
only  to  talk  with  Him  face  to  face  as  a  man  speaketh  with 
his  friend,  but  also  as  brethren  of  the  only  Son  to  seek  and 
embrace  the  faith  in  full  liberty  of  the  Spirit.'  ^ 

This  led  Bickersteth  from  the  first  to  be  keenly 
sensitive  to  any  dimness  of  apprehension  in  the  con- 

'  II.  P.  Liddon,  The  Priest  in  his  Inner  Life,  p.  38. 


THE  DELHI  MISSION — THE  LIFE  95 

verts  as  to  the  Divine  claims,  and  to  set  great  store  upon 
methods  calculated  to  help  them  to  know  God  and  His 
Son  Jesus  Christ. 

He  wrote  home  (1878): 

A  greater  efficiency  combined  with  a  raised  spiritual 
tone  in  our  teachers,  a  truer  and  more  vivid  sense  of  the 
blessings  of  which  they  have  been  made  heirs,  and  a 
stronger  desire  to  make  others  partakers  with  themselves, 
are  perhaps  even  more  to  be  desired  at  present  in  our 
mission  than  an  increase  of  converts. 

Again  : 

An  improvement  may,  I  hope,  shortly  be  possible 
to  our  present  practice,  that  is  a  preachers'  class,  where 
subjects  may  be  carefully  prepared  and  digested  before- 
hand. Our  native  brethren  experience  no  such  difficulty 
as  Englishmen  often  would  in  filling  half  an  hour  with 
talk  on  a  religious  topic.  But  too  often  it  happens  that 
while  each  sentence  of  the  sermon  which  is  delivered 
is  sufficiently  excellent,  the  sermon  as  a  whole  is  too 
discursive  to  leave  any  lasting  impression.  A  class  in 
which  the  subject  will  be  talked  out  with  such  helps  as 
books  may  supply  may,  I  hope,  partly  correct  this. 

Again,  later  (1881) : 

Their  danger  is  to  be  content  with  a  minimum  of  reading, 
while  constantly  engaged  in  preaching  and  teaching. 

These  extracts  are  sufficient  to  prove  how  keenly  he 
was  alive  to  the  prime  necessity  of  teaching  the  teachers, 
if  they  were  to  become  weapons  meet  for  the  Master's  use. 
He  was  well  aware  that  the  errors  of  teachers  become  the 
teachers  of  error,  if  we  may  revise  Bishop  Beveridge's 
aphorism. 

This  view  of  Edward  Bickersteth's  spiritual  influence 
on  the  mission  is  confirmed  by  the  recollections  of  the  Rev 
S.  S.  Allnutt,  who  writes  to  me  (October  20,  1898) : 


96 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


He  was  wholly  right  in  his  judgment  as  to  the 
spiritual  condition  of  the  converts,  and  his  spiritual  instinct 
had  discerned  what  was  lacking,  '  My  people  have  perished 
from  lack  of  knowledge.'  It  was  to  supply  this  that  was 
the  most  crying  need  at  first,  and  so  he  was  led  to  set 
about  introducing  measures  whereby  the  teachers  should 
themselves  be  instructed  and  their  standard  of  Christian 
life  raised.  What  Pere  Gratry  calls  in  his  life  of  Pere 
Perreyve,  '  Organisation  de  la  Vie,'  was  to  all  intents  and 
purposes  an  unknown  factor  in  the  otherwise  complete 
organisation  of  the  mission.  The  book  I  mention  was 
a  favourite  one  of  E.  B.'s,  and  he  gave  it  me  in  1875  on 
my  ordination  as  Priest. 

The  following  letter  and  extract  from  a  speech  show 
how  fully  he  believed  the  Church  of  England  to  be  called 
of  God  to  maintain  and  hand  on  this  purity  of  doctrine. 

Cambridge  Mission,  Delhi  : 
3rd  Sunday  after  Trinity,  May  1 88 1. 

My  dear  Sam, — I  have  two  letters  of  yours  unan- 
swered. Thanks  much  for  them.  And,  what  is  more, 
time  is  getting  on,  and  your  ordination  by  the  time  this 
reaches  you  will  be  hard  at  hand  ;  so,  contrary  to  custom, 
I  must  send  you  a  Sunday  line. 

I  have  a  good  deal  on  hand  just  now  :  a  lecture 
Wednesday  week  in  Urdu  on  'The  Jewish  Expectation 
of  a  Messiah  at  the  Christian  Era.'  This  is  the  main 
subject.  There  will  be  some  comparison,  also,  of  the 
vaguer  Gentile  hope.  This  is  to  be  given  to  a  class  of 
Hindu  and  Mahomedan  masters.  I  rather  think  of 
writing  a  little  set  of  lectures  in  this  line  :  such  as 
'  Heathenism  at  the  Christian  Era,'  '  The  Jewish  Sects,' 
'  How  Christ  fulfilled  the  Expectation  of  the  Jews,'  &c. 
This  indirect  but,  perhaps,  not  less  forcible  line  of  argu- 
ment stirs  less  opposition  and  has  perhaps  more  weight. 

Then  I  have  two  sermons  in  thought :  one  on  '  The 
Church'  for  native  Christians,  its  gradual  rise,  and  the 
folly  of  supposing  they  can  commence  building  de  novo, 
and  the  advantages  they  gain  from  being  heirs  of  the 
struggles  and  victories  of  the  past ;  and  then  an  ordination 
sermon  for  Trinity  Sunday  at  Amballa.  I  am  glad  I  shall 
be  at  an  ordination  service  that  day.     You  partly  sug- 


THE  DELHI  MISSION — THE  LIFE 


97 


gested  me  a  subject.  I  am  going  to  take  the  combination 
of  St.  Paul's  two  great  phrases,  X/otirrof  v-Tvsp  and 
h.  What  you  wrote  so  truly  about  an  historical  creed 
seems  to  me  to  be  summed  up  in  these  two  phrases.  Be- 
sides, it  seems  to  me  that  their  combination  is  really  that 
which  we  are  asked  for — '  a  Gospel  for  the  nineteenth 
century.'  Speaking  generally,  Reformation  theology  and 
the  modern  Evangelical  school  have  laid  stress  on  the  virsp, 
and  the  Fathers  and  the  modern  High  Churchmen  on  the 
Ev,  and  just  as  Dorner  has  shown  in  another  great  subject 
that  the  Godhead  of  Christ  was  mainly  insisted  on  till 
century  XVI.  and  His  manhood  after  that  century,  so,  I 
should  say,  the  work  of  the  nineteenth  is  to  combine 
the  two  teachings.  A  new  Gospel  cannot  be  anything 
sTspos,  or  it  will  fail  and  come  under  St.  Paul's  malison 
(Gal.  i.) ;  but  it  may  be  a  far  more  harmonious  setting 
forth  of  the  old  truths  in  their  connection,  and  not  merely 
in  their  distinctness,  and  in  proportion  as  it  is  so  it  will 
attract  men  and  satisfy  real  soul  needs.  .  .  . 

.  .  .  How  thankful  we  ought  to  be  for  this  dear  old 
English  Church,  and  to  be  allowed  to  work  in  her  !  With 
faults  patent  enough  (especially  of  organisation)  I  believe 
she  goes  nearer  to  the  (unattained)  ideal  of  a  body  which 
should  teach  revealed  truth  in  its  manifoldness  and  har- 
mony than  any  Christian  society  has  done  since  the  first  age 
(and  they  probably  taught  without,  not  through,  formularies). 

And  I  fancy  one  of  the  first  delights  you  will  find  in 
ministerial  work  will  be  that  of  finding  your  daily  occupa- 
tion to  be  the  assimilation  of  revealed  truth  in  order  to 
the  dispensing  of  it.  '  Confirma  et  sanctifica  me  in  veritate, 
Sermo  tuus  est  Veritas.'  May  this,  dearest  brother,  indeed 
be  true  of  you,  and  may  you  all  through  your  life  have  the 
joy  of  seeing  Christ's  truth,  ministered  by  you,  the  means 
of  spreading  the  Christ  life  among  your  people.  livery 
past  struggle  and  victory  will  assuredly  help  towards  this. 
I  am  sending  you  5/.  to  buy  books  with.  Get  such  as  will 
be  useful  for  your  work  ;  especially  commentaries,  histories, 
and  books  on  doctrine  and  sermons — not  that  5/.  will  go 
far  in  so  many  lines  ! 

God  bless  and  keep  you,  and  make  you  a  blessing 
prays  ever 

Your  affectionate  Brother, 

Edw.  Bickerstetii. 


II 


98 


BISHOP  EDWARD  TilCKERSTETM 


Speaking  at  the  Church  Congress  at  Portsmouth,  1885, 
he  said  : 

The  second  suggestion  I  have  to  make  is  in  connection 
witli  what  I  may  call  the  libert}'  which  would  be  given  to 
native  Churches  in  India.    No  doubt  our  primary  duty  is 
to  hand  over  to  them  the  fulness  of  the  Catholic  faith,  and 
of  the  Church's  organisation.    But  it  is  not  necessary  to 
hand  over  to  them  anything  that  is  distinctly  western.  At 
the  last  Pan- Anglican  Conference  (1878)  a  resolution,  I 
think,  was  passed  with  reference  to  the  translation  of  the 
Prayer  Book  into  other  languages.    I  venture  with  great 
humility  to  suggest  to  your  lordships  that  you  should 
consider  at  some  future  meeting  what  is  the  minimum  of 
conformity  which  will   be  required   in   future  between 
Oriental  Churches  and  our  own  Church.    I  have  noticed 
in  an  ecclesiastical  paper  a  report  (I  do  not  know  whether 
correct  or  not)  that  the  Episcopal  Church  of  America  has 
announced  that  it  is  willing  to  take  into  communion  with 
itself  any  body  of  Christians  that  retains  the  Episcopal 
form  of  Government,  the  Holy  Scriptures,  the  Creeds,  and 
duly  consecrated  and  administered  Sacraments.     May  I 
suggest  that  it  may  be  possible  that,  in  future,  we  may 
receive  into  communion  with  our  own  Church  in  England 
any  bodies  of  Christians  who  in  these  four  points  are  at 
one  with  ourselves  ?    As  has  been  already  mentioned,  there 
are  a  large  number  of  Christians  not  belonging  to  our 
communion  scattered  throughout  the  length  and  breadth 
of  India,  but  they  all  look  up  with  reverence  to  the 
English  Church.    If  we  of  the  English  Church  have  those 
advantages  together  which  other   communities  possess 
.separately — namely,  an  orthodox  faith,  an  unbroken  past, 
and  individual  liberty — it  is  our  duty  to  hand  these  advan- 
tages to  others  ;  but  as  regards  the  form  in  \\'hich  we  our- 
selves have  them,  we  need  not  go  further  than  ask  them  to 
receive  from  us  the  Divine  Word,  and  the  Creeds  and  the 
Church's  Ministry  and  Sacraments,  as  we  have  them  our- 
selves.   If  the  suggestions  I  make  could  be  carried  out,  I 
think  we  should  have  done  something  towards  the  develop- 
ment of  the  Church  in  India. 

{c)  Spirit  of  brotJierliness. — With  regard  to  the  harmony 
which  knit  together  the  Cambridge  men  into  one  brother- 


THE  DELHI  MISSION — THE  LIKE 


99 


hood,  no  testimony  can  be  more  valuable  than  that  of 
the  Rev.  G.  A.  Lefroy.  Mr.  Lefroy  was  chosen  after  an 
interval  to  be  second  Head  of  the  mission,  a  position 
which  he  has  only  resigned  on  his  call  to  be  the  third 
Bishop  of  Lahore.  In  a  letter  to  me  (dated  September 
1898)  which  he  sent  with  his  recollections  he  wrote  : 

I  feel  so  utterly  unable  to  reproduce  on  paper  any  sort 
of  picture  of  what  he  really  was  to  us.  You  know,  I  think, 
something  of  what  he  was  to  me — more  than  any  other 
individual,  he  has  been  the  inspiring  example  of  my  life. 
Yet  we  were  only  together  two  and  a-half  years,  and  that 
was  fifteen  years  ago.  During  that  time  I  was  the  junior 
member  of  the  mission,  and  was  not  nearly  so  much  in  his 
counsels  as,  e.g.  Carlyon  and  AUnutt. 

Frequent  visitors  to  the  mission  at  Delhi  have  recorded 
the  impression,  made  upon  all  of  them  alike,  that  those  living 
there  in  community  were  indeed  living  together  as  brothers. 
Thus  the  idea  of  felloivship,  emphasised  in  the  first  syllable 
of  the  three  Greek  words  placed  by  Bickersteth  at  the  head 
of  his  paper  before  the  Church  Society,'  proved  to  be  no 
standard  impossible  of  attainment,  but  the  inspiration  of 
their  daily  life. 

From  the  Rev.  G.  A.  Lefroy 

My  recollections  of  contact  at  Cambridge  with  Edward 
Bickersteth,  before  the  mission  started  for  Delhi,  are  very 
slight  indeed.  I  remember  a  walk  in  the  Botanical  Gardens 
shortly  after  I  had,  in  consequence  of  a  sermon  preached 
by  Dr.  Lightfoot  in  Great  St.  Mary's,  asked  to  be  accepted 
as  a  member  of  the  Brotherhood.  One  or  two  more  similar 
walks  I  know  followed,  and  then  I  have  a  clear  recollection 
of  a  characteristically  University  gathering  at  which,  the 
full  number  of  six  who  had  been  asked  for  to  start  the 
mission  having  been  completed,  we  inaugurated  our  under- 
taking by  a  breakfast  in  Pembroke  College  in  the  rooms  of 

'  (rwarpoTiiTOi,  (Tvvepyol,  cu/xiroArroi.     See  Chapter  II.  p.  29. 

ir  2 


lOO 


inSHOr  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


our  leader.  And  I  have  often  thought  that  it  was  a  marked 
sign  of  the  hand  of  our  God  upon  us  for  good  from  the 
first,  that  although  of  the  six  who  so  sat  down  to  breakfast 
in  the  spring  of  1877  only  two  were  able  to  go  out  that 
year,  two  more  the  next  year,  and  the  remaining  two  not 
till  the  autumn  of  1879,  yet  eventually,  without  a  single 
loss  or  withdrawal  from  any  cause,  the  same  six  met  in 
December  1879  for  breakfast  and  a  truly  'common'  life 
in  Delhi.  Of  the  subjects  of  conversation  in  those  first 
walks  I  remember  nothing,  but  I  do  know  that  the  sense 
of  enthusiasm  and  of  keen,  though  restrained,  energy  which 
so  markedly  characterised  Bickersteth  did  not  wholly  fail 
of  their  due  effect  upon  me.  In  Delhi,  while  as  quite  the 
youngest  and  most  inexperienced  member  of  the  mission 
I  was  unable  to  enter  so  thoroughly  into  the  plans  and 
difficulties  of  our  Head  as  the  elder  members,  such  a& 
Murray,  Carlyon,  and  Allnutt,  yet,  on  the  other  hand,  just 
because  of  my  youth  I  was  brought  into  specially  close 
contact  with  him  of  another  kind,  acting  as  a  kind  of  curate 
to  him  in  several  departments  of  our  work,  notably  the 
ministerial  charge  of  Daryaganj,  one  of  the  most  important 
of  the  city  districts,  and  also  of  Mehrowli,  a  principal  out- 
station  lying  some  eleven  miles  to  the  south  of  Delhi. 
After  the  lapse  of  more  than  fifteen  years,  handicapped 
as  I  am  by  an  abnormally  weak  memory,  I  am  quite  unable 
to  recall  specific  incidents  illustrative  of  the  relationship 
so  established,  and  of  what  it  became  to  me,  yet  I  do 
know  that  in  the  quiet  walks  home,  late  on  Sunday  night, 
from  Daryaganj  to  our  own  house,  a  distance  of  about 
two  miles,  along  a  road  often  bathed  in  the  glorious  Indian 
moonlight,  and  running  between  the  old  Mogul  fort  of 
Delhi  on  our  right  hand  and  the  solemn  and  beautiful 
Jama  Musjid  on  the  left,  while  further  on  we  passed  through 
the  historic  Kashmir  Gate,  with  its  undying  Mutiny 
associations,  ideals  were  suggested  to  me,  and  a  force  of 
character  and  depth  of  piety  brought  home  to  me,  which 
in  those  first  days  of  my  ministerial  life  were  of  simply 
priceless  value,  and  to  which  I  believe  I  owe  more  of 
inspiration  and  strength  for  that  life  than  to  any  other 
individual  influence  outside  the  innermost  circle  of  my  own 
home.  The  drives  out  to  Mehrowli,  too,  were  full  of  interest 
and  helpfulness,  though  that  part  of  our  work  together  is 
more  saddened  in  recollection  by  its  frequent  connection 


Till-:  DELHI  MISSION — Tin:  life 


lOI 


with  weakness  or  suffering  on  Bickcrstcth's  part,  for  it  was 
often  resorted  to  when  overstrain  of  work  or  fever  in  Delhi 
made  some  little  change  imperative.  And  how  frequent 
such  occasions  were  I  have  realised  more  than  I  ever  did 
before  by  reading  through,  for  the  purpose  of  these  notes, 
a  diary  I  used  to  keep  at  that  time.  It  is  of  the  very 
barest  kind  and  scarcely  suggestive  of  anything  of  interest 
for  my  present  purpose,  but  it  is  remarkable  that  out  of  a 
large  number  of  allusions  to  Bickersteth  in  it  nearly  half 
consist  of  such  remarks  as  '  E.  B.  very  seedy,'  '  bad  night,' 
'  high  fever,'  '  headache,'  or  the  like.  In  point  of  fact,  there 
is  no  doubt  that  almost  from  the  first  the  intense  summer 
heat  told  unduly  on  a  mind  and  body  which  was  always 
working  at  the  highest  possible  point  of  energy  and 
intensity.  I  know  that  often,  as  we  lay  out  on  the  roof  at 
night  side  by  side,  I  would  turn  over  in  a  sleep  which, 
though  somewhat  disturbed  by  the  heat,  had  yet  plenty  of 
restorative  power  in  it,  to  find  Bickersteth  literally  gasping 
alongside  of  me,  and  quite  unable  to  get  to  sleep  at  all. 

Then  two  distinct  experiences  stand  out  in  my  mind 
with  special  clearness — the  one  my  ordination  to  the 
priesthood  at  Amballa,  the  other  a  walk  deep  into  the 
Himalayas  from  Simla  which  Bickersteth  and  I  took  in 
the  autumn  of  1881. 

For  the  ordination,  on  Trinity  Sunday,  June  12,  in  the 
very  greatest  heat  of  a  hot  year,  we  stayed  at  the  Chap- 
lain's house.  There  were  together  for  about  four  days 
before  the  Sunday,  Bishop  French,  that  true  father  in  God 
to  so  many  of  us  in  the  Punjab,  Bickersteth,  as  examining 
chaplain,  another  Englishman  besides  myself  for  Priest's 
orders,  and  a  native,  still  working  with  an  unblemished 
name  and  very  high  character  in  one  of  the  C.M.S.  stations 
of  the  Punjab,  also  for  Priest's  orders. 

As  in  other  cases  so  here,  in  my  inability  to  recall 
details  I  can  only  say  that  the  whole  time,  the  close 
contact  with,  and  the  addresses  of,  the  saintly  Bishop,  the 
walks  with  Bickersteth,  and  his  sermon  at  the  ordination 
itself,  formed  one  of  the  most  impressive  experiences  of  my 
life. 

In  our  Himalayan  v/alk  we  were  naturally  brought 
into  the  closest  and  most  continuous  contact  that  I 
enjoyed  during  that  two  years  and  three-quarters  of  life 
together  in  India.    Away  from  all  the  engrossing  occupa- 


I02 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


tions  and  distractions  of  Delhi  work,  we  were  for  nearly  a 
month  practically  quite  alone  together,  scarcely  meeting 
another  Englishman  along  the  road,  usually  sleeping  in 
the  same  room,  walking,  talking,  playing  chess  together. 
Into  this  trip  also,  however,  the  experience  of  sickness 
entered,  as  both  on  our  outward  and  homeward  march  we 
had  to  lie  by  for  one  or  two  days  owing  to  slight  attacks 
of,  as  I  believe,  the  very  same  trouble  which  at  last  took 
him  from  us. 

And  from  all  these  diverse  experiences,  while  the 
separate  details  which  went  to  form  them  have  passed  from 
my  mind,  a  figure  stands  out  of  the  clearest,  most  impres- 
sive, most  unforgettable  personality  possible.  If  I  were  to 
try  and  single  cut  special  features  of  it — which  is  difficult 
to  do — I  think  I  should  give  the  first  place  to  two — piety 
and  energy. 

All  he  did  was,  as  we  knew  and  recognised  instinctively, 
based  on  prayer  and  communion  with  God.  His  devotional 
addresses  were  full  of  the  deepest  spiritual  power.  One  ot 
the  most  distinct  contributions  of  all  that  he  made  to  the 
organisation  of  the  work  of  the  Delhi  Mission  was  the 
deepening  in  the  native  agents  the  sense  of  the  supreme 
need  of  earnest  personal  prayer  and  of  systematic  Bible 
study  for  the  efficient  discharge  of  the  very  difficult  work 
to  which  they  were  called.  Additional  opportunities  and 
services  for  this  end  were  afforded,  while  he  regularly  every 
week  had  any  catcchist,  or  other  agent  with  whom  he  was 
in  direct  contact,  to  his  own  room  for  conversation  and 
prayer  together.  Far  as  we  have  fallen  short  of  his 
standard  in  this  respect,  I  do  yet  hope  and  believe  that 
the  principles  which  he  instilled  into  us,  and  on  which  he 
based  the  early  life  of  our  Brotherhood,  have  not  been 
lost. 

And  then  there  was  his  incessant  energy  of  body  and 
mind.  I  always  think  of  him  as  living  at  the  highest 
possible  strain  of  all  his  powers.  If  he  walked  it  was,  even 
in  the  middle  of  the  hot  weather,  at  a  pace  which  few  cared 
to  keep  up  with,  at  any  rate  without  protests,  uttered  or 
thought ;  if  he  rode — and  this  he  frequently  did,  though  it 
always  seemed  to  me  as  though  he  was  not  a  true  horseman 
in  the  sense  of  enjoying  the  riding  for  its  own  sake,  but 
that  he  simply  viewed  it  as  a  convenient  and  rapid  means 
of  getting  from  place  to  place — no  grass  grew  under  the 


THE  DELHI  MISSION — THE  LIFE 


103 


pony's  feet.  So  it  was  in  his  study  of  Urdu  and  Persian, 
so  it  was  in  e\  cry  single  thing  he  took  in  hand.  That  this 
intensity  of  disposition  was,  at  any  rate  at  that  compara- 
tively early  part  of  his  life,  accompanied  by  some  of  the 
defects  which  almost  inevitably  go  with  that  type  of 
character  cannot,  I  think,  be  doubted.  There  was  at 
times  a  tendency  to  impatience,  and  not  infrequently  the 
worries  and  difficulties  inseparable  from  a  work  and  life 
such  as  ours,  and  which  on  some  occasions  became  very 
grave  indeed  in  connection  with  our  position  and  work  in 
Delhi,  told  upon  him  in  a  way  that  he  was,  I  am  sure, 
himself  the  first  to  regret. 

But,  on  the  other  hand,  the  spirit  of  high  enthusiasm, 
the  thoroughness,  the  devotion  to  work — as  also  to  play, 
while  he  was  at  it — the  high  aims,  the  wise,  large-hearted 
plans  for  their  attainment,  and  the  depth  of  personal  holi- 
ness and  of  striving  after  an  ever  closer  and  closer  walk 
with  God,  which  were  embodied  in  him,  were  both  to  the 
mission  as  a  whole  and  to  each  of  us  individually  an 
inspiration  such  as  we  can  never  forget,  and  have,  especially 
in  conjunction  with  his  peculiar  position  as  the  first  Head 
and  one  of  the  first  founders  of  the  mission,  secured  a  quite 
unique  position  in  the  annals  of  the  Cambridge  Mission  to 
the  name  of  Edward  Bickersteth. 

G.  A.  Lefroy. 

Cambridge  Mission,  Delhi  :  September  29,  1898. 
St.  Michael  and  All  Angels. 

The  late  Bishop  Matthew,  in  writing  to  me  in  the 
autumn  of  1897,  said  that  in  Edward  Bickersteth  'strength 
and  sweetness  were  blended  in  quite  an  unusual  degree.' 

A  pathetic  incident  attaches  to  the  following  letter,  as 
it  was  penned  a  year  later  within  a  few  days  of  his  own 
sudden  death. 

Froju  the  Right  Rev.  H.  J.  Matthezu,  kite  Bishop  of 
Lahore 

Bishopsbourne,  Lahore  : 

October  22,  1898. 

Dear  Mr,  Bickersteth, — I  have  once  more  to  apologise 
for  being  behind  time  in  sending  thi.s,  but  I  have  only  just 


I04 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


returned  from  a  visitation  tour  which  has  been  more  than 
usually  fatiguing.  But  I  am  afraid  that  I  have  been 
dilatory  on  this  account  more  than  any  other,  that  I  have 
become  more  and  more  alive  to  the  want  of  materials  which 
would  contribute  anything  of  interest  to  your  biography  of 
your  brother.  A  careful  search  through  my  correspondence 
failed  to  find  any  letters  which  would  be  of  use.  That  is 
not  surprising,  as  Edward  Bickersteth  never  wrote  for  the 
sake  of  writing,  and  our  work  was  not  in  any  way  connected, 
mine  being  at  that  time  entirely  English  work,  while  he  was 
studying  and  endeavouring  to  solve  missionary  problems. 

Hence  our  intercourse  was  limited  to  the  few  visits 
which  he  was  enabled  to  pay  to  us  at  Simla,  and  which 
were  generally  at  a  time  when  either  he  came  to  Simla 
as  examining  chaplain  to  the  Bishop  (French)  on  duty,  or 
when  compelled  to  suspend  work  from  ill-health.  I  should 
mention  that  your  brother  was  very  strict  in  his  abstinence 
from  discussing  matters  in  which  there  might  be  a  difference 
of  opinion  between  himself  and  other  members  of  the  Delhi 
Mission.  And  although  there  were  questions  of  some  im- 
portance upon  which  there  was  not  unanimity  between  the 
representative  of  the  old  S.P.G.  Mission  and  its  Head  and 
the  Cambridge  men,  yet  in  reference  to  these  E.  B.  was 
always  very  reserved.  So  that  it  comes  to  pass  that, 
greatly  as  I  valued  his  friendship  and  enjoyed  the  oppor- 
tunities of  having  his  society,  there  is  left  little  beyond  the 
recollection  of  his  strong  but  gracious  and  gentle  personality. 
I  had  first  seen  him  as  long  ago  as  1875,  when  he  was 
assistant  curate  to  the  Rev.  H.  Sharpe  at  Hampstead  and 
I  was  taking  charge,  during  my  furlough,  of  an  adjoining 
parish.  Since  that  time  his  ecclesiastical  position  had  some- 
what changed,  and  he  had  arrived  at  that  via  media  which 
is  so  admirably  represented  in  his  legacy  to  the  '  Nippon 
Sei  Kokwai.' '  The  perusal  of  that  book  has  reminded  me  of 
many  a  conversation  on  the  themes  therein  treated  ;  the 
place  of  the  sacraments  in  the  Christian  system,  the  relation 
of  confirmation  to  baptism,  and  the  like.  On  these  sub- 
jects we  were  very  much  of  one  accord.  When  I  was 
obliged  to  leave  India  in  1885,  after  a  long  term  of  service 
at  Simla,  it  was  the  great  desire  of  Bishop  French  that 

'  I.e.  'Our  Heritage  in  the  Church,'  being  papers  written  for  Divinity- 
Students,  published  by  Sampson  Low  &  Co. 


THE  DELHI  MISSION 


—THE  LIFE 


105 


your  brother — then  holding  the  college  living  of  Framling- 
ham,  and  unable  from  considerations  of  health  to  return  to 
Delhi — should  come  out,  at  least  temporarily,  as  Chaplain 
of  Simla.  The  offer  of  the  Bishopric  of  Japan  came  and 
put  an  end  to  this  scheme,  but  had  not  a  higher  call  come, 
in  Simla  he  would  have  had  a  field  for  which  he  was  in 
many  respects  admirably  suited.  The  congregation  of 
Christ  Church,  Simla,  contains  the  heads  of  the  Govern- 
ment of  India,  both  civil  and  military,  and  no  single  con- 
gregation, either  at  home  or  in  the  dependencies  of  the 
empire,  represents  such  vast  responsibilities  of  rule. 

In  the  early  spring  of  1886  Mrs.  Matthew  and  I  had 
the  great  pleasure  of  a  visit  from  Edward  Bickersteth  at 
Bologna  when  he  was  on  his  way  to  Japan  after  his  conse- 
cration. We  had  a  day  of  sightseeing — it  was  a  Saturday — 
and  on  the  Sunday  he  was  to  leave  at  9  A.M.  for  Brindisi 
to  join  the  mail  steamer.  When  he  and  I  arrived  at  the 
railway  station  it  was  to  learn  that  the  train  would  be  two 
hours  late.  During  those  two  hours  we  paced  the  long 
platform  and  had  a  most  interesting  talk.  The  principal 
subject  was  the  strength  and  weakness  of  the  Evangelical 
party — to  which  few  dealt  more  equal  justice. 

Once  more  I  had  a  visit  from  him  on  his  way  from 
Japan  to  England  in  1893.  He  spared  me  a  couple  of 
days  of  his  short  sojourn  in  India,  and  one  of  the  chief 
recollections  of  that  visit  is  that  he  was  in  buoyant  spirits, 
and  his  looking  into  my  library  with  a  '  Come  out  for  a 
walk '  was  like  the  summons  of  an  undergraduate  for  a 
'constitutional'  In  1896  he  wrote  suggesting  that  in  the 
following  spring  I  should  join  him  in  Japan,  and  that  we 
should  voyage  together  to  the  Lambeth  Conference.  That 
delightful  programme  was  not  to  be.  He  was  driven 
home  by  illness  earlier  than  he  had  proposed  to  go,  and  I 
was  detained  in  my  diocese  by  plague  and  scarcity.  But 
among  the  companions  I  have  known  I  recall  none  whose 
society  was  more  stimulating  or  more  edifying. 

Believe  me. 

Yours  sincerely, 

Henry  J.  Lahore. 

While  at  Delhi,  as  afterwards  in  Japan,  Bickersteth 
always  tried  to  cultivate  cordial  relations  with  those  of  his 


io6 


r.ISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


countrymen  who  were  employed  in  the  civil  and  military, 
or  in  diplomatic  and  naval  life.  The  following  testimony 
of  a  layman  will  thus  add  completeness  to  what  is  already 
written. 

Recollections  of  Colonel  Gordon  1  'oiing 

Stockton  House,  Fleet,  Hants. 
Sept.  9,  i8gS. 

Dear  Mrs.  Bickersteth, — I  am  sorry  to  think  that  I 
have  not  complied  with  your  brother-in-law's  request 
that  I  should  write  a  few  recollections  of  Delhi  days  in 
connection  with  the  life  of  your  dear  husband,  late  Bishop 
of  South  Tokyo. 

This  has  not  been  from  any  unwillingness,  but  positively 
from  my  sense  of  absolute  inability  from  a  literary  point 
of  view,  and  in  the  absence  of  memoranda  of  any  sort,  to 
write  anything  that  should  in  the  least  help  to  convey  to 
others  an  idea  of  how  his  life  at  Delhi  impressed  those 
who  were  outside  the  immediate  sphere  of  his  daily 
work. 

The  beauty  of  his  character  is  much  better  known 
to  you  and  to  those  of  his  own  circle  than  to  any  others, 
and  the  scope  and  earnestness  of  his  work  and  his  devotion 
to  it  can  only  be  told  by  those  with  whom  he  was  associated 
in  it  all. 

I  do  not  know  if  you  know  Delhi  at  all  ;  if  so,  you  may 
remember  Ludlow  Castle,  which  was  my  residence  as 
Commissioner  from  1879  to  1883,  with  a  break  of  ten 
months'  furlough.  This  house  and  the  mission  residence 
were  almost  contiguous. 

When  I  went  to  Delhi  Mr.  Bickersteth  reigned  as  Head 
of  the  Cambridge  Mission  there  and  was  almost  my  nearest 
neighbour.  We  soon  became  acquainted,  and  though  he  was 
absorbed  in  the  labours  of  evangelisation,  controversy  with 
Muhammadan  doctors  of  the  law,  supervision  of  schools, 
and  general  administrative  work  of  the  mission,  we  were 
sometimes  able  to  persuade  him  to  come  to  tea  and  a  game 
of  tennis  with  us,  which  little  piece  of  relaxation  beseemed 
greatly  to  enjoy. 

He  seemed  almost  a  shadow  in  those  days,  so  thin  was 
he  ;  but  he  had  physical  strength,  upheld  no  doubt  by  his 


THE  DELHI  MISSION — THE  LIFE 


107 


high  spirit,  which  enabled  him  to  do  more  in  the  way  of 
walking  and  working  than  anyone  would  have  given  him 
credit  for  possessing.  However  hot  and  oppressive  the 
night  had  been,  the  very  earliest  dawn  saw  him  struggling 
along  towards  the  city,  white  umbrella  in  hand,  for  several 
hours'  work  before  breakfast  with  unfailing  regularity — and 
this  was  only  the  beginning  of  what  went  on  till  nightfall. 
The  missionaries'  residence  being  half  or  three-quarters  of  a 
mile  outside  the  city  of  Delhi  while  their  work  was  chiefly 
inside,  although  it  was  no  doubt  good  as  a  matter  of  health, 
yet  added  materially  to  the  exhaustion  all  felt  by  nightfall, 
owing  to  the  constant  running  to  and  fro  in  the  blazing 
heat.  Of  all  this,  however,  others  will  have  given  you  the 
fullest  details. 

It  was  a  special  privilege  and  delight  to  us  when  from 
time  to  time  he  was  prevailed  on  to  preach  to  us  at  St. 
James's  Church  ;  at  such  times  his  face,  and  especially  his 
eyes,  seemed  literally  illumined  with  a  holy  light,  which 
made  it  quite  beautiful  to  regard.  I  can  recall  the  look  at 
this  moment. 

His  nature  invited  confidence,  and  the  kindest  hearing 
and  wisest  counsel  might  always  be  relied  on  by  those 
who  sought  his  advice. 

He  certainly  had  very  great  persuasive  powers  with  his 
opponents  in  religion  amongst  the  Muhammadans  of  Delhi, 
and  had  he  stayed  he  would,  I  doubt  not,  have  succeeded 
to  a  large  extent  in  affecting  the  attitude  of  many  of  the 
iiioulvies  towards  Christianity.  Lefroy,  as  you  know,  has 
worthily  followed  his  steps  in  this  direction,  and,  I  believe, 
with  marked  results. 

When  my  wife  was  in  England  and  I  a  temporary 
bachelor,  I  was  a  not  infrequent  guest  at  the  Mission 
House  at  the  evening  meal  on  Sunday,  when  the  burden 
and  heat  of  the  day  were  over.  Very  delightful  were  the 
conversations  which  then  ensued  between  your  husband 
and  his  friends — Blackett,  Lefroy,  Allnutt,  and  others — 
among  them  a  Mr.  Maconochie,  of  the  Civil  Service,  who 
used  to  come  in  from  a  neighbouring  district  for  the 
day  ;  and  it  was  interesting  to  remark  the  gentle  way  in 
which  Mr.  Bickersteth's  influence  pervaded  the  whole 
and  elevated  it. 

Though  these  few  lines  seem  hardly  worth  sending 
you,  so  bald  and  trite  are  they,  yet  I  would  not  have  you 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


think  me  to  fail  in  love  and  veneration  for  the  late  clear 
Bishop,  and  so  they  must  go  to  you  imperfect  as  they  are. 

Believe  me,  Yours  truly, 

G.  Gordon  Young. 

In  concluding  this  chapter  on  the  life,  as  distinct  from 
the  work,  the  following  touching  letter  from  the  native 
Christians  at  Delhi  will  show  how  the  influence  of  the  life 
outlasts  tJie  n'ork,  and  in  fact  enables  one  who,  as  men  say, 
is  dead,  yet  to  speak. 

From  the  Native  Christians  at  Delhi 

Delhi  :  August  20,  1897. 

To  the  Right  Rev.  the  Lord  Bishop  of  Exeter. 

'My  Lord, — I  humbly  beg  to  say  that  I  write  the 
following  lines  on  behalf  of  the  native  Christians  of  Delhi : 

'  We,  the  members  of  St.  Stephen's  Mission  Church, 
Delhi,  were  grieved  to  hear  of  the  death  of  your  dear  son, 
the  Right  Rev.  Edward  Bickersteth,  Bishop  in  Japan. 
He  was  at  one  time  the  life  and  soul  of  the  Cambridge 
Mission  to  Delhi,  and  we  enjoyed  the  privilege  of  having 
him  with  us  and  among  us  for  about  five  years.  His  zeal 
and  earnestness  in  preaching  Christ  to  our  fellow  country- 
men and  his  love  and  kindness  had  endeared  him  to 
us.  Unfortunately,  the  climate  of  Delhi  did  not  agree  with 
him,  and  he  was  obliged  to  leave  us  ;  when  we  consoled 
ourselves  that,  though  he  was  taken  away  from  us,  yet  he 
was  called  to  a  higher  sphere  of  Christian  work  for  the 
extension  of  the  kingdom  of  Christ  in  Japan.  Now  that 
he  has  gone  behind  the  veil  our  sorrow  is  revived  ;  still, 
faith  and  hope  in  Christ  assure  us  that  we  shall  meet  him 
again,  never,  never  to  part. 

•  We  heartily  sympathise  with  you  in  your  present 
bereavement,  believing  firmly  that  God  the  Comforter  will 
comfort  you,  as  well  as  those  who  now  mourn  for  our  once 
beloved  pastor,  teacher,  and  friend.' 

I  am,  my  Lord, 
Your  most  obedient  servant, 

Janki  Nath. 

Head  Master,  St.  Stephen's  High  School,  Delhi. 
[Here  jollow  tlie  signatures  of  thirteen  of  the  leading  Christians.'\ 


109 


CHAPTER  V 

FURLOUGH — FRAMLINGHAM — CALL  TO  JAl'AN 

'  It  is  a  much  hanler  task  to  wait  than  to  work,  I  fear,  hut  perhaps  in 
God's  eyes  one  may  conduce  as  much  as  the  other  to  the  final  end.' — Letter 
of  the  Rev.  Edward  Bickersteth  to  S.  P.  G.  in  reporting  Mr.  Murray's  illness 
(1878). 

In  September  1882  Edward  Bickersteth  landed  in 
England  from  his  first  missionary  journey,  and  though  he 
thrice  essayed  to  return  to  Delhi,  the  Spirit  suffered  him 
not.  When  he  again  left  England  for  the  mission  field, 
three  and  a  half  years  later,  it  was  as  Missionary  Bishop  in 
Japan. 

His  return  from  Delhi  was  dictated  wholly  by  reasons 
of  health,  and,  as  has  been  said,  he  anticipated  a  very  short 
furlough  of  not  more  than  three  or  four  months.  But  the 
disease  of  dysenteric  fever,  from  which  he  eventually  died, 
had  laid  a  deeper  hold  upon  him  than  he  or  others  knew. 
His  temperament  led  him  never  to  spare  himself,  and  we 
find  Bishop  French  writing  to  him  as  early  as  July  1878  : 
'  I  am  sorry  to  gather  you  arc  not  thinking  of  a  breath  of 
the  hill  air.  If  I  have  a  house  of  sufficient  size  I  must 
write  and  beg  you  to  run  up  to  Simla,  if  even  for  eight  or 
ten  days,  to  be  revived  and  refreshed.'  At  this  time 
Bickersteth  was  bearing  alone  the  burden  of  all  the  work 
organised  by  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Winter  (S.P.G.),  and  which  the 
Cambridge  Mission  had  taken  over  during  Mr.  Winter's 
furlough.    The  strain  of  this  single-handed  work  told  upon 


I  lO 


lilSHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETil 


him,  and  it  was  then  undoubtedly  that  the  seeds  of  his 
illness  were  sown.  Later  on,  also,  when  itinerating  with 
Bishop  French  (a  workman  who  was  also  wholly  unable  to 
spare  himself),  he  had  a  severe  attack  of  fever.  He  first 
tried  the  effect  of  residence  at  Simla,  whence  he  wrote  to 
Mr.  Lcfroy  : 

The  Priory,  Simla  :  June  7,  1882. 

My  dear  Lefroy, — I  am  bowing  with  the  best  grace  I 
can  muster  to  Ross's  dictum,  but  I  don't  at  all  like  it  nor 
believe  it  to  be  altogether  necessary.  However,  a  doctor's 
order  backed  by  all  the  injunctions  of  the  people  I  know  in 
Delhi  and  here,  and  the  Bishop's  expressed  wish  seem  to 
leave  no  loophole,  so  I  hope  it  is  for  the  best.  [After 
asking  for  several  books  he  continues  :]  You  asked  for  a 
prayer  for  Holy  Communion.  Here  is  one  by  Bishop 
Moberly  wholly  in  the  words  of  the  English  Office.  It 
omits  the  dvafMvPjcns  Trpo  dsov  side  of  the  service,  otherwise 
I  like  it.  I  have  been  round  Jakko  this  morning  on 
Micks,  who  is  in  capital  form,  though,  being  shoeless,  he 
finds  the  stones  a  little  awkward. 

Ever  your  affectionate  Brother  in  Christ, 
Edward  Bickersteth. 

But  two  months  later  the  doctors  were  imperative  that 
he  must  return  to  England  at  once.  There,  like  too  many 
other  missionaries  on  furlough,  he  went  about  too  much, 
and  simply  transferred  the  scene  of  his  labours  from  Delhi 
and  its  environments  to  Cambridge,  London,  and  other 
parts  of  the  country  which  he  visited  to  enlist  new  recruits 
or  to  awaken  a  sense  of  missionary  responsibility.  He  was 
able  to  write  from  Hampstead  on  March  22,  1883. 

My  dear  Lefroy, — .  .  ,  .  Now  for  a  happy  piece  of 
information.  My  silence  about  men  hitherto  has  been 
because  there  has  been  nothing  to  tell  since  Haig  '  definitely 
offered.  At  last  Wright  ^  has  been  able  to  make  up  his 
mind,  seeing  his  way  clear.  I  heard  of  it  only  yesterday 
morning.    I  believe  we  have  in  him  one  of  the  most 


Rev.  A.  Haig. 


-  Rev.  J.  W.  T.  \Vright. 


FURLOUGH — FRAMLINGHAM — CALL  TO  JAl'AN  III 


valuable  men  that  will  have  been  in  India  for  some  time. 
He  was  the  man  selected  for  the  work  by  both  Dr.  VVest- 
cott  and  the  master  of  Pembroke,  though  he  has  offered 
quite  spontaneously.  As  a  great  friend  of  Haig's  alike  at 
school  (Cheltenham)  and  college  (Pembroke),  and  as  both 
now  working  as  curates  (St.  Mary  Abbot's,  Kensington), 
our  new  colleagues  will  have  much  in  common.  I  have 
eight  sermons  this  week,  so  no  more  from  your  affectionate 
brother  in  Christ, 

Edward  Bickersteth. 

He  went  to  Rome  and  Italy  with  three  of  his  sisters 
after  Easter,  and  spent  August  and  September  at  Pen- 
maenmaur,  whence  he  wrote  to  the  Rev.  S.  S.  Allnutt : 

September  6,  1883. 

My  dear  Allnutt, — I  have  been  seduced  into  reading 
longer  than  I  meant  by  a  chapter  of  Huxley's  '  Lay 
Sermons.'  It  is  my  rule  to  read  a  book  on  natural  science 
or  art  each  vacation,  so  I  have  taken  to  this.  A  good  deal 
of  it  is  antiquated  already  by  what  has  occurred  since  it 
was  written — e.g.  the  advocacy  of  natural  science  education 
in  the  Universities,  &c. — a  good  deal  also  of  defence  of  his 
science  against  clergy  and  theologians  perhaps  he  might 
think  less  necessary  now  than  twenty  years  since.  Some 
paragraphs  are  wholly  regrettable — e.g.  a  .section  on  the 
'  worship  of  the  Unknown '  being  the  highest  we  can 
attain  and  likely  to  produce  the  noblest  sentiments !  and, 
lastly  there  is  a  very  great  deal  which  to  the  mere  lSimttjs 
in  natural  science  (why  don't  we  talk  about  natnralsl — it  is 
as  good  a  word  as  mathema/ZiCi'  as  far  as  formation  goes 
and  much  more  exact  and  expressive)  is  suggestive  and 
helpful.  ...  I  have  been  reading  a  good  deal  here 
(between  walks)  of  one  kind  and  another.  '  De  la  Con- 
naissancc  de  Dieu,'  by  Gratry,  which  a  sister  and  I  have 
just  finished,  is  extremely  well  worth  the  reading,  and  has 
a  good  deal  in  it  which  may  be  useful,  especially  as  to  the 
way  of  putting  truth  before  unbelievers. 

Rosmini's  '  Five  Wounds  of  the  Church,'  which 
Liddon  has  just  published,  I  have  also  read  but  am  much 
disappointed  in,  except  in  the  chapter  on  clerical  educa- 
tion. Tulloch's  '  Rational  Christianity '  I  have  also 
accomplished.    The  second  volume  is  an  account  of  the 


1  12 


niSIIOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


Cambridge  Platonists.  I  told  you  that  Dr.  Hort  suggested 
them  to  me  as  a  study.  As  a  useful  study  for  oneself  I 
have  no  doubt  he  was  right.  Their  noble  '  rational '  (in 
the  highest  sense)  method  of  theologising  is  a  model,  but 
I  doubt  if  there  will  be  very  much  in  them  which  will  be 
directly  useful  for  Indian  work — less  than  in  the  great 
Fathers.  By  the  bye,  Professor  Wacc  (the  editor  ot  the 
dictionary),  with  whom  I  went  up  Camedd  Llewellyn, 
told  me  that  Westcott's  article  on  Origen  is  the  most 
wonderful  production,  a  book  in  itself,  and  most  sug- 
gestive and  thorough.  It  is  to  appear  in  the  fourth 
volume.  Also,  I  am  reading  as  a  '  Sunday  book  '  Fair- 
bairn's  '  Studies  in  the  Life  of  Christ  '• — a  book  you  will 
enjoy  for  its  suggestiveness.  The  author  is  a  Presbyterian 
— -not  the  same  man  that  wrote  the  '  Typology ' — a  younger 
and  more  modern-minded  man,  so  much  so  that  there  is 
very  much  in  his  book  that  I  dislike. 

I  have  just  accomplished  also  'John  Inglesant,'  'The 
Monastery,'  and  '  Abbot '  (nearly),  besides  Neander's  '  Life 
of  St.  Bernard  ' ;  so  I  have  not  been  wholly  given  to  oriental 
studies  these  few  weeks. 

Your  ever  affectionate  Brother  in  Christ, 

Edward  Bickersteth. 

But  the  effect  of  his  over-activity  was  too  apparent 
when,  in  the  autumn  of  1883,  he  had  actually  taken  his 
passage  for  his  return  to  Delhi.  The  day  had  been  fixed 
(October  22)  for  Bishop  Lightfoot  of  Durham  to  preach 
the  farewell  sermon  for  himself  and  the  two  new  mission- 
aries (the  Rev.  A.  Haig  and  the  Rev.  J.  VV.  T.  Wright) 
who  were  to  accompany  him.  On  the  eve  of  departure, 
however,  he  was  suddenly  prostrated  by  a  severe  return  of 
his  illness.  He  explained  the  situation  in  the  following 
letter  to  Mr.  Carlyon  : 

Christ  Church  Vicarage,  Hampstead  : 
October  19,  1883. 

My  dear  Carlyon, — This  letter  is  a  sad  one  for  me  to 
write,  and  I  know  it  will  be  a  sad  one  for  you  to  receive. 
To  tell  you  the  cause  at  once,  owing  to  an  attack  of  fever 
which  came  on  without  expectation  or  notice  last  Saturday, 


FURLOUGH  — I  KAMLINGIIA.M— CALL  TO  JAPAN  II3 


the  doctors  have  ordered  me  another  year  in  Europe,  and 
at  Westcott's  express  wish,  all  but  command,  I  have  been 
obliged  to  consent. 

To  give  you  more  particulars.  I  think  I  told  you, 
writing  on  Friday  last,  that  my  head  was  very  dizzy. 
However,  I  anticipated  no  evil,  and  started  Saturday 
morning  for  Cambridge  for  an  executive  committee. 
I  walked  up  to  my  brother's  rooms  (a  Pembroke  freshman) 
in  Tennis  Court  Road,  and  when  I  was  half-way  there,  to  my 
surprise  I  got  all  the  symptoms  of  the  old  ague,  which  I 
had  had  no  attack  of  since  last  January.  However,  there 
was  nothing  for  it,  and  I  got  on  to  our  committee,  which 
lasted  two  hours,  during  the  whole  of  which  I  was  most 
wretched. . .  .  On  Sunday  the  fit  had  gone,  and  I  was  able  to 
get  through — though  it  didn't  do  me  much  good — the  work 
I  had  arranged.  Westcott,  dear  loving  man,  pursued  me  by 
two  letters,  one  urging  me  on  his  own  account  to  see  doctors, 
and  another  on  behalf  of  a  number  of  the  committee,  whom 
he  had  taken  the  trouble  to  see.  So  perforce  I  went.  .  .  . 
On  Tuesday  I  saw  Dr.  Charles,  till  1880  the  first  man 
at  Calcutta  and  now  an  Honorary  Physician  to  the  Queen, 
so  I  suppose  there  could  be  no  higher  authority.  He 
examined  me  thoroughly,  and,  though  he  said  there  was 
nothing  organically  wrong,  positively  forbad  my  return, 
like  Gowers,  for  a  year.  His  reasons  were  that  I  am  still 
very  liable  to  fever  and  wholly  anaemic,  so  that  (he  said)  1 
should  not  have  a  chance  of  getting  through  the  rains, 
either  in  the  hills  or  plains,  without  breaking  down.  He 
wants  me  to  spend  all  the  winter,  doing  only  four  hours  a 
day  work,  in  Italy  and  the  Riviera,  and  then  next  summer 
(except  two  months)  in  Wales  and  Scotland.  Then,  and 
this  is  the  only  good  part  of  it,  he  says  I  shall  be  up  to 
another  five  or  six  years  in  India.  Less  than  two  winters, 
he  thought,  never  really  eradicated  fever,  if  it  had  at  all 
badly  taken  hold  of  one. 

Well,  it  seemed  utterly  sad,  and  to  break  up  all  one's 
plans  and  ideas.  However,  after  having  agreed  to  go  and 
see  the  doctors,  and  my  father  and  Westcott  being  so  very 
decided  that  I  ought  to  obey  what  they  said,  there  did  not 
seem  a  loophole  of  escape  for  this  year.  Another  year 
away  from  Delhi  and  a  year's  practical  idleness  are  a 
sufficiently  unwelcome  prospect  ;  and  the  Providence  which 
assigned  it,  just  as  I  seemed  so  very  much  better  in  health 

I 


114 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


and  was  all  prepared  to  start,  is  certainly  very  inexplicable  ; 
one  can  only  believe  if  grace  be  given  for  it  that  the  reason 
and  result  will  be  seen  hereafter.  It  is  so  sad  to  me  to 
think  of  not  seeing  you  all  for  so  long,  and  also  to  feel 
that  my  work  is  burdening  other  shoulders,  which  have 
more  than  enough  of  their  own  ;  but  I  must  look  forward 
to  next  )'ear,  and  you  will  too. 

My  plans  are  to  leave  this  on  the  30th  of  this  month — 
get  to  Bordighera  in  about  a  fortnight — move  about  the 
Riviera  places  (Cannes,  Mentone,  &c.)  till  February,  and 
then  go  on  to  Rome.  A  sister  goes  with  me,  and  another 
will  join  me  later. 

Your  affectionate  Brother  in  Christ, 
Edward  Bickersteth. 

While  to  Mr.  Allnutt  he  wrote  a  week  later  as  follows : 

Christ  Church  Vicarage,  Hampstead  : 
October  26,  1883. 

My  dear  Allnutt, —  .  .  .  The  service  of  farewell  for 
Wright  and  Haig  on  Monday  was  very  well  attended,  and 
all,  except  that  the  Bishop  had  a  very  husky  voice,  went 
well.  The  sermon  was  striking,  though  not  equal  to  '  the 
Father  of  Missionaries.'  You  will  see  the  last  half  in 
the  '  Guardian  '  of  next  week.  The  first  part  was  on  the 
phenomenon  of  the  vitality  of  so  small  and  insignificant  a 
nation  as  Israel  among  the  great  empires  of  the  past. 
There  was  also  a  striking  parallel,  quite  new  to  me,  between 
the  revivals  which  at  times  now  take  place  of  false  systems 
under  the  influence  of  Christianity  and  the  revival  which 
took  place  of  the  old  heathenism  between  the  time  of 
Pliny's  letter  and  that  of  Antoninus  Piu.s.  .  .  . 

Fare  thee  well  in  the  name  of  the  Lord.  Alas  that  I 
am  not  to  see  you  for  so  long.  I  have  the  kindest  and 
most  loving  letters  from  everyone — but  it  is  a  sad  dis- 
appointment, which  I  feel  more  daily. 

Your  very  affectionate  Brother  in  Christ, 
Edw.  Bickersteth. 

This  reluctance  to  give  up  even  temporarily  his  work 
at  Delhi  will  be  seen  to  be  a  proof  of  his  characteristic 
tenacity  of  purpose,  especially  in  the  light  of  a  letter  written 
three  months  before  to  Mr.  Lefroy.   Writing  on  St.  James's 


FURLOU(;iI — 1-RAMLINGIIAM — CALL  TO  JAPAN  II5 

Day,  1883,  after  referring  to  matters  then  being  debated 
between  the  S.P.G.  and  the  Cambridge  Mission,  he  said  : 

Now,  lastly,  as  to  myself  I  strictly  meant  what  I  said 
several  mails  since  that  no  plan  whatever  should  be  made 
to  hinge  on  me  for  some  time  to  come.  When  I  came 
home  I  went  to  a  London  physician  (Dr.  Gowers),  an 
uncommonly  able  fellow,  who  said  in  effect :  '  You  have 
been  very  ill  indeed  ;  I  can  cure  you  this  time,  but  if  you 
get  as  ill  a  second  time  you  will  not  recover.'  Practically, 
I  consider  that  he  has  kept  his  word  as  to  curing  me  through 
God's  mercy  ;  though  not  well,  I  am  very  much  better. 
I  have  been  to  him  several  times,  and  he  is  reconciled 
to  my  returning  to  India.  This  being  so,  I  propose  to 
return  to  Delhi  in  October  and  not  elsewhere.  If  I  fail 
and  get  serious  fever  again  I  should  probably  try  to  start 
.some  hill  mission  work,  or  to  carry  on  literary  work  in  the 
hills  for  the  rest  of  the  year  ;  but  in  this  case  it  would  be 
right  that  someone  else  be  appointed  Head  of  the  Cambridge 
Mission.  .  .  . 

Murray,  Maitland,  Haig,  and  Wright  all  meet  here 
to-morrow.    Christmas  together,  God  willing,  in  Delhi. 

The  truth  is  that  neither  then  nor  later  in  Japan  did  he 
know  when  he  was  beaten,  and  so  often  did  his  excellent 
constitution  and  the  buoyancy  of  his  temperament  respond 
to  the  calls  made  upon  them  by  his  faith  in  God  and  the 
fervour  of  his  missionary  zeal,  that  his  power  of  recovery 
may  well  have  seemed  to  himself  well-nigh  inexhaustible. 

But  although  the  head  of  the  mission  was  thus  obliged 
to  direct  its  affairs  from  a  distance  for  yet  another  twelve- 
month, there  were  one  or  two  matters  which  he  could 
handle  all  the  better  for  being  accessible  to  Cambridge  and 
to  London.  Notably  was  this  the  case  with  regard  to  (i) 
the  permanent  relationship  of  the  Cambridge  Mission  to 
to  the  S.P.G.  Mission  in  Delhi,  and  (2)  a  proposal  to  start 
a  Community  Mission  for  Women  there. 

With  regard  to  the  former,  it  was  inevitable  that  the 
successful  starting  of  a  University  mission  within  the  area 

I  2 


ii6 


r.ISHOr  EDWARD  lUCKEKSTETII 


of  an  S.P.G.  district,  much  in  the  same  way  as  a  College 
Mission  has  of  late  years  been  grafted  upon  the  parochial 
system  in  South  London,  would  raise  questions  as  to  the 
permanent  relationship  between  the  two  organisations 
which  required  careful  handling  if  the  work  was  to  be 
strong  and  to  last  on  after  those  acquainted  with  its 
original  foundation  (such  as  the  Rev.  R.  Bullock,  Secretary 
of  the  S.P.G.  till  1878)  had  passed  away.  This  was  in- 
evitable, quite  apart  from  the  personal  equation  of  those 
concerned.  The  settlement  of  the  matter  was  further 
complicated  by  some  divergence  of  view  between  Mr. 
and  Mrs.  Winter  and  the  members  of  the  Cambridge 
Mission.  This  difference  never  caused  disruption,  and  in 
the  end  Mr.  Winter  approximated  more  nearly  to  the 
views  taken  by  the  Cambridge  Brotherhood  ;  but  the 
way  by  which  progress  towards  identity  of  polic)'  and 
harmony  of  teaching  was  reached  led  through  a  prolonged 
and  tangled  correspondence. 

In  a  memorandum  (dated  May  4,  1883,  Pembroke 
College,  Cambridge)  for  the  Cambridge  Committee 
Bickersteth  wrote : 

When  the  rules  were  laid  down  under  which  the 
Cambridge  Mission  started,  it  was  declared  that  the 
arrangement  contemplated  in  them  was  temporary.  Mr. 
Winter  had  informed  the  Cambridge  Committee  that  he 
only  expected  to  return  to  India  for  a  few  years,  and 
Mr.  Bullock,  though  entering  into  no  agreement  on  behalf 
of  the  society,  looked  forward  to  the  mission  being  carried 
on  in  the  future  by  Cambridge  only. 

The  point  which  Bickersteth  always  pushed  to  the  fore 
was  that  '  only  thus  could  the  Cambridge  Mission  give  full 
effect  to  its  principles  and  methods  of  work.  This  cannot 
be  till  the  opportunity  is  given  it  of  attempting  to  carry 
out  all  branches  of  mission  work,  and  more  especially  of 
organising  and  training  a  native  CJmrcli,  tliroiigJi  ivJiich 


FURLOUGH— FRAMLINCIIAM — CALL  TO  JAPAN  II7 


alone  the  methods  and  principles  of  a  mission  can  ividcly 
influence  'the  people  of  India.'  He  therefore  thought  it  would 
be  well  if  the  Cambridge  Committee  would  request  the 
S.P.G.  to  consider  whether  they  would  not  be  prepared  to 
entrust  their  mission  at  Delhi  to  the  members  of  the 
Cambridge  Mission,  to  be  worked  by  it  after  Mr.  Winter's 
retirement,  and  in  the  meantime  not  to  send  more  mission- 
aries of  their  own  to  Delhi. 

No  useful  purpose  would  now  be  served  by  giving 
copious  extracts  from  the  letters  which  passed  between 
Delahay  Street,  Westminster,  and  Cambridge  and  Delhi  ; 
but  the  points  at  issue  involved  (i)  the  possible  amalgama- 
tion of  the  two  missions,  as  when  a  college  mission  some- 
times takes  over  the  administration  of  a  whole  parish,  its 
titular  head  being  Rector  or  Vicar  of  the  old  garish  ;  (2) 
the  future  title  of  the  mission ;  (3)  the  possibility  of  a 
married  missionary  being  connected  with  the  Cambridge 
Mission,  whose  wife  could  keep  up  some  of  the  zenana 
agencies  started  by  Mrs.  Winter  ;  (4)  the  supervision  of 
educational  work  solely  by  the  Cambridge  men. 

Canon  Crowfoot  of  Lincoln  was  a  personal  friend  of 
Bickersteth's,  and  as  he  had  also  previously  worked  at 
Delhi  and  was  a  member  of  the  S.P.G.  Standing  Committee, 
he  was  a  valuable  intermediary.  To  him  Bickersteth  wrote 
as  follows  : 

Christ  Church  \  icarage,  Hampstead  :  July  30,  1883. 

My  dear  Crowfoot, — I  received  a  copy  of  Winter's 
letter  and  a  letter  from  Winter  himself  some  weeks  since. 
It  seems  to  me  to  be  in  all  main  points  eminently 
satisfactory,  and  quite  such  as  our  [Cambridge]  Committee 
will  be  able  to  accept.  .  .  .  Winter's  suggested  title, 
'  Delhi  and  South  Punjab  Mission,'  could  not  be  used  in 
documents  to  be  circulated  in  Cambridge.  I  propose 
'  the  Cambridge  University  Mission  to  Delhi  supported  by 
S.P.G.'  This,  I  think,  might  be  used  both  by  us  and  by 
the  society,  which  would  be  a  great  gain.  His  (Mr.  Winter's) 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


plan  differs  toto  ccclo  from  the  other,'  which  I  think  could 
under  no  circumstances  be  accepted  by  us.  To  agree  to  it 
would  be,  I  am  sure,  practicallj-  to  condemn  the  University- 
Mission  to  a  condition  in  which  it  could  at  the  best  only 
hope  to  prolong  a  weak  and  lifeless  sort  of  existence.  ,  .  . 
As  to  the  whole  mission,  or  the  lead  of  the  mission 
reverting  to  S.P.G.,  I  do  not  think  we  need  consider  it 
now.  It  is  most  unlikely,  I  think,  that  it  ever  would  be  so, 
though  if  we  could  avoid  leaving  a  legacy  of  doubt  to  our 
successors  it  would  surely  be  better.  With  the  scheme  as 
a  whole  I  heartily  agree.  .  .  . 

Yours  ver)-  sincerely, 

Edw.  Bickersteth. 

The  return  to  England  that  summer  of  the  Bishop  of 
Lahore  (Dr.  French)  enabled  the  matter  to  be  discussed 
with  all  the  chief  authorities  concerned.  xAs  to  the  division 
of  the  CamJ^ridge  Mission  into  two  branches,  one  to  continue 
as  a  purely  educational  body  at  Delhi,  the  other  to  open 
up  more  varied  missionary  work  at  Cawnpur,'^  Bishop 
French,  then  sta}nng  with  Bishop  Lightfoot,  wrote  to  Dr. 
Westcott  as  follows  : 

Auckland  Castle  :  October  15,  1883. 

My  dear  Professor  Westcott, — I  had  sent  to  Bickersteth 
three  days  before  as  full  an  explanation  as  I  could  of  my 
views  on  the  knotty  point  of  the  precise  relations  to  be 
sustained  by  the  Cambridge  Brethren  towards  the  S.P.G. 
and  its  missionaries.  This  paper  will  doubtless  be  for- 
warded for  your  perusal,  as  also  for  that  of  the  Bishop  of 
Durham,  whose  guest  I  am  at  present  for  a  missionary 
anniversary. 

I  am  so  very  thankful  to  be  allowed  to  hope  that  there 
will  not  be  a  break  up  of  the  Cambridge  Mission  Brother- 
hood, and  a  severance  of  it  into  two  bands,  by  which  the 
original  idea  of  the  mission  will  be  almost  wholly  frustra- 
ted.   It  is  a  grand  field  viewed  in  its  various  departments, 

'  The  reference  is  to  an  alternative  plan  proposed  to  S.P.G.,  but  not 
adopted. 

-  It  is  interesting  to  note  that  the  work  contemplated  at  Cawnpur  has 
since  been  undertaken  by  two  of  the  sons  of  Bishop  Westcott,  who  with  the 
help  of  the  S.P.G.  started  a  missionary  Brotherhood  there  in  1895. 


FURLOUGH — FRAMLINGHAM  — CALL  TO  JAPAN  II9 


and  can  be  occupied  without  the  intrusion  of  rival  missions. 
I  pray  God  that  the  plan  may  be  adhered  to  in  its  entirety 
and  integrity.  .  .  . 

Yours  very  truly  and  obliged, 

Thos.  V.  Lahore. 

In  the  following  October  Bickersteth  wrote  to  Mr. 
Carlyon  that  the  S.P.G.  passed  a  resolution  to  the  effect 
'  that  the  society  agrees  very  carefully  to  abstain  from 
doing  anything  which  will  prevent  the  eventual  succession 
of  a  member  of  the  Cambridge  Mission  to  the  headship  of 
the  Delhi  Mission.'  The  Cambridge  Committee,  under- 
standing this  resolution  to  mean  that  '  nothing  would  be 
done  to  prevent  the  management  of  the  Delhi  Mission 
coming  into  the  hands  of  the  Cambridge  Mission,'  agreed 
to  it,  and  so  Bickersteth  had  the  satisfaction  of  leaving  a 
few  days  later  for  his  enforced  sojourn  on  the  Riviera 
knowing  that  this  question  of  the  relationship  between 
two  bodies  which  were  '  separate  yet  connected  '  had  been 
placed  in  a  fair  way  for  final  settlement. 

On  the  lamented  death  of  the  Rev.  R.  R.  Winter  in 
1 89 1  the  S.P.G.  put  their  work  under  the  supervision  of 
the  Cambridge  Mission.  In  Delhi  there  was  one  paid 
missionary  and  one  honorary  at  the  time.  The  present 
title  by  which  the  mission  is  known  is  '  The  Cambridge 
Mission  to  Delhi  in  connection  with  S.P.G.'  There  are 
branch  missions  in  Karnal,  Rohtak,  Gurgaon,  Rewari,  and 
other  places. 

The  other  matter  which  Bickersteth  endeavoured  to 
forward  was  the  establishing  of  some  organised  women's 
work  at  Delhi  to  help  in  the  zenana  work  started  by  Mrs. 
Winter,  as  well  as  in  the  medical  work. 

As  far  back  as  October  1881  he  had  written  to  Dr. 
Westcott  (from  Kotgarh,  in  the  Himalayas,  where  he  and 
Lefroy  had  gone  for  a  holiday) : 


120 


BISIIOr  EDWARD  BICKERSTKTII 


The  Zenana  mission  is,  of  course,  no  immediate  part  of 
our  work,  but  at  the  same  time  it  vitally  affects  the  whole 
mission  organisation.  A  mission  to  men  unsupported  by  a 
mission  to  women  would  indeed  be  now  quite  an  anachronism 
in  India.  The  influence  of  the  Zenana  on  Indian  youth 
from  the  despotic  old  grandame  downwards  is  proverbially 
strong,  and  efficient  Zenana  mission  work  is  the  only  hope 
of  purifying  this  influence  and  turning  it  in  a  right  direc- 
tion. So  far,  then,  as  this  is  concerned,  the  position  of  the 
Cambridge  Mission  is  at  present  a  very  unfortunate  one. 

He  felt  that  neither  the  existing  S.P.G.  Lahore  Diocesan 
Committee,  whose  chief  work  was  the  distribution  of  funds, 
nor  the  monthly  mission  council  at  Delhi,  on  which  natives 
sat,  could  be  a  governing  body  for  a  Zenana  mission. 

In  the  summer  of  1883  and  throughout  1884  he  corre- 
sponded much  with  Canon  Crowfoot  of  Lincoln  and  with 
the  members  of  the  Cambridge  Mission  in  Delhi  on  points 
of  detail. 

The  points  which  seemed  essential  to  Bickersteth  were 
that  the  head  of  the  whole  mission  should  be  head  of  the 
zenana  work  ;  that  the  Zenana  mission  should  in  future  be 
formed  into  a  community,  with  a  rule  of  its  own,  superin- 
tended by  a  lady  trained  herself  under  rule  in  England  ; 
that  the  then  band  of  workers,  older  or  younger,  should  be 
admitted  only  as  assistants ;  that  there  should  not  be  the 
smallest  hesitation  in  admitting  Eurasian  and  native  help 
to  the  full  position  of  Sisters,  if  otherwise  fit ;  that  the 
proposed  community  should  be  in  immediate  connection 
with  an  English  institution.  With  regard  to  the  vitally 
important  principle  of  'a  reasonable  agreement  in  theo- 
logical matters,'  he  wrote  to  Mr.  Winter,  who  feared 
development  on  extreme  lines,  to  re-assure  him. 

Christ  Church  X'icarage,  Hampstead  : 
July  18,  1884. 

My  dear  Winter, —  .  .  .  To  be  definite,  I  should  not 
wish  to  have  Sisters  at  Delhi  who  make  a  daily  celebration- 


FURLOUGH — FRAMLINGHAM -CALL  TO  JAPAN  121 


a  condition  of  uniting*  in  any  plan.  Not  that  I  object  to 
the  daily  celebration  in  itself ;  if  I  did,  I  should  go  against 
a  great  number  of  good  people,  St.  Austen  included,  but 
that  at  present  I  do  not  think  it  would  be  desirable  at 
Delhi  ;  nor  again  should  I  wish  to  have  Sisters  who  made 
Confession  compulsory,  and  a  good  many  practically  do 
so.  .  .  . 

Ever  affectionately  Yours, 

E.  B. 

He  was  eager  to  choose  St.  Hilda  as  a  name  for  the 
women's  mission.  '  I  find  her,'  he  wrote,  *  described  as 
"  sancta,  prudens,  literata,"  in  a  note  to  Bright's  "  Early 
English  Church." ' 

A  memorandum  for  circulation  in  England  was  drawn 
up  by  Bickersteth  and  sent  by  him  to  Canon  Crowfoot 
'  for  criticism  and  suggestion,'  and  then  laid  before  Dr. 
Westcott  and  the  Bishop  of  Lahore,  who  gave  it  their 
full  approval.  The  death  of  Mrs.  Winter,  and  her  call  to 
rest  from  her  incessant  labours  early  in  the  autumn  of  1884, 
made  it  more  urgent  than  ever  to  provide  for  the  future  of 
zenana  work.  '  The  name  [he  wrote]  has  been  altered 
from  St.  Hilda  to  St.  Stephen  at  Mr.  Winter's  request.  I 
think  for  the  worse,  but  we  thought  we  ought  to  yield.' 

But  the  appeal,  so  carefully  discussed,  although  printed 
in  December,  was  not  widely  circulated,  for  a  letter  came 
from  Mr.  Winter  begging  for  still  further  delay.  Bicker- 
steth wrote  to  Lefroy : 

Rectory,  Framlingham  :  December  19,  1884. 

...  I  heard  yesterday  of  Winter's  return  and  that  he 
wishes  no  steps  taken  in  re  Sisterhood  till  he  comes.  Give 
him  my  love  and  tell  him  he  was  just  in  time  to  stop  our 
second  circular,  as  before  our  first.  Do  not  tell  him  that  I 
am  absolutely  certain  that  his  attempt  to  establish  a  Broad 
Church  .Sisterhood,  which  is  what  his  letter  to  Crowfoot 
amounts  to,  is  foredoomed  to  failure.  A  Sisterhood  need 
not  be  on  extreme  lines,  but  I  feel  sure  that  for  success 


122 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


the  Sisters  must  be  not  only  '  learned,  with  piety  taken  for 
granted,'  but  come  out  because  they  have  a  real  vocation 
and  also  possess,  and  so  are  able  to  teach,  a  full  and  clear 
creed. 

Your  loving  Brother  iv  Xp(crT(w, 

E.  B. 

For  the  time  being  no  further  steps  could  be  taken. 
The  present  zenana  and  medical  work  is  carried  on  from 
St.  Stephen's  House,  Delhi,  by  eighteen  workers,  as  well  as 
at  four  other  centres. 

The  first  week  in  November  1883  saw  Bickersteth  with 
one  of  his  younger  sisters,  May,  settled  at  the  Hotel  de  la 
Terrasse,  Cannes,  for  the  winter.  Then  began  between 
this  brother  and  sister  that  close  friendship  and  community 
of  interest,  intellectual  and  spiritual,  which  was  to  bear 
fruitful  results  in  after  years  when  this  sister  became  the 
organising  secretary  of  the  Guild  of  St.  Paul  in  support 
of  Community  missions  in  Japan.  Brother  and  sister  paid 
a  visit  to  Avignon,  '  the  old  papal  chateau  or  fortress,'  on 
their  way  out,  and  he  wrote  to  Mr.  Lefroy  to  announce  his 
arrival. 

Hotel  de  la  Terrasse,  Cannes  : 
Xoveniber  9,  1S83. 

My  dear  Lefroy, — Here  in  Cannes  we  are  going  to 
stay,  and  not  in  Bordighera,  as  I  thought  when  I  was 
writing  before.  I  shall  send  to  Bordighera  to  see  if  any 
letters  have  gone  from  you  to  me  there.  Several  reasons 
have  induced  us  rather  to  choose  Cannes.  One  that  Dr. 
Charles  is  here,  the  physician  who  sent  me  abroad  ;  then 
that  we  have  several  friends  ;  also,  I  regret  to  say  that  we 
have  a  young  cousin,  a  girl  of  nineteen,  one  of  the  ablest 
that  has  been  to  Lady  Margaret  Hall,  Oxford,  exceedingly 
ill  of  consumption  and  with  only  a  slight  hope  of  temporary 
betterment,  living  at  Grasse,  a  place  close  by.  Such  is  life. 
Here  am  I  positively  doing  nothing — walks,  shoppings,  tea 
parties,  luncheons,  &c.,  &c. — and  that  at  a  time  when  I 
expected  to  be  back  with  you  all  and  in  the  thick  of  work. 
I  am  here  because  there  seemed  positively  no  alternative, 


FURLOUGH— FRAMLINGIIAM — CALL  TO  JAPAN      1 23 


and,  as  it  was  said  to  me  yesterday,  there  are  instances 
in  which  vox  medici  is  vox  Dei.  I  cannot  but  admit, 
after  my  last  attack  of  fever  (as  my  own  feehngs  told 
me),  that  the  doctors  were  for  once  right.  I  am  doing 
nothing,  because  having  consented  to  come  it  seems  folly 
to  defeat  the  end  of  coming  by  work,  as  they  tell  me  I 
assuredly  should. 

And  there  are  you,  doing  far  more  work  than  you 
ought,  and  this  partly  because  you  have  mine  on  your 
shoulders  as  well  as  your  own.  With  the  general  disposi- 
tion of  things,  rest  content.  It  is  a  nobler  call  far  to  work 
than  to  rest,  and  you  are  worthy  of  it.  But  for  this  very 
reason  you  should  not  exhaust  your  strength.  It  was 
utterly  foolish  of  you  not  to  take  a  holiday,  and  I  hope 
you  will  get  some  change  during  the  winter.  .  . 

Ever  your  affectionate  Brother  in  Christ, 
Edward  Bickersteth. 

Six  weeks  later  he  wrote  again  to  Mr.  Lefroy  a  letter 
which  shows  his  inability  to  keep  his  mind  from  perpetually 
working  on  Indian  problems,  though  it  also  illustrates  his 
sense  of  humour. 

Cannes  :  December  29,  1883. 

My  dear  Lefroy, — I  have  only  a  talkative  salon  to 
write  to  you  in  just  now,  so  won't  be  altogether  responsible 
for  the  coming  production.  So  many  thanks  for  your 
letter,  which  reached  me  from  Bordighera.  I  do  feel  it 
indeed  sad  to  be  separated  in  '  presence '  and  work  for 
another  year  (only  ten  months  now),  but  though  I  am  really 
getting  on  here,  I  cannot  say  the  doctors  were  wrong. 
I  might  have  got  back  to  India  and  to  work  for  a  bit,  but 
I  think  it  would  probably  have  been,  as  they  said,  to 
topple  over,  like  a  house  of  cards,  before  so  very  long. 
Now  I  shall  quite  hope,  God  willing,  for  a  spell  of  work  ; 
and  experience  has  shown  that  in  most  cases  it  is  only 
periods  of  work  on  which  reasonable  expectations  of 
results  can  be — based.  (There !  I  have  got  a  word  ;  a 
nervous  old  lady  is  chattering  on  draughts.  There  !  she  is 
gone.    Expect  a  slight  improvement  in  composition.) 

Now  about  the  two  or  three  things  you  mentioned. 
First  about  the  catcchists'  class.  I  am  very  glad  you  are 
going  to  take  the  Church  history.    Should  I  take  it  again, 


124 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


you  are  not  likely  to  have  exhausted  that  endless  subject ; 
but  in  all  this  work  I  think  it  will  be  better  that  you  should 
not  look  on  what  you  are  doing  as  temporary  (except  so 
far  as  you  may  be  overtaxing  your  strength  in  taking  it  up 
at  all).  What  I  mean  is  that  when  I  come  back  to  India 
I  think  that  it  will  be  well  for  a  year  or  two  that  I  should 
do  work  which  does  not  involve  any  great  change  of 
organisation  &c.  if  I  give  it  up  ;  e.g.  I  can  preach,  take 
tours,  visit  Muhammadans,  give  a  course  of  lectures  to 
masters  if  you  want  one,  and  I  hope  get  to  work  on  some 
book.  These  kind  of  things  can  be  dropped  if  I  get  ill, 
and  the  literary  work  I  could  take  to  the  hills  with  me. 
Furthermore,  if  I  find  it  necessary  to  work  sometimes  at 
half-pressure,  I  should  not  feel  tied  by  such  work  in  the 
same  way  as  by  work  which  recurred  on  fixed  days.  I 
do  not  mean  that  if  I  keep  well  I  should  not  try  to  get  to 
something  more  regular,  but  that,  as  I  said,  for  a  time  I 
think  this  would  be  a  wiser  arrangement.  So  in  anything 
you  start  for  the  class  don't  feel  only  '  in  charge.'  And 
still  more  with  Daryaganj,  about  which  I  want  a  long 
letter — a  little  bird  whispered  to  me  that  it  was  going  on 
admirably.  You  must  be  their  permanent  pastor  and 
priest  in  every  sense,  though  of  course  I  will  give  you  any 
help  I  can. 

The  plan  of  the  Cambridge  Mission  Commentary  on 
the  New  Testament  was  to  get  the  books  divided  out 
among  certain  men  of  whom  we  should  have  the  choosing. 
I  thought  it  would  be  best  to  endeavour  in  all  cases  to 
put  a  native  and  European  together,  the  former  to  supply 
illustration  and  to  ensure  intelligibility — the  latter  for 
information,  and  to  counteract  the  fancifulness  &c.  of  the 
native  brother.  Further,  I  thought  the  commentary  should 
be,  if  possible,  very  much  shorter,  and  if  the  language 
admits  it  terser,  than  Clark's  and  Imad-ud-din's  (I  doubt 
theirs  being  much  read)  ;  and  then  if  '  our '  commentary 
were  published  in  moderate  sized  volumes  there  would  be 
a  hope  of  catechists  taking  it  about  with  them  on  their 
tours  and  so  forth,  or  at  all  events  not  being  afraid  to 
begin  a  volume.  Further,  I  had  the  idea  that  it  should  be 
in  a  native-looking  form  and  style,  so  that  an  inquiring 
moulvi  might  not  disdain  it.  I  should  not  mind  if  the 
comments  were  printed  round  the  paper,  Quran  and 
Persian  poetry  fashion.    I  think  the  idea  is  worth  recon- 


FUKI.OUCII  —  FKAMLINGIIAM  — CALL  TO  JAPAN  I25 


sidering,  though  two  )'ear.s  ago  the  Bishop  thought  it  prema- 
ture ;  but  now  if  you  and  xAlhiutt  could  contribute  and,  say, 
Shirreff,  Hooper,  and  Wcitbrecht,  there  would  at  least  be  a 
nucleus  of  an  English  company.  Short  essays  on  such 
subjects  as  you  mention,  '  the  authority  of  the  Christian 
Ministry,'  might  certainly  very  well  be  added,  and  some 
detached  notes,  without  making  the  volumes  too  bulky. 
I'll  send  you  a  tiny  paper  of  headings  for  an  essay  on  that 
same  subject  next  week.  The  Bishop  of  Durham  com- 
plains in  the  last  edition  of  his  '  Galatians  '  that  he  has  been 
much  misrepresented  and  misunderstood  in  what  he  said 
about  '  episcopacy.'  Of  course,  as  a  necessary  conse- 
quence, he  is  now  accused  of  having  changed  his  opinions 
since  he  became  a  Bishop  ! 

I  hope  the  new  men  will  take  to  school  work,  and 
very  much  hope  that  with  your  powers  of  picking  up  the 
language,  making  its  sounds  and  understanding  them,  }-ou 
will  be  able  to  throw  yourself  into  vernacular  and  literary 
work.  But  you  will  be  guided  by  circumstances — that  is,  by 
the  Hand  which  makes  the  circumstances.  Tell  me  when 
you  write  what  you  are  doing  in  the  language  line.  Have 
you  learnt  any  Persian  ?  If  so,  don't  stay  too  long  over 
the  dull  books.  Some  of  the  poetry  and  philosophj-  I 
read  with  Cowell  is  most  interesting. 

E.g.  :  the  ]\Iasna%'i,  of  which  (book  i.)  there  is  an 
infamous  translation  in  the  library. 

Aklagi  Jalali,  an  Orientalised  Aristotle's  '  Nico- 
machean  Ethics  ; '  there  is  a  still  worse  translation  in  an 
old  Oriental  Society's  series. 

Umr  Khaiyaiiis  Rubaiyat.  I  think  I  sent  you  out  a 
translation  in  the  last  batch  of  books. 

Also,  have  you  done  any  Arabic  ?  I  find  I  can  read 
the  Quran  with  the  help  of  Penrice's  dictionary,  a  transla- 
tion, and  notes  !  ! !  and  )-ou  might  certainly  get  so  far  and 
much  beyond,  but  so  far  is  distinctly  useful.  There  is  an 
excellent  new  manual  of  Hindi ;  it  is  up  three  flights  of 
hotel  stairs  or  I  would  give  you  the  name,  as  it  is  I'll  put 
it  on  the  outside.  It  contains,  I  fancy,  about  all  that  we 
need  know. 

Well,  goodbye  (in  its  true  sense). 

Your  ever  affectionate  Brother  in  Christ, 

Edwd.  Bickersteth. 


126 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


During  this  time  he  made  many  dcHghtful  friendships, 
seeing  much  of  Dr.  Murray  Mitchell  and  others.  When 
visiting  the  Riviera  myself  in  the  spring  of  1895,  I  came 
across  several  of  the  English  residents  there  who  had 
never  lost  the  impression  made  by  contact  with  his  earnest 
missionary  zeal.  His  pastoral  visits  to  his  young  cousin, 
Miss  Efifie  Murchison,  daughter  of  the  late  Dr.  Roderick 
Murchison,  who  had  come  into  Cannes  from  Grasse,  were 
paid  daily,  and  in  January  he  had  to  break  to  her  at  the 
doctor's  wish  that  human  skill  could  do  no  more  to  prolong 
her  life.    He  wrote  to  Lefroy  (January  1884) : 

I  scarce  know  how  I  got  through  my  task,  but  she  was 
far  calmer  than  I  ;  indeed,  I  shall  never  forget  her  perfect 
self-control  and  peace,  and  I  see  her  daily — to,  avco  ^tjtelts, 
TO,  avw  (fypovsLTS.  At  least  these  experiences  should  be  a 
help  to  me  to  do  this. 

At  Easter  he  moved  on  to  Rome,  and  from  there 
wrote  to  Lefroy,  on  hearing  of  the  death  of  his  brother  : 

llolel  d'Allemagne,  Rome:  April  19,  1884. 

My  dear  Lefroy, — Your  letter  reached  me  just  before 
I  left  Cannes,  and  I  was  very  glad  to  have  it.  All  in- 
formation as  to  how  matters  go  with  you  all  is  very 
welcome  to  me,  and  will  be  till  (D.V.)  I  see  you  in 
October.  Here  people  wish  one  another  a  '  buona 
Pasqua  ; '  why  do  not  we  in  England,  as  much  as  '  A 
Happy  Christmas  ?  '  Anyhow  I  hope  you  may  have  been 
having  such,  and  it  will  not  have  been  the  less  so  in  one 
sense  to  you  personally  that  you  will  have  connected  it 
with  the  thought  of  your  brother  who  has  been  taken  from 
you.  I  had  not  heard  of  this  till  I  got  your  letter,  and 
now  I  pray  God  to  comfort  you  and  yours  in  the  thought 
of  him.  The  truest  comfort,  indeed,  you  have  in  the '  good 
Christian  hope '  of  which  you  tell  me.  and  Easter  fulfils 
it,  as  far  as  may  be,  till  the  sTTLavva.'^oyyr]  ett'  Avtov  with 
its  wondrous  teaching  that  death  is  a  conquered  foe.  It 
requires  much  faith  though  to  accept  this  and  all  it  means. 
I  have  felt  this  during  the  winter  in  attending  constantly 
on  several  dying  people.  .  .  .  Well,  I  said  it  requires  faith 


FURLOUGH — FKAMLINGHAM — CALL  TO  JAPAN     1 27 


to  believe  this  that  when  death  seems  so  absolutely  vic- 
torious it  is  not,  and  yet  the  two  facts  of  our  Lord  being  the 
Second  Adam  and  of  His  Resurrection  carry  with  them 
no  less.    '  Lord  increase  our  faith.'  .  .  . 

Ever  your  affectionate  Brother  in  Christ, 

E.  B. 

In  Rome  they  met  Mrs.  Charles,  their  authoress  friend 
of  Hampstead,  and  returned  to  England  by  way  of  Assisi, 
the  home  of  St.  Francis,  Perugia  the  old  Umbrian  capital, 
Florence,  and  thence  back  to  Cannes,  as  Bickersteth's  cousin 
had  died  there  on  May  5  and  he  wished  to  visit  her  grave. 
Writing  to  Lefroy  from  Hampstead,  May  16,  1884,  he 
said  : 

I  hope  it  has  been  good  for  me  to  have  my  own 
mind  so  often  of  necessity  occupied  with  the  thoughts  of 
the  other  world  and  the  preparation  for  it,  but  oh  !  how 
strange  the  mystery  of  it  all  is,  and  taken  at  its  fullest 
(and  I  can't  quite  follow  Dr.  Westcott's  plea  for  keeping 
one's  mind  all  but  a  blank  on  the  subjecr),  still  how  little 
one  knows  of  the  world  upon  which  they  enter.  I  think 
it  is  not  sufficiently  customary  among  us  to  practise 
meditation  on  the  other  life.  I  suppose  it  passed  away  a 
good  deal  with  prayers  for  the  dead  ;  but  if  they  were  at 
all  generally  revived  in  the  form  of  Scudamore's  Saturday 
prayer,  and  if  it  were  more  the  custom  to  keep  private 
diptychs  of  those  at  rest  (as  the  prayers  of  the  old  Greek 
Liturgy  form  have  so  passed  out  of  use),  I  think  it  would 
be  helpful  and  salutary. 

And  a  few  weeks  later  he  wrote  to  Mr,  Allnutt  from 
Cambridge  : 

Pembroke  College,  Cambridge  :  June  3,  1884. 

My  dear  Allnutt, — You  see  I  am  here  again  in  this 
dear  old  place,  which  is  looking  its  loveliest  and  best.  I 
paid  a  good  many  visits  yesterday,  and  have  just  dotted 
down  fifteen  more  that  have  to  be  paid  to-day  and  to- 
morrow morning.  .  .  . 

On  the  great  subject  of  the  Intermediate  State,  I 
don't  feel  that  I  have  anything  helpful  to  say.  Two  or 
three  points  strike  me  in  what  you  say. 


128 


r.ISIIOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


1.  If  the  teaching  of  many  passages  on  the  activity  of 
the  soul  in  the  intermediate  state  is  to  be  balanced  against 
the  one  word  Koi^aadat,  it  seems  to  me  that  the  result 
must  be  in  favour  of  the  many  passages  as  against  the 
one  word.  Koiixaa-Qai  xs  easily  intelligible  on  the  theory  of 
activity,  the  other  passages  are  not  intelligible  on  the 
theory  of  a  soul  asleep. 

2.  Does  not  Dr.  Westcott's  suggestion  that  the  soul  with- 
out the  body  has  no  energetic  power  seem  contrary  to  his 
own  constant  teaching,  that  we  ought  not  to  give  opinions 
on  matters  which  our  present  faculties  arc  not  suited  to  take 
cognisance  of? 

3.  May  there  not  be  something  in  the  Hindu  theory 
that  the  soul  after  death  has  an  organ  of  its  own  through 
which  it  still  acts  ?  This  is  strongly  urged  in  one  of  the 
last  sermons  of  a  volume  of  sermons  by  the  Nonconformist 
preacher  Baldwin  Brown,  which  is  in  my  shelf  of  sermons. 

4.  Dr.  W'estcott  suggests  in  a  passing  sentence  of  his 
new  v'olume  of  sermons  that  St.  Paul  in  2  Cor.  v.  is  referring 
to  the  heathen  idea  of  being  unclothed — such,  I  suppose, 
as  Virgil  describes  in  the  meeting  of  yEneas  and  his  father 
— in  this  case  I  suppose  the  passage  would  have  no 
reference  to  a  Christian  view  of  Paradise  ? 

Tell  me  in  your  next  if  you  have  any  opinion  on  this 
point — viz.  what  account  is  to  be  given  of  our  Lord's  human 
body  still  bearing  the  marks  of  the  Passion  if  Westcott's 
theory  (worked  out  in  the  '  Historic  faith  ')  of  the  soul,  so  to 
say,  forming  its  own  body  hereafter  is  to  be  accepted  ? 

Your  ever  affectionate  Brother  in  Christ, 
Edwd.  Bickersteth. 

That  summer  he  preached  at  Wells  Cathedral  and  ad- 
dressed the  members  of  the  Theological  College,  and  stayed 
some  days  with  the  Bishop  of  Truro  (Dr.  Wilkinson)  at  Lis 
Escop.  The  Bishop  introduced  him  to  Sister  Julian,  Superior 
of  the  Community  of  the  Epiphany,  whose  friendship  he 
greatly  valued  and  to  whose  advice  he  owed  much  in  later 
days  when  forming  and  carrying  on  the  work  of  St.  Hilda's 
Mission  in  Tokyo.  Later  on  he  visited  the  Bishop  of 
Durham  (Dr.  Lightfoot),  and  assisted  at  the  marriage  of 


KUkLOUGII — FRAMLINGHAM — CALL  TO  JAPAN     I  29 


his  friend  the  Rev.  J.  D.  M.  Murray,'  who  had  gone  out  to 
Delhi  w  ith  him  (1877).  In  August  he  went  to  Scotland, 
from  whence  he  wrote  to  Lefroy,  still  under  the  impression 
he  was  to  return  to  Delhi  in  October  : 

Pitlochrie,  Perthshire  :  Augusl  6,  1884. 

M\-dcar  Lefroy, — You  will  have  heard  of  me  indirectly 
through  Winter,  but  I  indeed  owe  you  some  direct  reply  to 
your  most  interesting  accounts.  Taking  it  as  a  whole,  I 
am  sure  we  have  every  reason  for  deep  thankfulness  at  the 
result  of  your  great  meeting.^  Hitherto  one  has  felt  that 
there  has  been  something  behind  keeping  the  men  back  ; 
that  even  the  better  sort  of  them,  who  attended  services 
and  in  part  obeyed  Christian  laws  and  followed  Christian 
customs,  were  trammelled  by  their  connection  with  their 
fellow-countrymen,  and  so  had  but  little  sense  of  the  value 
of  their  new  privileges,  and  less  still  of  the  happiness  of 
true  religion.  Now  I  do  hope  there  will  be  a  change. 
Decision  for  God  was  what  was  needed,  and  this  seems  to 
have  been  after  the  first  few  defalcations  just  what  your 
midnight  meeting  has  led  to. 

It  will  be  a  great  joy  to  you  that  your  work  among 
these  men  during  these  past  two  years  has  led  up  to  this, 
and  you  ought  to  accept  it  to  the  full.  Missionaries  want 
all  the  joy  God  sends  them.  And  it  seems  to  me  to  augur 
very  well  for  the  future  of  the  Chaiiiars  in  Delhi.  Of 
course,  as  you  say,  there  will  be  still  plenty  of  difficulties, 
and  the  little  ship  will  want  piloting  amid  rocks  and  quick- 
sands for  many  a  day  yet.  Still,  if  there  are  some  deter- 
mined men  even  in  one  quarter  of  the  city  who  value  their 
faith  and  their  fidelity  to  their  Lord  above  all  things,  in 
the  end  all  will  be  well,  afid  the  good  neutralise  and 
lessen  the  evil  from  year  to  year. 

With  heartiest  love,  I  am, 
Your  affectionate  Brother  in  Christ, 

E.  B. 

But  next  month  came  keen  disappointment.  The 
doctors  again  refused  their  permission  for  him  to  return, 

'  He  had  retired  from  the  mission  in  1880,  and  died  in  London, 
December  10,  1894. 

-  See  chapter  iv.  p.  9^. 

K 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


and  would  not  be  moved  by  his  earnest  wishes.  The 
college  living  of  Framlingham,  in  Suffolk,  had  just  fallen 
vacant,  and  he  was  strongly  advised  by  some  of  his  friends 
to  take  it.  On  turning  then,  as  always,  to  his  father, 
to  Bishop  Lightfoot,  and  Dr.  Westcott  for  advice,  he  was 
surprised  to  find  that  they  all  three  agreed  that  it  was  his 
duty  to  accept  the  offer,  at  least  for  a  time. 

The  living  was  one  of  the  best  endowed  in  the  gift  of 
the  college,  being  then  of  the  value  of  1,350/.  per  annum, 
with  good  rectory  and  grounds.  The  parish,  with  the  hamlet 
of  Saxsted,  was  in  the  county  of  Suffolk  and  diocese  of 
Norwich,  with  a  population  of  3,000  souls.  The  place  was 
not  devoid  of  many  interests,  but  owing  to  the  advanced 
age  of  a  nonagenarian  rector  it  had  fallen  behind  the 
times  in  the  matter  of  parochial  efficiency.  To  speak 
plainly,  almost  everything  had  to  be  done  if  '  the  cure  of 
the  souls  of  the  said  parishioners  '  was  to  be  fulfilled. 

Bickersteth  entered  upon  the  work  in  October  and  at 
once  set  to  work  to  do  what  was  necessary,  but  it  is  clear 
he  never  felt  settled  there.    He  wrote  to  Lefroy  : 

I  am  feeling  very  sad  these  days,  thinking  of  your 
getting  my  letter  at  Delhi,  and  oh  !  so  wishing  that  for  my 
letter  and  its  sadness  I  could  substitute  myself  and  the  joy 
of  meeting  you.  I  cannot  bear  to  think,  and  do  not  think, 
that  all  the  work  we  have  done  (and  especially  you  and  I 
together)  is  the  work  of  a  closed  chapter  in  life,  and  I  cannot 
but  feel  that  we  shall  be  allowed  sojne-ivliile  to  write  it  out 
to  a  completer  end.  It  may  not  be  so.  God  only  knows, 
and  in  this  thought  is.  and  ought  to  be,  rest. 

In  a  letter  to  the  Rev.  S.  S.  Allnutt  he  enumerated  some 
ways  in  which  he  hoped  still  to  be  of  use  to  the  Cambridge 
Mission  while  Rector  of  Framlingham. 

Pembroke  College,  Cambridge:  October  21,  1884. 

First,  SO  many  thanks  for  telegraphing.  I  read  into 
your  words  all  the  love  that  sent  them — not  that  I  was 


FURLOUGH — FRAMLINGHAM — CALL  TO  JAPAN  131 


able  exactly  to  act  on  them  in  any  literal  way.  Having 
accepted  Framlingham,  I  was  forced  to  go  on  with 
the  various  processes  of  Induction,  Institution,  &c., 
but  then  you  know,  as  Thiers  said  about  fhfe  French 
Republic,  '  a  thing  is  not  eternal  because  it  is  estab- 
lished ; '  so  it  is  with  me  and  this  living.  If  I  see  my 
way  opened  India-wards  again,  and  .some  ray  of  light 
showing  me  that  I  am  to  walk  along  it — I  should  rather 
perhaps  say,  hear  some  voice  bidding  me  do  so — no  con- 
sideration of  being  in  an  English  living  will,  I  trust  and 
hope,  keep  me  from  coming  to  you.  I  feel  sure  that  I  was 
right  in  obeying  now  and  doing  what  I  was  told,  notwith- 
standing the  grief  unto  tears  which  the  decision  has  caused 
me  ;  but  I  do  not  at  all  feel  equally  sure  that  to  come  out 
may  not  be  my  duty  (made  plain  as  my  duty)  in  less  time 
than  most  people  think.  Only  I  feel  I  cannot  make  plans. 
When  God  wills  me  to  come,  if  so  it  be  (and  as  I  expect), 
He  will  make  it  plain  that  I  ought  to  come  by  giving  me 
strength  perhaps,  and  opening  some  special  work  for  me 
with  you,  or  making  it  easy  for  me  to  give  up  work  here. 
I  shall  try  daily  to  pray,  "  Make  Thou  Thy  way  plain 
before  my  face. ' 

He  also  wrote  to  me  at  Ripon,  where  I  then  resided  as 
chaplain  to  the  Bishop  (Dr.  Boyd  Carpenter) : 

The  Rectory,  Framlingham  : 
October  31,  1884. 

My  dear  Sam,^ — It  is  before  breakfast  but  after  chota 
haziri  (we  keep  somewhat  Indian  hours  here).  As  for 
writing  you  a  long  letter  about  my  doings,  don't  you  wish 
you  may  get  it  ?  Why,  you  might  consider  it  so  interesting  ! 
as  to  take  it  instead  of  the  visit  you  promised  me  here.  I 
am  expecting  you  for  some  of  the  days  you  (previous  to 
receiving  this  letter)  meant  to  spend  (only  by  a  lapse  of 
memory)  at  Lancaster  Gate.  On  the  whole  I  shall  wish 
to  have  you  on  the  12th,  as  a  young  curate  is  coming  to 
stay  with  me  later,  and  we  shall  be  less  cosy  (derivation 
'  causer  '  to  chat,  so  equals  '  chatable  '  or  '  chatatory  '). 

Yes,  I  am  here — for  a  time.  I  can't  think  for  long — 
with  enough  work  for  ten  years  in  merely  getting  things 
into  order.  I  am  thankful  to  be  allowed  to  work,  and  feel 
better  able  to  do  it  than  previously — but  at  present  I  do 

K  2 


'32 


lilSHOf  KDWARl)  niCKERSTETH 


yiot  feel,  though  I  shall,  I  trust,  do  all  I  can  while  here,  that 
this  is  to  be  my  life's  work.  But  God  knoweth.  And,  after 
all,  life  is  far  more  like  a  mosaic  of  different  pieces  than  a 
polished  slab,  so  in  a  sense  it  is  life's  work. 

About  the  word  catholic,  see  Westcott's  note  in  his 
'  Canon.'    The  more  important  of  its  two  early  meanings 
{universal  and  proportiojiate) — that  is,  proportionate 
been  forgotten. 

Yours  very  affectionately, 

E.  B. 

To  his  old  head  master  he  wrote : 

November  5,  1884. 

My  dear  Dr.  Dyne, — It  was  a  very  great  pleasure  to 
me  to  receive  your  kind  letter.  Leaving  Indian  work  for 
the  time  being  (I  do  not  give  up  the  hope  of  getting  back 
to  it  in  time)  has  been  a  great  trial  to  me,  but  I  believe 
that  it  is  God's  will  that  I  should  be  for  a  while  here.  I 
have  a  large  parish,  with  two  churches  and  two  curates. 

Yours  most  sincerely, 

Edward  Bickersteth. 

The  parish  church  of  Framlingham  needed  restoration 
and  that  work  he  at  once  began,  though  he  could  not  do  more 
than  begin  it.  He  was  enabled,  however,  to  see  some  desir- 
able alterations  made  in  the  chancel,  and  also  in  its  furniture. 

As  for  the  spiritual  fabric,  he  knew  it  to  be  a  much 
more  delicate  and  difficult  matter  to  handle  wisely  the 
spiritual  stones  of  the  living  Church  of  Christ.  But  house- 
to-house  visitation  there,  as  everywhere,  proved  an  invalu- 
able opportunity  for  explaining  alterations,  removing  pre- 
judices, recruiting  workers,  as  well  as  for  that  direct  appeal  to 
the  human  conscience,  which  the  true  pastor  of  souls  learns 
how  and  when  to  make.  Some  of  his  friends,  notably 
Canon  Crowfoot  of  Lincoln,  came  to  his  assistance  in 
beginning  for  that  parish  the  special  use  of  Advent  and 
Lent  as  seasons  for  spiritual  advance.  The  services  of 
Holy  Week  in  1885  and  the  Three  Hours'  service  on  Good 


FURLOUGH — FRAMLINGHAM— CALL  TO  JAPAN     I  33 


Frida}',  conducted  by  Canon  Crowfoot,  warmed  the  hearts 
of  the  people  for  the  Easter  l^'estival,  the  congregations  on 
that  day  being  full  of  encouragement.  A  visit  paid  to  the 
parish  in  1898,  the  j^ear  after  his  death  and  twelve  years 
after  he  had  ceased  to  be  Rector,  elicited  from  many  their 
faithful  and  grateful  remembrance  of  one  who  in  his  short 
ministry  there  had  led  them  to  Christ. 

But  had  he  wished  to  settle  down,  his  former  Diocesan, 
Bishop  French  of  Lahore,  had  no  intention  of  losing 
his  services  in  India  if  he  could  possibly  retain  them. 
The  value  which  he  set  on  his  chaplain's  work  and 
influence  may  be  gathered  from  a  note  in  his  Diary,  written 
a  year  later  on  hearing  of  his  call  to  Japan  : 

Bickersteth's  withdrawal  has  stunned  me  and  pierced 
me  to  the  quick  of  my  soul.  Should  I,  like  Jonah,  when 
stormy  waves  beat  over  our  ship,  ask  to  be  let  down  the 
side  of  the  ship,  not  to  be  swallowed  up,  even  temporarily  I 
hope,  but  to  be  transferred  to  some  small  missionary  post  ? 
The  diocese  should  go  into  mourning,  and  the  Gazette 
record  it  in  black-edged  notice.  I  have  gone  for  a  day's 
outing  when  young,  and  something  has  happened  which 
took  zest,  sparkle,  and  spangle  out  of  the  day's  pleasure  ; 
I  am  almost  tempted  to  find  this  in  this  sorrowful  event. 

He  referred  to  the  same  subject  in  an  address  to  his 
clergy  at  the  Diocesan  Synod  at  Lahore,  November  23, 
1885  : 

About  the  transfer  of  Mr.  Bickersteth's  services  I  can 
hardly  trust  myself  to  speak  yet.  It  ought  to  be  a  thought 
of  comfort,  and  will  be  so,  I  trust,  when  the  first  shock  of 
sorrow  and  disappointment  has  passed,  that  if  the  diocese 
of  Lahore  must  wear  the  weeds  of  mourning,  that  of  Japan 
may  well  wear  the  marriage  garment  of  joy  and  praise. 

It  is  not  therefore  surprising  that  on  this  occasion  he 
left  no  stone  unturned  to  secure  his  return.  On  hearing  of 
the  acceptance  of  Framlingham,  he  telegraphed  at  once  to 


'34 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


Lord  Kimberley  (Secretary  of  State  for  India)  asking  him 
to  confer  a  chaplaincy  on  Bickersteth  that  he  might  reside 
at  Simla  in  the  hot  weather.  The  Bishop  also  proposed 
to  offer  him  an  archdeaconry.  Bickersteth  wrote  to  Lefroy 
about  what  he  described  as  '  this  strange  disturbing  offer  of 
chaplaincy  and  archdeaconry  : ' 

Framlingham  :  November  20,  1 884. 

Westcott  refuses  all  advice.  He  says  he  has  none  to 
give.  The  offer  coming  from  the  Bishop,  and  yet  upsetting 
such  recently  formed  plans  if  it  be  accepted,  are  (he  says) 
the  pros  and  cons,  but  which  should  prevail  he  does  not 
know  ;  my  father  also  is  undecided.  As  a  con.sequence  I 
am  trying  to  work  on  here  as  if  no  such  plan  had  been 
proposed,  and  am  laying  as  I  may  the  foundations  of  a 
parochial  organisation.  For  myself  I  shrink  greatly  from 
a  chaplaincy.  .  .  .  Still,  if  I  could  see  the  way  open  to  be 
in  charge  of  Simla  and  of  some  use  to  the  mission,  I  do 
not  know  that  I  ought  to  shrink  from  it.  I  have  made  the 
latter  a  sort  of  condition  with  the  Bishop  of  my  considering 
the  matter  definitely.  If,  e.g.,  I  was  assured  time  each 
winter  for  a  spell  in  the  district  with  one  of  you,  and  had 
an  open  house  to  offer  you  by  turns  at  Simla  in  the  hot 
weather,  this  would  be  something.  However,  I  will  not  run 
on  in  vain  speculations.  Till  I  hear,  they  are  vain.  Write 
me  your  full  opinion. 

There  was  another  question  which  in  Bickersteth's 
opinion  urgently  pressed  for  settlement — namely,  the  suc- 
cession to  the  headship  of  the  mission.  As  long  as  he  was 
in  England  planning  to  return  at  the  earliest  moment,  his 
absence,  though  inconvenient,  allowed  of  his  duties  being 
discharged  by  deputy.  His  acceptance  of  Framlingham 
altered  the  situation.  The  senior  member  of  the  mission, 
the  Rev.  H.  C.  C.  Carlyon,  did  not  wish  for  the  headship, 
and  Mr.  Allnutt  felt  that  he  could  not  go  on  with  his 
school  work  and  also  lead  the  mission.  Mr.  Lefroy  was 
felt  by  all  to  have  special  aptitude  for  the  duties  of  head- 


FURLOUGH— FRAMLINGHAM— CALL  TO  JAPAN      I  35 


ship,  but  he  was  unwilling  to  assume  the  work  at  once. 
Moreover,  the  Cambridge  Brotherhood  were  loth  to  give 
Bickersteth  up  as  long  as  there  was  any  possibility  of  his 
return.  Accordingly,  in  the  letter  to  Lefroy  already  quoted 
(dated  November  20,  1884),  Bickersteth  wrote: 

The  [Cambridge]  Committee  is  this  day  week,  and  as 
I  think  I  mentioned  to  Allnutt  I  have  written  to  Westcott 
to  tell  him  that  I  shall  support  what  seems  your  quite 
unanimous  opinion  because  it  is  such,  and  I  expect  I  shall 
get  your  wishes  sanctioned,  though  somewhat  against  the 
independent  opinion  of  the  majority,  as  it  is  somewhat 
against  my  own.  ...  I  do  -think  and  feel  that  you  are 
very  especially  gifted  ^apiTt  Ssov  for  the  office.  But  this 
being  so  (again  but  for  your  letters)  I  should  have  de- 
cidedly held  that  you  had  better  be  appointed  at  once. 
There  are  grave  evils  in  interregna  :  without  the  fault  of 
anyone  concerned,  they  keep  things  in  uncertainty.  How- 
ever, as  you  think  otherwise  (and  I  understand  that  you 
would  like  some  further  time  for  preparation  and  to  look 
upon  the  next  year  or  two  as  such)  1  shall,  as  I  said,  try 
and  induce  the  Committee  to  accede. 

The  offer  of  the  archdeaconry  with  its  intermittent 
possibilities  of  still  serving  the  Cambridge  Mission  in- 
creased the  uncertainty,  but  it  did  not  alter  Bickersteth's 
judgment  that  Mr.  Lefroy  should  be  head  of  the  Cam- 
bridge Mission,  as  will  be  seen  by  the  following  letter  : 

Gloucester  :  January  29,  1885. 

My  dear  Lefroy, — Consider  this  scrap,  please,  a 
postscript  to  a  letter  which  I  have  written  to  Allnutt  and 
which  he  will  send  you.  You  will  learn  from  it  that  there 
is  some  possibility  of  my  returning  to  India  in  October — 
no  certainty — and  if  I  return  of  my  eventually  doing  some 
work  again  at  Delhi.  Now  what  I  want  to  say  to  you  is 
that  I  do  not  think  this  should  throw  any  doubt  or  hesita- 
tion into  your  mind  with  reference  to  your  succession  to 
the  headship  of  the  mission  next  year.  If  I  return  it  will 
be  to  spend  two  years  first  of  all  at  Simla,  and  then, 
perhaps,  not  to  get  more  than  seven  months  or  so  in  the 


136 


BISHOr  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


year  at  Delhi,  of  which  I  should  be  a  good  portion  travel- 
Hng  in  the  district.  Altogether,  the  prospect  seems  to  me 
much  too  uncertain  to  admit  of  your  entertaining  any 
doubt  that  it  is  your  duty  to  prepare  during  the  next 
twelve  months  for  accepting  the  full  responsibility  of  the 
headship  of  the  mission  at  Easter,  1886.  I  shall  for  my 
part,  I  believe,  if  again  allowed  to  take  part  in  mission 
work,  work  quite  as  happily  under  you  as  over  you,  and 
should  such  be  the  outcome  of  a  somewhat  far-off  future,  I 
see  no  reason  to  think  that  as  between  you  and  me  there 
would  be  any  difficulty.  I  write  this  now,  however,  because 
though  my  prospects  of  return  are  distant,  your  thoughts 
and  prayers,  through  which  you  and  the  mission  will  be  so 
largely  shaped  and  influenced,  are  immediate. 

Your  affectionate  Brother  in  Christ, 

Edward  Bickersteth. 

In  the  event  he,  however,  refused  the  proffered  offer  of 
the  archdeaconry,  chiefly  on  the  advice  of  the  Bishop 
(Pelham)  of  Norwich,  and  determined  to  make  one  more 
effort  to  return  to  Delhi  itself    He  wrote  to  Mr.  Lefroy : 

Framlingham,  Suffolk  :  March  5,  1885. 

There  are  only  a  few  minutes  to  mail  time,  but  I  have 
several  letters  of  yours  unanswered  and  must  send  you  a 
line,  not,  however,  so  much  on  account  of  the  unanswered 
letters,  though  they  are  on  my  conscience,  but  because  I 
have  just  decided,  as  far  as  I  may  for  the  present,  on  my 
future  course.  Briefly,  I  have  refused  Simla,  and  told  the 
Bishop  I  will  rejoin  you  in  October  if  doctors  will  let  me. 
I  have  been  led  to  this,  though  after  the  greatest  un- 
certainty for  four  months  as  to  what  I  ought  to  do — a  four 
months  which  have  been  some  of  the  most  trying  I  ever 
spent — mainly  by  the  two  following  considerations  : 

{a)  The  Bishop  of  Lahore  has,  in  a  series  of  letters  of 
the  most  affectionate,  and,  at  the  same  time,  urgent  cha- 
racter, pressed  me  to  return  to  the  Punjab. 

(d)  I  consulted  the  Bishop  of  Norwich,  being  the 
Bishop  I  am  serving  under.  He  said,  in  effect,  '  If  you  are 
allowed  to  return  to  missionary  work  I  have  nothing  to 
say,  but  your  work  in  Framlingham  is  too  important  for 


FURLOUGH— FRAMLINGHAM — CALL  TO  JAPAN      I  37 


you  to  give  up  to  take,  even  for  a  time,  other  English  work 
in  India.' 

Well,  seeing  myself  a  great  deal  to  be  said  for  taking 
Simla  for  the  two  years  until  I  could  see  my  way  more 
clearly,  I  still  did  not  feel  at  all  certain  enough  that  1  was 
called  to  this  to  go  against  my  present  Bishop's  advice. 

On  the  other  hand.  I  have  not  been  able  to  do  other- 
wise than  give  the  very  greatest  weight  to  the  urgent 
invitations  of  a  man  I  so  much  respect  and  love  as  the 
Bishop  of  Lahore.  Well,  the  result  is  what  I  have  told 
you.  If  doctors  permit,  I  am  returning  to  India  in  October  ; 
but,  without  the  interim  of  two  years  at  Simla.  I  am 
coming  straight  to  missionary  work. 

I  hope  I  may  still  be  of  some  use  to  the  Bishop  at 
Simla,  as  for  a  couple  of  years  certainly  I  shall  have  to 
be  away  from  Delhi  for  May  and  June. 

Once  again,  however,  he  was  denied  his  heart's  desire. 
The  doctors  totally  refused  to  entertain  the  idea  of  his 
return  to  India,  and  he  had  to  write  sadly  to  the  Bishop  of 
Lahore : 

The  Rectory,  Framlingham  :  March  26,  1885. 

My  dear  Bishop, — It  grieves  me  so  to  be  writing  this 
letter.  The  way  to  India  for  me  seems  again  closed  for 
the  present.  I  obtained  last  week  Dr.  Westcott's  consent 
to  my  return  and  the  Master  of  Pembroke's,  but  was 
totally  refused  by  Sir  J.  Fayrer  when  he  examined  me  in 
London.  He  did  not,  indeed,  say  that  his  prohibition  was 
final,  but  he  did  say  plainly  that  I  must  not  come  now.  I 
had  only  just  escaped  from  a  chronic  disease,  and  though 
I  am  getting  better  I  am  not  well,  and  that  a  return  now  to 
the  plains  and  still  more  to  the  hills  would  be  nearly  sure 
to  set  it  up  again.  The  letter  he  wrote  about  me  was  such 
as  to  prohibit  our  committee  from  taking  mc. 

The  disappointment  is  very  great.  I  had  counted  on 
getting  back  now,  and  somehow  believed  I  should.  I  can- 
not help  still  believing  that  it  is  only  for  a  time  :  but  for 
the  present  it  does  seem  to  make  it  a  duty  to  do  English 
work,  and,  I  suppose,  to  work  here  where  I  am.  My 
inclination  is  to  retain  my  fellowship,  and  .so  to  be  free  to 
come  and  go  as  I  like  ;  but  having  come  here  at  the  advice 
of  so  many  whom  I  am  bound  to  respect,  and  having 


138 


BISHOl'  EDWARD  HICKERSTETH 


commenced  work  here,  I  do  not  like  to  throw  it  up,  unless 
there  is  some  call  to  me  to  go  elsewhere.  But  wherever  I 
am  I  shall  always  keep  India  in  view  as  my  objective. 
Pray  for  me,  please,  that  I  may  be  willing  to  accept  what  is 
to  me  the  hardest  of  all  decisions  for  as  long  as  God 
wills  it. 

It  is  just  mail  time,  but  I  felt  I  must  write  this 
line. 

Ever  your  affectionate  son  in  Christ, 

Edward  Bickersteth. 

No  wonder  he  excused  himself  to  the  Cambridge 
Mission  at  Delhi  for  not  writing  to  them  on  the  details  of 
the  work  as  much  as  he  had  wished  to  do  on  the  plea  that 
'  the  double  anxiety  of  starting  a  great  parish  and  negotia- 
ting a  return  to  India  at  the  same  time  has  been  heavy,  and 
I  fear  made  me  unduly  self-centred.  You  have,  however, 
been  daily  in  my  prayers,  if  I  have  not  poured  my.self  out 
on  paper.  You  know  I  am,  at  the  best,  bad  at  the 
latter.' 

During  that  winter  and  spring  came  the  interest  aroused 
by  his  father's  appointment,  first  as  Dean  of  Gloucester,  a 
position  which  he  held  for  a  few  weeks  only,  and  then  by 
his  call  to  the  English  episcopate  as  sixty-second  Bishop  of 
Exeter.  This  broke  up  the  Hampstead  home  after  thirty 
uninterrupted  years.  Edward  was  present  with  his  father 
when  he  was  installed  as  Dean  at  Gloucester  on  January  28, 
and  attended  him  as  chaplain  on  his  consecration  at  St. 
Paul's  Cathedral  on  St.  Mark's  Day,  1885,  little  thinking 
that  within  twelve  months  he  would  himself  be  called  in 
the  same  place  to  bear  the  burden  of  fatherhood  in  God. 

Notwithstanding  these  interruptions,  the  parochial 
activities  at  Framlingham  increased  every  month,  and 
especially  during  Lent  there  was  much  encouragement  n 
the  attendance  of  many  at  the  special  services.  On 
Easter  Monday  my  brother  wrote  to  me  at  Ripon  : 


FURLOUGH— FRAMLINGHAM-— CALL  TO  JAPAN      I  39 


Every  good  wish  of  this  season.  Surely  it  was  a  true 
instinct  which  saw  in  Easter  '  the  Queen  of  Festivals.'  If 
only  Christ  Risen  had  been  more  kept  in  mind,  people 
would  never  have  fallen  into  the  mistake  of  substituting 
the  acceptance  of  a  doctrine  for  union  with  a  Person  as  the 
condition  of  salvation.  .  .  The  forbidding  of  my  return  to 
India  has  been  a  great  trial.  I  had  made  up  my  mind  it 
was  to  be.  Now  father  and  all  advise  my  staying  here,  and 
on  the  principle  of  not  moving  till  one  is  called  I  think  I 
shall.  If  I  do,  I  shall  try  and  make  this  place  a  centre  for 
a  society  of  missioners,  to  preach  especially  in  Suffolk,  but 
not  exclusively.  I  had  my  vestry  this  morning.  Only 
one  opponent  of  my  changes  in  a  large  meeting,  and  he 
never  comes  to  church !  Pray  that  I  may  be  guided 
aright. 

Your  ever  affectionate  Brother, 

E.  B. 

However,  during  the  next  three  or  four  months  his 
health  so  far  improved  as  to  enable  him  yet  once  again  to 
wring  a  hesitating  consent  from  his  medical  advisers  to 
his  return  to  Delhi.    He  wrote  to  Lefroy  : 

Vicar's  Close,  Wells:  September  9,  1885. 

My  dear  Lefroy , —  I  have  been  spending  another  few  days 
of  pleasant  holiday  with  my  father  on  the  borders  of  Dart- 
moor, picking  up  health  and  strength  for  India.  .  .  I  go 
on  to  my  brother  Sam's  at  Ripon,  then,  I  think,  to  Lincoln, 
and  then  to  wind  up  my  affairs  at  Framlingham  and  preach 
farewell  sermons.  Even  after  a  short  year,  farewell-saying 
is  sore  work,  especially  to  the  sick  and  others  whom  one 
has  seen  often  ;  and  my  decision  was  so  pushed  off  from 
week  to  week  by  causes  that  I  could  not  control  that  my 
time  is  now  not  long.    Perhaps  this  is  for  the  best. 

I  do  not  think  that  I  have  attained  to  the  standard  you 
put  before  me  in  this  decision  of  returning  to  you  to  which 
I  have  come,  I  mean  I  have  rather  thought  of  coming  to 
make  another  as  persevering  an  attempt  as  I  may  to  live 
in  India  and  work  with  you  all,  than  of  necessarily  coming 
to  live  or  die.  Perhaps  the  other  would  have  been  and 
would  be  the  higher  determination,  but  I  don't  think  that 
I  can  be  sure  enough  of  what  any  resolution  I  now  made 


I40 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKEUSTETII 


would  be  worth  at  some  future  crisis,  as  men  of  greater 
moral  strength  would  be,  to  make  it  right  for  me  to  act 
under  the  pressure  of  so  high  a  purpose.  Mine,  I  admit,  is 
the  lower  ground — not  by  any  means  '  a  counsel  of  perfec- 
tion,' but  safer,  I  feel,  for  me.  Curiously,  as  regards  leav- 
ing Framlingham  I  was  helped  by  knowing  (I  should  not 
like  this  generally  mentioned)  that  I  should  not  anyhow 
have  been  there  for  more  than  a  short  time  longer — that  is, 
in  all  probability. 

I  start  on  October  30,  and  come  by  Rrindisi  ;  I  fancy 
this  is  best  for  me  medically  and  otherwise.  I  may  be  in 
time  for  the  Synod.  How  very  delightful  it  is  to  think 
that  the  month  after  next  I  shall  probably  sec  you  all 
again. 

May  God  give  you  and  me  to  do  a  little  more  work 
together  for  Him. 

There  is  more  to  write,  but  this  will  do  for  to-night. 

Your  very  affectionate  Brother, 
Edward  Bickersteth. 

At  my  house  in  Ripon  I  remember  witnessing  his 
signature  to  the  deed  of  resignation  of  Framlingham,  the 
one  and  only  English  parish  which  he  held,  and  which 
henceforth  he  remembered  in  prayer  every  Wednesday. 
Had  he  been  minded  to  settle  in  England,  few  places 
could  have  combined  more  attractions  for  one  who, 
whether  at  home  or  abroad,  never  lost  the  keenest  interest 
in  the  vexed  and  various  problems  which  beset  the 
development  of  the  Church  in  England.  The  ample  en- 
dowment would  have  enabled  him  to  carry  out  any  schemes 
which  commended  themselves  to  his  judgment.  But 
although  the  work  there  had  drawn  out  many  of  his 
pastoral  instincts,  and  was  rich  in  opportunities  of  service, 
the  missionary  spirit  had  passed  into  his  very  soul,  his  love 
for  the  work  at  Delhi  was  little  less  than  a  passionate 
attachment,  and  there  can  be  no  doubt  that  he  loosed 
himself  from  these  moorings  with  an  intense  joy  at  the 
thought  of  returning  to  Delhi. 


FURLOUGH — FRAMLINGHAM— CALL  TO  JAPAN  141 

And  now  he  was  to  be  tested  by  a  new  call. 

His  berth  for  India  was  taken  for  the  third  time,  and 
the  day  of  his  departure  in  October  was  settled,  when  a 
telegram  from  the  Archbishop  of  Canterbury  (Dr.  Benson) 
was  destined  wholly  to  change  the  scene  of  his  future 
labours.  The  Archbishop  had  entertained  Bickersteth 
both  at  Lincoln  and  at  Truro  as  his  guest,  and  he 
turned  to  him  when  he  had  to  appoint  a  successor  to 
Bishop  Poole  (Bishop  of  the  Church  of  England  in  Japan), 
whose  deeply  lamented  death  after  a  brief  episcopate  of 
two  years  had  occurred  in  the  summer  of  1885.^ 

The  Providence  which  thus  transferred  Bickersteth 
from  the  East  to  the  Far  East  is  unmistakable.  In  Japan 
he  carried  on  his  work  for  eleven  years  ;  it  is  doubtful  if  he 
could  really  have  stayed  as  many  months  in  India.  In 
Japan  a  man  was  wanted  whose  experience  had  already 
taught  him  the  wide  difference  between  the  western  and 
eastern  mind  ;  the  delicacy  of  the  relationship  between 
the  principles  underlying  episcopacy  and  the  accidental 
circumstances  of  which  missionary  societies  are  the  too 
permanent  product ;  the  undoubted  advantages  attaching 
to  holy  homes  in  which  married  missionaries  can  illustrate 
many  Christian  virtues,  and  yet  the  urgent  call  for  Com- 
munity missions — of  women  as  well  as  of  men — not  only 
or  chiefly  because  more  economical,  but  because  apostolic 
simplicity  and  the  '  separating '  vocation  of  the  Holy 
Spirit  can  therein  be  very  plainly  exhibited  ;  the  real 
importance  of  accurate  translations  both  of  Bible  and  of 
Prayer  Book,  and  yet  the  danger  of  cumbering  nascent 
churches  with  the  literary  lumber  of  mediaeval  contro- 
versies ;  the  absolute  necessity  of  maintaining  the  sense  of 
the  presence  of  God  amid  the  inevitable  loneliness  of  spirit 

'  The  Right  Rev.  A.  W.  Poole,  D.D.,  was  consecrated  in  Lambeth 
Palace  Chapel  on  October  18,  1883,  and  died  on  July  14,  1885. 


142 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


inseparable  from  missionary  life,  as  well  as  a  rule  of  life  at 
once  sober  and  strict  for  newly  won  converts  ;  and,  as  a 
guiding  principle,  unifying  all  missionary  activities  and 
dominating  them,  the  keeping  in  view  as  the  aim  in  all  the 
work,  the  building  up  of  a  native  Church  to  be  in  God's 
own  time  a  true  branch  of  Christ's  Holy  Catholic  Church, 
an  organ  for  the  spiritual  development  of  the  nation,  a  body 
in  which  the  Holy  Spirit  could  dwell  and  prepare  the 
Bride  of  Christ. 

It  is  plain  to  any  reader  of  these  pages  that  Edward 
Bickersteth — as  Fellow  of  his  college,  as  the  head  of  a  Mis- 
sionary Brotherhood,  as  examining  chaplain  and  confiden- 
tial friend  of  Bishop  French  at  a  time  when  the  newly 
formed  see  of  Lahore  was  being  rounded  into  separate 
existence  and  made  instinct  with  synodical  activities,  as 
already  the  painstaking  learner  of  five  Eastern  languages 
and  the  sympathetic  student  in  loco  of  at  least  two  of  the 
great  Oriental  religions,  and  as  one  not  wholly  unac- 
quainted with  the  details  of  pastoral  and  parochial  activity 
— had  enjoyed  advantages  which  promised  to  be  of  special 
use  to  him  as  a  Missionary  Bishop  among  the  progressive 
Japanese,  however  much  his  appointment  may  have 
severed  (as  it  did)  the  tenderest  ties  which  fast  bound  him 
to  his  first  missionary  home. 

But  he  was  not  in  much  doubt  as  to  which  way  the 
path  of  duty  led  him.  If  the  Archbishop  thought  him  the 
right  man,  then  he  was  ready  to  go  where  he  was  sent. 
As  usual,  he  wrote  to  Lefroy  : 

Trinity  College,  Cambridge  :  October  30,  1885. 

My  dear  Lefroy, —  ...  I  have  written  to  the  Arch- 
bishop accepting  Japan.  The  day  after  the  mail  last  week 
I  got  an  answer  from  the  Bishop  of  Durham,  quite  agree- 
ing with  Dr.  Westcott,  and  so,  as  I  obeyed  before,  I  have 
obeyed  again.    I  believe  it  is  right.    I  know  that  it  is  not 


FURLOUGH — FRAMLINGHAM— CALL  TO  JAPAN      1 43 


my  own  desire.  Coming  back  to  you  all  was  a  thought  of 
constant  joy  to  me.  Work  in  Japan  at  present  looks  cold 
and  comfortless.  I  do  not  mean  that  it  always  will  do  so. 
It  has  perhaps  as  great  interests  as  any  country  could 
have,  and  I  doubt  not  that  I  shall  get  to  love  the  people, 
the  work,  and  my  fellow-labourers  (some  of  whom, 
according  to  all  accounts,  are  very  excellent,  among  others 
Foss  of  Christ's,  Lloyd  of  Peterhouse,  Fyson  of  Christ's) 
as  time  goes  on.  But  I  speak  of  my  present  feelings. 
But  we  shall  be  doing  one  work  and  for  one  Master.  I 
hope,  too,  the  connection  between  Delhi  and  Japan  may 
not  be  one  of  letters  only.  Parts  of  the  country  are  quite 
a  sanitorium,  and  some  of  you  will  come,  I  do  trust,  from 
time  to  time  to  see  me.  Maitland  (to  whom  my  hearty 
love)  will  of  course  abjure  Australia  in  its  favour  !  I  do 
not  expect  to  start  before  January.  The  consecration  day 
is  not  yet  settled.  .  . 

Well !  farewell  for  to-day.  My  daily  thoughts  and 
prayers  are  with  you. 

Your  very  affectionate  Brother, 

Edward  Bickersteth. 

Again  he  wrote  to  him  for  the  New  Year  : 

The  Palace,  Exeter:  December  11,  1885. 

My  dear  Lefroy, —  I  must  write  you  a  line  for  the  New 
Year,  just  to  wish  you  in  it  all  the  greatest  and  most 
glorious  blessings  that  time,  as  it  goes,  can  bring  with  it. 
Do  you  remember  our  spending  New  Year's  Day  at 
Mehrowli  four  years  since,  and  oh !  how  I  had  looked 
forward  to  spending  it  and  this  winter  in  Delhi  !  It  had 
been  the  point  of  my  hopes,  and  I  seemed  just  about  to 
reach  it  ;  perhaps  my  way  of  bringing  it  about  was  too 
self-willed.  Anyhow,  it  has  been  turned  aside  from  where  I 
wished  it  to  tend,  whither  I  have  no  longings  or  drawings, 
and  where  instead  of  the  re-knitting  of  old  and  strongest 
affections,  I  may  only  look  at  the  most  to  making  new 
acquaintances  which  can  never  at  the  utmost  be  nearly  what 
the  old  affections  have  been  and  are.  Well,  it  is  just  that 
'  are  '  which  is  a  comfort  to  me  sometimes.  To  us  being  iu 
Xpiaro)  there  is  a  true  permanence  amid  all  the  incessant 
changings  of  this  changeful  life,  something  has  been  gained 
by  the  life  and  love  together  which  will  not  ever  die. 


144 


];iSHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


But  at  present  this  separation  is  v  ery  hard.  I  beHeve 
it  was  right.  At  least,  all  wise  people  told  me  I  had  no 
choice,  and  I  submitted  it  to  enough  of  them  ;  but  still,  ever 
since  I  agreed  to  go  to  Japan  I  have  had  such  a  longing 
for  Delhi  and  the  society  of  you  all  that  I  dare  say  I  have 
painted  my  future  life  in  duller  colours  than  perhaps  it  will 
actually  wear,  and,  if  so,  this  is  not  right.  I  ought,  and  I 
recognise  it,  to  feel  thankful  that  I  am  being  sent  to 
mission  work,  and  to  an  important  position  where  there  is 
more  hope  of  my  being  able  to  work  continuously  than 
there  could  have  been  in  my  loved  Delhi.  And  you  will 
get  the  wider  view-point,  too  ;  indeed,  you  already  have, 
and  from  it  the  survey  of  life  at  least  shall  have  in  it  hope 
and  peace,  though  not  all  the  lights  that  I  had  been 
making  to  play  around  my  prospects.  .  . 

With  hearty  New  Year's  wishes  and  love  to  all, 
Your  affectionate  Brother  in  Christ, 

Edward  Bickersteth. 

To  Rev.  S.  S.  Allniitt 

January  8,  1886. 

My  dear  AUnutt, — My  consecration  is  fixed  for 
February  2,  and  I  am  to  start  about  March  i.  The  multi- 
tude of  meetings,  &c.,  which  I  am  obliged  to  attend  in 
order  to  get  up  a  Japanese  fund  prevents  my  taking  an 
earlier  mail.  Also,  I  am  trying  to  get  men  to  accompany 
me,  or  join  me  in  Japan.  Meetings  in  Oxford  and  Cam- 
bridge in  February  may  (as  I  pray)  draw  out  someone, 
but  they  may  not.  I  have  often  dreaded  a  lonely  life,  and 
it  may  be  God's  discipline  for  me  for  a  time  that  I  be 
alone.  .  .  . 

I  know  you  will  give  me  your  heartiest,  fullest  prayers, 
both  unitedly  and  individually,  on  February  2,  and  when  I 
am  starting — so  I  need  not  ask  them.  .  .  . 

...  I  shall  look  forward  longingly.  In  IMarch  plainly 
1  could  not  come.  Not  only  the  weather  is  against  it,  but 
much  is  waiting  me  in  Japan  (confirmations  and  ordina- 
tions) which  it  would  not  be  right  to  delay.  Now  that  I 
have  undertaken  it,  I  must  bear  my  burden  and  you  will 
help  me. 

Farewell  iv  Xpiarw.    That  bond  unites  absolutely 
Your  very  affectionate  brother  in  Christ, 

Edw.  Bickersteth. 


FURLOUGH— FRAMLINGIIAM — CALL  TO  JAPAN  145 


It  is  plain  that  Edward  Bickcrsteth's  call  to  Japan 
came  from  that  Spirit  Who  still,  as  in  the  Ch\irch  of  the 
first  days,  uses  that  word,  '  Separate  Me  Barnabas  and 
Saul  for  the  work  ' — a  word  which  now  as  then  cuts  to  the 
dividing  asunder  of  relationships  most  intimate  and  friend- 
ships most  close. 

But  although  the  young  Bishop-designate — he  was 
then  only  thirty-five  years  of  age — felt  the  conflict  so 
counter  and  so  keen,  he  at  once  threw  himself  with 
characteristic  energy  into  all  the  preparations  for  his  new 
work. 

The  postponement  of  the  time  originally  fixed  for  his 
consecration  chafed  him  as  he  longed  to  start ;  but  he 
occupied  the  longer  interval  in  trying  to  catch  some  fishers 
of  men  who  would  join  the  Community  Mission  of  St. 
Andrew,  which  he  at  once  determined  to  found.  There  was 
now  also  no  let  to  his  taking  preliminary  steps  for  the 
formation  of  St.  Hilda's  Community  Mission  for  Women 
on  the  lines  which  he  had  already  thought  out  as  suitable 
for  Delhi.  Another  care  was  to  find  a  congenial  companion 
as  chaplain.  '  Pray  for  me  that  I  may  find  a  true  avvsp'yos 
(he  wrote  to  Lefroy).  I  know  too  well  how  often  my  own 
judgments  would  have  been  wrong  unless  they  had  been 
balanced  and  corrected  by  you  and  the  others.  I  want  a 
man  on  whom  I  can  rely  for  the  diocese's  sake  as  well  as 
for  my  own.' 

It  was  at  this  time  also  that  he  created  the  nucleus  of 
St.  Paul's  Guild  for  Prayer,  the  first  members  consisting 
chiefly  of  his  own  brothers  and  sisters.  We  all  met  as  a 
family  at  Exeter  for  that  Christmas  and  New  Year,  and  no 
one  would  have  known  that  Edward  had  to  bear  up  under 
the  still  recent  disappointment  of  not  returning  to  Delhi 
and  the  load  of  his  new  duties,  dimly  descried.  He 
threw  himself  into  all  the  home  festivities,  and  we  enjoyed 

L 


146 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


one  or  two  long  walks  on  Dartmoor.  On  New  Year's  Day 
he  wrote  to  Lefroy,  whose  father  had  recently  died,  and 
dwelt  much  on  the  permanence  of  the  work  done  by  the 
regenerate  life. 

The  Palace,  Exeter:  January  I,  1886. 

My  dear  Lefroy, —  I  only  saw  a  notice  in  the  paper  of 
the  great  sorrow  which  has  come  to  you  and  yours  after 
the  mail  left  last  week.  You  will  know  how  much  you 
have  been — you  are  always,  but  beyond  usual — in  my  heart 
and  prayers  since.  I  know  not  if  you  will  have  heard  by 
telegram  of  your  father's  call  ;  anyhow,  I  do  not  doubt 
that  to  you,  who  have  served  Him  so  stedfastly  and  lived 
with  Christ  these  years  so  closely,  there  will  be  given  now, 
when  you  so  need  it,  not  the  removal  of  sorrow — which 
none  of  us  would  have  even  if  we  could — but  the  deep 
divine  consolation  which  assuages  it,  and  in  time  even 
illuminates  it.  I  have  been  thinking  a  good  deal  about 
the  real  permanence  of  Christian  work  recently.  All  these 
changes  which  have  come  to  myself,  and  perhaps  unduly 
saddened  me,  have  driven  me  that  way  for  comfort.  The 
changeless  God  ;  the  eternal  fact  of  the  God-man  ;  the 
communication  of  His  life  through  the  Spirit  to  all 
the  sons  of  God  and  brethren  of  Christ  ;  these  are  the 
foundation  truths,  and  from  them  results  this,  that  all 
which  they,  God's  sons  and  Christ's  brethren,  do  has  an 
eternal  significance  too.  '  He  that  eateth  of  this  Bread 
shall  live  for  ever.'  '  He  that  believeth  on  Me  shall  never 
die,'  and  if  so,  no  work  which  is  done  by  the  energies 
of  the  regenerate  life  dies  either  ;  it  may  seem  to,  but 
it  does  not.  It  has  gone  to  add  something  to  the 
increase,  perfection,  or  beauty  of  the  ever  rising  temple 
of  God. 

And  so  your  father's  long  life  of  usefulness  to  Church 
and  parish,  every  nearest  affection,  and  even  perhaps 
through  God's  mercy  some  fragments  of  such  broken  work 
as  my  own,  live  on. 

I  have  been  thinking  of  you,  too,  as  being  called  to 
give  up  for  India's  sake  something  more  than  any  of  us 
have  been  called  to.  Absence  from  home  we  voluntarily 
adopt — and  we  need  not  deny  it  to  be  difficult  and  a  self- 
denial— but  it  becomes  far  more  so,  and  therefore  by  a 


FURLOUGH — FRAMLINGHAM  — CALL  TO  JAPAN      1 47 


divine  law  which  generally,  I  think,  measures  ultimate 
results  to  the  suffering  by  which  they  are  brought  about, 
more  fruitful,  when  it  involves  being  away  from  those  we 
love  when  we  would  most  of  all  long  to  be  with  them. 
This  great  sorrow  and  its  consolations,  my  dear  brother, 
are  given  you  not  for  your  sake  only,  but  for  the  sake  of 
Hindus  and  Muhammadans  yet  outside,  that  they  too  may 
in  years  to  come  '  be  comforted  with  the  comfort  wherewith 
you  yourself  are  comforted  of  God.'  Think  of  it  this  way 
when  you  can,  sometimes. 

A  Bishop's  duties  begin  to  press  on  me  as  in  prospect 
and  reality  very  onerous. 

Yours  with  abiding  love  and  sympathy, 
Edwd.  Bickersteth. 

The  day  of  the  consecration  was  then  uncertain,  but  it 
was  a  few  days  later  settled  for  the  Feast  of  the  Presenta- 
tion of  Christ  (February  2),  to  be  in  St.  Paul's  Cathedral 
on  the  same  day  as  that  of  Lord  Alwyne  Compton,  who 
had  been  called  to  fill  the  see  of  Ely. 

Edward  Bickersteth's  private  note-book  of  spiritual 
resolutions  bears  ample  evidence  of  the  spirit  in  which  he 
entered  upon  the  episcopate.  At  the  consecration  the 
sermon  was  preached  by  Canon  Paget,  now  Dean  of 
Christ  Church,  Oxford,  and  the  elected  Missionary  Bishop 
of  Japan,  vested  with  his  rochet,  was  led  up  to  the  Arch- 
bishop by  the  former  and  present  Bishops  of  Exeter — 
that  is,  by  Dr.  Temple  (now  Archbishop  of  Canterbury, 
then  Bishop  of  London)  and  by  Dr.  E.  H.  Bickersteth. 
Few  who  were  present  at  the  consecration  could  be  un- 
moved spectators  of  this  scene  when  the  father  led  up 
his  eldest  son  to  the  Archbishop  of  the  province  to 
present  him  for  consecration. 

In  the  huge  congregation  there  was  a  largely  missionary 
element,  and  besides  numerous  relations  there  were  present 
representatives  of  every  period  of  Edward  Bickersteth's 
life — those  who  had  known  him  at  school,  at  college,  or  in 


148 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


India— while  the  Delhi  Brotherhood  telegraphed  to  him 
as  the  assurance  of  their  prayers,  Thilippians  iv.  17.' 

From  henceforth  the  newly  consecrated  Bishop  never 
failed  to  remember  in  his  prayers  the  Bishop  of  Ely,  in 
company  with  whom  he  had  received  the  special  spiritual 
grace  which  he  firmly  believed  was  granted  in  accordance 
with  Divine  promise,  to  those  who  by  apostolic  succession 
had  been  brought,  as  Bishops,  into  a  new  relation  with  their 
ascended  Lord.  Within  four  weeks  of  his  consecration 
Bishop  Edward  Bickersteth  left  for  Japan. 

'  He  kept  the  copy  of  this  telegram  in  his  MS.  book  of  private  devotions 
to  the  end  of  his  hfe. 


149 


CHAPTER  VI 

A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP's  LIFE.     1 886- 1 888 

'  I  may  add  that  no  brighter  prospect,  I  believe,  has  ever  been  set  before  the 
missionary  than  that  in  Japan.' — Letter  to  Dr.  Searle,  August  14,  1 886. 

The  Bishop  left  England  on  Saturday,  March  6,  1886,  for 
the  Far  East,  and,  travelling  by  way  of  Milan  and  Brindisi, 
reached  Alexandria  on  Ash  Wednesday,  March  10.  There 
he  joined  the  Rev.  H.  Maundrell,  who,  with  his  wife  and 
children,  was  returning  after  furlough  to  Nagasaki,'  a 
C.M.S.  station  in  Kiushiu,  the  great  southern  island  of 
the  Japanese  Empire.  Mr.  Maundrell,  who  had  more  than 
once  visited  Hampstead,  proved  to  be  a  most  pleasant 
travelling  companion,  and  it  was  God's  good  Providence 
which  sent  to  the  somewhat  lonely  Bishop  so  sympathetic  a 
friend.  Two  years  later  he  made  him  Archdeacon  of 
Kiushiu,  and  placed  much  reliance  on  his  good  judgment. 

The  following  extracts  are  from  letters  written  on  the 
journey. 

To  his  Father 

Alexandria:  Ash  Wednesday,  March  10,  1886. 

There  could  scarcely  be  a  less  pleasant  way  of  spend- 
ing Sunday  than  in  pouring  rain  running  down  the  east 
coast  of  Italy  for  the  most  part  alone  in  a  railway  carriage. 

'  This  well-known  port  derives  a  special  interest  from  the  fact  of  its  having 
been  the  scene  of  a  large  number  of  the  martyrdoms  which  give  lustre  to 
Japanese  Church  History  in  the  seventeenth  century,  while  the  English 
Bishop's  chapel  now  occupies  the  ground  where  once  renegade  Dutch 
merchants  trampled  on  the  cross  as  a  condition  of  their  trading  with  Japan. 


I50 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


However,  I  read  my  services,  and  the  earliest  Christian 
sermon  on  record  outside  the  Canon,  the  so-called  Second 
Letter  of  St.  Clement  of  Rome,  really  a  homily  by  an  un- 
known writer.  I  must  make  up  my  mind,  I  expect,  to  a  good 
many  lonely  journeys,  and  seek  to  realise  more  fully  the 
Presence  of  the  Divine  Guide.  .  . 

The  man  I  have  seen  most  of  (on  board)  is  one  of  Mr. 
Spurgeon's  preachers  !  .  .  . 

Still,  much  as  I  should  value  Lent  in  a  Christian 
country,  I  am  not  altogether  sorry  to  be  journeying  during 
it.  It  will  be  helpful,  I  trust,  to  trying  to  make  the  time 
a  preparation  for  all  the  work  before  me.  A  strange  eight 
years  and  a  half  indeed  it  has  been  since  I  was  last  draw- 
ing near  to  Alexandria  with  dear  Murray  :  full  of  changes 
and  surprises — but  I  trust  that  God  has  been  with  me,  and 
His  guidance  in  the  past  should  give  me  confidence  for  the 
future.  '  Because  Thou  hast  been  my  help,  tlierefore^  &c. 
Had  I  been  going  back  to  India  the  journey  would  have 
been  comparatively  natural.  As  it  is,  I  am  going  again  to 
the  wholly  unknown,  and  this  is  a  great  added  trial  to  that 
of  leaving  you  all. 

S.S.  Bokhara,  near  Aden  :  March  1 6,  1886. 

A  strange  party  we  were  on  the  little  launch  [at  Suez] 
Indian  officers,  missionaries,  ladies,  Italian  workmen  hired 
for  S.  Indian  gold  mines,  &c. 

I  find  Maundrell  a  very  agreeable  companion,  and  am 
getting  from  him  a  good  deal  of  information  about  Japan. 
As  yet  I  have  learnt  more  about  Japan  than  I  have  of 
Japanese.  I  brought  with  me  so  much  to  do  of  arrears  of 
letters,  accounts,  &c.,  that  my  time  has  been  well  filled  up. 
I  do  not  spend  more  than  about  an  hour  and  a  half  on 
deck,  I  think,  usually.  Almost  the  only  book  I  have  read 
at  all  has  been  the  Report  of  the  Osaka  Conference  of 
1883,  which  contains  a  mass  of  missionary  information  on 
all  topics  connected  with  Japan.  .  .  We  have  a  short  daily 
service  every  day  in  the  saloon  at  10.30  .  .  .  and  had  two 
services  on  Sunday.  None  of  these  have  been  very  well 
attended,  except  the  morning  service  on  Sunday.  Indians 
and  colonists,  like  English  farmers,  are  far  too  often  content 
to  make  their  one  weekly  service  do  duty  for  their  whole 
religion.  How  we  do  need  a  higher  standard  !  and  abroad, 
where  it  should  be  highest,  everything  tends  to  depress  it, 
and  it  is  lower  than  at  home.  .  .  I  am  despatching  a  heavy 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP's  LIFE.     1 886- 1 888  151 


mail  to  London  and  Delhi,  as  well  as  Exeter — so  will  not 
write  more.    My  thoughts  and  prayers  are  ever  with  you. 

To  Rev.  S.  S.  Allnutt 

S.S.  Bokhara,  Red  Sea  :  March  14,  1886. 

In  a  way  there  seems  something  wrong  that  1  am  at 
last,  after  so  many  attempts,  coming  East,  and  not  coming 
to  dear  old  Delhi  ;  and  yet,  as  I  look  back  upon  it  all  now, 
in  this  the  first  period  of  quiet  I  have  had  for  some  time, 
I  feel  that  God  has  been  guiding  me,  though  not  in  the  path 
I  had  chosen.  Well,  if  so,  some  day  we  shall  be  able  to  see 
that  our  plans  were  better  broken  and  our  efforts  frustrated. 

...  In  Japan  it  is  at  present  plainly,  from  all  I  have 
gathered,  the  day  as  yet  of  small  realisations  but  large  hopes. 
In  one  matter,  however,  which  has  been  a  good  deal  on  my 
mind,  they  are  ahead  of  India — that  is,  in  their  readiness  to 
undertake,  in  part  or  even  altogether,  their  church  support. 
Of  course,  in  Japan  they  have  profited  by  Indian  experience 
of  the  disastrous  results  of  too  much  help  from  England 
and  America,  and  lay  the  greatest  stress  on  independence. 
It  may  be  that  we  have  not  been  bold  enough  in  the  matter 
as  yet  at  Delhi.  Winter,  I  know,  lays  stress  on  the  united 
service  on  Sunday  morning  in  St.  Stephen's,  &c.,  but  I 
cannot  help  thinking  more  than  I  did  that  with  so  large  a 
body  of  missionaries  as  Delhi  possesses,  and  is  likely  to 
retain,  there  will  be  great  danger  of  overshadowing  the 
native  Church,  which  it  is  our  very  object  to  establish,  and 
weakening  where  we  think  to  support.  Were  the  man  forth- 
coming it  would  really,  I  believe,  be  a  healthier  thing  for  St. 
Stephen's  and  its  services  to  be  in  native  hands.  Of  course, 
I  know  he  is  not  at  present,  and  it  is  also  much  easier  to 
write  about  than  effect  changes  ;  but  I  do  feel  increasingly 
alike  what  the  danger  is  and,  therefore,  what  our  object 
should  be. 

To  his  Father 

S.S.  Bokhara  :  March  24,  1886. 

I  am  getting  on  a  little  with  Japanese  under  my  good 
tutor  Maundrell's  care.  .  .  .  To  think  that  this  is  my  sixth 
Eastern  language  (besides  Hebrew  ) !  I  hope  it  is  the 
last.  .  .  . 

It  seems  so  strange  to  be  so  near  India,  the  land  where 


152 


15ISH0P  EDWARD  UICKERSTETH 


I  had  thought  to  spend  my  Hfc,  and  to  be  going  on  so 
verj'  far  bej-ond  ;  but  as  I  have  been  looking  back  these 
days  on  the  last  three  years  and  a  half,  certainly  the 
Providence  has  seemed  very  marked  which  has  led  me  to 
Japan. 

The  steamer  touched  at  Colombo  on  Lady  Day,  and 
the  Bishop  was  able  to  land  and  see  Bishop  Copleston,  and 
go  with  him  to  a  celebration  of  Hol}^  Communion.  By 
April  8  Hongkong  was  reached  and  a  few  days  later 
Shanghai.    From  these  two  places  he  wrote  : 

To  his  Father 

C.M.S.  House,  Hong  Kong  :  April  8,  i886. 

I  have  di  good  deal  of  talk  with  some  of  my  fellow 
passengers  on  religious  subjects.  Among  men  in  the  East 
infidelity  is  everywhere  ;  partly  the  misstatements  of  the 
Creed  that  have  been  so  rife,  above  all  the  crude  doctrine 
of  Atonement  that  has  been  taught  as  if  it,  and  not  the  fact 
it  misrepresents,  were  the  centre  of  the  Gospel  ;  partly  the 
uncertainty  occasioned  by  the  great  variety  of  Christian 
sects  ;  partly  the  supposed  inroads  of  science,  and  an  un- 
defined fear  that  more  will  yet  have  to  be  given  up,  seem 
to  have  shaken  the  faith  of  men  generally  in  the  Far  East. 
Of  course  there  are  many  exceptions,  but  from  what  I  am 
told,  and  the  little  I  have  seen,  the  disease  of  unbelief 
is  very  widely  spread.  Still,  I  am  inclined  to  believe,  as 
notably  the  last  few  years  at  Oxford,  there  will  be  a  re- 
action before  long.  Men  have  been  reading  Buckle  and 
Renan  as  discoverers  and  innovators,  but  the  novelty  is 
wearing  off,  and  the  hollovvness  of  what  they  had  to  say 
will  surely  then  become  more  apparent.  .  .  . 

I  am  longing  for  news  of  you  all,  and  shall  feel  it  a 
great  comfort  when  the  weekly  letters  begin  to  arrive. 

Shanghai  :  April  13,  1886. 

At  Shanghai  Maundrell  and  I  drove  out  to  Sikawei,  a 
great  Jesuit  establishment  about  five  miles  from  the  city. 
Truly  as  far  as  buildings  and  institutions  are  concerned  the 
Jesuits  have  done  great  things.  Sikawei  is  an  immense 
collection  of  large  houses  devoted  to  various  missionary 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.      1886-1888  153 


objects.  The  largest  is  a  college,  to  which  pupils  are  scut 
from  the  interior,  with  a  grand  library,  an  observatory, 
museum,  &c.,  and  rooms  for  a  considerable  number  of 
fathers.  The  rooms  certainly  were  plain  enough — a  bed, 
table,  and  chairs  seemed  the  only  furniture.  Convents, 
girls'  schools,  orphanages,  &:c.,  are  at  a  little  distance.  We 
were  shown  over  the  college  by  a  lively  French  Jesuit  in 
Chinese  costume,  pigtail  and  all  complete.  It  looked 
laughable,  but  '  extremes  meet.'  Major  Tucker  and  the 
Salvation  Army  are  doing  the  same  thing  in  India,  and 
think  it  essential  to  large  success.  I  wish  at  all  events 
that  there  were  in  Japan  some  men  like  Bateman  and 
Gordon  of  the  Punjab,  who  identified  themselves  in  a 
wonderful  way  with  the  people. 

It  is  extremely  hard  to  find  out  the  moral  value  of  the 
results  of  Roman  Catholic  missions  in  these  countries.  A 
Nonconformist  missionary  after  nearly  forty  5'ears  of  experi- 
ence in  the  Canton  province  told  me  that  he  believed  their 
work  to  be  good,  and  that  not  a  few  of  the  country  people 
whom  he  had  come  across  were  simple-minded  Christians. 
On  the  other  hand.  Archdeacon  Moule  had  come  across 
some  J/rtrzblatry  which  seemed  little  better  than  a  sort 
of  idolditry. 

On  the  way  back  we  visited  another  great  missionary 
establishment — Bishop  Boone's,  of  the  American  Church. 
Unfortunately  he  was  out,  and  I  only  just  had  time  to 
leave  a  card  and  peep  into  a  dear  little  church,  where  a 
Chinese  clergyman  was  reading  the  Evensong  Psalms. 

But  the  leisure  which  the  voyage  afforded  had  been 
turned  by  the  Bishop  to  a  more  abiding  purpose.  In  an 
'open'  letter  which  he  addressed  to  the  Rev.  Dr.  Searlc, 
Master  of  Pembroke  College,  Cambridge,  he  brought  under 
review  the  leading  features  of  Japan  at  that  time,  its 
chief  needs  and  a  characteristic  proposal  for  helping  to 
meet  them.  That  proposal  was  the  establishment  of  a 
University  mission  in  some  chief  city  of  the  empire, 
such  as  Cambridge  had  already  sent  to  Delhi. 

Before  leaving  England  he  had  brought  this  idea 
before  the  notice  of  personal  friends,  and  addressed  two 


154 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


meetings,  one  at  Cambridge  and  one  at  Oxford,  on  the 
subject.    He  had  argued  that : 

To  allow  a  great  and  prosperous  nation  to  adopt  the 
outward  form  of  our  civilisation  without  the  knowledge  of 
the  faith  on  which  it  is  based  would  be  disastrous  to  them 
and  dishonourable  to  us.  To  embrace  the  opportunity 
could  not  fail  to  ensure  the  divine  blessing  alike  on  them 
and  us. 


A  plea 
for  Uni- 
versity 
help. 


The  claim 
of  ancient 
countries 
upon 
ancient 
Uni- 
versities. 


He  was  careful  to  point  out  that  already  the  mis- 
sionaries supported  by  the  S.P.G.  and  C.M.S.,  as  well  as 
those  sent  out  by  the  Sister  Church  of  America,  were  doing 
excellent  work  in  Japan,  but  that  these  missionaries  would 
no  doubt  welcome,  as  they  had  done  in  India,  additional 
labourers  in  a  mission  such  as  it  was  proposed  to  establish. 

He  now  wrote  to  Dr.  Searle  the  following  thoughtful 
and  earnest  appeal  : 

5.5'.  Ancona,  Singapore  :  March  31,  1886. 

The  meetings  of  University  men  which  I  was  allowed 
to  address  in  Cambridge,  Oxford,  and  elsewhere  during 
last  month,  and  especially  the  crowded  meeting  over 
which  you  so  kindly  presided  in  the  old  library  of  the 
college,  have  left  in  my  mind  a  hope — which  I  can 
scarcely  doubt  the  future  will  fulfil — that  my  request  for  a 
small  body  of  men  to  establish  a  mission  in  Japan  will  not 
be  disregarded.  I  wish  in  this  letter  to  put  before  you 
some  of  the  reasons  which  seem  to  me  to  justify  this 
request  at  the  present  time. 

It  is  admitted  that  the  nations  which  have  the  chief 
claim  upon  the  missionary  energies  of  the  Universities  are 
those  which,  with  ancient  histories,  civilisations,  and  re- 
ligious systems  of  their  own,  have  in  recent  years  been  to 
a  greater  or  less  degree  permeated  by  our  culture  and 
knowledge.  Particular  places  in  Christendom  will  naturally 
select  for  their  own  sphere  of  work  those  places  in  the 
non-Christian  world  in  which  the  characteristic  resources 
and  gifts  at  their  command  may  find  full  and  special  em- 
ployment. From  this  point  of  view  the  great  nations  of 
the  East,  which  in  place  of  their  ancient  systems,  in  our 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.      1886-1888  155 


own  day  and  under  our  very  eyes,  arc  adopting  the  culture, 
the  philosophies,  and  sciences  of  the  West,  seem  to  appeal 
with  special  force  for  that  help  which  our  Universities  are 
best  able  to  give. 

There  are  not  very  many  places  in  the  East  in  which 
as  yet  this  is  the  case.  It  may  be  hoped,  too,  that  in  time 
to  come  native  Christian  Churches  will  themselves  be  in 
a  position  to  secure  that  the  claims  of  Christianity  shall  not 
be  put  on  one  side  in  the  countries  where  they  are  estab- 
lished through  the  pressure  of  secular  sciences.  For  the 
present  this  is  not  so,  and  if  to-day  Christianity  is  to 
obtain  a  hearing  in  the  chief  centres  of  literary  and 
scientific  life  in  the  East,  the  few  men  of  ability  and  learn- 
ing in  the  native  Churches  must  be  assisted  by  Western 
teachers  of  the  faith. 

The  islands  of  Japan  have  a  population  of  about  thirty- 
eight  millions.  Their  intercourse  with  the  West,  after  an 
interval  of  more  than  two  centuries,  recommenced  in  the  year 
1853  ;  and  it  was  only  so  recently  as  1868  that  the  Revo- 
lution took  place,  which  resulted  in  the  break-up  of  the 
old  feudal  system  of  the  country  and  placed  in  complete 
authority  the  present  dynasty  and  government.  From  this 
date  commenced  also  the  introduction  with  such  startling 
rapidity  of  European  methods  and  customs,  and  the  adop- 
tion of  the  latest  discoveries  of  the  West.  Railways  and 
steamers,  telegraphs  and  telephones,  post  offices  and  post 
office  savings  banks,  and  our  methods  of  municipal  and 
executive  government,  have  all  been  introduced  within  the 
space  of  less  than  two  decades  into  a  country  which  was 
wholly  unknown  to  the  last  generation  of  Englishmen.  It 
is  expected  that  the  first  representative  Parliament  will 
meet  in  1890.  With  the  outward  marks  of  our  civilisation 
has  been  adopted  also  our  system  of  education.  Japan  for 
a  thousand  years  has  possessed  an  educational  method 
founded  upon  that  of  China.  Since  the  renewed  inter- 
course with  Europe  this  has  been  re-modelled  in  all  its 
branches.  Between  1873  ^"^1  1883,  29,000  schools  had 
been  built  and  opened,  and  more  are  being  established 
every  year.  The  chief  object  of  the  old  method  of  educa- 
tion was  the  acquisition  of  the  Chinese  character  as  the 
indispensable  key  to  all  later  study  of  literature  and  philo- 
sophy. Not  less  than  ten  years  was  spent  in  this  unpro- 
ductive toil.    This  study  now  occupies  a  subordinate  place. 


Even 

native 

Churches 

need 

foreign 

help  at 

first. 


The  mar- 
vellous de- 
velopment 
of  Japan  : 
(a)  politic- 
ally ; 


(*)  edu- 
cationally. 


156 


UISIIOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


Hence  had 

arisen  a 

desire  to 

learn 

about 

Christian- 

Ity. 


Proofs  of 
this  desire. 


Buddhism 
thus 
stirred 
into  recru- 
descence. 


The  ordinary  subjects  of  primary  education  among  our- 
selves have,  to  a  considerable  extent,  supplanted  it.  Our 
text-books  of  science  and  literature  are  being  translated, 
and  English  is  taught  as  a  classic. 

Two  other  changes  seem  to  have  accompanied  the 
spreading  of  education  among  the  masses  of  the  people. 
On  the  one  hand,  they  are  far  more  ready  than  when  the 
country  was  first  re-opened  to  give  a  respectful  hearing  to 
the  claims  of  Christianity.  On  the  other,  a  determined 
and  not  altogether  unsuccessful  attempt  is  being  made  by 
the  priesthood  to  revive  an  interest  in  Buddhism. 

Many  causes,  I  gather,  have  combined  with  education 
to  produce  the  change  in  the  popular  attitude  towards 
Christianity,  such  as  the  better  understanding  of  its  tenets 
and  character  through  the  labours  of  missionaries,  and  the 
neutral  position  in  regard  to  all  religious  faiths  now  taken 
up  by  the  Government.  The  change  itself  seems  very 
marked.  Thus  in  i860  a  missionary  wTote  that  when  he 
mentioned  the  subject  of  Christianity  in  the  presence  of  a 
Japanese,  his  hand  would  almost  involuntarily  be  applied 
to  his  throat  to  indicate  the  extreme  perilousness  of  such  a 
topic.  How  great  the  contrast  of  this  with  an  account  in  a 
recent  number  of  the  missionary  organ  of  the  American 
Church,  in  which  I  find  that  the  people  of  a  district  near 
Osaka,  the  second  city  of  Japan,  are  so  earnest  in  their 
desire  to  learn  Christianity  that  they  have  built  a  large 
house  for  a  school,  and  are  determined  to  have  no  one  but 
a  Christian  to  take  charge  of  it.  This  feeling  has  for  some 
tiine  past  been  reflected  in  the  native  journals.  In  1881  a 
leading  Japanese  paper  declared  Christianity  to  be  the  only 
religion  that  can  satisfy  the  aspirations  of  the  Japanese 
people  to-day  ;  and  another  paper  in  my  possession  of  so 
recent  a  date  as  last  June  assigns  the  spread  of  Christianity 
as  the  reason  of  the  falling  off  of  the  income  of  a  Buddhist 
sect. 

On  the  other  hand,  Buddhism  seems  not  prepared  in 
any  degree  to  loose  its  hold  upon  the  people  without  a 
struggle.  Mr.  Warren,  the  secretary  of  the  Church 
Missionary  Society  in  Japan,  wrote  in  1879  :  '  Buddhism,  at 
least  in  one  of  its  branches,  the  Shiu  sect,  shows  remarkable 
signs  of  vigour.  .  .  It  is  making  strenuous  efforts  to  get  a 
footing  in  Satsuma,  from  which  province  it  has  hitherto 
been  excluded,  and  it  has  just  completed  a  large  college  at 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     1886-1888       1 57 


Kyoto  for  the  accommodation  of  600  students.  There  is  a 
rumour  that  some  of  the  numerous  students  educated  there 
may  eventually  be  sent  to  Europe  and  America  for 
proselytising  purposes.'  Mr.  Maundrell,  a  missionary  of 
the  same  society  who  is  with  me  on  board,  tells  me  that 
he  has  experienced  opposition  in  Kiushiu,  the  most 
southerly  island  of  the  Japanese  group,  which  must  be 
assigned  to  the  same  cause — the  revived  energy  of  the 
Buddhist  priesthood.  It  is  well  known  that  Japanese 
Buddhists,  who  have  become  aware  of  the  vast  differences 
between  Buddhism  as  they  received  it  in  Japan  and  the 
system  which  500  years  before  our  era  was  taught  by 
Gautama  in  India,  have  recently  been  studying  in  Europe 
the  earlier  records  of  their  faith.  This  is  another  evidence 
of  the  strength  of  this  movement,  notwithstanding  the 
opposition  it  has  met  from  the  progressive  party.  Such  a 
renewal  of  interest  in  a  system  which  for  a  thousand  years 
has  exercised  supreme  influence  over  the  religious  opinions 
of  a  great  nation  was  perhaps  to  be  expected.  The  Bishop 
of  Durham,  I  think,  has  pointed  out  that  the  Paganism  of 
Bithynia,  which  at  the  date  of  Pliny's  letter  seemed  likel}' 
rapidly  to  die  out,  had  apparently  obtained  a  new  lease  of 
life  by  the  middle  of  the  century.  In  our  own  day  there 
has  been  a  revival  of  zeal.  But  the  Church,  I  think,  has 
nothing  to  fear  from  such  temporary  recrudescences  as 
these  of  religious  fervour.  Rather,  perhaps,  more  genuine 
recruits  will  pass  into  her  ranks  at  such  times  than  when 
the  systems  which  are  oppo.sed  to  her  are  inactive  and 
torpid. 

But  I  must  turn  to  a  subject  which  with  reference  to  But  the 
the  proposal  of  a  University  mission  is  yet  more  important,  general^ 
I  mean  the  University  which  has  been  founded  in  Tokyo,  contact 
the  new  capital  of  the  Japanese  empire.    This  is  a  Univer-  withWesi- 
sity  of  which  the  in.struction  is  given  wholly  through  the  fm  c'vil- 
mcdium  of  P2uropean  languages.    Till  recently  the  pro-  ',ends"to 
fessors  also  have  been  European,  German  in  the  medical  Agnosti- 
and  English  in  the  scientific  and  literary  schools  ;  but 
these  professorships  now  as  they  fall  vacant  arc  generally 
filled  by  natives  who  have  .studied  in  Europe.  Through 
this  University  have  passed  many  hundreds  of  young 
Japanese.     In  Delhi,  Hinduism  lost  its  hold  upon  the 
faith  of  young  Hindus  about  the  time  when  they  passed 
from  the  upper  classes  of  the  school  into  the  college.  An 


158 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


analogous    result   has    followed    in    Japan.     Belief  in 
Buddhism  and  Shintoism  has  passed  from  the  minds 
of  the  men  who  have  followed  the  appointed  course 
of  instruction    in    the    Tokyo    University  ;    and  they 
have  returned  to  their  homes,  in  the  various  provinces  of 
the  empire,  with  as  little  faith  in  the  creeds  of  their  ances- 
tors as  has  the  graduate  of  Calcutta  or  Lahore  in  the 
divinities  of  the  Hindu  Pantheon.     But  this  is  not  all. 
Had  it  been  so,  the  work  of  the  University  might  have 
been  regarded  by  the  missionary  more  truly  than  it  now 
can  be  as  a  prteparatio  evangelica.    But  the  mind  of  the 
young  Japanese  has  not  only  been  disabused  of  the  super- 
stitions of  his  youth,  but  too  often  he  has  also  been  led  by 
his  European  teacher  to  regard  the  creed  of  Christendom 
as  practically  on  a  level  with  the  faith  of  his  own  country. 
*  Europe,'  he  has  been  told, '  has  rejected  the  faith  of  Christ 
very  much  on  the  same  grounds  on  which  you  have  seen 
it  necessary  to  reject  the  demi-gods  of  Northern  Buddhism.' 
I  would  not  be  understood  to  bring  a  sweeping  charge  of  in- 
fidel propagandism  against  all  the  European  professors  who 
have  taught  in  Japan.    I  know  that  there  have  been  bright 
exceptions  :  men  who  have  not  been  ashamed  of  the  Cross 
amid  surroundings  of  peculiar  difficulty.   But  admittedly  the 
great  majority  of  those  who  have  left  England  and  Germany 
to  teach  in  Japan  have  not  themselves  been  Christian  in 
faith,  and  have  led  their  pupils  to  adopt  their  own  attitude 
towards  Christianity.    This  is  an  all  but  necessary  con- 
sequence.   Even  if  a  teacher  endeavour  to  maintain  a 
negative  and  neutral  attitude  in  regard  to  revelation,  it  is 
impossible,  I  believe,  that  the  minds  of  his  pupils  should 
come  under  the  daily  influence  of  his  mind  at  an  age  when 
they  are  most  open  to  new  impressions  and  not  catch  from 
him  very  much  his  own  view  of  divine  as  well  as  human 
knowledge.    In  Japan,  the  wide  dissemination  of  literature 
which  is  more  or  less  directly  hostile  to  Christianity  is  said 
also  to  have  had  a  disastrous  tendency  in  the  same  direc- 
tion.   In  an  able  article  on  this  subject,  which  was  read 
at  a  missionary  conference  at  Osaka,  I  find  the  works  of 
Spencer,  Mill,  Bain,  Huxley,  Draper,  and  others  men- 
tioned as  having  prejudiced  the  educated  classes  against 
the  study  of  the  claims  of  Christianity. 

I  need  scarce  do  more  than  point  out  what  seems  the 
legitimate  and  inevitable  conclusion.     Through  contact 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     I  886- 1  888       I  59 


with  Europe,  and  above  all  with  England,  a  new  era  has  Is  not 
been  inaug^urated  in  the  history  of  the  whole  Japanese  England 

-'1  rcsDons- 

people.  At  the  same  time,  the  educated  classes  of  the  ibie  for 
country  have  learned,  chiefly  from  the  lips  of  English  averting 
teachers,  to  distrust  all  systems  of  religion,  including 
Christianity.  Under  such  circumstances  it  cannot,  I  think, 
be  unreasonable  or  over-confident  to  believe  that  the 
English  Universities  will  shortly  send  men  to  Japan  who, 
while  they  shall  have  full  sympathy  with  the  new  longing 
after  exact  knowledge  and  science  which  has  been  awakened 
in  so  large  a  class  of  her  people,  shall  at  the  same  time 
teach  them  alike  by  word  and  life  the  knowledge  of  God. 
It  is  recognised  that  the  slave  trade  and  the  enforced 
commerce  in  opium  have  laid  us  under  a  special  obligation 
to  send  the  Gospel  to  Africa  and  China.  The  obligation 
cannot  be  less  onerous  in  the  case  of  a  country  which  has 
learned  from  us  the  knowledge  of  science  without  God  and 
of  philosophy  without  religion. 

I  received,  shortly  before  I  left  England,  a  letter  from  A  com- 
Mr.  Lloyd  (formerly  a  Fellow  of  Peterhouse,  who,  now  in  '"^"I'y 

niission 

connection  with  S.P.G.,  is  himself  doing  excellent  work  could  do 
among  the  educated  classes  in  Tokyo)  in  which  he  urged  good 
that  the  establishment  of  a  University  mission  is  particularly  ^"^''^'^ 
desirable  at  the  present  time.  In  regard  to  such  missions 
it  may  be  said  now,  as  could  not  have  been  said  ten  years 
ago,  when  first  you  were  kind  enough  to  go  into  the 
question  with  me,  that  experience  has  proved  the  method 
of  working  by  small  brotherhoods  of  University  men  to  be 
alike  practicable  and  effective.  In  place  of  the  isolation 
which  has  too  often  been  the  lot  of  the  foreign  missionary, 
the  members  of  such  a  brotherhood  possess  the  privilege  of 
fellowship  alike  in  devotion,  study,  and  work — a  privilege 
which  at  Delhi  we  have  found  to  be  invaluable.  I  plead, 
then,  for  men  to  carry  out  in  Japan  the  method  of  mission- 
ary work  which  has  proved  so  helpful  in  India.  No  doubt 
India  has  the  first  claim  upon  our  missionary  resources. 
There  could  be  no  question  between  the  two  countries  were 
it  necessary  to  select  one  or  the  other.  But  I  know  that 
you  do  not  hold  this  to  be  the  case.  Indeed,  with  the 
interest  in  foreign  missions  which  is  so  marked  now  in  both 
Universities,  it  cannot  be  doubted  that  they  are  well  able 
to  establish  and  maintain  a  mission  of  their  own  in  Japan 
without  any  injury  to  the  missions  in   India.     Were  it 


i6o 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


otherwise,  my  lt)vc  to  Delhi  is  too  great  to  allow  me  to 
advocate  the  establishment  of  another  mission,  even  in  the 
diocese  over  which  I  have  been  called  to  preside.  I  may 
add  that  it  does  not  seem  unimportant,  at  a  time  when 
Buddhism  is  attracting  so  much  interest  in  Europe,  that 
the  Universities  should  be  directly  represented  in  a  Buddhist 
as  well  as  a  Hindu  and  Muhammadan  country. 
And  There  are  not  a  few  other  characteristic  features  of 

especially  Japanese  missions  at  the  present  time  upon  which  I  should 
huikl  up  a  ^i^c  to  dwell.  Such  is  the  development,  with  a  rapidity  to 
native  which  India  presents  no  parallel,  of  an  independent  native 
Churrh.  Cliurch,  together  with  the  emergence  of  all  those  difficult 
but  most  interesting  problems  which  attend  the  early  years 
of  an  indigenous  Christian  community.  Such,  again,  is  the 
presence  in  Japan  alone  of  a  powerful  and  well  worked 
mission  of  the  Russo-Greek  Church,  under  its  influential 
and  learned  Bishop  Pere  Nicolai.  Such  is  the  return  to 
the  Roman  obedience  by  thousands  of  the  descendants  of 
the  Christians  who  in  the  first  half  of  the  seventeenth  cen- 
tury gave  their  lives  for  the  faith.  It  is  an  interesting 
evidence  of  the  tenacity  of  the  Japanese  character  that 
sufficient  fragments  of  the  faith  had  been  handed  down 
from  generation  to  generation,  through  more  than  two 
hundred  years  of  separation  from  all  western  help,  to 
induce  these  poor  people  again  to  profess  Christianity 
when  the  country  was  re-opened.  And  yet  again,  besides 
the  missions  of  our  sister  Church,  there  are  in  Japan  at  the 
present  time  various  bodies  of  Christians  founded  by 
different  Protestant  communities  in  America.  But  I  must 
be  content  with  pointing  out  that  the  difficult  questions 
which  such  circumstances  give  rise  to  will  especially  claim 
the  study  and  assistance  of  a  body  of  University  men. 

I  should  indeed  most  heartily  welcome  to  Japan  those 
who,  with  the  qualifications  which  are  needed  for  such 
kinds  of  work  as  I  have  indicated,  would  join  me  in  the 
spirit  of  our  old  Delhi  motto,  svsksv  s^iov  koi  tov 
svwyysXLOv. 

This  letter  justifies  the  verdict  of  the  present  Bishop  of 
Durham  (Dr.  Westcott)  that  '  on  being  called  to  undertake 
the  episcopal  charge  of  the  English  missions  in  Japan,  where 
he  found  a  larger  field  and  more  favourable  conditions 


A  MISSIONARY  lilSHOP'S  LIFE.     1 886- 1 888  l6l 


[than  in  Delhi]  for  the  use  of  his  zeal  and  experience, 
Bishop  Bickcrsteth  at  once  recognised  the  greatness  of  the 
uniqtie  opportunity!  ^  The  foundation  and  building  up  of 
the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai  (Holy  Catholic  Church  of  Japan) 
was  from  the  first  the  idea  which  he  had  in  view,  and  from 
which  he  never  allowed  himself  to  be  deterred  '  by  the 
emercfcncc  of  all  these  difficult  and  most  interestingc 
problems  '  which  his  keen  foresight  told  him  would  be 
inseparable  from  '  the  early  years  of  an  indigenous  Chris- 
tian community.' 

It  was  with  the  feeling  of  most  lively  interest  that  the 
Bishop  neared  Japan  on  board  a  steamer  belonging  to  the 
Mitsu  Bishi  Company  (one  of  the  largest  of  the  Japanese 
steamship  companies)  in  which  he  had  come  from  Hong- 
kong. 

In  his  first  letter  from  Japan  he  writes  : 

VVc  had  a  perfect  passage  to  Nagasaki,  the  sea  like  a 
mill-pond  all  the  way.  The  second  evening  we  passed  the 
Goto  Islands,  a  group  of  five,  where  many  of  the  Christians 
took  refuge  in  the  great  persecution  two  and  a  half  centuries 
ago.  The  Roman  Catholics  have  now  again  got  missions 
and  congregations  there,  and  I  looked  at  them  with  the 
greatest  interest  as  the  first  territory  on  which  my  eyes  had 
rested  in  the  empire  of  Japan.  Wc  reached  Nagasaki 
about  I  A.M.  Sleep  had  overpowered  me,  though  I  meant 
to  have  looked  at  the  entrance  through  my  cabin  window. 
In  the  morning  when  I  got  up  I  found  we  were  safely  in 
the  land-locked  harbour,  which  is  surrounded  by  the  not 
very  lofty  but  picturesque  and  fertile  hills  which  arc 
characteristic  of  Japan  and  distinguish  it  from  the  flat 
coast  of  North  China. 

The  day  on  which  the  Bishop  landed  was  Thursday, 
April  15,  and  two  missionaries,  Mr.  Hutchinson  and  Mr. 
Brandram,  welcomed  him  on  shore.     After  seeing  the 

'  See  Introduction  to  Our  Heritage  in  the  Church,  by  Bishop  Edward 
Bickcrsteth,  published  (1898)  in  England  after  his  death. 

M 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


catechist's  house  and  church  in  the  city  it  was  time  for 
service.  '  I  had  asked  to  have  a  service  in  order  that 
special  thanksgiving  might  be  offered  for  our  safe  voyage. 
We  had  Holy  Communion,  and  I  spoke  a  few  words.' 
The  Bishop  happened  there  also  to  meet  some  Chinese 
native  Christians  from  Fuchow,  who  were  being  sent  as 
missionaries  to  Corea  '  a  comparatively  unworked  country. 
We  had  prayer  for  them,  as  they  were  starting  that  night. 
These  prayers  were  offered,  one  in  Chinese,  one  in  Japanese, 
and  one  in  English.' 

But  after  a  few  hours  the  Bishop  had  to  re-embark  for 
Kobe,  where  he  was  to  spend  the  festival  of  Easter.  He 
writes  : 

The  hills  of  Kobe  were  in  sight  when  we  went  on  deck 
after  tiffin,  and  you  will  imagine  how  interesting  a  sight 
they  were  to  me.  By  3.15  we  were  at  anchor  in  the  great 
harbour ;  the  town  lies  on  the  north  shore  of  the  inland 
sea.  The  hills  behind  it  rise  to  a  height  of  2,000  feet  and 
the  whole  scene,  except  that  the  sea  in  front  is  shut  in  by 
islands,  reminds  me  of  the  Riviera. 

On  Monday  in  Holy  Week  he  went  on  to  Osaka,  of 
which  he  writes  : 

The  chief  feature  of  the  town  is  its  many-branching 
river  and  system  of  canals,  which  have  given  it  the  name  of 
the  Venice  of  the  East  ;  but  it  is  very  unlike  the  Italian 
city.  It  has  no  great  buildings,  and  consists  of  rows 
of  wooden  houses  arranged  with  mathematical  regularity 
in  squares  and  oblongs.  However,  it  is  none  the  less 
interesting  for  this  reason  to  the  missionary,  who  thinks 
chiefly  of  its  teeming  population. 

It  was  here  that  the  Bishop  preached  his  first  sermon 
and  took  his  first  confirmation  in  Japan,  of  which  he  writes  : 

The  services  for  the  Holy  Week  had  been  arranged  in 
common  between  us  and  the  Americans,  so  I  went  to  four 
out  of  the  five  different  churches  on  different  nights.  On 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOI''.S  LIFE.     1 886- 1 888  163 


Good  Friday  I  addressed  all  the  missionaries  together  on 
'  fellowship  in  the  suffering  of  Christ '  from  Phil,  iii.,  and 
yesterday  I  took  a  confirmation,  sixteen  being  confirmed. 
I  learned  the  words  and  the  blessing  in  Japanese,  and  Mr. 
Evington  translated  for  me  two  short  addresses. 

On  Easter  Monday  the  Bishop  joined  the  mission 
party  in  '  a  very  pleasant  picnic  on  the  hills.  The  scenery 
is  not  unlike  parts  of  Scotland  or  the  Lakes  ;  not  grand  or 
rugged,  but  richly  wooded  and  picturesque.  The  magnifi- 
cent flowering  shrubs  are  unlike  anything  we  have  in 
England.'  Thence  he  visited  Kyoto,  '  formerly  the  ancient 
capital  of  the  country,  still  its  religious  centre,  lying  at  the 
foot  of  hills  of  which  the  lower  slopes  are  covered  with 
great  Buddhist  temples  and  Shinto  shrines.' 

The  conference  of  the  Church  Missionary  Society  took 
place  on  May  3,  when  the  missionaries  of  that  society 
and  the  other  clergy  of  the  Church  of  England  presented 
the  Bishop  with  an  address  of  welcome,  in  which,  after 
referring  to  '  the  attitude  of  popular  opinion  towards 
Christianity  as  a  hopeful  sign  for  the  future  success  of  the 
work  '  and  assuring  him  of  '  the  loyal  support  and  loving 
co-operation  of  the  clergy  and  congregations  committed 
to  his  charge,'  they  added  these  words  : 

And  above  all,  we  are  happy  that  one  has  been  called 
in  the  providence  of  God  to  preside  over  us  who  has 
already  shown  such  earnest  devotion  in  the  cause  of 
missionary  effort,  a  devotion,  doubtless,  inherited  from  a 
father  whose  name  will  ever  be  remembered  for  untiring 
zeal  in  promoting  the  extension  of  Christ's  Kingdom 
amongst  the  heathen. 

This  annual  conference,  the  first  of  seven  over  which 
the  Bishop  presided  without  a  break,  passed  the  following 
important  resolution,  out  of  which  much  future  organisation 
was  to  grow : 

M  2 


164 


BISHOP  EDWARD  RICKERSTETIi 


That,  taking  into  consideration  the  existence  of  three 
Episcopal  missions  in  this  country,  two  of  which  are  in 
connection  with  the  Church  of  England  and  one  with  the 
Protestant  Episcopal  Church  of  America,  and  being  con- 
vinced that  co-operation  between  these  three  societies,  and 
visible  union  among  the  native  Christians  connected  with 
them,  is  necessary  to  the  establishment  of  a  strong  Epis- 
copal Church  and  a  necessary  preliminary  to  any  wider 
union  of  Christians  in  Japan  on  a  permanent  and  satis- 
factory basis  ;  and  further,  noting  that  for  some  time  past 
united  action  has  existed  among  the  various  sections  of 
non-Episcopal  communities  to  the  manifest  increase  of 
their  strength  and  influence,  and  that  efforts  are  now  being 
made,  specially  by  the  native  Christians,  towards  unity 
amongst  the  different  communities  themselves — the 
annual  conference  of  the  C.M.S.,  now  sitting  in  Osaka, 
wishes  to  suggest  to  the  Bishop  and  clergy  of  the 
American  Church  and  the  clergy  of  the  S.P.G.  the 
desirability  of  holding  a  general  conference  of  the  three 
missions  on  this  subject  at  an  early  date. 

In  writing  to  his  father  about  this  conference,  the 
Bishop  recorded  his  first  impressions  thus : 

c/o  Rev.       C.  Shaw,  S.P.G.  Mission,  Tokyo: 
May  14,  1886. 

Our  Conference  (C.M.S.)  went  off  very  well.  It  was 
harmonious  throughout,  and  I  trust  has  given  a  spur  to 
our  missionary  work  :  not  that  my  clergy  need  stimulating 
to  do  more  work,  as  most  of  them  are  overworking  already, 
but  that  meeting  and  discussion  and  common  prayer  send 
men  back  with  greater  heart  to  their  labour.  I  hope  next 
year  to  have  a  Quiet  Day  to  end  up  with. 

Among  many  other  matters  we  agreed  to  one  resolu- 
tion which  may  carry  with  it  important  consequences. 
Mr.  Fysoti  proposed  a  general  conference  of  our  Church 
missions  (C.M.S.  and  S.P.G.)  and  the  American  Church 
Mission  with  a  view  to  fuller  co-operation.  I  yesterday 
transmitted  the  invitation  to  Bishop  Williams  of  the 
American  Church,  who  has  accepted  it.  Union  is  very 
much  in  the  air  in  Japan.  The  Presbyterians  have  all 
joined  together,  and  the  Congregationalists  and  they  are 
trying  to  amalgamate.  .  .  .  On  the  other  hand,  we  and  the 
American  Church  arc  essentially  one — here  we  have  the 


A  -MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     1 886-1 888       1 65 


same  Prayer  Book  in  Japanese— and  if  we  could  only 
work  together  should  be  a  fairly  strong  body,  though  even 
then  small  compared  with  the  Nonconformist  American 
Missions.  And  we  could  certainly,  if  we  had  liberty 
allowed  us,  offer  a  basis  of  wider  union — on  some  such  lines 
as  those  I  mentioned  at  the  Portsmouth  Congress — which 
ought  in  time  to  draw  in  many  of  the  separated 
communities. 

.  .  .  There  is  the  most  curious  difference  between  the 
people  of  this  country  and  India.  Here  foreigners  can 
only  suggest  and  guide,  in  India  they  rule  ;  so  that  even  by 
missionaries,  not  to  say  Bishops,  continual  care  has  to  be 
taken  not  to  offend  Japanese  susceptibilities.  They  have 
not  yet  realised  this  in  Salisbury  Square,  and  send  out 
pages  of  regulations  for  native  Churches.  In  the  one  case, 
where  a  missionary  unwisely  took  them  in  his  hand  and 
said  that  this  was  the  plan  agreed  upon  for  their  organisa- 
tion in  England,  the  whole  thing  was  promptly  rejected 
with  the  offer  of  monetary  help  which  was  attached  to  its 
acceptance.  Wiser  men  are  bringing  them  to  much  the 
same  point  by  suggestion  and  guidance. 

By  the  loth  of  the  same  month  the  Bishop  had  gone 
up  to  Tokyo,  not  then  or  for  some  years  wholly  connected 
with  Osaka  by  railway.  There  he  was  welcomed  by  the 
Rev.  A.  C.  Shaw  (now  Archdeacon  of  South  Tokyo)  and  the 
Rev.  A.  Lloyd  (formerl)'  Dean  of  Pcterhouse,  Cambridge), 
both  connected  with  S.P.G.  missions  in  that  city.  The 
former  of  these  had  worked  in  Tokyo  since  1873.  At  his 
invitation  the  Bishop  made  his  house  his  headquarters 
while  in  Tokyo,  for  the  next  year  and  a- half  He  writes 
in  his  '  Journal ' : 

The  house  of  the  former  is  in  a  quarter  of  the  city 
called  Shiba,  and  I  was  most  agreeably  surprised  at  the 
situation  and  character  of  the  place.  Though  in  the  heart 
of  the  city,  there  are  a  number  of  gardens  and  fir  woods 
about,  and  Mr.  Shaw's  house  is  on  a  hill  which  lifts  it  above 
the  masses  of  human  habitations  around.  The  city  itself 
is  immense,  stretching  like  London  for  miles  and  miles  in 
all  directions.    There  are  over  a  million  inhabitants,  and  it 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


contains  all  the  Government  Offices  and  the  University  of 
Japan. 

In  Tok)'o  the  Bishop  met  for  the  first  time  Bishop 
Williams,  of  the  Episcopal  Church  of  America.  He  had 
been  in  the  Far  East,  both  in  China  and  Japan,  for  nearly 
thirty  years,  first  as  missionary  and  then  as  missionary 
Bishop,  having  been  consecrated  in  1866.  Here  also  he 
called  on  Bishop  Nicolai,  the  revered  representative  of  the 
Greek  Church,  and  he  thus  describes  his  visit : 

The  Greek  Bishop  is  a  startling  figure  in  long  blue 
cassock,  many-coloured  belt,  long  hair.  We  talked  of  many 
things,  including  union  of  Churches.  He  has  very  large 
buildings,  and  is  erecting  a  great  cathedral.  Russians 
take  great  interest  in  the  mission,  as  it  is  their  only  one 
outside  Russian  territory,  though  they  have  others  on  the 
borders  of  China.  He  gave  us  copies  of  the  Psalter  &c., 
which  he  had  recently  translated.  At  my  request  he  wrote 
my  name  in  Russian,  and  he  said  when  we  parted,  '  We 
must  love  in  deed  as  well  as  word.'  The  object  of  the 
mission  is  not  wholly  political  ;  it  was  largely  got  up  by  an 
admiral  who  was  wrecked  on  the  coast  of  Japan,  and  sent 
out  this  mission  as  a  thankoffering  for  the  kindness  shown 
him  by  the  people. 

When  Bishop  Nicolai  returned  the  above  call,  a  visit 
was  paid  by  both  Bishops  to  the  English  Church. 

A  dear  little  building,  very  well  appointed,  built  of  red 
brick  and  with  a  pretty  garden  round  it.  I  asked  him  to  say 
the  Lord's  Prayer  with  us  and  to  give  the  blessing.  He 
was  very  pleased,  and  explained  that  he  only  did  not  kneel, 
because  it  is  contrary  to  their  Canon  during  the  fifty  days 
from  Easter  to  Pentecost. 

On  May  18  Bishop  Williams  and  Bishop  Nicolai  came 
to  dine  with  him,  and  he  records  in  his  '  Journal  '  :  '  Three 
Bishops  not  known  to  have  met  before  in  Japan.' 

On  the  2 1st  he  met  the  native  Christians  of  the  C.M.S. 
Mission  in  Tokyo,  and  records  : 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     1 886-1 888        1 67 

May  21,  Evening. — Dined  with  Mr.  Williams  of 
C.M.S.  Met  native  Christians  of  C.M.S.  congregation 
afterwards.  Only  one  man  of  position  among  them — a 
Dr.  Hada.  Had  agreed  not  to  speak  that  evening,  but  as 
they  were  anxious  to  hear  something  I  talked  to  them  a 
little  while.  Referred  to  Bishop  Poole,  their  need  of  a 
pastor,  the  importance  of  their  position  in  this  capital  city, 
the  old  Jansenist  motto  :  Unde  ardet  inde  lucet — the  flame 
and  the  light  are  of  like  origin.  Love  and  usefulness  go 
together. 

On  May  22  the  Bishop  characteristically  organised  a 
Quiet  Day,  of  which  he  writes  : 

May  22nd.— I  held  a  Quiet  Day  for  the  S.P.G.,  C.M.S., 
and  American  Missions,  and  gave  four  addresses  :  (i)  at 
Holy  Communion;  on  '  The  Use  of  Quiet  Days  ; '  (2)  after 
Matins,  on  'God  and  the  Practice  of  His  Presence;' 
(3)  after  the  Litany,  on  '  Life  in  God  ; '  and  (4)  after  a 
Metrical  Litany,  on  '  Work  for  God.'  No  such  Quiet  Days 
have  been  held  before  in  Tokyo,  and  they  seem  to  supply 
a  real  want. 

Thus  at  the  outset  of  his  work  in  Japan  he  emphasised 
the  same  principles  of  the  /ife  and  the  work  which  we  have 
seen  to  have  been  the  keynote  of  his  work  in  Delhi. 

On  May  24  a  second  step  was  taken  towards  con- 
federation at  a  meeting  attended  by  English  (S.P.G.  and 
C.M.S.)  and  American  missionaries,  and  called,  in  accord- 
ance with  the  resolution  passed  at  the  recent  C.M.S. 
conference  at  Osaka  :  '  To  try  and  weld  together  into  one 
body  the  various  scattered  congregations  of  our  respective 
missions.'  Bishop  Williams  presided,  and  it  was  decided 
to  hold  a  conference  of  delegates  on  July  8  and  the 
following  days,  each  society  sending  their  own  representa- 
tives. 

At  once  Bishop  Bickersteth  set  to  work  to  draft  Canons ' 
in  order  to  submit  a  scheme  to  the  forthcoming  conference. 

'  See  chapter  ix.,  p.  320,  and  Appendix  B,  p.  476. 


i68 


BISHOP  EDWARD  IJICKERSTETH 


No  task  could  have  been  more  congenial  to  him,  and  he 
ransacked  ancient  and  modern  authorities.  His  short 
diary  as  well  as  his  careful  memoranda  show  how  he  com- 
pared primitive  experience  embodied  in  the  decisions  of 
early  Councils  with  the  more  recent  Canons  of  the 
American  and  New  Zealand  Churches,  ever  balancing  one 
against  another  the  claims  of  early  precedents  and  of 
modern  latter-day  needs.  He  also  referred  the  whole 
matter  to  the  Archbishop  of  Canterbury  (Dr.  Benson),  then 
as  ever  ready,  Cyprian-like,  to  enter  into  a  careful  consider- 
ation of  such  questions,  and  to  place  his  own  trained  and 
discriminating  judgment  at  the  service  of  those  who  were 
called  upon  '  to  build  the  walls  of  Jerusalem.' 

For  the  convenience  of  those  who  may  have  occasion 
to  refer  to  the  first  beginnings  of  the  Nippon  Sei  K5kwai,' 
its  constitution  and  Canons,  its  principles  and  aims,  I  am 
devoting  Chapter  IX.  of  this  biography  to  an  account  in 
detail  of  this  important  and  permanent  work  of  laying  the 
foundations,  in  which  Bishop  Bickersteth  was  surely  sent 
out  by  God  to  take  a  leading  part. 

I  therefore  will  here  only  chronicle  the  holding  of  the 
United  Conference  on  July  8  at  Tokyo.  All  the  delegates 
were  present  at  the  opening  service,  when  Bishop  Williams 
was  celebrant  at  the  Holy  Communion  and  Bishop  Bicker- 
steth preached  the  sermon,  taking  as  his  texts  St.  Matt, 
xvi.  19  and  St.  John  xx.  23. 

He  records  in  his  '  Journal ' : 

Tokyo,  July  8,  1886. — (The  week  of  a  conference  repre- 
sentative of  missionaries,  preparatory  to  a  General  Con- 
ference in  1887.)  All  the  delegates  were  present  this 
morning  at  our  opening  service.  I  preached  and  Bishop 
Williams  celebrated.  I  took  a  subject  from  St.  Mat- 
thew xvi.  and  St.  John  xx.,  '  The  threefold  power  of  the 
Keys,'  (a)  The  Keys,  {b)  Binding  and  loosing,  i.e.  Legisla- 

'  I.e.  The  Holy  Catliolic  Church  of  Japan. 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     1886-1888  169 


tion,  (c)  Absolution.  I  treated  them  as  inherent  in  the 
Christian  Society,  and  exercised  continually  through  its 
ministry.  The  keys  I  took  to  be  the  key  of  knowledge, 
and  the  key  of  admission  to  and  exclusion  from  the 
Christian  Church.  The  whole  seemed  applicable  to  our 
efforts  to  found  a  Christian  Church  in  Japan. 

The  opening  service  was  in  the  C.M.S.  Mission  Church 
at  Tsukiji,  the  foreign  settlement  of  Tokyo.  We  met  in 
Bishop  Williams's  College  for  our  meetings,  which  is  near 
the  church.  The  conference  lasted  four  days,  with 
sittings  of  about  three  hours  twice  daily.  The  proposed 
Synod  and  the  code  of  Canons,  on  which  Bishop  Williams 
and  I  have  been  at  work,  were  our  chief  subjects  of  discus- 
sion. I  speak  of  discussion,  but  the  whole  was  most  har- 
monious, everybody,  I  think,  trying  to  contribute  rather 
than  to  oppose,  to  '  build  '  rather  than  to  '  overthrow.' 

Besides  the  two  subjects  I  have  mentioned,  the  revision 
of  the  present  Prayer  Book,  the  formation  of  an  indepen- 
dent Japanese  Missionary  Society,  education,  various 
social  questions  (very  difficult  here  as  in  India),  litera- 
ture (this  field  has  hitherto  been  left  wholly  to  Non- 
conformists, we  are  now  starting  a  monthly  Church 
Magazine,  but  this  will  not  take  the  place  of  books).  Quiet 
Days,  and  the  circulation  among  the  missionaries  of  papers 
of  intercession  like  those  of  the  Society  of  Watchers  and 
Workers,  &c.,  all  came  under  review. 

The  only  drawback  was  the  extreme  heat,  the  thermo- 
meter registering  higher  than  had  been  known  for  about 
fifteen  years. 

Ju/y  II. — One  object  of  this  conference  is  to  form 
one  native  Church  out  of  the  various  scattered  congrega- 
tions. This  is  rendered  necessary  here,  even  more  than  in 
India,  both  because  it  is  the  demand  of  the  Japanese 
Christians  themselves,  and  because  such  unions  have  been 
accomplished  by  the  various  Nonconformist  bodies  ;  also 
because  here,  even  more  than  in  India,  the  actual  work  of 
evangelisation  is  best  done  by  the  natives  themselves 
under  an  organisation  in  which  they  have  a  considerable 
share  of  authority.  We  have  had  many  delicate  questions 
to  consider,  but  the  conference  has  been  most  harmonious. 
.  .  .  If  our  plans  can  be  carried  through,  I  trust  that  by 
God's  grace  they  will  give  a  great  stimulus  to  Church 
work,  which  is  here  mainly  missionary  work. 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


The  following  is  the  letter  written  jointly  by  Bishop 
Williams  and  Bishop  Bickersteth  at  the  close  of  this 
conference,  addressed  to  the  Bishops  of  the  Anglican 
Communion  : 

Tokyo,  Japan  :  St.  James'  Day,  1 886. 

To  the  Right  Rev.  the  Bishops  of  the  Anglican  Communion. 

Right  Rev.  and  Dear  Brethren, — We  have  been  re- 
quested, by  a  conference  of  delegates  of  the  three  mis- 
sionary societies,  which  are  connected  with  the  Anglican 
Communion  in  our  jurisdiction,  to  endeavour  to  set  before 
the  Church  in  England  and  America  the  special  needs 
and  claims  of  the  great  country  in  which  our  work  lies. 

The  missionary  fields  of  the  Church  are  now  so  various, 
and  their  needs  for  the  most  part  so  well  known  by 
missionary  publications,  that  a  special  appeal  requires 
justification.  This  justification  we  believe  to  be  found  in 
the  greatness  and  hopefulness  of  missionary  work  in 
Japan,  combined  with  the  shortness  of  the  time  during 
which  it  is  likely  that  the  present  opportunity  will  be 
continued  to  us. 

It  is  scarcely  more  than  thirty  years  since  this  country, 
with  its  population  of  nearly  forty  million  souls,  was  sealed 
to  all  intercourse  with  the  West,  except  through  a  single 
Dutch  trading  company.  During  the  interval  it  has 
adopted,  with  startling  rapidity,  our  civilisation  and  cus- 
toms, assimilating  very  much  of  our  most  advanced  learn- 
ing and  knowledge,  and  itself  being  admitted  to  a 
recognised  position  among  the  nations  of  the  world.  The 
result  has  been  a  great  displacement  from  the  faith  of  the 
Japanese  people  in  the  religious  systems  which  for  a 
thousand  years  have  held  undisputed  sway  among  them. 
Though  Shintoism  and  Buddhism  are  still  nominally  the 
religions  of  the  great  mass  of  the  people,  they  have  ceased 
to  have  any  beyond  a  speculative  interest  for  the  educated, 
and  have  lost  much  of  their  hold  even  on  the  lower  classes. 
State  recognition  has  recently  been  withdrawn  from  both 
systems. 

Meanwhile  alike  the  treatment  and  popular  estimate  of 
Christianity  have  no  less  completely  changed.  Instead  of 
being  proscribed  by  public  edict,  it  shares  in  the  impartial 
toleration  which  is  now  shown  by  the  Japanese  Govern- 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     1 886- 1 888  I/I 


merit  of  all  religious  faiths.  Instead  of  being  regarded 
with  feelings  of  mingled  contempt  and  hatred,  it  is  now 
generally  looked  upon  with  interest  and  respect.  Among 
the  upper  classes  this  is  in  part  due  to  the  belief  that  it  is 
an  essential  element  in  the  higher  form  of  Western  civilisa- 
tion, which  they  have  adopted  as  their  model.  But  a  more 
spiritual  motive  often  prevaiLs.  The  work  of  the  last  two 
years  more  especially  seems  to  have  left  upon  the  minds 
of  many  experienced  missionaries,  alike  within  and  with- 
out our  Communion,  the  impression  of  a  widespread  desire 
to  know  the  truth. 

Such  a  crisis  in  a  nation's  history  seems  to  call  for  a 
combination  in  the  Church's  missions  of  men  of  various 
gifts  and  powers.  We  desire  to  call  attention  to  three 
lines  of  work  which  seem  to  us  of  special  importance  at 
the  present  time. 

1.  A  wide  field  is  open  to  those  who,  taking  advantage 
of  the  new  spirit  of  respectful  inquiry,  would  give  them- 
selves to  public  preaching  and  lecturing  alike  in  the  towns 
and  country,  a  work  with  which  might  often  be  combined 
the  preparation  of  books  fitted  to  commend  the  faith  to 
the  Japanese  mind. 

2.  The  new  system  of  education,  which  has  been  put 
into  operation  throughout  the  Japanese  Empire,  affords 
what  we  believe  to  be  an  unprecedented  opportunity  to  the 
educational  missionary.  Alike  in  government  and  private 
schools,  instruction  in  the  English  language  is  now 
eagerly  sought  from  the  lips  of  those  to  whom  English  is 
their  native  tongue.  A  fair  salary  is  assigned  in  return  for 
a  few  hours'  teaching  on  five  days  in  the  week.  The 
teachers  in  the  private  schools  have  the  fullest  consent  of 
those  who  engage  them  to  bring  to  bear  upon  their  pupils, 
alike  in  and  out  of  school  hours,  every  moral  and  spiritual 
influence.  Such  missionaries,  if  attached  to  the  staff  of  a 
society,  would,  in  some  cases,  need  to  make  little  or  no 
demand  upon  its  funds  other  than  for  occasional  expenses. 
Experience  has  already  shown  that  large  and  even  rapid 
results  may  be  expected  from  such  work. 

In  connection  with  this  we  would  notice  that  in  the 
capital  and  some  other  large  cities  instruction  in  English 
is  now  desired  scarcely  less  by  the  women  than  by  the 
men  of  Japan.  Ready  access  is  afforded  to  English- 
speaking  ladies  who  will  undertake  to  provide  it ;  and 


172 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


this,  in  many  cases,  with  the  hope  rather  than  the  fear,  on 
the  part  of  the  pupil,  that  the  acquisition  of  the  teacher's 
language  will  be  accompanied  by  instruction  in  her  faith. 

3.  Colleges  have  been  established  for  the  education  of 
clergy  and  teachers,  as  well  as  Christian  schools  both  for 
boys  and  girls.  A  small  beginning  has  also  been  made 
in  the  work  of  training  Japanese  Christian  women  to  act, 
after  the  model  of  Apostolic  days,  as  evangelists  among 
the  many  millions  of  their  countrywomen  who  are  as  yet 
unenlightened,  and  to  help  in  the  further  instruction  of 
their  sisters  in  the  faith.  All  such  training  institutions 
must  for  the  present  be  carried  on  chiefly  by  foreign 
missionaries.  Their  importance  is  emphasised  by  the 
rapidit)'  of  the  recent  increase  in  the  number  of  baptisms, 
which  has  been  larger  during  the  past  year  than  during 
any  year  preceding  since  the  foundation  of  the  missions. 
Such  growth  can  only  be  healthful  and  permanent,  if  the 
newly  baptised  can  at  once  be  placed  under  well  instructed 
as  well  as  earnest  pastors  and  teachers  of  their  own 
nationality  and  tongue. 

With  opportunities  and  needs  such  as  these,  we  have 
at  present  at  work  in  connection  with  our  communion  only 
twenty-one  clergy,  six  laymen,  and  eight  missionary  ladies. 
So  small  a  staff  is  insufficient  even  for  the  work  in  hand, 
and  without  its  increase  extension  is  impossible.  Such 
increase,  to  be  effectual,  should  be  immediate.  Here  the 
hope  all  but  reaches  certainty,  that  it  is  the  divine 
purpose  to  grant  to  adequate  efforts  on  the  part  of  the 
Church  a  new  Christian  nation.  But  in  a  special  sense,  to 
the  people  of  these  islands,  now  is  the  day  of  salvation. 
Their  old  religions  are  indeed  disappearing  ;  but  manifold 
.superstitions  and  infidelities  wait  to  occupy  the  ground,  if 
it  is  not  claimed  by  the  faith  of  Christ. 

On  the  other  hand,  the  opinion  held  by  many  does  not 
.seem  unfounded  that  when  the  people  of  these  islands 
themselves  shall  have  been  gathered  into  the  fold,  mission- 
aries sent  forth  by  them  might  exercise  as  large  an  influence 
on  the  nations  of  the  neighbouring  continent  as  was  exer- 
cised by  missionaries  from  Great  Britain  in  the  early 
middle  ages  on  the  nations  of  North  Europe. 

We  appeal,  then,  with  many  prayers,  for  men  and 
women  fitted  alike  by  the  Spirit  of  wisdom  and  the  Spirit 
of  love  to  enter  in  at  the  great  door  and  effectual  which 


A  MISSIONARY  BLSMOP'S  LIFE.     1886-1888  173 


has  been  opened  to  us.  We  venture  to  commend  most 
earnestly  the  facts  which  we  have  addressed  to  your  con- 
sideration, asking  you  to  bring  them,  as  opportunity  may 
offer,  before  the  clergy,  the  missionary  societies,  and  the 
students  in  our  universities,  colleges,  and  theological 
schools.  Necessary  support  will,  we  cannot  doubt,  be 
provided  for  efficient  labourers.  Earthly  recompense  it  is 
not  in  our  power  to  offer  them,  and  they  will  not  seek 
it.  Rather  they  will  feel  that  to  be  allowed  to  share,  at  the 
crisis  of  its  religious  history,  in  bringing  a  great  and  noble 
people  to  the  knowledge  of  God,  is,  till  the  day  of  Christ, 
its  own  all-sufficient  reward. 

We  are.  Right  Reverend  and  dear  Brethren, 

Your  faithful  Servants  in  Christ, 
{Signed)  C.  M.  WILLIAMS, 

Missionary  Bishop  of  Yedo 
Edward  Bickersteth, 
Missionary  Bishop  of  the  Church  of  England  in  Japan. 

By  the  August  of  this  year  the  Bishop  had  fully  made 
up  his  mind  to  place  his  University  Mission  in  Tokyo. 
He  gave  his  reasons  in  a  second  letter  to  the  Master  of 
Pembroke  College  (the  Rev.  C.  E.  Searle,  D.D.),  dated 
August  14,  1866,  from  which  the  following  extracts  are 
given  : 

My  dear  Master, —  .  .  .  Since  I  wrote  to  you  last 
April,  I  have  visited  the  principal  mission  stations  of  our 
Church  irt  Japan.  One  object  of  my  journeys  has  been, 
after  consulting  the  missionary  clergy  in  each  place,  to 
decide  on  the  city  in  which  a  special  mission  to  the  edu- 
cated classes  may  at  the  present  time  be  located  with  the 
greatest  advantage.  I  now  feel  no  doubt  that  such  a  mission 
should  be  placed  in  Tokyo,  the  capital  of  the  Japanese 
empire,  from  which  I  am  now  writing.  Tokyo  is  the  chief 
centre  alike  of  government  and  education.  Young  men 
of  high  position  and  promise  continually  visit  it,  and  go 
forth  from  it  again  to  all  parts  of  these  islands,  so  that 
Christian  influence  exerted  here  is  widely  felt  throughout 
the  whole  land. 

Two  special  circumstances  have  assisted  me  in  coming 
to  this  conclusion  : 


174 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


1.  There  is  an  active  and  promising  mission  of  the 
Society  for  the  Propagation  of  the  Gospel  in  Tokyo, 
which  is  only  prevented  from  a  far  wider  range  of  useful- 
ness by  want  of  men.  The  Society's  missionaries  will 
offer  a  hearty  and  brotherly  welcome  to  a  new  mission, 
and  put  their  experience  at  its  disposal  in  its  early 
days. 

2.  An  offer  of  educational  work  in  a  celebrated  Japanese 
school  has  recently  been  made  to  the  Rev.  A.  Lloyd,  of 
which  without  further  aid  he  is  only  able  partially  to  take 
advantage.  .  .  . 

I  cannot  but  feel  that  this  opening,  at  the  present 
time,  may  be  accepted  as  a  sign  of  God's  guidance.  The 
primary  difficulty  of  all  mission  work  among  educated 
classes  is  to  obtain  entrance  among  them.  This  school 
will  afford  the  missionaries  who  teach  in  it  an  entrance 
into  a  large  circle  of  Tokyo  society  from  the  time  they 
arrive  in  the  country,  without  laying  on  them  the  heavy 
burden  of  general  school  management  and  financial  pro- 
vision ;  and  also  without  so  engrossing  their  time  as  to 
prevent  the  acquisition  of  the  language.  When  once  this 
is  attained,  all  the  manifold  operations  of  general  mission 
work  will  also  be  open  to  them. 

I  have  ventured  to  ask  for  four  men.  One  who  was 
present  at  our  meeting  in  the  old  Library  last  February 
has  written  offering  to  join  me  next  year.  Others  are 
considering  the  matter.  It  may  be  that  the  proposal 
which  has  now  been  made  to  Mr.  Lloyd  will  enable  them 
to  come  to  an  immediate  decision.  The  greatness  of 
Japan's  need  is  surely  the  measure  of  the  Church's  duty. 
I  may  add  that  no  brigher  prospect,  I  believe,  has  ever 
been  set  before  the  missionary  than  that  which  Japan 
offers  to-day. 

1  am,  my  dear  Master, 
Yours  very  sincerely, 

Edward  Bickersteth, 
Bishop. 

The  Bishop  was  now  burning  to  be  off  on  his  first 
missionary  tour,  and  to  see  face  to  face  the  devoted  mis- 
sionaries, men  and  women,  as  well  as  the  converts  under 


A  MISSIONARY  BISIIOP's  LIFE.     1 886-1 888        1 75 


his  charge,  many  of  whom  were  isolated.  During  these 
three  months  in  the  city  of  Tokyo — which  is  by  far  the 
largest  city  in  Japan,  its  population  being  about  1,200,000 
—  he  had  not  only  closely  studied  the  problem  of  the 
best  way  to  bring  the  forces  of  Christianity  to  bear  on 
that  great  centre  of  thought,  life,  and  influence  ;  but  he  had 
also  made  plans  for  extensive  missionary  tours  throughout 
the  whole  length  and  breadth  of  the  empire,  all  the  missions 
of  the  Church  of  England  being  at  that  time  under  his 
sole  supervision. 

Japan  is  about  1,700  miles  in  length,  and  had  in  1886 
a  population  of  38,000,000,  while  the  English  missions 
were  dotted  about  at  places  as  far  distant  as  Nagasaki  in 
the  extreme  south  (Kiushiu)  and  Sapporo  in  the  far  north 
(Yezo). 

At  that  time  there  was  no  territorial  division  in  Japan 
between  the  missions  sent  out  by  the  sister  Churches  of 
America  and  England.  The  missionaries  from  each 
country,  and  the  native  converts  gathered  by  their  efforts, 
were  under  the  jurisdiction  of  their  respective  Bishops, 
irrespective  of  locality.  The  first  attempt  at  a  delimita- 
tion of  dioceses  took  place  in  1 89 1,  when  an  arrangement 
made  between  Bishop  Bickersteth  and  Bishop  Hare  of 
South  Dakota  (then  in  temporary  charge  of  the  American 
Mission)  was  submitted  by  them  to  the  Archbishop 
of  Canterbury  and  the  American  House  of  Bishops. 
The  Archbishop  approved  the  plan,  and  the  House  of 
Bishops  '  commended  it  to  the  favourable  consideration  of 
the  Bishop  to  be  placed  in  charge  of  the  missionary  diocese 
of  Yedo.'  But  it  was  not  until  1894  that  this  delimitation 
(with  important  modifications)  was  ratified  by  the  Japanese 
Synod  and  in  the  Synod  of  1896  the  six  'missionary 
districts '  were  formally  recognised.  During  these  years 
many  negotiations  were  necessary,  and  some  questions 


176 


niSIIOP  EDWARD  lUCKERSTETH 


were  raised  of  a  difficult  and  delicate  nature.  But  in  this 
place  it  only  seems  necessary  to  point  out  how  for 
Bishop  Bickersteth  the  ruling  principle  throughout  was 
that  expressed  by  himself  in  1895  : 

It  is  my  earnest  desire  and  prayer  that  the  result  of 
our  present  organisation  may  be  the  wider  extension  and 
progressive  usefulness  of  the  missions  of  both  branches  of 
the  Anglican  Communion  in  Japan,  and  of  the  Church 
which  they  have  been  allowed  to  found  together. 

Writing  on  October  23,  1886,  the  Bishop  remarks  :  '  I 
am  reading  Adams's  "  History  of  Japan,"  and  find  it  hard 
to  believe  that  the  country  is  the  same  that  he  describes  in 
the  year  i860.'  In  1886,  however, internal  communication 
between  the  capital  and  even  the  important  cities  in  the 
main  island  (Hondo)  was  still  deficient ;  journeys  were 
precarious,  and  often  only  possible  on  foot.  The  network 
of  railways  which  the  Bishop  during  his  eleven  years 
episcopate  saw  spreading  in  all  directions  had  not  then 
even  connected  the  modern  capital  Tokyo  with  its 
ancient  rival  Kyoto,  and  journeys  had  to  be  accom- 
plished by  jinricksha,  or  coasting  steamer,  or  on  foot, 
often  in  perils,  not  indeed  of  robbers,  but  of  heavy 
rains,  swollen  rivers,  and  earthquakes.  The  Bishop's 
ubiquitous  energy  during  this  and  the  two  or  three  following 
years,  in  which  he  visited  and  revisited  every  part  of  the 
empire,  led  Sir  Rutherford  Alcock,  when  presiding  in  1888 
at  a  drawing-room  meeting  held  at  the  London  residence 
of  Sir  Monier  Monier-Williams  in  support  of  the  mission, 
to  utter  a  timely  caveat  against  such  incessant  travelling 
as  being  impossible  for  a  European  to  keep  up  in  Japan. 
However,  the  Bishop  did  not  act  on  impulse,  as  will  be 
seen  from  the  following  letter  in  which  he  had  sketched 
out  with  precision  the  main  outlines  of  the  tour  on  which 
he  now  started : 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     1886-1888  177 


To  his  Father 

clo  Rev.  A.  C.  Shaw,  Shiba,  Tokyo  : 
June  28,  1886. 

This  will  reach  you  about  the  time  that  I  start  on 
my  journey,  so  let  me  give  you  a  sketch  of  my  proposed 
movements.  About  August  10  or  15  I  leave  Yokohama 
by  steamer  for  Hakodate  in  Yezo,  the  most  northerly 
island  of  the  Japanese  group.  There  I  shall  probably  stay 
a  fortnight,  and  then  go  on  to  Sapporo,  a  town  further  up 
the  east  coast,  where  there  is  an  '  unattached  '  Christian 
congregation  which  perhaps  may  be  brought  to  anchor  by 
our  side. 

From  Sapporo  I  hope  to  get  into  the  Ainu  country, 
the  harmless  but  wholly  untutored  race,  whose  ways  and 
manners  Miss  Bird  has  described.  By  the  last  week  of 
September  I  ought  to  be  back  here  again,  but  only  to  staj' 
a  day  to  change  summer  for  winter  things  and  proceed  to 
Osaka,  whence  partly  by  the  Inland  Sea  and  partly  by  land 
I  am  to  make  my  way  to  the  province  of  Iwami,  on  the  west 
coast.  This  will  be  another  six  weeks'  work.  Mr.  Evington 
of  the  C.M.S.  is  to  be  my  companion.  Thence  to  Nagasaki, 
the  inspection  of  which  and  its  outstations  will  take  me  to 
the  middle  of  January  ;  then  probably  for  a  month  or  six 
weeks  to  Kobe  and  the  C.M.S.  Conference  at  Osaka,  and 
then  back  here  for  Easter.' 

No  doubt  the  Bishop's  tall  slim  figure,  and  at  times  his 
worn  and  emaciated  appearance,  hardly  prepared  people 
for  the  inexhaustible  energy  which  kept  his  work,  physical, 
mental,  and  spiritual,  at  high  pressure.  The  .shortest  and 
one  of  the  best  missionary  speeches  which  it  has  been  my 
privilege  to  hear  was  made  in  the  Library  ^  at  Lambeth 
Palace  by  Admiral  Sir  Vescy  Hamilton.  The  Admiral, 
not  without  demur  on  his  part,  had  consented  to  move  a 

'  N.B. — These  plans  were  (with  shght  modifications)  carried  out  with 
the  addition  of  the  first  Synod  of  the  Japanese  Church  at  Osaka  in  February 
1887. 

^  The  meeting  was  held  on  October  31,  1890,  in  support  of  ihc  .St.  Andrew's 
and  St.  Hilda's  Missions,  Tokyo,  founded  by  Bishop  Bickerste:.'),  and  by  that 
time  in  working  order. 

N 


178 


BISHOr  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


resolution  at  the  meeting.  He  produced  a  profound 
impression  on  the  friends  and  supporters  of  the  mission 
gathered  in  the  crowded  library  by  his  words  : 

Being  in  command  of  the  Chinese  squadron,  I  hap- 
pened to  be  in  Tokyo  a  few  years  ago  when  your 
Bishop  first  arrived,  and  I  remember  hearing  men  say, 
on  seeing  their  new  Bishop  :  '  Here  is  the  round  man  in 
the  square  hole.'  I  returned  to  Tokyo  after  a  year  or 
two,  and  they  said  to  me  :  '  Admiral,  we  were  quite 
wrong.  No  one  works  harder  than  our  Bishop,  and  he 
is  the  round  man  in  the  round  hole '  Ladies  and  gentle- 
men, you  may  safely  go  on  in  your  support  of  any  work 
led  by  him. 

On  the  eve  of  his  departure  from  Tokyo,  the  Bishop 
mentions  in  a  letter  his  indebtedness  to  John  Imai,  'a 
young  catechist  who  interprets  for  me  nicely  ;  a  particu- 
larly pleasant  young  Japanese,  strongly  imbued  with  the 
Christian  tone  and  temper.' 

The  following  extracts  from  the  Bishop's  'Journal 
Letters '  will  give  some  idea  of  this  first  journey  to  the 
northern  island  of  Yezo  : 

First  Tour  in  Yezo,  1886 

Horobetsu,  Aug.  26. — A  gloomy  morning.  We  started  on 
horseback  for  New  Mororan,  a  place  about  twelve  miles  off, 
six  miles  along  the  shore,  the  same  route  we  had  come  from 
Old  Mororan,  and  then  for  six  miles  along  a  mountain  path 
where  only  occasionally  could  we  get  out  of  a  walking 
pace.  We  arrived  in  about  four  hours  ;  the  village,  with 
the  exception  of  a  house  or  two,  is  wholly  Ainu,  very  pic- 
turesque, nestled  in  a  little  bay  of  the  sea.  We  took  up 
our  quarters  in  a  small  Japanese  inn,  where  shortly  we 
received  a  visit  of  ceremony  from  the  Ainu  chief,  who 
entered  in  his  robe  of  state  with  absolutely  imperturbable 
face,  and  seated  himself  demurely  opposite  Mr.  Batchelor  ; 
several  followers  did  the  same  behind  him,  and  then 
he  commenced  a  short  harangue  to  the  effect  that  he 
was  pleased  to  see  us  in   his  village.     Mr.  Batchelor 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.      1 886-1 888        1 79 


replied  with  equal  solemnity,  reminding  him  that  we  all 
believed  one  God,  and  that  the  Ainu  had  a  tradition  that 
all  men  of  old  were  brothers.  In  this  we  agreed,  and 
hoped  they  would  not  consider  us  as  aliens  but  friends. 
All  this  was  preceded  and  followed  by  the  usual  beard 
stroking.  An  arrangement  was  then  made  that  there 
should  be  a  meeting  in  the  evening  at  the  hut  of  the  chief, 
which  is  a  good  size,  and  a  magic  lantern  shown  which  we 
had  brought  with  us.  Truly  I  wish  you  could  have  been 
present  at  that  meeting.  The  wildness  of  the  scene  ! 
Possibly  some  of  your  Arab  encampments  across  the 
Jordan  may  have  equalled  it,  but  nothing  I  have  seen  in 
India.  The  magnificent  Ainu  men  with  their  great  beards 
and  solemn  countenances,  the  women  got  up  in  their  best 
bead  necklaces,  &c.,  all  hideously  disfigured  to  Western 
eyes  by  the  tatooing  they  think  so  beautiful,  the  crowd  of 
children,  the  bear  skins  hung  about  the  rude  hut,  the  hut 
itself  grim  with  soot,  which,  nevertheless,  had  formed  a  kind 
of  ebony  polish  over  the  roof  beams,  all  lighted  by  the 
fitful  gleams  of  pieces  of  pine  bark,  and  all  the  faces  turned 
in  astonishment  at  the  magic  lantern  pictures  by  help  of 
which  they  were  being  taught  the  first  principles  of  the 
Gospel.  I  cannot  describe  it  for  you,  but  you  may  be  able 
to  throw  these  features  of  the  scene  together  into  some 
sort  of  a  picture. 

August  28. — Reading  Bishop  of  Durham's  '  Ignatius 
and  Polycarp ' — truly  a  marvel  of  condensed  learning  and 
shrewd  combination  and  interpretation  of  scanty  details, 
throwing  a  flood  of  light  on  the  darkest  fifty  years  of  the 
Church's  history. 

August  29.  —  I  baptised  two  Ainu,  and  their  adopted 
Japanese  child.  Mr.  Batchelor  took  all  the  service  except 
the  words  of  the  administration  of  the  sacrament.  They 
are  only  the  second  and  third  of  their  race  admitted  to  the 
Church  ;  may  they  indeed  be  a  first-fruits  to  Christ  ! 

August  31. — Left  early  in  Japanese  carriage  (a  springless 
vehicle)  for  Sapporo  ;  route  is  dull  in  parts,  and  so  was 
the  sky.  I  employ  my  time  so  far  as  the  jolting  permits 
in  reading  Dr.  Lightfoot  and  in  making  use  of  my  com- 
panions to  learn  some  Japanese. 

September  I. — I  reached  Sapporo  at  4  P.M.  Sapporo  is 
the  capital  of  Yezo,  a  new  city  made  by  the  Government, 
about  twenty  miles  from  the  Western  Sea,  in  order  to  be 

N  2 


i8o 


BISHOP  EDWARD  EICKERSTETH 


out  of  reach  of  Russian  ironclads.  It  is  flourishing,  and 
has  now  a  population  of  about  10,000  or  12,000  people.  I 
am  staying  with  Professor  Brookes,  of  the  Agricultural 
College. 

September  3. — I  repaid  calls  on  Christians.  I  found 
one  with  Liddon's  '  Bampton  Lectures,'  and  Renan's  '  Life 
of  Christ ' ;  in  another  house  I  found  four  generations, 
great  grandmother  to  baby  ! 

September  4. — I  saw  in  the  museum  a  very  interesting 
collection  of  Ainu  curiosities,  poisoned  arrow-heads,  primi- 
tive weaving  looms,  &c.  Just  outside  the  museum  build- 
ings are  some  holes  in  the  ground,  the  remains  of  the 
homes  of  a  yet  earlier  race  called  Guru-pokguru  ;  of  these 
there  are  yet  some  remnants  in  yet  more  northerly 
islands. 

September  5.  —10  A.M.  Morning  service  and  Holy 
Communion,  fifty-eight  communicants,  the  largest  number 
I  have  seen  in  Japan.  At  3  P.M.  I  gave  an  address 
to  the  college  students  on  '  The  Bible  Revelation  of  the 
Divine  Character.'  It  lasted  over  an  hour,  but  they  were 
very  attentive,  especially  as  they  only  know  English 
imperfectly. 

September  8. —  I  started  at  6.30  from  Mororan  to  cross 
Volcano  Bay  in  a  little  steamer  ;  when  half  way  across 
the  captain  said  it  was  too  rough  to  land  on  the  further 
side,  and  returned,  so  we  had  three  hours'  toss  for  nothing. 
We  returned  ten  miles  to  Horobetsu,  meaning  to  round 
the  head  of  the  bay  on  ponies,  but  were  stopped  by  a 
downpour  of  rain.  This  would  have  been  a  three  days' 
journey. 

September  9. — We  started  at  1.45  A.M.  on  ponies  to 
return  to  Mororan,  a  fine  but  very  dark  night,  and  four 
hours'  ride.  I  was  thrown  but  not  hurt  ;  my  pony  mistook 
Mr.  Batchelor's  big  dog  for  a  bear,  and  bounded  over  a 
ditch  and  into  some  rough  underwood,  when  it  stumbled 
and  got  me  over  its  head.  We  crossed  Volcano  Bay 
safely  and  reached  Hakodate  after  eight  hours  in  a  country 
brake.  I  found  letters  requiring  an  immediate  answer 
and  the  mail  starting  next  morning  early,  so  I  was  up 
until  I  A.M.  writing,  thus  for  the  first  time  in  my  life,  I 
think,  I  travelled  and  worked  for  more  than  twenty-four 
hours  at  a  stretch. 

September  10. — Reading  Pusey  on  Daniel. 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     1 886-1 888  iSl 


From  September  i6  till  October  i  the  Bishop  was  at 
Tokyo  actively  engaged  in  promoting  the  establishment  of 
the  Ladies'  Institute,^  a  high-class  school  for  girls  the 
superintendence  of  which  was  offered,  by  the  eminent 
Japanese  who  founded  it,  to  English  ladies,  the  choice 
of  the  first  Head  Mistress  and  members  of  the  staff  being 
left  to  the  Bishop. 

He  sadly  records  : 

No  reading,  except  St.  Ignatius's  letter  to  St.  Polycarp, 
an  old  to  a  young  Bishop  in  the  second  century,  and  a 
tiny  book  by  Archdeacon  Norris  on  Pastoral  Theology  ; 
some  good  points,  but  his  advice  not  to  read  modern 
commentaries  on  Scripture  delusive. 

On  October  i  came  his  first  tour  on  the  West  coast, 
already  alluded  to,  which  is  recorded  in  the  following 
entries  in  his  '  Journal '  : 

Tour  on  the  West  Coast,    1 886 

October  8. — I  left  by  the  little  coasting  steamer  with 
Mr.  Evington  and  Mr.  Chapman,  the  former  the  Secretary 
and  the  latter  a  young  missionary  of  C.M.S. ;  it  was 
delightfully  smooth,  or  the  little  vessel  crowded  with 
Japanese  would  not  have  been  very  pleasant.  The  morning 
lights  were  very  lovely,  and  by  nine  o'clock  we  were  again 
on  shore  and  had  started  for  Fukuyama,  a  town  a  few  miles 
from  the  coast,  where  we  were  to  stay  a  few  days.  This 
we  reached  about  mid-day,  and  spent  the  afternoon  in 
seeing  the  little  company  of  Christians.  Work  was  only 
commenced  there  last  year,  and  there  are  already  signs  of 
a  bountiful  harvest  if  only  the  men  were  forthcoming  to 
gather  it  in. 

October  lo. — I  confirmed  ten  persons  of  all  ages,  from 
22  to  70,  in  the  back  room  of  the  Japanese  inn,  and  after- 
wards gave  them  their  first  Communion.  In  the  afternoon 
Mr.  Evington  baptised  five  persons. 

October  II  and  12. — A  public  preaching  at  night  in 
a  large  rough  shed  ;  such  places  the  Japanese  are  wonder- 


'  See  chapter  vii.  p.  215. 


l82 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


fully  clever  in  rapidly  adorning  and  fitting  up  ;  the  first 
night  about  120  persons,  the  second  night  about  200 
persons  present.  I  gave  an  address  by  interpretation  on  the 
Christian's  answer  to  these  three  questions  :  '  Whence  is 
man  ?  '  '  What  is  he  ?  '  and  '  Whither  going  ?  ' 

October  12. — I  walked  some  six  miles  to  Era,  a  large 
village  where  there  are  several  Christians,  one — a  farmer 
who  had  seen  better  times — struck  me  particularly  by  the 
honesty  of  his  countenance  and,  so  far  as  expression  is  an 
index  of  heart,  happiness  in  his  new  faith. 

We  first  called  on  the  doctor,  who  is  more  or  less 
favourably  disposed  to  Christianity,  and  then  adjourned  to 
a  house  where  the  screens  which  divide  Japanese  rooms 
had  been  taken  down,  making  one  large  room  of  the  whole 
front  part  of  the  building.  Here,  both  afternoon  and 
evening,  a  large  congregation  collected  ;  in  the  afternoon 
I  spoke  by  interpretation,  and  in  the  evening  Mr.  Evington 
gave  the  principal  address,  the  Japanese  catechist  who  is 
with  us  speaking  both  time.s.  The  heads  of  my  sermon 
addressed  '  to  those  only  who  believe  in  a  good  God,'  were  : 

A.  — All  such  may  hold  it  as  certain  that  God  has 
made  known  a  true  religion  to  man,  and  that  we  men 
are  so  made  as  to  be  able  to  embrace  it  when  made  known 
to  us. 

B.  — Are  you  or  are  you  not  satisfied  with  your  new 
faith  ?  Man's  chief  needs  are  (^a)  The  knowledge  of  God  ; 
(b)  Reconciliation  with  God  ;  (c)  Union  with  God.  How 
far  does  Buddhism  or  Shintoism  satisfy  you  in  these 
respects  ? 

C.  — The  answer  of  Christianity  to  these  needs,  through 
Christ  the  Word,  Christ  the  Atoner,  Christ  Exalted,  giving 
the  Holy  Spirit. 

October  1 1. — I  walked  in  to  Fuchoo,  a  small  town 
with  about  6,000  inhabitants,  six  miles  from  Era.  I  passed 
on  the  way  a  new  Buddhist  college,  beautifully  situated  on 
a  hill  ;  probably  the  spread  of  Christianity  has  stimulated 
the  effort.  In  the  towns,  among  the  upper  classes, 
Buddhism  has  no  hope  of  a  future,  but  the  case  is  different 
in  the  country. 

October  17. —  I  confirmed  one  man  who,  with  several 
others,  had  been  baptised  in  the  morning.  His  baptism, 
owing  to  circumstances,  has  been  delayed  some  months,  so 
Mr.  Evington  was  anxious  that  it  should  not  be  put  off 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     1 886-1 388        1 83 


any  longer.  He  is  to  act  as  leader  of  the  little  band  of 
Christians  here  until  a  regular  catechist  can  be  found. 

5/.  Luke's  Day. — Holy  Communion  ;  Mr.  Evington,  the 
Catechist,  Yama  Shita,  the  man  yesterday  baptised  and 
confirmed,  and  myself,  a  little  company.  I  had  some 
scruples  both  as  to  the  confirmation  of  the  man  and  so 
soon  receiving  him  to  Holy  Communion  ;  but,  under  the 
circumstances,  as  there  cannot  be  another  celebration  in 
this  district  until  March,  it  seemed  right. 

I  visited  the  chief  school  of  the  town,  only  of  the  same 
grade  as  our  parochial  schools,  but  teaches  chemistry,  &c.  : 
some  600  scholars,  and  though  this  is  a  fifth-rate  country 
town,  all  are  taught  after  the  newest  Western  methods. 
What  will  be  the  result  if  Christianity  is  not  able  to  give 
heart  to  this  vast  extension  of  intellectual  learning,  sup- 
ported by  the  vi^hole  force  of  a  centralised  government  ? 
In  the  afternoon  the  Christians  asked  us  to  tea  in  a  tea- 
house near  the  town,  and  in  the  evening  I  entertained 
them  in  the  lower  room  of  an  inn.  Afterwards  I  talked  to 
them  on  bearing  the  cross  in  life  as  well  as  on  their  fore- 
heads. 

October  ig. — We  left  before  daylight;  the  Christians 
had  assembled,  and  accompanied  us  to  the  foot  of  a  beauti- 
ful pass,  through  which  our  way  lay.  I  had  a  jinriksha, 
but  it  broke  down  when  our  journey  was  only  one-third 
accomplished.  We  slept  at  a  little  inn  at  the  back  of  a 
shop  in  a  place  called  Kisha. 

October  20. — We  left  at  6.45,  and  walked  ten  miles 
along  the  banks  of  the  Gogawa  ;  the  road  crossed  the 
stream  several  times,  but  the  bridges  had  been  carried 
away  by  a  flood,  and  we  had  to  make  circuits  round  the 
bend  of  the  stream  ;  we  reached  Mizashi  about  mid-day, 
a  large  town  with  10,000  or  12,000  people,  at  the  point  of 
a  river  where  it  becomes  navigable  ;  there  are  no  Christians 
here  at  present. 

After  a  short  stay  we  took  a  large  country  boat  with 
two  oarsmen,  one  of  whom  worked  a  sort  of  paddle  in  the 
stern,  and  the  other  a  large  heavy  oar  in  the  prow  ;  we  and 
our  luggage  were  in  the  middle  of  the  boat  on  a  little 
platform  to  keep  us  from  the  water,  which  inevitably 
splashes  in  while  descending  rapids. 

On  this  river  there  are  rapids  about  every  mile,  the 
descent  of  some  is  very  interesting  ;  the  boat  is  guided  by 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


the  oarsman  in  front,  who  stands  up  and  steers  by  the 
strokes  of  the  heavj-  blade  of  his  oar,  which  he  cleverly 
balances  on  the  side  of  the  boat,  now  on  this,  now  on  the 
other  side  of  the  prow.  When  the  steeper  rapids  are 
studded  with  rocks  across  the  descent  of  the  water,  this 
method  of  journeying  is  very  exciting  and  interesting,  and 
but  for  the  skill  of  the  steersman,  which  seems  never  to  fail, 
would  be  dangerous.  I  thought  of  our  descent  of  the  St. 
Lawrence  Rapids  in  1870,  but  then  we  had  a  steamer, 
which  would  have  had  no  chance  in  a  shallow  boiling  river 
like  the  Gogawa. 

October  21. — All  day  in  the  boat  running  between  hills 
from  one  to  two  thousand  feet  high,  so  no  distant  views. 
This  province  is  rightly  called  Iwn-mi,  or  rock  view.  In 
the  afternoon  we  stopped  at  a  place  called  Kumamoto, 
hoping  to  see  a  young  man  who,  from  this  out-of-the-way 
part  of  Japan,  had  made  his  way  to  Oxford  ;  he  was,  how- 
ever, away.  It  appears  that  since  his  return  he  has  been 
lecturing  against  Christianity  ;  he  is  the  son  of  a  Buddhi.st 
Priest.  We  slept  at  a  place  called  Watavi,  where  there  is 
an  earnest  catechumen,  who  hopes  to  be  baptised  before  long. 

October  22. — We  reached  Watadzu  at  the  mouth  of  the 
Gogawa  ;  the  last  part  of  the  journey  was  exceedingly 
beautiful,  the  river  descending  rapidly  through  lofty  hills, 
which  block  the  view  at  the  end  of  every  reach.  We  stayed 
in  a  small  inn  belonging  to  one  of  the  Christians,  and  had 
a  ser\-ice  at  night. 

October  23. — After  arranging  for  a  confirmation  here 
ten  da)'s  later,  we  left  at  6.45  A.M.,  and  walked  fourteen 
miles  to  Hamada  ;  part  of  the  journey  is  over  sand  by  the 
sea  coast,  which  with  a  hot  sun  is  tiring.  At  Hamada  are 
some  six  or  seven  Christians. 

October  26. — Confirmation  of  five  candidates,  followed 
by  a  tea,  to  which  I  asked  all  the  Christians.  In  the 
evening  a  public  preaching,  at  which  some  young  pleaders 
from  the  county  court  were  present. 

October  27. — Holy  Communion  at  5  a.m.,  and  all  the 
Christians  present,  about  ten  in  number.  We  rode  fourteen 
miles  to  Matsuye,  and  walked  on  twelve  more  to  Masuda. 
We  got  into  the  dark,  and  were  glad  of  the  help  of  a  lamp 
brought  to  us  by  a  Christian  who  came  to  meet  us.  He 
and  another  man  are  the  only  Christians  as  yet  in  the 
place. 


A  MISSIONAKV  IJISIIOP'S  LIFE.     l886-I<S88  185 


October  28. — I  found  that  there  is  a  hopeful  little 
companyof  catechumens  here,  but  in  this  out-of-the-way  part 
of  Japan  they  are  deterred  by  the  opposition  of  their  official 
superiors.  They  are  employed  in  the  police,  and  their 
chief  happens  to  be  a  strong  Buddhist.  A  widow  woman 
who  teaches  in  a  Government  school  has  been  chief  mover 
here. 

October  2'S-T,l. — I  preached  by  interpretation  every  even- 
ing. On  the  30th  Mr.  Evington's  sermon  was  interrupted 
by  the  '  fire-bell.'  It  was  not  a  serious  affair,  but  in  Japan 
it  is  the  custom  for  all  people  to  troop  to  a  fire  to  offer 
their  services,  and  not  seldom  actually  to  hinder  the  efforts 
of  the  firemen. 

All  Sai?its'  Day. — I  started  on  the  return  journey  to 
Hamada,  and  stopped  at  mid-day  at  a  place  called  Misumi  ; 
I  saw  a  police  inspector  who  is  an  inquirer  after  '  The 
Way  ;  '  his  wife,  who  at  first  was  bitterly  opposed,  now 
seems  more  earnest  from  what  I  could  hear  than  he. 

November  6. — By  jinriksha  some  six  miles  to  a  large 
inland  sea,  and  then  by  boat  16  miles  to  Matsuye  (16  miles, 
8  men,  6  oars,  4  passengers,  3^  hours,  price  t^s.  !)  Matsuye, 
is  the  chief  town  of  the  two  provinces  of  Iwami  and 
Idzumo,  formerly,  as  its  picturesque  old  castle  bears 
witness,  the  capital  of  a  Daimio.  Now  it  is  the  centre  of 
higher  education  in  the  district,  and  has  a  population  of 
about  25,000.  The  first  Christians  were  baptised  here  in 
the  spring  of  this  year,  and  number  about  seven  persons. 

^November  15-19. — I  journeyed  to  Kobe,  by  lake,  river, 
jinriksha,  and  walking.  I  managed  over  twenty  miles  one 
day,  the  longest  walk  I  have  taken  since  my  Indian  illness. 
On  the  17th  we  travelled  for  .seventeen  hours,  and  missed 
our  steamer  in  the  evening  by  ten  minutes,  hearing  it 
whistle  for  departure  just  before  we  reached  the  port.  In 
consequence  I  had  all  the  i8th  in  a  little  inn  on  the  coast  ; 
a  hurricane  blew  all  day,  and  did  a  good  deal  of  damage  to 
Kobe  hou.ses,  and  the  little  mission  church  here. 

To  his  Father 

November  27,  1886. 

I  finished  the  second  volume  of  Lightfoot's  '  Ignatius ' 
on  a  long  river  journey,  and  am  now  reading  Hatch's 
'  Organisation  of  the  Early  Christian  Churches.'  It  is  an 
extreme  book,  and  I  am  not  surprised  he  has  had  since  to 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


put  the  pastoral  epistles  into  the  second  century.  I  don't 
see  anything  to  be  said  for  his  view  of  Irenseus  having 
given  a  new  and  revolutionary  turn  to  Christian  thought — 
in  regard  to  a  dogmatic  faith  and  a  visible  Church 
organisation — at  least,  there  is  nothing  in  his  writings  to 
suggest  he  thought  /limse/f  sdi-ymg  anything  new. 

Christmas  1886  was  spent  at  Nagasaki  and  is  thus 
recorded : 

I  could  not  have  had  pleasanter  hosts  and  companions 
than  Archdeacon  and  Mrs.  Maundrell  and  their  chil- 
dren. On  December  28  the  Christians  asked  me  to  a  tea, 
and  I  spoke  to  them  of  St.  Francis  Xavier,  the  seven- 
teenth-century martyrs,  and  the  beginning  of  modern 
missions.  On  December  30  I  met  a  Roman  Catholic  lady 
who  told  me  of  the  descendants  of  the  Japanese  Christians 
for  the  220  years  of  isolation  retaining  the  use  of  Christian 
names,  which  they  always  called  '  soul  names.' 

Thus  closed  a  year  of  incessant  travelling,  and  on 
January  11,  1887,  he  wrote  to  his  father  : 

From  my  consecration  to  the  end  of  the  year  I  held 
twenty-two  confirmations  I  think,  altogether — mostly  in 
private  houses  and  hotels.  Very,  very  different  indeed  to 
the  beautiful  old  English  churches  ;  but  I  like  to  compare 
this  with  what  must  have  been  the  circumstances  of  the 
early  days. 

In  the  first  chapter  of  this  biography  I  mentioned  the 
tenacious  hold  which  Edward  Bickersteth  always  kept 
upon  family  interests  at  home,  so  that,  although  he  was  so 
far  distant  and  for  so  long  a  time,  yet  he  never  ceased  to 
be  regarded  as  the  eldest  brother,  whose  opinion  and  advice 
were  to  be  looked  for  and  would  be  certainly  forthcoming. 
The  following  extracts  from  letters  to  his  fourth  brother, 
the  Rev.  H.  V.  Bickersteth  (now  Chaplain  to  the  Bishop  of 
Exeter),  then  about  to  take  Holy  Orders,  illustrate  this 
close  touch  with  home  : 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     1 886- 1 888        1 87 


Yokohama  :  June  2,  1886. 

My  dear  Harry, —  I  am  thinking  of  you,  probably 
about  concluding  your  Tripos  Examination.  How  well  I 
remember  my  feelings  about  mine  when  it  was  over !  A 
certain  sense  of  relief  at  its  not  so  much  mattering  whether 
you  forget  a  fact  or  two  now  as  it  did  a  fortnight  since  is 
inevitable  ;  but  the  best  of  the  Theological  Tripos  for  the 
candidate  for  Holy  Orders  is  that  all  his  work  is  in  direct 
preparation  for  the  duties  of  his  life.  .  .  .  Read  books  on 
the  Pastoral  Life  ;  Gregory's  '  De  Cura  Pastorali,'  Walsham 
How's  '  Pastoral  Work,' '  Bridges  on  the  Ministry,'  Liddon's 
'  Priest  in  the  Inner  Life,'  in  addition  to  the  Pastoral 
Epistles  read  devotionally,  and  our  Lord's  discourses  to 
the  disciples,  as  in  St.  Matt.  x.  and  St.  John  xx.  and  xxi. 
I  shall  hope  to  pray  for  you  constantly  these  months  that 
God  the  Holy  Spirit  may  indeed  prepare  you.  ACCIPE 
Spirituni  Sanctum,  the  form  of  words  in  ordination  to 
priesthood  and  episcopate,  imply  preparedness  on  the  part 
of  the  receiver  as  well  as  gift  from  the  Great  Giver,  and 
this  is  no  less  true  of  admission  to  the  diaconate.  ...  A 
longing  for  one  of  you  out  here,  or  for  a  while  with  you  at 
home,  is  sometimes  very  great  ;  but  the  work  is  theMaster's, 
and  I  must  not,  and  I  trust  do  not,  wish  it  otherwise  or 
elsewhere. 

Your  most  affectionate  Brother, 

Edw.  Bickersteth,  Bishop. 

Again  : 

Tokyo:  August  15,  1886. 

I  believe  that  you  will  never  be  other  wise  than  most 
thankful  for  your  course  of  reading  forthe  Theological 
Tripos  ;  it  is  invaluable  for  a  clergyman's  work,  at  least 
it  will  prove  so  if  you  continue  it.  For  after  all  Theology, 
scientia  Dei,  is  an  endless  and  never  fathomable  subject,  at 
least  not  so  long  as  it  is  Theologia  Viatorum.  I  suppose 
it  will  not  be  so,  when  the  travellers  have  reached  tneir 
country. 

Again : 

Watazu  :  November  3,  1886. 

I  fear  this  will  not  reach  you  in  time  to  convey, 
although  you  will  not  need  it,  the  assurance  of  all  my  love 
and  sympathy,  and  prayers  on  your  ordination  day.  To- 


i88 


lUSHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


day  reminds  me  specially  of  the  mother.'  If,  as  I  scarcely 
doubt,  in  the  patria  cava  they  know  the  things  of  earth,  at 
least  of  the  Church  on  earth,  then  it  will  be  to  her  a  great 
joy  that  a  third  son  is  taking  orders.  .  .  .  Before  my 
consecration,  in  the  three  days  I  got  at  Trinity  Square,  I 
spent  my  time  (and  found  it  most  helpful)  in  taking  just 
the  service  and  the  Pastoral  Epistles  with  parts  of  the 
Gospels,  St.  Matt,  x.,  St.  John  x.  and  xxi.,  without  any 
other  book  or  nearly  so.  ...  I  hope  you  have  daily  ser- 
vice at  your  church.  Try  to  keep  up  the  daily  saying  of 
the  Office,  if  not.  I  think  nothing  has  been  of  more  help 
to  me,  especially  reading  the  appointed  lections  of  Holy 
Scripture.  The  prayers,  too,  never  fail,  specially  if  you 
take  them,  as  is  reasonable,  as  a  framework  into  which 
special  petitions  may  be  fitted. 

On  returning  to  Tokyo,  January  15,  1887,  the  Bishop  at 
once  set  about  preparing  for  the  United  Conference  of  the 
Protestant  Episcopal  Church  of  America  and  the  Church 
of  England,  which  was  to  precede  the  First  Synod  of  the 
Japanese  Church,  and  which  assembled  at  Osaka  on 
Februar}-  8.  At  the  opening  service  he  -  preached  from 
the  text  St.  John  xvi.  13. 

He  wrote  to  his  father  the  same  day : 

Osaka  :  February  8,  1887. 

I  have  preached  a  long  hour's  sermon  and  sat  four 
hours  in  conference,  so  you  will  pardon  it  if  this  is 
but  a  line.  Yesterday  I  was  making  arrangements  for 
our  three  conferences ;  ^  and  finishing  my  sermon  for 
to-day.  I  preached  on  '  He  shall  guide  you  into  all  the 
truth.'  .  .  . 

This  afternoon  we  have  had  an  interesting  discussion 
on  union  with  other  Christian  bodies,  and  appointed  a 
committee  to  meet  some  of  their  leading  men.  But,  alas  ! 
these  matters  are  easy  as  long  as  they  are  in  the  '  resolu- 
tion stage.'   Still  I  hope  the  expressed  desire  after  better 

'  His  mother's  birthday. 

'  For  the  argument  of  the  sermon,  see  chapter  ix.  p.  305. 
'  (i)  United  Conference  of  American  and  English  Missionaries,  (2)  First 
Synod  of  the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai,  (3)  C.M.S.  Conference. 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     1 886- 1 888        1 89 


things  tends  to  bring  it  about  a  little  more  quickly  than  if 
it  were  not  felt  and  formulated.^ 

By  February  18  he  was  able  to  write  after  the  three 
important  gatherings  mentioned  in  the  preceding  letter  : 
'  God  has  been  very  good  to  us,  and  guided  us  through.' 

Also: 

The  united  service  on  Sexagesima  Sunday  was  most 
interesting,  solemn,  and  stirring.  Bishop  Williams  could 
remember  the  day  when  there  was  not  a  Christian  in  Japan 
in  connection  with  our  communion,  and  now  the  church 
was  filled  with  adults,  perhaps  220  :  the  children  of  neces- 
sity had  a  separate  service  of  their  own. 

From  February  19  to  March  i  the  Bishop  went  to  Kobe 
to  make  the  acquaintance  of  the  people  there,  and  his  first 
ordination  followed  his  return  to  Osaka  early  in  March. 

In  March,  one  year  after  leaving  England,  he  wrote  to 
his  father : 

Osaka:  INIarch  4,  1887. 

My  dearest  Father, — It  is  half-past  nine  at  night,  and 
I  have  to-day  looked  over  two  sets  of  examination  papers, 
given  two  long  addresses  to  my  three  candidates,'^  and  one 
address  to  the  missionaries  of  our  and  the  American 
Church  here — so  I  am  afraid  again  this  will  be  only  a 
scrap  of  a  letter.  Truly  I  have  had  a  rush  of  work  the 
last  two  months. 

I  think  I  told  you  the  result  of  our  conferences.  We 
accepted  the  Articles  &c.,  so  that  no  present  difficulty 
might  arise  as  to  the  Church  of  England  basis,  and 
delayed  the  consideration  of  the  more  important  Canons 
for  two  years.  The  C.M.S.  ought  now  to  be  satisfied. 
Their  Conference  of  Missionaries  have  passed  a  vote  of 
warm  satisfaction  unanimously,  and  the  S.P.G.  men  also 
are  pleased  ;  so  I  hope  the  ship,  which  was  a  bit  bested 

'  See  chapter  ix.  p.  313. 

'  (i)  Terasawa  San,  now  priest-in-charge  of  Iloly  Trinity  Church,  Osaka, 
(2)  Terata  San,  now  (1898)  sent  to  Formosa  by  the  Japanese  Missionary 
Society  as  a  mission  priest  ;  (3)  Nakanishi  San  (the  '  old  samurai '),  now 
<Ieacon-in-charge  of  St.  Peter's  Church,  Osaka. 


190 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


by  the  waves,  will  now  reach  port.  Already  the  whole 
thing  has  given  a  wonderful  push  to  all  work.  The 
Japanese  are  delighted  at  having  done  the  thing  with  us, 
and  no  longer  feel  only  dictated  to — though,  indeed,  there 
was  more  feeling  perhaps  than  fact  about  it.  .  .  . 

You  will  be  thinking  of  me  at  my  first  ordination.  One 
year  to-day  since  I  left  England,  a  year  and  two  days  since 
I  left  Exeter,  and  a  month  longer  since  my  consecration.  I 
have  already  got  to  love  my  work,  though  truly  there  is  an 
'  onus  episcopatus,'  one  anxiety,  even  with  a  small  body  of 
clergy,  not  going  without  another  coming  ;  a  continual 
giving  out,  I  scarcely  ever  hear  a  sermon  ;  and  the  con- 
stant responsibility  of  more  or  less  unaided  decisions. 
Only  may  the  Good  Lord  pardon  and  accept  the  work  of 
this  almost  over-busy,  over-anxious,  yet  unfailingly  inter- 
estinCT  vear. 

o  ^ 

To  think  that  in  another  year  I  may  be  thinking  of 
starting  to  see  you  all,  'just  a  glance,'  again  ! 

Your  most  loving  Son, 

Edward  Bickersteth,  Bishop. 

And  again  : 

Kobe  :  March  1887. 

From  Saturday,  February  19,  to  Tuesday,  March  i,  I 
was  here  in  Kobe,  making  the  acquaintance  of  some  of 
the  people. 

From  March  I  to  March  8  I  was  at  Osaka  for  the 
examination  and  ordination.  Another  time  I  hope  to  be 
able  to  direct  these  more  completely  ;  this  time,  owing  to 
the  conferences,  I  could  only  manage  three  addresses  on 
the  Friday  and  Saturday  on  '  The  Call  to  the  Ministry,' 
'  The  Grace  of  Ministry,'  '  The  Pastor's  Private  Life.' 
Evington  translated  them  for  me. 

The  ordination  itself  was,  I  hope,  solemnly  and  im- 
pressively conducted.  The  church  was  crowded.  The 
sermon  was  preached  by  Evington,  whom,  with  Mr.  Shaw 
of  Tokyo,  I  have  made  my  examining  chaplain.  Of  the 
three  candidates  one  was  over  sixty — an  old  samurai,  who 
in  former  days  can  remember  being  told  off  to  see  that  no 
foreigner  landed  on  the  coast  from  a  distressed  man-of- 
war  that  had  put  in  at  Osaka,  and  has  lived  to  be 
ordained  '  deacon  '  by  an  English  Bishop.  All  three  I  was 
satisfied  with. 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     1 886-1 888  191 


On  Tuesday  7th  I  came  here,  and  expect  to  stay  till 
Monday  fortnight  about — but  with  two  breaks,  one  to  a 
little  S.P.G.  outstation  to  the  west  along  the  coast,  and 
the  other  to  Tokushima,  a  large  town  in  Shikoku,  where 
the  C.M.S.  has  work. 

I  am  giving  Wednesday  evening  lectures  on  '  The 
Means  of  Grace  '  to  a  tiny  band,  and  Sunday  afternoon 
sermons  on  '  The  Prodigal  Son  ' — that  endless  subject. 

While  at  Osaka  the  distressing  news  reached  him  of 
the  death  of  Mrs.  Maundrell,  wife  of  the  Archdeacon,  and 
he  at  once  started  for  Nagasaki  (350  miles  distant)  to 
comfort  his  friend,  then  as  always  ready  to  pour  out  his 
sympathy  for  any  of  his  clergy  in  trouble.  He  arrived 
too  late  for  the  funeral,  but  was  able  to  conduct  a  me- 
morial service  with  a  celebration  of  Holy  Communion. 

He  worked  his  way  back  to  Tokyo  for  Easter,  visiting 
en  route  Tokushima,  a  place  on  the  east  coast  of  Shikoku, 
a  large  island  to  the  south-west  of  Osaka. 

March  22.  — I  reached  Tokushima  at  10  A.M.  The 
Church  here  is  small  and  not  very  flourishing ;  the 
Christians  who  are  resident  in  the  place  have  not  been 
earnest,  and  there  have  been  several  defections.  However, 
with  a  new  and  energetic  catechist  things  are  beginning  to 
look  brighter.  In  the  afternoon  I  attended  a  ladies'  sewing 
class,  which  he  and  his  wife  had  started  ;  to  this  some  of 
quite  the  upper  classes  in  the  city,  the  wives  of  the  officials, 
came.  In  one  of  them,  Mrs.  Uyeda,  we  took  a  special 
interest,  as  she  is  a  candidate  for  baptism  ;  her  husband  is 
head  of  the  revenue  department.  In  the  evening  I  gave 
an  address  to  some  of  the  more  educated  men,  whom  the 
catechist  had  got  together  in  Japanese  fashion  for  tea  and 
talk.  I  spoke  of  the  changed  view  of  Christianity  in 
Japan,  and  of  Christian  doctrine  being  the  answer  to  man's 
gropings  and  questionings. 

March  24. — A  confirmation  of  eleven  persons,  and  one 
baptism.  In  the  afternoon  I  asked  all  to  a  feast  at  a 
picturesque  tea  house,  on  a  hill  near  the  town.  One  of  the 
Christians  is  a  photographer,  so  he  took  our  whole  group. 
Several  of  the  Christians  belonged  to  a  village  twenty 


192 


I5ISH0P  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


miles  off,  which  wc  had  not  time  to  visit,  so  they  had 
come  to  Tokushima  to  visit  us. 

March  25. — Seven  A.M.,  Holy  Communion  ;  I  said 
farewell  to  the  Christians,  telling  them  to  make  me  come 
again,  quickly  by  having  a  large  number  of  candidates  for 
confirmation,  whom  I  must  come  to  confirm.  I  went  in  a 
jinriksha  to  the  coast,  about  ten  miles,  and  took  a  sailing 
boat  to  pass  over  to  Awaji,  an  island  N.E.  of  Shikoku. 
On  the  way  I  went  to  see  the  celebrated  whirlpool,  and 
got  a  magnificent  view  from  a  rocky  island  close  to  the 
narrow  channel  where  the  waters  are  much  agitated.  I 
saw  two  junks  come  through,  one  of  them  was  completely 
twisted  round  twice  by  the  force  of  the  waters,  and  then 
hurried  on  her  way  at  a  tremendous  pace  ;  there  does  not 
seem  to  be  any  particular  danger,  the  force  of  the  water 
carrying  them  clear  of  the  rocks.  The  day  was  delightfully 
fine,  and  we  sailed  into  Fukura  with  a  fair  wind. 

Good  Friday,  Tokyo. — A  quiet  day,  with  a  good  con- 
gregation in  the  morning.  I  preached  on  the  Seven 
Words,  the  first  three  in  the  morning  and  the  last  four  at 
night. 

Easter  Eve. — Mr.  Shaw  carried  me  off  forcibly  to  see 
the  cherr>'  blossom  in  some  Tokyo  Gardens  ;  it  was  very 
beautiful. 

Easter  Day. — I  preached  on  '  Behold  I  am  alive  for 
evermore.'  A  crowded  congregation  ;  90  communicants, 
Japanese  and  English,  at  the  celebration  of  Holy  Com- 
munion in  our  little  church. 

The  summer  was  occupied  in  various  missionary 
journeys,  and  after  a  short  holiday  at  the  hill  station  of 
Karuizawa  (August  1-13),  the  Bishop  was  free  to  make  a 
long  planned  visit  to  Korea. 

Before  leaving  Tokyo  on  September  14  he  attended 
the  first  Local  Council  of  the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai. 

The  Council  (he  wrote),  according  to  our  new  orga- 
nisation, contains  representatives  of  all  missions  of  the 
Anglican  communion  in  a  particular  district,  as  the  bi- 
ennial Synod  gathers  representatives  from  all  Japan. 
We  did  some  practical  work,  besides  a  good  deal  of 
talking. 


A  MISSIONARY  IJISIIOP'S  LIFE.      l886-I<S88  I93 

The  visit  which  the  Bishop  was  now  about  to  pay  to 
Korea  was  the  result  of  much  previous  correspondence 
both  with  the  Archbishop  of  Canterbury  and  Bishop  Scott  of 
North  China,  the  latter  of  whom  had  agreed  to  meet  him  at 
Seoul,  the  Korean  capital.  At  that  time  l^urope  had  heard 
very  little  of  Korea  and  cared  less  for  this  peninsula,  which 
was  destined  eight  years  later  to  become  the  theatre  of  the 
war  fought  so  vigorously  by  Japan  and  so  feebly  by  China. 
The  Japanese  Government  were,  however,  well  aware, 
then  as  later,  that  Korean  misgovcrnment  was  a  standing 
menace  to  the  settled  peace  of  the  Far  East,  inasmuch  as 
its  glaring  injustice  was  an  invitation  to  Russia  to  step 
in,  and  even  offered  her  a  plausible  excuse  for  putting  her 
neighbour's  house  to  rights.  Needless  to  say,  the  two 
English  Bishops  were  only  remotely  interested  in  the 
political  opportunities  of  the  moment  ;  their  hearts  were 
set  on  arranging  for  the  seeds  of  the  Gospel  to  be  planted 
among  the  Koreans,  then  so  little  known  and  now  so 
frequently  visited  by  travellers,  and  so  ably  described  by 
the  pen  of  Mrs.  J.  F.  Bishop  and  others.  As  a  necessary 
preliminary,  the  Bishops  were  minded  to  see  the  land  for 
themselves,  as  it  was  fairly  accessible  both  from  North  China 
and  Japan,  and  the  result  of  their  personal  observations  and 
of  their  joint  report  to  Lambeth  was  the  Archbishop  of 
Canterbury's  mission  sent  out  in  1889  in  connection  with 
the  Society  for  the  Propagation  of  the  Gospel,  under 
the  devoted  leadership  of  Bishop  Corfc.  Bishop  Bicker- 
steth  left  Tokyo  on  September  14,  only  to  be  driven 
back  by  a  violent  storm,  '  which  the  captain,  though 
the  boldest  of  sailors,  was  unable  to  face.'  However, 
the  next  day  the  wind  moderated,  and  a  start  was 
made.  On  board  the  Bishop  saw  much  of  Professor 
Shida  Ca  Japanese  pupil  of  Lord  Kelvin's),  '  a  particularly 
attractive  man  ; '  and  he  left  Kobe  on  September  22  for 

O 


194 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETIi 


Nagasaki,  '  the  inland  sea  as  calm  as  an  Italian  lake  :  I 
have  never  seen  it  more  beautiful.'  On  September  27  he 
left  Nagasaki  for  Korea,  touching  at  the  Goto  Islands  and 
at  Tsushima.  The  rest  of  his  experiences  may  be  best 
given  in  his  own  words. 

September  29. — I  set  foot  on  the  soil  of  Korea  for  the 
first  time  this  morning.  With  the  help  of  a  Chinese 
interpreter  who  speaks  admirable  English,  I  had  no  diffi- 
culty in  finding  the  house  of  one  of  the  Chinese  catcchists 
sent  here  by  Archdeacon  Wolf  from  Fuchovv.  You  may 
remember  my  meeting  them  last  year  at  Nagasaki.  They 
were  then  on  their  way  to  this  place.  The  interpreter  was 
unable  to  stay,  but  I  carried  on  a  conversation  for  some 
time  with  them  through  their  wives,  who  were  trained  at  a 
boarding  school  at  Singapore.  They  are  getting  some 
knowledge  of  Korean,  and  are  welcomed  at  the  houses  of 
the  people  in  the  neighbouring  villages.  Their  immediate 
work  plainly  must  be  to  learn  the  language,  and  with  this 
object  they  should  certainly,  as  soon  as  possible,  get  a 
house  among  the  Koreans.  At  present  they  are  in  a 
Japanese  settlement.  It  is  a  difficult  isolated  position 
which  they  occupy,  and  they  need  the  help  of  others'  inter- 
cessions. At  times  they  feel  dispirited  and  lonely.  They 
are  the  first  missionaries  of  Korea,  and  by  God's  grace  may 
be  the  pioneers  of  a  great  work.  I  left  them  after  prayer, 
which  I  asked  one  of  them  to  offer  in  Chinese,  and  the 
blessing,  which  I  gave,  in  English. 

The  Theological  School  at  Tokyo  begins  work  to-day. 

September  30. — We  left  Fusan  at  8  A.M. ;  steam 
along  the  Korean  coast  all  day,  and  pass  Port  Hamilton. 

October  i. — Still  making  our  way  along  the  coast,  a 
curious  sight  on  deck  of  Japanese  and  Koreans  unable  to 
understand  one  another's  speech,  but  communicating  their 
thoughts  about  us  to  one  another  by  means  of  Chinese 
signs,  which  they  traced  with  their  fingers  on  the  palms  of 
their  hands. 

The  new  Jubilee  School  at  Yokohama  opens  to-day. 
1  trust  it  may  be  a  centre  of  widespread  influence  for 
good.  The  education  of  European  and  Eurasian  boys  is 
often  sadly  neglected  in  the  East. 

October  2. — I  was  greatly  grieved  at  not  reaching  the 


A  MISSIONARY  lUSIIOP's  LIFE.     1 886- 1 888  I95 


port  of  Chimulpo  until  Sunday  morning.  I  had  looked 
forward  to  a  quiet  day  with  Bishop  Scott.  Sunday 
travelling  I  abhor,  but  there  arc  times  when  the  irregulari- 
ties of  steamers  render  it  necessary.  I  was  carried  up  to 
Seoul,  some  twenty-eight  miles  by  eight  men,  in  a  chair 
which  the  Consul-General,  my  host,  had  kindly  sent  down 
for  me.  The  bare  sandy  hills,  with  often  fantastic  and 
beautiful  outlines,  remind  me  somewhat  of  Ajmir  and  the 
north  of  Rajputana. 

The  Consul-General  gave  me  a  warm  welcome,  and 
the  pleasure  was  great  of  meeting  Bishop  Scott,  the  first 
Bishop  of  our  Church  whom  I  had  met  since  I  parted  with 
Bishop  Copleston  in  Ceylon.  We  were  soon  engaged  in 
exchanging  notes  and  experiences,  and  discussing  plans  for 
work  in  this  country. 

The  Consul's  house  is  full,  as  two  English  officers  from 
Hongkong  have  travelled  across  the  country  here  from 
the  east  coast,  and  are  his  guests  as  well  as  ourselves. 
The  house,  which  is  now  the  British  Consulate-General's, 
belonged  formerly  to  a  Korean  Mandarin  ;  it  stands  well  in 
a  compound  of  its  own,  just  inside  the  city  walls,  and  a 
little  above  the  general  level  of  the  city.  The  gain  of  this 
they  only  can  know  who  have  walked  about  the  streets  of 
Seoul.  I  will  not  attempt  description.  I  thought  when  I 
saw  it  that  the  Chinese  town  at  Shanghai  was  the  filthiest 
place  human  beings  live  in  on  earth  ;  but  Seoul  is  a  grade 
lower.  The  climate  is  superb,  probably  one  of  the  finest 
in  the  world.  This  may  explain  the  comparative 
immunity  of  the  people  from  epidemics  which  everything 
else  would  conduce  to  bring  about. 

Most  of  the  houses  are  merely  hovels  of  mud,  but  the 
mandarins'  arc  of  wood,  not  unlike  the  better  sort  of  houses 
in  Japan.  Some  of  those  which  outwardly  look  most 
dismal  are,  I  am  told,  comfortable  and  even  grand  in  their 
way  inside. 

The  costume  of  the  men  is  very  picturesque,  and  in 
this  respect  they  are  great  dandies,  being  far  more  precise 
and  particular  than  their  Japanese  neighbours.  It  is  a 
mystery  how  such  spotless  garments  find  their  way  into 
and  out  of  such  beggarly  houses.  We  had  hoped  for  four 
days  together  in  the  capital,  but  a  telegram,  as  it  turned 
out  unnecessarily,  summoned  us  back  to  Chimulpo  after  I 
had  been  there  for  forty-eight  hours  only.    The  Bishop  of 

o  z 


196 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


North  China  had,  however,  arrived  three  days  before  me,  so 
that  I  think  between  us  we  obtained  all  necessary  informa- 
tion. We  are  embodying  it  in  a  report  for  the  Archbishop. 
It  will  be  an  ample  repayment  for  the  expenditure  of  time 
and  trouble,  if  the  generosity  of  English  Churchmen  should 
make  it  possible  for  a  new  missionary  diocese  to  be 
established,  with  Seoul,  at  some  future  day,  for  its  cathedral 
city. 

Two  points  I  may  notice  :  (i)  The  Koreans  as  a  nation 
have  no  religion.  They  were  Buddhists,  and  Buddhists' 
monasteries  are  still  to  be  found  on  the  hills.  But  Con- 
fucianism supplanted  Buddhism,  and  now  has  itself  but 
little  hold  even  on  the  upper  classes.  (2)  The  story  of 
the  French  mission,  though  there  are  some  things  about 
it  to  cause  regret,  is  evidence  that  the  people  thirst  for 
what  they  have  not  got,  and  are  ready  to  listen  to  teachers 
who  command  their  respect,  and,  like  the  Japanese,  to  give 
their  lives  for  the  faith. 

We  were  fortunate  in  seeing  one  most  remarkable 
spectacle.  Once  in  four  years  an  examination  is  held  for 
a  sort  of  literary  degree.  It  was  going  on  last  Monday.  I 
was  told  that  ten  thousand  students  presented  themselves. 
The  Consul-General  kindly  accompanied  us  to  see  what 
we  might,  and  with  his  help  we  w  ere  able  to  get  into  the 
great  yard  where  it  was  being  conducted.  A  large  number 
of  huge  umbrellas  had  been  stuck  into  the  ground,  under 
which  there  were  little  groups  of  students,  provided  each 
with  an  immense  sheet  of  parchment  paper,  a  rhyming 
dictionary,  and  thin  strips  of  paper,  on  which  had  been 
written  a  subject  for  a  poem.  With  the  help  of  the 
dictionary,  the  duty  of  each  candidate  was  to  produce  a 
poem  of  his  own,  to  be  submitted  to  the  Examiner.  When 
we  arrived  some  had  finished  their  task  ;  others  were  still 
in  the  throes  of  composition.  The  Examiner,  a  mandarin 
of  high  rank,  in  court  dress,  was  seated  in  a  sort  of  hall, 
fenced  off  from  the  candidates  by  a  low  paling.  As  each 
completed  his  task  he  rolled  up  the  parchment,  and  pro- 
ceeded to  fling  it  over  the  paling  on  to  the  ground  inside. 
Men  inside  the  paling  were  busy  engaged  in  picking  up 
the  scrolls,  unrolling  them,  rolling  up  a  number  of  them 
together  into  larger  bundles,  and  stacking  these  beside 
the  examiner.  As  the  scrolls  came  flying  over  the  paling 
more  thickly,  it  was  all  they  could  do  to  gather  them 


A  .MISSIONARY  i;iSH(M''S  LIFK.     l886-l88(S  197 

together.  Meanwhile  no  quiet  was  maintained,  such  as 
might  seem  suitable  for  votaries  of  the  Muses  ;  on  the 
contrary,  a  crowd  of  interested  spectators,  vendors  of 
sweetmeats,  tea,  and  other  refreshments,  &c.,  &c.,  surged 
up  and  down  between  the  umbrellas.  All  thought,  one 
would  have  considered,  must  be  at  an  end  ;  and  the  con- 
trast was  laughable  as  the  remembrance  suggested  itself 
of  the  Senate  House  at  Cambridge  and  St.  Mary's  chimes  ! 
One  person,  at  least,  was  an  fait  at  his  work.  The  aged 
examiner  seemed  to  appraise  the  papers,  which  were  pre- 
sented to  him  one  by  one,  at  the  rate  of  about  twenty  a 
minute  ! 

When  we  reached  Chimulpo  again  late  on  Tuesday  we 
found  that  our  steamer  was  not  to  start  until  Thursday 
morning.  This  port  is  an  increasing  place,  and  mission- 
aries at  Seoul  would  do  well  to  have  work  there  also,  if 
possible. 

October  6. — Bishop  Scott  is  returning  with  me  to 
Nagasaki.  The  sea  is  again  as  calm  as  a  lake,  and  con- 
ference on  all  manner  and  kinds  of  subjects  is  delightful  as 
we  pace  the  deck. 

In  the  autumn  of  that  year  the  Rev.  L.  B.  Cholmondeley 
arrived  in  Tokyo  as  the  first  member  of  St.  Andrews  Uni- 
versity Mission,  and  took  up  his  residence  with  the  Bishop 
at  Shiba,  a  district  of  Tokyo  ;  and  in  December  the  Bishop 
had  the  pleasure  of  welcoming  to  Tokyo  the  first  members  of 
St.  Hilda's  Community  Mission,  who  reached  Yokohama 
early  on  Sunday,  December  4,  and  after  being  met  there 
by  the  Bishop  and  Miss  Hoar  (of  the  Women's  Mission 
Association,  S.P.G.)  arrived  at  Tokyo  in  time  for  the  mid- 
day service  and  celebration  of  Holy  Communion.  On  the 
8th  the  Bishop  admitted  them  as  members  of  the  Com- 
munity Mission.' 

The  Bishop  at  once  took  steps  to  build  a  permanent 
house  for  the  mission,  as  well  as  for  the  St.  Andrews 
University  Mission  for  men.  For  this  a  sum  of  1,200/.  was 
required.    He  subscribed  300/.  himself  to  meet  a  grant  of 

'  See  chapter  vii.  p.  233 


198 


15ISII0P  EDWARD  I5ICKERSTETH 


300/.  from  the  Society  for  Promoting  Christian  Knowledge, 
and  the  balance  was  raised  by  the  Guild  of  St.  Paul  in 
England.' 

The  time  was  now  come  for  him  to  return  to  England 
to  take  part  in  the  third  gathering  of  the  Bishops  of  the 
Anglican  Communion.  The  Wednesday  in  Holy  Week 
1888  was  spent  as  a  Quiet  Day  for  all  the  workers 
in  Tokyo,  and  on  Maunday  Thursday  the  Bishop 
admitted  John  Toshimichi  Imai  to  the  diaconate,  and 
on  the  same  day  (March  29)  he  issued  his  first  Pastoral 
Letter  '  to  the  Clergy  and  Layworkers '  on  the  eve 
of  his  departure.  After  referring  to  the  hope  which 
he  entertained  of  collecting  sufficient  funds  in  England 
to  enable  him  to  extend  St.  Andrew's  and  St.  Hilda's 
Missions,  and  of  urging  during  the  summer,  in  conjunction 
with  Bishop  Scott  of  North  China,  the  claims  of  Korea  '  as 
a  new  and  interesting  field  of  evangelistic  labour,'  he  made 
mention  of  the  Tokyo  Ladies'  Institute,  'the  superintendence 
and  instruction  of  which  had  been  placed  by  its  Japanese 
promoters  in  the  hands  of  members  of  the  Church  of 
England,  although  it  lay  outside  the  course  of  the 
operations  of  missionary  societies.'  He  expressed  regret 
that  the  re-issue  of  the  '  Shinko  no  Hata,'  the  literary 
organ  of  the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai,  had  been  prevented  by 
other  work,  but  believed  that  much  good  would  result 
from  the  circulation  among  isolated  Christians  of  brief 
letters  containing  advice  and  sympathy,  together  with 
information  of  what  was  passing  in  the  mission  with  wliich 
they  had  become  connected. 

In  connection  with  the  generous  present  by  the  S.P.C.K. 
of  a  theological  library,  placed  in  St.  Andrew's  House, 
Shiba,  Tokyo  (where  the  Bishop  was  now  living  with  his 
Chaplain,  the  Rev.  L.  B.  Cholmondeley),  he  expressed  '  his 

'  See  chapter  vii.  p.  241. 


A  MISSIONARY  BISIIOP'S  LII-K.     1886-1888  UJ(J 


sense  of  the  importance  of  the  prayerful,  systematic,  h'fc- 
long  pursuit  of  Biblical  and  theological  study.  Growth  in 
knowledge  was  the  one  essential  of  efficiency  in  all  ministry. 
In  their  own  field  of  labour  more  especially,  unlike  some 
others,  the  progress  of  general  culture  had  entirely  outrun 
the  obedience  of  faith,  and  at  the  same  time  ecclesiasti- 
cal questions  of  the  gravest  importance  awaited  considera- 
tion. It  followed  that  nowhere  was  there  more  needed 
than  among  themselves  that  accuracy  of  teaching  which 
comes  from  fulness  of  knowledge,  together  with  that 
sobriety  of  judgment  which  commonly  follows  on  sus- 
tained and  comprehensive  study.' 

In  conclusion,  the  Bishop  expressed  very  grateful 
thanks  for  the  kindness  he  had  received  during  his  first 
two  years  in  Japan,  especially  mentioning  one  (Arch- 
deacon Shaw)  whose  house  had  been  his  home  during  the 
greater  part  of  that  time. 

The  Bishop  sailed  on  April  3,  and  reached  England  on 
May  17,  twelve  days  later  than  was  expected,  owing  to 
being  detained  in  quarantine  at  San  Francisco,  at  which 
vexatious  delay  his  eager  spirit  greatly  chafed. 

During  the  five  months  which  the  Bishop  spent  in 
England,  his  forecast  of  incessant  travelling  and  speaking 
was  fulfilled  to  the  letter,  but  he  had  the  satisfaction  in 
many  parts  of  the  country  of  making  personal  acquaintance 
of  members  of  the  Guild  of  St.  Paul,  which  was  henceforth 
established  on  a  firm  footing.^  The  roll  of  membership 
rapidly  rose  to  1,000,  and  the  Bishop  accepted  the  offer  of 
two  clergy  (the  Rev.  F.  Armine  King  and  the  Rev.  F.  E. 
Freese)  for  St.  Andrew's  Mission,  where  the  Rev.  L.  B. 
Cholmondclcy   temporarily   helped  by  the  Rev.  C.  G. 

'  The  annual  subscripUuns  rose  frum  119/.  Ui  255/. ,  and  the  income  for 
the  year,  including  donations  and  offeftories,  rose  from  643/.  in  1887,  to 
1,214/.  in  1888. 


200 


niSHOP  KDWARI)  lilCKERSTETlI 


Gardner  was  already  at  work,  and  two  more  ladies 
volunteered  for  St.  Hilda's  Mission  and  were  accepted. 

The  chief  speech  delivered  by  the  Bi.shop  while  in 
England  was  made  in  St.  James's  Hall  at  the  annual 
meeting  of  the  Society  for  the  Propagation  of  the  Gospel 
(July  lo),  which  was  timed  that  }'car  to  be  held  during  the 
session  of  the  Lambeth  Conference. 

In  that  speech  Bishop  Bickersteth  began  by  drawing  a 
parallel  between  the  diffusion  of  the  Greek  language  and 
literature  in  the  nearer  East  through  the  conquests  of 
Alexander  the  Great,  and  the  diffusion  of  Anglo-Saxon 
modes  of  writing  and  thinking  in  the  further  East,  as  the 
two  most  important  events  in  early  and  modern  history. 
The  supremacy  of  England  in  India;  and  her  possession  of 
a  continuous  line  of  important  harbours  along  the  southern 
Asiatic  coast  stretching  from  Aden  to  Hongkong,  together 
with  the  re-opening  of  Japan  to  Western  intercourse,  and 
the  formation  of  colonies  of  merchants,  chiefly  English  and 
American,  in  China  and  Japan,  had  been  the  most  powerful 
causes  contributing  to  that  result.  Japan  was  the  latest  of 
the  greater  Oriental  countries  to  come  under  the  influence 
of  this  return  movement  of  the  West  towards  the  East,  but 
it  had  been  probably  affected  by  it  more  completely  and 
more  unalterably  than  any  other  nation.  One  of  the 
greatest  of  Japanese  statesmen  had  said  to  him  last  year  : 
'  Other  Eastern  nations  have  cared  chiefly  to  adopt  from 
you  your  guns  and  means  of  defence,  we  have  honestly 
tried  also  to  understand  your  thought  ;  '  and  further,  those 
who  knew  Japan  best  admitted  that  during  the  thirty-five 
years  which  had  elapsed  since  the  re-opening  of  the 
country  she  had  made  no  backward  step.  Not  only 
had  much  that  was  pernicious  and  embarrassing  been  swept 
away  .  .  .,  not  only  had  all  the  latest  inventions  of  natural, 
political,  and  economic  science  .  .  .  been  widely  adopted. 


A  MISSIONARY  BISIIOP'S  LIKE.     1 886-1 888  20I 


but  also  a  system  of  graded  education  based  on  the  village 
school  and  culminating  in  the  Tokyo  University  had  made  it 
certain  that  the  movement  which  vitally  affected  the  upper 
classes  would  permeate  the  whole  people. 

In  answering  the  question  what  was  the  attitude  of  the 
people  towards  religion,  the  Bishop  repudiated  the  recent 
suggestion  of  an  English  writer  that  the  Japanese  were 
without  the  religious  sentiment,  though  he  admitted  that 
among  the  educated  classes  Shintoism,  the  ancient  faith 
— brought  originally  from  Manchuria — Buddhism,  received, 
though  in  an  altered  form,  from  India — and  Confu- 
cianism, imported  from  China,  had  ceased  to  command 
credence,  e.xercise  authority,  and  guide  life.  In  answer- 
ing the  further  inquiry,  what  was  the  attitude  of  the 
people  towards  Christianity,  he  thought  it  might  best  be 
described  as  one  of  respectfiil  Iiesitation.  Most  certainly 
Christianity  was  respected,  both  as  the  faith  of  the 
missionaries  who  resided  in  Japan  and  as  the  religion  of 
Western  nations,  and  also  a  widespread  feeling  existed 
that  it  might  prove  the  cement  and  bond  of  the  new 
national  life.  But  this  favourable  opinion  was  traversed 
by  the  doubts  generated  through  the  wide  circulation  of 
anti-Christian  literature  with  its  usual  assumption  that 
Christianity  was  the  foe  of  science,  unnecessary  as  a  basis 
of  morals,  and  already  negatived  by  the  wise  men  of  the 
West. 

As  regards  the  masses  of  the  people,  the  Bishop  had 
heard  of  no  instance  where  a  missionary  conversant  with 
the  language  and  possessed  of  sympathy  and  tact  had 
resided  among  them  and  not  gathered  considerable 
numbers  into  the  fold  of  Christ.  It  was  not  beyond 
the  bounds  of  sober  expectation  that  Japan  might  be 
counted  among  the  Christian  nations  within  the  lifetime  of 
those  now  living. 


202 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


In  conclusion,  the  Bishop  urged  that  no  work  could  be 
grander  than  that  before  them,  and  that  no  communion 
but  their  own  was  so  fully  fitted  and  furnished  for  its 
accomplishment.  By  its  past  history,  by  its  present  posi- 
tion, by  its  characteristic  endowments,  it  only  could  be  '  the 
clncrch  of  the  reconciliation'  '  not  only  to  the  separated 
fragments  of  Western  Christendom,  but  also  to  countries 
as  far  asunder  as  England  and  America  from  India,  China, 
and  Japan. 

In  the  Lambeth  Conference  itself  the  Bishop  felt  an 
absorbing  interest,  the  opening  sermon  of  the  Primate  of 
All  England  (Archbishop  Benson),  delivered  in  the  Abbey 
on  July  3,  greatly  delighted  him,  not  only  as  a  weighty 
utterance  on  the  position  of  the  Anglican  communion,  but 
also  as  a  luminous  vindication  of  her  inherited  call  to  be  a 
missionary  and  evangelistic  agency  throughout  the  world. 
I  attended  him  as  chaplain  at  that  service,  and  can  never 
forget  the  radiant  face  with  which  he  broke  away  from  the 
procession  after  it  had  passed  down  the  nave,  and  said  : 
'  Was  it  not  a  true  encyclical  ?  It  will  strengthen  missions 
all  over  the  world.' 

The  Bishop  of  Exeter  took  a  house  in  Wimpole  Street 
during  the  whole  month  of  the  Lambeth  Conference,  and 
here  the  son  was  his  father's  guest,  and  greatly  enjoyed 
meeting  the  many  Bishops  from  all  parts  of  the  world  who 
were  entertained  there.  Of  his  own  part  in  the  conference 
little  can  be  said,  as  it  is  well  known  that  no  report  of 
the  discussions  is  allowed  to  reach  the  public  beyond  the 
published  encyclical.  But  my  brother  served  on  the 
Committee  for  Authoritative  Standards  of  Doctrine  and 
Worship,  and  also  took  an  active  part  in  some  discussions, 

'  This  phrase  had  been  used  by  Bishop  Whipple  of  Minnesota  in  a  sermon 
preached  by  him  before  the  members  of  the  Lambeth  Conference  on  July  3, 
1888,  in  Lambeth  Palace  Chapel.  See  Laiiiheth  Conferences,  published  by 
S.P.C.K.,  p.  246. 


A  MISSIONARY  BISIIOP'S  LIFE.     1 886- 1 888  203 


specially  on  the  questions  of  polygamy  and  of  the  observ- 
ance of  Sunday. 

Some  idea  of  the  imisression  made  by  the  young 
missionary  Bishop  may  be  gathered  from  the  following 
letter  written  to  him  by  Dr.  Searle  over  a  year  later  : 

Pcmhr.  Coll.  Lodge,  Cambridge  : 
December  30,  1889.  - 

My  dear  Bishop, — It  is  a  curious  connection  of  thought 
that  impels  me  to  write  to  you  on  the  occasion  of  the 
death  of  the  Bishop  of  Durham.  It  is,  however,  easy  to 
trace.  That  death  will  be  felt  to  the  remotest  parts  of 
the  world,  and  at  once  I  got  thinking  how  yoic  would  feel 
it,  for  I  know  your  admiration  for  him — how,  too,  he  had 
.sympathised  with  you  in  your  first  missionary  enterprise 
at  Delhi,  and  how,  too,  last  year  he  had  opened  his  palace 
and  his  heart  to  all  the  missionary  Bishops.  He  had  great 
regard  for  you,  and  if  I  may  tell  you  now  that  he  is  gone  he 
looked  to  see  great  things  done  by  you  in  Japan.  Speaking 
of  the  Pan-Anglican  meeting,  he  more  than  once  said  that 
your  part  in  it  had  been  so  useful — that  you  had  impressed 
him  by  your  largeness  of  heart  and  comprehensive  spirit  : 
'  he  has  grown  so '  was,  I  recollect,  the  exact  expression. 
I  venture  to  tell  this  to  you,  my  dear  Bishop,  as  I  know  at 
times  you  must  need  encouragement  and  feel  inadequate 
to  your  burden. 

,  .  .  Always  affectionately  yours, 
C.  E.  Searle. 

Bishop  Bickersteth's  own  imj^ressions  of  the  conference 
are  recorded  in  the  following  letter  to  his  old  Diocesan, 
Bishop  French  : 

Lynton,  North  Devon  :  August  7,  1888. 

My  dear  Bishop, — I  am  getting  a  little  rest  here  in  a 
house  which  my  father  has  taken,  and  am  thankful  for  it 
after  the  fatigues  of  ten  weeks'  incessant  speaking  and 
preaching. 

...  I  hope  you  will  think  the  conference  has  done 
good  work.  I  was  in  the  minority  on  one  or  two  resolu- 
tions ...  I  did  not  agree  with  the  first  of  the  resolutions 


204  BISHOP  EDWARD  HICKERSTETH 


on  Sunday.  Bcni;cl  and  Lightfoot  agree  in  thinking  that 
St.  Paul's  words  in  the  Colossians  arc  inconsistent  with 
the  perpetual  obligation  in  the  Jewish  sense  of  the  law  of 
one  day  in  seven,  and  this  is  what  the  resolution  seems  to 
affirm  .  .  .  Still  on  the  whole  I  do  trust  that  God's  work 
will  have  been  set  forward  a  step,  and  a  large  step,  both  at 
home  and  abroad  ;  and  the  tone  which  characterised  all 
the  meetings  from  first  to  last  of  brotherly  love  and 
mutual  confidence  was  beyond  anything  that  I  had 
anticipated,  and  suggestive  of  highest  and  fullest  hope. 

ICver  your  affectionate  old  chaplain  and  younger 
brother  in  the  ministry  of  Christ, 

Edward  Bickersteth,  Bishop. 

During  the  month  of  August,  the  Bishop  of  Exeter  was 
able  to  gather  all  his  children  and  grandchildren  at  Lyn- 
ton  in  Devon.  The  bachelor  '  Uncle  Bishop  '  was  always 
greatly  in  demand  on  all  expeditions,  and  readily  responded 
to  all  the  pastimes  of  the  children.  One  reminiscence 
may  be  allowed.  On  August  6,  during  a  birthday  picnic 
in  the  Valley  of  Rocks,  a  game  of  cricket  was  started,  in 
which  the  two  Bishops  joined,  and  were  supported  by  the 
late  Bishop  Smythies  of  Central  Africa,  then  the  guest  of 
the  Rector  of  Lynton.  On  asking  the  age  of  the  hero  of 
the  day  and  being  told  he  was  just  four,  Bishop  Smythies 
said  :  '  And  I,  my  child,  am  forty-four  this  very  day,'  and 
gave  him  his  blessing.  It  was  during  this  month  that  the 
Rev.  Armine  King  visited  Bishop  Bickersteth  at  Lynton 
after  he  had  finally  decided  to  join  him  in  Japan,  a 
decision  which  was  the  beginning  of  a  close  and  abiding 
friendship,  and  greatly  strengthened  the  Bishop's  work  in 
the  capital  of  Japan. 

On  October  25  the  Bishop  started  for  Japan  via  Canada, 
accompanied  by  the  Rev.  Armine  King,  the  two  St. 
Hilda's  ladies,  and  a  lady  worker  sent  out  by  the  Ladies' 
Association  S.P.G.,  having  as  fellow-travellers  the  late 
Bishop  of  New  Westminster  and  Mrs.  Sillitoe.    A  member 


A  >[ISSIONARY  LilSIIOP's  LIFE.     1 886- 1 888  205 


of  the  Guild  of  St.  Paul  wrote  :  '  I  am  glacl  our  Bishop  is 
starting  on  Agincourt  Day.  As  far  as  numbers  go  he  is 
fighting  against  far  greater  odds  than  the  EngHsh  were  in 
France.'  But,  although  few,  the  returning  missionaries 
might  have  taken  up  the  words,  '  We  few,  we  happy  few, 
we  band  of  brothers.' ' 

The  wrench  of  parting,  however,  was  not  easy,  though 
it  gave  promise  of  the  fruitfulness  which  waits  upon  all 
self-sacrifice,  as  will  be  seen  from  the  following  letter : 

To  his  Father 

Train  near  .Shrewsbury  :  October  24,  18SS. 

My  dearest  Father, — One  line  to  reach  you  to-morrow 
morning.  It  was  very  hard  parting  to-day,  and  yet  as  your 
love  was  the  measure  of  it  I  do  not  know  that  I  could 
wish  it  less  hard  ;  and  I  believe  that  here  or  in  Japan  God 
will  let  me  meet  you  again.  Still,  except  for  my  work,  I 
should,  I  am  sure,  never  bring  myself  to  leave  our  loving 
circle,  or  rather  circle  of  home  circles,  in  England.  The 
work  and  its  end  does  just  make  it  possible.  Thank  you, 
dearest  Father,  and  God  give  you  His  richest  blessings  for 
all  the  love  which  you  with  Madre-  have  showered  on  me 
these  months.  They  have  gone  by  like  a  day.  It  is  difficult 
to  believe  that  what  I  so  looked  forward  to  is  over  ;  but  it 
is  a  very  bright  and  helpful  memory.  I  do  trust  that  I 
may  work  in  Japan  as  one  should  who  has  your  example 
and  prayers  to  support  him. 

Your  most  affectionate  Son, 

Edward  Bickerstetii,  Bishop. 


'  Henry  V.  Act  IV.  .Scene  3. 


His  step-mother. 


206 


]3ISH0r  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


CHAPTER  VII 

MISSIONARY  METHODS,  WITH    SPECIAL    REFERENCE  TO 
COMMUNITY  MISSIONS 

'  We  need  not  go  further  than  the  Acts  and  Epistles,  with  such  help  perhaps 
as  Professor  Ramsay's  great  work  gives  in  understanding  Apostolic  methods, 
to  see  how  well  it  is  to  have  an  ideal  and  to  work  with  a  plan  from  the  begin- 
ning.'— Letter  of  Bishop  Edward  Bickersteth  to  Guild  of  St.  Paul, 
December  28,  1893. 

In  this  chapter  a  fuller  account  will  be  found  of  the  two 
Community  missions  of  St.  Andrew's  and  St.  Hilda's  at 
Tokyo.  The  only  reason  for  singling  out  these  two  mis- 
sions for  special  and  detailed  mention  is  that  they  were 
each  of  them  founded  by  Bishop  Bickersteth  and  each 
bear  strongly  the  impress  of  their  founder.  But  he  himself 
would  have  been  the  first  to  deprecate  any  mention  of 
them  to  the  virtual  exclusion  of  other  methods  of  missionary 
work,  such  as  had  been  maintained  long  before  his  arrival 
in  Japan  by  the  devoted  missionaries,  men  and  women, 
sent  out  from  England  through  the  agency  of  the  S.P.G. 
or  C.M.S.  and  other  societies,  as  well  as  by  the  Sister 
Church  of  America. 

The  first  missionary  of  the  S.F.G.,  the  Rev.  A.  C.  Shaw 
(now  Archdeacon),  who  is  so  often  mentioned  in  these 
pages,  arrived  in  Tokyo  on  September  25,  1873,  the 
first  preaching  station  of  the  mission  was  opened  by  the 
Rev.  H.  B.  Wright  in  the  earlier  months  of  1874 — that  is, 
twelve  or  thirteen  years  before  Bishop  Bickersteth  began 


MISSIONARY 


METHODS  AND  COMMUNITY  MISSIONS 


207 


his  special  missions.  The  first  convert,  Andrew  Shimada, 
won  to  God  through  the  labours  of  these  men,  was 
baptised  by  Mr.  Wright  on  St.  Andrew's  Day  in  1874, 
and  is  now  working  as  a  Deacon. 

In  1875  Miss  Hoar,  of  the  Ladies'  Association  S.P.G., 
began  '  her  faithful  and  successful '  work  '  in  Tokyo.  She 
was  joined  in  1886  by  her  cousin  Miss  Annie  Hoar,  and 
the  teaching  and  training  of  Japanese  women,  as  well  as 
district  visiting,  were  zealously  carried  on  by  them,  until 
owing  to  a  breakdown  in  health  they  were  obliged  to 
leave  Japan  in  1898. 

The  first  missionary  of  the  C.M.S.-  in  Japan  was  the 
Rev.  George  Ensor,  vvho  had  been  assigned  to  China,  but 
owing  to  lack  of  funds  he  was  sent  to  Japan,  a  special" 
donation  of  4,000/.  having  been  made  to  the  society  in 
1867  to  enable  them  to  start  a  Japanese  Mission.  He 
landed  on  January  23,  1869,  just  after  the  conclusion  of 
the  Revolution  for  which  the  year  1868  will  ever  be 
memorable  in  the  annals  of  the  Japanese.  It  was  in  No- 
vember 1868  that  the  young  Mikado  had  moved  his  Court 
from  Kioto  to  Yedo,  and  renamed  that  city  Tokyo. 
On  January  5,  1869,  he  had  first  received  a  Foreign 
Minister  in  public  audience  ;  but  evangelisation  was  still 
carried  on  exposed  to  constant  persecution,  and  it  was 
not  till  the  end  of  1872  that  the  notorious  notice-boards 
prohibiting  Christianity  were  withdrawn.  Mr.  Ensor's 
health  failed  and  he  had  to  return  to  England  in  that 
very  year ;  but  he  had  been  already  joined  by  the 
Rev.  H.  Burnside,  and  ever  since  the  C.M.S.  has  gone  on 
strengthening  her  mission  agencies,  until  now  not  only  in 
Kiushiu  and  in  the  Hokkaido  (where  there  are  no  other 
English  missionaries  except  those  sent  out  by  this  society), 

'  Sec  S.P.G.  Digest,  p.  721. 

-  .See  History  of  the  C.M.S.  by  Eugene  Stock,  vol.  ii.  cb.  l.w. 


2o8 


BISHOP  EDWARD  P.ICKERSTETH 


but  also  on  the  main  island  of  Hondo,  they  are  far  the 
strongest  numerically  of  the  missionaries  which  represent 
the  Church  of  England. 

By  such  missionaries,  both  men  and  women,  evange- 
hsation  and  education  in  all  its  variety  of  methods  has 
been  energetically  carried  on,  and  Bishop  Bickersteth 
threw  himself  into  their  work  with  strong  and  discrimi- 
nating sympathy.  At  the  Birmingham  Church  Congress 
in  1893  he  thus  alluded  to  the  manifoldness  of  the  methods 
by  which  the  Gospel  must  be  presented  and  preached  : 

The  subject  I  understand  to  be  assigned  to  me  is 
'  \'arieties  of  Method  in  the  Evangelisation  of  the  Heathen.' 
The  title  is  rightly  chosen.  In  some  real  sense  there  are 
no  varieties  in  this  work.  St.  Paul's  words,  '  We  preach 
Christ  Jesus  as  the  Lord  '  sum  up  and  identify  everything 
worth  calling  missionary  work  which  has  yet  been  done  or 
ever  will  be.  In  missions,  oneness  and  sameness  are 
essential  ;  variety  is  only  accidental. 

Such  varieties,  then,  as  are  to  be  spoken  about  are  due 
not  to  differences  in  the  contents  of  the  Gospel,  but  to  the 
fact  that  in  the  effort  to  bring  the  message  of  the  faith  to 
bear  on  the  hearts  and  consciences  of  men,  all  modern 
missions  alike  make  use  of  a  large  machinery  of  apparatus 
and  means — educational,  literar\',  institutional,  medical — 
which  does  vary  indefinitely  in  accordance  with  the  resources 
at  the  disposal  of  the  particular  mission,  and  the  character 
of  that  one  of  the  world's  all  but  countless  peoples  among 
whom  it  is  at  work. 

I  do  not  say,  or  think,  that  we  are  wrong  in  developing 
and  using  this  great  machinery.  But  I  may  be  allowed  to 
notice  in  passing  that  the  number  of  missionaries,  men  and 
v/omen,  who  put  all  use  of  means  and  machinery  on  one 
side  as  not  intended  for  them,  and  go  forth  in  the  expecta- 
tion of  winning  souls  simply  by  their  words  and  lives — by 
words  of  which  the  love  of  God  in  Christ  is  the  inspiration 
and  by  lives  lived  in  closest  association  with  the  lives  of 
the  people  among  whom  they  dwell — is  too  few.  Some 
such  there  have  been  in  modern  times — Gordon,  for  instance, 
the  faqir  missionary  of  the  Punjab — and  their  influence  has 
been  incalculable  and  very  salutary. 


MISSIONARY  MKTIIOD.S  AND  COMMUNITY  MISSIONS  209 


]^ut  the  mass  of  us  work,  and  always  will  work,  through 
machinery.  Hence  arise  variety,  and  complexity,  and 
manifoldness.  I  will  employ  the  few  moments  at  my 
disposal  in  mentioning  some  of  the  forms  which  our  work 
takes  in  Japan. 

I.  First  of  all,  then,  we  use  public  preacliing,  a  form  of 
work  which  cannot  be  neglected  without  detriment  not 
only  to  the  aggressive  power  of  a  mission,  but  to  its  inner 
life.  In  Japan,  however,  this  does  not  as  a  rule  take  place  in 
the  open  air,  as  in  India — police  regulations  and  the  people's 
ideas  on  the  matter  stand  in  the  way  of  this — but  in  rooms 
erected  or  hired  for  the  purpose.  This  form  of  work  is  not 
without  results.  At  least  it  makes  known  among  a  large 
number  of  persons,  chiefly  in  that  lower  rank  of  society  in 
which  the  mass  of  any  people  must  always  be  included, 
that  there  is  such  a  thing  as  Christianity.  Sometimes  it 
has  led  directly  to  conversions.  Recently  in  one  or  two 
large  towns  in  Japan,  a  plan  has  been  tried  which  has  been 
called,  by  a  name  borrowed  from  you,  a  special  mission. 
With  us  the  speciality  consists  in  concentrating  for  several 
weeks  a  number  of  evangelists  who  are  commonly  working 
separately,  in  one  great  city,  in  widely  advertising  for  some 
time  beforehand  the  meetings  and  addresses,  and  in  asking 
the  prayers  of  all  the  Church  missions  in  the  empire  for 
that  city  during  the  time  the  mission  is  going  on.  Results 
have  been  appreciable.  The  Buddhists,  notwithstanding  the 
traditional  teaching  of  their  religion  which  prescribes  uni- 
versal toleration,  have  paid  the  '  mission  '  the  compliment  of 
noisy  and  violent  opposition. 

II.  Work  among  the  educated  classes.  The  percentage 
of  the  educated  class  in  Japan  is  large.  It  was  so  formerly, 
when  Chinese  methods  prevailed.  It  is  so  now,  when 
European  methods  have  largely  taken  their  place.  The 
present  educational  system  of  Japan  is  widely  extended. 
It  tends  to  become  more  thorough  and  less  exotic  than  it 
was  when  first  introduced  a  few  years  ago.  In  range  it 
covers  the  whole  field  of  knowledge  from  the  subjects 
taught  in  village  schools  to  the  curriculum  of  an  English 
Universit)-,  theolo.gy  only  excepted.  Theology  cannot  be 
taught,  because  the  educated  Japanese  mind  is  as  yet  in  a 
state  of  indecision  and  uncertainty  in  reference  to  the 
whole  subject  of  religion.  The  number  of  educated  men 
who  believe  in  the  old  faiths  is  few,  and  the  class  tends  to 

P 


2IO 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKEUSTKTII 


become  extinct.  It  seems  especially  the  duty  of  English 
and  Americans,  whose  literature  and  science  have  been  the 
main  agencies  in  bringing  about  the  changes  out  of  which 
has  emerged  the  modern  Japan,  to  make  sure  that  the 
classes  who  have  proved  so  receptive  of  their  teaching  in 
other  ways,  should  at  least  have  the  opportunity  of  learn- 
ing what  their  faith  is. 

(a)  The  Community  mission  affords  one  way  in  which 
this  may  be  done.  .  .  . 

(d)  Again,  educated  nations  in  a  special  degree  require 
an  educated  clergy.  The  missionary  societies  are,  I  believe, 
conscious  of  this  now,  as  they  were  not  in  former  years 
before  Bishop  French  induced  a  new  view  on  the  subject 
by  founding  his  college  at  Lahore.  In  Japan  now  we  have 
three  Divinity  Schools  supported  by  the  Anglican  Com- 
munion ;  one  taught  by  the  missionaries  of  the  Church 
Missionary  Society,  one  by  the  clergy  of  a  University 
Mission  which  has  been  established  in  Tokyo,  and  one  by 
the  able  and  excellent  clergy  of  the  American  Church 
Mission. 

The  last  eight  years  has  seen  the  ordination  of  twenty- 
two  Japanese,  nearly  all  of  them  alnmni  of  these  schools. 
Our  hopes  for  the  future  are  largely  bound  up  with  these 
men  and  with  those  who  will  be  added  to  their  number. 
At  the  best,  no  European  will  ever  understand  the  language 
or  mind  of  the  Oriental  people  as  the  sons  of  the  soil  do. 
The  present  danger  is  that  the  rising  generation,  even  of 
young  Christian  men  in  Japan,  should  be  so  attracted  to 
the  new  careers  and  prospects  which  are  open  to  them 
under  the  modern  circumstances  of  their  country  as  to 
neglect  or  even  despise  the  ministry  of  the  Church.  There, 
as  in  England,  nothing  but  a  sense  of  the  value  of  the  souls 
of  men,  and  of  the  privilege  for  Christ's  sake  of  minister- 
ing under  His  commission  to  those  for  whom  He  died,  can 
meet  this  risk. 

if)  Again,  in  addition  to  schools  founded  and  main- 
tained by  English  societies  the  educational  system  in  Japan 
to  which  I  have  referred  is  glad  from  time  to  time  to  avail 
itself  of  the  services  of  English  masters,  and  occasionally  of 
English  mistresses.  The  vast  educational  departments  of 
India  and  Japan  are  among  the  phenomena  of  our  day. 
They  are  effecting  a  silent  revolution  in  the  East  of  which 
the  Church  must  needs  take  account.  Any  plan  which 
directs  the  forces  which  they  control  in  right  channels  is 


MISSIONARY  METHOQS  AND  COMMUNITY  MISSIONS  211 


worthy  of  consideration.  Among  such  plans  I  unhesi- 
tatingly count  the  acceptance  by  sincere  and  consistent 
Christian  men  and  women  of  educational  posts  under  the 
Governments  of  these  two  lands.  Let  them  count  the  cost 
beforehand — in  Japan,  probable  loneliness,  the  uncertainty 
of  tenure,  and  the  limitation  (which  must  be  loyally  adhered 
to)  which  obliges  them  not  to  teach  doctrinal  Christianity 
during  school  hours.  Still  if,  notwithstanding  all  these 
disadvantages,  they  are  prepared  to  throw  themselves 
enthusiastically  on  the  one  hand  into  the  work  of  secular 
education,  and  on  the  other  into  the  opportunities,  indirect 
though  they  be,  of  making  known  the  truth  which  these 
posts  afford,  then  I  believe  such  educationalists  are  to  be 
counted  among  real  and  effective  allies  of  the  regular 
missionary  staff.  .  .  .  Some  English  Churchmen,  I  gather, 
are  suspicious  of  this  mode  of  work,  as  if  in  it  the  claims 
of  the  truth  were  subordinated  to  those  of  secular  science. 
This  fear  is  groundless,  provided  the  teacher  is  possessed 
by  a  sincere  and  earnest  desire  for  the  .salvation  of  those 
under  his  charge. 

III.  Work  among  ^uoinen.  In  Japan,  as  in  India, 
Christian  work  among  women  must  largely  be  undertaken 
by  Christian  women  if  it  is  to  be  done  at  all.  They  have  a 
field  open  to  them  than  which  they  could  not  desire  a  fairer. 
An  English  Churchwoman,  whose  qualifications  are  bright 
and  gentle  manners,  the  knowledge  which  an  average 
education  supplies,  and  that  sympathy  for  Orientals  which 
will  lead  her  to  see  their  good  points,  and  to  wish  to 
Christianise  not  to  Europeanise  them — to  mention  some 
necessary  points  and  to  omit  deeper  qualifications  still 
— may  in  Japan  adopt  almost  any  form  of  work  which 
she  prefers  with  good  hope  of  success.  She  may  teach  a 
school,  she  may  nurse  the  sick,  she  may  visit  the  poor,  she 
may  take  charge  of  orphans,  she  may  train  Japanese 
women-workers.  If  she  has  considerable  means  at  her 
disposal,  and  that  indescribable  quality  which  makes  social 
intercourse  a  spiritual  power,  she  may  make  her  drawing- 
room  a  centre  to  which  Japanese  ladies  will  gladly  resort 
in  order  that  they  may  come  under  the  influence  of  her 
words  and  spirit,  and  catch  the  reflection  of  her  faith, 
though  it  may  be  they  know  not  where  its  fires  are  fed. 
I  have  known  this  done  in  one  almost  ideal  life '  which 

'  Mrs.  Kirkes.    See  chapter  viii.  p.  29S. 


V  2 


212 


BISHOP  EDWARD 


BICKERSTETH 


closed  in  Tokyo  less  than  six  months  since,  and  invites 
followers  to-day  from  among  the  refined  and  wealthy  and 
devoted  Churchwomen  of  England. 

IV.  Lastly,  and  perhaps  of  highest  importance,  there 
is  the  mission  agency  which  the  Church  itself  constitutes — 
I  mean  tJic  native,  indigenous  CJiurch — so  soon  as  it  has 
sufficient  members  to  admit  of  organisation.  Apostolic 
precedent  and  modern  experience  may  alike  warn  us  that 
there  is  serious  loss  in  placing  any  long  interval  between 
the  first  groups  of  baptisms  and  the  rudimentary  organisa- 
tion of  the  wider  Christian  society.  It  is  well  to  pass  as 
quickly  as  possible  through  the  congregational  stage. 
And  further,  in  Japan  above  all  lands,  if  we  can  only 
advance  towards  it  slowly,  we  are  bound  from  the  beginning 
to  have  an  eye  to  the  day,  which  may  or  may  not  be 
distant,  when  the  Church  shall  be  wholly  independent  of 
ourselves. 

The  few  thousand  Christians  who  are  attached  to  our 
missions  are  members  of  a  nation  numbering  forty  million 
souls,  a  nation  where  patriotism  is  almost  too  universal 
to  be  counted  a  virtue,  and  whose  ideal  it  is  to  take  its 
place  as  an  equal  among  the  great  civilised  nations  of  the 
world.  Such  a  nation  must  of  course  have  a  Church  of  its 
own.  Even  now,  though  an  Indian  Christian  if  a  Church- 
man not  seldom  counts  himself  a  member  of  the  Church  of 
England — of  the  Church,  that  is,  of  the  conquering  race — to 
a  Japanese  the  idea  of  belonging  to  the  Church  of  a  foreign 
land  would  seem  too  ridiculous  to  be  worth  growing 
indignant  at.  We  have  tried  to  meet  this  feeling,  surely  a 
right  and  worthy  feeling  on  the  whole,  to  the  utmost 
extent  that  prudence,  not  to  say  the  slow  movement  of 
the  complicated  machinery  by  which  our  Anglican  com- 
munion does  its  work,  have  permitted  us.  We  have  to-day 
a  genuine  native  Church  in  Japan,  with  its  own  constitution 
and  Canons  (drawn  up  in  1887,  not  1603)  and  Synod  and 
vestries  and  missionary  society,  &c.,  all,  it  is  true,  in  their 
initial  stage  of  working,  still  all  mainly  carried  out  by 
Japanese  themselves,  and  on  I  believe  such  primitive  and 
catholic  lines  as  will  only  need  expansion  and  develop- 
ment, not  change,  till  the  day  of  independence  is  reached. 
One  thing  at  least  has  resulted  from  this  venture  :  the 
distinction    between   converts   of    United    States  and 


MISSIONARY  METHODS  AND  COMMUNITY  MISSIONS  213 


Canadian  and  English  Church  Missions  has  fallen  entirely 
into  the  background.  All  alike  belong,  and  lay  stress 
only  on  belonging,  to  this  little  Church  of  Japan. 

It  was  always  a  delight  to  the  Bishop  to  stay  with  his 
missionaries  whenever  he  could  make  time,  and  one  of  the 
incidental  advantages  of  the  increased  Episcopate  in  Japan, 
to  which  he  much  looked  forward,  was  further  leisure  for  a 
more  minute  acquaintance  with  the  details  of  their  work. 

The  recollections  of  Canon  Tristram,  of  Durham,  whose 
daughter,  Miss  Louisa  Tristram,  has  been  for  long  one  of 
the  foremost  lady  workers  in  the  C.M.S.  Mission  at  Osaka, 
will  be  read  with  interest  : 

The  College,  Durham  :  February  13,  1899. 

Dear  Mr.  Bickersteth, — I  have  rarely  enjoyed  a  visit 
more  than  the  few  days  I  spent  with  the  Bishop  at  Tokyo 
in  1891.  My  missionary  daughter,  who  was  my  companion, 
was  hospitably  entertained  at  the  beautifully  situated  St. 
Hilda's  Mission  House.  .  .  .  We  had  many  delightful  talks 
of  an  evening  in  the  Bishop's  own  study,  and  he  deeply 
impressed  me  as  having  inherited  all  his  dear  father's 
saintliness.  There  were  a  number  of  Japanese  Divinity 
students  to  whom  I  gave  a  lecture  on  the  evidences  one 
evening.  Shortly  after  our  visit  I  had  the  pleasure  of 
acting  as  chaplain  at  a  confirmation  at  Nagoya  in  a 
mission  room,  simply  an  ordinary  Japanese  room  fitted 
up.  I  was  always  struck  with  the  considerate  way  in 
which  your  brother  conducted  his  services  in  accordance 
with  the  custom  of  the  missionary  of  the  place,  never 
adopting  the  eastward  position  or  doing  anything  which 
could  suggest  difference.  He  also  quite  adapted  himself  to 
the  habits  of  the  country  ;  so  at  Nagoya,  being  in  a  house,  he 
had  taken  off  his  shoes  and  confirmed  in  his  stocking  feet. 
I  afterwards  went  round  the  island  of  Kiushiu,  and  as  we 
were  returning  again  came  across  the  Bishop  at  Fukuoka 
in  the  north  of  the  island,  where  I  had  the  privilege  of 
taking  part  in  the  consecration  of  a  beautiful  little  church 
built  by  the  C.M.S.  native  converts,  and  assisting  after- 
wards in  the  Holy  Communion.  It  was  indeed  a  day  of 
rare  interest.    We  travelled  back  to  Osaka  together,  where 


214 


BISHOr  EDWARD  I'-ICKERSTETH 


again  I  was  one  of  the  clergy  at  the  consecration  of 
another  native  church.  The  Bishop  seemed  very  ill  and 
worn,  in  fact  he  had  been  working  with  a  ceaseless  energy 
that  would  have  tried  an  iron  constitution.  I  never  saw 
him  again  till  he  brought  his  bride  to  dine  with  us  in 
Durham  in  1893.  I  wish  I  could  write  anything  worthy 
of  being  quoted  in  your  memoir,  but  after  seven  years  my 
recollections  are  not  so  distinct  as  they  might  be.  I  can 
only  say  that  he  was  one  whom  to  know  was  to  love  and 
reverence,  though  we  might  not  see  alike  on  many  points. 

Believe  me  ever  sincerely  yours, 
H.  B.  Tristram. 

An  important  educational  venture  in  which  the  Bishop 
took  much  interest  may  here  be  mentioned.  In  the  autumn 
of  1886  Professor  Toyama,  of  Tokyo,  wrote  a  paper  on  the 
higher  education  of  Japanese  ladies,  with  the  result  that  it 
was  proposed  to  found  an  institute  in  the  capital  to  pro- 
mote the  culture  of  women.  The  building,  for  which  the 
Japanese  authorities  promised  to  be  responsible,  was  to 
contain  reading  and  lecture  rooms,  class  rooms  for  about 
one  hundred  day  pupils,  and  a  hostel  for  boarders,  the 
whole  being  under  English  superintendence  and  manage- 
ment. It  was  this  latter  condition  which  brought  this  wholly 
Japanese  scheme  before  the  Bishop.  Through  some 
Scotch  professors  at  the  university  he  was  brought  into 
contact  with  Count  Ito  (then  Minister  of  Education,  sub- 
sequently Prime  Minister  of  Japan)  and  others,  and  elected 
a  member  of  the  committee  of  management.  He  was 
then  asked  to  seek  for  teachers  in  England,  and  consented 
to  do  so  after  laying  down  this  one  stipulation  that  '  the 
teachers  should  be  free  to  exercise  their  personal  influence 
with  their  pupils  as  they  might  desire,  no  restriction  being 
put  upon  them  in  any  way,  and  it  being  understood  that 
as  religious  people  they  would  exercise  religious  influence.' 
He  was  himself  surprised  at  the  readiness  with  which  his 
conditions  were  accepted,  and   wrote  home  that  '  men 


MISSIONARY  METHODS  AND  COMMUNITY  MISSIONS  21$ 

themselves  agnostic  and  as  keen  as  razors  in  intellect  not 
seldom  admitted  that  religion  is  a  great  clement  even  in 
culture.  Here,  if  the  scheme  advances,  is  an  offer  to  put 
under  distinct  Christian  influence  and  instruction  the 
young  wives  and  daughters  of  the  highest  class  in  the 
capital,  who  share  continually  in  the  life  which  the  enter- 
prise of  their  husbands  and  fathers  has  so  wonderfully 
developed.  I  do  not  know  that  any  nobler  opportunity  of 
widespread  influence  and  usefulness  of  the  highest  kind 
has  ever  been  offered  to  the  Christian  women  in  England.' 

The  Bishop's  appeal,  in  which  he  was  joined  by  the 
Rev.  A.  C.  (now  x^rchdeacon)  Shaw,  met  with  a  warm 
response  in  England,  and  within  fifteen  months  of  the 
receipt  of  this  letter  six  ladies  of  exceptionally  high 
culture  and  training  gave  themselves  for  the  work  of  the 
Ladies'  Institute,  and  under  the  leadership  of  Miss  MacRae 
(Head  Mistress  of  the  Church  of  England  High  School 
for  Girls,  Baker  Street)  set  sail  for  their  distant  field  of 
work  on  January  26,  1888.  One  and  all  had  given  up  a 
successful  career  in  England  for  the  sake  of  Japan.  The 
Bishop's  letters  bear  frequent  testimony  to  the  interest 
he  took  in  their  work,  but  its  subsequent  development 
disappointed  him.  In  his  judgment  the  ladies  did  not 
display  sufficient  patience  in  first  securing  influence 
over  their  pupils,  which  influence  in  Japan,  as  in  the 
East  generally,  is  proverbially  strong,  and  then  wait  for 
opportunities  to  turn  it  into  directly  religious  channels. 
In  any  case  within  a  few  years  the  Japanese  authorities 
took  fright  at  the  idea  of  direct  proselytism,  so  far  altering 
the  conditions  as  to  materially  restrain  the  liberty  of 
Christian  influence  exercised  by  the  English  successors  of 
these  ladies. 

It  will  thus  be  seen  that  in  launching  his  scheme  for 
Community  missions  Bishop  Bickersteth  only  designed  to 


2l6 


BISIIOr  EDWARD  BICKERSTKTH 


add,  if  it  were  possible,  one  more  method  hitherto  untried, 
in  order  to  supplement,  not  in  any  way  to  supplant,  work 
already  in  operation.  If,  therefore,  the  rest  of  this  chapter 
is  devoted  to  the  new  work,  it  will  not  be  supposed  that 
the  other  and  older  work  is  ignored. 

It  is  proposed  to  establish,  as  soon  as  men  and  vienns 
are  available,  an  associated  mission  in  Japan  after  the 
manner  of  the  University  missions  in  India.  The  mission 
will  be  carried  on  in  immediate  connection  with  the 
Bishop,  and  if  possible  in  the  same  city  which  shall  be 
chosen  for  his  residence.  In  this  case  the  missionaries 
will  reside  in  his  house.  The  special  object  of  the  mission 
will  be  to  reach  the  educated  classes,  while  at  the  same 
time  it  is  believed  that  it  will  form  a  useful  centre  for 
general  mission  work.  It  is  hoped  that  in  time  educated 
Japanese  Christians  will  be  attached  to  the  mission  staff. 

On  the  last  day  of  1885,  a  few  weeks  before  his  conse- 
cration, this  appeal  had  been  made  by  the  Bishop- elect. 
The  Bishops  of  Durham  (Dr.  Lightfoot),  Exeter  (Dr. 
Bickersteth),  and  Salisbury  (Dr.  Wordsworth)  at  once 
headed  a  subscription  list  in  order  to  help  to  provide  the 
means,  and  in  a  few  weeks  nearly  300/.  was  collected.  The 
committee  of  the  S.P.G.  also  unanimously  recommended 
that  a  grant  be  assigned  at  the  next  annual  distribution  of 
funds  in  aid  of  the  initial  expenses  of  the  mission.  As  to 
men  it  will  be  remembered  that  three  months  later  the 
Bishop,  when  on  his  first  voyage  to  Japan,  had  written  to 
Dr.  Searle  (March  31,  1886)  'to  claim  the  .sympathy  and 
assistance  of  a  body  of  University  men '  in  the  work  of 
evangelising  Japan  and  building  up  a  native  Church. 

The  first  member  of  the  University  Mission  thus  pro- 
jected was  the  Rev.  L.  B.  Cholmondeley,  formerly  assistant 
curate  of  Kenwyn,  Truro.  He  sailed  for  Japan  at  the  end 
of  March  1887,  within  a  year  of  the  Bishop's  appeal  to 
Cambridge.    ]\Ir.  Cholmondeley,  however,  belonged  not  to 


MISSIONARY  METHODS  AND  COMMUNITY  MISSIONS  21/ 


Cambridge,  but  to  the  sister  University  of  Oxford,  and  it  is 
curious  to  note  that  all  the  first  members  of  this  mission 
without  exception  were  graduates  of  Oxford.  Mr.  Chol- 
mondeley  was  followed  in  the  autumn  of  1888  by  the 
Rev.  F.  Armine  King  (of  Keble  College,  Oxford,  formerly 
curate  of  Tottenham),  and  in  the  spring  of  1889  by  the 
Rev.  F.  E.  Freese  (Trinity  College,  Oxford,  formerly  curate 
of  St.  George's,  Stonehouse).  The  Rev.  C.  G.  Gardner 
(B.A.  Oxford),  who  had  gone  out  under  S.P.G.,  joined  St. 
Andrew's  Mission  for  a  time  in  1890,  and  the  Rev.  Her- 
bert Moore  (Keble  College,  Oxford,  curate  of  St.  Thomas's, 
Liverpool)  came  out  from  England  in  the  same  year.  In 
1 89 1  the  Rev.  L.  F.  Ryde  (St.  John's  College,  Oxford, 
formerly  curate  of  St.  Andrew's,  Great  Yarmouth),  and  in 
1894  the  Rev.  A.  E.  Webb  (Brasenose  College,  Oxford, 
formerly  curate  of  Stockport)  were  added  to  the  number. 

The  Bishop  himself  used  often  to  tell  the  story  that 
as  the  result  of  a  miserably  attended  meeting  at  Oxford 
he  received  two  or  three  offers  of  service,  while  enthusiastic 
receptions  afforded  him  at  his  own  University,  which  at  the 
time  seemed  more  encouraging,  yet  sent  no  members  to 
the  Community  mission  of  St.  Andrew's  at  Tokyo.^ 

A  perusal  of  the  early  correspondence  connected  with 
the  foundation  of  these  two  organisations  will  give  some 
idea  of  the  exact  niche  which  the  Bishop  designed  these 
associated  missions  to  occupy.  They  had  to  make,  almost 
to  fight,  their  way  to  recognition,  or  at  least  to  apprecia- 
tion. In  the  second  chapter,  in  describing  the  initiation 
of  the  Cambridge  Mission  to  Delhi,  proof  has  been  given 
of  the  shyness  with  which  Community  missions  were 
regarded  twenty  years  ago.    A  like  spirit  of  caution  is  to 

'  In  the  autumn  of  1S96  the  Bishop  had  the  pleasure  of  welcoming  the 
first  recruit  from  his  own  University  in  the  person  of  Mr.  Basil  Woodd 
(Trinity  College,  Camb.),  who  joined  the  mission  as  a  layman. 


2l8 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


be  noticed  in  a  speech  delivered  by  Bishop  Edward 
Bickersteth  at  the  annual  meeting  of  the  S.P.G.  at  St. 
James's  Hall  in  Jul\-  1888,  when  he  was  at  home  for  the 
Lambeth  Conference. 

The  small  independent  mission  to  which  I  referred  just 
now  is  to  be  a  Community  mission,  and  I  venture  to 
suggest  that  in  the  present  circumstances  of  Church  work 
in  the  East  the  society  should  put  prominently  forward  as 
one  of  its  main  objects  the  formation  of  Community 
missions  both  of  men  and  women.  No  one  can  value 
more  highly  than  I  do  the  exhibition  before  the  heathen 
of  the  purity,  the  blessedness,  the  love  of  the  English 
home.  I  should  think  it  a  loss  if  in  any  central  station, 
or  at  the  head  of  some  large  institutions,  there  were  not  a 
married  missionary.  But  this  being  fully  admitted,  the 
reason  of  the  case,  together  with  the  teachings  of  history 
and  experience,  prove  that  we  cannot  hope  to  do  the  work 
to  which  God  has  manifestly  now  led  us  in  eastern  lands 
if  we  continue  to  take  the  English  parsonage  as  supplying 
the  normal  type  of  the  life  of  the  foreign  missionary.  The 
expense  alone  is  prohibitory.  On  the  other  hand,  there 
are  very  few — and  all  honour  to  them — who  can  bear  the 
strain  of  solitary  work  in  a  heathen  country.  The  Com- 
munity mission  (I  venture  to  mention  that  I  speak  from 
some  experience  in  past  years)  supplies  just  what  is  needed. 
Sympathy  is  its  guiding  thought,  and  union  in  devotion 
and  work  its  unfailing  practice.  Missions  from  Oxford 
and  Cambridge  in  Calcutta  and  Delhi,  and  from  St.  John's, 
Cowley,  in  Bombay,  have  proved,  if  any  doubted,  that  such 
associated  life  and  work  in  the  East  is  neither  impossible 
nor  unpractical. 

It  will  be  noticed  that  the  prudential  reason  of  in- 
creased economy  is  given  its  full  place  in  this  apologia, 
and  indeed  the  average  cost  of  each  member  being  only 
100/.  a  year  justifies  his  argument ;  yet  this  financial 
consideration  weighed  far  less  with  the  Bishop  than  his 
belief  that  such  a  mission,  consisting  exclusively  of  gradu- 
ates of  the  English  Universities,  would  command  the  respect 
of  the  educated  classes,  and  especially  of  the  University  of 


MISSIONARY  METHODS  AND  COMMUNITY  MISSIONS  219 


Tokyo,  which  sent  its  own  sons  all  over  the  country.  He 
also  believed  that  in  the  early  Church  history  of  any  coun- 
try it  is  most  important  to  avoid  defects  which  it  might  be 
difficult  to  make  good,  and  that  a  body  of  men  working 
under  the  immediate  direction  of  the  Bishop  and  on 
Apostolic  lines  would  be  very  careful  in  this  respect.  In 
a  word,  he  was  convinced  that  from  the  singular  opportu- 
nity offered  by  the  receptivity  of  Japan  a  mission  of  that 
kind  ought  to  have  the  greatest  influence.  In  a  city  like 
Tokyo,  where  men  followed  with  keenest  interest  the  battle 
between  Christianity  and  agnosticism,  where  arguments 
might  be  answered  at  any  moment  by  quotations  from 
Huxley  or  Herbert  Spencer,  it  was  surely  wise  to  send 
those  who,  as  the  Bishop  expressed  it,  '  cannot  have  gradu- 
ated too  highly  in  the  spiritual  life '  and  yet  who  have  also 
learnt  from  England's  wisest  and  best  how  and  when  to  use 
the  weapons  of  attack. 

But  it  will  be  asked  :  What  was  the  rule  of  life  which 
the  members  of  the  mission  were  expected  to  follow  ? 
One  point  from  the  first  was  decided,  as  stated  by  the 
Bishop  in  a  letter  to  Canon  Stanton,  dated  from  Okayama, 
November  18,  1886.  After  mentioning  four  or  five  men 
in  England  with  whom  he  had  been  in  correspondence, 
he  adds : 

If  you  remember,  the  last  day  I  was  with  you  in  Cam- 
bridge we  agreed  that  the  plan  adopted  at  Zanzibar  should 
be  adopted  by  mc  too  in  the  case  of  all  men  coming  out  to 
serve  directly  under  me — that  is,  not  in  connection  with  any 
Society.  According  to  this  plan,  the  Bishop  is  responsible 
for  a//  expenses  except  such  as  are  strictly  personal.  For 
these  a  small  yearly  sum  is  allowed  to  each  missionary  ;  at 
Zanzibar  20/.  or  25/.,  but  here  probably  40/.  or  50/.  would 
be  necessary.  But  anyhow  there  could  be  nothing  but  a 
'  subsistence  '  allowance — not  '  indigence  '  in  any  sense,  but 
no  surplus. 


220 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


This  plan  has  been  always  followed,  but  with  regard 
to  a  rule  of  life  the  Bishop  desired  to  feel  his  way,  not 
from  hesitation  or  uncertainty,  but  deliberately  adopting 
this  policy  as  most  likely  to  avoid  the  evils  of  a  cut  and 
dried  system.  Even  three  years  after  the  foundation  of  the 
mission  he  wrote  to  his  secretary  sister : 

Tell  Canon  Crowfoot  (with  my  affectionate  regards)  we 
have  no  formulated  rules  as  yet  at  St.  Andrew's.  I  prefer 
their  growing  as  St.  Vincent  de  Paul  taught.  All  are,  of 
course,  under  me.  All  attend  Mattins,  Sext,  and  Compline, 
and  generally  Evensong.  Holy  Communion  on  Sundays, 
Thursdays,  and  Saints'  Days,  &c.  Each  has  his  own  work 
to  do — college  or  mission  district  or  classes  as  the  case 
may  be.  All  live  together.  The  idea  (as  at  Delhi)  is  a 
common  life,  to  strengthen  and  help  forward  individual 
work. 

With  regard  to  length  of  service  the  Bishop  expressed 
his  views  in  a  letter  of  November  17,  1887,  in  which  he 
wrote  : 

'  You  will  remember  that  I  could  not  take  — — ■  on 
the  staff  of  my  special  University  Mission  owing  to  his  offer 
being  limited  to  three  years.'  This  was  the  principle  which 
he  wished  to  enforce,  though  at  times  the  pressure  of  work 
forced  him  into  a  suspension  of  this  rule. 

It  was  not  till  1 891  that  the  Rule  of  Life  here  given 
was  formally  drawn  up  and  printed. 

The  Rule  of  the  Jllisswn  Brotherhood  of  St.  Andrew. 

1.  The  name  of  the  society  shall  be  '  The  Mission 
Brotherhood  of  St.  Andrew.' 

2.  The  object  of  the  mission  is  to  seek  the  glory  of 
God  in  making  known  the  Gospel  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ 
among  the  people  of  Japan,  especially  in  Tokyo  and 
adjacent  districts. 

3.  The  members  of  the  brotherhood  shall  be  graduates 
of  Oxford  and  Cambridge  holding  Deacon's  or  Priest's 
Orders  in  the  Anglican  communion. 


MISSIONARY  METHODS  AND  COMMUNITY  MISSIONS    22  1 


[It  is  understood  that  no  one  will  be  accepted  as  a 
member  of  the  brotherhood  who  is  engaged  to  be  married, 
and  that  no  member  of  the  brotherhood  will  contract 
any  such  engagement  without  offering  to  resign  his  posi- 
tion.] 

4.  The  central  residence  of  the  brotherhood  is  the 
house  of  the  Bishop — St.  x'\ndrew's  House,  Shiba,  Tokyo. 

No  member  shall  undertake  any  work  which  perma- 
nently separates  him  from  sharing  in  the  corporate  life  of 
the  brotherhood. 

5.  Besides  the  members,  clergy  and  laymen  may  be 
admitted  either  as  Resident  or  Non-Resident  Associates. 

6.  The  Bishop  is  Visitor,  and  no  fundamental  rule  of 
the  brotherhood  shall  be  changed  without  his  consent. 

7.  One  of  the  members  shall  be  elected  at  a  General 
Chapter  on  the  eve  or  festival  of  St.  Andrew  to  act  as 
Head  of  the  brotherhood  for  one  year.  He  shall  be 
admitted  to  his  office  by  the  Bishop.  His  duties  shall 
include  the  general  superintendence  of  the  corporate  Hfe  of 
the  brotherhood  and  the  distribution  of  work,  subject  to 
the  approval  of  the  Visitor. 

Every  member  shall  be  admitted  at  a  service  in  chapel 
by  the  Bishop,  or  some  one  deputed  by  him. 

8.  Ordinary  chapters,  to  which  questions  concerning 
the  rule  and  work  of  the  brotherhood  may  be  submitted, 
may  be  held  once  a  month,  or  more  frequently  at  the  dis- 
cretion of  the  Head,  who  shall  preside  in  the  absence  of  the 
Visitor.  Resident  Associates  (of  six  months'  standing) 
have  the  right  to  attend. 

9.  One  of  the  members  or  associate  members  shall  be 
appointed  by  the  Head  to  act  with  him  in  the  management 
of  the  funds  and  domestic  affairs. 

10.  After  every  seven  years'  work  in  Japan  every 
member  of  the  brotherhood  shall  be  entitled,  subject  to 
the  exigencies  of  the  work  then  in  hand,  to  a  furlough  of 
one  year  in  England. 

1 1.  The  ordinary  week-day  services  will  be  as  follows  : 
(the  times  of  the  services  being  subject  to  alteration) — 
Matins  (Japanese),  Holy  Communion,  Sext,  Evensong, 
Compline  (Japanese). 

[Each  member  shall  have  his  own  rule  as  to  frequency 
of  Communion.] 

a.  All  the  brethren  will  endeavour  to  set  apart  some 


222 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


time  or  times  before  Sext  for  daily  meditation  and  inter- 
cession. 

b.  A  missionary  Litany  will  be  held  on  Friday. 

c.  A  time  or  times  will  be  set  apart  every  week  for  the 
united  study  of  the  Bible  and  of  Christian  doctrine. 

d.  A  Retreat  will  be  held  once  a  year,  and  Quiet  Days 
observed  in  or  about  the  Ember  seasons. 

12.  Each  member  of  the  brotherhood  is  expected, 

(i)  to  pursue  some  branch  of  theological  study, 

(ii)  to  prepare  during  his  first  three  years  of  residency 

in  Japan  for  two  examinations  in  the  language. 
Approved,  Edw.  Bickersteth,  Bishop. 

November  27,  189 1. 

Appendix  to  Ride  explaining  position  of  Associates. 

a.  All  clergy  accepted  for  St.  Andrew's  Mission  shall 
come  out  to  Japan  as  members  of  the  mission  and 
associates  of  the  brotherhood. 

/;.  An  associate  may,  if  he  so  desire,  be  admitted  a 
member  of  the  brotherhood  after  six  months  in  Japan. 

e.  Associates  are  expected  to  follow  the  Rule  of  the 
brotherhood  so  far  as  it  regulates  the  common  life  of  the 
House  and  the  distribution  of  the  work. 

d.  Resident  associates  of  six  months'  standing  have  the 
right  to  attend  chapters,  and  to  vote  on  all  questions  not 
immediately  affecting  the  corporate  life  of  the  brotherhood. 

January  1892. 

It  seems  worth  while  to  record  thus  fully  the  origin 
and  rule  of  St.  Andrew's  House,  inasmuch  as  experience 
gained  in  the  Church's  active  warfare  ought  to  be  made 
available  as  a  guide  to  those  engaged  in  other  parts  of  the 
mission  field. 

Rightly  as  he  believed — wrongly  as  some  thought — the 
Bishop  steadily  refused  on  principle  to  be  connected  with 
or  to  found  a  brotherhood  or  sisterhood  which  would  smother 
individuality  and  submit  itself  to  the  iron  yoke  sometimes 
assumed  to  be  inseparable  from  such  organisations.  He 
saw,  or  thought  he  saw,  his  way  to  a  revival  of  Community 


MISSIONARY  METHODS  AND  COMMUNITY  MISSIONS  223 


missions,  both  for  men  and  women,  which  would  combine 
a  sufficiently  strong  central  rule  with  allowance  for  the 
claims  of  individuality.  This  point  is  illustrated  by  a  few 
words  in  a  letter  written  in  Easter  week  1889  : 

I  do  not  much  think  I  should  get  on  with  his  sort  of 
people.  I  like  people  with  lots  of  naturalness,  sympathy, 
and  love,  making  use  of  all  CJnircJi  privileges  as  GocTs 
gifts  to  them,  and  I  should  fancy  he  is  enamoured  more  of 
ecclesiastical  stilts,  laces,  strait  waistcoats,  and  other 
articles  of  that  description. 

Whatever  may  be  the  future  of  the  missions  which  the 
Bishop  was  allowed  to  found  in  Delhi  and  Tokyo,  at  least 
one  thing  has  been  strikingly  proved  in  the  experience 
vouchsafed  to  them,  that  men  so  associated  can  live 
together  in  brotherly  love,  and  by  love  can  serve  one 
another  and  the  Church  of  God.  What  the  Rev.  G.  A. 
Lefroy  ^  once  said  of  Delhi  is,  I  believe,  equally  true  of 
St.  Andrew's — that  its  members  have  been  singularly  free 
from  jars  and  misunderstandings. 

The  Bishop  dealt  with  the  vexed  question  of  vows  in 
the  same  spirit.  He  did  not  hold  them  to  be  essential 
neither  did  he  regard  them  as  unwise  or  unlawful.  His 
■mind  can  be  gathered  from  the  following  extracts  from 
letters  to  his  sister  May  : 

January  4,  1890. 

I  fear  I  haven't  time  to  write  on  vows.  I  feel  gene- 
rally : 

A.  That  short  dispensable  vows  should  hardly  be  called 
vows.    So  great  a  term  is  not  needed  for  the  thing. 

B.  That  permanent,  lifelong  vows  are  right  under 
circumstances  and  acceptable  to  God.  Why  not  }  I  have 
seen  no  reason.  I  should  not  be  concerned  to  deny  that 
they  are  in  a  sense  a  confession  of  weakness,  but  we  are 
weak.  Also  I  think  they  should  be  dispensable,  either  by 
those  who  take  them  proprio  motii  or  by  the  Church.  .  .  . 

'  Bishop  Designate  of  Lahore  (1899). 


224 


BISHOP  EDWARD  IJICKERSTETH 


Again,  a  real  vocation  to  win  souls  for  God  during 
such  length  of  life  as  God  shall  give — sealed  not  by  a  vow- 
but  by  an  inner  intention  ;  to  be  set  aside,  if  at  all,  not  by 
some  public  dispensation,  but  by  God's  Providence  altering 
circumstances  and  calling  elsewhere — is  the  true  foundation 
of  a  worker  at  St.  Andrew's  or  St.  Hilda's. 

I'^Tim  the  first  he  was  anxious  to  preserve  the  due 
balance  between  the  work  and  the  life.  In  a  letter  to 
Canon  Stanton  (dated  St.  Andrew's  House,  February  21, 
1888)  he  wrote  : 

So  our  numbers  are  going  up.  j\Iay  our  increase  be 
intensive  as  well  as  extejisive,  as  dear  old  Dr.  Kaye  (of 
Lincoln)  used  to  say. 

This  was  the  impression  made  upon  the  more  thought- 
ful Japanese,  one  of  them  using  the  following  simile  :  '  I 
see  that,  like  two  wings  of  a  bird,  religion  and  intellectual 
study  must  be  kept  up  together.' 

The  members  were  from  the  first  housed  with  the 
Bishop,  who,  when  in  Tokyo,  always  resided  at  St. 
Andrew's  House  until  his  marriage  in  1893. 

It  is  not  possible  here,  owing  to  want  of  space,  to  do 
more  than  refer  very  general!}-  to  their  work,  interesting 
and  important  as  it  has  been  and  is. 

Three  or  four  main  objects  have  been  kept  in  view  from 
the  first : 

1.  To  train  the  native  ministry,  by  whom  ultimately 
Japan  must  be  won  for  Christ. 

2.  To  organise  lectures  and  classes  by  means  of  which 
Christ  and  His  claims  may  be  brought  before  the  people. 

3.  To  itinerate  in  or  near  Tokyo. 

4.  To  open  up  other  strong  centres,  as  opportunities 
offered  and  means  allowed. 

Writing  to  the  Guild  of  St.  Paul  from  Tokyo,  July  5, 
1889,  the  Bishop  reports  : 

I.  A  Divinity  School  is  the  first  charge  of  St.  Andrew's. 


MISSIONARY  METHODS  AND  COMMUNITY  MISSIONS  225 


Of  this  school  Mr.  King  is  now  larincii^al.  This  position 
gives  him  the  opportunity,  which  I  have  no  doubt  will  be 
very  well  used,  of  influencing  a  large  number  of  the  future 
clergy  of  the  Japanese  Church.  Of  course  lectures  are 
frequent  and  on  many  subjects,  but  the  aim  of  the  school 
is  not  merely  to  carry  on  a  course  of  instruction,  but  to 
create  a  tone  and  atmosphere,  and  maintain  a  life.  To 
the  fulness  of  this  life  daily  matins  in  St.  Andrew's 
Church,  compline  in  my  private  chapel,  walks  with  their 
teachers,  Sunday  afternoons  in  the  drawing  room  of 
St.  Andrew's  House,  private  talks  in  this  or  that  study,  all 
alike  contribute. 

2.  By  the  side  of  the  Theological  School  there  ought 
to  be  an  institution  for  more  general  instruction.  The 
Society  for  Promoting  Christian  Knowledge  has  recently 
promised  250/.  to  meet  400/.,  if  this  can  be  obtained  from 
other  sources.  Meanwhile  a  night  school,  which  owes  its 
origination  and  its  prosperity  mainly  to  Mr.  Cholmondeley, 
partially  fills  the  gap.  Mr.  Freese  is  now  in  charge  of  the 
Church  of  the  Holy  Cross,  Kyobashi. 

3.  Tokyo  is  the  centre  of  a  very  populous  country 
district.  As  you  know,  it  is  also  itself  one  of  the  great 
cities  of  the  world,  whiether  estimated  by  population  or 
area.  Alike  in  the  city  and  country,  active  evangeli.sation 
ought  to  be  carried  on  from  centres  like  St.  Andrew's,  the 
Church  of  the  Ascension,  the  Church  of  the  Holy  Cross, 
&c.,  or  villages  like  Shimo-fuku-da.  Those  who  are  to 
carry  on  this  evangelisation  must  not  be  hampered  by 
educational  work. 

Kyobashi,  Ushigome,  and  Mita,  three  districts  of  the 
great  city  of  Tokyo,  were  placed  under  the  care  of  St. 
Andrew's  Mission.  Each  has  a  small  church  and  native 
congregation  supplemented  by  direct  evangelistic  work, 
and  in  each  full  parochial  life  is  maintained,  together  with 
such  agencies  as  dispensaries,  preaching  stations,  and  classes 
for  inquirers  and  catechumens. 

It  was  not  till  the  end  of  1894  that  the  Bishop,  writing 
to  Mr.  Lefroy  at  Delhi,  could  report  : 

I  have  just  established  my  first  out-station  of  St. 
Andrew's  Mission,  but  no  further  off  from  the  centre  than 

Q 


226 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


one  of  the  districts  of  Tokyo.  A  '  strong  centre '  with 
several  such  offshoots  is  what  I  am  aiming  at. 

Writing  the  same  year  to  the  Guild  of  St.  Paul  the 
Bishop  could  report  progress  with  thankfulness  chastened 
by  a  sober  realisation  of  the  still  inadequate  forces  at  his 
disposal. 

With  American  Church  Mission,  S.P.G.,  C.M.S.,  St. 
Andrew's,  St.  Hilda's  (both  of  which  are  now  in  full 
work),  Mrs.  Kirkes'  house  (itself  a  centre  of  manifold 
influence  for  highest  good  among  the  upper  classes,  which 
could  be  set  moving  by  no  other  means,  and  no  one  else  in 
like  manner,  so  far  as  I  am  aware),  the  Ladies'  Institute 
(where  mistresses  enter  at  Easter  on  the  second  period  of 
their  very  important  work),  the  Mission  of  the  Ladies' 
Association  of  S.P.G.,  &c.,  Tokyo  is  now  a  centre  where 
all  forms  and  methods  of  missionary  endeavour  are 
represented.  And  yet  Jioiv  small  a  portion  of  its  vast 
population  even  know  that  we  are  here  !  How  much  some 
portions  of  the  work  which  is  going  on  need  strengthening 
and  developing.  May  God  send  us  more  workers  !  May 
He  give  us  who  are  here  more  self-denial,  more  faith,  more 
real  love  of  Christ  and  the  people.    You  will  ask  this  for  us. 

Three  years  later  (July  28,  1894),  writing  from 
Hakone,  the  Bishop  described  as  '  a  really  important  step 
in  advance  '  the  arrangement  by  which  the  Rev.  L.  B. 
Cholmondeley  and  his  colleague  (the  Rev.  W.  F.  Madeley) 
went  to  reside  in  the  district  of  Ushigome  : 

It  will  bring  the  mission  into  closer  contact  with  the 
people  of  an  important  district  than  has  hitherto  been 
possible,  and  I  do  not  doubt  that,  with  God's  blessing, 
results  will  follow.  Though  work  has  been  carried  on  in 
Ushigome  for  many  years,  the  number  of  Christians  is  as 
yet  very  small,  and  for  the  most  part  they  are,  I  fear, 
individually  weak  in  faith  and  knowledge.  Japanese  clergy 
and  catechists,  without  the  support  of  European  mission- 
aries close  at  hand,  have  failed  to  correct  this  state  Of 
affairs.  It  is  one  instance  among  many  of  the  necessity  of 
close  co-operation  between  foreign  and  native  workers, 


MISSIONARY  METHODS  AND  COMMUNITY  MISSIONS  22/ 


Upon  which  I  very  often  insist,  if  the  Church's  work  is  to  be 
well  done  during  the  present  generation.  Hereafter,  as  the 
Japanese  character  strengthens  and  its  many  good  elements 
are  developed  under  the  influence  of  Christian  grace  and 
teaching,  whole  districts  may  be  handed  over  entirely  to 
native  hands.  But,  unless  in  very  rare  cases,  as  yet  this 
cannot  safely  be  done.  If  the  European  is  all  but  helpless 
without  his  Japanese  colleague,  on  the  other  hand  he 
supplies  the  experience  and  knowledge  and  faculty  of 
perseverance,  without  which  Japanese  workers  make  but 
slow  progress. 

But  let  us  not  mistake  what  this  means.  It  means  a 
far  larger  number  of  European  workers  than  if  it  were 
wise  to  work  on  another  principle.  Out-stations  must 
be  manned  and  yet  the  central  mission  not  be  depleted. 
To  confine  our  thoughts  to  our  own  missions.  Four 
European  clergy,  with  their  Japanese  colleagues,  are  the 
least  that  can  carry  on  the  work  in  Shiba.  The  present 
staff  at  St.  Andrew's  Mission,  after  Mr.  King's  return  in 
the  autumn,  will  exactly  provide  this  minimum  number. 
But  other  furloughs  will  be  due  before  very  long.  If,  then, 
Ushigome  is  to  be  maintained  as  well  as  the  central 
mission  at  Shiba,  some  increase  is  very  desirable.  May 
God  send  us  the  men  of  His  choice  ! 

But  Ushigome  is  only  one  of  half  a  dozen  populous 
districts  in  South  Tokyo,  in  several  of  which  branch 
houses  might  well  be  at  once  established.  With  our 
present  staff  this  is  of  course  impossible.  But  what  a 
vista  is  thus  opened  to  us  of  possible  extension  as  the 
years  go  on  !  We  need  not,  indeed,  as  a  guild  look  forward 
to  occupying  the  whole  ground.  Our  two  great  societies 
will  in  time,  I  hope,  both  extend  their  operations.'  But  I 
am  quite  sure  that  a  large  part  of  the  work  must  be  done 
by  us  if  it  is  to  be  done  at  all  through  English  Christians. 
Let  us  be  thankful  that  it  is  so.  What  more  could  we  ask 
than  to  be  allowed  a  share  in  bringing  the  light  of  Christ's 
Gospel  and  the  fellowship  of  His  Church  to  men  and 

'  The  C.M.S.  have  responded  to  the  Bishop's  appeal,  and  have 
strengthened  their  staff  in  the  capital  ;  but  the  S.  P.  G.  Mission,  on  the  other 
hand,  has  been  gradually  weakened  in  numbers  until  its  sole  '  foreign  '  repre- 
sentative in  the  present  diocese  of  South  Tokyo  is  Archdeacon  Shaw,  although 
it  is  responsible  for  the  income  of  the  two  Bishops  of  South  Tokyo  and  Osaka. 
The  C.M.S.  is  responsible  for  the  income  of  the  two  Bishops  of  Kiushiu  and 
Yezo. 

Q  2 


228 


niSlIOl'  KDWARD  lUCKERSTETII 


women  who  otherwise  must  Hve  on  in  the  darkness  and 
isolation  of  heathenism  ?  Where  could  a  nobler  field  be 
found  on  which  to  concentrate  all  the  energies  of  the 
Church's  service  than  such  a  centre  of  human  activity  and 
interest  as  is  the  capital  of  Japan  ?  ^ 

Before  giving  an  account  of  the  other  Associated  Mis- 
sion founded  by  the  Bishop — that  of  St.  Hilda  for  women 
workers — it  will  be  well  to  give  some  description  of  the 
women  of  Japan  and  of  the  openings  for  work  among  them. 

On  this  point  a  paper-  recently  written  in  excellent 
English  by  Miss  Tsuda,  a  Japanese  lady  professor  in  the 
Peeresses'  and  Normal  Schools  at  Tokyo,  gives  us  full  and 
accurate  information.  She  reminds  us  that  '  it  is  no  easy 
task  to  give  a  true  estimate  of  the  present  condition  of 
women  in  Japan,  and  of  the  place  they  occupy,  since  every 
year  and  month  brings  important  changes.'  But  an 
abstract  of  her  sketch  of  the  past  and  hopes  for  the  future 
will  be  read  with  interest. 

Miss  Tsuda  a.sserts  that  the  women  of  old  Japan 
always  held  a  position  unique  in  the  East.  History  as  far 
back  as  it  goes  has  given  an  honourable  place  to  women. 
Five  Empresses  have  ruled  in  their  own  right.  A  woman 
was  the  first  historian.  Artists  of  rare  skill  and  scholarship 
may  be  counted  among  the  sex.  The  old  ideas  regarding 
women  were  enlightened  ones,  and  it  is  outside  influences 
which  have  tended  to  lower  the  old  standard.    The  spread 

'  It  is  sad  to  have  to  record  that  since  the  Bishop  wrote  these  glowing 
words  in  the  justifiable  expectation  that  the  Church  at  home  would  not  fail  to 
rise  to  so  great  an  ojiportunity,  only  one  graduate  from  England  (a  layman, 
Mr.  C.  H.  Basil  Woodd,  M.A.,  Trinity  College,  Cambridge)  has  joined  St. 
Andrew's  Mission,  and  the  only  other  recruit  has  been  the  Rev.  W.  C. 
Gemmill,  graduate  of  Trinity  University,  Toronto,  who  joined  the  mission  as 
a  layman  and  has  since  been  ordained  to  the  diaconate  and  priesthood. 

Published  in  the  Japan  Daily  Mail  (November  1898).  I  am  indebted  for 
this  summary  to  Mrs.  Edward  Bickersteth,  a  personal  friend  of  Miss  Tsuda. 
This  gifted  Japanese  Christian  lady  during  the  winter  of  1898-9  visited 
England,  where  she  made  many  friends. 


MISSIONARY  METHODS  AND  COMMUNITY  MISSIONS  229 


of  Buddhism,  the  introduction  of  Chinese  Htcrature,  and, 
above  all,  the  strong  influence  of  the  Confucian  scholars  have 
brought  about  this  change,  until  in  the  sixteenth  century 
the  Japanese  woman  had  sunk  down  from  her  former 
position  of  respect  and  equality.  History  has  left  us  little 
account  of  women  for  the  four  hundred  years  that  followed. 

The  home  was  a  sealed  one  hidden  from  outside  gaze. 
Here,  in  quiet  and  seclusion,  the  young  girl  grew  up  under 
the  strict  doctrine  of  the  Chinese  sages.  Implicitly 
obedient  to  her  parents  in  childhood,  when  married  she 
served  her  husband  as  her  master,  and  in  old  age,  leaning 
on  sons  who  took  their  father's  place,  she  taught  the  same 
doctrines  to  her  daughters  that  she  had  held  all  her  life, 
mpressing  on  them  her  standard  of  duty  and  right,  of 
gentleness,  sacrifice,  and  abnegation.  Then  the  women  of 
old  Japan  had  few  educational  advantages.  They  were 
not,  however,  without  some  training,  and,  except  in  the 
lowest  classes,  received  instruction  in  the  written  language. 
The  daughters  of  the  nobility  were  instructed  in  reading, 
writing,  poetry,  Japanese  history,  and  in  some  cases 
Chinese.  In  addition,  they  learned  music,  the  tea  cere- 
mony, etiquette,  flower  arrangement,  and  incense  burning. 
In  the  middle  classes  among  the  daughters  of  the  retainers 
{samurai)  very  much  the  same  course  of  study  with  the 
addition  of  more  Chinese  was  pursued.  A  knowledge  of 
sewing  and  household  work  was  indispensable,  and  often 
composed  the  greater  part  of  training.  The  daughters  of 
the  lower  classes  (merchants,  farmers,  artisans)  were  far 
less  educated.  In  the  cities  they  gained  the  bare  rudi- 
ments of  reading  and  writing,  but  sometimes  spent  much 
time  on  music  and  dancing.  In  the  country  the  days 
were  too  much  filled  with  labour  in  the  field  or  at  the 
loom  to  leave  time  for  study  of  any  sort.  This 
limited  education  was  in  keeping  with  the  narrow  life  of 


230 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


those  days.  The  special  attention  paid  to  etiquette  and 
moral  training,  the  keen  sense  of  duty,  loyalty,  and  honour 
early  instilled  into  the  mind,  tended  to  produce  women 
who,  though  not  intellectually  trained,  were  not  without 
moral  responsibility  and  dignity  mingled  with  gentleness 
and  sweetness  of  disposition.  In  the  educational  problems 
of  the  day  for  women  none  is  more  perplexing  than  the 
difficulty  of  keeping  the  beauty  and  refinement  of  the  old 
system  with  the  broader  and  new  ideas  and  the  freedom  of 
thought  and  action  which  come  from  the  culture  of  the 
intellectual  powers.  Changes  have  come  quickly  since  the 
Revolution  of  1 868.  The  first  official  step  was  the  establish- 
ment of  public  primary  schools  for  boys  and  girls  all  over 
Japan  in  1869.  In  1872  the  Educational  Department 
established  the  Tokyo  Girls'  School,  the  first  Government 
school  for  girls.  In  1874  it  established  the  Higher  Normal 
School  for  girls.  In  1886  was  established,  by  H.I.H.  the 
Empress,  the  Peeresses'  School  for  the  daughters  of  the 
nobility,  the  first  girls'  school  for  the  higher  classes.  As 
regards  the  social  position  of  woman  in  Japan,  it  cannot  be 
denied  that  for  many  years  the  laws  and  government  of 
the  day  had  little  regard  for  her  ;  laws  regarding  her  were 
very  few,  simply  because  she  was  a  factor  not  worth  con- 
sidering. Marriage  and  divorce  have  been  left  to  custom 
in  lack  of  civil  codes  on  such  matters.  Still,  here  too  there 
are  signs  of  change  in  the  right  direction.  In  the  two 
principal  religions  of  Japan,  Shintoism  and  Buddhism, 
women  have  had  little  part  or  influence,  except  as  earnest 
believers  and  devotees.  Buddhism  has  always  looked 
down  on  woman.  She  has  been  regarded  as  full  of  sin 
and  impurity,  and  not  allowed  to  visit  holy  places,  as 
she  defiled  them.  Shintoism  gives  a  better  position  to 
woman,  but  Shintoism  has  only  a  shadowy  influence  over 
the  people. 


MISSIONARY  METHODS  AND  COMMUNITY  MISSIONS     23 1 


Miss  Tsuda,  herself  a  Christian  and  Church-woman  of 
many  years'  standing,  concludes  her  article  thus : 

Christianity  has  done,  and  is  doing  much,  for  the  eleva- 
tion of  woman.  It  will  do  more.  It  will  raise  the  Japan- 
ese woman  socially,  will  exalt  her  home,  will  purify  the 
social  and  moral  evils  that  work  against  her,  will  give  her 
a  higher  code  of  morals,  and  an  ideal  of  womanhood  which 
in  the  present  age  is  unknown. 

No  wonder,  then,  that  the  Bishop  was  strongly  con- 
vinced of  the  necessity  for  strengthening  and  extending 
the  existing  work  among  Japanese  women,  and  to  this  end 
he  established  St.  Hilda's  Mission.  The  progress  and 
development  of  this  mission  lay  very  near  his  heart. 
Within  six  months  of  his  arrival  in  Japan  he  wrote  to 
Canon  Stanton  from  Kobe  : 

November  27,  1886. 

One  line  by  way  of  supplement  to  mine  of  last  week. 
I  referred  only,  I  think,  to  the  University  Mission  which  I 
propose  :  but  I  hope  also  to  have  a  new  Ladies'  Mission 
in  Tokyo.  This  will  in  time,  I  hope,  draw  workers  from 
the  Bishop  of  Truro's  very  excellent  sisterhood  at  Truro,' 
though  as  yet  the  number  of  sisters  is  too  small  for  them  to 
undertake  foreign  work.  The  Bishop  (Dr.  Wilkinson)  has, 
however,  suggested  that  any  ladies  coming  for  mission  work 
to  Tokyo  might  with  advantage  spend  a  few  weeks  or 
months  at  the  Truro  sisterhood  before  starting — and  this 
I  should  like  them  to  do,  if  possible.  The  Bishop  has  also 
put  me  in  communication  with  a  very  admirable  worker 
in  his  diocese,  who  proposes  to  undertake  mission  work 
in  Japan. 

On  March  12,  1887,  he  wrote  to  his  old  Diocesan, 
Bishop  French  of  Lahore : 

My  dear  Bishop, — Many  months  have  run  by  since  I 
wrote  to  you.  I  meant  to  have  been  a  better  correspon- 
dent. Almost  the  whole  time  has  been  spent  in  moving 
from  place  to  place  and  in  short  visitations.    Japan  is  — 

'  Community  of  the  Epiphany. 


232 


inSIIOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


though  it  looks  small  in  the  map — immense,  double  the 
length  of  England,  and  many  places  difficult  of  access  for 
large  parts  of  the  year  owing  to  snow  in  the  passes,  and 
always  requiring  much  time  to  be  spent  en  rotite.  The 
faith  is  certainly  making  itself  felt  through  God's  good 
Spirit  throughout  the  land.  Little  congregations  are  being 
gathered  even  in  quite  remote  parts,  and  the  people  recog- 
nise, as  in  the  early  days,  that  Christianity  raises  the  moral 
tone  of  its  professors,  and  not  seldom  has  turned  them 
markedly  from  lives  of  notorious  wickedness  to  lives  which 
even  heathen  note  to  be  holy  and  attractive.  It  is  largely 
by  means  of  such  witnesses  that  the  Gospel  is  being  made 
known. 

I  have  also  spent  much  time  in  all  the  correspondence 
and  work  that  is  necessary  in  the  attempt  to  start  several 
new  missions — one  a  brotherhood,  one  an  associated  Ladies' 
Mission  which  may  develop  into  a  sisterhood,  and  yet 
another — the  charge  of  a  Japanese  Ladies'  High  School, 
for  which  the  University  (of  Tokyo)  professors  asked  me  to 
obtain  teachers.  I  hope  all  three  of  them  may  be  at  work 
by  the  end  of  the  year,  or  in  a  year's  time — but  the  Uni- 
versity Mission  cannot  hope  for  anything  like  the  Delhi  staff 

The  desire  to  establish  a  women's  mission  connected 
with  the  honoured  name  of  St.  Hilda  had  first  come  to  him 
when  at  Delhi,  for  he  felt  strongly  the  truth  of  Bishop 
Lightfoot's  strictures  on  the  Church's  folly  in  trying  to  do 
her  work  '  with  only  one  arm,'  as  he  phrased  it.  Writing 
to  Canon  Stanton  on  November  2,  1887,  Bishop  Bickersteth 
says : 

Japan  is  an  instance  of  the  folly  of  trying  to  establish 
large  Anglican  missions  without  a  Bishop.  It  is  quite 
inconceivable  that  had  there  been  a  Bishop  here  ten  years 
ago  they  should  have  been  allowed  to  go  on  without 
any  adequate  effort  to  develop  ladies'  work,  and  thus  have 
been  utterly  distanced  by  the  American  Nonconformist 
bodies.  However,  1  cannot  be  thankful  enough  for  the  re- 
sponse which  has  been  made  to  my  appeals  in  this  respect. 

The  first  two  members  of  the  new  Associated  Mission 
arrived  at  Yokohama  early  on  Sunday,  December  4,  1887. 


MISSIONARY  METHODS  AND  COMMUNITY  MISSIONS  233 


The  following  day  they  were  admitted  by  the  Bishop  to  be 
members  of  St.  Hilda's  Associated  Mission.  The  I^ishop 
wrote  : 

In  the  words  of  admission  I  have  tried  to  bring  out  the 
idea  of  life.  Buddhism  is  all  about  dying,  and  I  have 
referred  to  their  life  in  Christ's  life,  leading  to  the  eternal 
life  of  those  for  whom  they  work. 

The  form  of  admission  is  as  follows  : 

The  Bishop  shall  give  to  the  person  to  be  admitted  a 
cross,  saying,  '  Receive  and  wear  this  cross  in  token  that 
thou  wilt  die  daily  to  self  and  in  newness  of  life  serve  the 
Risen  Christ,  who  gave  His  Life  for  men,  that  He  might 
bring  many  unto  Life  eternal.' 

Here  far  more  than  in  the  case  of  St.  Andrew's  Mission 
the  Bishop  had  to  buy  his  wisdom  by  experience.  St. 
Andrew's  was  avowedly  formed  on  the  same  lines  as  the 
Cambridge  Mission  at  Delhi,  but  there  was  no  precedent 
for  a  Women's  Associated  Mission  founded  and  worked  on 
the  same  lines. 

Simple  rules  were  framed  from  the  first,  but  it  was  not 
till  March  1892  that  the  Bishop  put  his  hand  and  seal  to 
the  Rule  (exterior  and  interior)  of  St.  Hilda's  Mission. 

Of  the  Exterior  Rule  A  it  is  sufficient  to  state  that 
Clause  2  provided  that  '  those  approved  as  candidates 
shall  stay  at  the  House  of  the  Community  of  the  Epiphany, 
Truro,  for  six  weeks.'  In  Clause  3  the  Bishop  again  tried 
to  secure  that  '  deep  should  answer  to  deep,'  as  he  had 
done  years  before  in  arranging  that  prayer  should  be 
offered  at  Cambridge  and  at  Delhi  as  far  as  possible  at 
the  same  time.  It  provides  that  '  the  Community  of  the 
Epiphany  shall  be  daily  remembered  in  the  prayers  of  the 
members  of  the  mission,  and  they  likewise  shall  be  prayed 
for  daily  by  the  sisters.' 

Of  Exterior  Rule  B  Clause  2  provides  that  '  a  Bishop 


234 


BISHOP  EDWARD  lilCKERSTETH 


or  priest  shall  be  chosen  as  warden,  subject  to  the  sanction 
of  the  Bishop  of  the  diocese  and  the  patron  of  St.  Paul's 
Guild.' 

Clause  4  that  '  each  new  member  shall  be  admitted 
by  a  service  in  chapel,  which  shall  not  be  held  (except 
under  exceptional  circumstances)  until  after  a  probation 
of  one  year.' 

Clause  5,  that  'the  members  of  the  mission  shall  yearly 
on  St.  Hilda's  Day  (November  17)  elect  one  of  their 
number  to  be  Member-in-Charge  if  approved  for  the  office 
by  the  Warden,' 

Clause  7,  that  '  a  chapter  shall  he  held  at  least  once  in 
two  months  at  which  all  important  matters  affecting  the 
welfare  and  development  of  the  mission  shall  be  dis- 
cussed.' 

Clause  10,  that  'services  shall  be  held  in  the  chapel  of 
the  Mission  House  three  times  a  day ;  in  the  morning  a 
shortened  form  of  Matins  (in  Japanese)  shall  be  said  ;  at 
midday  Sext  (in  English),  with  special  collects  and  heads 
for  intercession,  with  space  for  silent  prayer  ;  in  the  evening 
Compline  (in  Japanese)  ;  and  also  that  the  members  shall, 
as  far  as  their  work  allows,  attend  the  services  in  the 
Church  of  St.  Andrew,  Shiba.' 

Clause  II,  that  '  members  shall  not  accept  invitations 
into  society,  but  that  they  may  receive  visits  from  and  pay 
visits  to  their  friends  subject  to  the  claims  of  the  work.' 

Clause  14,  that  'silence  shall  be  kept  as  far  as  possible 
on  the  stairs  and  in  the  passages  of  the  Mission  House  ; 
also  throughout  the  house  before  Matins  and  after 
Compline.' 

Clause  17  that  (a)  'each  member  shall  consider  it  a 
point  of  duty  to  take  sufficient  exercise,  relaxation,  food, 
and  rest,  and  to  avoid  overwork,  remembering  that  bodily 
health  is  a  gift  of  God,  and  essential  to  some  forms  of  work 
for  Him. 

(^)  That  '  each  member  is  entitled,  subject  to  the 
exigencies  of  the  work,  after  six  [now  altered  to  five] 
years'  work  in  the  mission,  to  one  year's  furlough  in 
England.' 

The  object  of  the  Interior  Rule  is  stated  to  be  '  to 
glorify  God  by  obeying  His  call  and  doing  His  will 


MISSIONARY  METHODS  AND  COMMUNITY  MISSIONS  235 


in  all  things.'  Its  closing  words,  which  are  highly  charac- 
teristic of  the  founder,  may  be  quoted  : 

In  a  life  of  rule  and  ordered  service,  be  careful  to  main- 
tain the  freedom  and  gladness  of  the  children  of  God, 
through  habitual  remembrance  of  His  presence  and  the 
forgiveness  of  all  your  sins  through  the  cross  of  Jesus 
Christ. 

It  is  plain  that  the  mission  thus  organised  was  largely 
dependent  for  its  success  on  the  care  with  which  can- 
didates were  selected  in  England.  The  Bishop  accordingly 
was  constant  in  stating  and  re-stating  his  ideal  and  his 
suggestions  for  guidance  in  this  selection.'  I  therefore 
have  put  together  from  his  letters  to  me  some  of  the  points 
which  he  used  to  lay  down. 

Four  characteristics  are  essential  in  all  candidates  for 
St.  Hilda's  Mission. 

1.  Piety. 

2.  Sociability  in  the  sense  of  being  able  to  live  happily 
in  a  community. 

3.  Strong  Church  principle. 

4.  Refinement. 

The  absence  of  the  first  of  these  disqualifies  for  all 
missions,  and  any  of  the  four  for  St.  Hilda's  and  like  similar 
Community  missions.  I  have  re-written  the  St.  Hilda's 
Rule,  and  have  tried  to  make  it  more  comprehensive,  so 
that  anyone  may  understand  by  studying  it  what  is  our 
practice  (on  confession  &c.),  and  what  kind  of  life  I  set 
before  them  as  an  ideal.  Would  that  I  myself  were  nearer 
what  I  ask  them  to  aim  at. 

Again,  '  One  is  almost  tempted  to  say  that  without  a 
really  strong,  loving,  religious  head  or  mother,  Community 
missions  cannot  prosper.' 

Again,  in  regard  to  the  social  position  of  the  candi- 
dates : 

'  Candidates  were  interviewed  Ijy  myself  as  Commissary,  by  Bishop 
Wilkinson  (now  Bishop  of  St.  Andrews),  and  then  by  the  Mother  Superior  of 
the  Community  of  the  Epiphany. 


236 


BISHOP  EDWAKl)  lUCKERSTETIl 


They  should  be  taken  from  the  gentle  walks  of  life. 
One  reason  is  that  the  candidates  you  select  are  sure  to  draw 
others  from  the  same  rank  and  avocations  they  have  been  in 
themselves.  Another  that  manners  are  a  real  missionary 
power  in  Japan.  A  third  is  that  we  are  aiming  at  (though 
owing  to  failures  it  is  only  beginning)  a  life  as  well  as  a 
mission  in  Japan,  and  for  this  people  of  different  ranks  do 
not  permanently  or  for  any  length  of  time  coalesce.  It 
might  be  the  higher  thing  if  it  were  not  so,  and  I  can 
imagine  an  argument  that  spiritual  sympathies  should 
render  it  unnecessary,  yet  sisterhoods  get  out  of  the 
difficulty  by  their  second  orders,  and  all  somehow  or  other 
recognise  the  principle,  and,  though  I  regret  it  in  some 
ways,  I  fear  we  must  too.  For  permanent  life  and  work 
together  people  must,  it  seems,  we  being  what  we  are, 
have  something  of  like  training  and  hold  views  which  are 
not  mutually  exclusive.  This  holds  good  in  a  parish  as 
regards  a  vicar  and  his  curates,  though  not  of  course  in  the 
wider  area  of  a  Church. 

Again  : 

The  only  hope  of  building  up  a  Community  mission  of 
women  is  to  get  people  well  agreed  already,  and  also  well 
taught  in  the  faith,  and  holding  it  on  its  Church  as  well 
as  on  its  evangelical  side  with  some  firmness.  Of  course  I 
do  not  mean  that  these  conditions  ensure  peace  and 
progress,  but  where  they  are  absent  the  hope  is  very  small 
indeed. 

Again,  with  regard  to  one  who  had  been  described  as 
'  pious  and  energetic,  and  beginning  to  feel  that  there  may 
be  some  solid  truth  in  Church  doctrine,'  and  who  was 
wishful  to  go  to  St.  Hilda's,  if  not  as  a  member,  at  least  as 
an  associate,  or  even  as  a  long-time  visitor,  he  wrote : 

A  person  in  her  position  is  not  in  a  fit  frame  of  mind 
to  work  for  God  among  the  heathen.  First  of  all,  .she 
must  decide  whether  the  new  lights  of  truth  which  are 
beginning  to  break  in  upon  her  are  ignes  fatui  or  sun's 
rays.  Till  she  has  done  this,  she  will  necessarily  be  so 
unsettled  in  her  own  mind  as  to  be  wholly  unfit  to 
contribute  to  the  life  of  a  community  and  to  co-operate  in 


MISSIONARY  METHODS  AiNM)  COMMUNITY  MISSIONS  237 


its  work.  Her  critical  faculties  will  be  sure  to  be  dominant, 
when  her  sympathy  should  be  the  leading  trait.  For 
mission  work  we  need  persons  whose  mind  is  made  up  on 
the  leading  points  alike  for  personal  and  corporate  religion, 
and  the  place  for  their  decision  is  not  Japan  but  England. 
It  is  suggested  that  I  might  teach  her  Church  doctrine, 
but  even  if  I  had  a  moment  to  spare  for  such  work  St. 
Hilda's  would  be  the  wrong  place.  Our  workers  ought  to 
have  behind  them  if  possible  an  even  tenor  of  life,  certainly 
a  matureness  according  to  their  years  in  their  own 
principles.  And  this  is  above  all  the  case  at  St.  Hilda's, 
where  we  have  no  large  body  of  workers  into  which  to 
engulf  a  stray  person  of  a  different  type,  and  are  only 
beginning,  owing  to  failures  in  the  past,  to  generate  a  truly 
healthy  spiritual  atmosphere  and  to  build  up  a  life.  More- 
over, a  '  long-timed  '  visitor  or  an  associate  should  be  more 
not  less  in  touch  with  the  others  than  a  member,  because 
she  is  less  under  rule,  and  therefore  her  words  and  ways 
are  more  free  to  do  mischief  if  they  do  not  do  good.  The 
'associate'  plan  is  not  in  order  to  get  persons  into  the 
community  whose  views  would  otherwise  exclude  them, 
but  for  those  who  cannot  presumably  give  their  lives  to 
the  work.  I  am  revising  the  rule  to  make  this  more 
clear. 

The  Bishop's  general  idea  for  a  member  of  St.  Hilda's 
may  be  well  gathered  from  the  following  extract  from  a 
letter  to  his  sister  May,  dated  St.  John's  Day  1887  : 

The  people  we  have  [for  St.  Hilda's]  should  be  spiritu- 
ally minded  and  prepared  to  take  pains  with  their  own 
spiritual  life,  regarding  the  work  as  the  outcome  of  life  (not 
vice  versa),  formed  in  character — or  they  cannot  influence 
others — and  in  all  ways  refined  in  thought  and  manner. 
If  they  are  also  able,  and  have  some  sparkle  of  originality 
about  them,  it  will  probably  help  them  to  strike  out  new 
paths  for  themselves.  I  do  not  mean  the  '  community 
idea'  to  crush  out  the  individual.  If  it  does,  the  highest 
work  becomes  impossible.  Our  duty  here,  utterly  dis- 
tanced as  far  as  numbers  are  concerned  by  American 
Nonconformity  of  all  sorts  and  kinds,  is  to  do  what  we  can 
by  God's  grace  of  the  highest  and  best. 

It  will  be  gathered  from  these  letters  that  offers  for 


238 


BISHOP  EDWARD  lilCKERSTETH 


St.  Hilda's  Mission  were  frequent,  and  so  they  were. 
Writing  (again  to  his  sister  May)  on  January  i8,  1891, 
the  Bishop  referred  to  this  as  follows  : 

Remember  that  an  offer  is  less  and  less  a  criterion  that 
a  person  is  fit.  It  is  so  easy  now  to  get  about  the  world  ; 
except  for  the  distance  from  England,  it  is  not  harder  or 
less  agreeable  to  live  in  Tokyo  than  in  London.  Work  (it 
is  true)  is  in  parts  here  hard  and  repulsive,  but  so  it  is  in 
'  Darkest  England '  ;  so  that,  taking  all  together,  offers  are 
likely  to  be  frequent  when  maintenance  is  provided,  and  so 
can  only  be  entertained  if  we  have  fullest  proof  of  physical, 
mental,  spiritual  competence,  besides  the  offer.  The  offer 
by  itself  goes  for  little,  though  it  seems  hard  to  say  so. 
Also  I  feel  more  and  more  that  the  only  persons  who  will 
really  do  for  us  are  ladies  from  refined  and  religious 
homes. 

With  regard  to  confession  ^  with  a  view  to  receiving 
private  absolution,  the  Bishop  was  often  asked  by  candi- 
dates to  declare  his  views,  and  they  may  be  clearly 
gathered  from  the  following  extracts  from  his  letters. 

The  letters  you  have  sent  give  me  a  fairly  full  view  of 

the  opinions  of  Miss  (presumably  those  which  she  has 

been  taught)  on  confession. 

I   understand   Miss   to   hold  that,  though  not 

essential  to  salvation,  confession  is  a  means  of  grace,  and 
that  as  such  it  should  be  pressed,  though  not  enforced  on 
all,  as  the  ordinary  channel  among  Catholic  Christians  of 
the  forgiveness  of  sins.  In  this  view  there  are  several 
serious  mistakes.  Confession  is  not,  except  in  the  most 
indirect  sense,  a  means  of  grace  but  a  method  of  discipline, 
and  therefore,  like  other  methods  of  discipline,  not  useful 
for  all  In  this  it  differs  from  absolution,  which  is  a 
covenanted  means  of  grace  and  for  all — whether  given,  as 
commonly,  in  connection  with  the  sacraments  or  apart 
from  them,  whether  pronounced  publicly  or  privately.  It 
follows  that  the  Christian  who  has  received  private  abso- 
lution possesses  no  greater  privilege,  though  possibly  as  an 
individual  more  comfort,  than  any  other  communicant. 

'  For  a  fuller  statement  of  his  views  on  this  subject  see  chapter  xi. ,  pp.  436-433. 


MISSIONARY  METHODS  AND  COMMUNITY  MISSIONS  239 


And  again,  that  whether  a  particular  person  should  or 
should  not  practise  private  confession  must  depend  on 
their  own  circumstances  and  needs. 

I  will  not  go  further  into  the  general  question  except  to 

add  that  were  the  view  which  Miss  has  been  taught 

correct,  not  only  would  Scripture  language  about  forgive- 
ness, the  sacraments,  &c.,  be  beyond  explanation,  but  the 
whole  Church  would  have  been  in  error  on  this  matter, 
theoretically,  till  late  in  the  middle  ages,  and  practically 
until  the  rise  of  the  Jesuits. 

I  cannot,  then,  both  for  her  own  sake  and  that  of  the 

mission,  accept  Miss  as  a  member  of  St.  Hilda's  if  I 

rightly  understand  her  view  of  confession  and  she  continues 
to  hold  it.  It  is  true  that  I  should  not  feel  her  holding 
this  view  an  obstacle  to  her  working  in  this  diocese  or  to 
my  supporting  her,  as  I  do  many  others  in  Japan  who  are 
only  partially  in  agreement  with  me.  But  at  St.  Hilda's 
I  act  as  warden  as  well  as  Bishop,  and  am  responsible 
for  the  teaching  given  in  a  special  degree.  I  wish  the 
members  to  be,  broadly  speaking,  prepared  to  accept  my 

teaching,  and  if  I  am  right  Miss  would  feel  herself 

precluded  from  doing  so  by  conscientious  convictions.  I 

shall  greatly  regret  losing  Miss  ,  as  her  letters  show  an 

earnest  and  straightforward  soul.  She  is  also  most  right 
in  holding  that  in  the  mission  field  the  whole  truth  should 
be  taught  without  prejudice.  But  in  this  instance  she  has 
been  led  to  add  to  the  CathoHc  faith  and  practice  points 
which  they  do  not  contain.  I  hope  she  may  feel  at  liberty 
to  reconsider  the  matter. 

Again  : 

After  reading  the  correspondence  about  Miss  

twice  over  carefully,  it  did  not  seem  to  me  that  there  was 
any  real  choice  left  to  me  in  the  matter.    As  I  understand 

it.  Miss  still  holds  that  confession  is,  not  a  practice 

useful  for  some  persons  or  some  states  and  circumstances 
of  life,  but  the  ordinary  condition  of  attaining  to  full 
spiritual  life,  and  that  as  such  it  ought  to  be  pressed  by  the 
clergy  on  all  persons  alike  who  come  under  their  charge. 
But  at  the  same  time,  as  a  'self-sacrifice,'  she  proposes  to 
keep  this  view  in  the  background  if  I  accept  her  as  a 
member  of  St.  Hilda's.  Now  I  must  say  that,  however 
well  meant,  this  arrangement  would  be  wholly  wanting  in 


240 


ISISIIOP  EDWARD  IJICKERSTETII 


moral  honesty  and  is  not  one  which  I  could  possibly 
sanction  or  agree  to.  If  confession  is  for  all  persons  alike 
God's  intended  and  prescribed  way  of  obtaining  forgiveness 
and  peace,  then  those  who  are  convinced  of  this  cannot  put 
such  a  truth  on  one  side  at  pleasure.  They  are  bound  to 
teach  it  everj-where  and  b\-  all  means  as  they  may  have 
opportunity.  Not  to  do  so  would  be  a  sin  against  God 
and  a  grievous  wrong  to  others.  The  view  may  be,  as  it 
is,  neither  Scriptural,  primitive,  nor  catholic,  but  this  would 
not  alter  their  obligation  as  long  as  they  held  it. 

It  will  thus  be  seen  that  the  mission  was  not  on  party 
lines,  and  the  Bishop  was  well  aware — no  one  more  so — 
of  the  strength  and  weakness  which  such  a  fact  implied. 
In  a  letter  to  Mr.  Lefroy,  dated  Karuizawa,  August  19, 
1 895,  he  wrote  : 

I  am  grieved  that  Cambridge  is  not  sending  you  more 
men  to  Delhi.  You  certainly  ought  by  this  time  to  be 
stronger  in  numbers.  The  actual  work  you  have  in  hand 
plainly  demands  it.  I  suppose  that  work  which  is  not 
laid  down  on  clearly  marked  party  lines  suffers  in  com- 
parison with  work  which  follows  them,  or  rather  seems  to 
suffer,  for  with  actual  success  or  failure  numbers  certainly 
have  no  necessary  connection.  But  for  the  '  seeming  to 
suffer  '  you  will  probably  lay  your  count  with  Lightfoot's 
saying,  '  You  will  have  done  more  for  the  Avorld  when  you 
leave  it.'  By  degrees  though,  notwithstanding,  I  do  hope 
and  trust  you  will  reach  to  a  dozen  men. 

St.  Hilda's  Mission  slowl}-  but  surely  strengthened 
itself  in  the  Lord,  eight  or  ten  English  ladies  joining 
within  the  first  few  years.  Isobe  San '  and  Sakai  San, 
two  Japanese  ladies  who  came  to  be  trained  in  evangelistic 
work,  were  also  admitted  as  members  of  the  mission  in 
March  1892.  Of  this  admission  the  Bishop  wrote  to  his 
father : 

On  Thursday  I  admitted  two  Japanese  ladies  as 
members  of  St.  Hilda's  Mission.    This  is  a  new  step  out 

'  Isobe  San  has  since  married  the  Rev.  P.  Yamada. 


MISSIONARY  METHODS  AND  COMMUNITY  MISSIONS    24 1 


here.  They  arc  not  bound  for  life,  but  both  hope  to 
remain  in  the  work.  I  used  the  same  service  (only  in 
Japanese)  as  that  with  which  the  foreign  members  arc 
admitted. 

The  Bishop  lost  no  time  in  providing  for  the  proper 
housing  of  the  mission.  He  secured  a  large  site,  and 
erected  upon  it  a  House  for  the  workers  and  the  High 
School  (Ladies).  This  House '  has  twice  been  added  to, 
and  in  the  same  compound  stand  the  Training  House  for 
Mission  Women,  the  Embroidery  School,  the  Orphanage, 
and  Orphanage  School,  while  within  a  few  minutes'  walk 
is  a  dispensary  which  contains  four  beds  for  urgent  cases. 
Some  of  these  have  been  erected  by  the  contributions  of 
St.  Paul's  Guild  (aided  by  grants  from  the  Society  for 
Promoting  Christian  Knowledge),  and  some  are  private 
gifts,  the  present  Mission  Women's  Home  being  a  memorial 
of  Canon  Thornton  of  Truro  and  one  of  his  daughters, 
and  the  Orphanage  and  Orphanage  School  having  been 
erected  by  the  well-known  lady  traveller,  Mrs.  J.  F. 
Bishop,  F.R.G.S.,  in  memory  of  her  husband.  Dr.  John 
Bishop,  whose  name  they  bear. 

In  a  letter  to  the  Guild  of  St.  Paul  from  Tokushima, 
July  5,  1889,  after  referring  to  the  growth  of  St.  Hilda's 
in  detail,  and  specially  to  the  projected  Training  Home 
for  Mission  Women,  the  Bishop  wrote  : 

Let  me  only  say  that  the  native  mission  woman  seems 
to  me  as  necessary  to  the  effectiveness  of  the  foreign 
missionary  lady  as  the  catechist  to  the  work  of  the  foreign 
clergyman.  This  principle  has  only  recently  been  under- 
stood, or  at  least  acted  upon  ;  homes  for  the  training  of 
such  workers,  who  might  be  drawn  surely  from  the  higher 

'  One  of  the  members,  writing  in  August  1889,  says  :  '  I  wish  you  could  see 
St.  Hilda's  House.  It  is  beautifully  situated  and  very  spacious.  1  always  say 
we  ought  to  be  specially  good  workers,  for  we  certainly  have  a  specially  beauti- 
ful mission  house,  and  special  spiritual  help  in  the  care  and  prayers  the 
mission  receives  at  home  and  in  Japan  itself.' 

R 


242 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


as  well  as  or  better  than  from  the  lower  ranks  of  Eastern 
Society,  are  only  just  being  established.^  Our  sister 
mission  from  the  American  Church  has  one  such  home 
at  Osaka.  The  Church  Missionary  Society  will  establish 
one,  I  hope,  shortly.  The  difficulty  at  first  is  to  get  persons 
to  be  trained,  but  this  will  be  got  over  as  congregations  get 
more  numerous  and  stronger.  With  this  training  will  be 
linked  direct  evangelistic  work,  both  in  Tokyo  and  beyond. 

If  you  run  through  the  work  in  hand  you  will  feel, 
I  think,  two  things :  first,  that  we  have  much  reason 
to  be  thankful  for  the  result  of  two  years'  effort ;  and, 
secondly,  that  we  cannot  be  content  with  these  beginnings. 
This  is  the  only  word  we  have  the  least  right  to  use  at 
present,  but  it  suggests  incompleteness,  progress,  advance  ; 
new  tiers  and  stones,  fresh  workers,  and  then,  some  day 
but  not  now,  crownings  and  endings.  .  .  . 

...  I  have  no  desire  to  make  little  of  the  demands  on 
your  prayers  and  self-denial  which  all  this  suggests,  but 
there  is  surely  great  encouragement  in  the  thought  of  how 
these  new  claims  have  arisen.  Two  years  ago  I  was 
asking  your  help  because  a  large  field  was  all  but  vacant. 
Now  work  done  has  itself  created  nev/  wants.  Then  we 
had  to  originate,  now  we  are  called  on  to  develop.  I  heard 
a  native  deacon  last  night  talking  about  '  hot  believers.' 
Such  a  development  of  St.  Andrew's  and  St.  Hilda's 
as  I  have  suggested  is  a  mere  fragment  of  that  which 
the  English  Church  might  do  in  the  East  if  once  her  love 
was  at  a  '  white  heat'  May  God  give  us  His  Holy  Spirit, 
the  spirit  of  liberality,  self-sacrifice,  love. 

The  dedication  of  St.  Hilda's  Chapel  on  the  eve  of  St. 
Michael  and  All  Angels  1889  was  a  bright  event,  of  which 
the  following  account  is  taken  from  the  '  Japan  Daily 
Mail '  : 

The  chapel  is  a  large  room  constructed  to  hold  almost 
a  hundred  worshippers,  and,  though  the  fittings  are  hardly 
completed,  the  lights,  the  tasteful  decorations,  especially  at 
the  east  end,  and  the  large  congregation  present  on  the 
occasion,  combined  to  give  it  a  very  festal  appearance.  As 

'  Miss  Hoar,  of  the  Ladies'  Association  S.P.G.,  had  for  many  years  past 
received  Japanese  girls  and  women  into  her  onm  house,  and  carefully  trained 
them  as  workers. 


MISSIONARY  METHODS  AND  COMMUNITY  MISSIONS  243 


the  Bishop  entered  the  chapel,  the  Venerable  Archdeacon 
Shaw  presented  the  petition  from  the  members  of  the 
mission  for  the  dedication  ;  after  which  the  Bishop  and  a 
procession  of  eleven  clergy  walked  up  the  chapel  repeating 
the  24th  Psalm.  The  Bishop  then  proceeded  to  dedicate 
the  chapel,  using  the  well  known  prayers  by  Bishop 
Andrewes  with  special  collects,  and  Evensong  followed. 

I  append  the  Bishop's  address  verbatim  as  a  good 
illustration  of  his  happy  instinct  in  blending  together 
things  new  and  old,  and  as  exhibiting  the  characteristic 
ideal  which  he  set  before  the  workers. 

We  have  met  to  celebrate  the  dedication  of  this  chapel, 
and  the  opening  of  a  dispensary  in  this  mission  of  St. 
Hilda.  A  great  name  cannot  be  selected  from  the  records 
of  the  Church  and  used  to  designate  some  new  venture  of 
faith  without  incurring  a  responsibility.  So  soon  as  you 
have  adopted  it,  it  becomes  more  than  a  mere  title.  Men 
do  not  err  if  they  institute  some  sort  of  comparison 
between  the  life  and  work  of  the  past  and  of  the  present 
which  the  name  links. 

Now  St.  Hilda  was  no  ordinary  character.  Of  the 
royal  line  of  Northumbria,  grand  niece  of  Edwin,  she  was 
baptised  with  the  king  on  Easter  Eve  in  the  year  627,  the 
birthday,  as  it  has  been  well  called,  of  the  Northumbrian 
Church.  Twenty  years  later  we  find  her  the  Superior  of  a 
small  community  on  the  banks  of  the  Wear,  herself  the  pupil 
at  the  same  time  of  Aidan,  the  wisest  perhaps,  as  the  most 
lovable,  of  the  founders  of  the  English  Church.  Yet  ten 
years  later  and  she  has  established  the  great  religious 
house,  with  which  her  fame  is  so  closely  connected,  by  the 
Bay  of  the  Lighthouse,  as  it  was  then  called,  on  the  bold 
Yorkshire  coast.  There  it  was,  as  Bcde  her  biographer 
tells  us,  she  taught  her  companions  to  practise  thoroughly 
all  virtues,  but  especially  peace  and  love.  There  she  bade 
them  serve  the  Lord  while  they  had  health,  and  under 
adversity  or  bodily  infirmity  to  render  thanks  to  Him. 
On  the  altar  of  their  chapel,  covered  with  a  fair  white 
cloth,  lay  a  costly  copy  of  the  Gospels  with  a  sapphire  set 
in  the  golden  cover,  and  her  constant  instruction  to  them 
was  to  give  much  time  to  the  study  of  Scripture  as  well  as 
much  to  the  practice  of  the  works  of  light.    So  well  were 


R  2 


244 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


her  words  obeyed  that  her  conventual  house  became  the 
chief  centre  of  education  and  of  charitable  deeds  in  all 
that  part  of  the  land.  There,  in  the  words  of  a  modern 
authoress,  '  she  diffused  life  and  beautiful  order  around  her.' 
There  came  the  Greek  Theodore,  the  Archbishop,  pilgrims 
from  Jerusalem  and  Rome,  kings  and  great  men  to  seek 
her  counsel.  And  there,  when  she  had  completed  nearly 
a  quarter  of  a  century  of  toil,  after  receiving  with  the 
handmaidens  of  Christ  the  viaticum  of  the  most  Holy 
Communion  and  giving  them  her  last  admonitions  to  live 
in  evangelical  peace  with  each  other  and  all,  she  passed,  as 
Bede  tells  us,  from  death  unto  life. 

Certainly,  I  repeat,  St.  Hilda  was  no  ordinary  character, 
and  hers  no  common  achievements.  Have  we  done  well  to 
connect  with  so  great  a  name  a  work  and  enterprise  which  is 
as  yet  but  in  its  earliest  days  and  has  no  triumphs  to  record  ? 
I  think  so,  for  if  a  name  is  a  responsibility,  it  is  also  both 
a  lesson  and  an  inspiration.  It  may  be  so  emphaticall)- 
with  this  name.  We  cannot  use  it  w-ithout  being  reminded 
that  we  fall  short  of  our  privilege  when  we  fail  to  claim 
as  our  own  the  great  and  good  of  the  past  Christian  ages. 
We  are  linked  with  them  by  the  unbroken  continuity  of 
our  communion  through  unparalleled  crises.  They  arc- 
one  with  us  in  the  Body  of  Christ.  We  cannot  use  it 
without  being  reminded  that  we  claim  to  be  partakers  of 
the  same  Spirit,  Who  made  them  wholly  to  be  what  thc}^ 
were.  There  is  no  eminence  of  past  attainment  which 
might  not  be  reached  to-day.  We  cannot  use  it  without 
being  led  to  study  sympathetically  their  modes  of  life  and 
their  methods  of  work.  True,  it  were  idle  to  think  of 
reproducing  the  past  in  the  exactness  of  external  circum- 
stances or  manner  of  thought.  Our  lives  and  work  will 
probably  differ  as  much  from  theirs  as  the  England  or  even 
the  Japan  of  to-day  from  the  England  of  the  time  of  King 
Edwin.  But  we  do  believe  that  the  Christ,  Who  called 
men  and  women  to  be  the  vessels  and  organs  of  His  grace 
for  the  work  of  missions  in  our  own  land  twelve  centuries 
ago,  calls  and  endows  them  still.  We  do  believe  that  the 
Christ,  Who  made  use  of  the  manifold  virtues  of  an 
Augustine,  an  Aidan,  a  Wilfred,  a  Hilda,  their  wisdom  and 
love  and  skill,  to  bring  England  to  the  faith,  will  by  the 
same  Gospel  which  they  preached,  set — let  us  pray — in  not 
unlike  lives,  bring  to  Himself  the  great  nations  of  the  East. 


MISSIONARY  METHODS  AND  COMMUNITY  MISSIONS  245 


We  do  believe  that  the  history  of  their  Hvcs  and  work  is 
written  for  our  example,  that,  to  take  one  instance  out  of 
many,  as  large  room  and  place  was  found  then  for  com- 
munities of  men  and  women,  wholly  dedicated  to  the  work 
of  the  Lord,  so  there  is  like  place  for  them  still  in  the 
multiform  organisation  of  the  modern  Church. 

And  such  conclusions  are  rather  emphasised  than  em- 
barrassed by  the  greater  difficulty  of  the  task  committed 
to  us.  If  storied  systems  of  belief  and  ancient  philo- 
sophies, as  in  India,  and  the  modern  spirit  claiming,  as  in 
this  country  and  our  own,  to  banish  God  to  the  very  con- 
fines of  His  universe,  present  a  far  vaster  and  more  intri- 
cate problem  to  the  Church  to-day  than  the  mere  ignorant 
idolatries  of  the  seventh  century,  the  more  need  to  fall 
back  on  our  belief  in  the  abiding  Presence  of  the  Christ, 
the  more  need  to  make  use  of  every  means  which  experi- 
ence has  sanctioned. 

To  you,  my  sisters,  the  members  of  this  mission,  is 
given  a  share  in  this  work  and  in  the  inspiring  hope  of  its 
accomplishment.  You  have  been  made  partakers  of  His 
povv^er  Who  animated  those  earlier  workers.  You  use  in 
part  the  very  methods  which  they  found  effectual,  See 
that  in  this  chapel,  now  dedicated  to  the  worship  of  God, 
you  continually  refresh  your  innermost  being  at  the  springs 
of  grace.  Let  it  be  to  you  a  sanctuary  where  you  meet 
Him  in  Whom  you  live,  for  Whose  glory  you  work. 
Count  not  the  hours  spent  here  to  be  other  than  the  very 
condition  of  successful  service.  Nor  let  yours  be  mere 
selfish  devotions.  Remember  one  another  at  the  throne 
of  grace,  and  the  wider  interests  of  the  Church. 

So  shall  evangelical  peace  be  yours  with  each  other  and 
with  all  men.  So  shall  you  make  large  progress  in  the 
study  of  the  Divine  Wisdom.  So  shall  you  hold  out  to 
many  the  example  of  the  works  of  light,  and  win  many  to 
the  obedience  of  the  faith. 

And  let  me  remind  you  to-night  that  you  are  supported 
by  the  constant  prayers  of  very  many  :  the  sisters  who 
work  around  the  latest  built  of  our  English  cathedrals  ; 
the  deaconesses  who  toil  amid  the  masses  of  our  great 
metropolis  ;  the  members  of  our  Guild,  some  present  with 
us  here  to-day,  but  to  be  counted  now  by  many  hundreds 
and  in  various  lands. 

May  your  life  and  work  be  worthy  of  your  special,  your 


246 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


unique  vocation.  Let  the  love  of  Christ  constrain  you 
See  that  ye  love  one  another  with  a  pure  heart  fervently. 
Obey  them  that  have  the  rule  over  you.  Grow  in  grace 
and  humility.  Set  before  men  the  example  of  simplicity 
of  life,  nobility  of  thinking,  strength  of  faith  ;  and  your 
reward  shall  be  the  love  of  the  souls  whom  you  have  won 
to  God,  the  peace  of  God  here,  and  at  the  last  the  Master's 
welcome. 

Among  the  works  set  on  foot  by  the  Bishop  through 
St.  Hilda's  Mission  may  be  mentioned  :  (a)  the  school  for 
girls,  (d)  the  Home  for  Training  Mission  Women,  (c)  the 
hospital  and  medical  work,  (d)  the  orphanage,  (e)  the 
Needlework  and  Embroidery  School,  (/)  evangelistic 
visiting  of  particular  districts. 

The  educational  work  in  the  school  for  girls  at  Tokyo, 
as  well  as  in  Bishop  Poole's  Memorial  School  at  Osaka, 
was  directed  towards  meeting  the  need  which  Christian 
education  alone  can  supply.  In  St.  Hilda's  School  at  first 
scarcely  any  of  the  pupils  were  Christian,  so  the  baptism  at 
rare  intervals  of  those  who  wished  to  accept  Christ  and  to 
confess  Him  as  their  Saviour  made  red-letter  days  in  the 
history  of  the  mission.  The  Bishop  used  to  rejoice  in  such 
days,  and  entered  with  spirit  into  the  social  festivities  by 
which  they  were  marked. 

One  of  the  workers  writes  : 

Christmas  Day,  1889,  will  be  long  remembered  in 
St.  Hilda's  Mission  as  a  day  of  first-fruits  in  connection 
with  the  school. 

At  the  9  A.M.  Japanese  matins,  five  out  of  our  pupils 
were  baptised,  together  with  eleven  other  adults. 

On  December  20  school  closed,  and  by  Christmas 
Eve  the  large  schoolroom  was  in  festive  dress,  bright  red 
berries,  evergreens  and  chrysanthemums  ;  in  the  centre,  a 
large  picture  of  the  Nativity,  with  the  Union  Jack  on  one 
side  and  the  Japanese  flag  on  the  other,  meeting  overhead 
(typical  of  the  union  of  the  two  nations  in  the  Christ), 
and  surmounted  by  a  cross  of  evergreens  and  red  berries. 


MISSIONARY  METHODS  AND  COMMUNITY  MISSIONS  247 


On  Christmas  Day,  at  10  o'clock,  a  party  of  twenty- 
seven  (twenty-two  of  whom  were  Japanese)  sat  down 
in  St.  Hilda's  schoolroom  to  quite  orthodox  Christmas 
fare — turkey,  plum  pudding,  nuts,  almonds  and  raisins, 
crackers,  &c. 

A  very  happy  party  we  were  with  our  Bishop  (St. 
Hilda's  Warden)  at  the  head  of  the  long  table.  At  4  P.M. 
came  Evensong,  and  the  beautiful  Christmas  hymns  in 
Japanese,  in  St.  Andrew's  Church  ;  then  at  6  P.M.  tea, 
cakes,  and  an  entertainment  in  St.  Andrew's  schoolroom. 
Next  day  our  guests,  who  had  arrived  Christmas  Eve,  left, 
to  carry  into  their  own  homes,  we  hope,  some  of  the  true 
Christmas  joy. 

On  January  9  the  whole  school,  St.  Hilda's  members 
and  teachers  (thirty-nine  persons),  mustered  at  the  Bishop's 
house  for  a  most  enjoyable  evening  (6  to  9  o'clock).  A 
bran  pie,  music,  photographs,  the  giving  of  the  presents, 
and  the  Swedish  dance  made  the  evening  slip  rapidly 
away. 

The  days  when  confirmation  was  administered  were 
also  times  of  deep  spiritual  joy,  and  many  outside  St. 
Hilda's  will  feel  indebted  to  one  of  the  pupils  of  the  school 
for  the  graceful  eastern  imagery  in  which  she  expressed 
her  joy,  '  My  heart  feels  like  a  bird  let  loose  in  a  field ' 
being  the  words  in  which  she  showed  her  appreciation 
of  the  freedom  wherewith  Christ  had  made  her  free. 
It  was  precisely  this  ordered  sense  of  liberty  which  the 
Bishop  was  so  anxious  to  secure.  The  '  foreign  style ' 
extolled  in  novels  and  exhibited  by  some  globe-trotters 
was  threatening  havoc,  not  only  to  the  false  and  foolish 
elements  of  the  national  religions,  which  had  been  hitherto 
unassailed  by  western  ideas,  but  also  to  the  filial  piety  and 
dutiful  obedience  which  were  the  salt  of  these  religions. 
Secular  education,  in  exposing  the  inherent  weakness 
of  the  false  faiths,  tended  to  persuade  their  adherents 
that  their  strict  ideas  of  parental  authority  were  unneces- 
sary^  so  that  the  social  independence  of  women,  unbalanced 


248 


BISHOP  EDWARD  ISICKERSTETII 


by  the  gradual  training  of  centuries  of  Christian  Hfe  and 
teaching,  was  a  doctrine  openly  proclaimed. 

The  efforts  on  the  part  of  the  missionaries  to  solve 
this  problem  by  setting  before  the  Japanese  an  ideal  of 
Christian  womanhood,  with  its  restraints  as  well  as  its 
liberty,  led  the  '  Hoshi  Shimbun  '  (a  Japanese  newspaper 
quoted  in  the  '  Times  '  in  1890)  to  draw  the  attention  of  its 
readers  to  the  progress  of  Christianity  in  Japan  in  the 
following  words  : 

There  is  nothing  striking  about  the  number  of 
converts  added  each  year  to  the  roll  of  Japanese  Christians, 
nor  about  the  increase  of  propagandists  and  their  ministra- 
tions. But,  on  the  other  hand,  the  foreign  faith  advances 
surely  and  steadily,  planting  its  feet  firmly  as  it  goes,  and 
never  retrograding  for  an  instant.  To  estimate  its  develop- 
ment, observation  for  a  week  or  month  is  insufficient ; 
observation  for  half  a  year  or  more  will  discover  that  what 
it  lacks  in  extent  it  gains  in  stability.  Diligence  in  the 
cause  of  female  education  and  untiring  efforts  to  improve 
the  status  of  Japanese  women  are  already  discernible 
effects  of  the  progress  it  is  making.  Christianity  will 
ultimately  attain  to  power  by  gradual  and  steady  accumula- 
tion of  merits,  and  if  it  progresses  at  its  present  rate  its 
future  is  secured. 

The  sincerity  of  this  article  was  attested  by  the  fact 
that  it  concluded  with  '  a  call  to  Buddhists  to  bestir  them- 
selves in  the  cause  of  their  faith,'  and  with  the  warning  that 
'  they  cannot  meet  the  crisis  by  indulging  in  slanderous 
diatribes  against  Christianity  at  their  anti-Christian  meet- 
ings.' 

The  medical  side  of  the  work  of  St.  Hilda's  Mission 
was  started  in  1888  and  soon  included  a  hospital  with  its 
twenty  beds  and  two  dispensaries  which  are  centres  for 
district  nursing  in  different  parts  of  the  city.  The  impor- 
tance of  this  form  of  work  as  an  evangelistic  agency  in 
Japan  is  very  great,  and  testimony  is  borne  to  it  by  the 


MISSIONARY  METHODS  AND  COMMUNITY  MISSIONS  249 


general  secretary  of  St.  Paul's  Guild,'  who  when  in  Japan 
in  1 891  describes  it  as  follows  : 

Passing  under  the  red  cross  on  the  lantern,  the  sign  that  we 
had  reached  our  destination,  and,  bowing  low,  we  entered 
the  house  :  no  front  door,  no  hall,  but,  taking  off  our  shoes, 
we  stepped  straight  from  the  street  on  the  floor  of  the 
house  raised  a  foot  or  two  above  the  ground.  .  .  .  The 
patients,  men,  women,  and  children,  sat  on  the  floor  of  the 
outer  room,  the  very  poorest  of  the  poor,  but  they  never 
seemed  to  lose  their  quiet  courtesy  to  each  other  or  to  us. 
I  sat  there  for  about  an  hour  and  a  half,  and  I  felt  that 
here  indeed  the  Guild  was  already  being  rewarded  tenfold 
for  anything  it  is  doing  to  further  such  work  in  Japan. 
After  the  medicines  had  been  dispensed,  Miss  Thornton  sat 
among  the  patients  and  taught  them  very  simply,  and  the 
look  of  interest  deepened  on  their  faces  as  she  proceeded, 
and  I  think  they  would  have  listened  for  hours. 

The  English  nurse  was  able  to  write  of  her  patients  : 

There  is  scarcely  a  nation  in  the  world  who  bear  pain 
as  well  as  the  Japanese,  so  those  whose  privilege  it  is 
either  to  nurse  or  doctor  them  are  struck  with  the  calm 
patience  with  which  they  bear  pain  and  discomfort, 
especially  in  poverty. 

But  the  Bishop  never  lost  sight,  nor  would  allow  his 
workers  to  lose  sight,  of  direct  evangelistic  work,  and  he 
endeavoured  to  further  this  in  Tokyo,  not  only  by  the 
establishment  of  branch  houses  from  St.  Andrew's  Mission, 
but  also  by  diligent,  house-to-house  visiting  of  certain 
districts  through  the  ladies  of  St.  Hilda's  Mission.  He 
felt  that  the  work  of  teaching  and  helping  those  already 
Christians  was  of  first  importance,  as  when  the  Japanese 
became  earnest  and  growing  Christians  they  could  do  so 
much  more  than  foreigners  among  their  own  people. 
Therefore  the  St.  Hilda's  ladies  took  Bible  classes  for 
Christian  women  and  visited  them  diligently  in  their 

'  Miss  May  Bickersteth. 


250 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


homes,  while  efforts  to  reach  the  women  still  not  converts 
were  not  neglected. 

The  Guild  of  St.  Paul  was  directly  responsible  for  the 
financial  support  of  these  special  missions,  and  the  Bishop 
always  maintained  that  it  was  possible  to  work  such  special 
funds  in  perfect  loyalty  to  the  older  societies.  He  would 
not  admit  that  money  partly  given  out  of  local  interest  or  on 
personal  grounds  deflected  any  stream  of  support  which 
would  have  otherwise  come  to  the  S.P.G.  or  C.M.S.  On 
the  contrary  he  maintained  that  it  unsealed  fresh  springs 
of  support  and  enthusiasm,  diffusing  a  wider  and  more 
detailed  information  of  a  particular  mission,  thus  reacting 
in  the  long  run  on  the  general  sense  of  responsibility  for 
foreign  missions,  and  enkindling  in  the  whole  Church  a 
quickened  enthusiasm  for  fulfilling  her  Lord's  command. 

The  Bishop  felt  the  necessity  of  having  some  fund 
upon  which  he  could  draw  for  those  works  which  in  his 
judgment — formed  on  the  spot — required  immediate  atten- 
tion. 

The  income  of  St.  Paul's  Guild  has  been  over  2,000/. 
annually  for  some  years  past,  the  minimum  subscription 
of  its  members  being  2s.  6d.  Its  accounts  are  strictly 
audited  every  year,  and  a  balance  sheet  published.  No  one 
can  estimate  the  support  to  the  evangelisation  of  Japan 
which  has  come  from  the  systematic  prayers  and  interces- 
sions offered  corporately  and  individually  by  the  members 
of  the  Guild,  nor  tell  how  inspiriting  has  been  the  enthu- 
siasm of  its  large  body  of  voluntary  secretaries  who  work 
the  different  branches  in  England  and  beyond  it. 

All  these  schemes  were  thought  out  and  started  on  a 
'  plan '  in  the  spirit  of  the  quotation  placed  at  the 
head  of  this  chapter,  though  according  to  shortsighted 
human  wisdom  they  seemed  to  need  for  a  few  years 
longer  Bishop  Bickersteth's  fostering  and  inspiring  super- 


MISSIONARY  METHODS  AND  COMMUNITY  MISSIONS    25 1 


intendence  in  order  that  they  might  develop  strongly. 
The  real  answer  to  such  fond  regrets  is  perhaps  best 
given  in  some  words  of  his  own,  written  on  July  i,  1889,  on 
hearing  in  Japan  of  the  death  of  one  of  the  sisters  of  the 
Community  of  the  Epiphany  at  Truro.    He  wrote  : 

Tell  the  Mother  Superior  how  much  I  sympathise — 
not  that  they  will  really  be  the  losers  for  being  directly 
represented  in  that  other  world,  which  perhaps  is  nearer 
than  we  know. 

Moreover,  the  sagacity  of  his  successor  (Dr.  Awdry),  the 
present  Bishop  of  South  Tokyo,  is  another  guarantee  that 
the  missions  will  not  lack  sympathy  and  discriminating 
direction. 

In  concluding  this  chapter,  the  recollections  kindly 
contributed  by  Miss  Thornton  and  Miss  Bullock  may  fitly 
find  a  place.  The  no  less  valuable  appreciation  sent  by 
the  Rev.  F.  Armine  King,  Head  of  St.  Andrew's  Mission, 
has  been  purposely  placed  at  the  close  of  chapter  xi. 

Recollections  by  Miss  Thornton,  Member  in  charge  0/ 
Evangelistic  Work  of  St.  Hilda's  Mission 

Bishop  Bickersteth  had  already  planned  the  establish- 
ment of  an  '  associated  mission  of  women  workers  '  before 
he  left  England  to  enter  on  his  work  in  Japan.  In  1886  I 
received  a  letter  from  him,  written  on  his  way  out,  telling 
me  that  he  wished  to  start  such  a  mission  of  ladies  work- 
ing together  under  a  common  rule,  and  asking  me  if  I 
would  join  it,  which  I  did  in  the  following  year. 

Except  for  his  few  years  in  India  the  Bishop  had,  I 
believe,  no  practical  experience  in  '  common  '  life  of  any  sort, 
and  neither  had  we  who  came  to  the  mission.  It  was  an 
experiment,  and  very  great  were  the  difficulties,  mistakes, 
and  troubles  of  the  first  few  years.  But  his  great  hopeful- 
ness and  large  faith  in  the  power  of  goodness  to  conquer 
carried  us  through  them  all,  till  at  last  St.  Hilda's  Mission 
passed  into  quieter  waters. 

,,  Personally  I  never  gained  more  from  him  than  during 


252 


BLSIIOP  EDWARD  l!ICKEKSTf:Tri 


those  years  of  trouble.  His  endless  patience  and  goodness 
to  us  when  we  were  acting  wrongly,  together  with  his  high 
standard  of  what  we  ought  to  be,  did  much  to  change  my 
whole  view  of  life.  Nor  did  he  only  train  us  in  the 
spiritual  life,  though  that  was  ever  first  with  him.  He 
took  care  also  to  train  our  minds  to  right  thinking  on 
matters  of  theology.  He  spoke  to  us  on  these  matters, 
not  as  he  might  have  done  as  from  above,  but  as  mind 
meeting  mind,  expecting  us  to  be  interested  in  what  was 
interesting  him  ;  giving  us  great  thoughts  in  their  great- 
ness, and  so  leading  some  of  us  at  least  to  desire  to  know 
more. 

One  of  the  things  which  most  impressed  us  in  the 
Bishop  was  his  chivalrous  care  and  thought  for  the 
physical  well  being  of  all  his  women  workers.  Naturally, 
we  of  St.  Hilda's  Mission  had  most  often  reason  to  feel 
this,  but  throughout  his  diocese  it  was  the  same.  If  he 
came  across  ladies  working  in  the  country,  he  noticed  at 
once  if  they  were  not  comfortably  housed,  or  if  they  were 
lonely  or  out  of  health,  and  he  never  forgot  in  the  press  of 
other  business  to  remedy  what  was  wrong.  Several  times 
after  a  tour  in  his  diocese  he  has  said  to  me  on  his  return  : 
'  So-and-so  wants  a  change  ;  will  you  write  and  ask  her  to 
come  and  sta}'  with  you  ?  ' 

Nor  with  all  the  claims  of  his  large  diocese  did  he  ever 
fail  to  find  time  to  minister  to  those  who  were  sick,  whether 
among  his  own  body  of  workers  or  among  the  English 
residents  in  Japan.  And  most  beautiful,  strong,  and  tender 
were  those  ministrations. 

I  like,  perhaps,  most  to  remember  him  as  the  master 
under  whom  I  worked.  Himself  keen,  full  of  enthusiasm, 
and  with  numberless  plans  of  work  in  his  head,  he  always 
had  room  for  the  thoughts  and  plans  of  his  workers  and 
met  them  with  generosity  and  sympathy.  But  he  de- 
manded one's  best,  and  claimed  that  one's  whole  self 
should  be  given  to  the  work. 

E.  Thornton. 

Recollections  by  Miss  Bullock,  the  Member  now  in  charge  of 
St.  Hilda's  Mission 

When  I  came  out  to  St.  Hilda's  in  1891  the  mission 
was  already  four  years  old.    I  was  quite  unexpectedly  put 


MISSIONARY  METHODS  AND  COMMUNITY  MISSIONS  253 


in  charge  three  months  afterwards,  and  was  therefore 
untrained  and  unprepared.  But  from  the  beginning  our 
Bishop  was  to  us  all  a  true  father  in  God,  and  I  ever  found 
him,  in  small  things  as  well  as  in  great,  a  most  kind  and 
sympathetic  guide  and  friend.  His  high  standard  of  what 
was  right  seemed  to  lift  one  up,  and  make  one  feel  that  it 
was  possible  only  to  aim  at  the  highest.  One  thing  that 
specially  helped  me  in  his  quiet  talks  and  kindly  advice 
was  his  warning  against  being  over  anxious  and  busy  ;  he 
spoke  so  much  of  the  need  of  recollectedness.  When  he 
was  in  Tokyo  he  used  himself  to  take  the  weekly  Evensong 
in  our  own  chapek  when,  as  also  on  our  Quiet  Days,  the 
addresses  he  gave  us  were  full  of  value.  Whether  his 
subject  was  a  character,  or  an  epistle,  or  some  passages  in 
the  life  of  our  Lord,  he  made  it  live  for  those  he  was 
addressing,  sometimes  we  have  felt  with  an  almost 
startling  intuition  of  individual  needs. 

This  was  also  noticed  with  our  Japanese  heads  of 
departments  and  other  workers.  For  these  he  might  con- 
ceivably have  been  a  distant  force,  as  it  were,  behind  our- 
selves. Instead  he  was  a  very  real  friend  to  each,  and 
they  recognised  his  personality  :  how  much  this  was  so 
came  out  chiefly  after  he  was  taken  from  us. 

His  great  power  of  organisation  penetrated  even  into 
the  details  of  our  various  works.  As,  for  instance,  the  little 
service  used  daily  on  opening  the  school  was  revised  on 
lines  laid  down  by  him  in  such  a  way  that  to  his  initiative 
is  due  a  marked  raising  of  the  religious  tone  amongst  the 
pupils.  This  has  recently  shown  itself  in  a  number  of 
definite  requests  for  baptism. 

Again,  his  love  for  children  was  shown  in  his  thought 
for  our  little  orphans.  On  his  visits  to  us  he  would  often 
preferably  pass  through  their  playground  ;  and  an  invita- 
tion to  play  in  the  garden  at  l^ishopstowe  or  a  visit  to  the 
country  were  pleasures  he  often  brought  into  the  children's 
lives. 

E.  Bullock. 


254 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


CHAPTER  VIII 

A   MISSIONARY    BISHOP'S  LIFE 
1 888-1 893 

'  We  are  Christians  of  the  nineteenth  century,  not  of  the  first,  and  must 
not  neglect  our  heritage.  Join  me  in  the  prayer  that  God  may  enable  our 
Church  to  guard  the  heritage  which  He  has  committed  to  us.' — Letter 
from  Bishop  Edward  Bickersteth  to  the  Rei'.  B.  Terasawa,  December  31, 
1887. 

It  was  on  St.  Andrew's  day  1888  that  the  Bishop  again 
set  foot  in  Japan,  ready  to  obey  the  caUing  of  Jesus  Christ, 
and  to  follow  Him  without  delay.  He  '  forthwith '  gave 
himself  up  to  the  engrossing  interests  of  his  work. 
The  baptised  Japanese  Christians  then  under  his  epis- 
copal supervision  were  1,989  in  number,  831  of  them 
being  communicants.  During  1888,  548  adults  and  173 
children  had  been  baptised.  There  were  twenty-six 
ordained  missionaries  and  five  Japanese  deacons,  also 
twenty-one  English  ladies  and  four  laymen  working  in 
connection  with  the  mission.  Besides  these  there  were 
twenty-four  catechists,  twenty-one  native  teachers,  and  six 
divinity  students.    The  Bishop  wrote  at  this  time : 

The  great  disparity  between  the  number  of  Christians 
and  communicants  may  be  partly,  though  I  fear  not  wholly, 
explained  by  the  large  number  who  were  awaiting  con- 
firmation at  the  beginning  of  the  year.  The  number  of 
baptisms  represents  the  addition  through  missions  of  the 
Church  of  England  to  the  roll-call  of  the  Nippon  Sei 
Kokwai.    It  is  a  source  of  constant  gratification  that  in 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     1 888- 1 893  255 


labouring  for  the  interests  of  this  nascent  communion  we 
are  associated  closely  with  our  American  fellow-Church- 
men. 

Christmas  brought  its  customary  opportunities  for 
realising  Christian  fellowship,  and  the  Bishop  wrote  to  his 
father  : 

Tokyo  :  December  26,  1888. 

We  had  a  bright  Christmas,  though  at  no  time  does 
one  long  more  for  England  and  home,  and  it  is  hard  to 
believe  that  only  two  months  have  run  by  since  I  left 
you. 

On  the  morning  of  Christmas  Day  I  attended  a  Japanese 
service  at  which  there  were  some  twenty  baptisms,  includ- 
ing that  of  my  cook  and  his  two  children.  His  wife  has 
been  a  Christian  for  some  time.  It  would  be  better,  I  think, 
to  have  these  baptisms  on  Christmas  Eve  '  after  the  old 
custom,  but  the  habit  has  been  otherwise  here.  Then  I 
preached  and  celebrated  at  the  English  service,  taking  as 
my  text  Jude  20,  21,  'your  most  holy  faith,'  the  Incarna- 
tion its  centre,  and  the  bearing  of  this  on  devotion,  '  praying 
in  the  Holy  Ghost'  Afterwards  I  ran  round  to  the  various 
mission  houses.  At  4  o'clock  two  St.  Hilda's  ladies  and 
one  or  two  others  came  to  tea.  At  5  I  preached  at 
Kyobashi,  one  of  our  city  churches,  at  which  the  Institute 
ladies  now  help  in  the  music.  At  7  all  the  Shaw  party, 
Mrs.  Kirkes,  Miss  MacRae,  and  the  other  Institute 
mistresses,  and  Miss  Braxton  Hicks  came  to  dinner. 
When  this  was  over  I  left  Cholmondeley  and  King  to 
entertain  them,  and  went  to  see  Nurse  Grace  and  have  tea 
and  a  short  Evensong  at  St.  Hilda's,  so  I  managed  to  see 
something  of  all  my  flock  in  this  part  of  Tokyo  during  the 
day. 

On  the  advisability  of  one  in  his  position  entertaining 
socially  some  of  the  leading  English  residents  from  time 
to  time,  and  thus  bringing  them  and  the  missionaries 
together,  the  Bishop  wrote  to  his  father : 

'  For  some  time  past  this  custom  which  the  Bishop  advocates  has  been 
the  practice  in  the  mission  at  Tokyo. 


2S6 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


I  am  in  the  midst  of  what  I  only  half  like— a  little 
series  of  dinner  parties.  They  seem  half  incongruous  with 
mission  work,  and  yet  I  believe  they  do  good.  Chol- 
mondeley  is  an  excellent  seneschal  and  King  a  general 
favourite.  He  is  a  very  strong  man  alike  in  faith  and 
character,  and  withal  well  balanced. 

There  can  be  no  doubt  that  the  Bishop's  influence  for 
good  was  thus  extended  in  Tokyo,  and  he  was  an  excellent 
host  and  keen  conversationalist,  never  happier  than  when 
keeping  open  house.  He  was  also  able  literally  to  fulfil 
the  apostolic  direction  to  entertain  strangers.  Many 
Englishmen  travelling  in  the  Far  East  came  to  Tokyo, 
and  were  always  sure  of  a  welcome  and  hospitality. 

On  his  return  to  Japan  the  Bishop  found  himself  in 
the  new  year,  like  Janus  of  old,  compelled  to  face  both 
ways,  south  and  north,  as  in  both  directions  work  was 
claiming  his  attention.  '  I  had  planned  to  leave  Tokyo  at 
the  beginning  of  the  month'  (he  wrote  January  25,  1889, 
to  his  ever  faithful  Guild  of  St.  Paul),  '  but  I  had  miscalcu- 
lated the  capacity  of  accumulation  which  work  possesses 
during  the  absence  of  w'orkers.' 

After  conducting  a  Quiet  Day  for  his  clergy  in  Tokyo 
he  determined  first  of  all  to  visit  the  stations  in  Kiushiu. 
There  was  still  no  continuous  railway  communication  from 
Tokyo  southwards,  so  the  650  miles  to  his  southernmost 
station  of  Kagoshima '  was  best  covered  by  boat.  Some 
selections  from  letters  to  the  Bishop  of  Exeter  will  describe 
this  journey. 

Nagoya  [half-way  between  Tokyo  and  Osaka]  : 
February  I,  1889. 

I  came  here  by  sea,  leaving  Yokohama  at  four  in  the 
afternoon,  and  reaching  this  about  the  same  time  next  day. 
The  town  lies  at  the  head  of  Owari  Bay,  the  upper  waters 

'  It  was  at  this  port  {called  by  him  Cangoxima)  that  Francis  Xavier 
landed  on  August  15,  1549. 


A  MISSIONARV  BISIIOP'S  LIFE.     18S8-1893  257 


of  which  are  so  shallow  that  the  large  steamers  cannot 
navigate  them,  so  for  three  hours  one  is  confined  to  a 
launch.  I  made  friends  with  the  steersman,  and  sat  in  a 
corner  of  the  wheelhouse  studying  Japanese  and  practising 
on  my  companion.  The  mission  '  here  is  only  two  months 
old.  .  .  .  This  town  is  a  stronghold  of  Buddhism.  It  and 
Kyoto  are  now  its  chief  centres.  This  morning  I  called 
on  a  singularly  able  and  attractive  Buddhist  priest,  Nanju 
by  name,  who  spent  seven  years  in  England,  five  of  them 
at  Oxford  learning  Sanscrit,  and  has  since  been  in  India. 
His  influence  is  good  as  far  as  it  goes.  I  should  think  on 
the  whole  he  is  against  idolatry,  and  he  teaches  the  older 
and  generally  speaking  nobler  ethics  of  his  faith,  but  he 
holds  no  Christian  doctrine. 

Sunday,  February  3,  was  spent  at  Gifu,  twenty  miles 
further  inland  than  Nagoya,  the  Bishop  confirming  a  few 
candidates,  and  addressing  a  large  audience  in  a  hall 
usually  devoted  to  professional  story-telling  (a  recognised 
Eastern  way  of  obtaining  a  livelihood)  on  the  subject 
'  What  is  Religion  ?  '  Several  Buddhist  priests  were  present. 
Then,  after  a  very  rough  journey  occupying  the  whole 
day,  Osaka  was  reached,  and  on  Sunda}',  February  10, 
besides  confirming  in  one  of  the  churches,  the  Bishop  held 
a  confirmation  in  the  house  of  an  old  lady  eighty-eight 
years  of  age.    He  wrote  : 

She  was  herself  the  candidate.  It  was  touching  to 
hear  that  when  she  was  told  she  could  gain  eternal  life  in 
Christ,  she  had  replied  that  that  was  the  last  thing  she 
desired  ;  the  life  she  had  lived  with  its  many  troubles  had 
been  quite  sufficiently  long.  Now  she  seemed  to  be 
singularly  happy  in  her  faith.  When  I  gave  her  her 
confirmation  card,  and  asked  her  to  use  the  prayer  printed 

'  This  mission,  supporled  by  the  dioceses  of  Huron  and  (Jntario,  was  sent 
out  with  the  Bishop's  consent.  It  first  consisted  of  the  Rev.  J.  Cooper 
Robinson  and  his  wife,  who  were  afterwards  joined  by  fellow-labourers,  and 
the  whole  mission  in  the  provinces  of  Mino  and  Owari  was  eventually 
affiliated  to  the  Canadian  branch  of  the  C.M..S. 

S 


258 


BISHOr  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


on  it,  she  read  it  off  without  difficulty.  Her  son,  a  grey- 
haired  man,  is  also  a  Christian. 

After  visiting  Kobe,  and  presiding  at  a  meeting  where 
representatives  for  the  Church  council  were  chosen,  the 
Bishop  proceeded  to  Nagasaki,  '  where  ten  Christian 
medical  students  who  had  recently  come  from  Kumamoto 
to  attend  the  Government  Medical  Training  School 
promise  to  be  a  real  support  to  the  little  congregation.' 
tic  writes  to  his  father  : 

February  1 8,  1889. 

I  had  a  perfect  voyage  down  here,  full  moon  and 
wavcless  sea ;  among  my  companions  a  Presbyterian 
minister  going  to  recruit  in  China,  and  the  Vicar  Apostolic 
of  a  province  in  China  on  the  borders  of  Tartary,  an  edu- 
cated and  courteous  Italian  who  spoke  English  very  fairly. 
I  had  a  good  deal  of  talk  with  him,  and  was  surprised  to 
find  that  though  not  a  Bishop  he  had  leave  from  the  Pope 
to  confirm  ;  truly  Popes  take  liberties  !  Roman  Catholics 
certainly  can  teach  us  by  their  readiness  to  bear  hardships. 
This  man  and  his  priests  are  at  times  subject  to  most 
serious  privations,  I  should  fear.  In  Japan  a  Roman  priest 
gets  one-seventh  of  what  C.M.S.  and  S.P.G.  allow  to  an 
unmarried  deacon.  Of  course,  they  can  only  live  on  the 
food  of  the  country.  Would  that  they  had  a  less  encum- 
bered faith  !  .  .  .  I  confirmed  nineteen  yesterday,  making 
more  than  one  hundred  during  the  last  five  weeks.  I 
expect  to  start  for  Kagoshima  to-morrow.  It  is  my  most 
southernly  station. 

Again  : 

Xagasaki  :  February  24,  1S89. 

Kagoshima,  where  I  have  been,  is  one  of  the  places  in 
Japan  which  is  most  difficult  of  access  ;  five  days'  journey 
from  here  by  land,  and  only  occasional  steamers  every  ten 
days  or  so.  I  was  therefore  forced  to  go  and  come  back 
by  the  same  steamer,  and  expected  to  have  only  a  few 
hours  there.  As  it  was,  I  had  a  day  and  a  half.  The  little 
congregation  has  made  some  progress.  I  confirmed  nine, 
and  in  the  evening  went  out  to  a  village  in  the  suburbs 


A  MISSIONARY  DISIIOP's  LIFE.      1 888-1 893  259 


where  several  have  recently  been  baptised,  and  where  one 
of  the  Christians  opened  his  house  for  a  preaching.  There 
may  perhaps  be  a  considerable  ingathering  there. 

One  poor  lonely  American  is  living  in  the  town,  a  Mr. 

S  .  He  has  been  engaged  to  teach  through  the  Japanese 

Legation  in  Washington.  I  called  on  him  with  Archdeacon 
Maundrell.  He  was  very  glad  to  have  English-speaking 
visitors,  I  was  pleased  to  find  that  he  has  a  Bible  class 
among  his  students.  He  is  the  only,  or  all  but  the  only, 
man  I  know  in  Japan,  apart  from  missionaries,  who  is 
doing  this.  We  had  fine  weather  both  ways  in  a  prover- 
bially stormy  part  of  Japanese  waters. 

Leaving  Kumamoto  on  February  28  in  jinrickshas,  the 
little  village  of  Koye  was  reached  at  7.30,  '  but  as  Mr. 
Brandram  wished  to  see  each  candidate  again  separately, 
the  confirmation  did  not  take  place  till  between  1 2  and  i  at 
night.'    Notwithstanding  this,  the  Bishop  continues  : 

Next  morning  wc  were  early  on  our  way,  and  journeyed 
the  whole  day  in  jinrickshas  to  the  foot  of  a  range  of  moun- 
tains which  runs  from  the  centre  of  the  island  to  the  east 
coast.  At  one  place  on  our  way  we  had  the  pleasure  of 
calling  on  a  Christian  doctor. 

The  next  day,  Saturday,  March  2,  should  have  seen  us 
at  Kami  No  Mura,  a  walk  of  twenty-five  miles,  but  we  were 
fairly  defeated,  after  accomplishing  ten  miles,  by  rain  and 
mud.  New  and  excellent  roads  arc  rapidly  being  pushed 
throughout  the  length  and  breadth  of  Japan,  but  none  yet 
towards  the  mountain  ridges  and  valleys  that  lay  in  our 
route  that  day.  It  was  the  policy  of  the  old  rulers  to  keep 
the  lines  of  communication  between  themselves  and  their 
neighbours  in  the  condition  which  might  be  thought  to 
oppose  the  greatest  obstacles  to  invaders  of  their  own 
territory.  The  storm  cleared  off  in  the  night,  and  Sunday 
morning  broke  fair  and  sunny  ;  so  I  determined  to  keep 
my  engagement  that  evening,  but  it  took  us  till  near  night- 
fall to  get  through  the  river  of  mud  into  which  the  previous 
day's  storm  had  transformed  the  greater  part  of  our  road. 
A  band  of  young  Christian  men  come  out  to  greet  us  some 
two  miles  before  we  reached  our  destination.    There  seems 

s  2 


•26o 


BISHOP  EDWARD  IJICKERSTETII 


much  vigour  and  life  in  the  Httle  congregation  of  this  remote 
mountain  village.  I  was  guest  of  the  village  doctor,  a  most 
friendl}^  host,  but  I  fear  not  a  genuine  enquirer.  Among 
those  confirmed  was  a  girl  who  had  read  the  New  Testa- 
ment through  five  times  in  a  year  ;  also  two  brothers  of  the 
headman  of  the  village.  The  headman  himself  also  came 
to  see  me  ;  in  figure  and  bearing  he  is  one  of  the  most 
striking  Japanese  that  I  have  met.  I  quite  trust  that  he 
will  shortly  follow  his  brothers'  example. 

Our  itinerary  for  the  next  four  days  stood  thus  : 

Monday,  Ulairh  4. — Walk  twenty-two  miles  to  a  place 
called  Shinmachi. 

Tuesday,  Jllarch  5. — Walk  some  four  miles  ;  descend 
a  rapid  river  by  boat  for  si.x  hours,  which  takes  us  to 
Nobeoka  on  the  east  coast — formerly  a  daimio's  city,  and 
still  a  place  of  importance.  Old  traditions  here  prevail 
which  are  obsolete  in  other  parts  of  Japan,  for  instance,  that 
special  reverence  is  due  to  the  '  samurai'  class.  Still  there 
is  a  strong  spirit  of  religious  enquiry  abroad  among  the 
people.  The  first  conversions  were  due  to  the  work  of  a 
young  Christian  schoolmaster,  who  was  himself  baptised  by 
Mr.  Lloyd  several  years  since  in  Tokyo.  The  congrega- 
tion now  contains  several  persons  of  importance  in  the 
town.  Fourteen  were  confirmed,  after  which  the  Christians 
entertained  me  at  tea. 

]Vcd)icsday,  ISIarcJi  6. — We  left  Nobeoka  early  ;  a 
considerable  body  of  the  Christians  accompanied  us  the 
first  two  miles.  We  had  now  turned  northward,  and  our 
route  was  over  a  lofty  mountain  pass.  Wc  accomplished 
twenty-eight  miles  on  foot  by  nightfall. 

Thursday,  Ulairh  7. — We  walked  the  same  distance 
as  the  day  before,  amid  some  finer  scenery.  In  the  evening, 
from  6  till  11,  we  enjoyed  being  rowed  some  fifteen  miles 
further  down  a  river  under  a  bright  moonlit  sky.  We 
finished  our  journey  shortly  after  midnight  at  Oita.  The 
last  stage  was  by  jinrikshas. 

Friday,  the  ^th. — We  stayed  at  Oita.  This  is  one  of 
four  stations  recently  established  by  the  Native  Missionarj' 
Society  ;  the  other  three  are  on  the  main  island.  The  agent 
is  one  of  our  best  workers,  well  known  in  the  neighbour- 
hood as  a  scholar  of  the  old  school.  The  station  was 
commenced  last  }'car.  Eight  were  presented  for  confima- 
tion. 


A  MISSION  AK\'  UISIIOF'S  LIFE.     1 888-1 893  261 


From  Fukuoka,  a  large  town  on  the  west  coast  of 
Kiushiu,  the  Bishop  wrote  to  his  father  : 

March  12,  18S9. 

I  have  been  travclhng  hard  and  fast,  early  and  late,  to  get 
round  this  rapidly  growing  mission.  The  number  of  places 
has  doubled  nearly  where  confirmations  are  required  since 
I  first  came  to  Kiushiu  two  years  ago,  and  the  number  of 
Christians  is,  I  should  think,  threefold.  If  labourers  can  be 
found  and  sent  forth  speedily,  there  is,  I  believe,  more  likeli- 
hood here  of  a  large  ingathering  than  in  any  other  part  of 
the  East  that  I  have  visited.  .  .  .  Nakatsu  I  left  yesterday 
morning  and  travelled  through  here  in  jinrikshas — eighty 
miles — 5  A.M.  to  12  midnight.  It  was  too  late  when  I  arrived 
to  knock  up  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Hutchinson,  so  I  went  to  an  inn 
for  the  night,  and  came  here  to  breakfast  this  morning. 

After  leaving  Fukuoka,  the  Bishop  spent  four  days  in 
visiting  ten  mountain  villages. 

In  one  of  these,  Oyamada,  150  out  of  200  inhabitants 
are  Christian.  It  was  a  new  and  delightful  experience 
which  I  may  perhaps  be  allowed  to  enjoy  more  frequently 
in  the  future  to  find  a  whole  village  en  fete,  and  to  be 
welcomed  as  their  Bishop  by  what  seemed  to  be  the  whole 
population. 

On  his  return  to  Tokyo  in  March  the  Bishop  set  to 
work  to  issue  his  second  Pastoral.  In  a  letter  to  his  father 
(March  30,  1889)  he  says  : 

I  have  been  very  busy  this  week  chiefly  preparing  my 
Lent  Pastoral  to  the  clergy,  which,  I  suppose,  will  become 
an  institution.  I  think  that  they  are  useful  ...  I  have 
said  something  on  the  Lambeth  Conference  Pastoral  from 
a  missionary  Bishop's  point  of  view.  You  will  not,  I  fear, 
wholly  agree  with  me,  and  yet  I  do  not  know  that  you 
will  very  much  disagree.  My  chief  point  is  that  all  these 
disputes  weaken  energies  which  ought  to  be  spent  on 
missions,  whether  home  or  foreign. 

In  the  Pastoral  (dated  St.  Andrew's  House,  Shiba, 


262 


P.ISHOr  EDWARD  niCKERSTETII 


Tokyo,  April  2,  1889),  after  alluding  to  matters  of  local 
interest,  the  Bishop  thus  referred  to  mutual  relations  between 
the  various  branches  of  the  Anglican  communion  : 

A  Conference  constituted  as  was  that  at  Lambeth  is 
particularly  fitted  to  consider  questions  which  arise  between 
the  various  branches  and  dioceses  of  the  Anglican  com- 
munion. It  was  not,  however,  found  necessary  to  do  more 
than  repeat  the  recommendations  of  the  Conference  of 
1878.  These  have  formed  the  basis  of  our  action  in  this 
country,  and  have  been  found  to  possess  great  practical 
convenience. 

He  then  passed  to  the  question  of  Re-union  : 

No  one  could  have  doubted  that  re-union  with 
Christians  who  have  separated  from  us,  whether  on  grounds 
of  doctrine  or  organisation,  was  the  earnest  and  heartfelt 
desire  of  every  member  of  the  conference.  The  course 
which  was  taken  in  adopting,  as  a  basis  on  which  negotia- 
tions could  be  profitably  carried  on,  the  four  points  which 
had  already  been  laid  down  by  the  Convention  of  the 
American  Church  —namely,  the  Bible,  the  Creeds,  the 
Sacraments,  and  Episcopacy — may  be  found  in  God's 
Providence  hereafter  to  have  been  a  real  step  in  advance 
towards  the  solution  of  a  practical  question  of  very  great 
difficulty.  It  was  felt  that  these  points  constitute  on  our 
part  an  irreducible  minimum,  beyond  which  concession 
would  be  unfaithfulness  to  inherited  trust.  I  regret  not  to 
be  able  to  think  that  the  present  moment  is  favourable  for 
taking  any  further  action  on  this  matter  in  Japan.'  There 
is  no  likelihood  that  the  fourfold  basis  which  the  conference 
accepted  would  commend  itself  immediately  to  any  of 
the  numerous  religious  bodies  which  are  represented  in 
this  country.    We  shall  not  allow  delay  to  lessen  desire. 

The  Archbishop  of  Canterbury's  letter  to  the  Metro- 
politan of  Kieff  on  the  occasion  of  the  nine  hundredth 
anniversary  of  the  conversion  of  Russia  and  the  speech  in 
reply  of  the  Chief  Procurator  of  the  Holy  Synod  led  him 


'  See  chapter  ix.  p.  317. 


A  MISSIONARY  BISIIOP'S  LIFE.     1888-1893  263 


to  refer  to  '  the  mission  of  the  Russian  Church  in  Japan 
presided  over  by  a  prelate  of  lofty  Christian  spirit  and 
untiring  energy,'  and  to  continue  : 

Negotiations  with  a  view  to  organic  union  would  at 
present  be  premature,  and  probably  could  not  with 
advantage  be  in  the  first  instance  carried  on  in  a 
country  so  distant  from  the  chief  centres  of  Church  life  in 
the  two  communions  as  is  Japan.  Nor  would  it  seem  to 
me  wise  to  attempt  to  ignore  the  doctrinal  differences 
which  divide  us.  Still  the  missions  of  two  Churches,  whose 
representatives  meet  in  the  eastern  mission  field  for  the 
first  time  in  this  country,  will  have  contributed  something 
in  furtherance  of  a  sacred  cause  if  they  cultivate  brotherly 
intercourse  and  continue  to  work  side  by  side  with  the 
rivalry  only  of  doing  most  in  the  service  of  their  '  Lord 
and  God.' 

The  report  of  the  committee  (on  which  he  had  himself 
sat)  on  '  authoritative  standards  of  doctrine  and  worship ' 
and  the  section  of  the  Encyclical  Letter  founded  on  the 
report,  together  with  the  corresponding  resolutions  of  the 
conference,  he  thus  commended  to  their  careful  considera- 
tion : 

These  have  all  an  important  bearing  on  our  work  here. 
It  would  not  seem  to  me  desirable  at  present  to  re-open 
the  question  of  the  position  to  be  assigned  to  our  Anglican 
Prayer  Book  and  Articles  by  the  Japanese  Church.'  It  is  a 
question  of  very  great  difficulty,  and  the  compromise 
arrived  at  in  the  Synod  of  1887  may  well  be  for  the  present 
maintained.  At  the  same  time,  not  many  years  can  elapse 
before  it  will  again  present  itself  for  consideration.  You 
will  notice  alike  the  cautious  language  of  the  conference 
and  the  real  relaxation  which  it  recommends  of  existing 
bonds. 

The  Bishop  then  reminded  his  readers  that  the  promul- 
gation of  the  Japanese  Constitution  in  February  would 


'  See  chapter  ix.  p.  339. 


264 


BISHOP  KDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


always  mark  the  year  (1889)  as  an  important  epoch  in  the 
national  history . 

Not  the  least  noticeable  section  is  that  which  secures 
liberty  of  religious  worship  to  all  subjects  of  the  empire. 
Christianity,  which  less  than  twenty  years  ago  was  a 
proscribed  faith,  thus  attains  to  the  position  of  a  religio 
licita.  For  the  moment  the  prc-occupation  of  the  people, 
especially  in  the  capital  and  great  cities,  with  political 
questions  militates  against  a  spirit  of  earnest  religious 
inquiry.  This  will  cease  to  be  the  case  as  the  possession 
of  political  privileges  becomes  familiar  to  the  popular 
mind,  while  the  public  recognition  of  religious  freedom 
will  remain  as  a  permanent  acquisition.  The  words  of  De 
Tocqueville,  '  Men  never  so  much  need  to  be  theocratic 
as  when  they  are  most  democratic,'  suggest  a  w'arning 
and  a  hope. 

After  noting  '  two  new  claimants  for  the  religious 
allegiance  of  Japan,  Unitarian  and  Theosophist,'  and 
tjiving  reasons  for  the  statement  that  '  both  were  strenuous 
opponents  of  the  Catholic  faith,'  the  Bishop  concluded  with 
a  reference  to  the  ritual  controversies  which  then  affected 
the  Church  in  England  :  ' 

The  fortunes  of  the  Church  in  our  own  country  affect 
us  immediately.  I  earnestly  hope  that '-  the  trial  at  law  on 
ritual  questions,  now*  being  carried  on,  will  be  the  last  of  a 
series  which  have  broken  the  peace  and  weakened  the 
influence  of  the  Church  for  nearly  forty  years.  .  .  .  The 
principle  that  omission  is  prohibition  has  only  a  limited 
applicability.  Were  it  rigorously  enforced,  unless  at  the 
same  time  the  rubrics  were  made  far  more  elaborate  and 
minute,  after  the  manner  of  those  in  the  Roman  service 
books,  it  would  be  impossible  to  perform  many  of  our 
offices. 

Under  these  circumstances,  the  questions  which  we 
should  ask  in  regard  to  ritual  matters  seem  to  be  three  : 
(l)  Is  there  a  clear  direction  on  the  point  in  the  Book  of 
Common  Prayer?    If  so,  the  matter  is  settled  in  the  view 


'  Compare  chapter  xi.  pp.  419-421. 


"  The  Bishop  of  Lincoln's  case. 


A  MISSIONARY  IlISHOP'S  LIFE.     1888-1893  2C5 


of  the  loyal  Churchman.  I  may  add,  as  the  matter  has 
been  misunderstood,  that  no  Bishop  has  authority  to  set 
aside  the  directions  of  the  Prayer  Book  when  they  can  be 
carried  out.  (2)  If  the  Prayer  Book  is  silent,  is  the  pro- 
posed custom  or  rite  in  accordance  with  the  tradition  of 
the  Church,  not  merely  a  modern  Roman  use,  not  over- 
minute  and  fidgetty,  not  obliquely  indicative  of  doctrine 
which  at  best  is  only  a  '  private  interpretation  ; '  or  if  an 
innovation,  is  it  strictly  in  accordance  with  the  spirit  of 
the  Prayer  Book  ?  The  introduction  of  hymns,  for  which 
little  if  any  provision  is  made  in  the  rubrics,  and  the  choice  of 
particular  hymns  are  instructive  examples  under  this  head. 
(3)  If  the  question  is  still  an  open  one,  what  is  the  desire 
of  the  best  educated  and  most  devout  lay  communicants  ? 

Very  little  practical  difficulty  will  occur  when  ritual 
questions  by  this  method  are  approached  in  a  tolerant  spirit, 
such  as  on  all  external  matters  the  very  nature  of  the 
Gospel  requires.  If  a  reasonable  doubt  remains,  recourse 
shoicld  be  liad,  in  accordance  with  the  direction  of  the 
Preface  in  the  Prayer  Book,  to  the  Diocesan,  and  tf 
necessary  tlirougJi  him  to  the  Arclibisliop.  The  Bishop 
also  has  a  claim  to  be  consulted  before  practices  are 
adopted  for  which,  however  desirable  or  even  necessary 
under  novel  circumstances,  the  Prayer  Book  does  not  make 
provision.  I  am  thankful  that  among  ourselves  there  is, 
with  considerable  variety  of  practice,  little  disagreement 
and  frequent  co-operation. 

I  add  a  few  words  in  reference  to  the  decisions  of  the 
Judicial  Committee  of  the  Privy  Council.  Whether  or  no 
these  decisions  could  be  enforced  beyond  the  limits  of 
British  rule  is  a  point  on  which  I  have  not  been  able  to 
obtain  information. 

I  am  unable  to  agree  with  those  who  hold  that  the 
committee  is  an  ecclesiastical  court,  or  that  its  judgments 
represent  the  living  voice  of  the  Church.  Were  this  the 
case,  it  would  follow  that  the  Church  could  no  longer 
claim  to  be  the  interpreter  of  divine  revelation  to  her 
children  and  to  the  nation.  She  would  have  abdicated  this 
high  function  in  favour  of  a  body  of  lawyers,  to  whom 
indeed  all  respect  is  due  for  their  office  and  talents,  but 
who  need  not  necessarily  be,  and  some  of  whom  are  not, 
believers  in  the  Christian  faith.  As  a  communion  she 
would  rapidly  cease  to  command  respect  or  elicit  enthu- 


266 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


siasin.  }Icr  forcig)i  missions  zcoiild  be  avioiig  tJic  first  to 
ivither  and  decay.  Such  a  position  has  never  been  accepted 
by  any  branch  of  the  Church,  even  in  da)-s  when  Em- 
perors presided  in  CEcumenical  Councils. 

The  true  position  and  authorit)^  of  the  court  can  only 
be  understood  by  a  consideration  of  the  successive  statutes 
through  which  it  has  come  to  be  constituted  as  at  present. 
The  general  result  of  such  an  investigation  is,  I  believe,  to 
establish  that  the  Judicial  Committee  of  the  Privy  Council, 
as  well  as  the  court  established  by  the  Public  Worship 
Act,  are  civil  tribunals,  and  that  the  ecclesiastical  courts 
are  mainly  in  abeyance.  For  such  an  investigation  this 
letter  does  not  afford  space.  As,  however,  they  may  not 
be  known  to  you  and  are  valuable  by  way  of  illustration, 
while  we  are  engaged  in  framing  the  Canons  of  the  Japanese 
Church,  I  have  quoted  in  the  Appendix  '  the  exact  words 
of  one  of  the  chief  statutes  bearing  on  the  subject  of  the 
Reformation  period.  It  is  an  important  point  gained  that 
thoughtful  Churchmen  of  all  schools  are  agreed  on  the 
necessity  of  the  reform  of  our  own  legal  procedure. 

In  regard  to  the  whole  matter,  we  are  called  upon  to 
offer  earnest  prayer  to  Almighty  God  that  the  present 
ritual  differences  may  be  speedily  adjusted.  It  is  impos- 
sible to  deny  that  there  are  in  our  communion  a  few  clergy 
who  desire  to  re-introduce  Roman  doctrines  and  practices. 
Their  number  I  believe  to  be  diminishing.  The  attempt 
is  so  plainly  inconsistent  with  loyalty  to  the  Prayer  Book 
that  I  doubt  not  that  if  left  to  the  steady  discountenance 
of  ecclesiastical  authority,  and  met  by  sober  argument,  it 
will  speedily  die  away.  On  the  other  hand,  unusual 
opportunities  of  personal  observation,  continued  now 
through  many  }'cars,  enable  me  to  bear  witness  that  in  the 
mission  field  adherents  of  either  Church  party  work  with 
equal  loyalty,  equal  zeal,  and  equal  love  of  our  Master. 
To  both  He  at  times  grants  the  seal  of  succes.s.  To 
narrotv,  in  the  way  that  is  being  attempted,  the  basis  of 
the  Anglican  connnunion  would  bring  immediate  loss  to 
her  evangelistic  enterprises.  At  the  same  time  there  can 
be  no  doubt  that  energies  are  being  wasted  and  frittered 
on  these  controversies  which  if  otherwise  employed  would 
suffice  to  give  a  new  impulse  alike  to  our  home  and 
missionary  work.    It  is  surely  more  than  time  that  they 

'  He  quoted  24  Henry  VHI.  c.  19. 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     1 888- 1 893  26/ 

were  disengaf^cd  from  the  present  disputes  and  directed  to 
nobler  and  diviner  ends. 

On  Easter  Eve  of  this  year  the  Bishop  ordained  two 
candidates  for  the  priesthood,  and  of  this  he  writes  : 

The  rain  came  down  in  torrents,  and  thinned  the  con- 
gregation ;  but  tlie  service — my  first  ordination  to  tlie 
Priesthood — was,  I  think,  solemn  and  well  and  carefully 
conducted. 

About  this  time  he  was  much  cheered  by  a  grant  from 
the  S.P.C.K.  for  the  hospital  he  desired  to  start  in  connec- 
tion with  St.  Hilda's,  and  he  wrote  enthusiastically  to  his 
father : 

I  am  morally  convinced  that  they  could  not  employ 
their  surplus  funds  better  than  in  the  ways  I  point  out, 
and  shall  be  only  too  glad  to  find  that  they  see  the  same  ! 
.Seriously,  they  are  an  excellent  society.  I  .should  not 
have  known  what  to  do  without  their  help  towards 
St.  Hilda's  Building  Fund. 

In  the  same  letter  he  wrote  : 

I  was  drawing  up  Canons  on  Clergy  Discipline  last 
week  with  Bishop  Williams,  a  most  difficult  business,  but 
we  had  the  help  of  the  last  and  best  productions  of  the 
American  dioceses. 

The  second  Biennial  Synod  of  the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai 
was  held  at  Tokyo  after  Easter.  The  Bishop  entertained 
Mr.  (now  Bishop)  and  Mrs.  Evington,  Archdeacon 
Maundrell,  and  Mr.  Brandram  as  his  guests,  and  one 
evening  had  a  reception  for  all  the  Japanese  and  English 
missionaries,  'which  Cholmondeley  managed  excellently,' 
and,  as  usual,  he  was  delighted  to  fill  his  house  with  his 
fellow-missionaries.    He  wrote  home.  May  3,  1889  : 

The  -Synod  has  gone  very  well  hitherto,  I  think  ;  plenty 
of  talk  but  not  without  result,  and  gradually  the  Japanese 
are  being  educated  to  their  responsibilities. 


268 


lilSIIOr  KD^VARD  niCKERSTETH 


And  again  : 

Much  time  was  occupied  in  debate  on  small  points,  but 
some  things  were  of  real  importance,  such  as  '  Rules  for 
the  trial  of  clergy '  and  '  Pastor  Funds.'  At  present  the 
congregations  pay  directly  to  the  clergy,  which  I  think  the 
worst  plan  of  all.  I  hope  that  the  new  rules  '  which  I 
suggested  will  gradually  break  up  this  plan.  You  would 
have  been  interested  in  seeing  the  body  of  Japanese  dele- 
gates gathered  from  all  parts  of  the  country.  I  will  send 
a  photograph,  but,  alas.  Bishop  Williams,  the  chairman,  is 
not  in  it.  He  has  a  horror  of  photographs,  and  made  off 
when  it  was  taken. 

Towards  the  end  of  April  the  Bishop  was  free  to  start 
with  his  domestic  chaplain,  the  Rev.  L,  B.  Cholmondeley, 
for  the  northern  island  of  Yezo. 

Of  this  journey  he  writes  to  his  father  from  Hakodate  : 

May  21,  1889. 

We  (Cholmondeley  and  I )  left  Tokyo  last  Thursday. 
We  had  a  good  ship — the  Yamashiro  Mani  by  name — 
her  commander  is  Captain  Young,  with  whom  I  have  now 
made  a  good  many  voyages.  During  the  summer  months 
the  wind  blows  mainly  from  the  east,  so  that  there  is  an 
almost  incessant  swell  on  the  east  coast  of  our  main  island. 

We  reached  here  at  five  on  Sunday  morning.  Some 
Japanese  came  off  early  to  meet  me.  Mr.  Andrews,  the 
missionary  here,  brought  us  ashore  at  seven.  We  had 
Japanese  service  with  Holy  Communion  at  nine,  English 
service,  at  which  I  preached,  at  ten,  and  a  confirmation  in 
the  afternoon.  There  were  eight  candidates,  several  of 
them  persons  of  position  and  intelligence.  I  have  two 
other  places  to  visit,  one  Horobetsu,  where  I  went  nearly 
three  years  ago  among  the  Ainu  ;  the  other,  Kushiro,  a 
place  about  200  miles  off  to  the  north-east.  By  land  it  is 
a  journey  of  at  least  ten  days,  but  by  water,  if  there  is  no 
fog,  of  only  twenty-four  hours.    We  feared  there  was  no 

'  The  proposal  was  that  a  central  fund  of  2,000/.  should  be  raised,  the 
interest  of  which  would  be  used  to  augment  salaries  of  pastorates,  and  into 
which  would  be  paid  all  salaries  of  churches  wholly  or  partly  self-supporting, 
and  out  of  which  would  be  paid  all  salaries  of  pastors  or  unordained  agents. 


A  .MISSIONARY  I'.ISIIOr's  IJFK.      1 888- 1 893  269 


steamer  going,  but  were  much  relieved  last  night  to  find 
that  one  starts  to-morrow  morning.  Andrews  and 
Cholmondeley  will  accompany  mc.  I  am  afraid  that  unless 
something  detains  our  ship  we  shall  only  get  a  few  hours 
at  the  place.  However,  there  will  be  time  enough  just  to 
greet  a  brave  lady,  Miss  Payne  by  name,  who  is  our  solitary 
representative  there,  and  to  have  Holy  Communion  and 
a  confirmation.  Then,  next  week  I  hope  to  get  to 
Horobetsu,  and  possibly  back  again  to  Tokyo  for  Whit 
Sunday.  I  have  promised  them  a  Quiet  Day  at  St.  Hilda's, 
if  it  can  be  managed,  the  Saturday  before. 

And  again,  writing,  from  Tokyo,  June  5,  1889,  he 
says  : 

I  got  back  'after  travelling  2,000  miles  in  seventeen 
days)  on  Sunday  night  from  the  North,  out  of  a  land 
where  fires  are  still  necessary  to  hot  summer  weather.  All 
the  officers  except  the  one  on  duty  were  present  at  a  service 
I  held  in  the  saloon  in  the  morning.  I  used  the  prayer  for 
protection  at  sea,  and  an  hour  after  we  were  near  being  in 
great  danger.  A  strong  wind  and  current  had  set  the  ship 
back  much  more  than  the  captain  had  calculated,  and  in 
consequence  he  attem.pted  in  a  fog  to  run  round  a  cape  too 
soon.  Providentially  he  discovered  his  mistake  just  in 
time. 

On  June  24  the  Bishop  left  Tok^-o  by  the  new  raihva}', 
and  was  absent  in  Southern  Japan  till  July  7.  That 
summer  he  spent  the  first  week  of  his  holidays  at  Miyano- 
shita,  a  beautiful  spot  1,500  feet  above  the  sea  level. 
Writing  to  his  father,  August  2,  1889  (the  sixteenth  anni- 
versary of  his  mother's  death),  he  said  : 

I  am  thinking  of  this  day  sixteen  years  ago.  With 
your  present  I  have  had  set  in  gold  a  cross  cut  from  a  tree  in 
Pembroke  Gardens,  300  or  400  years  old,  which  Prior  gave 
me.  My  brother  Pembroke  Bishop  (New  Westminster) 
has  done  the  same  thing. 

He  then  went  for  a  few  days  to  Haruna,  whence  he 
wrote  : 


270 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


I  am  trying  to  write  at  a  little  table  at  a  priest's  house 
in  the  priestly  village  of  Haruna,  a  mountain  village  in  the 
province  of  Kotoukc,  still  a  great  place  of  pilgrimage.  The 
five  mistresses  of  the  institute  are  my  hostesses,  and  most 
thoughtful  and  hospitable  they  are— a  pleasant  combina- 
tion of  learning  and  physical  energy. 

This  autumn  was  marked  by  the  consecration  of  St. 
Hilda's  Chapel  and  of  the  Church  of  Good  Hope  in  the 
Mita  district  of  Tokyo.  Of  the  former  some  account  has 
been  given  in  the  preceding  chapter.  Of  the  latter  the 
Bishop  wrote  to  his  father  : 

Yesterday  I  consecrated  (or  dedicated,  as  we  more 
often  call  it  here,  where  such  acts  have  no  legal  force)  the 
Church  of  the  Good  Hope  which  Lloyd  had  erected.  The 
congregation  is  a  remarkable  one,  gathered  out  of  a  great 
school,  and  in  consequence  of  considerable  intelligence. 

From  October  2 1  to  the  end  of  November  was  occupied 
by  a  long  journey  west,  and  on  his  return  to  Tok}-o  on 
December  2  he  wrote  to  his  father  : 

I  dined  at  a  dinner  of  the  Tokyo  Club  on  Tuesday. 
Sir  Edwin  Arnold  made  a  speech.  With  somethings  that 
were  very  good  and  true  he  coupled  most  unfounded 
claims,  as  I  thought,  on  behalf  of  Buddhism.  Plainly  he 
did  not  understand  that  the  Japanese  section  of  his 
audience  (mostly  University  professors  and  newspaper 
editors)  was  utterly  incredulous  of  any  single  Buddhistic 
tenet.  I  had  a  good  deal  of  talk  with  him  afterwards.  He 
spoke  very  reverently  of  Our  Lord,  and  told  me  how  he 
had  visited  Palestine  with  the  view  of  writing  a  poem  on 
the  Gospels,  but  that  the  subject  had  seemed  to  him  too 
great  and  he  had  relinquished  the  idea.  I  got  him  to 
admit  verbally  that  ethics  without  a  creed  are  powerless. 

Yesterday  a  great  church  was  consecrated  which 
Bishop  Williams  has  built.  I  took  part  in  a  Japanese 
service  in  the  morning,  and  an  English  in  the  afternoon. 
It  is  far  the  most  imposing  building  which  we  have  out 
here,  and  will,  I  dare  say,  with  a  crush  take  in  600 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOr'S  LIFE.     1 888- 1 893        27 1 


worshippers.  It  ought  to  be  an  addition  to  our  strcn<^th 
and  usefulness.  The  architecture  is  very  simple  and  good 
I  think. 

Alluding  to  his  frequent  journeys,  many  of  which  now 
began  to  be  possible  by  rail,  the  Bishop  wrote : 

I  go  first  class  for  three  reasons  :  (i)  it  is  cheap  here  ; 
(2)  I  meet  people  whom  I  want  to  meet ;  (3)  I  can  sleep 
better,  and  so  work  when  I  get  in.  But  I  admit  that  the 
other  practice  is  much  more  suitable  for  a  missionary 
Bishop. 

The  ordination  to  the  priesthood  at  Tokyo  on  the  Fourth 
Sunday  in  Advent  of  John  Imai,  his  frequent  interpreter 
and  constant  companion,  for  whom  he  had  a  great  regard, 
was  an  event  of  deep  interest  to  the  Bishop.  He  wrote  to 
his  father  : 

The  ordination  last  Sunday  was  a  singularly  happy 
service,  and  very  nicely  conducted.  The  church  was 
crowded.  The  singing  of  the  '  Veni  Creator  '  in  a  Japanese 
version,  while  young  Imai  was  kneeling  in  the  midst,  very 
helpful  and  uplifting.  Besides  Imai  three  deacons  were 
ordained.  Mr.  Batchclor,  the  missionary  to  the  Ainu,  was 
ordained  on  Saturday,  a  less  helpful  service  from  lack  of 
congregation. 

Writing  on  December  26,  1889,  to  his  father  he  said  : 
*  Except  that  it  was  this  side  of  the  world  and  not  that, 
we  had  a  very  happy  Christmas  ; '  while,  on  January  4, 
he  gave  the  first  hint  of  a  castle  in  the  air  which  he  had 
begun  sedulously  to  build. 

So  we  are  in  the  nineties.  1880  saw  you  in  India. 
Would  that  1890  might  see  }'ou  in  Japan,  or,  at  least,  iu 
Canada,  where  I  could  meet  you  for  a  few  weeks. 

He  had  need  of  some  bright  anticipation,  for  the  new 
year  brought  a  break-down  of  the  health  of  Archdeacon 


272 


BISIIOr  EDWARD  RICKERSTETH 


Maundrcll,  who  left  on  furlough,  but  was  never  allowed  by 
the  doctors  to  return  to  Japan.  Also  at  this  time  some 
developments  of  teaching  in  one  of  the  Divinity  colleges 
involving  uncertainty  about  the  Godhead  of  Our  Lord  gave 
him  acute  and  serious  apprehension. 

The  Bishop  began  the  new  \-ear  with  a  Quiet  Day  for 
his  Tokyo  clergy,  taking  as  his  subject  'Jesus,  the  Apostle 
and  High  Priest.' 

On  St.  Paul's  Day  (his  father's  birthda}'),  mindful 
that  Japan  is  the  first  land  on  which  the  sun  rises,  he 
wrote  : 

I  was  the  first  to  offer  prayers  for  you  on  )'our  birthday, 
between  12  and  i  in  the  small  hours  of  the  morning.  A 
very  happy  da)*  and  }'ear  to  you,  dearest  and  best  of 
fathers. 

The  next  day  he  heard  of  the  death  of  Bishop  J.  B. 
Lightfoot,  of  Durham,  his  former  tutor  and  constant  friend, 
more  especially  during  the  Delhi  days.  Many  letters  of 
this  time  contain  allusion  to  his  great  sense  of  personal 
bereavement  through  the  Bishop's  death.  On  January  27 
he  wrote  to  his  father  : 

Yesterday  brought  me  the  too  sad  news  of  the  Bishop 
of  Durham's  death.  I  cannot  think  why  it  was  not 
telegraphed.  As  it  was,  I  heard  of  it  through  an  American 
Church  paper.  What  a  mysterious  Providence,  which 
spared  him  a  year  ago  and  let  him  go  back  to  that  service 
of  thanksgiving  in  his  cathedral,  and  then  took  him  from 
us.  I  do  not  know  that  there  is  anyone  in  whom  judgment 
and  learning  and  goodness  have  been  more  remarkably 
combined  among  the  great  men  of  the  English  Church. 
No  one  can  take  his  place,  and  no  one  will  be  more  missed 
alike  in  the  struggles  and  the  labours  of  the  next  twenty 
years.  But  even  cut  short  as  it  has  been,  it  was  a  beautiful 
life  and  a  noble  example,  a  great  gift  for  awhile,  and  in  a 
sense  for  always.  But  the  world  feels  poorer,  and  the 
undoubted  dangers  ahead  more  dangerous  now  that  his 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     1 888-1 893  273 


counsel  and  wisdom  in  the  earthly  sense  arc  no  longer 
ours.  Personally,  like  all  his  pupils,  I  owe  him  a  debt 
quite  beyond  repayal.  It  is  a  pleasure  to  look  back  to 
frequent  intercourse  with  him  in  Cambridge  and  London, 
and  Bishop  Auckland  and  Scotland. 

And  to  mc  he  wrote  : 

February  17,  1890. 

The  world  seems  different  to  me  with  the  Bishop  of 
Durham  no  longer  here.  I  feel  his  death  to  have  left  a 
greater  blank  than  perhaps  anyone's  could  outside  our 
immediate  circle.  My  debt  to  him,  both  for  teaching  and 
counsel,  is  beyond  estimate.  He  combined  in  an  extra- 
ordinary way  qualifications  which  others  are  endowed  with 
.separately.  Learning  which  was  prodigious  and  yet  in 
full  and  facile  command,  a  sympathy  which  was  ready  and 
heartfelt,  and  at  the  same  time  a  strong  practical  grasp  of 
immediate  circumstances.  Well,  if  it  is  not  wrong  to 
sorrow  it  would  be  wrong  not  to  thank  God  for  so  great  a 
gift  to  the  English  Church,  and  to  many  outside  its  pale, 
as  his  life  and  work  have  been. 

A  matter  of  great  importance — the  extension  of  the 
Episcopate  in  Japan — now  began  to  occupy  his  thoughts. 
lie  wrote  to  his  father  : 

I  am  thinking  over  whether  it  would  not  be  well  to 
ask  the  Archbishop  to  promote  a  scheme  (say  next  year) 
for  the  establishment  of  a  South  Japan  bishopric.  The 
more  I  see  of  this  work  the  more  I  feel  that  it  wants 
constant  looking  after  of  the  kind  that  a  Bishop  only  can 
give.  Priests  are  so  made  that  they  resent  superintendence 
from  brother  priests  as  interference.  The  work  here  is 
essentially  different  from  England.  There  a  village  goes  on 
quite  well  if  the  Bishop  preaches  in  the  church  once  in  five 
years — not  so  a  mission  station.  For  efficiency  he  should 
be  seen  once  or  twice  every  year.  Now  Japan  is  nigh 
2,000  miles  long,  and  my  most  northern  station  twelve 
days'  journey  from  my  most  southern.  Kiushiu,  the 
southern  island,  by  itself  is  as  large  as  Ireland,  and  has 
double  the  population  of  Ireland.  The  number  of  clergy 
and  Christians  has  more  than  doubled  in  these  four  years. 

T 


274 


BlSriOr  EDWARD  lilCKERSTETH 


Undoubtedly,  if  there  were  two  Bishops  the  work  would 
be  better  looked  after  and  better  done.  Further,  in  the 
southern  half  of  the  country  all  the  clergy  but  one  are 
C.M.S.  Therefore  probably  that  society  would  promote 
such  a  scheme.  Please  tell  me  what  you  think.  I  shall 
ask  one  or  two  of  the  more  experienced  clergy  here,  and 
will  let  you  know  what  they  say.  If  they  and  finally  the 
Archbishop  agreed,  I  might  conceivably  take  a  month  in 
England  some  time  to  get  the  many  details  settled. 

In  February  he  attended  a  meeting  of  the  Bible  Society 
and  got  them  to  appoint  a  committee  '  on  the  revision  of 
the  New  Testament  (Japanese),  which  badly  needs  it.' 

There  was  no  part  of  his  episcopal  work  for  which 
Bishop  Edward  Bickerstcth  was  more  fitted  by  tempera- 
ment and  training  than  the  duty  of  '  showing  faithfulness 
and  diligence  in  driving  away  erroneous  and  strange 
doctrines  contrary  to  God's  word,'  especially  those  which, 
if  unchecked,  would  tend,  through  being  unbalanced  state- 
ments, to  destroy  the  proportion  of  faith.  As  used  by 
him,  the  word  'Catholic'  chiefly  meant  'proportionate.' 
A  proof  of  this  is  the  careful  letter,  formal  and  yet 
affectionate,  which  he  \vrote  at  this  time  to  the  students  in 
the  Divinity  Colleges  of  the  Holy  Trinity,  Osaka,  and  of 
St.  Andrew,  Tokyo. 

Addressing  the  students  as  his  '  dear  sons  in  Christ,' 
the  Bishop,  after  referring  to  his  direct  responsibility  in 
regard  to  those  who  were  preparing  to  receive  Holy  Orders 
at  his  hands,  proceeds  : 

The  ic-  But  the   Bishop  is  still  '  as  chief  pastor  ultimately 

sponsi-      responsible  for  the  care  of  souls  within  his  diocese,'  and 

liility  of  a  i  .  .  .       ,  .  ,  , 

Bishop  is  bound  from  time  to  time  to  exercise  his  omce  by  letter 
or  by  word  of  mouth.  As  my  office  bids  me,  then,  I  propose 
in  this  letter  to  point  out  to  you  the  reasons  why  you  are 
bound  to  be  loyal  and  dutiful  members  of  our  Nippon  Sei 
K5kwai,  and  both  to  live  and  die  within  her  pale.  Circum- 
stances to  which  I  need  not  refer  make  the  subject  one 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     1888-1893  275 


of  special  Interest  to  you  at  the  present  time.  In  order 
to  do  so,  I  must  go  back  to  the  very  beginning  of  the 
Christian  Church. 

The  Catholic  Church  was,  as  you  know,  founded  on  The  value 
the  Day  of  Pentecost.    The  representatives  of  many  nations  ^[^ '  ^'V-', 

A.cts  01  tlif* 

assembled  in  Jerusalem  for  the  feast  and  gathered  by  the  Apostles' 
one  baptism  into  its  fold  were  a  symbol  of  its  catholicity. 
The  Acts  of  the  Apostles,  as  the  Greek  title  implies,  is 
not  a  complete  history,  but  a  selection  of  typical  acts  of 
the  Apostles  and  their  companions,  from  which,  in  con- 
junction with  the  contemporary  apostolic  epistles,  later 
ages  may  learn  the  true  principles  of  spiritual  life  and 
work. 

Now  what  were  the  chief  duties  imposed  by  the 
ascended  but  ever  present  Christ  on  the  apostolic  Church  ? 
They  may  be  summed  up  as  follows  : 

I.  To  witness  to,  without  subtraction  or  addition,  and  The 
to  hand  down  to  their  successors  the  essential  elements  of 
the  Lord's  own  teaching  and  a  true  account  of  His  life  on  in  main- 
earth.    You  know  how  they  carried  out  this  great  charge,  taining 
They  filled  up  at  once  the  number  of  the  apostolic  com-  "  '•^"'^'^^ 
pany  (Acts  i.  21,  22).     The  first  disciples  were  placed 
under   regular   instruction.      '  They   continued    in  the 
Apostles'  docrine '  (see  Acts  ii.  42  and  compare  St.  Matt, 
xxviii.  20  and  St.  Luke.  i.  4).    They  had  no  sacred  books 
of  their  own,  but  they  appealed  to  the  conformity  of  what 
they  taught  with  the  Old  Testament.    (See  Acts  xxvi.  22, 
23,  and  2  Tim.  iii.  15,  16.)    The  Apostles  stayed  together 
for  at  least  twelve  years  in  Jerusalem.    During  that  time 
they  determined  what  were  the  typical  and  representative 
parts  of  the  manifold  teaching  of  our  Lord  which  it  was 
especially  important  should  be  taught  and  handed  down 
by  the  growing  number  of  Christian  evangelists,  and  also 
shaped  the  outlines  of  the  creed  (see  Rom.  vi.  17,  R.V.). 

I  notice  in  passing  that  it  is  very  important  for  you.  Attacks  on 
who  as  teachers  will  be  called  upon  to  defend  the  Christian  ''^'^  Faith, 
faith,  to  meditate  often  and  carefully  on  the  early  history  of  ^"meet" 
the  faith  and  the  Church.    Many  of  the  attacks  on  the  them 
Christian  faith  in  western  lands,  and  particularly  on  the 
truth  of  our  Lord's  resurrection,  arc  founded  on  supposed 
discrepancies  in  the  written  Gospels.    The  books  contain- 
ing these  attacks  are  imported  in  large  numbers  into  this 
country.    These  points  must  be  carefully  considered,  but 


T  2 


2;6 


BISHOr  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


tlic  truth  of  Christianity  does  not  depend  on  the  solution 
of  such  Hterary  problems.  It  is  often  impossible,  owing  to 
.  our  want  of  knowledge  of  all  that  took  place,  to  answer 
such  attacks  completely.  On  the  other  hand,  a  true 
appreciation  of  the  origin  and  growth  of  the  Church  is  the 
best  refutation  of  sceptical  arguments.  The  Church  of  the 
first  century  is  an  inexplicable  phenomenon  apart  from 
the  truth  of  the  Resurrection. 

(2)  In  2.  The  second  great  duty  of  the  early  Church  was  to 
maintain-  maintain  in  a  way  acceptable  to  Him  the  worship  of 
shfp^^"'      Almighty  God.    Judaism  had  done  this  in  its  day.  With 

Pentecost  the  Church  succeeded  to  its  office.  Now,  had 
the  first  duty  that  I  mentioned  not  been  performed,  the 
second  would  have  been  impossible.  If  the  knowledge  of 
our  Lord's  teaching  about  God  the  Father  had  been  lost 
or  obscured,  or  if  the  facts  of  His  incarnation,  death,  and 
resurrection  had  not  been  correctly  handed  down,  the  way 
of  access  to  God  which  Christ  had  opened  would,  as  far  as 
individual  believers  were  concerned,  have  been  closed. 
The  disciple  who  had  been  baptised  into  the  Holy  Name 
and  received,  we  may  gather,  the  laying  on  of  hands 
iji.b.  the  future  tense  in  Acts  ii.  38)  continued  in  the  ap- 
pointed prayers  {ii.b.  the  article  in  the  Greek  of  Acts  ii.  42). 
The  Holy  Communion  was  constantly  celebrated,  not  as  a 
mere  symbolic  ceremony  to  be  occasionally  resorted  to, 
but  as  a  real  means  of  grace  '  by  the  which  God  doth  work 
invisibly  in  us  ' ;  it  was  called  the  Communion  of  the  Body 
and  of  the  Blood  of  Christ  (see  i  Cor.  x.  16  and  Article 
XXV.).  Psalms  and  hymns  were  a  constituent  part  of 
the  service,  and  before  the  death  of  the  last  Apostle 
considerable  progress  had  been  made  in  the  composition 
of  a  Christian  liturgy.  The  object  of  the  service  was  not 
only  the  edification  of  individuals  but  to  pay  homage  to 
God. 

(3)  .l'i  3.  Very  soon  after  the  Gospel  spread  beyond  the 
ing  the"^  limits  of  Palestine,  a  regular  ministry  was  ordained  (see 
Ministry     Acts  xiv.  23  &c.).    This  was  necessary  both  for  the  sake 

of  preserving  the  Gospel  teaching  inviolate  and  for  the 
instruction  of  Church  members  and  enquirers,  and  also  to 
carry  out  'decently  and  in  order  '  Christian  worship  and  to 
maintain  discipline.  Many  discussions  have  arisen  in 
regard  to  the  exact  form  of  this  ministry.  Three  points 
are  clear  and  you  should  keep  them  well  in  memory. 


A  MISSIONARY  bishop's  LIFE.     1888-1893  277 


(a)  There  is  no  evidence  that  anyone  undertook  the  rc<^u- 
lar  public  ministry  of  the  Church  unless  he  had  received 
a  commission  to  do  so  from  those  who  had  themselves 
received  authority  to  give  it  to  him.  We  never  find  that 
the  body  of  believers  conferred  orders,  yd)  There  is 
evidence  that  before  the  death  of  St.  John  the  Church 
possessed,  both  in  places  where  the  Jewish  and  in  places 
where  the  Gentile  element  predominated,  the  three-fold 
order  of  ministry.  This  ministry,  as  the  most  learned 
Bishop  of  modern  times,  who  has  just  passed  to  his  rest, 
said,  '  was  the  outcome  of  the  ripened  wisdom  of  the 
apostolic  age.'  (c)  Ordination  was  not  regarded  as  a 
mere  ceremony  nor  the  offices  of  the  Church  as  secular 
institutions.  On  the  contrary,  the  laying  on  of  hands  was 
believed  to  be  accompanied  by  gifts  of  the  Holy  Spirit, 
Who  Himself  conferred  the  several  offices.  St.  Paul's 
words  on  this  point  are  express  (see  Acts  xx.  28,  I  Tim. 
iv.  14,  2  Tim.  i,  16).  Those  who  have  denied  this  have  too 
often  denied  also  the  authenticity  of  the  canonical  books 
from  which  we  learn  it. 

The  work  of  the  Church  to-day  is  essentially  the  same 
as  in  the  first  age.  There  are  no  doubt  some  striking  differ- 
ences. Instead  of  the  living  voice  of  Apostles  and  their 
immediate  companions  and  successors  we  have  the  written 
records  and  letters  of  the  New  Testament.  Again,  new  forms 
of  error  have  arisen  unknown  to  the  first  century  of  which 
the  two  chief  are  Romanism,  which  interferes  with  the  one- 
ness of  Christ's  mediation,  and  Calvinism,  sometimes  called 
Puritanism,  which  narrows  and  obscures  the  love  of  God 
our  Father.  These  systems  are  not  less  dangerous  because 
good  men  have  adopted  both  the  one  and  the  other.  But 
these  differences  do  not  essentially  alter  the  character  of 
the  Church's  work.  We,  too,  have  to  guard  and  hand  down 
the  whole  faith — all  things,  that  is,  which  Christ  imme- 
diately or  through  the  Holy  Spirit  abiding  in  them  com- 
manded the  Apostles  to  do  or  teach.  We,  too,  have  to 
maintain  the  Christian  rites  and  worship,  baptism,  con- 
firmation, prayer,  absolution,  and  Holy  Communion.  We, 
too,  have  to  cherish  the  true  conception  of,  and  to  hand 
down  through  regular  channels,  the  Orders  of  the  Christian 
Ministry- — not  allowing  a  mistaken  charity  to  make  us 
think  that  these  matters  are  of  no  importance. 

Apply  what  I  have  been  saying  to  the  subject  of 


llic  ordina- 
tion lo 
which 
must  Ije 
rcce-ivud, 
not  self- 
imposed, 
nor  regar- 
decKas  a 
mere  cere- 
mony 


To-day, 
new  errors, 
but  the 
Church's 
duty  the 
same 


2/8 


BISHOr  EDWARD  lUCKERSTETir 


Seven 
questions 
for  a  well- 
instructed 
f  apanese 
Christian 


allegiance  to  the  Nippon  Sci  Kokwai.  Every  thoughtful 
and  instructed  Christian  has  a  right  to  ask  such  questions 
as  these  :  Does  the  communion  into  which  I  am  baptised 
offer  me  all  the  advantages  which  are  the  lawful  inheritance 
of  Christian  people  ?  Does  it  allow  me  free  access  to  the 
Holy  Scriptures  ?  Is  its  Ministry  lawfully  derived  from  the 
Apostles  by  a  regular  succession  ?  Are  the  Holy  Sacra- 
ments and  comfirmation  duly  administered  ?  Arc  its 
forms  of  worship  consonant  with  the  evangelical  and 
apostolic  teaching,  Christ  alone  being  regarded  as  the  one 
Mediator  ?  Does  it,  on  the  one  hand,  duly  administer 
discipline  and  on  the  other  maintain  the  lawful  freedom  of 
individuals  ?  Do  its  ministers  rightlv  declare  the  absolu- 
tion  of  sins  to  penitent  persons  in  Christ's  name  ?  And  if 
an  affirmative  answer  can  be  given  to  such  questions,  then 
he  is  bound  to  abide  in  the  communion  into  which  he  has 
been  baptised,  and  to  leave  that  communion  for  another 
not  possessing  these  privileges  would  be  for  him  a  sin, 
because  he  would  be  neglecting  the  means  which  God  had 
placed  in  his  hands  to  prepare  him  for  the  world  to  come. 


After  pointing  out  that  the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai 
possessed  all  these  privileges,  the  Bishop  concluded  : 

It  is  for  us  the  highest  of  all  privileges  to  have  had 
committed  to  us  all  that  is  needed  to  maintain  and  extend 
a  living  branch  of  the  Church  of  God.  In  no  case  can  the 
results  be  unimportant  of  the  establishment  in  your  land, 
at  a  time  so  eventful  and  critical  in  its  national  history,  of  a 
Church  which  maintains  alike  historical  continuity  with 
the  Church  of  the  Apostles  and  a  full  and  unadulterated 
faith. 

May  God  give  you  His  holy  blessing,  prays  your  father 
in  God, 

Edw.  Bickersteth,  Bishop. 

S.  Andrew's  House,  Shiba,  Tokyo  : 
February  1890. 


The  extracts  at  such  length  from  this  Pastoral  Letter 
to  Divinity  Students  seem  justified  as  it  is  one  out  of 
many  instances  of  the  sensitive  and  careful  watchfulness 


A  MISSIONARY  HISilOr'S  LIFE.     1 888- 1 893  279 


which  the  Bishop  endeavoured  to  keep  over  Iiis  nocl<;. 
Sometimes  also  discipline  with  regard  to  moral  failure  had 
to  be  exerted,  and  commenting  about  this  time  on  the 
conduct  of  some  students,  he  writes  : 

King  has  shown  great  skill  in  his  management  of  the 
whole  affair.  He  is,  like  St.  Ste^^hen,  Tr\7]pr]5  TtiaTSws  koX 
hvvdfjLSws. 

In  the  Annual  Lenten  Pastoral  he  mentioned,  as  prin- 
cipal among  the  events  of  importance  in  the  Church  in 
Japan  during  the  last  twelve  months,  '  the  resignation  by 
Bishop  Williams  of  the  active  duties  of  the  episcopate 
after  a  period  of  labour  in  Japan  considerably  exceeding  a 
quarter  of  a  century.' 

None  can  grudge  him  the  rest  which  has  long  been  due. 
The  most  affectionate  respect  will  follow  him  in  his  retire- 
ment. It  is  a  matter  of  satisfaction  that  the  Bishop  was  able 
to  preside  in  April  last  over  a  fully  constituted  meeting  of 
the  synod  which  he  had  so  large  a  share  in  organising. 

After  another  month's  tour  confirming  and  ordaining, 
in  company,  first,  of  the  Rev.  H.  Evington  (of  the 
C.M.S.,  now  Bishop  of  Kiushiu),  and  then  of  the  Rev. 
H.  J.  Foss  (of  the  S.P.G.,  now  Bishop  of  Osaka),  visiting 
the  missions,  the  Bishop  took  part  on  March  10  at  Osaka 
in  the  opening  of  the  Girls'  School,  built  as  a  memorial  of 
his  predecessor.  Bishop  Poole,  whose  brief  episcopate  had 
ended  on  July  14,  1885 — an  episcopate  which  he  described 
as  'of  briefest  duration  but  fullest  influence,  and  a  death 
lamented  alike  within  and  beyond  our  own  Church.' 

On  April  17  the  Bishop  dined  at  the  British  Legation 
to  meet  the  Duke  and  Duchess  of  Connaught.  H.R.H.  the 
Duchess  consented  with  gracious  readiness  to  the  Bishop's 
request  that  she  should  lay  the  foundation  stone  of  St. 
Hilda's  Hospital.    He  wrote  to  his  father : 


28o 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


I  have  seen  a  good  deal  of  both.  They  say  that  they 
know  you.  Nothing  could  have  been  kinder  than  they 
were.  They  let  me  present  to  them  anyone  that  I  liked 
in  the  garden  after  the  stone-laying,  so  that  I  had  the 
opportunity  of  gratifying  a  good  many  people.  It  is  a 
good  thing  that  the  Japanese  should  see  our  Prince  and 
Princess  publicly  acknowledge  and  support  a  work  con- 
nected with  a  mission. 

In  the  same  letter  he  rejoices  that  '  Dr.  Westcott  goes 
to  Durham.  I  have  only  half  known  Cambridge  since 
1879,  and  now  shall  scarcely  seem  to  know  it  at  all' 

He  then  started  west  again  for  a  five  weeks'  tour,  often 
in  out-of-the-way  places.  This  spring  he  felt  sure  enough 
of  his  command  of  language  to  venture  on  extempore 
preaching  in  Japan,  and  writes  to  his  Father : 

January  27,  1S90. 

I  gave  an  extempore  address  in  Japanese  for  the 
first  time  in  church — a  stumbling  affair,  I  fear,  but  I  hope 
not  wholly  unintelligible. 

In  August  he  wrote  of  '  departures  many  and  arrivals 
few.'  He  spent  his  holiday  at  Nikko  with  the  Rev.  and 
Mrs.  J.  M.  Francis,  of  the  American  mission,  and  found 
much  enjoyment  in  their  companionship.  Xikko  is  so 
beautiful  in  its  situation  among  the  mountains  that  a 
Japanese  proverb  says  that  he  who  has  not  been  to  Nikko 
must  not  say  kekko  (beautiful).  In  September  the  Bishop 
of  Korea  (Dr.  Corfe)  came  to  stay  with  him,  and  he  writes  : 

He  has  quite  a  large  enough  staff  to  make  a  good 
beginning  ...  It  is  a  great  mercy  that  our  little  journey  ' 
has  borne  so  much  fruit.  Though  slowly,  yet  certainly,, 
things  do  get  done.  Ten  years  ago  we  had  no  Bishop  in 
North  China,  Korea,  or  Japan. 

On  St.  Michael's  Day,  the  eve  of  his  departure  for 
another  long  journey  in  Kiushiu  and  the  West,  he  wrote  l 

'  .See  chapter  vi.  p.  194. 


A  MISSIONARY  BISIIOP'S  LIFE.     1 888-1 893        28 1 


Yesterday  I  preached  a  semi-political  sermon,  which  I 
seldom  do.  There  is  great  excitement  here  about  Treaty 
Revision,  and  much  that  I  disapprove  has  been  said  by 
the  linglish-speaking  Yokohama  merchants.  I  tried  to 
give  a  Christian  tone  to  things. 

Travelling  was  now  much  more  expeditious  on  certain 
routes,  as  when  the  Bishop  reached  Kobe  in  twenty-eight 
hours  by  'the  luxurious  new  ship,  the  Saikyo  Mai-u, 
of  the  great  Japanese  Steamship  Co.'  He  wrote  to  his 
father  from  Kumamoto  : 

October  1890. 

Among  my  fellow-travellers  were  two  members  of  the 
Inland  mission,  with  whom  I  got  into  conversation  after 
one  of  them  had  sung  your  hymn,  'Peace,  perfect  peace.' 
[After  leaving  Kobe]  the  next  day  we  were  in  the  Inland 
Sea,  which  is  specially  lovely  this  time  of  year  with  the 
green  rice  harvest  clothing  all  the  lower  parts  of  the  hills. 
This  is  a  route  which  I  hope  you  will  come  next  year. 
We  reached  Shimonoseki  at  midnight.  I  got  with  a 
number  of  Japanese  into  an  open  boat,  and  we  were  about 
an  hour  making  the  shore.  The  tide  runs  through  the 
strait  with  such  velocity  that  at  times  it  will  prevent  the 
passage  even  of  a  steamer.  ...  I  had  meant  to  go  on  by 
land  to  Fukuoka,  but  on  getting  near  the  pier  noticed  in 
the  moonlight  a  fairly  large  steamer  all  but  ready  to  start, 
and  on  inquiry  found  she  was  going  straight  to  Fukuoka. 
They  told  me  the  sea  was  very  rough  outside,  but  I 
balanced  a  whole  day  in  jinrikshas  with  six  hours  on  the 
ship,  and  decided  on  the  latter.  It  certainly  was  rough, 
and  of  the  smaller  craft  only  the  ship  I  was  on  ventured 
out  ;  but  I  was  having  breakfast  with  Mr.  and  Mrs. 
Hutchinson  by  ten  o'clock.  .  .  .  The  number  of  Christian.s 
at  Fukuoka  is  now  100,  a  tenfold  increase  in  four  years. 
I  laid  the  foundation  stone  for  the  church,  which  will  be  a 
conspicuous  building  close  to  the  public  offices. 

Again : 

October  9,  1S90. 

On  the  Tuesday  we  left  by  the  early  train  for  Oyamada, 
our  Christian  village.    Here  I   consecrated  the  church, 


282 


BISHOP  EDWARD  lilCKERSTETII 


which  has  been  some  time  building.  Mr.  Hutchinson 
preached.  There  were  some  eighty  communicants.  It 
was  wonderful  to  think  how  recently  these  poor  people 
had  been  idolaters  and  enslaved  in  various  superstitions, 
and  to  notice  their  present  orderly  behaviour  and  reverence 
in  the  service,  and  apparently  real  appreciation  of  its 
meaning. 

That  evening  I  parted  from  Mr.  Hutchinson  at  a  place 
called  Kuruma.  He  went  back  to  Fukuoka  by  the  new 
Kiushiu  railway,  and  by  half  past-ten  I  was  some  miles  on 
my  way  to  Kumamoto.  The  jinriksha  men  were  willing 
to  have  run  further,  but  it  was  time  for  bed,  and  I  stopped 
them  at  a  good  inn  which  I  had  been  told  of  at  a  place 
called  Fukushima,  or  '  happy  island.'  Yesterday  some 
eight  more  hours'  jinriksha  travelling  brought  me  in  here 
to  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Brandram's  house.  These  good  people, 
like  the  Hutchinsons,  live  in  the  middle  of  a  great  Japanese 
town  in  Japanese  quarters,  which  they  have  to  a  certain 
extent  Europeanised.  No  doubt  when  this  is  possible  the 
gain  is  great  to  a  missionary's  work.  The  people  have 
much  less  fear  of  approaching  him  than  if  he  lives  in  a 
building  erected  after  the  manner  of  Europeans.  Mr. 
Brandram  has  very  kindly  vacated  his  study  for  me.  I 
feel  the  kindness  the  more  as  I  fear  it  is  an  act  which 
I  never  do  for  anyone. 

Again  : 

October  15,  1890. 

My  main  business  at  Kumamoto  was  a  meeting  of  the 
Kiushiu  Local  Council.  To  some  extent  I  enjoy  presiding 
at  these  meetings,  but  it  is  in  them,  too,  that  deficiency  in  the 
language  must  make  itself  felt.  When  each  delegate  if  he 
knows  an  out-of-the-way  Chinese  word  feels  it  his  duty  to 
use  it,  and  the  subject  under  discussion  requires  a  know- 
ledge of  some  technical  phraseology,  the  poor  chairman  is 
often  at  fault.  Fortunately  at  Kumamoto  Mr.  Brandram 
has  made  great  progress  with  the  language,  and  is  an 
excellent  assistant. 

All  through  this  year  in  letter  after  letter  he  continued 
to  discuss  the  proposed  visit  of  his  father  to  Japan,  devising 
and  revising  schemes,  and  overcoming  every  suggested 


A  MISSIONARY  ISISIIOP'S  LIFE.     1 888-1 893  283 


difficulty  in  his  eager  desire  to  secure  the  visit  during  1891. 
Writing  on  November  3  he  says  : 

You  can  easily  rest  on  your  way  through  Canada. 
Banff,  four  days  from  Montreal,  is  a  great  Rocky  Mountain 
resort,  or  at  Winnipeg  the  Bishop  would  show  you  hos- 
pitality. I  don't  think  you  will  have  any  difficulty,  as  the 
journey  is  perfectly  ordered  right  through  from  Liverpool 
to  Yokohama. 

He  himself  continued  to  give  proof  of  his  vigour  in 
travelling,  as  will  be  seen  from  the  following  letter. 

Vonago,  West  Coast  :  November  7,  1890. 

My  dearest  Father, — I  got  in  here  to-night  after  two 
long  days  in  jinrikshas  (118  miles),  and  find  the  mail  going 
out  and  a  confirmation  arranged  for  me  ;  so  this  can  only 
be  a  scrap  indeed. 

On  Sunday  I  preached  to  some  500  men  on  the 
Imperieuse,  our  flagship  in  these  seas.  Sir  Nowell  and 
Lady  Salmon  were  very  pleasant.  Monday  night  I  attended 
a  great  reception  given  by  Viscount  Aoki,  Japanese  Minister 
for  Foreign  Affairs,  in  honour  of  the  Emperor's  birthday. 
I  came  away  as  soon  as  propriety  allowed,  but  was  only 
then  home  by  10.30,  and  by  6  next  morning  was  in  the 
train.  That  night  I  reached  Kyoto  at  1 1.45.  Next  morning 
I  went  on  to  Kobe  and  lunched  with  the  Fosses.  At  5  I 
left  by  the  new  railway  for  a  place  on  the  Inland  Sea  named 
Tatsuno.  The  station  is  a  mile  from  the  town,  and  a  river 
bank  had  given  way,  so  I  had  to  make  a  long  detour. 
However,  I  found  a  fairly  good  inn  and  got  a  few  hours' 
rest,  and  since  I  have  been  pushing  on  over  the  mountains 
to  catch  my  engagements  here. 

I  don't  often  make  quite  such  a  four  days  of  it,  nor  do 
I  like  long  lonely  jinriksha  rides,  but  this  time  I  had  no 
choice.  Here  I  found  Chapman  waiting  for  me — a  nice 
young  C.M.S.  missionary,  who  will  travel  with  me  down 
the  coast  for  a  fortnight. 

With  fond  love  to  all. 

Your  very  affectionate  Son, 

Edw.  Bickersteth,  Bishop. 


284 


BISHOr  EDWARD  lilCKERSTETH 


He  wrote  on  November  i8  from  Hiroshima,  on  the  nortii 
coast  of  the  Inland  Sea,  'a  great  Japanese  city  (of  80,000 
inhabitants)  which  I  have  never  visited  before,'  and  on 
November  24  from  Osaka,  which  he  reached  from  Hiro- 
shima after  a  journey  '  in  a  small  steamer  crowded  with 
Japanese.' 

The  next  year  (1891)  was  to  be  to  him  one  of  gloom 
and  gladness,  for  it  was  marked  by  a  tedious  illness  which 
brought  him  near  to  the  gates  of  death  ;  but  by  God's 
Providence  his  illness  (an  attack  of  the  same  dysenteric 
fever  which  caused  his  death  six  years  later)  did  not  lay 
him  aside  until  he  had  issued  his  annual  Lenten  Pastoral 
with  its  useful  appendices  and  statistical  information,  and 
had  presided  at  the  Third  Biennial  Synod  of  the  Nippon 
Sei  Kokwai,  assembled  at  Osaka  in  April. 

In  the  '  Pastoral '  (dated  St.  Matthias's  Day),  after 
referring  to  the  growth  of  the  mission,  the  Bishop  dwelt  at 
length  on  some  aspects  of  the  '  Judgment  of  the  Archbishop 
of  Canterbury  on  certain  Points  of  Ritual  ' — commonly 
called  the  Lincoln  Judgment — in  so  far  as  they  affected 
Japanese  use,  and  passed  on  to  deal  with  some  of  the 
problems  suggested  by  Old  Testament  criticism,  and  to 
plead  for  the  production  of  a  commentary  in  Japanese  on 
the  text  of  the  Holy  Scriptures. 

A  subsequent  chapter '  will  give  better  opportunity  for 
a  statement  of  his  views  on  these  matters,  but  it  was  owing 
to  a  well  thought  out  policy  on  his  part  that  he  encouraged 
all  his  missionaries,  lay  and  clerical  alike,  to  keep  them- 
selves abreast  of  those  questions  which,  under  the  guidance 
and  governance  of  the  Holy  Spirit,  the  Church  at  home 
was  being  led  to  investigate.  He  felt  that  for  men,  often 
isolated  and  as  a  rule  out-numbered,  mental  freshness  was 
necessary  to  missionary  ardour,  and  so  of  set  purpose  he 

'  Chapter  xi.  pp.  413-415. 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     1 888-1 893  2S5 


<;avc  them  his  own  views  of,  and  encouraged  them  to  read 
and  think  upon,  matters  of  wider  interest  than  even  the 
problems  of  their  own  work  directly  supplied. 

In  the  appendix  to  this  '  Pastoral,'  therefore,  there  are 
not  only  lists  of  clergy  &c.,  and  comparative  statistics  of 
the  progress  and  retrogression  of  the  mission  in  various 
branches  of  the  work,  but  also  a  copy  of  Archbishop 
Benson's  Pastoral  on  the  Lincoln  Judgment,  of  Bishop 
Westcott's  Thesis  on  the  Sacraments,  a  quotation  from 
Professor  Sayce's  book  on  '  Recently  Discovered  Arabian 
Inscriptions,'  and  a  list  of  religious  and  theological  works 
in  Japanese  edited  by  I^nglish  and  American  Church 
Missionaries.    In  particular  he  urged  : 

It  is  felt  that  there  is  no  more  important  means  of 
strengthening  our  Japanese  brethren  in  the  Christian  faith, 
and  of  leading  them  to  accept  it  in  its  fulness  as  taught  b)- 
the  Church,  than  commentaries  on  Holy  Scripture.  With 
this  view  it  is  proposed  to  combine  the  efforts  of  a  companv 
of  students  in  the  production  of  a  commentary  on  the  New 
Testament.  It  is  expected  that  each  contributor  will  give, 
so  far  as  he  may  be  able,  the  result  of  his  independent  study, 
and  indicate  his  own  judgment  on  such  questions  as  arise  out 
of  the  sacred  text.  But  with  a  view  to  giving  some  unity 
to  the  work,  it  is  suggested  that  the  commentaries  of  the 
following  authors,  where  available,  should  be  consulted, 
and  such  quotations  made  from  them  as  may  be  thought 
advisable. 

I.  The  commentaries  of  the  School  of  Antioch 
especially  St.  Chrysostom.  2.  Bengel.  3.  Meyer.  Godet. 
4.  S.P.C.K.,  Alford,  Lightfoot,  Westcott,  Wordsworth, 
p:ilicott,  Sadler. 

It  is  thought  that  it  may  be  often  desirable,  as  in  the 
commentaries  of  Bishop  Lightfoot,  Sec,  to  add  detached 
notes  on  particular  subjects  at  the  end  of  chapters, 
especially  such  as  bear  on  the  circumstances  of  the  Church 
in  Japan.  It  is  proposed  that  the  commentaries  be  written 
in  Engli.sh  on  the  basis  of  the  present  Japanese  text  (cor- 
rections being  suggested  in  foot-notes),  and  submitted  to  a 
general  editor,  who,  at  his  discretion,  would  circulate  them 


286 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


among  other  members  of  the  company,  and  that  if  approved 
they  be  then  translated  into  Japanese  under  the  direction 
of  Mr.  Takahashi  Goro.  The  promoters  of  the  plan  have 
asked  the  Bishop  of  the  Church  of  England  to  act  as  editor, 
and  the  Rev.  H.  D.  Page  as  secretary.  It  is  thought  that 
600/.  will  be  eventually  needed  to  publish  the  work,  and 
that  its  importance  will  justify  an  appeal  for  this  sum  being 
made  to  English  and  American  Societies,  &c. 

In  concluding  his  '  Pastoral '  he  pleaded  : 

Might  not  more  of  us  than  at  present  profitably  under- 
take some  literary  task  ?  Some  of  the  best  work  yet  done 
has  come  from  hands  that  I  know  to  be  otherwise  most 
largely  occupied. 

He  had  set  the  example,  as  will  be  .seen  from  the 
following  extract  from  a  letter  written  while  on  a  brief 
holiday  at  Miyanoshita  : 

January  9,  1 89 1. 

I  have  begun  a  commentary  on  St.  Paul's  pastoral 
epistles.  It  seemed  especially  wanted  here,  and  to  offer 
an  opportunity  of  teaching  a  great  deal  in  an  uncontro- 
versial  way  which  the  Japanese  divinity  students  and 
others  are  ignorant  or  callous  of  The  work  is  laborious, 
as  I  have  first  to  work  up  my  notes,  and  then  to  translate 
it  to  my  teacher  in  colloquial  Japanese,  who  brings  it 
back  to  me  next  day  in  the  written  language,  when  I  copy 
it  out.  I  find  it,  however,  very  interesting.  Hitherto  St. 
Chrysostom  and  Theodore  of  Mopsuetia  have  been  my 
guides  among  thfe  ancients.  Dr.  Westcott's  '  Commentary 
on  the  Hebrews '  shows  how  much  may  be  got  out  of  the 
Greek  fathers  which  is  still  fruitful.  As  it  seems  to  me,  the 
commentaries  which  we  supply  to  the  Japanese  should 
give  them  some  fair  idea  of  what  exposition  has  hitherto 
attained  to  in  the  West ;  so  that  they  may  start  making 
their  own  commentaries  from  that  point. 

In  March  he  was  recalled  suddenly  to  Tokyo  from 
Kobe  : 

A  telegram  reached  me  at  Kobe  to  bring  me  back  to 
the  funeral  of  the  American  Minister,  who  died  suddenly. 
I  have  been  sittingwith  his  widow,  Mrs.  Swift,  for  along  time 


A  MISSIONARY  BISIIOP'S  LIFE.     1 888-1 893  287 


this  afternoon.  The  funeral  was  a  grand  state  affair.  He 
was  an  American  Churchman,  so  buried  with  our  rites.  The 
scene,  as  we  walked  through  Tokyo,  and  again  at  Yokohama, 
was  very  striking,  the  long  line  of  clergy  in  surplices,  and 
diplomats,  and  sailors,  and  the  men-of-war  saluting.  Bishop 
Williams  and  I,  of  course,  walked  together.  I  trust  I  may 
be  some  comfort  to  the  poor  widow. 

Holy  Week  and  Easter  were  spent  by  the  Bishop  at 
Tokyo.    Writing  later  to  his  Guild,  he  says  : 

The  Easter  services  at  St.  Andrew's  were  bright  and 
happy,  my  guest,  Mr.  Barnett,  of  Whitechaj^el,  preaching 
a  helpful  sermon  on  serving  others  in  the  strength  of  Christ 
Risen.  .  .  .  Then  came  the  three  days'  C.M.S.  Conference 
at  Osaka,  and  then  the  Synod. 

Canon  Barnett  has  kindly  supplied  me  with  the  follow- 
ing recollections.    He  writes : 

Warden's  Lodge,  To)-nbee  Hall,  Whiiechapel,  E.  : 

February  10,  1899. 

Dear  Mr.  Bickersteth, — Your  brother  left  on  my  mind 
an  impression  of  his  greatness  and  goodness,  but  I  cannot 
recall  his  definite  words.  He  seems,  as  I  think  of  him,  to 
have  been  one  pre-eminently  fitted  to  commend  our  faith 
to  the  East,  his  strength  of  principle,  his  simplicity  of 
thought  and  action,  his  devotion  to  duty,  would  all 
commend  themselves  to  a  side  in  human  nature  which  is 
not  often  touched  by  the  popular  religions.  He  did  much 
to  help  us  to  form  our  opinions.  I  have  turned  out  my 
Diary,  and  copy  two  references  just  as  they  stand. 

I  am  yours  ever  truly, 

Samuel  F.  Barnett. 

Good  Friday,  MarcJi  27,  1891. — We  went  to  church 
and  had  a  most  helpful  sermon  from  the  Bishop.  His  good- 
ness gave  depth  to  his  words  as  he  showed  the  moral  quality 
of  the  Atonement.  Such  a  sermon  every  Sunday  would  make 
life  easier,  and  such  teaching  must  tell  on  Japan.  As  to 
the  Greeks,  the  cross  will  be  foolishness  to  the  Japanese. 
They  have  resolutely  shut  sorrow  out  of  their  lives,  they 


288 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


have  a  laugh  ready  for  every  occasion,  they  wave  off  care 
with  a  branch  of  blossom. 

Easter  Siutday. — Wc  arrived  at  church  in  time  to  see 
the  Japanese  congregation,  which  met  at  nine  o'clock  and 
quite  filled  the  place.  It  was  touching  to  see  them  with 
their  own  neat  and  pretty  ways  singing  our  well-known 
Easter  hymns.  The  English  congregation,  among  whom 
were  several  Japanese  gentlemen,  also  filled  the  church. 
I  preached.  Afterwards  we  lunched  with  the  Bishop. 
Apart  from  his  mannerisms,  which  suggest  superiority,  he 
is  a  fine  fellow — thoughtful  as  well  as  earnest,  liberal  as  well 
as  strong.    He  ought  to  have  a  wife. 

It  was  at  this  time  that  there  appeared  the  first 
symptoms  of  his  Delhi  illness,  from  which  he  had  hitherto 
been  free  in  Japan.  Writing  to  his  father  on  Good 
Friday,  he  says  : 

I  have  been  poorl}-.  I  think  that  some  of  our  Lenten 
fish  was  not  what  it  ought  to  have  been  !  and  for  the  first 
time  since  I  came  to  Japan  have  had  to  spend  a  day  or 
two  in  bed.  However,  I  am  now  better,  though  a  bit 
weak.  It  has  just  come  in  Holy  Week,  and  amid  a  crush 
of  duties  which  has  made  it  most  untimely. 

Still,  he  persevered  and  presided  at  the  Third  General 
Synod,  and  his  opening  address  on  the  principles  of  debate 
was  probably  the  most  terse  and  well-balanced  statement 
which  he  was  ever  allowed  to  deliver.  Its  line  of  argument 
will  be  found  in  Chapter  IX.,'  and  the  concluding  paragraph 
onl}'  is  here  given — a  paragraph  which  \\  as  reproduced  in 
many  English  papers,  and  quoted  by  Earl  Nelson  at  the 
Church  House  in  the  autumn  of  that  year  as  an  ideal 
.statement  of  a  true  missionary's  ambition. 

I-'or  the  Church  of  my  baptism  I  could  seek  no  greater 
grace,  as  individuals  we  could  ask  no  higher  privilege, 
than  to  have  contributed,  at  a  great  crisis,  to  the  establish- 
ment in  this  land  of  a  branch  of  Christ's  Holy  Church, 
united  by  bonds  of  faith  and  affection  only  to  its  Western 

'  See  chapter      pp.  326-330. 


A  MISSIONARY  BlSIiOP'S  LIFE.     1 888 -1 893  289 

mother — apostolic  in  order  and  creed  -  a  new  home  where 
souls  may  be  re-created  into  the  imas^c  of  God. 

The  Bishop  of  South  Dakota  v^Dr.  Hare)  had  been 
deputed  by  the  xA.merican  House  of  Bishops  to  superintend 
provisionally  the  work  resigned  b\'  l^ishop  Williams,  and 
he  was  present  at  the  synod.  ]5ishop  l^ickersteth  wrote 
to  his  father : 

Osaka  :  April  9,  1891. 

Dearest  Father, — This  can  be  only  a  line,  as  our  syncd 
is  in  session. 

We  had  a  very  good  C.AI.S.  Conference  last  week.  .  .  . 

Oh  that  men  were  wiser!  I  have  just  been  talking  to 
a  C.M.S.  man  (a  very  nice  fellow  !)  who  had  never  had 
Holy  W'eek  services  because  he  did  not  care  about  them  ! 
and  this  year  had  no  Easter  Communion  in  order  to 
attend  the  conference.  His  excuse  was  that  he  did  what 
lie  could  as  he  sent  his  people  a  telegram  !  ! 

.  .  .  The  synod,  too,  has  gone  well.  The  Bishop  of 
South  Dakota  has  been  the  greatest  support  and  help 
to  me. 

I  am  going  to  take  two  or  three  days',  or  perhaps  a 
week's,  rest  from  to-morrow,  as  presiding  for  days  together 
in  a  synod  and  conference  is  ver\-  hard  work,  especially 
when  one  has  been  poorly.  But  really  they  have  all  looked 
after  me  like  so  many  brothers  and  sisters — so  that  it 
lias  been  worth  not  being  quite  well  to  call  out  their 
kindness. 

I  had  a  most  successful  'At  Home,'  Japanese  and 
Foreign,  on  Tuesday  night — nearly  200  people,  I  suppose. 
Your  very  loving  Son, 

El)\V.  BiCKKKSTETII,  Bishop. 
Pardon  an  arm-chair  letter  I 

And  again  : 

l^olie  :  April  13,  1891. 

.  .  .  Our  conference  and  s\-nod  are  over,  and  for 
both,  I  think,  there  is  much  reason  to  be  thankful.  In 
the  synod  there  was  a  good  deal  of  expression  of  loose 
opinion,  but  the  voting  was  always  on  the  right  side.  An 

U 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


appalling  number  of  committees  have  been  appointed  to 
report  to  the  next  synod — on  Prayer  Book  Revision,  New 
Services,  Vestments,  and  I  know  not  what.  But  these 
things  are  at  least  a  sign  of  interest  and  Hfe.  ...  I  am 
going  for  a  few  days  to  the  hills  with  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Foss, 
Dr.  and  Mrs.  Weitbrecht  (you  remember  them  at  Lahore, 
the}'  are  on  their  way  home),  and  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Swann. 
My  old  Indian  complaint  has  been  troubling  me  a  little, 
and  the  doctor  advises  the  change ;  but  I  am  already 
better. 

In  writing  to  the  Guild  of  St.  Paul  in  England  about 
this  synod,  the  Bishop  thus  referred  to  the  Committee  on 
Prayer  Book  Revision  :  ' 

It  is  not  surprising  that  a  volume  which  grew  up 
wholly  in  the  West  should  not  meet  all  the  requirements 
of  a  Far  Eastern  Church  .  .  .  Some  day  Japan  may  have 
liturgiologists  of  her  own,  who  will  compose  liturgies 
more  suited  to  the  genius  of  her  people  and  language  than 
a  translated  volume  can  ever  be.  It  is  remarkable  that 
liturgies  of  some  literary  merit  were  produced  by  Shinto 
priests  a  thousand  years  ago. 

After  his  brief  rest  with  I\Ir.  and  Mrs.  Foss  at  Arima 
he  returned  to  entertain  Dr.  and  Mrs.  Weitbrecht  and  Canon 
Tristram  of  Durham,  and  then  started  off,  broken  in  health 
as  he  was,  to  consecrate  a  church  at  Fukuoka,  nearly  700 
miles  distant.  But  his  anticipated  return  to  health  was 
not  to  be  realised  until  after  a  sharp  and  serious  illness 
which  compelled  him  to  give  up  all  work  in  June  and 
July,  and  wholly  prevented  a  visit  to  the  northern  island 
for  which  arrangements  had  been  made.  Humanly  speak- 
ing, he  was  only  nursed  back  to  life  by  the  skill  and 
kindness  of  Dr.  Howard,  a  medical  man  who  had  been 
his  guest  the  previous  year  and  now  came  to  stay  in  the 
Bishop's  house  to  give  him  his  undivided  attention,  and 


'  Chapter  ix,  p.  332. 


A  MISSIONARY  LISIIOP's  LIFE.     1888-1893  291 


by  the  unremitting  care  and  brotherly  devotion  of  the 
Rev.  A.  F.  King,  the  Head  of  St.  Andrew's  Mission.  The 
efforts  of  these  two  friends  were  so  far  successful  under 
God's  blessing  that  Dr.  Howard  allowed  and,  in  fact, 
ordered  his  patient  to  take  a  sea  voyage.  By  July  28 
he  had  been  able  to  resume  his  correspondence  with  his 
father,  and  wrote  on  that  date  : 

I  am  daily  making  excellent  progress  towards  full 
health  and  strength,  indeed,  though  needing  care,  I  am 
practically  well.  Dr.  Howard's  wonderful  skill  and 
attention  and  King's  unremitting  care  as  a  nurse  have  got 
me  through  an  illness  in  a  month  which  might  have  taken 
several,  and  the  voyage  to  Vancouver  will  be  just  the 
bracing  that  I  need.  King  will  accompany  me.  After  all 
the  nursing  he  will  need  the  holiday,  and  also  for  some 
weeks  I  am  to  be  dieted,  in  which  he  is  very  skilled.  Diet- 
ing and  rest  have  been  the  two  main  elements  in  my  cure. 
.  .  .  Dr.  Howard,  with  his  experience,  divined  the  cause 
^lirectly,  and  in  his  great  kindness  gave  himself  up  to  me 
entirely.  It  was  a  most  kind  Providence  which  brought 
him  here  at  the  time.    Te  Deum  Laudamus. 

He  met  his  father  and  step-mother  and  his  sister  May 
fthe  Honorary  Secretary  of  the  Guild  of  St.  Paul),  who 
had  left  England  on  August  12  and  travelled  via  Canada 
to  Banff  in  the  Rocky  Mountains  in  August,  and  brought 
them  back  to  Japan,  in  which  islands  they  spent  seven 
tlclightful  weeks  from  September  23  to  November  15. 

On  that  day  they  left  Nagasaki,  and,  after  a  week  at 
Plongkong,  returned  via  Colombo  and  the  Canal,  and 
reached  Exeter  on  December  29.  Little  need  here  be 
said,  as  my  sister  described  their  experiences  in  a  volume 
entitled  'Japan  as  we  Saw  it."'  The  visit  was  an  unin- 
terrupted success,  and  full  of  absorbing  interest  to  the  elder 
Bishop  as  one  who  all  his  life  had  been  an  enthusiastic 
advocate  of  the  Church's  prime  duty  to  evangelise  the 

'  Published  by  Sampson  Low  &  Co. 

U  2 


2g2 


];iSHOP  EDWARD  I5ICKERSTETII 


nations  of  the  world.  IVIuch  interest  was  excited  by  his 
journey,  not  only  in  Japan,  where  he  was  met  everywhere 
with  great  kindness,  but  also  in  England.  The  present 
Archbishop  of  Canterbuiy  (Dr.  Temple),  speaking  as 
Bishop  of  London  at  the  Church  House,  expressed  this- 
feeling  when  he  said  : 

He  rejoiced  that  Bishop  I'Ldward  Bickersteth  should 
be  in  Japan,  a  man  whom  they  knew  well  before  he  went 
and  whom  they  were  certain  of  as  a  true  apostle  of  the  Lord 
Jesus  Christ,  overseeing  the  beginnings  and  the  work  of  this 
entirely  new  Church  set  up  so  far  away.  And  there  was 
something  peculiarly  interesting  just  then  in  the  fact 
that  not  only  was  the  Bishop  there  doing  his  work,  but 
that  his  father,  one  of  the  episcopate  of  England  presiding 
over  the  large  diocese  of  Exeter,  where  he  was  beloved 
for  his  wonderful  kindness,  was  there  to  help  his  son 
and  assure  the  Japanese  of  deep  sympathy  felt  for  them 
by  those  from  whom  he  had  come  in  England.  It  was 
itself  an  omen  of  future  success. 

The  Bishop  of  Exeter  sent  a  long  letter  to  the  '  Times,' 
dated  November  2,  1891,  giving  some  account  of  his 
impressions.    Some  extracts  may  here  be  given. 

It  is  impossible  to  help  being  attracted  by  the  Japan- 
ese. Their  quiet  order  and  submission  to  authority,  their 
instinctive  courtesy,  their  bright  smile  and  merry  laughter  ; 
their  carefully  tended  homesteads  and  gardens,  their 
agricultural  industry,  which  verifies  the  saying,  '  In  Japan 
crops  follow  each  other  so  quickly  the  soil  has  no  time 
to  grow  weeds  ; '  their  wonderful  imitative  talent,  which 
always  attempts  to  improve  on  that  it  copies,  and  not 
seldom  succeeds  ;  the  tenderness  of  parents  and  the  happi- 
ness of  little  children,  their  passion  for  education  and  their 
mental  powers — these  things  must  strike  every  stranger. 
They  are  emphatically  a  people  of  bright  hope,  susXttcSs^ 
as  Thucydides  says  of  the  Athenians.  While,  at  the  same 
time,  if  anyone  dreams  that  Shintoism  or  Buddhism  can 
produce  the  same  fruit  as  Christianity,  it  only  needs  to 
learn  what  lies  beneath  the  surface  of  society  here  for  the 


A  >)is.siONAKV  bishop's  i.im;.    1888-1893  -93 


illusion  to  pass  away  like  a  dream.  Home  is  not  to  them 
what  home  is  to  us.  The  boys,  so  happy  in  early  child- 
hood, are  too  often  petted  and  spoiled  ;  they  are  not  taught 
to  obey  ;  they  bully  each  other  and  their  parent.'?'.  The 
women,  graceful  and  gracious  as  they  are  in  their  youth, 
grow  old  prematurely.  The  men,  who  have  only  eight  or, 
at  most,  ten  festival  days  of  rest  in  the  year,  show  the  need 
of  that  one-day-in-seven  Sabbath  which  was  made  for  man  ; 
they  are  not  a  long-lived  race.  But  there  are  worse  evils  : 
the  grossest  superstition  or  blind  materialism,  concubinage 
and  impurity,  fickleness  and  inconstancy,  though  with  noble 
and  notable  exceptions,  arc  widely  prevalent.  Christianity 
alone  can  cope  with  the  vices  and  foster  the  virtues  of  this 
great  nation  of  more  than  40,000,000  souls.  But  no 
Christian  man  can  note  their  many  fascinating  characteristics 
without  exclaiming,  Quoniam  talis  cs,  utinain  noster  esses. 
It  is  recorded  of  St.  Bernard  that  his  first  question  to  his 
missioners,  when  they  returned  from  their  missions,  always 
was,  '  Could  you  love  those  to  w^hom  you  were  sent  V  It 
is  no  hard  task  to  love  the  Japanese.  .  .  . 

.  .  .  The  Church  founded  by  the  episcopal  Churches  of 
England  and  America  has  increased  fivefold  during  the 
last  few  years.  There  is  that  in  their  reverent  ritual  which 
seems  especially  to  commend  itself  to  the  order-loving 
Japanese  ;  and  their  liturgies  and  creeds  are  simply  price- 
less amid  the  shifting  currents  of  religious  thought  which 
arc  swaying  the  mind  of  Japan  at  this  crisis.  .  .  .  But 
let  no  one  think  that  this  vast  empire  is  to  be  won  without 
our  taking  up  the  cross  and  following  the  evangelists 
of  former  ages  as  they  followed  Christ.  Of  the  forty 
millions  in  Japan  not  more  than  one  in  400  has  yet  been 
baptised. 

A  terrific  earthquake,  the  most  destructive  experienced 
in  Japan  in  modern  times,  occurred  on  October  28,  the 
centre  of  the  disturbance  being  in  the  plain  between  Gifu 
and  Nagoya,  places  which  the  two  Bishops  and  their 
party  had  only  left  the  previous  week.  Even  in  Osaka 
they  were  in  serious  danger,  the  house  of  Archdeacon 
Warren,  whose  guests  they  were,  being  partly  demolished 
but  no  harm  befell  any  of  the  part)'.  • 


294  LISIIOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 

The  next  letter  was  written  after  the  Bishop  of  Exeter 
had  come  and  gone,  and  is  dated 

Nagasaki,  November  l6,  1S91. 

My  thoughts  are  with  you  continually.  Parting  is  very 
hard,  the  trial  of  missionary  work  here  :  and  the  past  ten 
weeks  were  so  delightful  in  prospect  and  in  their  passage 
that  I  do  not  like  to  think  of  their  being  over  ;  but  the 
recollection  is  very  bright,  and  I  do  feel  it  is  not  merely  a 
recollection,  but  that  you  have  left  us  all  better  for  your 
presence,  and  your  words  of  love  and  counsel. 

Early  in  1892  Bishop  Edward  Bickersteth  issued  a  list 
of  his  engagements  for  the  year,^  acting  on  a  suggestion 
that  it  would  be  more  convenient  if  he  intimated  the 
order  in  which  he  proposed  to  visit  the  different  stations 
under  his  jurisdiction.  The  area  over  which  he  travelled 
is  now  under  the  superintendence  of  four  English  Bishops 
(those  of  South  Tokyo,  Osaka,  Kiushiu,  and  Yezo). 
There  can  be  no  doubt  that  the  incessant  travelling  was 
a  severe  tax  on  his  strength,  which  strength  could  not  be 

'  LIST  OF  ENGAGEMENTS,  &c.,  1892 


January  7       .        .  . 
January  17  . 
January  19  . 
February  15 — March  6 

March  13 

March  16 

March  21 — April  5  . 

April  20— May  10  . 
i\Iay  16 — June  16  . 
June  1 7 — July  4 

September  20-27 
October  3-31  . 

November  15 — Decemlxir  6 
December  18  .       .  . 


S.P.G.  Conference,  Tokyo. 
Confirmation,  Kyobashi,  Tokyo. 
Meeting  of  Tokyo  Local  Council. 
Confirmations    Hiroshima,  Fukuoka, 

and  Kuniamoto. 
Ordination,    St.    Andrew's  Church, 

Tokyo. 
C.M.S.  Conference,  Osaka. 
Confirmations,  Bingo  and  Awa.  Con- 
secration of  Fukuyama  Church. 
Confirmations,  Izumo  and  Iwami. 
Confirmations,  Yezo. 
Confirmations,  Tokyo  and  Yokohama, 

Izu  and  Sagami. 
Confirmations,  Shimosa. 
Confirmations,  Nagasaki,  S.  and  E. 

Kiushu,  Kiushiu  Local  Council. 
(Jsaka  Local  Council.  Confirmations, 

Osaka,  Kobe,  Gifu,    Nagoya,  and 

Inui  (Totomi). 
Ordination,    .St.     Andrew's  Church, 

Tokyo. 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     1888-1893  295 


described  as  more  than  convalescence  ;  but  with  character- 
istic optimism  where  his  own  comfort  was  concerned  the 
utmost  he  confessed  was  such  phrases  as  now  and  again 
occur  in  his  letters  :  '  I  am  all  right,  or  all  but  all  right, 
aerain  in  health.' 

In  the  autumn  of  this  year,  on  the  eve  of  his  departure 
for  England,  the  Bishop  was  able  to  write  as  follows  to  his 
clergy  and  fellow-workers  : 

Since  I  wrote  to  you  last  Lent  I  have  been  almost 
entirely  occupied  with  journeys  and  visits.  Nemuro  is  the 
furthest  point  I  have  reached  in  the  north,  and  Naha  in 
Okinawa,  the  chief  island  of  the  Loochoo  Group,  in  the 
south.  On  journeys  of  this  kind  some  points  are  always 
brought  home  to  the  mind  with  special  force  and  insis- 
tence. Chief  among  these  I  .should  place  at  the  present 
time  the  particular  value  of  a  careful  superintendence  of 
our  lay  workers. 

He  also  wrote  to  the  Guild  of  St.  Paul : 

Nobeoka,  Kiushiu  : 
November  2,  1892. 

During  September  I  completed  my  visitation  of  the 
Tokyo  district,  and  the  last  day  of  the  month  saw  me 
again  in  Yezo,  where  I  reached  two  of  the  three  places 
which  I  was  obliged  to  omit  in  June.  One  other  place, 
Abashiri,  I  have  been  obliged  to  give  up  the  hope  of  visit- 
ing this  year.  It  is  on  the  north-east  coast  of  the  island, 
and  communication  is  most  uncertain,  and  in  winter  it  is 
shut  in  for  many  months  by  ice  floes  from  all  communica- 
tion by  sea.  I  had  hoped  to  have  reached  every  station 
where  there  are  members  of  the  Nippon  Sei  K5kwai  during 
the  year,  but  owing  to  this  failure  1  shall  not  quite  have 
accomplished  my  wish, 

I  am  now  on  my  way  back  from  a  short  but  most 
interesting  trip  to  the  Loochoo  Islands.  You  will  find 
them — pardon  my  thinking  you  may  need  some  guidance 
in  placing  your  finger  on  them  on  the  map  ! — stretching 


r.ISilOP  KinVARD  IJICKERSTETII 


in  a  long  line  over  some  600  miles  of  sea,  between  the 
southernmost  point  of  Japan  proper  and  Formosa.  I 
must  try  to  write  a  full  account  of  them  before  long  and  send 
it  to  you.  There  are  some  seventy  islands,  most  of  them 
inhabited,  and  the  largest,  Okinawa,  which  I  visited,  has 
a  population  of  about  350,000.  They  form  part  of  the 
]'-mpire  of  Japan,  and  the  reason  of  my  recent  visit  was 
that  several  of  our  Church-people  have  migrated  there 
whom  I  wished  to  form  into  a  congregation,  and  also 
there  were  two  candidates  for  confirmation.  The  Rev. 
A.  R.  Fuller,  of  the  C.M.S.  Mission  at  Nagasaki,  accom- 
panied me.  The  only  point  I  wish  to  mention  now  is  the 
strong  impression  which  my  short  journey  left  on  my 
mind  that  here  is  a  new  great  field  of  work,  sufificient  to 
task  all  the  energies  of  a  band  of  labourers  for  many  years 
to  come,  and  which  cannot  with  due  hope  of  efficiency  be 
added  to  a  diocese  which  is  almost  too  widely  spread  for 
efficient  superintendence.  Will  you  ask  God  that  in  His 
time  the  way  may  be  made  clear  for  the  work  being  ade- 
quately undertaken  in  these  islands  by  a  fully  equipped 
mission  of  our  Church  ? 

It  should  be  mentioned  that  this  year  he  confirmed  the 
first-fruits  of  the  Ainu.    He  wrote: 

At  Sapporo  we  were  guests  of  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Batchelor, 
and  that  afternoon  I  confirmed  four  Ainu,  the  first  of  their 
race  to  receive  the  laying  on  of  hands.  Mr.  Batchelor  is 
much  to  be  congratulated  on  having  been  allowed  to 
gather  in  the  first-fruits  of  this  interesting  people.  Flave 
you  seen  his  book  '  The  Ainu  of  Japan  ' It  is  a  thoroughly 
trustworthy  account.  In  the  evening  I  held  a  confirma- 
tion for  Japanese.  Both  these  confirmations  were  in  Mr. 
Eatchelor's  drawing-room,  as  there  is  no  church  yet  at 
Sapporo. 

The  Bishop  was  now  free  to  leave  Japan  on  his  return 
to  England,  where  his  main  object  was  to  confer  with  the 
Archbishop  about  some  subdivision  of  his  jurisdiction 
under  one  or  more  additional  Bishops,  and  also  to  plead 
for  recruits  for  all  branches  of  the  work. 


A  MISSIONARY  mSHOI''S  LIFE.     1 888-1 893  297 


*I  propose  to  sail  from  Kobe  for  England  011  December 
27,'  he  wrote  to  his  clergy,  '  and  on  the  way  I  have 
arranged  to  spend  a  few  da\  s  at  Delhi,  my  old  mission 
station  in  the  South  Punjab.'  These  quiet  words  hardly 
reveal  the  depth  of  interest  with  which  he  revisited  his 
first  missionary  home,  where  Mr.  Lefroy,  Mr.  Allnutt,  and 
Mr.  Carlyon,  his  former  fellow-labourers,  were  still  striving 
with  one  mind  and  one  spirit  as  witnesses  of  the  living 
Lord.  Their  joy  in  welcoming  him  was  great,  and  they 
were  hardly  prepared  to  find  how  many  of  the  converts 
remembered  him,  and  how  tenacious  a  place  he  held  in 
their  affections.  It  will  be  remembered  that  when  he  left 
Delhi,  in  August  1882,  he  hoped  to  have  returned  before 
Christmas  of  that  year.  And  now  ten  years  had  elapsed, 
years  which,  however,  had  in  no  way  lessened  his  interest 
in  his  old  mission,  an  interest  sustained  and  quickened  by 
daily  intercession  on  its  behalf 

On  St,  Paul's  Day,  1893,  he  telegraphed  his  birthday 
congratulations  to  his  father  from  Delhi.  After  a  few 
very  pleasant  days  in  India  he  reached  England  on 
February  25,  and  I  met  him  as  he  stepped  from  the  train 
at  Victoria  Station  late  at  night,  but  hardly  jaded  b}- 
his  long  journey,  to  the  fatigue  of  which  he  was  inured 
by  his  constant  travelling.  His  stay  in  England  lasted 
till  October  21,  and  there  were  few  parts  of  the  country 
he  did  not  visit,  speaking  and  preaching  everywhere. 
Just  at  that  time,  English  interest  in  Japan  was  very 
keen,  and  one  who,  like  himself,  could  be  trusted  to  give 
a  wise  and  wide  view  of  the  outlook,  neither  ignoring 
nor  exaggerating  the  difficulties,  was  listened  to  with 
marked  attention.  I  accompanied  him  on  a  tour  in  the 
Midlands  and  among  some  of  the  northern  towns,  and  his 
power  of  interesting  country  squires  as  well  as  men  of 
business,  keen  artisans  as  well  as  simple  peasants,  was 


298 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


clearly  proved,  as  was  their  readiness  to  take  interest  in 
one  who  came  from  the  Land  of  the  Rising  Sun. 

Besides  speaking  in  London  at  the  annual  S.P.G.  meet- 
ing, and  presiding  at  the  evening  meeting  of  the  C.M.S.  in 
Exeter  Hall,  the  Bishop  read  a  paper  at  the  Birmingham 
Church  Congress  and  addressed  the  students  in  theological 
colleges  at  Wells,  Lincoln,  and  Leeds,  and  at  St.  Augustine's 
College,  Canterbury. 

He  also  had  to  work  through  a  formidable  list  of  ser- 
mons and  meetings  arranged  for  him  before  his  arrival  in 
connection  with  the  Guild  of  St.  Paul.  In  consequence, 
although  he  did  not  become  known  by  face  to  all  the 
branches  of  the  Guild,  yet  his  visit  left  its  mark  on  the  whole 
watershed  of  their  interest,  from  which  flowed  the  streams 
of  intercession  and  offers  of  personal  service  to  fertilise  the 
missions  in  the  beloved  land  of  his  adoption. 

At  the  meeting  held  in  the  ancient  chapter  house  of 
Exeter  Cathedral  on  March  21  there  was  present  the  Rev. 
John  Imai,  then  about  to  conclude  a  visit  of  some  months' 
duration  which  the  generosity  of  an  English  lady,  Mrs. 
Kirkes,  had  enabled  him  to  pay  to  this  country.  Thus 
one  who  had  been  admitted  by  the  Bishop  to  the  ministry, 
and  had  been  profitable  to  him  in  it,  stood  by  his  side  that 
day,  and  these  two,  Bishop  and  priest,  representing  respec- 
tively Churches  of  the  West  and  East,  pleaded  for  a  deeper 
and  more  practical  sense  of  responsibility  towards  the 
Mikado's  Empire. 

The  mention  of  Mrs.  Kirkes  recalls  the  sorrow  which 
her  death,  on  April  21  of  that  year,  caused  to  the  Bishop 
and  to  all  who  knew  her  in  Japan.  An  elderly  lady  of 
ample  private  fortune,  she  devoted  herself  entirely  to  the 
work  she  had  undertaken  in  Tokyo.  There,  in  her  charm- 
ing house  in  Nagato  Cho,  she  had  for  five  years  been 
responding  to  her  special  vocation — i.e.  endeavouring  to  win 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     1 888- 1 893  299 


the  affection  and  confidence  of  women  of  the  higher  classes 
in  Tokyo.  She  possessed  patience,  tact,  and  attractiveness 
of  no  common  order,  and  some  of  those  whose  doors  were 
closed  to  most  missionaries  opened  them  to  her.  In  the 
houses  of  many  Japanese  of  rank  and  influence  she  had 
told  by  life  as  well  as  by  lip  the  story  of  the  faith.  When 
in  1892  she  returned  to  England  for  a  short  visit,  so  many 
Japanese  well  known  in  society  assembled  at  the  station  to 
bid  her  farewell,  that  people  could  only  compare  it  to  the 
departure  of  an  ambassador  rather  than  of  a  quiet  English 
lady.  Truly  she  was  an  ambassador  of  the  King  of  Kings, 
and  the  hearts  of  her  Japanese  friends  were  touched  at  the 
unselfish  love  which  led  her  to  leave  her  comfortable 
English  home  for  the  far  off  capital  of  Japan.  Not  long 
after  her  return  to  Tokyo  she  succumbed  quite  suddenly 
to  an  attack  of  pneumonia.  Bishop  Edward  Bickersteth 
greatly  felt  her  loss,  and  never  ceased  to  long  that  some 
other  English  lady  of  high  station  and  independent  means, 
as  well  as  of  deep  spirituality,  might  be  led  to  fill  the  post 
left  vacant  by  her  death. 

The  Bishop  spent  part  of  August  (1893)  quietly  with 
his  family  at  Nevin  in  North  Wales,  where  the  Bishop  of 
Exeter  again,  as  in  1888,  gathered  together  all  his  children 
and  grandchildren,  thirty-nine  in  all,  for  five  happy  and  all 
too  brief  weeks.  But  before  this  month  a  great  joy  had 
come  into  the  younger  Bishop's  life  through  his  engage- 
ment in  June  to  Miss  Marion  Forsyth,  daughter  of  Mr. 
William  Forsyth,  Q.C.,  formerly  M.P.  for  Marylebone. 
The  marriage  took  place  on  September  28,  and  after  a 
brief  wedding  tour  of  five  days  at  the  English  Lakes  and 
farewell  visits  to  relations  and  friends,  Bishop  and  Mrs. 
Edward  Bickersteth  left  England  for  Japan  on  October  21. 
They  travelled  by  way  of  Canada,  where  the  Bishop  had 
promised  to  address  a  series  of  meetings  on  behalf  of  the 


300 


r.ISlIOP  EDWARD  LICKERSTETII 


missions  supported  in  Japan  by  the  Canadian  Church.  To 
his  sister  May  he  wrote  : 

Qucenstown  Harljour  :  October  27,  1S93. 

All  leavings  and  partings  are  very  hard,  but  they  do 
not  lessen,  perhaps  only  quicken,  in  the  sense  of  helping 
us  to  realise,  love  ;  and  this  time  I  have  every  right  to  feel 
rich. 


VIGNETTE  PORTRAIT. 
(Taken  May  1893.) 


301 


CHAPTER  IX 

NirPON  SEI  KOKWAI 
{Holy  Catholic  CJuirch  of  Jiifa/i) 

'  To  have  wisely  developed  the  organisation  ol'  a  congregation  or  of  a. 
district  or  of  a  church,  neither  oppressing  it  by  the  multitude  of  its  rules 
and  societies,  nor  allowing  its  energies  to  run  to  waste  for  lack  of  them — 
s  to  do  a  work  without  which  the  highest  spirituality  devoted  solely  to  the 
ends  of  converting  and  edifying  the  soids  of  men  will  in  part  at  least  fail 
of  its  aim.' — Pastoral  Letter  of  Bishop  Edward  Bickcrsteth  to  his  C!ergy\ 
Lent  1894. 

The  quotation  at  the  head  of  this  chapter  .-hows  that 
Bishop  Bickersteth  on  principle  avoided  an  unorganised 
propagation  of  the  Gospel,  just  as  he  recoiled  from  an 
unhistorical  method  in  preaching  the  faith. 

The  present  Bishop  of  Durham,  in  a  preface  to  Bishop 
]^ickersteth's  book, '  Our  Heritage  in  the  Church  '  (published 
for  the  first  time  in  English  after  his  death),  wrote  : 

A  distinguished  Japanese  clergyman,  the  Rev.  J.  T. 
Imai,  has  told  us  that  on  the  morning  after  his  arrival  in 
Tokyo  the  Bishop  said  to  him  :  '  The  Church  of  Japan  must 
be  the  Church  of  Japan  ;  the  Praj^er  Book  of  that  Church 
must  be  really  its  own  Prayer  Book.'  His  life  was  spent 
— sacrificed,  as  we  speak — in  unwearied  labour  to  establish 
this  result.  By  his  wise  and  patient  energy  he  united  the 
congregations  of  the  American  and  English  Missions  in 
one  body.  He  himself,  in  conjunction  with  Bishop 
Williams  of  the  American  Church,  drafted  its  constitution 
and  Canons,  which  were  adopted  in  a  full  synod  in  1887. 
And  he  has  left  a  Church  in  Japan  in  closest  fellowship 
with  our  own,  already  fully  constituted,  and  only  waiting 
for  native  Bishops  to  be  completely  self-governing  and 
independent. 


302 


BISnOr  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


It  will  be  well,  therefore,  to  consider  more  fully 
how  the  formation  of  the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai  came  about. 
The  organisation  of  this  body  is  of  more  than  local 
interest,  inasmuch  as  it  is  the  first  instance  of  the  founda- 
tion of  a  fully  organised  and  autonomous  Church  in  the 
near  or  far  East  in  modern  times. ^ 

There  are  two  views  of  the  proper  aim  and  method  of 
missionary  enterprise  the  triumph  of  either  of  which  has 
been,  and  always  will  be,  fatal  to  the  establishing  of  a 
national  Church,  at  once  independent  and  also  interdepen- 
dent, because  in  full  communion  with  other  branches  of  the 
Catholic  Church.  If  it  be  supposed  to  be  the  missionary's 
prime  duty  to  win  believers,  and  to  snatch  them  as  brands 
from  the  burning  only  as  individuals,  he  will  not  care 
much  about  incorporating  them  into  a  body.  But,  on  the 
other  hand,  if  it  be  supposed  that  lo}-alty  to  the  com- 
munion which  thrust  him  out  (sk^uXj])  -  as  a  labourer  into 
the  mission  field  compels  him  to  impress,  and  even  to 
impose  as  far  as  may  be,  an  exact  reproduction,  say,  of 
Western  canons  and  articles  upon  Eastern  minds,  then 
he  will  stifle  among  the  converts  any  signs  of  originality, 
which,  if  encouraged  to  grow  under  due  limitations,  would 
have  given  to  the  newh-  made  Church  a  vigorous  individu- 
ality of  its  own. 

It  was  these  defective  ideas  of  the  missionary  calling 
which  Bishop  Edward  Bickersteth  set  himself  to  avoid, 
as  he  tried  deftly  to  weave  together  the  loose  ends  of 
such  organisation  as  he  found  on  his  arrival.  He  felt  it 
important  to  guard  against  these  mistakes,  from  which 
in  the  past  the  Church  of  England  herself  had  suffered. 
The  Church  of  Rome,  after  her  splendid  effort  to  rc- 

'  For  ResoUition  of  C. M.S.  Conference  (Osaka)  in  May  i886  see  chapter 
vi.  pp.  163,  164. 

Cp.  St.  Matthew,  ix.  38. 


NIPPON  SEI  KOiaVAI 


303 


introduce  Christianity  into  our  own  islands,  eventually 
hampered  the  boon  of  evangelisation  by  striving  to  annex 
here  a  new  spiritual  province  instead  of  to  build  up  a 
national  Church.  England  slowly  learnt  this  to  her  cost. 
And  as  in  the  sixth  century  in  these  islands  Augustine 
did  nothing  to  develop  a  native  ministry,  so  in  the  six- 
teenth century  in  Japan,  Francis  Xavier  and  his  immediate 
successors  did  not  ordain  one  single  Japanese  to  the  priest- 
hood, an  error  in  policy  which  led  to  fatal  results  when 
under  dire  persecution  all  the  foreign  missionaries  were 
killed  or  banished  by  edict. 

The  Bishop  wrote  to  the  Archbishop  (Benson)  of 
Canterbury  setting  forth  his  proposals,  and  the  Primate's 
reply  will  be  read  with  interest  : 

Lambelh  Palace,  S.E.  :  August  13,  1S86. 

My  dear  Bishop, — I  have  read  with  deepest  interest 
your  letter.  .  .  .  There  can  be  no  doubt  that  the  moment 
is  critical.  Your  own  episcopate  and  that  of  Bishop 
Williams  will  see  Japanese  Christianity  on  the  other  side 
of  a  crisis.  How  it  is  landed  there — whether  rich  in  hope 
for  the  future,  or  already  infested  with  the  divisions 
which  have  grown  up  historically  elsewhere — must  depend 
on  the  work  of  the  early  Bishops.  .  .  .  This  becomes,  of 
course,  much  plainer  and  much  easier  of  execution  when 
we  and  our  clergy  remember  that  the  great  end  of  our 
planting  a  Church  in  Japan  is  that  there  may  be  a  Japanese 
Church,  not  an  English  Church.  Any  forgetfulness  of  this, 
any  aiming  at  a  different  end,  will  only  reproduce  in  the 
next  200  years  the  miseries  which  have  arisen  from 
the  Italian  Church,  in  the  days  of  her  prosperity,  having 
determined  to  be  the  Church  of  other  lands.  She  has 
been  justly  disappointed,  and  all  Christendom  suffers  both 
from  the  wounds  she  dealt  in  the  struggle  and  from  the 
indifference  and  infidelity  which  have  followed  the  indigna- 
tion at  her,  wherever  she  had  succeeded  in  getting  accepted 
as  the  only  possible  Church. 

To  make  a  living  Christ  known  and  loved,  and  seen 
to  be  Himself  at  work  in  man  and  for  man,  and  to  make 


304 


BISHOP  EDWARD  JilCKKRSTKTH 


it  recognised  that  Church  doctrine  is  ;i  true  expression  of 
Himself  in  His  Oneness  and  manifoldncss,  is  the  only  way 
in  which  the  Church  can  be  manifold  and  yet  one.  ^iiaap 
o/j-oOv/xadov  ettI  to  auro  is  the  practical  charter  under 
which  the  Church  of  the  Acts  did  its  work. 

]\Iay  I  only  hear  the  same  of  all  Church  people  in 
Japan.    After  that  we  shall  hear  of  grander  unities  still. 

Let  me  ask  you  to  present  my  affectionate  respects  to 
Bishop  Williams,  and  thanks  for  his  strong  and  valued 
kindness  to  our  dear  Bishop  Poole. 

Believe  me,  my  dear  Bishop, 
Your  affectionate  Brother  in  Christ, 

I'Ldw.  Cantuar. 

The  Right  Rev.  Edward  Bickersteth,  D.D., 
Bishop  of  the  Church  of  England  in  Japan. 

When  the  Bishop  returned  to  England  in  iS88  he 
was  full — some  men  thought  too  full — of  organisation. 
I  remember  well  going  with  him  to  the  C.M.S.  House  in 
Salisbury  Square,  where,  as  ever,  he  received  a  kindly 
welcome.  But  when  he  had  explained  in  detail  to  a  large 
gathering  of  the  committee,  lay  and  clerical,  the  growth  of 
the  Japanese  Church,  I  recollect  the  warning  words  which 
his  statement  elicited,  clearly  showing  that  some  of  his 
hearers  felt  that  evangelisation,  not  organisation,  was  the 
sole  work  of  the  missionary.  But  the  Bishop  was  not 
abashed,  and  in  his  reply  allowed  a  flash  of  humour  to 
escape  as  he  reminded  his  audience  that  after  all  theirs 
was  the  ritualistic  view  of  the  episcopal  office,  inasmuch  as 
they  valued  it  for  its  convenience  in  tlie  matter  of  ordaining 
and  confirming,  two  ritual  acts,  whereas  his  was  the  evan- 
gelical view  of  that  office,  because  he  looked  on  the  Bishop 
as  the.  pastor  girgis  and  the  pater  cleri. 

Preaching  at  the  United  Conference  of  the  Protestant 
Episcopal  Church  of  America  and  of  the  Church  of 
England  on  February  8,  1887,  on  the  eve  of  the  first 
synod,  he  thus  referred  to  the  period  identified  with  the 


Ml'TON"  SEI  K(")K\VAI 


work  of  St.  Paul,'  to  prove  that  individualism  might  easily 
be  carried  too  far  : 

'  I  will  send  thee  fortli  far  hence  unto  the  Gentiles  '  was 
the  word  of  the  divine  voice  which  called  St.  Paul  to  his 
life's  task.  'He  wrought  for  me  unto  the  Gentiles'  are 
the  strange  expressive  terms  in  w^hich  he  defines  his  own 
])osition.  The  countries  of  the  empire  to  the  west  of 
i'alestine,  and  above  all  their  great  cities,  with  the  exception 
<jf  Alexandria,  where  the  Jewish  population  was  particu- 
larly numerous,  were  the  sphere  in  which  St.  Paul's  voice 
Avas  heard  ;  nor  does  he  appear  to  have  visited  any  district 
or  city  without  direct  results  of  his  labours  being  seen  in 
the  conversion  of  men  to  the  faith  of  Cluist.  How  did  he 
regard  these  believers  ?  Only  as  individuals  with  separate 
souls  to  be  saved  or  lost  ?  Or  as  this,  and  at  the  same  time 
as  members  of  a  congregation  in  whose  fellowship  and 
communion  they  would  find  spiritual  grace  and  consola- 
tion Or  as  this  and  more,  as  members  of  a  spiritual  society 
A\  hich  exceeded  in  limit  any  one  country  or  nation  ;  yea, 
which  already  had  its  representatives  beyond  the  frontiers 
of  the  eternal  world  ?  This  last  conception  alone  answers 
to  his  fullest  teaching.  In  the  earlier  epistles  we  read  of 
the  Churches,  'the  Churches  which  are  in  Judea,'  'the 
Churches  of  God,'  '  the  Churches  of  the  Gentiles.'  In  the 
later  epistles  we  read  of  the  Church,  of  which  Christ  is  '  the 
Head,'  '  which  Christ  loved,'  through  which  the  angels  learn 
'  the  manifold  wisdom,'  '  which  is  the  fulness  of  Him  that 
fillcth  all  in  all.'  As  he  travelled  on  his  journey  westward 
and  came  continually  nearer  to  the  city  which  v.'as  the 
centre  of  human  authority,  the  idea  formed  itself  with 
growing  fulness  in  his  mind  of  the  great  society  which 
should  cope  with  and  supersede  the  last  and  mightiest  of 
the  heathen  empires,  until,  as  in  the  camp  of  the  Guards, 
he  takes  up  his  pen  to  write  to  the  distant  Christians  who 
were  his  unfailing  care,  the  glowing  terms  which  I  have 
quf)ted  alone  express  his  vision  and  his  thought. 

With  regard  to  the  second  alternative  he  was  equally 

'  This  sermon,  entitled.  The  Church  ii?  Japan,  was  preached  on  St.  John 
Nvi.  ij,  '  lie  shall  guide  you  into  all  truth.' 

X 


3o6 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTKTH 


clear.  Preaching  '  at  the  earlier  conference  of  the  same 
bodies  of  missionaries,  within  three  months  of  his  arrival  in 
Japan,  he  had  said  : 

Now  let  us  inquire  what  has  been  the  custom  of  the 
Anglican  communion  in  regard  to  the  indigenous  Churches 
which,  through  God's  merc)-,  she  has  been  allowed  to 
establish  in  foreign  lands.  Practically  it  has  been  this. 
We  have  handed  over  to  them  our  own  system  as  a  whole, 
with  its  standards  of  doctrine,  forms  of  devotion  and 
teaching,  and  methods  of  government,  modifying  them  in 
theory  not  at  all,  and  in  practice  only  as  far  as  has  been 
found  essential  by  individual  workers.  Thus  in  Africa, 
India,  and  China  branches  have  been  founded  of  the 
Anglican  communion  which  alike  in  doctrine  and  consti- 
tution are  reproductions  of  the  mother  Churches  of  the 
West.  And  if  I  may  be  allowed  to  define  just  what  it 
.seems  to  me  has  been  the  motive  of  our  gathering  here 
to-day  from  various  parts  of  Japan,  it  has  been  this,  the 
consciousness  that  though  this  country  is  the  last  to  which 
our  missions  have  been  sent,  )-ct  in  it  first  our  traditional 
method  of  working,  if  the  end  of  all  missions  is  to  be 
attained,  must  be  largely  modified.  Here,  as  I  gather  from 
those  best  qualified  to  judge,  we  require  already  to  be 
allowed  to  take  steps  towards  establishing  a  Christian 
community,  which  shall  exercise  the  powers,  educational, 
disciplinary,  legislative,  and  judicial,  which  are  inherent  in 
the  Church.  Unlike  the  British  colonies,  where  in  race  and 
speech  and  customs  the  mother  country  is  largely  repro- 
duced ;  unlike  India,  where  the  problem  is  complicated  by 
the  fact  of  British  rule  and  the  existence  of  a  large  body 
of  European  residents  ;  unlike  Africa  and  China,  where  in 
the  one  case  the  low  development  of  the  native  races,  in 
the  other  the  natural  immobility  of  the  people,  prevent  as 
yet  such  problems  from  coming  with  like  prominence  to 
the  front,  Japan  is  a  country — so  I  seem  already  to  have 
learnt  from  you — filled  with  a  strong  desire  for  a  free 
development  in  accordance  with  her  national  type,  and 

'  Tlic  rrcrns^atives  of  the  Clutrch,  a  sermon  preached  at  the  opening  of 
a  Conference  of  Delegates  of  the  iNIissions  of  the  I'rolestant  Episcopal  Church 
of  America,  the  Society  for  the  Propagation  of  the  (iospel,  and  of  the  Church 
Missionary  Society,  on  July  8,  i8S6. 


NIPPON  SET  KOKWAI 


307 


which  admits  the  modes  of  thought  and  life  of  the  foreigner 
only  because  of  their  manifest  superiority  to  her  own,  and 
with  the  intention  of  adapting  them  to  her  own  individual 
needs.  '  Wc  are  glad  of  teachers,'  it  was  said  by  one  of 
her  own  sons  ;  '  wc  require  no  masters.'  On  a  like  principle 
it  can  scarcely  be  doubted  that  in  accepting  Christianity — 
an  acceptance  which  many  believe  to  be  in  no  very  distant 
future — Japan  will  adopt  no  mere  Western  type  of  the 
faith  ;  and  though  receiving,  as  is  necessary,  the  framework 
of  the  Church  from  abroad,  will  complete  her  ecclesiastical 
organisation  on  her  own  lines.  If  this  be  so,  our  own  aim 
is  sufficiently  clear.  It  is  to  form  in  this  country  during 
the  brief  period  of  transition  a  Christian  society  which 
.shall  itself  be  constituted  in  all  necessary  things  on  the 
lines  of  the  historic  Church,  and  retain  every  essential 
clement  of  the  faith,  but  shall  not  any  longer  than  is 
needful  be  weighted  by  Western  use  or  formulary,  or 
trammelled  by  the  predominance  of  a  foreign  element  in  its 
councils. 

A  clear  conception  as  to  what  was  and  what  was  not 
possible  was  essential  to  success.  Accordingly,  in  this 
same  sermon  the  Bishop  definitely  laid  down  '  the  lines  of 
divergence,'  as  an  engineer  would  say. 

In  the  first  place,  then,  on  the  negative  side  we  must 
not  forget  that  our  missions  have  been  sent  here  by  three 
different  societies,  from  different  countries.  Churches,  and 
schools  of  thought,  and  that  any  endeavour  .so  to  amalga- 
mate their  missionary  work  as  to  obliterate  the  distinctions 
which  with  common  loyalty  to  the  Anglican  communion 
they  severally  cherish  must  necessarily  fail.  But  while  a 
union  of  missionary  societies  is  impossible  and  perhaps 
undesirable,  there  seems  no  reason  why  they  should  not 
co-operate  far  more  closely  than  in  the  past,  or  why  the 
congregations  which  God  has  granted  as  the  fruit  of  their 
efforts  should  not  be  gradually  welded  into  one  Christian 
communion,  exercising  eventually  the  full  powers  of  a 
Christian  Church. 

In  aiming  at  this,  four  things  ha\  c  seemed  to  me  to  be 
possible  at  the  present  time  : 

I.  That  one  name  should  be  adopted  to  rejaresent  the 

X  2 


3o8 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKKRSTETH 


whole  Japanese  Church  which  is  in  communion  with  our- 
selves.   A  name  is  itself  a  powerful  bond. 

2.  That  a  representative  body,  call  it  synod  or 
conference  or  council,  should  be  constituted,  in  which  all 
duly  ordered  congregations  should  be  represented,  and 
w  hich  should  take  counsel  for  the  common  interest  of  the 
whole.  In  such  a  body,  on  the  principle  which  I  have  put 
before  you,  laity  as  well  as  clergy  would  find  a  place. 

3.  That  a  constitution  and  Canons  .should  be  formed 
dealing  with  the  special  need  of  the  Church  in  Japan. 
In  the  minor  matters  with  which  Canons  would  deal,  such 
as  the  employment,  licensing,  and  salary  of  lay  agents,  the 
use  of  commendatory  letters,  and  many  others  which  will 
occur  to  you,  unity  of  action  might  easily  and  most  bene- 
ficially be  attained.  In  others,  such  as  regulations  relating 
to  ordination,  it  would  mainly  rest  with  the  episcopate  to 
settle  one  rule  of  practice.  But  so  far  as  it  might  be  pro- 
posed that  the  doctrinal  standards  of  a  Japanese  Church 
should  differ  in  extent  or  form  from  those  of  the  Anglican 
communion,  it  is  plain  that  such  modification  would  for 
the  present  require  the  consent  of  our  own  ecclesiastical 
authorities. 

4.  There  seems  room  for  a  considerable  extension  of 
united  evangelistic  work  such  as  the  three  societies  have 
already  inaugurated  in  the  capital,  and  upon  which  as  it  is 
developed  here  and  in  other  places  the  future  of  the  Church 
in  Japan  must  so  largely  depend.  Pastoral  and  building 
funds,  on  the  same  principle,  would  be  of  great  value. 

Could  these  four  points  be  attained,  I  conceive  that 
we  should  have  done  something  towards  displaying  before 
the  heathen  that  oneness  which  is  our  Lord's  own  condition 
of  missionary  success,  we  should  have  obtained  some  of 
the  benefits  of  co-operation,  and  our  brethren  would  have 
been  admitted  to  a  larger  share  in  the  management  of 
their  own  Church. 

Let  me,  then,  attempt  to  define  both  what  seem  to  me 
not  to  be  and  to  be  the  objects  of  our  present  gathering. 

In  the  first  place,  then,  negatively,  we  do  not  meet 
with  any  view  of  seeking  a  change  in  our  own  position  as 
foreign  missionaries  sent  to  this  land  by  two  branches  of 
the  Anglican  Church.  All  of  us  without  exception  are 
more  than  satisfied  with — -we  are  thankful  for — the  position 
we  hold  as  members  of  the  ancient  and  unique  communion, 


NIPPON  SEI  KOKWAI 


309 


Orthodox,  Catholic  and  Evangelical,  with  its  glorious  thouj^h 
chequered  story  in  the  past,  and  its  unexampled  promise 
to-day,  into  which,  by  God's  great  mercy,  we  were  baptised. 

Nor,  again,  do  I  understand  that  we  are  met  to  con- 
stitute a  new  Church  for  our  native  brethren  in  the  faith. 
The  very  term  is  a  misnomer.  It  is  not  so  that  the  Church 
of  Christ  is  propagated.  Rather,  to  use  again  the  familiar 
simile,  when  the  faith  is  first  preached  and  received  in  any 
country  it  is  at  the  utmost  a  new  branch  of  the  Church, 
which,  so  to  speak,  has  germinated,  not  a  new  tree  with  a 
separate  root  and  stem  and  independent  life  of  its  own. 
More  particularly,  as  soon  as  in  any  country  believers  are 
gathered  into  a  society,  they  are  put  in  possession  of  the 
Holy  Scriptures  and  standards  of  faith  as  they  are  held 
and  guarded  by  that  branch  of  the  Church  through  which 
they  have  been  instructed,  and  in  due  time  they  receive 
the  Sacred  Orders  with  authority  to  minister  the  Word  of 
God  and  the  Sacraments  for  themselves.  So  has  it  already 
been  in  this  land.  Through  you,  in  whose  labours,  though 
very  late,  I  am  allowed  to  share,  there  has  been  formed  in 
this  land  a  Christian  Church,  which  is  represented  by  con- 
gregations in  many  different  parts.  By  virtue  of  common 
membership  of  the  Body  of  Christ,  through  union  in  one 
faith,  and  participation  of  the  same  sacraments,  this 
Church  exists,  and  is  in  communion  with  Churches  in 
other  lands. 

Subordinate  to  these  objects  is  the  formation  of  a 
body  of  Canons  having  to  do  chiefly  with  points  on 
which,  if  the  English  custom  were  followed,  the  episcopate 
would  act  independently,  but  in  which  it  seems  desirable, 
in  accordance  with  more  ancient  precedent,  that  it  should 
not  act  without  3'our  concurrence  and  that  of  our  brethren. 
'  I  have  resolved,'  wrote  St.  Cyprian  to  African  clergy, 
'  from  the  beginning  of  my  episcopate  to  do  nothing  of  my 
own  private  opinion  without  your  counsel  and  without  the 
counsel  of  the  lay  people.'  If  here  again,  after  thought- 
ful reconsideration  by  ourselves  and  our  brethren,  fair 
unanimity  be  attained,  we  shall  have  promoted,  I  believe, 
the  best  interests  of  our  branch  of  the  Church.  It  would 
then  follow  that,  before  finally  taking  action,  we  should 
again  communicate  with  the  authorities  of  our  Church  in 
England  and  America,  and  with  the  missionary  societies, 
which,  while  rightly  disclaiming  ecclesiastical  authority, 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


have  so  large  an  interest  in  our  work  and  cmbod}'  so  rich  a 
practical  experience  of  the  Church's  needs. 

The  question  here  suggests  itself  as  to  what  relationship, 
if  any,  the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai  desired  to  maintain  towards 
other  Christian  bodies  outside  the  limits  of  the  Anglican 
communion.  Did  she  assume  the  sole  right  to  act  and 
speak  authoritatively  for  all  those  Japanese  who  had  been 
also  baptised  into  the  Holy  Name  ?  Did  she  shut  her  eyes 
to  their  existence,  and  to  the  fact  that  numerically  they 
were  far  stronger  than  all  her  members  twice  told  ? 

The  answer  which  the  Bishop  would  have  made  to 
these  questions  can  be  unmistakably  inferred  from  his  own 
words. 

He  did  plainly  hold  that  : 

The  result  of  evangelistic  work  here,  which  has  been  the 
formation  of  a  large  number  of  organised  native  Churches, 
not  in  communion,  if  the  word  be  used  in  the  accepted 
sense  of. an  allowed  interchange  of  ministries  in  the  conse- 
cration of  the  Eucharist,  is  most  wasteful  of  strength  and 
means,  and,  consistently  with  the  language  and  teaching  of 
the  New  Testament,  cannot  be  held  to  be  in  accordance 
with  the  mind  of  Christ.^ 

At  least  it  may  be  admitted  that  none  have  spent  many 
years  in  missions  without  the  desire  growing  deeper  and 
stronger  in  their  souls  not  to  perpetuate  in  the  land  of 
their  adoption  the  divisions  of  the,  land  of  their  birth. 
Here,  and  in  the  East  generally,  gloss  it  over  as  you  will 
by  high  sounding  terms,  mitigate  it  as  you  may  and  ought 

'  In  the  same  sermon,  The  Church  in  Japan,  he  quoled  tlie  following 
words  from  Mr.  Eugene  Stock  (C.M.S.),  in  his  book,  Steps  to  Truth,  p.  62  : 
'  It  will  not  do  to  think  and  teach  as  if  Catholicity  consisted  in  a  happy 
belief  that  our  Lord  meant  Christendom  to  consist  of  some  hundreds  of 
distinct  Churches,  holding  no  communion  one  with  another.  No,  the  Church 
our  Lord  founded  was  a  visible  organised  and  undivided  society,  and  ought 
to  have  remained  so,  and  the  fact  that  it  has  not  so  remained  ...  is  to  be 
ascribed  not  to  divine  grace,  but  to  human  imperfection. '  And  he  also  quoted 
the  striking  passage  of  Professor  Milligan  in  his  book,  The  Resurrection  of 
Our  Lord  (pp.  203-5),  especially  his  words,  'The  world  will  never  be  won 
by  a  disunited  Church.' 


KirroN  SKI  kOkwai 


311 


by  kindly  feeling  and  social  intercourse,  yet  the  hindrances 
which  impede  the  work  of  the  Lord  by  the  disunion  of  His 
followers  are  too  plain  and  obtrusive  to  be  put  on  one  side. 

From  much  thinking  over  them,  brethren,  I  know 
something  of  the  greatness  of  the  difficulties  which  beset 
this  question.  On  the  one  hand,  we  are  bound  to  do 
nothing  which  could  compromise  one  word  which  goes 
toward  expressing  in  human  language  the  es.sential  facts 
of  the  faith.  We  inherit,  and  may  not  surrender,  the 
Orders  which  connect  us  with  the  Church  of  apostolic 
times,  and  with  the  great  communion,  now  spread  into 
c\  ery  land,  to  which  we  belong.  But  we  have  other  duties, 
too,  than  these.  We  must  also  keep  steadily  before  our- 
.selves  and  our  people  the  divine  ideal  as  at  least  a  hope  of 
the  future  ;  we  must  not  plead  the  faults  of  the  past  as  a 
justification  for  easy  acquiescence  in  the  difficulties  of  the 
present.  We  must  lay  stress  on  our  privileges,  but  in 
doing  so  we  must  endeavour  to  divide  what  is  useful  and 
-salutary  for  ourselves  from  what  is  essential  as  a  basis  of 
corporate  reunion. 

All,  therefore,  that  the  Bishop  believed  to  be  possible 
was  : 

Deliberation  not  upon  the  creation  but  the  fuller  organ- 
isation of  a  Church,  and  our  consultations  will  be  carried  on 
under  the  ennobling  belief  that  they  will  contribute  both 
to  the  closer  union  of  our  own  people  and  the  extension 
among  us  of  the  work  of  God,  and  also  to  the  eventual 
irgathering  mto  one  larger  coi/iimmlon^  iti  the  confession  of 
one  creed  ajid  the  participation  of  the  same  sacraments, 
if  many  from  zuhoni  we  have  been  separated. 

All  that  he  hoped  was  that  the 

Constitution  of  a  formal  synod  which  can  express  the 
mind  of  the  whole  Church  will  be  of  the  greatest  service 
towards  settling  what  is  essential  as  the  basis  of  corporate 
reunion. 

All  that,  moved  by  divine  charit}-,  he  anticipated  was 
the  day 

When  this  people  shall  long  have  been  numbered  among 
the  Christian  nations,  men  shall  look  back  not  without 


312 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKKRSTIOTH 


jrratitude  to  you  who  in  divine  I'rovidcnce  have  been 
among  the  first  to  teach  them  the  truth  of  God,  and  stiH 
more  often,  as  we  pray,  shall  return  with  thanks  and  praise 
to  Him,  '  the  Father  of  unchangeable  Power  and  eternal 
Light,  through  Whom  things  which  were  cast  down  are 
being  raised  up,  and  things  which  had  grown  old  are  being 
made  new  ^  ; '  Whose  revealed  purpose  it  is  in  some  second 
'  meeting  point  of  the  ages,'  when  again  the  times  are  full, 
to  regather  all  things  into  Him  from  Whom  at  the  first 
they  took  their  origin,  even  into  His  Son  Jesus  Christ  our 
Lord. 

Within  these  limits,  and  by  keeping  in  view  this  out- 
look, most  men  will  be  ready  to  agree  that  he  was  justified 
in  excusing  himself  and  the  conference  from  the  charge  of 
presumption  in  organising  the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai  : 

It  is  not,  I  trust,  presumptuous  to  believe  that  though 
as  a  company  of  missionaries  we  arc  not  a  full  representa- 
tion even  of  a  local  Church,  and  can  claim  but  little 
authority  for  our  decisions  beyond  their  intrinsic  rightful- 
ness, yet  that  so  far  as  we  continue  in  holy  counsel,  witli 
prayer  and  supplication  in  the  Spirit,  in  implicit  obedience 
with  St.  James  to  the  divine  will  as  revealed  in  the  inspired 
writings,  with  St.  Peter  and  St.  Paul  and  St.  Barnabas, 
contributing  each  that  which  individual  experience  may 
have  taught  us  for  the  gain  of  all,  we  too  shall  have  that 
special  guidance  which  is  vouchsafed  by  God  to  the  Church 
in  the  '  fellowship  of  sacred  counsel.' 

But  so  far  as  Reunion  with  Methodist  missionaries. 
(American)  was  concerned,  the  year  1887  was  not  allowed 
to  close  without  a  definite  endeavour  being  made  to  clear 
the  ground  of  misunderstanding  b}'  conferring  together  on 
this  subject. 

A  conference  of  the  representatives  of  the  Methodist 
and  Anglican  missions  in  Japan  was  held  during  Advent 
(December  10,  1887),  being  the  result  of  the  following, 
resolution  passed  at  the  conference  of  the  missionaries  of 
'  See  Canon  Bright's  Ancieni  Colkds,  p.  98. 


NIPPON  SEI  KUKWAI 


the  Anglican  communion  hold  at  Osaka  in  the  previous 
February  : 

That  this  united  conference  of  the  missionaries  of  the 
Church  of  England  and  of  the  Protestant  Episcopal 
Church  of  America  wishes  to  place  on  record  its  desire  for 
the  establishment  in  Japan  of  a  Christian  Church,  whicli 
by  imposing  no  non-essential  conditions  of  communion, 
shall  include  as  many  as  possible  of  the  Christians  of  this 
country. 

At  a  preliminary  meeting  held  in  July,  Bishop  Bickcr- 
steth  was  asked  '  to  put  before  the  conference  such  definite 
suggestions  as  he  might  think  would  lead,  if  they  were 
accepted,  to  practical  action,'  and  at  the  first  of  a  series  of 
conferences,  which  were  conducted  in  the  spirit  alike  of 
candour  and  charity,  he  read  a  paper  on  '  The  Basis  of 
Christian  Union.'  His  paper  was  printed  in  obedience  to 
the  request  of  those  who  heard  it.  After  defending  the 
resolution  just  mentioned  from  some  criticisms  directed 
against  its  indefiniteness,  which  was  not  the  result  of 
carelessness  but  of  intention,  on  the  part  of  those  who 
drafted  it,  he  showed  that  it  rested  on  a  belief,  and  at  the 
same  time  abstained  from  any  definition  of  method  or 
means  through  which  the  belief  might  find  embodiment. 
The  belief  was  that  the  intention  of  our  Lord  in  founding 
His  Church  was  to  establish  a  visible  and  organic  society,, 
which  should  maintain  His  faith  and  worship  till  He 
should  come  again.  It  therefore  logically  followed  that 
all  breaches  of  organic  union  in  the  Christian  body, 
however  far  their  existence  might  be  over-ruled  by  His 
Providence,  were  not  in  accordance  with  His  design,  but 
the  result  of  human  perverseness. 

After  emphasising  two  points  :  (i;  that  union,  not  unity, 
was  their  goal,  for  unity  to  a  large  extent  might  be  believed 
already  to  exist,  however  hidden  by  diversities,  among  all 
followers  of  the  One  Lord,  and  (2)  that  union  among  the 


314 


BISHOr  EDWARD  lilCKKRSTKTH 


Japanese  hretlircn  was  in  the  main  their  aim,  he  quoted 
words  of  Archbishop  Benson  '  to  the  effect  that  union  in 
the  mission  field,  could  it  be  attained,  would  react 
powerfully  upon  the  Churches  of  western  lands.  He  next 
urged  that  union,  if  it  was  to  be  more  than  a  mere  name, 
implied  a  fundamental  agreement  in  regard  to  (i)  creed, 
(2)  rite,  and  (3)  organisation. 

(i)  With  regard  to  creed,  those  whom  the  union  com- 
prised must  appeal  to  the  same  standards  of  doctrine  and 
teaching,  not  implying  a  rigid  identity  of  view  or  a  verbal 
uniformity  of  statement  on  all  doctrinal  matters,  but 
resting  on  a  primary  acceptance  of  those  facts  which 
constitute  the  faith.  Admittedly,  the  Christian  faith 
differed  radically  from  all  other  systems  of  belief  in  that 
it  not  only  appealed  to  but  (so  to  speak)  consisted  of 
historical  facts.  Christians  believe  not  in  abstract  pro- 
positions about  God,  but  in  God  Himself,  revealed  in  His 
Son,  Jesus  Christ  their  Lord. 

To  Christians  salvation  depended  not  merely  or  chiefly 
on  the  acceptance  of  a  doctrinal  system,  but  on  union  with 
a  Person.  There  could  be  no  union  which  did  not  rest  on 
a  common  acceptance  of  those  primary  facts  which  con- 
stitute the  faith.  Christians  in  past  days  have  gone  far 
beyond  this  in  the  endeavour  after  union  in  matters  of 
belief  The  two  vast  systems  of  belief,  the  theologies  of 
Rome  and  Geneva,  each  with  a  lengthened  history,  each  of 
great  logical  consistency  on  its  own  principles,  each  from 
points  of  view  not  without  grandeur  of  conception  and 
dignity  of  statement,  have  claimed  exclusive  control  over 
the  faith  of  believers.  But  although  grateful  to  individuals 
on  one  side  and  the  other,  such  as  St.  Philip  Neri,  the 
early  Oratorians  of  Paris,  the  gifted  recluses  of  Port  Royal, 
the  learned  patristic  scholars  of  St.  INIaur,  Fenelon  and 
Bossuet,  Montalembert,  Gratry,  and  the  modern  school  of 

'  '  It  requires  large  wisdom  abroad  and  great  forbearance  at  home  to  work 
out  an  ideal  of  the  CathoHc  Church,  so  various  and  yet  one.  If  it  be  not  too 
sanguine  a  view  to  take,  one  might  almost  think  that  while  Christendom  is 
seeming  to  be  offending  against  such  wisdom  by  raising  up  at  present  in  every 
heathen  land  three  or  four  different  Churches,  representing  our  home  fashions, 
it  will  be  impossible  to  maintain  their  variances  where  they  have  no  historic 
foundation  to  rest  on,  and  thus  God  may  be  preparing  their  extinction  here 
tlirough  the  unreasonableness  of  their  separation  there." — The  Seven  Gifts, 
p.  219. 


NIPPON  SEI  KOKW'Al 


French  Christian  Sociahsts  ;  or  such  as  Calvin,  a  prince 
among  commentators,  and  Chalmers- — yet  personally  he 
felt  that  both  these  systems  contained  vast  and  ultimately 
fatal  additions  to  the  apostolic  faith,  and  he  could  have 
no  sa}'  to  a  Church  which  made  the  acceptance  of  any  one 
characteristic  article  of  the  creed  of  Pius  IV.  or  of  the 
Westminster  Confession  a  condition  of  communion. 

The  positive  and  negative  limitations,  then,  within 
which  he  felt  bound  to  place  himself  as  to  belief  were  the 
obligatory  acceptance  of  the  facts  of  the  creed,  but  no 
submission  to  any  particular  doctrine  of  the  Roman  or 
Genevan  schools.  Assuming  that  there  would  be  no 
division,  of  opinion  as  to  the  primary  authority  of  the 
Jewi.sh  and  Christian  Scriptures,  he  would  be  satisfied  if 
the  Nicene  Creed  (if  necessary,  with  the  Filioque  clause 
bracketed)  were  made  the  sole  other  standard  of  belief 

(2)  Passing  from  avcd  to  rites,  of  which  the  two 
principal  were  the  two  holy  sacraments  of  Baptism  and 
the  Eucharist,  the  question  arose,  '  Is  it  the  duty  of  a 
Church  to  lay  down  a  doctrine  of  sacramental  belief?  '  If 
it  does  not  do  so,  is  it  so  far  neglecting  that  teaching  office 
for  which,  among  other  things  it  is  set,  as  to  forfeit  the 
divine  blessing?  Allowing  due  weight  to  the  fact  that 
the  great  majority  of  existing  Churches  defined  sacramental 
doctrine  and  imposed  their  definition  as  a  condition,  if  not 
of  membership,  at  least  of  ministry,  he  thought  that  this 
fact  might  be  paralleled  by  another  not  less  weighty — 
i.e.  that  the  primitive  Church  maintained  its  unity,  defended 
the  faith,  and  extended  its  own  borders  with  a  success  not 
wholly  equalled  Since,  zi'z  'tJiout  the  aid  of  any  dogmatic 
decisions  on  sacramental  questions.  Indeed,  discussion  on 
such  questions  in  early  days  was  almost  unknown.  The 
primitive  faith  in  regard  to  them  was  to  be  gathered,  not 
from  the  records  of  controversies,  but  from  incidental 
notices.  He  asked,  then,  was  it  not  conceivable  that, 
without  reflection  on  the  action  considered  necessary  in 
later  centuries,  it  might  be  right  for  a  Church  in  a  heathen 
land  to-day  to  fall  back  on  yet  older  precedents  ?  Such  a 
Church  would  insist  on  the  unfailing  performance  at  the 
administration  of  the  sacraments  in  all  particulars  of  the 
acts  commanded,  and  on  the  exact  repetition  of  the  words 
prescribed  by  our  Lord,  but  not  lay  down  as  of  obligation 
any  particular  view  of  the  nature  of  the  spiritual  benefit 


3i6 


lilSIIOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


conferred.  He  should  feel  able  to  agree  to  such  a  deci- 
sion, though  he  claimed  the  right  of  reconsideration,  and 
though  he  himself  held  fullest  views  as  to  the  spiritual 
benefits  conferred  on  the  faithful  in  the  sacraments  of  adop- 
tion and  love.  As  to  confirmation,  he  must  remind  them 
that  the  Anglican  communion,  while  fully  expressing  her 
belief  in  the  spiritual  gifts  of  which  she  held  it  to  be  a 
means,  did  not  exact  its  acceptance  as  an  absolute  condition 
of  admission  to  Holy  Communion.  As  it  was  a  rite  of 
such  large  authority  and  precedent,  he  trusted  that  no 
difficulty  would  be  felt  in  accepting  the  Anglican  principle, 
that  the  rite  is  fully  recognised  but  not  imposed. 

(3)  With  regard  to  organisation,  under  which  legis- 
lative, judicial,  and  ministerial  action  was  comprised, 
he  confined  himself  to  the  Christian  ministry,  asserting 
that  if  agreement  as  to  its  form  could  be  attained, 
then  the  legislative  and  judicial  procedure  would  not 
present  insuperable  difficulties.  But  he  was  bold  to  state 
that  no  scheme  of  union  would  in  his  judgment  carry 
with  it  any  reasonable  hope  of  acceptance  in  the  commu- 
nion to  which  he  belonged  which  did  not  make  provision 
for  a  definitely  episcopal  succession  and  a  threefold 
ministry.  He  was  not  now  raising  the  question  of  what 
forms  of  Holy  Orders  are,  and  what  are  not,  valid  in 
matters  spiritual,  but,  mindful  of  the  tenacity  with  which 
the  Anglican  Church,  through  the  rnost  terrible  crises  in 
her  history,  had  maintained  the  same  principles  of  succes- 
sion and  order,  he  felt  sure  that  in  practice  she  would 
maintain  them  always.  If,  then,  it  was  d priori  impossible 
for  the  representatives  of  Methodist  Churches  in  Japan  to 
co-operate  in  the  establishment  of  a  Japanese  Church  with 
a  threefold  ministry  obtained  through  an  episcopal  succes- 
sion, the  discussion  on  ecclesiastical  and  organic  union 
would  be  vain.  But  he  had  been  encouraged  to  believe 
that,  though  probably  not  accepting  the  usual  Anglican 
standpoint  which  would  refer  such  a  ministry  to  apostolic 
direction,  yet  that  for  the  sake  of  the  great  and  momentous 
issues  in  view,  the  ministry  which  the  Anglicans  held  to 
be  apostolic  might  in  practice  be  accepted  by  all. 

In  conclusion,  he  confessed  that  if  this  broad  basis 
of  agreement  were  arrived  at,  the  way  would  not  yet 
be  plain  for  immediate  action  to  bring  about  the  establish- 
ment of  a  Church  which  accepted  the  Scriptures  as  its 


NirpoN  sEi  kOkwai 


3'7 


authority  and  the  Niccnc  Creed  as  its  standard,  whicli 
rigidly  adhered,  without  doctrinal  explanation  of  the 
spiritual  mystery,  to  the  administration  of  the  sacraments 
in  the  forms  which  the  Lord  appointed,  and  which  main- 
tained the  threefold  ministry  and  the  apostolic  succession. 
Authoritative  action  must  proceed  from  the  Churches  at 
home,  but  there  the  tide  was  setting  more  and  more  strongI\- 
year  by  year  towards  the  adoption  of  some  such  principles 
as  those  which  underlie  the  above  proposals.  While  as  to 
the  Japanese  Christians,  lie  had  not  heard  any  expression 
of  opinion  in  favour  of  the  ultimate  adoption  as  their  own 
standard  of  faith  and  teaching  of  any  doctrinal  confession 
of  the  sixteenth  or  seventeenth  centuries,  nor  had  he  seen 
any  desire  among  them  to  entangle  themselves  in  the  long 
and  mournful  sacramental  controversies  of  the  Western 
Church. 

Union — comprehensive,  organic,  practical  —might  still 
be  reserved  for  a  far-off  day,  and  be  realised  only  in  some 
distant  generation.  Let  it  be  so.  It  was  not  till  genera- 
tions and  centuries  had  run  their  course  that  He  came  in 
whom  all  the  separated  nations  of  earth  were  blessed. 
Christians  could  afford  to  wait  without  loss  of  hope.  In 
aiming  at  union,  they  were  working  on  the  line  of  a  revealed 
purpose  of  God,  and  bringing  nearer  the  fulfilment  of  the 
last  prayer  of  the  Master. 

Curiosity  may  be  felt  as  to  what  j^ractical  result,  if 
any,  came  from  this  conference.  Immediate  consequences 
were  not  looked  for  by  its  promoters,  and  the  Bishop  in  a 
-subsequent  pastoral,  while  admitting  that  '  it  had  not  been 
])ossible  to  take  any  immediate  steps  towards  the  solution 
of  various  practical  difficulties  which  beset  the  whole  ques- 
tion,' expressed  his  own  belief  that  the  conference  with 
representatives  of  various  Methodist  missions  had  not  been 
'  without  fruit'  ' 

'  '  It  is  worthy  of  note,  especially  on  an  occasion  like  this,  when  so  many 
nf  OUT  brethren  from  other  communions  have  met  together  in  respect  to  the 
memory  of  him  who  was  so  lately  among  us,  that  one  of  his  first  acts  on  his 
arrival  in  Japan  was  to  put  forth  terms  of  a  basis  for  reunion  or  communion 
with  ourselves  of  all  or  any  of  the  bodies  called  Protestant  which  are  working  in 
Japan,  The  response  his  appeal  met  with  was  to  a  great  extent  disappointing. 


3i8 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


It  will,  then,  be  admitted  that  the  determination  to 
organise  the  Nippon  Sci  Kokwai  was  not  due  to  any  over- 
looking of  the  work  already  undertaken  by  others,  but  that 
its  organisation  grew  out  of  the  hope  that  it  might  ultimately 
help  to  promote  the  union  of  Christians  in  Japan,  and 
meanwhile  preserve  the  fulness  of  the  faith. 

The  permanent  results  of  these  early  labours  were  em- 
bodied in  '  The  Constitution  and  Canons  ^  of  the  Nippon  Sei 
Kokwai,'  from  which  it  will  be  seen  that  the  legislative 
authority  of  the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai  was  the  synod,  that 
the  executive  authority  rested  in  the  main  with  those  who 
were  ordained  to  holy  offices,  and  that  the  judicial  authority 
remained  still  in  large  part  to  be  settled,  though  some 
temporary  rules  were  agreed  upon. 

The  Constitution  and  Canons  of  the 
Nippon  Ski  Kokwai 

Article  I.  The  Church  shall  be  called  the  Nippon  Sei 
Kdkwai  (Holy  Catholic  Church  of  Japan). 

Article  II.  This  Church  doth  accept  and  believe  all 
the  Canonical  Scriptures  of  the  Old  and  New  Testaments, 
as  given  by  inspiration  of  God,  and  as  containing  all 
things  necessary  to  salvation,  and  doth  profess  the  faith 
as  summed  up  in  the  Nicene  Creed  and  that  commonly 
called  the  Apostles'  creed. 

The  attempt  was  perhaps  premature,  and  out  of  place  in  Japan,  where 
the  various  missions  are  dependent  on  the  home  Churches.  But  no  one  can 
beheve  that  such  efforts,  made  by  such  men,  are  altogether  in  vain  or  without 
etfect  in  hastening  the  coming  of  that  day  when  "  there  shall  be  one  fold,"  as 
there  is  "one  Shepherd  ;  "  and  the  evidence  which  he  gave  so  early  in  his 
life  here  of  his  desire  to  break  down  the  wall  of  separation  which  divides 
Christians  from  Christians  was  but  one  proof  of  the  spirit  which  actuated  him 
to  the  end,  and  to  the  existence  of  which  many  can  here  bear  witness.' — 
Address  of  Archdeacon  Shaw  at  luiriiizawa,  August  1897,  after  heai'ing  of 
Bishop  Edward  BickerstetKs  death. 
'  For  the  Canons  see  Appendix  B. 


NIPPON  SEI  KUKWAI 


Article  III.  This  Church  will  minister  the  doctrine 
and  sacraments  and  discipline  of  Christ,  as  the  Lord 
hath  commanded,  and  will  maintain  inviolate  the  three 
orders  of  Bishops,  Priests,  and  Deacons  in  the  sacred 
ministry. 

Article  IV.  There  shall  be  a  general  synod  of  this 
Church  at  least  every  third  year  from  the  year  of  our 
Lord  1S87,  at  such  times  and  in  such  places  as  shall  be 
determined  by  the  Bishop  or  Bishops  at  the  time  being 
resident  in  Japan  ;  who  also,  after  consultation  with  each- 
Standing  Committee,  shall  have  the  right  to  convene 
special  meetings  of  the  synod,  if  occasion  should  arise. 

Article  V,  The  synod  shall  be  composed  of  the 
Bishops  and  all  clergymen  canonically  resident  in  their 
jurisdictions  (not  under  discipline)  and  of  lay  delegates 
to  be  chosen  by  the  local  councils. 

Provided  that  so  soon  as  an  increase  in  the  number  of 
clergy  shall  render  it  necessary,  they  also  shall  be  repre- 
sented by  delegates. 

Article  VI.  The  Bishops  shall  vote  separately  from 
the  clergy  and  lay  representatives,  and  no  resolution  shall 
be  deemed  to  have  been  carried  unless  a  majority  of  the 
Bishops  and  of  the  clerical  and  lay  representatives,  voting 
conjointly  or  by  orders,  vote  in  its  favour  ;  provided  that 
so  long  as  there  are  only  two  Bishops,  if  one  of  them  vote 
with  the  majority  for  the  resolution  it  shall  be  deemed  to 
have  been  carried. 

Article  VTI.  The  powers  of  the  synod,  when  duly 
convened,  shall  extend  to  : 

(l)  Deliberation  on  all  questions  relating  to  the  welfare 
and  progress  of  the  Church.  (2)  The  establishing  and 
carrying  on  of  home  and  foreign  missionary  societies. 
(3)  The  making,  amending,  and  rescinding  of  canons. 
The  synod  shall  also  have  power  to  amend  the  consti- 


320 


lilSHOP  EDWARD  lUCKERSTETI I 


tution  ;  provided  that,  a  notice  of  the  jM-oposcd  amend- 
ment having  been  given  and  accepted  in  a  previous 
regular  synod,  a  majority  of  two-thirds  of  the  members 
vote  in  its  favour. 

Article  VIII.  The  President  of  the  synod  shall  be  a 
IJishop  elected  by  the  Bishops  present  thereat.' 

The  Canons  related  to  such  points  as  :  (i;  Of  the  ad- 
mission of  candidates  for  Holy  Orders  ;  (2)  of  admitted 
candidates  ;  (3)  of  examination  for  ordination  ;  (4)  of 
ordination;  (6)  of  (Japanese)  Bishops;  (y)  of  unordained 
agents  ;  (8)  of  discipline  ;  (10)  of  Local  Councils  ;  (i  i)  of 
vestries;  (12)  of  the  Missionary  Society;  (13)  of  conse- 
crated buildings  ;  and  (14)  of  marriage  and  divorce. 

Of  these,  the  drafting  of  the  Canon  on  marriage  and 
divorce  was  at  that  time  deferred,  and  the  full  considera- 
tion of  the  text  of  six  others  was  not  then  entered  upon  ; 
but  it  was  evident  to  the  Japanese,  as  well  as  to  the 
authorities,  in  England,  that  a  real  step  forward  had  been 
taken.    He  wrote  to  me  from  Shiba,  Tokyo  : 

June  30,  1887. 

My  dearest  Sam, — .  .  .  The  attempting  something 
like  synodical  action  so  quickly  was  only  justified  by  our 
exceptional  circumstances,  but  had  we  not  done  so  I  doubt 
if  we  should  have  maintained  our  position  at  all.  The 
Japanese  are  far  too  independent  a  people  not  to  demand 
some  share  in  self-government  from  the  beginning.  I  see 
from  the  Archbishop's  speech  at  St.  James's  Hall — I  have 
not  yet  heard  from  him — that  a  long  letter  I  wrote  him 
convinced  him  of  this. 

Your  very  affectionate  Brother, 

Edward  Bickerstktii,  Bishop. 

The  Archbishop  had  written  a  few  months  before  -  :  '  I 
think  you  really  know  how  almost  impatient  I  am  for 

'  In  this  reprint  of  the  Constitution  I  have  embodied  some  slight  alterations 
made  later. — S.  B. 

■■'  Addington  Park,  December  31,  1886. 


NIPPON  SEI  KOKWAI 


321 


native  Churches,  and  will  know  how  that  I  desire  only 
to  have  such  important  work  solid  ; '  but,  in  criticising  a 
draft  copy  of  the  constitutions  and  Canons  sent  to  him 
for  that  purpose,  he  had  deprecated  '  such  vast  questions 
being  hurried  to  a  conclusion,'  while  admitting  that  'Japan 
was  evidently  a  country  requiring  its  native  Church,  and 
able  to  receive  it  early.'  The  Archbishop  had  argued,  '  I 
understand  how  Nonconformist  bodies  feel  bound  to  pre- 
cipitate conclusions  and  make  fully-expanded  organisa- 
tions at  once.  But  it  does  not  become  us  to  follow  a 
method  novel  to  us  or  to  initiate  temporary  formations 
and  formulations.  No  historical  Church  has  legislated  so 
rapidly  as  you  propose.  Things  with  us  grow  and  ripen 
in  their  own  time.' 

It  will  be  seen  that  Bishop  Bickersteth,  notwithstand- 
ing, had  kept  to  his  own  opinion  and  carried  his  point, 
and  the  Archbishop  came  to  agree  with  him.  If  the 
political  precocity  of  the  Japanese  is  a  fair  analogy,  it 
may  be  asserted  that  the  younger  man  on  the  spot  rightly 
saw  that  the  proverbial  danger  would  wait  upon  delay 
in  ecclesiastical  as  in  political  affairs.  The  impression, 
however,  must  not  be  given  that  he  acted  from  impatience 
or  from  impulse.  On  the  contrary,  in  his  own  English 
copy  of  the  constitution  and  Canons,  besides  numerous 
references  to  the  early  Fathers,  to  Archbishop  Cranmer,  and 
to  others,  I  find,  copied  on  the  front  page,  these  words  of 
John  Keble,  which  express  the  principle  on  which  he  desired 
to  act :  '  It  can  never  be  wise  for  the  Church  to  do  grave 
things  in  a  hurry.' 

A  perusal  of  the  Bishop's  sermons  and  correspondence 
at  this  time  leave  on  the  mind  the  impression  that  he  did 
not  act  precipitately,  but  in  keeping  with  this  cautious 
quotation,  and  that  he  felt  at  every  turn  the  necessity  of 
anticipating  and  of  meeting  objections,  of  conciliating 

Y 


322 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


prejudices,  and  of  drawing  together  those  who  had  pre- 
viously stood  apart.  The  smooth  working  of  the  general 
synods  (at  first  held  biennially,  and  now  made  triennial) 
since  that  held  in  the  first  year  of  his  episcopate  justifies 
the  belief  that  the  work  thus  in  God  begun  will  continue 
to  the  building  up  of  the  Japanese  Church. 

Writing  to  his  clergy  in  Lent  1888,  the  Bishop  was 
able  to  say  : 

I  look  back  with  especial  pleasure  to  our  conference 
and  synod  at  Osaka  in  February  of  last  year.  I  believe 
that  the  steps  which  were  then  taken  will,  with  God's 
blessing,  have  the  most  beneficial  influence  on  the  history 
of  the  Church.  At  the  same  time,  it  is  inevitable  that  some 
special  difficulties  should  attend  an  attempt  to  secure 
united  action  in  a  way  and  to  a  degree  for  which  there  is 
no  exact  precedent.  Prayer,  study,  and  consultation  will 
enable  us  to  overcome  them  as  they  arise.  For  the  pre- 
sent I  need  only  remind  you  that  no  clergyman,  whether 
Japanese  or  English,  is  released  from  the  obligation  to 
obey  in  their  entirety,  so  far  as  is  possible  in  this  country, 
the  directions  of  the  Prayer  Book.  Whether  a  more 
elastic  system  may  hereafter  be  possible,  and  if  possible 
desirable,  is  one  of  the  many  problems  awaiting  solution  in 
the  future. 

Although  the  constitution  and  Canons  agreed  upon 
by  the  synod,  as  the  legislative  authority,  were  in  the 
main  accepted  by  the  Christian  congregations  as  well 
as  by  those  who  represented  them  in  the  conference,  there 
were  not  wanting  those  here  and  there  who  were  tempted 
to  take  a  line  of  their  own.  As  usual  in  such  differences 
of  practice,  the  points  in  themselves  were  small,  but  not 
therefore  necessarily  insignificant.  For  example,  the  use  of 
the  surplice,  a  cross  and  flowers  on  the  Holy  Table,  the 
position  of  the  font,  bowing  at  the  human  name  of  our 
Lord  and  at  the  doxology,  standing  at  the  entrance  of  the 
ministers  and  during  the  offertory,  the  omission  of  the 


NIPPON  SKI  KOKWAI 


prayer  for  the  churcli  militant — these  were  some  of  the 
matters  in  dispute. 

The  duty  of  a  missionary  Bishop  to  govern  can  never 
for  long  be  a  sinecure  when  he  has  to  deal  with  nascent 
congregations  of  newly  converted  Christians.  This  is 
especially  the  case  when  the  converts  are  a  people  as 
independent  and  as  ready  to  take  a  line  of  their  own  as 
the  English  race  itself  It  has  been  said  that  '  not  only 
England,  but  every  Englishman  is  an  island.'  The  same 
remark,  whether  in  censure  or  in  commendation,  may  be 
made  of  the  Japanese.  The  following  extracts  from  a 
letter  of  Bishop  Bickersteth's  written  on  December  31, 
1887,  well  illustrate  the  sympathy  and  judgment  which 
he  tried  to  blend  in  his  treatment  of  even  minor  ritual 
difficulties.  Recent  experience  in  England  has  shown  the 
clanger  of  the  casual  policy  of  saying  to  clergy,  '  Do  it, 
but  do  not  ask  me.'  Bishop  Edward  Bickersteth,  without 
being  fussy,  was  firm,  and  his  temperament  made  him 
unable  to  leave  these  things  to  take  care  of  themselves. 

After  explaining  and  enforcing  the  importance  of  the 
principles  of  (l)  authority,  (2)  freedom,  and  (3)  unity,  the 
Bishop  gave  the  following  ruling  : 

Tlie  use  of  the  siu-plice. —  I  gathered  from  you  that  the 
brethren  would  like  a  .special  garment  to  be  used,  but  not 
of  a  white  colour.  I  should  not  be  opposed  to  this  in  itself, 
still  I  cannot  but  hope  that  it  will  become  more  and  more 
natural  to  us  to  associate  the  white  colour  not  with  false 
worships,  but  with  the  holy  worship  of  God  in  Heaven,  in 
which  hereafter  we  hope  to  join.  (See  Rev.  iii.  45  ;  iv.  4  ; 
vi.  1 1  ;  xix.  8). 

Flozvers  and  cross  on  flic  Holy  Table. — Flowers,  God's 
most  beautiful  works,  seem  fully  in  place  in  God's  house, 
the  place  where  our  Lord  deigns  especially  to  be,  and  as 
accompaniments  of  the  services  of  our  religion,  of  which, 
as  resting  on  the  resurrection,  the  very  keynote  is  victory 
and  praise.    The  cross  is  a  symbol  used  by  Christians 

Y  2 


324 


BISHOP  EDWARD  HICKERSTETH 


from  very  early  times.  I  observe  that  on  the  outside  of 
churches  it  is  common  among  all  Christians  in  Japan.  1 
should  be  sorry  to  see  either  the  flowers  or  the  cross  dis- 
carded. At  the  same  time,  if  in  any  place  there  is  a  danger 
of  giving  offence,  either  to  weaker  brethren  or  unbelievers, 
by  placing  them  on  the  Holy  Table,  I  should  feel  that  this 
was  a  case  in  which  St.  Paul's  principle  applied,  as  stated 
in  I  Cor.  viii.  13,  and  that  for  the  present  it  is  better 
to  avoid  placing  them  in  that  position. 

The  position  of  the  font. — In  time  to  come  I  cannot  but 
hope  that  some  of  our  churches  may  be  erected  on  the 
ancient  plan,  a  plan  which  was  also  adopted  at  the  church 
Vv'here  I  usually  worshipped  in  India.  According  to  it. 
Christians  only  are  admitted  into  the  main  body  of  the 
church,  unbelievers  having  a  place  assigned  them  in  a 
large  porch  separated  by  a  low  wall  or  barrier  from  the 
nave  itself  The  font  would  then  naturally  be  placed  just 
within  the  nave.  This  plan  allows  unbelievers  to  listen  to 
God's  word  preached,  which  by  His  grace  may  become  the 
means  of  their  conversion,  but  prevents  them  from  seeming 
to  belong  to  the  congregation  in  which,  not  having  been 
baptised,  they  have  as  yet  no  place.  Catechumens  should 
also  have  a  special  place  assigned  them.  Experience  has 
shown  that  such  arrangements  are  a  real  help  to  the 
orderly  and  devout  conduct  of  God's  worship,  and  help  the 
worshippers  to  realise  more  fully  the  privilege  of  belonging 
to  the  Church  of  Christ. 

Boiving  at  the  human  name  of  our  Lord  and  at  the 
doxology. — These  are  Christian  customs,  practised  in  some 
of  our  churches,  not  in  others.  They  certainly  should  be 
by  no  means  enforced,  but  neither  should  they  be  forbidden. 
To  do  so  would  cause  great  grief  to  some  tender  con- 
sciences. Bowing  at  the  mention  of  our  Lord's  name  in 
the  creed  is  almost  universal,  but  even  here  individual 
liberty  should  be  respected.  Further,  it  may  be  taken  as  a 
rule  that  simple  forms  of  outward  devotion  are  an  assis- 
tance, elaborate  forms  a  hindrance  to  that  devotion  of  the 
heart  which  is  the  one  thing  needful. 

Standing  at  the  entrance  of  the  ministers. — In  some  of 
our  churches  this  is  the  practice,  in  some  it  is  not.  It 
seems  to  me  just  one  of  those  points  which  should  be  left 
to  be  decided  according  to  the  wishes  of  individual  clergy 
and  congregations.    Personally  I  prefer  it.    It  is  a  mark 


NIPPON  SEI  KOKWAI 


of  respect  for  the  ministers  of  Christ  which  accords  well 
with  the  teaching  of  the  New  Testament  (see,  for  instance, 
I  Thess.  V.  12,  13;  Heb.  xiii.  17,  &c.).  Besides  it  gives 
an  opportunity  for  all  to  kneel  with  the  minister  in  private 
prayer  before  the  service  commences.  Thoughts  which 
have  wandered  to  earthly  things  are  in  this  way  collected 
for  the  solemn  duty  of  worshipping  Almighty  God. 

Facing;  as  far  as  possible,  the  same  waj  during  prayer. 
Probably  all  would  be  agreed  on  this.  It  would,  however, 
be  best  not  to  make  a  law  on  the  subject,  which  might  fret 
some  of  the  brethren  who  had  been  accustomed  to  a 
different  use.  A  good  custom  will  gradually  prevail 
through  its  own  goodness. 

With  regard  to  other  resolutions  which  referred  to 
singing  the  responses  to  the  commandments,  singing  before 
the  gospel,  and  prayer  by  the  preacher  before  his  sermon, 
such  points  might  well  be  left  to  the  decision  of  congrega- 
tions and  individual  preachers.  Some  preachers  are  very 
fond  of  saying  a  short  extempore  prayer  before  their 
sermon.  I  do  not  myself  adopt  the  plan,  but  should  be 
sorry  to  see  others  forbidden  to  adopt  it  by  a  law. 

In  conclusion,  the  Bishop  expressed  his  conviction  that : 

The  Prayer  Book  would  require  very  large  modification 
before  it  can  be  finally  accepted  as  the  service  book  of  the 
Nippon  Sei  Kokwai.  But  successful  alterations  require 
much  prayer,  great  caution,  and,  as  I  have  said,  long  study. 
Without  these  loss  would  be  certain  and  gain  doubtful. 
Even  at  present  no  one  who  studies  and  uses  the  prayers 
can  fail  to  have  vividly  impressed  upon  his  mind  and  heart 
certain  great  principles  and  truths  which  are  founded  on 
the  teaching  of  Holy  Scripture  and  are  needed  for  all  times. 
They  are  such  as  these  :  the  obligation  of  definite  belief  in 
revealed  truth,  the  duty  of  worship  as  the  highest  act  of 
redeemed  men,  the  authority  of  the  threefold  ministry,  the 
reality  of  sacramental  grace,  the  duty  of  reverence,  alike 
outward  and  inward,  in  God's  house  and  service.  These 
and  other  truths  our  Church  has  been  in  a  special  way 
entrusted  with.  We  do  not,  then,  want  in  any  way  to 
reduce  our  teaching  and  services  to  the  level  of  what  others 
may  think  right :  but  rather  to  point  out,  as  occasion  offers, 
that  inasmuch  as  all  our  teaching  and  practice  is  founded 


326 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


on  God's  revelation  and  in  accordance  therewith,  it  must 
have  a  real  bearing  on  the  spiritual  life  and  progress  of  all 
the  Christian  people  of  the  land. 

You  will  join  me  in  the  prayer  that  God  may  enable 
our  Church  to  guard  the  heritage  which  He  has  committed 
to  us,  and  while  holding  great  truths  and  principles  un- 
altered, wisely  to  adapt  their  external  embodiment  to  the 
special  circumstances  of  your  favoured  land — a  land  which 
we  who  have  come  hither  from  far  learn  to  love  as  truly  as 
yourselves. 

These  counsels  of  the  Bishop  to  the  Church  at  Osaka 
have  been  quoted  at  length,  not  because  of  anything 
exceptionally  important  in  this  particular  case,  but  to 
show  that  he  did  not  neglect  the  duty  of  minute  super- 
vision imposed  upon  him  by  his  office  ;  and  that  he  kept 
jealously  in  view,  as  a  trustee  of  the  faith,  the  future 
interest  of  the  Japanese  Church,  refusing  to  be  tied  and 
bound  by  party  considerations. 

In  opening  the  third  biennial  synod  (April  4,  1891), 
I  the  Bishop  made  a  determined  effort  to  bring  home  to  the 
Nippon  Sei  Kokwai,  especially  to  the  more  progressive  and 
least-balanced  members  of  the  synod,  the  limitations 
under  which  all  their  discussions  must  be  carried  on,  unless 
they  were  to  snap  their  continuity  with  the  best  traditions 
handed  on  by  the  Catholic  Church.  He  pointed  out  the 
essential  difference  between  schools  of  thought  and  sects,  the 
benefit  of  the  one,  the  danger  of  the  other,  and  urged  that 
the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai  '  must  act  within  its  terms,  submit 
to  temporary  limitations,  and  not  cramp  a  reasonable 
variety.' 

Are  there  any  principles  which  it  were  well  to  bear  in 
mind  as  fitted  to  limit  and  control  our  discussions  .''  There 
are  three  things  which,  as  it  seems  to  me,  if  duly  con- 
sidered, will  supply  the  needful  limitations,  as  well  as  a 
main  guidance  of  our  action. 

Of  these,  the  first  is  the  fact  to  which  I  have  already 


NIPPON  SEI  KOKWAI 


alluded,  that  we  arc  a  branch  of  the  Catholic  Church.  As 
such,  we  are  the  depositaries  in  our  faith  and  orders  of  a 
great  trust  with  which  we  have  no  right  to  meddle.  To 
retain  it,  and  to  hand  it  on  unimpaired  to  the  generation 
which  shall  succeed  us,  is  our  highest  privilege.  It  is  the 
profession  of  the  Christian  faith,  witnessed  to  by  Holy 
Scripture  and  enshrined  in  the  creed,  which  alone  makes 
us  to  be  Christians,  while  the  organisation  of  the  ministry, 
which  is  of  God's  ordering,  not  of  human  contrivance,  links 
us  with  the  Church  of  the  past  and  with  contemporary 
Churches  in  other  lands.  These  things  are  not  brought 
into  debate  among  us.  They  are,  if  I  may  borrow  the 
language  of  geometry,  the  axioms  and  postulates  which 
lie  at  the  basis  of  our  discussions.  No  small  part  of  the 
progress  to  which  I  have  referred  is  due  to  the  steadfast- 
ness of  our  profession  in  these  regards.  The  inquirer  who 
joins  us  is  left  in  no  doubt  as  to  the  character  of  our  belief, 
and  the  nature  of  our  organisation  and  worship. 

Now  this  is  a  limitation  which,  as  I  have  said,  unless  as 
a  Church  we  would  commit  spiritual  suicide,  must  always 
remain.  Not  so  that  which  I  have  now  to  mention,  which 
is  in  its  own  nature  merely  temporary.  I  mean  the  limita- 
tion which  arises  from  our  present  connection  with  the 
Anglican  communion,  and  especially  with  its  three 
branches  in  England,  America,  and  Canada.  Let  us  look 
at  this  point  without  prejudice.  Two  things  are  to  be 
remembered,  (i)  The  great  majority  of  our  clergy  are  as 
yet  foreigners,  bound  by  the  obligations  of  their  ordination 
vows,  supported  entirely  by  foreign  contributions,  and 
dependent  on  foreign  Churches  for  their  maintenance  in 
sickness  or  old  age  ;  and  though  there  would  be  no  canonical 
hindrance  that  I  am  aware  of — the  two  ministries  being  on 
the  spiritual  side  identical — to  Japanese  clergy  transferring 
themselves  to  the  service  of  the  Anglican  communion,  or 
of  Anglican  clergy  resigning  their  position  in  their  own 
Church  and  entering  the  ministry  of  the  Sei  Kokwai,  yet, 
as  you  are  aware,  want  of  means  in  the  Sei  Kokwai,  and 
perhaps  some  provisions  of  the  civil  law,  render  this  for 
the  present  impossible.  This  is  one  side  of  the  question. 
On  the  other  hand,  it  is  plain  (2)  that  the  laws  of  the 
Church  as  defined  by  the  synod  must  be  obeyed  alike  by 
all  who  minister,  whether  Japanese  or  foreign.  Law  would 
lose  its  fundamental  character  if  it  could  be  neglected 


We  arc  a 
l)raiK:h  of 
Ihc  Catho- 
lic Church 


^Ve  are 
conneclecl 
with  the 
Anglican 
Commu- 
nion 


328 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


by  those  who  arc  especially  charged  with  its  administra- 
tion. 

Let  me  add  one  limitation  more.  Our  action  should  be 
controlled  by  a  frank  recognition  that  the  Church  must 
allow  large  differences  of  opinion  within  her  pale  on  minor 
points.  Every  great  Church,  as  distinguished  from  the 
.sects,  dcvelopcs  within  itself  individualised  schools  of 
thought.  A  sect  is  a  body  of  men  which  breaks  off  from 
the  historic  society  which  Christ  founded  with  the  view 
of  emphasising  some  particular  opinions,  always  more  or 
less  true,  on  which  its  members  have  come  to  lay  special, 
if  not  exclusive,  store.  Owing  to  the  presence  of  the  truth 
in  what  it  holds,  the  sect  has  a  certain  temporary  vitality, 
until  it  be  again  absorbed  into  the  catholic  body.  Now 
the  emphasising  of  particular  views  by  different  sections  of 
believers  is  inevitable.  It  is  due,  on  the  one  hand,  to  the 
infinity  of  truth,  and,  on  the  other,  to  the  narrow  limitation 
of  human  faculties.  Like  other  necessary  phenomena,  it 
must,  then,  be  allowed  for,  as  well  as  controlled,  in  the 
Church.  Its  true  exhibition  is  in  the  formation  of  schools 
of  thought,  which,  while  all  confessing  the  same  facts  of  the 
historic  creed,  contribute  each  their  own  quota  towards  its 
elucidation.  Such  schools  are  not  antagonistic  but  com- 
plementary, not  mutually  destructive  but  ancillary  the  one 
to  the  other.  Jew  and  Gentile  in  the  first  century,  the 
Mystical  School  of  Alexandria  and  the  literal  interpre- 
ters of  Antioch  in  the  third  and  fourth,  the  Scotist  and 
Dominican  Schoolmen  in  the  thirteenth — to  avoid  instances 
nearer  to  our  own  day — each  in  their  turn  contributed 
something  to  the  fuller  apprehension  of  the  faith.  For 
the  moment,  they  may  have  counted  one  another  as  foes. 
They  were  really  fellow-labourers  in  the  cause  of  Christ. 

Now  it  must  be  evident  to  you  that  schools  of  thought 
are  being  formed,  too,  among  ourselves.  It  is  natural  that 
it  should  be  so,  for  the  reasons  which  I  have  assigned  ; 
doubly  natural  because  of  the  character  of  the  communion 
to  which  we  owe  our  Christianity.  It  is  our  business  to 
see  that  no  attempt  at  exclusive  or  selfish  legislation  drives 
into  extreme  courses  developments  which  are  not  in  them- 
selves unhealthy.  Schools  may  be  vehicles  both  of  the 
divine  grace  and  truth.  Schisms  and  partisan.ships  are 
sin,  and  too  easily  forfeit  the  one  and  obscure  the  other. 
Let  there  be  among  us,  then,  liberty  for  such  varieties  of 


NII'PON  SEI  KOKWAI  329 

teaching  as  arc  not  inconsistent  with  a  common  faith,  and 
for  such  developments  of  ritual  as  do  not  conflict  with  a 
common  order.  Here,  if  anywhere,  the  lessons  of  the  past 
may  come  to  our  assistance.  Who  can  read  without 
deepening  sadness  the  later  religious  history  of  the  coun- 
tries of  Central  Europe  which  accepted  the  Reformation  of 
the  sixteenth  century  ?  The  movement  was  in  itself 
inevitable,  and  might  have  been  fraught  with  unmingled 
blessings.  But  the  sacrifice  of  common  order  and  the 
unbalanced  assertion  of  individual  opinions  have  gone  far 
to  extinguish  the  faith  itself  in  the  countries  which  wit- 
nessed it.  On  the  other  hand,  many  of  the  Churches  of 
the  further  East  have,  in  past  times,  suffered  from  the  im- 
position, alike  in  practice  and  doctrinal  statement,  of  a  rigid 
and  unreasoning  uniformity.  Let  us  accept  the  warning 
for  ourselves.  They  who  know  that  their  teaching  and 
worship  are  built  upon  apostolic  foundations  need  not  aim 
at  a  featureless  sameness,  whether  of  doctrinal  statement 
or  ritual  practice.  Those  with  whom  liberty  at  any  time 
shows  risk  of  developing  into  licence,  will  feel  it  needful  to 
fall  back  on  common  order  and  princij^le.  Two  apostolic 
words  from  the  same  epistle,  both  addressed  in  the  first 
instance  to  the  asscrtors  of  unqualified  liberty,  may  serve 
to  clench  the  lesson  both  to  them  and  equally  to  the 
maintainers  of  an  unreasoning  uniformity  :  '  Came  the 
Word  of  God  unto  you  alone?'  (i  Cor.  xiv.  36);  'We 
have  no  such  custom,  neither  the  Churches  of  God  '  (i  Cor. 
xi.  16). 

Let  me,  then,  earnestly  recommend  to  you  the  recog-  Three 
nition  of  these  three  points  as  fitted  to  regulate  and  control  Postulates 
our  discussions.  T/^e  CInircJi  is  not  in  search  of  a  faith, 
but  founded  07i  a  revelatioti.  It  must  act  within  its  terms. 
For  the  time  being  zve  are  in  close  relationship  zvith  one 
of  the  conivinnions  of  the  West.  We  will  submit  to  the 
temporary  limitation  which  this  involves.  //  is  neither 
possible  nor  desirable  to  mould  all  minds  on  one  type  nor 
to  satisfy  all  desires  by  one  form.  We  will  not  by  minute 
regulations  cramp  a  reasonable  variety. 

Subject  to  these  limitations  and  controlled  by  the  sense 
of  the  Divine  Presence,  we  may  adopt,  I  believe,  such 
measures  as  seem  good  to  us  in  the  fullest  confidence  of 
being  guided  by  the  Spirit  of  God.  We  are  now  in  the 
second  period  of  our  history.     In  the  first,  in  which  I 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


personally  had  no  share,  the  work,  which  was  exclusively 
evangelistic,  was  mainly  in  foreign  hands.  That  period 
has  gone  by  and  has  been  succeeded  by  the  present,  of 
which  the  duties  are  both  evangelistic  and  pastoral,  and 
throughout  \vhich  co-operation  should  be  the  word  inscribed 
over  either  field  of  energy.  As  time  again  goes  on,  the 
sphere  of  evangelisation  will  grow  smaller,  and  that  of 
pastoral  activity  be  continually  enlarged,  until,  either  in 
our  own  time  or  in  that  of  our  successors,  the  work  which 
began  in  the  hands  of  foreigners  will  pass  wholly  into  the 
hands  of  Japanese, 
ic  influ-  This,  by  Divine  Providence,  is  the  order  of  the  Church's 
ce  which  progress  in  every  land.  It  may  be  helpful  to  remember 
IV  have  ^  where  we  now  stand.  The  prospect  is  one  of  solemn 
the  responsibility  and  of  inspiring  hopefulness.  It  is  opened 
^t"-'  to  us,  too,  at  a  time  when,  more  than  at  any  earlier  period 
if  a  foreigner  may  rightly  judge,  through  the  progress  of 
political  organisation,  the  country  stands  in  need  of  a 
solid  core  and  centre  of  thoughtful  men,  who  recognise  the 
obligations  of  righteousness,  unselfishness,  and  philan- 
thropy, because  they  are  implicated  in  their  creed.  It  is 
not  too  much  to  say  that  representative  government,  if  it 
is  to  be  permanent,  demands  a  religious  people.  If  so — 
for  other  systems  of  belief  arc  dying  or  dead — the  future 
rests  with  the  Church.    I  can  only  allude  to  this  here. 

The  first  great  subject  which  came  before  the  synod, 
and  towards  which  it  was  necessary  to  exhibit  the  principles 
of  caution  mentioned  above,  was  the  Revision  of  the 
Japanese  Prayer  Book.  This  weighty  matter  of  revision 
was  wisely  relegated  by  the  synod  to  a  committee,  and 
occupied  six  years  of  anxious  work.  Year  by  year  the 
Bishop,  in  writing  ad  deriiiu,  referred  to  this  question,  and 
its  gradual  progress  towards  the  form  which  it  now  has 
assumed  can  be  traced  by  his  references  to  it  in  successive 
Pastorals.  Every  year  he  brought  forward  this  matter,  but 
never  from  exactly  the  same  point  of  view,  dealing  with 
the  application  of  great  principles  either  to  the  office  of 
Holy  Communion,  or  to  special  services,  or  to  daily 
Prayers,  or  some  kindred  point. 


NIPPON  SEI  KOKWAI 


In  his  Pastoral  of  1890  he  wrote: 

Some  would  also  look  with  favour  on  an  effort,  not  only  Some  le- 
to  revise,  but  to  remodel  the  Offices  of  the  Church,  so  as  "J-°'^'^"'"^ 
to  bring  them,  as  they  believe,  more  into  harmony  with  Prayer 
eastern  modes  of  thought  and  devotion.    I  am  very  far  Book 
from  thinking  that  a  translation  of  our  English  Book  of  P'^"j^^"'j|j'-y 
Common  Prayer  will  be  finally  accepted  as  its  service  book 
by  an  Oriental  Church.    But  for  two  reasons  I  trust  that 
for  some  years  to  com.e  no  steps  will  be  taken  in  the  direc- 
tion indicated,    (i)  Our  Japanese  brethren  have  not  as  yet 
the  knowledge  of  earlier  liturgical  forms,  nor  generally  the 
intimate  and  accurate  acquaintance  with  Christian  doctrine 
which  are  indispensable  to  so  refined  and  difficult  a  task  as 
the  formation  of  a  new  liturgy.    (2)  The  foreign  clergy, 
without  whose  assistance  the  services  could  not  at  present 
be  carried  on,  arc  under  canonical  obligation  to  use  their 
own  Prayer  Book  in  public  worship.    There  is  no  reason 
for  thinking  that  this  obligation  would  be  satisfied  by  the 
use  of  a  different  book,  however  excellent.    I  may  add 
that  there  might  be  much  less  difficulty  in  the  composition 
and  authorisation  of  an  appendix  to  the  present  Prayer 
Book,  containing  such  prayers  and  services  as  the  special 
circumstances  of  Japan  seem  to  require,  for  example,  a 
prayer  for  protection  from  fire  and  earthquake,  a  prayer 
for  the  consecration  of  a  grave,  a  service  for  the  admission 
of  catechumens. 


To  the  synod  of  189 1  he  said  : 

Now,  what  is  the  practical  outcome  of  a  sober  considera- 
tion  of  these  two  points  ?    I  conceive  it  to  be  this — that  nJurgical 
we  should  exercise  great  caution  and  deliberation  before  knowledge 
making  important  changes  in  our  Service   Book.     At  deficient 
present  the  substantia]  identity  of  the  Prayer  Books  of 
England,  America,  and  Japan  anticipates  and  prevents 
alike  conscientious  scruples  and  practical  difficulties.  I 
should  be  sorry  by  precipitate  action  to  forfeit  this  advan- 
tage.    I  am  not,  indeed,  opposed  to  all  change,  even 
immediately.     The  differences  of  East  and  West — even 
where  the  Christians  of  the  three  continents  are  bound 
together  by  the  sacred  ties  of  a  common  faith  and  the 
same  spiritual  lineage,  render  some  modifications  inevitable. 
It  is  true  that  the  English  Prayer  Book  is  not  the  outcome 


BISHOP  EDWARD  ISICKERSTETl I 


of  the  religious  thought  of  one  nation  only  in  any  one  age, 
but  represents  in  an  English  dress  the  devotional  treasures 
of  many  lands  and  centuries.  Still,  it  cannot  be  made 
entirely  a\-ailable  here,  as  it  is,  even  for  immediate  use. 
But  if  some  changes  are  inevitable  and  desirable,  let  them 
be  confined  for  the  present  to  necessary  curtailments  and 
additions,  and  to  points  of  order  and  detail,  and  leave  the 
substance  and  fabric  of  the  book  intact.  It  is  too  soon  as 
yet  to  think  of  writing  a  new  Confession  of  Faith  outside 
the  catholic  creeds,  even  if,  unlike  myself,  you  should 
eventually  think  such  to  be  requisite.  It  is  too  soon — we 
have  not  as  j-et  the  liturgical  knowledge  and  skill — to 
recast  the  Prayer  Book,  though  it  may  be,  as  has  been 
suggested,  that  the  substance  of  Greek  Liturgies  and  the 
form  of  Shinto  noriio  will  prove  more  consonant  to  the 
genius  of  your  language  than  the  brief  collects  and  suffrages 
of  western  growth.  If  we  were  to  attempt  such  enter- 
prises as  yet,  it  is  more  likely  that  we  should  lose  what  we 
have  than  gain  what  we  have  not.  Meanwhile  the  exercise 
of  restraint  in  this  regard  will  not  be  without  its  advan- 
tages. It  will  give  opportunity  for  prayer  and  study  on 
subjects  where,  if  either  be  omitted,  no  good  result  can  be 
expected. 

Speaking  at  the  synod  of  1893  the  Bishop  said  : 


tions  with 
a  termino- 
logy of 
their  own 


In  time  the  I  cannot  regret  the  concentration  of  our  attention  at 
Clnuch^^  this  early  period  of  our  history  on  the  subject  of  the  offices 
will  enrich  of  divine  worship.  To  offer  the  service  of  reasonable  and 
their  devo-  acceptable  worship  to  God  through  Christ  is  the  most 
exalted  duty  of  the  Church.  And  the  dignity  of  the  end 
in  view  lends  something  of  its  own  importance  to  the 
media,  whether  ritual  or  verbal,  which  we  employ  in  its 
attainment. 

And  here  if  we  ask  whether  in  forming  or  developing 
our  own  service  book  any  guidance  is  afforded  us  by 
the  universal  practice  of  the  Church,  the  answer  is  not 
doubtful.  Take  the  most  august  of  Christian  rites,  founded 
in  the  institution  of  our  Lord  himself,  the  liturgy,  or 
service  of  Holy  Communion.  Observe  and  compare  the 
services  which  have  been  used  by  various  Churches  in 
different  eras  and  in  different  lands.  Note  how  certain 
features  characterise  all  alike — the  reading  of  Holy  Scrip- 


i 


NIPPON  SEI  KOKWAI 


333 


turc,  the  offering  of  definite  and  orderly  intercession, 
adoration  and  praise  in  union  with  the  company  of  heaven, 
the  commemoration  of  the  institution  of  Christ  and  the 
communion  of  the  faithful.  Yet,  on  the  other  hand,  mark 
how  rich  is  the  variety  of  prayers  and  praises  which  the 
great  Hturgies  contain,  as  men  of  God  in  different  ages  and 
lands — sometimes  great  doctors  and  fathers,  a  Basil  or  a 
Chrysostom,  a  Leo  or  a  Gregory,  more  often  unnamed 
students  and  saints — have  elaborated  them  for  His  glory. 
We  cannot  fail  to  see  the  bearing  of  this  twofold  fact — this 
unanimity  and  this  variety — upon  ourselves.  We  too,  I 
trust,  shall  always  gladly  maintain  the  great  outlines  of  the 
sacramental  offices  which  unite  us  with  the  Churches  of 
other  lands.  Yet  as  time  goes  on,  Japanese  Christianity, 
like  Palestinian  and  Alexandrian,  Italian  and  Galilean 
Christianity  in  the  early  days,  will  enrich  its  own  service 
with  devotions  of  which  the  language  will  betray  no  hand 
except  that  of  its  own  writers,  and  will  pass  what  it  borrows 
from  foreign  services  through  the  alembic  of  the  mind  and 
heart  of  Japanese  theologians  and  liturgists.  For  the 
present,  indeed,  we  are  in  no  way  ready  for  so  great  a 
work.  The  formation  of  a  suitable  theological  terminology, 
the  preparation  of  minor  offices,  with  the  consideration  of 
certain  subordinate  details  of  service  arising  from  the 
difference  of  the  two  eucharistic  offices  from  which  our  own 
is  drawn,  will  sufficiently  occupy  our  attention.  Yet  even 
in  these  lesser  matters  you  will,  I  hope,  feel  how  serious 
the  duty  is  with  which  as  a  synod  we  are  entrusted,  and 
how  necessary  it  is  to  be  guided  by  right  principles. 


In  the  Pastoral  of  1894  he  wrote  : 

No  doubt  the  day  is  as  yet  far  distant  when  a  Japanese  The  acci- 
synod  will  be  able  profitably  to  undertake  the  discussion  ^'^J^^^'  "'^ 
of  serious  ritual  and  liturgical  questions.    It  was,  so  to  stances 
say,  the  chance  of  two  Prayer  Books  being  employed  by  which 
the  Anglican  missions  in  this  country  which  gave  occasion  p^^^^^. 
for  any  such  discussions  at  the  present  stage  of  develop-  Book  re- 
ment.    It  is  to  be  hoped  that  many  years  will  be  allowed  vision  ne- 
to  pass  by  before  they  are  renewed  as  regards  the  substance 
of  our  Service  Book.    The  incorporation  into  the  office  of 
Holy  Communion  of  the  American  Prayer  of  Consecration 
as  an  alternative  form,  the  restoration  of  an  absolution 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


to  the  Visitation  of  the  Sick,  and  the  addition  of  some 
excellent  occasional  prayers,  chiefly  from  the  revised 
American  Prayer  Book,  are  among  the  more  important 
improvements.  The  additional  services  should  form  a 
useful  appendix  to  the  Book  of  Common  Prayer.  Two 
Two  ic-  omissions  are  to  be  regretted  and  might  well  be  repaired, 
s^ieuahlc  Japanese  Church  has  as  yet  no  adequate  know- 

in  the  Rc-  ledge  to  enable  its  representatives  to  form  an  mdcpendent 
vised  Book  judgment  on  the  use  of  the  Apocrypha.  The  custom  of 
the  three  Western  Churches,  to  which  she  owes  her 
existence,  ought  to  have  been  followed,  (i?)  If  in  these 
days  a  direction  is  felt  to  be  galling,  at  least  some  recom- 
mendation of  the  use  of  the  daily  office  by  the  clergy 
should  be  prefixed  to  the  Prayer  Book.  Such  a  use  is  not 
indeed  a  specific  for  the  maintenance  of  a  high  standard  of 
spiritual  life  among  the  Church's  ministers,  but  it  is  an 
important  guarantee  that  that  end  will  be  kept  in  view 
and  a  great  help  towards  its  attainment.  The  standard 
of  religion  would  never  have  been  depressed  as  it  was  in 
England  in  the  last  half  of  the  eighteenth  century  if  the 
Church's  rule  in  the  matter  had  not  been  so  widely 
neglected.  The  recovery  of  the  practice  has  accompanied 
and  largely  contributed  to  the  present  happier  state  of 
things.  The  six  short  Prayers,  a  Psalm  Lesson,  Creed,  and 
Canticle  with  certain  suffrages,  which  are  all  that  are  now 
enjoined,  link  the  clergyman  who  uses  them  day  by  day 
with  a  great  body  of  worshippers  and  of  students  of  Holy 
Writ.  If  he  is  alone,  they  form  a  framework  of  devotion 
into  which  he  may  well  fit  his  own  special  needs,  and  the 
more  often  he  can  draw  his  people  to  use  them  with  him 
the  greater  their  gain  and  his.  The  Church,  in  a  phrase  of 
language  familiar  to  antiquity,  was  the  Altar  and  Altar- 
court  ^  of  God. 


Again,  in  his  Pastoral  of  1895  the  Bishop  wrote: 

The  new  The  New  Japanese  version  of  the  Prayer  Book  has 

version  been  finished  after  probably  a  greater  expenditure  of  toil  in 

be^c-'^"  translation  and  minute  revision,  extended  over  some  six 

cepted  for  years,  that  has  been  devoted  to  any  of  the  numerous 

some  years  versions  of  the  Prayer  Book  in  our  day.    It  is  impossible 

to  come 

'  See  the  collection  of  references  in  the  Bishop  of  Durham's  Commaifary 
on  the  Epistle  to  the  Hebrews,  pp.  455-457- 


NIPPON  SEI  KOKWAI 


that  all  should  be  entirely  satisfied  with  the  result.  The 
differences  between  the  English  and  American  Books 
involved  numerous  decisions  in  which  strong  predilections, 
happily  by  no  means  always  running  parallel  with  nation- 
ality, were  engaged  on  one  side  or  the  other.  The  selec- 
tion of  a  theological  terminology  in  an  eastern  language 
adequate  to  render  the  venerable  forms  into  which  the 
Christian  thought  of  the  West  has  cast  its  beliefs  and 
prayers  is,  as  you  are  aware,  a  task  of  extreme  difficulty. 
This  difficulty  has  now  been  in  large  part  overcome,  and 
the  thanks  of  the  whole  Church  are  due  to  those  who, 
under  whatever  inevitable  imperfections,  have  given  us  a 
service  book  which  in  completeness  and  literary  style  is 
much  in  advance  of  its  predecessor.  I  may  express  the 
hope  that  now  that  the  version  is  complete,  it  may  be 
allowed  to  remain  as  it  is,  at  least  for  some  years.  No 
doubt  a  later  generation  will  improve  upon  the  work  of 
our  own.  But  stability  is  a  note  of  the  Church  with  which 
frequent  changes  of  liturgical  forrns,  or  even  of  translation, 
are  more  or  less  inconsistent.  As  it  now  stands,  it  is,  I 
believe,  fairly  adequate  to  the  needs  of  the  little  Japanese 
Church,  and  like  the  Japanese  Church  itself  it  bears 
witness  to  the  unity  of  the  American  and  English  Churches, 
and  to  the  good  results  of  the  co-operation  of  their  clergy 
in  a  heathen  land. 

In  the  September  of  that  year  the  following  Joint 
Pastoral  from  the  Bishops  in  Japan  accompanied  the 
actual  issue  of  the  Revised  Prayer  Book. 

The  Revised  Prayer  Book 

[//  is  requested  that  this  letter  lie  read  during  divine  service  in  Church  on  a 
Sunday  shortly  before  the  day  on  luhich  the  new  Version  is  first  jnadc  use  o/.] 

Tokyo  :  Septeml)er  1895. 

To  the  Reverend  the  Clergy  and  the  Members  of  the 
Nippon  Sei  K5kwai 

Dear  Brethren, — The  revised  translation  of  the  Prayer 
Book  (with  the  exception  of  the  Epistles,  Gospels,  and 
Psalms)  is  now  complete.  A  longer  time  has  been  spent 
on  the  last  stage  of  the  revision  than  was  anticipated  at  the 


336 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


synod  of  1893.  In  consequence  its  publication  has  been 
delayed  beyond  the  date  (January  i,  1895)  then  fixed  for 
its  compulsory  use  in  public  service.  It  is,  therefore, 
desirable  that  it  should  now  be  adopted  with  as  little  delay 
as  possible,  and  we  request  that  all  necessary  steps  be  at 
once  taken  for  providing  each  congregation  with  a  suffi- 
cient supply  of  the  revised  edition. 

Aluch  labour  has  been  ungrudgingly  given  through  a 
series  of  years  to  the  work  of  revision  ;  and  if  the  ends  in 
view  have  been  attained,  the  use  of  the  new  book  in 
divine  service  cannot  fail  to  contribute  to  that  intelligent 
and  truthful  worship  of  Almighty  God  which  Christians 
are  bidden  to  offer.    (St.  John  iv.  24,  i  Cor.  xiv.  15.) 

Various  new  prayers  and  additional  rubrics  will  be 
found  in  the  body  of  the  book.  The  Lectionary  has  been 
carefully  revised.  The  appendix  contains  a  series  of  new 
services,  of  which  experience  has  shown  the  need. 

We  cannot  but  hope  that  the  publication  of  this  revised 
version  will  lead  to  a  fuller  study  and  wider  use  of  all  parts 
of  the  book. 

The  clergy  are  bound  by  their  ordination  vows  to 
follow  the  order  of  the  Church's  services  in  their  ministra- 
tions, and  if  they  are  fully  to  discharge  this  part  of  their 
duty  they  must  make  themselves  thoroughly  acquainted 
with  the  meaning  of  each  rubric  and  prayer.  In  congrega- 
tions where  there  is  a  minister  in  constant  residence,  it  is 
not  lawful  to  omit  any  part  of  the  prescribed  services. 
Thus,  for  instance,  there  is  no  justification  for  the  prevalent 
neglect  of  the  Saints'  Day  services,  nor  for  the  omission  of 
an  Evening  Service  on  Sunday. 

Again,  it  is  impossible  for  teachers  to  fulfil  the 
responsible  duty  of  instructing  the  young  in  the  Catechism 
(see  rubric  after  the  Church  Catechism  and  Canon  V.  5) 
unless  they  have  themselves  dwelt  upon  the  meaning  of 
the  great  moral  and  spiritual  truths  which  it  inculcates,  in 
meditation  and  prayer  (i  Tim.  iv.  15).  Or,  to  take  one 
other  instance,  the  principles  of  such  a  service  as  that  of 
the  Visitation  of  the  Sick  must  be  carefully  considered 
and  apprehended  before  it  can  be  profitably  employed. 

But  the  obligation  of  carefully  studying  and  taking 
regular  and  intelligent  part  in  the  Church's  services  is  not 
confined  to  the  clergy.  To  all  of  us  the  words  are 
addressed,  '  Ye  also,  as  living  stones,  are  built  up  a  spiritual 


NIPPON  SEI  KUKWAI 


337 


house,  to  be  a  holy  priesthood,  to  offer  up  spiritual  sacri- 
fices, acceptable  to  God  through  Jesus  Christ '  (i  St.  Peter 
ii.  5).  We  would  therefore  take  this  opportunity  of 
earnestly  pressing  upon  the  faithful  laity  of  the  Church, 
that  they  never  allow  worldly  occupations  to  interfere 
with  the  discharge  of  this  primary  dut)'  of  all  Christian 
people. 

We  rejoice  to  know  that  already  many  of  the  laity 
make  use  of  the  Prayer  Book  in  family  and  private  devo- 
tions, and  read  Holy  Scripture  according  to  the  Lectionary 
of  the  Church.  A  form  of  Family  Prayer  is  included  in 
the  present  volume,  which  may  be  easily  varied  by  the 
selection  of  prayers  from  other  services,  appropriate  to  the 
special  circumstances  of  each  family  or  to  the  season  of 
the  Church's  year.  The  publication  of  a  revised  Psalter 
will  lead,  we  hope,  to  its  becoming  in  the  Japanese  Church, 
as  it  is  in  other  branches  of  the  Catholic  Church,  a  book 
valued  alike  in  the  congregation  and  in  the  home,  as  con- 
taining inspired  forms  of  devotion,  suited  to  the  experi- 
ence of  the  many  needs  of  our  human  lives. 

We  pray  for  you,  dear  brethren,  that  studying  Holy 
Scripture  under  the  guidance  of  the  '  form  of  sound  words  ' 
(2  Tim.  i.  13)  which  this  book  contains,  you  'may  be 
built  up  on  your  most  Holy  Faith  '  (St.  Jude  20),  and,  con- 
tinually taking  part  in  the  Church's  sacrifice  of  prayer 
and  praise  and  sacramental  woi'ship,  may  be  filled  with 
heavenly  grace,  and  do  that  which  is  well  pleasing  in  the 
sight  of  God  our  Father,  to  whom  we  have  access  in  one 
Spirit  through  Jesus  Christ  our  Lord. 

We  are,  dear  Brethren, 

Your  faithful  and  affectionate  ]^rethrcn  and  Servants 
in  Christ, 

Edw.  Bickerstkth,  Bishop. 
John  McKim,  Bishop. 
Henry  Evington,  Bishop. 

Some  rumours  reached  England  that  serious  omis- 
sions were  being  sanctioned  in  this  Revised  Japanese 
Prayer  Book,  and  called  forth  from  the  Bishop  the  follow- 
ing letter  of  refutation  and  explanation,  which  he  addressed 
to  his  sister  May,  as  Secretary  of  the  Guild  of  St.  Paul. 

z 


338 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


Karuizawa  :  August  19,  1896. 

Canon  's  opinion  is  of  importance,  but  he  is  not 

sufficiently  acquainted  with  the  facts. 

We  have  not  been  engaged  at  all  in  striking  out,  as  he 
deems,  parts  of  the  Prayer  Book,  but  in  the  better  work  of 
insertion. 

The  Prayer  Book  we  inherited  in  Japanese  (I  need  not 
recount  how  this  came  about,  an  oversight  probably  of 
Archbishop  Tait's)  was  the  American  Book  minus  its  best 
clement,  the  Prayer  of  Consecration.  Practically  the  result 
of  the  last  ten  years  has  been  to  insert  all  important  omis- 
sions (including  a  rubric  on  Private  Confession  and  the 
American  Consecration  Prayer),  except  the  rubric  on  daily 
service.  For  some  reason  or  other  the  C.M.S.,  which  had 
given  way  on  other  points,  set  themselves  against  this  ;  but 
the  use  of  daily  service  is  extending,  and  with  patience  the 
rubric,  I  hope,  will  find  a  place  in  the  Japanese  book. 

Taking  the  Japanese  Prayer  Book  as  a  whole,  it  is,  I 
believe,  the  best  yet  issued  in  Churches  connected  with  the 
Anglican  communion.  The  additional  special  prayers, 
and  an  appendix  of  services,  specially  required  in  missions, 
or  of  importance  in  this  country  (e.g.  for  the  Emperor's 
birthday),  are  a  great  gain. 

Of  course  the  Prayer  Book  has  never  been  thrown 
before  a  General  Synod,  nor  is  there  any  intention  of  so 
dealing  with  the  Articles.  The  points  in  the  Prayer  Book 
were  considered  by  a  special  committee,  and  if  the  Articles 
are  revised,  the  same  course  will  be  taken.  All  that  the 
.synod  does  is  to  give  or  refuse  its  sanction  to  the  decisions 
of  the  committee.  Had  it  not  been  for  the  differences  of 
the  English  and  American  Prayer  Books  no  liturgical 
subjects  would  have  been  considered  at  all.  As  there  were 
these  differences,  discussion  was  inevitable,  and  on  the 
whole  we  have  much  reason  to  be  thankful  for  the  result. 
The  reason  why  the  marriage  law  question  has  arisen  is 
the  same.  The  American  book  omitted  the  Table  of 
Degrees,  just  as  it  omitted  the  rubric  on  daily  service. 
We  have  to  take  things  as  we  find  them,  and  '  restore  the 
breaches'  if  we  are  able.  I  think  it  most  likely  we  shall 
succeed. 

On  the  difficult  and  important  question  of  a  Confession 
of  Faith  to  take  the  place  of  the  Thirty-nine  Articles 


NIPPON  SEI  KUKWAI 


339 


(which  had  been  provisionally  accepted  by  the  Nippon  Tiu-  <|ucs- 


In  this  connection  let  me  remind  you  that  it  will  not  Ankles 
be  possible  indefinitely  to  delay  the  preparation  of  a 
Confession  of  Faith  which  may  take  the  place  of  the 
Thirty-nine  Articles  of  Religion  in  the  Japanese  Church, 
and  be  used,  like  our  Articles,  as  an  authorised  standard 
of  teaching  for  clergy.  For  the  laity  probably  no  one 
would  propose  to  exceed  the  requirements  of  the  Cate- 
chism. On  this  subject  there  are  two  points  which  -it  is 
important  to  bear  in  mind.  I.  That  by  a  resolution  of 
the  Lambeth  Conference  of  1888  the  episcopal  succession 
cannot  be  conferred  on  a  newly  constituted  Church,  unless 
there  be  satisfactory  evidence  that  it  holds  substantially 
the  same  doctrine  as  the  Anglican  communion  and 
that  its  clergy  subscribe  Articles  in  accordance  with  the 
express  statements  of  our  own  standards  of  doctrine  and 
worship,  though  not  necessarily  bound  to  accept  in  their 
entirety  the  Thirty-nine  Articles  of  Religion.  This  gives 
us  a  large  but  limited  freedom.  If  the  substance  of 
Anglican  teaching  is  retained,  the  form  may  differ,  and 
matters  of  some  importance  perhaps  still  in  the  West, 
but  of  historical  interest  only  here,  may  be  omitted. 
2.  That  a  Japanese  confession  must  be  largely  the  work 
of  Japanese  Christians,  and  if  matters  of  controversy  are 
referred  to,  they  must  be  those  of  which  the  vital  impor- 
tance is  felt  and  acknowledged  in  Japan. 

And  again  :  ^ 

The  Thirty-nine  x'Vrticles  have  no  oecumenical  authority. 
They  are  '  English  of  the  English,'  an  outcome  of  the 
special  circumstances  of  the  Church  of  England  in  the 
sixteenth  century.  In  the  matters  with  which  they  deal, 
as  compared  with  the  contemporary  confessions  of  Ger- 
many and  Switzerland,  they  bear  striking  testimony  to 
the  wisdom  and  moderation  of  the  English  Reformers  ; 
but  they  are  not,  and  do  not  profess  to  be,  a  complete 
statement  of  Christian  doctrine,  and  were  certainly  never 


Sei  Kokwai)  many  discussions  arose,  and  the  Bishop 
wrote  :  ^ 


lidii  uf  ihc 
relciuiim 
of  ihc 
Thirty- 


nine 


'  Lent  Pastoral  1S92. 


^  Lent  Pastoral  1896. 

z  2 


340 


lilSIIOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


intended  by  their  compilers  to  be  imposed  as  a  standard 
of  orthodoxy  outside  the  British  Isles. 

Further,  speaking  generally,  the  imposition  of  elabo- 
rate doctrinal  standards,  as  distinguished  from  the  brief 
devotional  enumeration  in  a  creed  of  the  facts  of  belief, 
is  an  evidence  of  weakness.  Lengthy  statements  of  this 
kind  would  not  be  required  under  the  best  and  most 
healthy  conditions  of  the  Church's  life.  And  if  it  be 
concluded  at  any  time  that  the  adoption  of  some  such 
statement  is  inevitable,  the  greatest  care  should  be  taken 
that  it  is  germane  to  the  particular  circumstances  of 
the  local  Church  and  does  not  contain  unnecessary  or 
irrelevant  definitions. 

Now,  do  the  Thirty-nine  Articles  of  the  Church  of 
England  so  fulfil  the.se  conditions  as  to  render  it  desirable 
to  insert  them  in  the  Prayer  Book  of  the  Japanese  Church  ? 
I  cannot  think  so. 

For  instance,  when  it  is  remembered  how  clear  are  the 
statements  of  the  creeds  on  the  great  doctrines  of  the 
Holy  Trinity  and  of  the  Incarnation,  are  Articles  I.  to 
V.  necessary  in  this  country  as  a  formulary  of  general 
instruction  ? 

Again,  is  not  the  Article  on  original  sin  read,  as  it 
must  be  in  Japan,  altogether  apart  from  the  controversy 
which  gave  it  special  point  and  meaning  in  England  three 
centuries  ago,  very  liable  to  misinterpretation  by  most 
Eastern  Christians  ? 

,  Again,  the  Article  on  Justification,  taken  in  relation 
to  the  doctrinal  controversies  of  the  Reformation,  is  ex- 
cellent alike  in  its  reticence  and  in  its  affirmations.  But 
would  any  careful  student  of  Holy  Scripture  maintain 
that  it  is  so  adequate  and  balanced  a  statement  of  the 
whole  complex  doctrine  to  which  it  refers  as  to  render 
it  desirable  for  an  Oriental  Church,  under  totally  different 
circumstances  and  surroundings,  to  insert  it  as  it  stands 
into  its  Office  Book  ? 

Again,  is  it  necessary  at  present  in  the  East  to  have 
any  authoritative  decision  at  all  on  the  problems  of  elec- 
tion and  free  will  ?  Might  not  the  whole  subject  be  left 
to  the  consideration  of  a  native  scliola  tlicologoruin,  when 
such  arises  ?  And  if  so,  is  there  need  to  ask  each  member 
of  the  Japanese  Church  who  uses  the  Prayer  Book  to 
consider  and  interpret  our  Article  XVII.  ? 


NIPPON  SEI  KOKWAI  34 1 

Again,  do  not  our  special  circumstances  here  render 
it  most  undesirable  that  we  should  insert  in  our  Book  of 
Common  Prayer  the  first  clause  in  the  second  joaragraph 
of  Article  XIX.  ?  What  should  we  think  of  our  brethren 
of  the  Orthodox  Church  of  Russia  were  they  to  append 
to  their  Japanese  Liturgy  some  similar  statement  in  refe- 
rence to  ourselves  ?  Here  again  the  circumstances  of  the 
sixteenth  century  in  England  offer  no  parallel  to  our  own 
in  Japan. 

Further,  though  the  East  is  but  little  concerned  in 
Western  controversies,  it  has  and  always  will  have  its  own 
modes  of  thought,  its  own  problems,  its  own  difficulties  ; 
and  this  being  so,  it  would  seem  that  the  doctrinal  con- 
fession of  an  Eastern  Church,  if  its  formulation  be  deemed 
requisite,  should  be  the  work  of  Oriental  theologians,  be 
'  racy  of  the  soil,'  spring  out  of  a  surrounding  of  Eastern 
circumstances,  and  carry  to  those  who  study  it  the  obvious 
meaning  of  its  own  allusions  and  references.  It  could  not 
be  maintained  that  this  would  be  true  of  the  Thirty-nine 
Articles. 

For  these  reasons  I  have  no  doubt  that  the  Bishops  at 
the  recent  synod  were  right  in  their  decision  not  to  allow 
the  Articles  to  be  appended  to  our  Service  Book.  By  a 
resolution  of  the  first  synod  of  the  Nippon  Sei  K5kwai 
in  1887  the  Articles  were  temporarily  accepted.  The 
result  of  this  action  is  that  their  definitions  may  not  be 
contravened  by  the  authoritative  teachers  of  the  Church. 
So  long  as  Anglican  missions  are  working  in  Japan, 
they  may,  if  it  be  thought  well,  without  difficulty  be 
retained  in  this  position  ;  but  I  am  unable  to  think  that 
it  would  be  desirable  to  accord  them  any  more  definite 
recognition. 

With  regard  to  the  Marriage  laws,'  it  will  be  remem-  Marriage 
bered  that  at  the  first  synod  the  matter  was  deferred  for  Xabie^of 
further  discussion,  being  of  such  vital  importance,  and  it  ^^^S''^" 
has  been  debated  at  each  successive  synod. 

Before  leaving  Japan  in  1892  the  Bishop  had  written  to 
his  clergy  : 

A  number  of  careful  reports  are  being  prepared  for 

'  See  Canon  XV. 


342 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


the  next  meeting  of  the  synod.  Among  them  will  be 
one  on  marriage  law.  The  marriage  law  of  the  Church 
vitally  affects  its  w-ell-being  as  well  as  tests  its  obedience 
to  divine  command  and  restriction.  I  hope  that  the 
difficulties  which  have  been  raised  in  reference  to  it  will 
have  your  careful  attention.  Some  papers  issued  by  the 
S.P.C.K.  will  be  forwarded  to  you  shortly.  For  myself,  I 
cannot  doubt  that  the  two  principles  embodied  by  Arch- 
bishop Parker  in  the  marriage  law  of  the  English  Church, 
and  from  which  as  English  clergymen  we  are  not  person- 
ally at  liberty  to  recede — namely,  that  marriage  is  unlawful 
within  the  third  degree,  and  that  relationship  by  affinity  is  to 
be  treated  as  equivalent  to  relationship  by  consanguinity — 
are  in  accordance  with  Scriptural  guidance  and  catholic 
precedent. 

At  the  synod  of  1893  he  spoke  as  follows  : 

A  report  will  be  presented  on  the  marriage  law  of  the 
Church.  No  subject  is  of  larger  practical  importance. 
Laxity  in  regard  to  it  is  the  sure  precursor  of  decline  in  a 
Christian  communion.  Vagueness  and  uncertainty  involve 
injustice  to  individuals  who  transgress  through  ignorance. 
On  the  other  hand,  definite  law  and  practice,  based  on  right 
principles,  do  much  to  maintain  a  high  moral  tone  in  the 
Christian  society,  and  even  more,  as  time  goes  on,  may  be 
trusted  to  influence  the  laws  of  the  State  in  cases  where, 
as  is  probable  when  the  State  is  not  Christian,  the  civil 
law  is  at  first  laxer  than  that  of  the  Church.  Now  here 
again  let  me  point  out  that  while  on  some  points  there  has 
been  divergence  of  opinion  and  practice — and  when  this 
is  the  case  w^e  are  at  liberty  to  decide  the  questions  which 
may  arise  as  seems  best  under  local  circumstances — yet 
certain  principles  have  been  maintained  from  the  beginning. 
Among  these  I  should  notice  (a)  the  indissolubility  (unless 
with  the  one  exception  which  our  Lord  allowed)  of  the 
marriage  tie,  (d)  the  prohibitions  of  marriage  within  the 
third  degree — a  stricter  rule  than  this  has  been  maintained 
at  times,  never  a  less  strict — (c)  the  identity  of  the  relation- 
ship arising  through  consanguinity  and  affinity.  I  will 
only  add  that  while  in  regard  to  this  subject  especially  I 
recognise  the  consideration  which  Christianity  always 
gives  to  national  or  local  customs,  I  should  indeed  fear  for 


NIPPON  SEI  KOKWAI 


343 


the  future  of  the  Nippon  Sci  Kokwai  if  our  marriage  law 
embodied  any  other  than  the  principles  of  the  Universal 
Church. 

In  this  view  he  was  upheld  by  the  unhesitating  support 
of  Archbishop  Benson,  who  wrote  : 

Addington  Park,  Croydon  :  September  20,  1892. 

My  dear  Bishop  Bickersteth, — I  do  not  think  you  can 
possibly  undertake  to  alter  the  Table  of  Kindred  and 
Affinity,  which  gives  the  mind  of  the  Church  of  England 
with  perfect  definiteness  upon  that  important  subject  ;  nor 
have  I  any  power  whatever  to  make  or  recommend  a 
change. 

Apart  from  the  question  of  such  power,  I  believe  our 
law  to  be  Scriptural  and  Christian.  If  the  Church  of 
America  has  a  fixed  law  of  its  own,  we  cannot  interfere 
with  that ;  and  persons  whom  the  American  Church 
present  to  us  as  communicants  according  to  the  law  of 
their  Church  must  needs  be  received  as  communicants  by 
us,  not  on  the  ground  that  their  law  is  correct,  but  on  the 
ground  that  they  make  themselves  responsible  as  a  Church 
for  the  competency  of  communicants,  and  on  that  responsi- 
bility we  accept  them. 

With  earnest  good  wishes  and  prayers, 

Your  sincere  friend  and  affectionate 

Brother  in  Christ, 

Edward  Cantuar. 

Subsequently  the  Bishop  wrote  to  his  father  as  follows  : 

Bishopstowe  :  13  Igura,  Azaba,  Tokyo  : 
June  17,  1895. 

Dearest  Father, — I  must  prepare  for  our  'Bishops' 
Meeting'  to-morrow,  so  )'ou  will  pardon  a  short  line. 

What  an  utter  scandal  that  service  was  at  St.  Mark's, 
North  Audley  St.  .  .  .  Surely,  if  it  were  made  plain  that 
clergymen  taking  these  marriages  would  be  looked  upon  as 
under  ecclesiastical  censure  and  in  disgrace,  they  would 
not  be  taken.  And  then  if  a  Bill  were  brought  into  the 
House  of  Lords  every  year  to  repeal  the  clause  which 
opens  our  churches  for  such  profane  services,  even  though 
it  took  a  long  time  to  educate  the  people's  conscience  to 


344 


lilSIIOr  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


the  point  of  demanding  its  passing,  not  only  would  the 
Church  be  able  to  say  Libcravi  aniuiam  iiicavi,  but — an 
indirect  gain — the  people  would  be  brought  to  recognise 
the  value  of  a  sacred  society  in  the  midst  of  them  which 
had  a  mind  and  practice  of  her  own  on  all  matters  which 
so  nearly  touch  as  this  does  the  nation's  morals  and  life. 
As  it  is,  the  laisscr  faire  policy  must,  I  think,  actually 
weaken  the  national  conscience,  which  it  is  our  business  to 
strengthen. 

Your  very  affectionate  Son, 

EDW.  BICKERSTETII,  Bishop. 

This  was  a  subject  on  which  the  Bishop  felt  very  keenly, 
and  though  no  Canon  was  passed  by  the  synod,  yet  a 
joint  Pastoral  on  the  Christian  marriage  law  was  issued 
by  Bishops  Bickersteth  and  McKim  early  in  1S94.  There 
was  eager  discussion  on  the  point  in  the  synod  of  1896, 
when  much  pain  was  caused  to  Bishop  Bickersteth  as 
chairman  by  some  expressions  of  laxity  of  opinion  on  the 
part  of  a  few  of  the  Japanese  delegates.  Thereupon  he 
declared  in  full  synod  that  he  would  resign  his  position 
rather  than  preside  over  a  Church  which  tampered  with 
the  Christian  marriage  law.  His  action  made  a  deep  im- 
pression on  the  Japanese  who  were  present,  and  had  great 
effect  at  the  time. 

He  emphasised  this  in  his  Pastoral  to  his  clergy  when 
he  wrote  : 

The  debate  on  the  laws  of  marriage  showed  that  it  is 
not  yet  sufficiently  felt  that  in  this  and  other  like  matters 
we  are  not  at  liberty,  if  we  would  be  true  to  ourselves,  to 
enact  any  law  which  would  conflict  with  the  mind  and 
practice  of  the  Catholic  Church.  Had  this  been  more  fully 
grasped,  it  would  not  have  been  proposed  to  admit  the  use 
of  the  service  of  the  Church  in  the  case  of  marriage  with 
a  deceased  wife's  sister  and  a  deceased  brother's  widow. 
There  is  little  if  any  doubt  that  the  Mosaic  Law  is  based  on 
the  principle  that  affinity  is  to  be  regarded  as  equivalent  in 
point  of  relationship  to  consanguinity.    The  practice  of  the 


NIPPON  SEI  KOKWAI 


345 


Christian  Church  from  the  beginning,  in  days  anterior  to 
the  definite  enactments  of  Canon  law,  was  in  accordance 
with  this  view.  The  Canon  law  only  defined  what  had 
long  been  accepted.  If,  then,  in  a  matter  of  much  conse- 
quence we,  the  youngest  of  the  organised  Churches  of 
Christendom,  were  to  strike  out  a  new  path  for  ourselves, 
we  should  imperil  to  this  extent  our  right  of  communion 
with  the  whole  Body  of  Christ,  and  be  setting  a  precedent 
which,  if  followed  in  other  matters,  might  lead  to  most 
serious  and  perilous  results.  It  is,  I  believe,  our  duty  at 
the  present  time  to  make  opportunities  of  inculcating  this 
view  of  the  question  on  our  Japanese  brethren,  in  order 
that,  if  possible,  practical  unanimity  on  this  matter  maybe 
attained  by  the  next  meeting  of  the  synod. 

The  following  joint  Pastoral  on  this  question  was  issued 
after  the  synod  by  the  four  Bishops  of  the  Nippon  Sei 
Kokwai. 

To  (he  Reverend  the  Clergy  of  the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai 

June  1896. 

Reverend  and  dear  Brethren, — After  the  synod  of  1893 
we  addressed  a  letter  to  you  on  the  subject  of  the  Christian 
marriage  law,  in  which  we  recorded  the  main  principles 
which  should  guide  our  action  as  ministers  of  the  Church 
in  this  most  important  matter.  It  was  our  hope  that  the 
synod  of  this  year  would  have  embodied  these  principles 
in  a  formal  Canon,  but  as  this  has  not  proved  practicable, 
we  think  it  our  duty  to  re-affirm  the  points  which  were  laid 
down  in  our  former  letter. 

The  main  substance  of  our  former  letter  is  contained  in 
the  following  paragraphs  : 

The  three  fundamental  principles  which  it  is  important 
carefully  to  consider  and  bear  in  mind  are 

(1)  The  indissobibility  and  excliisiveness  of  Christian 
marriage — that  is,  Christian  marriage  does  not  admit 
either  of  divorce  or  polygamy.  This  principle  is  involved 
in  the  law  of  the  original  institution  (Genesis  ii.  24),  which 
was  for  a  time  relaxed  '  because  of  the  hardness  of  men's 
hearts,'  but  reimposed  in  all  its  strictness  on  His  disciples 
by  our  Lord  (St.  Matt.  xix.  3-9). 

(2)  The  illegality  of  marriage  ivithin  the  third  degree 


346 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


of  relationship.  This  principle  is  clearly  recognised  in  the 
Levitical  code  (Leviticus  xviii.)  and  was  usually  embodied 
in  the  customs  even  of  the  heathen  nations  of  antiquity. 
The  one  exception  for  which  the  Mosaic  Law  made  pro- 
vision, that  of  the  Levirate  (Deut.  xxv.  5),  emphasised  the 
general  obligation.  In  the  mediaeval  era  certain  Christian 
codes  extended  the  prohibition  beyond  the  third  degree,  but 
without  Scriptural  warrant. 

(3)  The  identity  of  the  relationships  zvhicli  arise  from 
affiyiity,  in  the  case  of  a  party  co7itracting  a  marriage,  with 
the  natural  relatiotisJiips  of  consanguinity.  This  principle 
again  rests  on  the  primaeval  law,  '  They  twain  shall  be  one 
flesh'  (St.  Matt.  xix.  5). 

A  Table  of  Kindred  and  Affinity  based  on  these  prin- 
ciples is  enclosed  with  this  letter.  No  marriage  should 
be  solemnised  by  us  which  contravenes  its  regulations. 
The  method  of  granting  dispensations  for  monetary  pay- 
ment is  of  recent  origin,  established  only  under  the  vicious 
system  of  the  Papal  Curia,  and  can  have  no  place  among 
ourselves. 

The  rule  that  divorce  is  not  permitted  between  Christians 
who  have  entered  into  the  marriage  covenant  is  not  affected 
by  the  omission,  lamentable  though  it  be,  to  seek  God's 
blessing  in  the  Church's  marriage  rite.  The  only  exception 
is  that  stated  in  our  Lord's  words  (St.  Matt.  xix.  9).  Under 
no  circumstances  can  the  guilty  party  in  a  divorce  be  re- 
married with  the  Church's  service,  or  be  re-admitted  to 
communion,  if  he  or  she  have  contracted  a  civil  marriage 
during  the  lifetime  of  their  legitimate  partner. 

Much  discussion  has  taken  place  as  to  the  legitimacy 
of  the  remarriage  of  the  innocent  party  in  a  divorce. 
On  the  whole  we  are  of  opinion  that  such  marriages 
should  be  discouraged.  Certainly,  no  clergyman  can  at 
any  time  be  compelled  to  officiate  at  such  a  marriage  if  he 
feel  scruple  in  regard  to  it.  On  the  other  hand,  we  think 
that  a  priest  should  not  be  forbidden  to  conduct  such  a 
marriage  who  can  do  so  conscientiously. 

The  marriage  law  of  the  Church  is  not  in  its  entirety 
applicable  to  unions  contracted  before  baptism.  In  Japan 
it  may  be  thankfully  admitted  that  custom  and  civil  law 
in  many  important  particulars  coincide  with  the  law  of 
the  Church.  Each  case  in  which  the  Christian  law  has 
been  contravened  unwittingly  must  be  judged  on  its  own 


NIPPON  SEI  KOKWAI 


347 


merits.  Ecclesiastical  regulations  and  penalties  cannot  as 
such  be  made  retrospective. 

It  is  clear  from  St.  Paul's  words  (i  Cor.  vii.  15)  that 
marriages  between  other  than  Christians  are  not,  like  those 
between  Christians,  in  their  own  nature  indissoluble ; 
nevertheless  the  Apostle's  judgment  is  that,  on  one  of  the 
parties  becoming  Christian,  they  should  not  be  dissolved, 
if  the  other  partner  is  willing  to  maintain  the  union  (i  Cor. 
vii.  12-14)  It  is,  of  course,  understood  that  in  such  a  case 
the  non-believing  partner  will  abstain  from  attempting  to 
enforce  any  conditions  inconsistent  with  the  Christian 
faith  and  morals.  The  Christian  who  after  baptism  has 
continued  in  the  estate  of  marriage  with  the  unbeliever, 
with  whom  he  or  she  was  united  before  baptism,  must  not 
capriciously  attempt  to  escape  from  the  obligation  at  a 
later  period.  To  him  or  her  the  connection  has  become 
of  the  same  character  as  Christian  marriage. 

The  Church  has  always  regarded  with  the  gravest  dis- 
approval the  contraction  of  marriages  between  a  Christian 
and  an  unbeliever.  St.  Paul's  words  (i  Cor.  vii.  39; 
2  Cor.  vi.  14-vii.  l)  are  most  probably  to  be  understood 
as  forbidding  such  unions.  We  are  not  at  liberty  to 
solemnise  such  marriages  with  the  Church's  rite.  When, 
however,  such  marriages  took  place,  the  ancient  practice 
was  not  to  require  a  separation  as  the  condition  of  com- 
munion on  the  part  of  the  Christian  partner.  '  Fieri  non 
debuit,  factum  valet.'  A  more  or  less  lengthy  suspension 
from  communion  was  considered  sufficient  penalty. 

A  marriage  with  a  catechumen  who  is  about  to  be 
baptised  is  a  somewhat  different  case.  It  should,  however, 
be  avoided  as  far  as  possible,  and  we  request  that  no  such 
marriage  be  solemnised  without  special  reference  to  the 
Bishop. 

In  conducting  Christian  marriages  it  is  in  all  cases  the 
duty  of  the  clergyman  to  assure  himself,  either  by  personal 
inquiry  or  by  letter  from  another  clergyman,  that  the 
Christian  marriage  law  will  not  be  infringed  by  the 
solemnisation  of  the  rite.  No  marriage  should  be  solemn- 
ised except  in  the  presence  of  at  least  two  witnesses.  An 
official  register  should  be  kept  (see  Canon  V.  §  3)  in 
which  at  the  time  of  the  marriage  the  names,  birthplace, 
age,  residence,  and  condition  of  each  party  should  be 
recorded.    This  register  should  be  signed  by  both  parties. 


348 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


by  at  least  two  witnesses,  and  by  the  minister.  Copies  of 
this  register  should  be  given  to  the  parties  on  their 
application  and  be  forwarded  to  the  Bishop. 

It  is  our  earnest  desire  that  no  marriage  be  solemnised 
in  Lent  and  other  appointed  seasons  of  abstinence. 

These  principles  and  directions  we  desire  now  to 
re-affirm,  and  besides  we  would  take  the  opportunity  of 
asking  your  attention  to  three  additional  points. 

(1)  The  civil  law  of  Japan  has  hitherto  permitted 
marriage  with  a  deceased  wife's  sister,  though  it  was 
stated  at  the  recent  synod  that  public  opinion  holds  such 
alliances  to  be  undesirable.  As  they  conflict  with  the 
third  of  the  three  principles  which  we  have  enumerated 
above,  not  only  ought  they  to  be  most  gravely  discouraged 
by  us,  but  all  requests  that  we  will  solemnise  in  such 
cases  the  Church's  office  of  Holy  Matrimony  should  be 
refused. 

The  further  question,  however,  arises  whether  under 
Canon  VIII.  the  priest  who  is  in  pastoral  charge  of 
persons  who  contract  such  marriages  is  under  obligation 
to  present  them  to  the  Bishop  with  a  view  to  their  ex- 
communication. This  question  has  been  before  the 
Bishops  elsewhere,  as  well  as  in  Japan,  and  we  concur  in 
the  general  opinion  that  the  condemnation  expressed  in 
the  refusal  to  allow  in  such  cases  the  use  of  the  Church's 
service  is  sufficient,  and  that  it  is  not  necessarily  your  duty 
to  take  the  further  step  of  presenting  the  parties  to  the 
Bishop. 

(2)  In  the  case  of  the  apostasy  from  the  faith  of  a 
husband  or  wife,  we  are  of  opinion  that  the  Christian 
partner  cannot  seek  for  a  divorce  in  the  civil  court,  nor 
remarry  (if  a  civil  divorce  is  obtained  by  the  person  who 
has  apostatised)  so  long  as  that  person  is  alive  and 
contracts  no  other  union.  To  act  otherwise  would  be 
voluntarily  to  forfeit  the  hope  of  reconciliation. 

(3)  Experience  has  shown  that  it  is  most  desirable  that, 
unless  under  very  exceptional  circumstances,  the  service 
of  the  Church  should  not  be  solemnised  until  all  the 
necessary  steps  have  been  taken  to  legalise  the  marriage 
according  to  the  civil  law.  On  the  other  hand,  there  should 
be  no  unnecessary  delay  in  conducting  the  religious  service 
after  the  requirements  of  the  civil  law  have  been  complied 
with. 


NIPPON  SEI  KOKWAI 


349 


VVc  cannot,  Reverend  Brethren,  exaggerate  our  sense 
of  the  grave  importance  of  the  clergy  in  these  matters 
acting  on  the  principles  which  have  guided  the  mind  and 
practice  of  the  Church  from  the  beginning,  and  at  the 
same  time  of  there  being  exhibited  by  us  all  the  utmost 
consideration  and  gentleness  in  dealing  with  the  various 
and  often  difficult  cases  which  must  necessarily  arise  until 
Christian  principles  have  wholly  permeated  the  laws  and 
customs  of  the  land. 

Asking  for  you  in  all  these  matters  the  guidance  of  the 
floly  Spirit  of  God, 

We  are,  Reverend  and  dear  Brethren, 
Your  faithful  and  affectionate 

Brethren  and  Servants  in  Christ, 

Edw.  Bickerstetii,  Bishop. 
John  McKim,  Bishop. 
Henry  Evington,  Bishop. 
Wm.  Awdry,  Bishop. 

The  election  of  delegates  to  the  synod,  the  right 
of  women  to  vote  in  vestries,  and  the  management  of 
pastor  funds,  were  among  the  matters  dealt  with  in  the 
synod  of  1889,  over  which  Bishop  Williams  had  presided. 
On  these  questions  Bishop  Bickerstcth  wrote  as  follows  :  ^ 

<7.  The  Election  of  Representatives  to  tJie  Synod. — The 
plan  now  adopted  can  only  be  temporary.  It  assigns  the 
same  number  of  representatives  to  each  of  the  four  local 
districts,  and  takes  no  account  of  the  number  of  communi- 
cants in  each.  Further,  no  provision  is  made  to  ensure  a 
representation  of  foreign  clergy.  This  must  cause  serious 
difficulty  as  the  number  of  Japanese  clergy  increases. 

b.  The  Right  of  Women  to  vote  in  Vestries  &c. — A 
long  discussion  took  place  on  this  subject  in  the  synod, 
and  the  decision  of  the  question  was  adjourned.  I  have 
not  met  with,  nor  had  brought  to  my  notice,  any  precedent 
in  favour  of  such  a  right  in  any  earlier  age  of  the  Church. 
It  would  be  a  grave  step  for  a  Church  so  young  and 
without  experience  as  the  Nippon  Sei  Kdkwai  to  permit 
an  innovation  in  such  a  matter.    I  hope  that  the  history  of 

'  Pastoral  1890. 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


the  question  may  be  fully  investigated  between  now  and  the 
next  synod,  and  that  if  the  past  gives  no  authority  for  the 
proposal  its  adoption  may  have  your  steady  discountenance. 

c.  Pastor  Fund  Societies. — A  series  of  resolutions  on 
the  formation  of  such  societies  was  commended  by  the 
synod  to  the  local  councils.  I  am  thankful  that,  in  all  the 
districts,  societies  are  now  in  operation  or  steps  being  taken 
to  establish  them.  The  beginning  in  each  case  may  be 
very  small,  but  the  principle  involved  is  of  the  largest 
importance  and  widest  application.  It  is  not  too  much  to 
say  that  the  future  wellbeing  of  the  Church  and  the  main- 
tenance of  its  standards  of  doctrinal  and  moral  teaching 
depend  on  the  adoption  of  such  financial  organisation  as 
will  secure  the  due  independence  of  the  clergy.  The 
policy  is  disastrous  which  makes  the  priest  immediately 
dependent  for  daily  bread  on  those  to  whom  he  ministers. 
This  is  fully  recognised  in  the  wise  regulations  under  which 
the  Church  Missionary  Society  grants  assistance  to  associ- 
ated groups  of  congregations.  At  present  the  existence  of 
congregations  assisted  by  different  foreign  societies  in  the 
same  local  area  unduly  multiplies  machinery  and  limits 
co-operation.  It  is  much  to  be  desired  that  some  plan  may 
be  arrived  at  by  which,  as  in  the  case  of  the  Japanese 
Missionary  Society,  the  funds  collected  in  one  district  may 
be  administered  by  a  single  organisation. 

On  the  subject  of  Church  Discipline  the  Bishop 
wrote  : ' 

It  seems  that  a  uniform  practice  is  not  followed  by  all 
clergy  alike  in  regard  to  the  retention  of  names  on  con- 
gregational registers,  and  that  this  has  introduced  some 
uncertainty  into  the  returns.  The  only  thi'ee  causes  for 
which  names  of  living  members  should  be  removed  from 
a  register  are  :  (i)  transference  to  another  congregation  ; 
(2)  excommunication  ;  (3)  schism.  Mere  carelessness  in 
attending  services,  however  regrettable,  if  not  such  as  to 
bring  the  offender  within  the  Canon,  does  not  justify  the 
removal  of  his  name  from  the  register.  Nor  does  it  seem 
desirable  to  extend  the  causes  for  which  the  extreme 
penalty  of  excommunication  can  canonically  be  inflicted. 
The  very  patience  of  the  Church  in  awaiting  the  return  of 


'  Pastoral  1892. 


NIPPON  SEI  KOKWAI 


351 


her  careless  children,  who  do  not  openly  and  avowedly 
renounce  their  allegiance  or  forfeit  their  privileges  by 
flagrant  offences,  is  not  seldom  rewarded  by  their  'coming 
to  themselves.'  The  names  of  Christians  in  towns  or 
villages  where  congregations  have  not  yet  been  formed 
should  be  placed  on  the  list  of  the  nearest  congregation. 

Synods  of  the  Nippon  Sci  Kokwai  were  held  in  1889 
1891,  1893,  1894,  1896,  that  of  1894  being  specially 
summoned  (in  accordance  with  Article  III.)  to  consider 
matters  connected  with  episcopal  jurisdiction  in  Hondo. 

A  picture  of  the  synod  of  1893  is  given  in  the  following 
extract  from  Mrs.  Edward  Bickersteth's  '  Journal ' : 

Wednesday,  November  29. — This  morning  we  started  at 
8.30  for  the  American  cathedral,  where  the  opening  service 
of  the  synod  was  to  be  held.  There  were  present  the 
fifty  delegates,  of  whom  about  fifteen  are  '  foreigners,'  and 
also  some  English  and  American  ladies. 

The  processional  hymn  was  '  Holy,  Holy,  Holy,'  in 
Japanese,  sung  to  the  old  tune,  while  in  filed  eight  Japanese 
and  four  or  five  foreign  clergy.  Bishop  M'Kim  and  my 
Bishop,  the  latter  being  celebrant.  The  service  lasted 
about  one  and  three-quarter  hours,  for  it  included  a  sermon 
and  several  hymns.  Of  course  I  understood  not  a  word, 
though  I  was  able  to  follow  the  prayers,  but  I  think  for  the 
first  time  I  realised  E.  as  a  missionary  Bishop,  and  felt 
something  of  the  greatness  of  the  work  and  the  power  of 
the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai.  .  .  . 

Thursday,  November  30. — .  .  .  .  Mrs.  F.  and  I  went 
across  to  the  Synod  House  about  1 1,  and  I  stayed  for  quite 
an  hour  in  the  gallery.  I  could  not  understand  a  word,  of 
course,  but  Mr.  F.'s  interpreter  kept  up  a  running  commen- 
tary, which  enabled  me  to  follow  pretty  well,  and  I  was 
immensely  interested.  ...  It  was  wonderful  to  think  of  all 
those  men  not  as  individuals,  but  as  representatives  of  large 
bodies  of  Christians,  and  so  as  a  real  evidence  of  the 
nationality  and  life  of  the  Sei  Kokwai. 

Early  in  its  existence  the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai  took 
steps  to  organise  both  (i)  home  and  (2)  foreign  missions 


BISHOP  EDWARD  15ICKERSTETII 


Canon  XII.  (see  Appendix  B)  was  re-drafted  in  1894, 
so  that  there  might  be  elected  in  each  cJiiJio  (or  diocese) 
a  Home  Missions  Committee.  With  regard  to  home 
missions,  if  there  is  force  in  the  cry  'Japan  for  the 
Japanese,'  there  is  no  less  truth  and  inspiration  in  the 
words,  '  The  Japanese  for  Japan,'  and  when  the  Nippon  Sei 
Kokwai  is  really  strong  enough  to  use  her  own  sons 
and  daughters  to  win  souls  for  Christ  the  day  of  Japan's 
conversion  will  be  at  hand.  With  regard  to  foreign 
missions,  we  are  familiar  in  England  with  Diocesan  Boards 
for  promoting  church  building  and  education  at  home, 
and  for  opening  up  home  missions,  and  we  entrust  to  those 
boards  the  practical  duties  connected  with  the  selection 
of  suitable  agents,  as  well  as  collecting  and  disbursing 
funds.  But  hitherto  our  Diocesan  Boards  of  Foreign 
Missions,  where  they  exist,  play  only  a  humble  part, 
although  they  have  done  something  to  secure  that  the 
maintenance  of  foreign  missions  shall  be  regarded  as  an 
integral  part  of  the  Church's  duty.  It  is  far  otherwise  in 
Japan.  The  Nippon  Sei  K5kwai  has  been  able  to  arrange 
for  the  formation  of  a  Board  of  Foreign  Missions  which 
can  really  act,  as  the  following  Canon  C.  will  show. 

Canon  C.    Of  Foreign  Missions 

1.  There  shall  be  one  board  representing  the  whole  of 
the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai,  called  the  Board  of  Foreign 
Missions,  consisting  of  all  the  Bishops  of  the  Nippon 
Sei  K5k\vai  having  jurisdiction  in  Japan,  and  of  two 
treasurers  and  one  secretary,  to  be  elected  at  each  regular 
meeting  of  the  synod. 

2.  The  chairman  of  the  board  shall  be  one  of  the 
Bishops,  who  shall  be  elected  at  the  first  meeting  of  the 
board  after  the  synod. 

3.  The  duties  of  the  board  shall  be  : 

(yix)  To  make  inquiries  and  to  receive  applications  con- 
cerning openings  for  missionary  work   in  any  foreign 


NIPPON  SEl  KOKWAI 


353 


country  (or  portion  thereof)  not  yet  evangelised,  or  among 
Japanese  resident  in  foreign  countries. 

{/>)  To  appeal  for  and  receive  subscriptions  from 
members  of  the  Church  for  foreign  missions,  and  with 
that  end  in  view  to  appoint  agents  in  various  parts  of 
Japan  for  making  known  the  needs  of  any  foreign 
missions  supported  wholly  or  in  part  by  the  Nippon 
Sei  Kokwai. 

(c)  To  appeal  for  and  appoint  clergy  and  other  workers 
for  the  foreign  mission  field,  in  accordance  with  the  state 
of  the  funds  at  their  disposal. 

(d)  Under  special  circumstances  to  make  grants  to 
foreign  missions  of  other  Churches  in  full  communion 
with  the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai. 

((■)  To  publish  from  time  to  time  for  general  distribu- 
tion a  report  of  work  and  statement  of  accounts  ;  and 
always  to  present  to  each  regular  synod  of  the  Church 
a  report  of  work  and  statement  of  accounts  for  the  period 
subsequent  to  the  preceding  regular  synod. 

4.  No  clergy  or  other  workers  shall  be  sent  forth  as 
foreign  missionaries  representing  the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai 
who  have  not  letters  of  commission  for  such  work  duly 
signed  by  the  chairman  of  the  board  acting  on  behalf  of 
the  whole  or  a  majority  of  the  board. 

Work  in  Formosa  has  been  already  undertaken  by 
this  Nippon  Sei  K5kvvai  Board  of  Foreign  Missions. 
Bishop  Bickersteth  also  visited  the  interesting  group  of 
Luchoo  Islands,  and  always  hoped  to  see  further  steps 
taken  to  evangelise  these  islanders,  of  whom  there  are 
probably  not  less  than  200,000  in  the  largest  island.'  The 
Bishop  of  Kiushiu  is  now  maintaining  work  there. 

This  was  the  principle  which  in  the  Bishop's  judgment 
really  made  all  efforts  to  extend  the  episcopate  in  Japan 
of  such  vital  importance.    He  wrote  :  ^ 

The  justification  of  a  multiplied  episcopate  is  the 
development  of  direct  evangelisation  which,  alike  in 
ancient  and  modern  times,  it  has  brought  in  its  train,  and 


'  Okinawa. 


-  Lent  Pastoral  1895. 

A  A 


354 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


which  in  all  probability  is  necessary  as  a  preparation 
before  any  general  desire  will  be  manifested  to  embrace 
the  Christian  faith. 

The  question  has  been  raised  whether  new  Bishops 
should  be  Japanese  or  foreigners.  I  notice  that  a  popular 
Church  magazine  in  England  has  recently  advocated  the 
immediate  consecration  of  Japanese  clergy.  I  am  unable 
to  agree  in  this  suggestion.  No  one  can  be  more  anxious 
than  I  am  to  adopt  the  counsel  of  the  late  Bishop  of 
Lahore  and  '  to  stand  behind  our  native  brethren '  in  the 
East.  No  one  desires  less  than  I  to  perpetuate  Anglican 
dioceses  in  Japan.  But  an  episcopate  which  was  wholly 
supported  by  foreign  subscriptions,  and  the  nomination  to 
which  consequently  remained  in  foreign  hands,  could  not 
be  counted  really  indigenous  because  the  see  was  held  for 
the  time  being  by  a  Japanese.  Some  portion  at  least  of 
the  required  funds  should  be  supplied  from  Japanese 
sources,  and  this  is  at  present  impossible.  While,  then, 
I  hope  that  the  time  may  not  be  very  far  distant  when 
it  may  be  right  to  consecrate  a  Japanese  Bishop  in  this 
country,  I  do  not  think  it  has  yet  come.  Kindly  English 
opinion  has  credited  us  with  more  rapid  advance  than  has 
actually  been  made. 

Our  immediate  aim  should  be  to  make  each  principal 
division  of  a  vast  urban  area  like  that  of  South  Tokyo, 
and  each  chief  provincial  city,  a  distinct  mission  centre, 
complete  in  all  its  parts.  An  addition  of  some  thirty 
clergy  to  our  present  staff,  with  a  proportionate  increase 
of  other  workers,  would  enable  us  to  reach  this  standard 
in  both  jurisdictions.  For  the  present,  in  most,  though 
not  in  all  cases,  we  must  look  to  England  and  Canada 
for  the  men  and  women  who  can  act  as  responsible 
heads  of  new  work.  God  grant  that  the  practical  out- 
come of  the  intense  interest  which  western  lands  have 
taken  in  the  fortunes  of  this  country  during  the  past  year 
may  be  the  offer  of  personal  service  on  the  part  of  men 
and  women  who  are  fitted  physically  and  spiritually  for 
such  high  tasks. 

In  reply  to  the  question  whether  it  would  not  be  well 
to  raise  a  capital  sum  to  endow  a  new  Bishopric  in  Japan 
he  wrote  to  the  Archbishop  : 


NIPPON  SEI  KOKWAI 


355 


Azabu,  Japan  :  January  i6,  1895. 

My  dear  Lord  Archbishop, — .  .  .  I  think  this  would  be 
unnecessary,  as  we  do  not  propose  to  found  permanent 
Anglican  dioceses  here,  but  only  to  tide  over  the  time  till 
it  may  be  right  to  consecrate  Japanese  to  independent  sees. 
It  is  impossible  to  say  how  soon  this  may  be,  but  it  is  not 
likely  to  be  more  than  a  generation  and  may  be  much 
sooner.  No  Japanese  Bishop,  I  think,  should  be  consecrated 
till  the  native  Church  is  able  mainly  to  undertake  the 
expenses  of  his  salary.  About  ^200  a  month,  at  the 
present  rate  of  exchange  250/.  a  year,  is  what  I  find  the 
Japanese  think  should  be  the  salary  of  one  of  their  Bishops. 
This  would  place  him  financially  in  the  same  position  as  a 
judge  of  one  of  their  higher  courts.  But  it  will  be  some 
time  yet  before  they  can  think  of  raising,  whether  by  en- 
dowments or  annually,  so  large  an  amount  as  this. 

I  am,  my  dear  Lord  Archbishop,  yours  affectionately 
and  obediently, 

Edv^ard  Bickersteth,  Bishop. 

The  following  recollections  of  Bishop  Bickersteth  from 
two  of  his  missionaries,  both  clergymen  connected  with 
the  Church  Missionary  Society,  the  present  Bishops  of  the 
Hokkaido  and  of  Kiushiu,  whose  call  to  the  episcopate 
is  mentioned  in  the  next  chapter,  will  be  read  with 
interest. 

Hakodate  :  November  7,  1898. 

Dear  Mr.  Bickersteth, —  I  do  not  know  that  I  can 
furnish  you  with  anything  worth  inserting  in  your  '  Life 
of  Bishop  Bickersteth.'  As  you  know,  he  was  residing  in 
Tokyo  and  I  in  Osaka,  and  I  did  not  therefore  see  so  much 
of  him  as  I  should  have  liked. 

Others  will,  I  am  sure,  have  referred  to  his  statesman- 
ship in  Church  matters  in  this  empire,  to  the  large  share — 
larger  than  that  of  any  other  man — he  had  in  organising 
the  Sei  Kokwai  (the  Church  of  Japan)  and  in  the  creation 
of  the  new  dioceses  of  Kiushiu  and  Hokkaido  ;  there  is 
no  need  for  me  to  dwell  on  this  point  in  his  character  and 
work.  If  I  were  asked  what  it  was  in  him  that  struck  mc 
particularly,  I  should  reply  for  one  thing  his  great  intel- 
lectual ability,  enabling  him  to  wield  so  much  influence 


A  A  2 


356 


KISHOr  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


over  both  foreigners  and  Japanese.  I  often  felt  that  he 
was  superior  in  scholarship,  in  wide  reading,  in  readiness 
of  speech  to  any  of  his  clergy  ;  he  therefore  always  com- 
manded their  respect.  He  was  a  great  reader,  and  there- 
fore always  had  something  fresh  to  put  before  his  hearers 
in  his  sermons  and  addresses,  and  this  made  him  an  ever 
welcome  preacher  and  speaker.  Travelling  with  him  on 
two  occasions  I  remember  that  about  half  the  baggage 
he  carried  consisted  of  new  books,  and  whenever  there  was 
a  few  minutes'  wait  at  an  inn  he  would  have  one  of  these 
out.  His  sermons  and  addresses  from  the  chair  were 
always  looked  forward  to  as  one  of  the  special  treats  at 
our  C.M.S.  Conference,  and  he  was  a  welcome  guest  in 
any  house  ;  it  was  a  pleasure  and  a  privilege  to  entertain 
him. 

I  often  wondered,  too,  that  he  was  able  to  preside  so 
efficiently  at  the  meetings  of  the  Japan  synod  and  local 
councils.  As  Bishop  he  was  of  course  too  busy  from  the 
time  of  his  landing  in  the  country  to  be  able  to  give  as 
much  time  to  the  study  of  the  language  as  an  ordinary 
missionary,  and  yet  he  was  able  to  grasp  the  purport  of  a 
Japanese  speech  and  the  drift  of  a  discussion,  a  by  no 
means  easy  thing  to  do  even  for  those  who  have  the  repu- 
tation of  being  specially  good  Japanese  scholars,  and  often 
with  a  few  clear  words  of  his  own — sometimes  speaking  in 
English  for  the  sake  of  greater  accuracy  and  being  inter- 
preted— would  show  the  way  out  of  the  difficulty,  and 
enable  the  point  to  be  settled  satisfactorily  to  all.  The 
Bishop  was  not  always  worldly  wise  ;  he  made  mistakes 
sometimes,  as  all  men  do.  But  they  are  really  not  worth 
mentioning  in  comparison  with  the  success  he  achieved, 
the  great  work  he  accomplished  for  the  Church  in  Japan, 
recognised,  and  thankfully  recognised,  by  foreign  mission- 
aries and  Japanese  alike. 

One  more  point  I  may  mention.  He  had  naturally 
more  sympathy  with  the  S.P.G.  than  the  C.M.S.,  but  he 
strove  to  be  fair  also  to  his  C  M.S.  clergy  and  worked 
hard  for  C.M.S.  interests,  and  all  C.M.S.  missionaries  will 
acknowledge  that  he  did  a  great  deal  towards  developing 
the  C.M.S  Mission  in  this  country. 

Yours  sincerely, 

P.  K.  Fyson,  Bishop. 


NIPPON  SEI  KOKWAI  357 
Bishop's  Lodge,  9  Deshiiiia,  Nagasaki,  Japan  :  September  8,  1898. 

My  dear  Mr.  Bickerstcth, —  I  must  apologise  very 
humbly  for  my  delay  in  writing  to  you,  as  I  had  promised, 
a  few  lines  in  reference  to  my  connection  with  the  late 
Bishop  of  South  Tokyo. 

At  the  time  of  Bishop  Bickersteth's  arrival  in  this 
country  I  was  Acting  Secretary  of  the  Church  Missionary 
Society  and  resident  in  Osaka ;  the  Bishop  arrived  in 
Nagasaki  with  Archdeacon  Maundrell,  but  came  on  by 
the  same  ship  to  Kobe,  and  on  the  following  day  reached 
Osaka.  Mrs.  Evington  and  I  had  the  pleasure  of  enter- 
taining him  for  the  first  six  weeks  of  his  sojourn  in  this 
new  country  and  new  diocese.  He  was  really  a  stranger  to 
both  of  us,  though  I  was  always  under  the  impression  that 
we  had  met  at  the  house  of  one  of  the  curates  of  West- 
minster about  the  time  he  took  his  degree  ;  we  were  not 
long  strangers,  his  genial  and  courteous  manner,  his  readi- 
ness to  fall  in  with  the  ways  of  the  home,  his  kind  and 
sympathetic  manner,  soon  won  our  affection,  and  we  felt 
the  influence  of  his  truly  holy  life. 

In  the  autumn  of  the  same  year,  as  on  many  occasions 
afterwards,  we  had  a  long  journey  together  lasting  six  or 
seven  weeks,  during  which  we  visited  the  C.M.S.  out- 
stations  of  the  city  of  Osaka,  and  the  country  stations  of 
the  S.P.G.  mission  in  Kobe.  This  naturally  brought  me 
into  very  close  contact  with  the  Bishop,  in  seeing  candi- 
dates for  confirmation,  in  interpreting  addresses,  in  con- 
versation on  various  subjects,  missionary  and  theological, 
as  well  as  being  forced  to  see  him  at  his  devotions,  because 
we  were  often  obliged,  on  account  of  the  smallness  of  the 
inns,  to  occupy  the  same  room  ;  here  it  was  that  I  felt  the 
power  of  his  spiritual  life,  his  holiness  of  character,  his 
devotion  to  his  work. 

In  all  these  journeys  it  was  his  custom  to  carry  a  bag 
full  of  books.  On  one  occasion  I  remember  his  telling  me 
that  he  had  just  completed  the  three  volumes  of  Bishop 
Lightfoot's  '  Ignatian  Epistles.'  A  great  deal  of  his  study 
of  the  language  was  done  on  these  journeys  whilst  riding 
in  jinrikshas,  steamers,  and  railways ;  for  though  he  did,  of 
course,  spend  time  when  in  Tokyo,  he  often  complained 
that  there  were  many  hindrances  ;  only  the  other  day  I 
turned  up  a  letter  in  which  he  wrote,  '  There  has  been  little 
time  for  the  language  this  week.'    Nevertheless,  whilst  he 


358 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


never  acquired  great  fluency  in  the  use  of  it,  his  ability  to 
understand  and  follow  the  speeches  in  the  synod  was 
remarkable. 

We  always  felt  that  his  mind  took  greater  delight  in 
the  mystical  side  of  things,  and  in  his  sermons  he  was  often 
more  inclined  to  follow  the  abstract  style  of  Bishop  West- 
cott  than  the  clear  statements  of  Dr.  Lightfoot,  much  as 
he  loved  and  honoured  the  latter  prelate.  At  the  time  of 
Bishop  Lightfoot's  death  he  wrote  to  me  '  individually  I 
feel  orphaned.'  I  quite  well  remember,  on  one  of  our 
journeys  together,  he  was  reading  the  morning  lessons,  and 
he  said  to  me,  '  I  feel  each  year  as  I  read  the  Minor  Prophets 
that  I  understand  them  better  ; '  and  I  said  '  I  think  a  great 
deal  is  read  into  the  words  of  the  Prophets  that  they  never 
intended.'  He  replied,  '  That  is  just  like  you  and  Fyson, 
you  do  not  appreciate  anything  that  is  mystical.' 

The  great  work  of  his  life  in  Japan  was,  without  doubt, 
the  very  important  share  he  took  in  the  organisation  of  the 
Church  in  Japan.  The  time  was,  no  doubt,  ripe  for  some 
action  to  be  taken  ;  the  Congregational  and  Presbyterian 
Christians  had  just  completed  their  organisation,  and 
Bishop  Williams  had  been  pressed  to  do  something  for  the 
missions  of  the  Church.  To  throw  himself  into  this  Bishop 
Bickersteth  was  quite  prepared,  for  before  seeing  Bishop 
Williams  at  the  C.M.S.  Conference,  held  in  Osaka  during 
his  first  six  weeks'  stay  there,  he  had  proposed  a  meeting 
of  members  of  the  Church  missions  for  the  drawing  up  of 
some  plan  by  which  the  different  missions  might  work 
under  some  kind  of  mutual  arrangement,  and  so  make 
it  manifest  that  we  are  really  one  body.  The  particular 
details  of  how  this  finally  resulted  in  the  first  synod  of  the 
Japan  Church  you  are  doubtless  in  possession  of,  so  that  I 
need  not  repeat  them  here.  Whilst  the  constitutions  of 
the  Churches  of  Ireland  and  the  United  States  were  used 
as  models,  the  successful  carrying  through  of  the  whole 
matter  was  immensely  due  to  the  patience  and  learning  of 
his  masterly  mind. 

In  conclusion,  I  would  say  that  in  all  times  of  difficulty 
we  always  found  a  ready  sympathy  and  help  ;  he  was  ever 
ready  to  advise,  to  strengthen  our  hands,  and  to  make  us 
feel  that  no  part  of  the  field  was  forgotten  ;  no  individual, 
no  part  of  the  work  left  out  of  his  thoughts.  He  never 
tried  to  force  his  own  views  on  those  who  differed  from 


NIPPON  SEI  KOKWAI 


him,  but  was  liberal  to  all  so  long  as  they  kept  within  the 
bounds  that  he  felt  the  Church  would  allow. 

I  have  written  but  a  short  letter,  but  you  have,  no 
doubt,  abundant  materials  for  the  details  of  the  Bishop's 
work.  I  shall  be  glad  to  try  and  answer  questions,  if  I 
am  able,  on  any  particular  point  for  which  you  may  wish 
for  information. 

Again  asking  your  pardon  for  my  long  delay,  and  with 
kindest  regards. 

Believe  me  to  remain, 

Very  sincerely  yours, 

Henry  Evington. 

Bishop  of  Kyushyu,  S.  Japan. 

The  Reverend  S.  Bickersteth,  Lewisham. 


36o 


BISHOP  EDW  ARD  BICKERSTETIi 


CHAPTER  X 

A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE 
1893-1897 

'  It  is,  then,  on  these  few  thousand  scattered  converts  in  Japan,  on  this 
Church,  organised  but  not  yet  financially  independent,  socially  influential,  or 
numerically  strong,  that  our  hopes  for  the  future  are  fixed.  In  it  we  ask  your 
interest  and  your  prayers,  and  for  it  we  plead  for  far  more  adequate  support  in 
time  to  come.' — Closing 'i<ords  of  paper  read^  at  the  S.P.G.  Annual  Meeting  in 
St.  James's  Hall  on  June  23,  1897,  held  to  'vclcovie  the  Bishops  attending  the 
Lambeth  Conference. 

The  main  purpose  of  the  Bishop's  return  to  England  in 
the  early  spring  of  1893  ^^'^^  accomplished,  inasmuch 
as  Archbishop  Benson,  whom  he  visited  at  Addington 
shortly  after  his  arrival,  concurred  in  his  view  of  the 
need  of  increased  episcopal  supervision  for  the  English 
missions  in  Japan.  Bishop  Bickersteth  always  pointed 
to  Japan  as  an  instance  of  the  trouble  and  weakness 
which  ensues  when  missions  are  planted  without  a 
Bishop  and  left  to  grow  up  for  some  years  as  best  they 
may,  with  only  occasional  visits  from  a  father  in  God. 
The  Korean  Mission,  which  was  led  into  the  field  from  the 
first  by  a  Bishop,  was  the  plan  which  his  missionary  ex- 
perience, as  well  as  his  study  of  primitive  methods,  alike 
told  him  to  be  the  ideal. 

However,  it  was  no  hard  case  which  he  had  to  argue  in 
order  to  persuade  Church  authorities  at  home  that  the 
work  in  those  parts  of  the  empire  of  Japan  under  his 

'  Owing  to  my  brother's  illness  I  was  allowed  to  read  his  paper  for  him. 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     1 893- 1  897       36 1 


jurisdiction  was  such  as  to  call  for  '  partners  to  come  over 
and  help  '  him,  or  else  for  one  or  more  of  his  fellow  labourers 
on  the  spot  to  be  raised  to  the  episcopate. 

The  islands  of  Yezo  in  the  north  and  of  Kiushiu  in  the 
.south  of  the  Japanese  group  were  naturally  selected  for 
the  formation  of  separate  dioceses.  The  English  mission- 
aries in  both  these  islands  were  entirely  supported  by  the 
Church  Missionary  Society,  and  that  society  now  generously 
made  itself  responsible  for  the  necessary  epi.scopal  incomes. 

Bishop  Bickersteth  wrote  to  his  clergy  '  : 

Almost  immediately  after  my  return  to  England  I  was 
permitted  to  confer  with  the  Archbishop  of  Canterbury 
and  the  Committee  of  the  Church  Missionary  Society  in 
reference  to  the  establishment  of  Anglican  bishoprics  in 
Kiushiu  and  Yezo.  The  Archbishop  readily  accepted  this 
proposal,  and  the  liberality  of  the  Church  Missionary 
Society,  which  is  the  only  society  of  the  Anglican  com- 
munion working  in  those  islands,  made  it  possible  that 
steps  should  at  once  be  taken  for  filling  the  new  sees.  I 
need  not  tell  you  how  heartily  I  rejoice  in  the  nomination 
to  one  of  these  sees  of  the  Reverend  H.  Evington,  whose 
work  as  a  missionary  of  long  standing  in  this  country  is 
well  known  to  us  all,  and  with  whom  I  have  been  repeatedly 
brought  into  special  association  at  the  Ember  seasons, 
when  he  has  most  efficiently  fulfilled  the  duties  of  my 
examining  chaplain.  I  heartily  commend  him  to  your 
prayers  at  this  time. 

He  had  much  hoped  that  one  or  both  of  the  new 
Bishops  might  have  been  consecrated  in  Japan  ;  but  legal 
difficulties  intervened,  and  the  Rev.  Henry  Evington  was 
consecrated  in  Lambeth  Chapel  on  Sunday,  March  4, 
1894. 

There  was  considerable  delay  in  the  appointment  to 
Yezo,  much  to  Bishop  Bickersteth's  regret,  and  it  was  only 
in  the  spring  of  1896  news  came  of  the  selection  of  the 

'  Pastoral  1894 


362 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


Rev.  P.  K.  Fyson,  another  of  the  missionaries  in  Japan 
whom  he  had  long  known  and  valued.  Bishop  Fyson  was 
consecrated  Bishop  of  the  Hokkaido  at  St.  Matthew's, 
Bethnal  Green,  on  June  29,  1896,  and  resides  at  Hako- 
date. 

Bishop  Bickersteth  also  cherished  the  hope  that  another 
missionary  jurisdiction  might  in  time  be  formed  in  the 
main  island  which  should  comprise  the  missions  planted 
and  supported  by  the  Canadian  Church,  the  result  of  his 
earnest  appeal  to  Canada  in  1888,  and  which  should  be 
presided  over  by  a  Canadian  Bishop. 

In  December  1892  he  had  written  : 

Let  me  mention  that  I  am  assigning  the  district  of 
Nagano  in  Shinshu  to  the  mission  sent  to  this  country  by 
the  Board  of  Missions  of  the  Canadian  Church,  of  which 
the  Rev.  J.  G.  Waller  is  the  first  representative.  It  is  a 
subject  of  thankfulness  that  in  this  mission,  and  in  that  of 
which  Nagoya  is  the  centre,  where  there  are  three  clergy 
at  work  from  Wyclif  College,  Toronto,  and  in  the  newly 
established  Nurses'  Training  School  in  Kobe,  the  growing 
interest  in  missions  of  the  Canadian  Church  is  beginning 
to  afford  us  very  valuable  aid.  The  towns  in  Shinshu  are 
numerous  and  of  considerable  importance.  It  is  my 
earnest  hope  that  the  Canadian  Board  may  be  able  to  send 
out  and  support  a  fully  equipped  mission  to  that  province, 
consisting  of  not  less  than  four  clergy,  besides  lady 
workers. 

But  the  Bishop  knew  well  that  interest  once  roused 
needs  sustaining,  and  therefore  in  returning  to  Japan  with 
his  wife  in  the  autumn  of  1893  he  set  aside  eight  days  in 
order  to  visit  different  centres  in  Canada  and  to  plead  the 
cause  of  Japan.  The  following  extracts  from  letters  to  his 
father  tell  their  own  story  : 

Bishopsleigh,  Kingston:  All  Saints' Day,  1893. 

After  landing  in  New  York  on  Sunday  morning  and 
attending  morning  and  evening  service  in  two  of  the 


A  MISSIONARY  HISHOP'S  LIFE.     1 893- 1 897  363 


churches,  we  were  obliged  to  go  on  that  night  to  Montreal, 
where  engagements  had  been  made  for  me  to  speak  on 
Monday  and  Tuesday.  Both  were  well  attended.  On 
Tuesday  we  lunched  with  the  Bishop,  a  fine  old  man  of  79, 
in  much  vigour,  and  in  the  afternoon  were  present  at  the 
opening  of  a  new  University  Library  by  Lord  Aberdeen. 
This  morning,  after  a  celebration  at  St.  John's,  Montreal, 
we  came  on  here. 

Train,  Mid-prairie  :  November  10,  1893. 

We  had  a  fairly  good  meeting  at  Kingston,  and  the 
Archbishop  and  Mrs.  Lewis  were  very  kind  and  hospitable. 
On  the  Thursday  some  five  hours  took  us  to  Toronto, 
where  we  were  guests  of  the  Bishop  and  Mrs.  Sweatman. 
Again  a  big  meeting  at  night.  Friday  we  went  to 
Hamilton.  We  quite  lost  our  hearts  to  the  Bishop  of 
Niagara  and  Mrs.  Hamilton,  with  whom  we  stayed  till 
Monday.  Saturday  we  considered  to  belong  to  our  honey- 
moon and  spent  it  at  Niagara.  We  could  not  have  had  a 
better  day,  and  enjoyed  it  thoroughly.  The  falls  must 
ever  be  one  of  the  greatest  sights  of  nature,  even  though 
much  has  been  done  since  you  and  I  were  there  in  1870 
to  vulgarise  the  surroundings.  On  the  Friday  I  had  again 
addressed  a  meeting,  and  on  Sunday  I  preached  in  the 
cathedral  in  the  morning  and  in  a  parish  church  in  the 
evening.  On  Monday  we  returned  to  Toronto  and  spent 
the  afternoon  with  my  old  friend  Provost  Body.  He  is 
among  the  men  to  whom  the  Church  in  Canada  is  most 
specially  indebted,  as  it  is  really  mainly  through  him  that 
Trinity  College  has  attained  its  present  flourishing  condi- 
tion. In  the  evening  I  addressed  a  meeting  of  students  and 
others  in  the  College  Hall.  Body  accompanied  us  to  the 
train  at  10.15  P.M.,  and  we  have  been  travelling  ever  since 
....  A  pleasant  Chinese  missionary  and  his  wife  are  '  on 
board,'  as  they  say,'  Stewart  by  name  ;  also  Kakuzen  San, 
one  of  my  deacons,  who  has  been  studying  in  Toronto  and 
was  ordained  for  me  by  the  Bishop  of  Toronto  ....  I 
must  write  a  letter  to  the  Canadian  Mission  supporters 
which  they  have  asked  for,  so  will  leave  M.  to  tell  you 
all  else. 

'  The  Rev.  Robert  and  Mrs.  Stewart,  l<nown  and  honoured  in  missionary 
annals  as  having  been  called  to  lay  down  their  lives  in  the  massacre  of 
Kucheng. 


364 


BISHOP  EDWARD  15ICKERSTETH 


s.s.  Empress  of  Japan  :  November  13,  1893. 

We  had  no  difficulties  of  any  kind  on  our  journey. 
The  Selkirks  especially  were  really  a  splendid  sight  in 
their  dress  of  winter  snow.  It  had  fallen  about  three  days 
before  we  passed,  and  will  not  leave  them  for  months. 
The  Chaplain  of  Donald,  an  excellent  Keble  man,  Irwine 
by  name,  a  friend  of  King's,  joined  us  at  Field  and 
travelled  with  us  a  hundred  miles  through  the  Selkirks, 
pointing  out  the  special  views  and  places  of  interest.  The 
Bishop  of  New  Westminster  was  poorly,  so  we  only  spent 
the  evening  at  his  house,  instead  of  staying  the  night. 

The  lasting  impressions  of  this  journey  the  Bishop 
thus  summed  up  in  a  letter  to  the  Guild  of  St.  l^aul  in 
England  : 

Even  so  brief  a  stay  in  Eastern  Canada  as  ours  certainly 
strengthened  in  my  mind  the  opinion  which  intercourse 
with  Canadian  Churchmen  had  led  me  to  hold  for  some 
time  past — namely,  that  the  day  of  the  Church  in  the 
dependency  is  only  yet  dawning.  And  if  it  is  so,  and  her 
strength  and  influence  prove  far  greater  in  time  to  come 
than  they  have  ever  been  yet,  is  it  not  of  real  importance 
that  her  missionary  work  in  the  East  has  been  begun,  if 
only  as  yet  on  a  very  small  scale,  and  may  we  not  believe 
that  it  will  grow  with  her  growth,  and  strengthen  with  the 
increase  of  her  zeal,  and  be  fraught  with  manifold  results 
of  blessing  to  this,  and  perhaps  also  other.  Eastern  lands .'' 

Canada  has  not  yet  responded  to  his  earnest  invitation 
to  be  represented  in  Japan  by  a  Bishop  of  her  own,  but 
there  seems  no  reason  to  think  that  his  forecast  of  her 
future  was  too  sanguine.  His  successor  in  the  diocese  of 
South  Tokyo,  Bishop  Awdry,  in  his  first  Pastoral  Letter 
to  his  clergy  (August  1898),  wrote  : 

In  November  I  returned  to  Japan  through  Canada, 
where  the  Bishops  and  other  fellow-Churchmen,  especially 
in  the  dioceses  of  Quebec,  Toronto,  and  Columbia,  show  a 
lively  interest  in  our  work,  and  gave  me  some  substantial 
help.  . 


A  MISSIONARY  HISHOP's  LIFK.     1893-1897  365 


The  first  work  which  awaited  Bishop  Bickersteth  after 
his  arrival  in  Japan  on  November  27  was  the  fourth ' 
general  synod  of  the  Nippon  Sei  K5kwai,  which  opened 
on  the  29th.  He  presided  as  senior  Bishop,  but  was 
delighted  to  welcome  as  his  assessor  the  Right  Rev. 
Bishop  McKim,  a  personal  friend  and  a  missionary  in  Japan 
of  long  standing,  who  in  the  previous  June  had  been 
consecrated  to  take  charge  of  the  American  missions  in 
Japan.  In  his  opening  address  Bishop  Bickersteth  ex- 
pressed the  feeling  of  all  present  when  he  said  : 

After  longer  delay  than  we  then  anticipated,  the 
vacancy  in  the  American  episcopate  caused  by  the  retire- 
ment of  the  Right  Rev.  Bishop  Williams  (whose  continued 
presence  in  our  midst  is  a  subject  of  congratulation  to  us 
all)  has  been  filled  by  the  appointment  and  consecration 
in  June  last  in  New  York  of  the  Right  Rev.  J.  McKim. 
Very  few  words  are  needed  on  my  part  to  express  the 
respectful  gladness  with  which  the  synod  greets,  on  his  en- 
trance upon  the  great  responsibilities  of  the  episcopal  office, 
one  whom  all  its  members  have  known  for  so  long  a  time. 

After  spending  two  months  at  the  Bishop's  old  quarters 
at  St.  Andrew's  House,  Bishop  and  Mrs.  Bickersteth  took 
possession  in  February  1894  of  a  house  which  belonged 
to  Archdeacon  Shaw  and  was  left  vacant  just  at  this  time 
by  his  return  to  England  on  a  well-earned  furlough. 
Under  the  new  name  of  Bishopstowe  it  remained  their 
home  for  the  three  happy  years  they  were  allowed  to  spend 
together  in  Japan,  and  there  all  the  workers,  English  and 
Japanese,  from  all  parts  of  the  diocese,  and  many  others, 
found  a  warm  welcome  and  ready  hospitality  at  all  times. 
The  house  was  admirably  suited  for  its  new  purpose. 
Quite  simply  built  in  wood,  it  contained  a  large  number  of 

'  The  synods,  at  first  biennial,  are  now  triennial,  and  are  referred  to  as 
The  General  Synods  of  the  N.  S.  K. 

'  Bishop  Williams,  though  having  laid  down  the  active  duties  of  the 
episcopate,  continues  to  reside  in  Japan  and  to  labour  as  a  missionary. 


366 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


rooms,  one  of  which  was  immediately  set  apart  as  a  chapel, 
while  the  situation  was  ideal  for  a  Bishop's  house.  It 
stood  within  five  minutes'  walk  of  St.  Andrew's  Church, 
and,  though  in  the  heart  of  the  city,  was  surrounded  by  a 
garden  which  gave  the  Bishop  a  privacy  which  he  much 
valued  and  was  also  most  useful  for  diocesan  gatherings. 
But  while  rejoicing  in  their  pleasant  home  and  its  sur- 
roundings, the  Bishop  and  his  wife  often  talked  of  building 
on  ground  hard  by,  acquired  at  the  end  of  1893  Church 
property,  a  Bishop's  house  which  with  some  adaptation 
would  be  available  in  the  future  for  the  Japanese  successors 
to  whom  the  Bishop  always  looked  forward — a  plan  which 
has  been  actually  carried  out  by  his  immediate  successor, 
Bishop  Awdry. 

In  May  of  this  year  it  was  found  necessary  to  summon 
a  special  meeting  of  the  general  synod  in  consequence  of 
some  discussions  which  had  taken  place  as  to  episcopal 
jurisdiction  in  the  main  island.  The  Bishop  was  able  to 
write  to  his  father  : 

All  went  off  most  excellently.  Our  discussions  lasted 
two  days.  An  excellent  report  of  a  committee  went  through 
without  difficulty  on  the  second  day.  It  practically  esta- 
blishes four  dioceses  on  the  lines  (any  minor  modifica- 
tions being  left  to  Bishop  McKim  and  myself)  of  Bishop 
Hare's  and  my  agreement.  In  the  two  cities  of  Tokyo 
and  Osaka  we  have  not  laid  down  any  definite  lines,  but 
empowered  the  Bishops  to  arrange  division  by  parishes. 

Further  slight  modifications  of  the  scheme  (as  it 
affected  local  synods  &c.)  have  been  made  since,  but  in  all 
important  respects  it  remained  unaltered  through  future 
negotiations,  and  was  formally  recognised  by  the  general 
synod  of  1 896,  which  gave  to  the  local  synods  of  the  six  ' 
jurisdictions  in  Japan  the  status  of  diocesan  synods. 

'  These  six  missionary  dioceses  are  those  of  Yezo,  North  Tokyo,  South 
Tokyo,  Kyoto,  Osaka,  and  Kiushiu. 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     1893-1897  367 


To  Bishop  Bickersteth  it  was  always,  as  he  himself 
wrote,  a  cause  of  joy  that — 

We  [the  English  and  the  American  missions]  have  been 
allowed  to  organise  together  the  Nippon  Sei  K5kwai, 
which  includes  all  the  congregations  of  both  missions,  and 
of  which  the  successive  synods  have  given  proof  of  real 
and  growing  efficiency.  It  is  well  that  it  is  so.  We  are 
only  sojourners  in  a  land  where  independence  is  a  passion. 
Our  aim,  though  years  may  elapse  before  its  attainment,  is 
to  wholly  hand  over  our  common  work  to  Japanese  Bishops 
and  clergy. 

In  June  of  this  year  there  occurred  the  death  of  the 
British  Minister,  Mr.  Eraser,  who  was  much  respected  for 
his  high  character  and  Christian  profession,  and  the  Bishop 
wrote  to  his  father  : 

Tokyo  :  June  14,  1894. 

Our  thoughts  have  been  full  of  our  late  minister,  Mr. 
Eraser.  You  will  have  seen  his  death  in  the  papers.  We 
shall  greatly  feel  the  loss  of  so  truly  Christian  a  man. 
The  funeral  was  a  most  remarkable  sight,  the  procession 
of  clergy  and  carriages  a  mile  long.  I  hope  that  as  a 
Christian  ceremony  it  may  not  have  been  without  its 
effect. 

A  severe  earthquake  visited  Tokyo  and  Yokohama  on 
June  20  of  this  year,  and  the  Bishop  writes  : 

We  were  at  the  Freeses  in  Yokohama,  and  were  just 
finishing  luncheon.  The  shock  came  on  more  suddenly 
than  the  one  at  Osaka  (1891),  but  was  not  so  long  or  so 
violent  ;  still,  it  was  more  severe  than  any  that  has  been 
for  many  years  except  the  one  you  were  in.  Several 
persons  were  killed  by  falling  chimneys.  Bishop  McKim 
had  a  narrow  escape. 

The  Churcli  of  St.  Andrew's,  Shiba,  Tokyo,  was  so 
shattered  that  it  had  to  be  taken  down,  and  a  temporary 
church  of  wood,  larger  than,  but  not  nearly  so  sightly  as  its 
predecessor,  was  put  up  in  its  place.  St.  Andrew's  serves 
as  the  Japanese  mother  church  for  the  diocese  of  South 


368 


lilSIIOP  EDWARD  BICKEKSTKTII 


Tokyo,  and  also  as  the  chapel  of  the  British  Legation  and 
other  English  residents  in  that  part  of  the  city. 

The  action  of  the  special  synod  in  May  in  dividing 
the  main  island  of  Hondo  into  four  missionary  jurisdictions 
caused  the  Bishop  to  realise  forcibly  the  need  of  yet 
another  episcopal  colleague  to  relieve  him  of  the  newly 
formed  'jurisdiction '  of  Osaka,  not  that  he  himself 
desired  less  work,  but  only  that  his  sphere  should  be 
so  far  limited  as  to  allow  of  more  possibility  of  effective 
superintendence. 

He  first  mentions  the  plan  in  a  letter  to  his  father  of 
June  29,  1894  : 

I  have  written  a  long  letter  to  the  Archbishop  this 
mail  urging  the  appointment  of  a  Bishop  for  Osaka  and 
its  district.  (Bishop  McKim  hopes  to  get  a  Bishop 
appointed  to  Kyoto.)  This  would  leave  me  in  charge  of 
the  jurisdiction  of  South  Tokyo,  with  over  eight  millions 
people,  seventeen  English  and  eight  Japanese  clergy ; 
while  the  Osaka  Bishop  would  have  about  nine  millions, 
fourteen  English  and  seven  Japanese  clergy  to  begin 
with.  I  feel  sure,  if  the  plan  can  be  carried  out,  it  will 
greatly  strengthen  the  missions  here.  Osaka  itself  is 
350  miles  from  here,  and  the  furthest  stations  in  its  district 
are  600.  Such  long  distances  prevent  the  sense  of  touch 
and  special  interest  which  there  ought  to  be  between  the 
Bishops  and  clergy  in  Japan  as  the  Church  grows.  .  .  . 
I  have  also  been  writing  to  Canada  about  their  mission, 
and  a  possible  Canadian  bishopric  on  the  west  coast — so 
each  week  gets  full.  I  often  wish  (for  my  own  sake)  that 
there  was  more  directly  spiritual  work. 

The  clouds  of  war  in  the  Far  East  now  gathered 
densely  about  Japan,  and  although  the  Bishop  wrote, 
'You  in  London  know  more  about  the  war  than  we  do 
here,  as  the  Government  allows  very  scant  news  to  get 
into  the  papers,'  yet  no  other  topic  in  men's  minds  in 
Japan  could  vie  in  importance  with  the  great  war  with 
China. 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.   I  893- 1 897  369 


Again, 

Ilakone  :  xVugiist  13,  1894. 

It  is  certainly  a  very  anxious  time  for  this  country.  A 
bad  defeat  would  throw  it  back  a  generation.  A  great 
victory  would  enable  it  to  extend  the  rudiments  of 
civilisation  to  Korea,  but  it  would  not  be  morally  good  for 
the  people,  who  are  already  much  too  inclined  to  boast. 
On  the  whole,  I  wish  for  peace  and  divided  honours  as 
soon  as  possible,  and  that  Korea  should  be  placed  under 
some  form  of  international  tutelage.  Russia,  I  suppose, 
would  not  allow  either  England  or  Japan  to  absorb  it. 
Besides  we  only  want  a  port,  and  not  the  land  ;  Russia 
herself  would  like  the  land,  but  her  railway  is  not  complete, 
so  she  wishes  for  delay. 

On  Saturday  we  heard  that '  a  new  treaty  is  agreed 
upon  between  England  and  Japan.  I  suppose  that  there 
will  be  some  delay  before  it  comes  into  force,  but  it  will 
free  us  from  the  trouble  of  passports,  and,  what  is  better, 
it  will,  I  hope,  diminish  considerably  the  irritation  in  the 
Japanese  mind  against  foreigners.  It  is  largely  good 
Mr.  Eraser's  work. 

At  the  request  of  one  of  his  clergy  (the  Rev.  A.  F. 
King),  the  Bishop  drew  up  the  following  collects  for  u.se 
during  the  war.  They  are  given  not  only  for  their  intrinsic 
interest,  but  also  because  they  afford  proof  of  his  real 
power  in  the  difficult  matter  of  writing  prayers  suitable  for 
general  use  : 

For  the  Christians  who  at  the  call  of  duty  are  serving 
in  the  armies  of  Japan  or  China. 

O  Lord  God  Almighty,  look  down  on  Thy  servants 
the  members  of  Thy  Church  who  are  employed  in  the 
present  war.  Be  present  with  them  in  each  hour  of  danger 
and  of  temptation.  Grant  that  they  may  remember  their 
high  calling  and,  resisting  all  evil  by  the  power  of  Thy 
Holy  Spirit,  may  glorify  Thee  among  their  fellow-soldiers, 
through  Jesus  Christ  our  Lord.  Amen. 

For  the  sick  and  wounded. 

Have  mercy,  O  Lord,  upon  the  wounded  and  suffering, 
whether  in  our  own  armies  or  among  the  enemy.    In  the 

'  This  treaty  came  into  operation  on  July  17,  1899. 

B  B 


370 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


hour  of  their  trial  may  they  look  unto  Thee,  and  though 
they  know  Thee  not  by  the  hearing  of  the  ear,  listen. 
Thou  unto  their  cry,  assuage  their  suffering,  and  deal 
mercifully  with  them,  for  the  sake  of  Thy  Son,  Jesus  Christ 
our  Lord.  Amen. 
For  the  doctors  and  nurses. 

O  Lord  God,  the  Physician  of  souls,  look  in  mercy  on 
those  who  minister  to  the  wounded  and  suffering  during 
the  present  war.  Give  effect  to  their  skill,  and  healing  to 
the  means  which  they  employ.  And  though  they  know 
Thee  not  in  Thy  Christ,  grant  them  pure  intention  and 
readiness  of  self-denial,  and  accept  their  service  as  done 
unto  Thee,  through  the  same  Thy  Son,  Jesus  Christ  our 
Lord.  Amen. 

During  that  summer  the  Bishop  and  Mrs.  Bickersteth 
spent  six  weeks  in  a  Japanese  house  on  the  shores  of  the 
beautiful  Hakone  lake,  but  the  '  holiday '  was  largely 
absorbed  by  continuous  and  laborious  work  on  a  com- 
mittee for  the  revision  of  the  Japanese  Prayer  Book.  Of 
this  committee,  Bishop  Bickersteth  was  chairman,  but  he 
had  as  coadjutors  Bishop  McKim  (who  occupied  a  neigh- 
bouring house)  and  the  Rev.  P.  K.  Fyson  and  H.  J.  Foss 
(now  Bishops  of  the  Hokkaido  and  Osaka  respectively, 
who  for  that  whole  summer  were  guests  of  Bishop  Bicker- 
steth), as  well  as  a  member  of  the  American  Mission  and 
some  of  the  ablest  Japanese  clergy  and  catechists.  The 
committee  often  sat  for  five  or  six  hours  daily,  and  it 
was  usually  not  till  the  evening  that  the  busy  workers 
could  be  induced  to  join  expeditions  on  the  lake  or  on  the 
hills.  The  whole  matter  was  of  keen  and  absorbing  in- 
terest to  the  chairman,  and  on  September  6  he  wrote  to 
his  father  : 

Our  Prayer  Book  Committee,  on  which  I  have  been  at 
work  continuously  for  five  weeks,  ended  this  morning.  It 
has  been  a  difficult  work,  English  and  American  and 
Japanese,  high  and  low,  C. M.S.  and  S.P.G.,  all  having  their 
fancies ;  but  I  think  the  result  is  satisfactory.     '  The 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE. 


1 893- 1 897 


Record  '  (I  think  it  was)  told  me  of  dear  Maitland's  '  death 
at  Delhi  I  feel  to  have  lost  a  true  and  affectionate  friend, 
though  of  recent  years  I  had  seen  him  so  little.  He  was 
indeed  nobly  devoted  to  India,  and  is  one  of  the  growing 
number  of  men  of  high  qualifications  who  have  given  their 
lives  for  its  regeneration.  I  am  glad  that  I  saw  him  last 
year  at  Delhi.  He  was  then  so  much  stronger  than  when 
I  was  living  in  India  that  I  anticipated  many  years  of  life 
and  work  for  him.  They  will  feel  his  loss  greatly  at  the 
Cambridge  Mission. 

Again  : 

Bishopstowe  :  September  5,  1894. 

We  came  down  from  Hakone  to  a  series  of  visitors, 
the  Baring  Goulds  (one  of  the  clerical  secretaries  of  the 
C.M.S.  and  his  daughter),  the  Rev.  G.  H.  Pole  of  Osaka, 
Bishop  Evington  and  his  little  daughter,  and  next  week 
we  expect  the  Freeses.  S.  Jerome  says  :  '  Domus  episcopi 
omnium  debit  commune  hospitium  ; '  I  think  our  domus 
does  in  part  fulfil  this,  at  least  during  times  of  the  year. 

The  Church  Congress  met  that  year  at  Exeter,  and  the 
Bishop's  unfailing  interest  in  Church  matters  at  home  was 
quickened  by  the  fact  of  his  father's  presidency.  He 
wrote  at  the  time  :  '  We  are  thinking  of  you  day  by  day 
this  week.' 

Meantime  the  Japanese  successes  went  on  without 
drawback,  and  the  Bishop  was  proud  of  the  land  of  his 
adoption. 

He  wrote  October  18,  1894  : 

I  suppose  you  heard  of  our  great  naval  victory.  Did 
you  notice  the  doings  of  the  Kobe  Maru  ?  I  forget  whether 
it  was  the  Kobe  or  the  Saikyo  Maru  in  which  we  went 
down  the  Inland  Sea  together  three  years  ago.  Certainly 
Japan  has  raised  her  name  and  fame  in  the  world  by  her 
conduct  of  the  war.^  Except  the  sad  Kowshing  business, 
it  has  been  conducted  both  on  civilised  modes  and  with 

'  Son  of  the  Rev.  Brownlow  Maitland  andan  Honorary  Missionary  at  Delhi. 
This  was  of  course  written  before  the  excesses  at  Port  Arthur  (the  one 
real  blot  on  the  wonderful  record  of  humanity  and  order)  had  been  committed. 

B  B  2 


372 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


wonderful  precision  and  bravery.  It  is  amusing  to  read 
some  of  the  English  papers,  and  to  see  their  astonishment 
at  the  Japanese  actually  having  a  commissariat ! 

Again,  in  reply  to  an  attack  in  an  English  paper  on  his 
beloved  Japanese,  he  wrote  : 

November  8,  1894. 

'  Barbarian '  is  the  last  word  that  can  be  applied  to  the 
Japanese.  It  has  not  been  applicable  to  them  for  some 
centuries  now.  Nor  is  theirs  a '  thin  veneer  of  civilisation  ' 
merely.  The  old  civilisation  and  the  new  have  both  alike 
penetrated  deeply  into  the  life  of  the  people,  and  will  as 
time  goes  on  be  amalgamated  into  a  form  of  civilised  and 
cultivated  life  suitable  to  themselves.  The  adoption  of  our 
mode  of  education  is  in  itself  a  guarantee  against  mere 
superficiality.  Nor  are  their  faults  those  of  barbarism, 
but  of  civilisation.  Secularism  is  the  chief,  contented- 
ness  with  this  life  and  mere  material  progress,  besides 
the  bad  inheritance  from  past  days  of  a  low  standard  of 
morality. 

As  regards  the  present  war,  I  have  come  to  think  that 
they  had  more  right  to  force  it  on  than  I  thought  at  first. 
That  they  did  so  may  not  be  wholly  justifiable.  But  there 
is  no  doubt  that  they  feel  that  the  state  of  Korea  for  the 
last  ten  years  has  been  a  real  source  of  danger  to  them- 
selves, and  that  they  have  the  same  right  to  interfere  as 
we  had  in  Upper  Burmah,  &c.  Their  desire  to  do  .so  was 
certainly  quickened  by  the  manifest  risk  of  allowing  the 
country  to  remain  under  so  weak  a  government  till  Russia 
had  completed  her  Siberian  railway.  The  state  of  things 
would  have  invited  Russian  interference,  and  Russia  in 
Korea  would  have  been  a  standing  menace  to  Japan.  Also, 
I  think  that  they  have  felt  (with  whatever  mixture  of  base 
motives)  that  they  are  really  able  to  do  a  great  and  good 
work  in  the  Far  East  at  the  present  time— a  work  which 
no  other  eastern  country  can  do — as  the  pioneer  of  civilisa- 
tion, and  that  they  have  welcomed  this  war  as  an 
opportunity  of  putting  their  hand  to  the  work. 

The  Kowshing  business  is  still  sub  judice,  but  apart 
from  it  it  seems  that  they  have  conducted  the  war  on  far 
humaner  principles  than  any  war  has  ever  yet  been  con- 
ducted in  eastern  lands,  and  more  humanely  than  Europe 
conducted  her  wars  till  quite  recent  times.    A  member  of 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.  1893-1897  373 


Bishop  Corfe's  Mission,  now  in  Japan,  tells  mc  that  a 
Japanese  regiment  which  was  quartered  near  him  in 
Chemulpo  behaved  admirably. 

Certainly  Counts  Oyama,  Yamagata,  and  Inouye,  who 
are  the  three  men  in  charge,  the  first  two  of  the  armies  in 
Manchuria  and  at  Port  Arthur,  and  the  third  in  Seoul  as 
ambassador  with  practically  supreme  authority,  are  men 
who  as  generals  and  statesmen  would  do  credit  to  any 
western  land. 

The  Bishop  was  laid  aside  by  illness  in  the  November 
and  December  of  this  year,  but  within  a  month  he  was 
able  to  work  again,  and  was  specially  glad  to  welcome  the 
Rev.  Armine  King  on  his  return  from  a  short  furlough. 
He  also  much  enjoyed  the  visit  of  his  wife's  youngest 
sister,  who  spent  five  months  at  Bishopstowe  and  who 
entered  keenly  into  all  the  varied  interests  of  the  life  there. 
The  Bishop  took  great  interest  in  a  visit  paid  by  his 
chaplain,  the  Rev.  L.  B.  Cholmondeley,  to  the  Bonin 
Lslands,'  where  were  a  few  English-speaking  residents  and 
several  Japanese  Christians,  and  in  consequence  of  Mr. 
Cholmondeley's  report  he  licensed  a  lay  reader  to  work 
among  both  the  Europeans  and  Japanese  there. 

In  March  1895  the  Bishop  went  on  a  visitation  tour  on 
the  west  coast,  and  some  extracts  may  be  given  from 
letters  to  his  wife. 

Matsue  :  March  23,  1895. 

This  is  only  a  little  sheet,  but  I  have  been  at  work — 
no  !  engaged — all  day,  and  it  is  now  just  tea  time.  This 
morning  I  prepared  a  sermon  which  I  hope  to  give  to-night 
to  the  confirmation  candidates  preparatory  to  to-morrow. 
This  afternoon  I  have  had  the  clergy  and  church  com- 
mittee for  a  long  talk  over  the  visitation  papers.  This  is  a 
useful  plan,  I  think.  It  shows  one's  own  interest  in  the 
details  of  their  work,  and  it  gives  one  an  opportunity  of 
making  suggestions  in  a  natural  way. 

'  The  present  Bishop  (Awdry)  of  South  Tokyo  has  visited  these  islands 
(1899),  and  is  anxious  to  see  the  opening  there  followed  up. 


374 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


Hotel,  Yonago  :  March  27,  1895. 

I  reached  here  all  right  yesterday  afternoon.  Yonago 
is  on  a  salt  water  lake,  to  the  shore  of  which  I  trudged 
(about  seven  and  a  half  miles)  with  Arato  San,  our  deacon, 
Buxton  leading  the  way  on  a  bicycle.  Then  we  got  on  to 
one  of  the  minute  lake  steamers  which  brought  us  here. 
Last  night  I  confirmed  fourteen — a  nice  service.  I  took  the 
names  of  the  Holy  Spirit — Spirit  of  holiness,  Spirit  of  truth. 
Spirit  of  power — in  connection  severally  with  the  three  bap- 
tismal vows  as  a  subject.    I  am  now  off  to  inspect  a  school. 

Matsue  :  March  28,  1895. 

I  scribbled  you  a  pencil  line  yesterday  from  Yonago. 
Afterwards  I  had  a  meeting  of  the  catechists  and  committee. 
They  were  a  little  touchy  upon  financial  matters  and  their 
contributions  to  the  N.S.K.  societies,  but  I  hope  will  do 
rightly.  Then  I  went  to  inspect  a  school  about  a  mile  in 
the  country  which  Mr.  Buxton  has  established  for  beggar 
children.  The  village  is  a  beggar  village,  and  its  teacher 
is  a  youth  who  seems  as  proud  of  his  twenty-five  beggar 
children  as  if  he  were  headmaster  of  Harrow.  I  examined 
them,  and  left  some  money  for  kiuashi  (cakes)  after  my 
departure.  Two  of  the  beggars  had  been  confirmed  the 
night  before. 

Then  back  to  Yonago  to  confirm  a  lady,  the  wife  of  a 
judge,  who  had  been  unable  to  get  out  the  evening  before. 
Then  to  lunch  with  the  two  missionary  ladies.  Then 
ten  miles  to  the  port  of  Sakai — half  jinriksha,  half  walk- 
ing— a  little  seaside  hotel  hanging  over  the  water  of 
the  harbour.  I  had  not  been  there  since  1889.  There  is 
now  a  good  preaching  room  in  a  suburb  called  Naborimichi, 
where  at  night  I  confirmed  four  young  men,  and  after- 
wards had  the  catechists  and  committee  in  for  a  talk. 

This  morning  there  was  no  steamer,  so  we  came  by 
jinriksha  and  native  boat.  It  rained  the  whole  way,  and 
we  were  five  to  six  hours  doing  the  fifteen  miles.  I 
managed,  however,  to  keep  fairly  dry.  It  was  delightful 
getting  your  letters  on  arrival.  ...  I  am  so  glad  our 
two  servants  were  received  as  catechumens.  May  they 
indeed  persevere ! 

Yamaoka  Hotel,  Hamada  :  Sunday,  March  31,  1895. 

We  left  Matsue  on  Friday.  It  was  pouring  with  rain 
till  about  eleven  o'clock,  but  in  the  little  steamer  we  did 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.   1893-1897  375 


not  mind  this  ;  and  after  about  an  hour  in  the  jinrikshas 
it  cleared,  and  we  have  had  very  little  since,  though  it  has 
been  very  cold.  We  lunched  at  Imaichi  with  Nurse 
Evans,  and  got  to  the  pretty  little  village  of  Omori  a 
little  after  dusk.  Alas  !  the  hotel  and  its  shiten  [i.e. 
annexe]  were  both  full,  so  we  had  to  make  shift  with  a 
very  poor  little  inn.  I  should  think  we  were  among  their 
first  visitors,  but  they  were  very  obliging,  and  did  all  for 
us  they  could. 

All  yesterday  till  six  in  the  evening  we  were  on  the 
road.  Here  Makioka  San  [a  Japanese  priest]  met  us. 
This  morning  I  celebrated  in  the  preaching  room,  some 
thirteen  or  fourteen  communicants,  and  confirmed  four. 
This  evening  I  am  preaching  on  '  not  receiving  the  grace 
of  God  in  vain.'  Then  to-morrow,  at  5  A.M.  (if  I  can  get 
the  men  here),  I  start  for  Hiroshima.  I  may  get  through 
by  the  evening,  but  more  likely  shall  have  to  spend  the 
night  at  Kobe  and  get  in  early  Tuesday  morning.  Then 
I  have  a  confirmation,  and  probably  go  on  to  Fukuyama. 
Thursday  I  leave  for  Tokyo,  and  should  be  with  you 
between  5  and  6  P.M.  on  Friday.  .  .  . 

.  .  .  There  are  some  few  Romanisms  but  a  great  deal 
that  is  most  excellent  and  helpful  in  the  '  Spirit  of  St. 
Francis  de  Sales '  which  I  have  been  reading  this  Lent. 
How  humbling  it  is  to  see  the  heights  and  depths  to  which 
those  men  attained  ! 

The  Bishop  was  now  feeling  the  relief  of  the  curtail- 
ment of  his  sphere  of  labour  (the  new  Bishop  of  Kiushiu 
most  kindly  relieving  him  of  the  charge  of  Yezo  until  the 
appointment  to  that  northern  bishopric  should  be  made), 
and  the  Lenten  Pastoral  of  1895  was  for  the  first  time 
addressed  '  to  the  clergy  of  the  Church  of  England  in  the 
South  Tokyo  and  Osaka  missionary  jurisdictions.'  In  it 
he  drew  special  attention  to  some  of  the  great  lessons  of 
the  war. 

The  unbroken  success  which  has  attended  the  Japanese 
armies  in  the  invasion  of  Korea  and  China  involves 
consequences  alike  to  victors  and  vanquished  of  which 
it  is  impossible  to  over-estimate  the  importance.  For 


376 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


the  next  generation  at  all  events  Japan  will  hold  the 
prerogative  position  among  the  nations  of  the  Further 
East  for  good  or  for  evil.  The  result  must  ultimately- 
depend  upon  whether  or  no  her  rulers  and  statesmen 
act  upon  principles  of  which  religion  is  the  sanction, 
and  of  which  Christianit}-  alone  has  as  yet  proved 
the  adequate  inspiration.  The  Church  has  been  at 
work  far  too  short  a  time  in  Japan  for  us  reasonably  to 
expect  the  open  acceptance  of  the  obligations  of  Christian 
teaching.  But  the  influence  of  the  Church  and  of  the 
faith  of  Christ  has  at  all  times  been  felt  over  a  far  wider 
area  than  that  in  which  their  authority  is  directly  recog- 
nised. And  we  may  hope  that  the  influence  not  only  of 
Christian  missions  but  of  intercourse  with  Christian  nations 
has  so  far  prevailed  that  the  principle  of  unselfish  regard 
for  the  interests  of  others,  even  of  foes,  will  be  allowed 
some  real  weight  in  the  new  settlement  of  eastern  affairs 
which  is  imminent. 

In  May,  writing  from  Gifu,  the  Bishop  records  with 
pleasure  the  appointment  of  Sir  Ernest  Satow,  K.C.M.G., 
as  British  Minister  in  Japan. 

He  is,  I  suppose,  the  ablest  man  Japan  has  yet  had  sent 
her,  except  perhaps  Sir  Harry  Parkes.  He  was  Sir  Harry's 
lieutenant  for  many  years,  and  left  him  to  become  mini- 
ster in  Siam  and  afterwards  in  Morocco. 

In  June  Bishop  and  Mrs.  Bickersteth  had  the  pleasure 
of  welcoming  as  their  guest  Mrs.  J.  F.  Bishop,  F.R.G.S. 
The  Bishop  writes  of  her  to  his  father  as  '  a  really  wonder- 
ful person,  always  in  pain,  but  full  of  interest  and  vigour 
and  ready  at  any  time  to  be  drawn  into  conversation  on 
her  travels.'  This  was  the  first  of  many  visits  during 
which  this  ever  welcome  guest  became  an  intimate  and 
valued  friend.  Mrs.  Bishop  has  kindl)'  contributed  some 
'reminiscences,'  which  will  be  found  at  the  end  of  this 
chapter. 

In  June  also  was  held  the  first  Bishops'  meeting  (in 
connection  with  the   Anglican    communion)  in  Japan, 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.   1893-1897  377 


when,  on  June  18,  Bishops  Bickerstcth,  McKim,  and 
Evington  met  for  an  early  celebration  of  Holy  Communion 
in  the  House  Chapel  at  Bishopstowe,  and  remained  the 
whole  day  in  conference.  That  evening  a  '  representative  ' 
dinner-party  was  given  in  honour  of  the  event,  when 
Bishop  and  Mrs.  Bickersteth  had  the  pleasure  of  welcoming 
as  their  guest  the  venerable  Bishop  Nicolai  of  the  Russian 
Church,  as  well  as  representatives  of  the  American, 
Canadian,  and  Japanese  Churches,  and  missionaries  sent 
out  by  the  S.P.G.,  C.M.S..  and  Guild  of  St.  Paul. 

In  July  the  Bishop  again  visited  Osaka  and  its  neigh- 
bourhood, and  wrote  to  his  wife  : 

Osaka  :  July  2,  1895. 

I  got  in  just  at  1 1  A.M.  From  Nagoya  we  crawled. 
There  were  soldiers'  trains  on  the  line.  Some  of  the  men 
whom  I  saw  were  bronzed  and  their  uniforms  worn,  as  if 
they  had  seen  much  hard  work  .... 

To-night  we  start  for  Sakai  at  5  o'clock.'  There  will  be 
a  little  party  of  foreigners  '  there,  and  I  suppose  some  fifty 
to  sixty  catechists  and  Japanese  clergy,  all,  I  understand, 
in  the  same  house,  a  large  sort  of  summer  tea-house  by  the 
sea  shore.  I  hope  some  good  may  be  done  both  here  and 
in  the  Tokyo  '  School.'  As  the  Japanese  like  it,  it  is  best 
certainly  that  we  should  fall  in  with  the  plan.  Otherwise 
I  should  have  thought  something  more  in  the  nature  of  a 
retreat,  followed  by  more  regular  classes  in  the  Divinity 
School  Buildings,  would  have  been  more  useful. 

Ilamadera,  Sakai  :  July  3,  1S95. 

We  came  down  hereabout  6.30  last  night,  and  after  tea 
had  a  '  welcome  '  meeting,  as  they  call  it.  Then  this  morning 
before  breakfast  we  had  morning  prayer,  and  afterwards 
my  paper  on  the  Incarnation.    Koba  San  read  it  for  me. 

This  afternoon  I  have  been  having  a  walk  with 
C.  Warren  along  the  .shore,  hoping  to  win  some  sleep  to- 
night. 

'  N.B. — This  was  for  a  gathering  of  the  clergy  and  catechists  connected 
with  the  C.M.S.  Mission  for  the  purpose  of  devotion,  instruction,  and 
discussion.  Similar  gatherings  were  held  from  time  to  time  in  different  parts 
of  the  diocese. 


378 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


I  have  been  having  also  several  talks  with  the  Japanese 
catechists,  so  I  hope  the  time  is  not  lost ;  at  least,  my 
having  come  serves  to  show  interest,  which  is  so  far  good.  ■ 

Osaka  :  Saturday  night,  July  6,  1895. 

I  have  been  sermonising  all  day,  and  have  got  my  two 
discourses  just  ready. 

I  read  through  the  Bishop  of  Durham's  noble  missionary 
sermon  to  C.M.S.,  only  I  fear  that  the  ajjivrjTOL  (is  that  a 
right  word  )  would  not  have  caught  the  points  in  the 
hearing. 

For  Monday  morning  I  have  taken  the  epistle 
(Romans  viii.  18).  It  is  a  great  passage,  on  which  I  do 
not  think  I  ever  ventured  to  preach  before.  The  thought 
I  have  tried  to  insist  on  is  sympathy  with  the  wide  human 
family  emphasised,  not  interfered  with,  by  the  greatest  of 
the  Christian  privilege. 

The  brief  summer  holiday  was  spent  at  Karuizawa,  a 
mountain  village  where  the  Bishop  hired  a  small  chalet 
whence  he  wrote  to  his  sister  : 

We  came  up  hereon  Saturday,  and  are  greatly  enjoying 
the  quiet,  and  being  to  ourselves  most  of  all.  This  house 
is  on  a  little  hill  by  itself,  and  we  have  done  nothing  to 
encourage  visitors,  meaning  to  have  a  fortnight  to  ourselves. 
In  Tokyo  this  is  quite  impossible,  so  I  think  we  are  justified 
in  taking  this  spell  of  isolation.  We  are  reading  Dante 
(Dean  Church's  Essay  and  Cary),  Hook's  Archbishops, 
Westcott's  Hebrews,  and  a  little  Japanese,  all  together  ! 
It  has  rained  pretty  well  since  we  arrived,  but  we  have  not 
minded  much  : 

My  sister-in-law,  Mrs.  Edward  Bickersteth,  writes  to  me 
of  that  visit : 

It  was  noticed  by  many  that  at  no  time  during  his 
episcopate  was  E.  so  full  of  physical  vigour  and  buoy- 
ancy of  spirits  as  during  this  holiday  and  the  months 
that  immediately  followed.  Though  much  quiet  work  was 
got  through  at  Karuizawa,  both  in  study  of  the  language 
and  in  attempts  to  bring  missionary  effort  to  bear  on  the 
inhabitants  of  the  village,  as  well  as  the  erection  and  dedi- 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.   1893-1897  379 


cation  of  a  small  wooden  church  for  the  English  and 
American  visitors,  yet  he  was  also  more  ready  than  usual 
to  throw  himself  with  almost  boyish  eagerness  into  holi- 
day pursuits.  Long  walks  were  taken  daily  on  the  hills, 
and  we  had  one  expedition  of  several  days'  duration  in 
company  with  Miss  Bullock  of  St.  Hilda's  Mission  and 
some  delightful  English  friends,  Mr.  and  Mrs.  T.  H.  James, 
and  their  young  daughter,  which  remains  as  a  specially 
bright  spot  in  the  memory  of  that  happy  summer. 

Not  long  after  the  autumn  work  had  begun  a  telegram 
most  unexpectedly  summoned  the  Bishop  to  England  to 
confer  with  the  authorities  at  home  as  to  the  proposed 
Osaka  bishopric.  There  had  been  much  delay  in  the 
matter,  owing  to  protracted  negotiations  between  the 
Archbishop  of  Canterbury  and  the  missionary  societies. 
The  ultimate  decision  of  the  C.M.S.  that  they  could  not 
help  at  all  unless  they  were  allowed  to  nominate  the 
Bishop  to  be  appointed  led  the  Archbishop  to  apply  to 
the  S.P.G.  That  society  at  once  responded  by  promising 
to  be  responsible  for  the  salary,  leaving  the  nomination  to 
the  Archbishop,  and  a  ready  response  was  made  to  their 
special  appeal  for  an  Osaka  Bishopric  Fund. 

Bishop  and  Mrs.  Bickersteth  reached  England  on 
December  11,  1895,  and  within  a  few  weeks  the  Bishop 
had  the  joy  of  knowing  that  his  desire  was  accomplished. 
Seldom,  perhaps,  was  he  more  pleased  and  satisfied  than 
at  the  fulfilment  of  this  scheme  which  he  had  long  felt 
so  needful  to  the  missions  in  Central  Japan,  especially 
on  learning  that  the  Right  Rev.  William  Awdry,  Bishop- 
Suffragan  of  Southampton,  had  accepted  the  Archbishop's 
invitation  to  become  the  first  Bishop  of  Osaka.  Bishop 
Awdry  was  prepared  to  give  up  his  parish  and  leave 
England  with  his  wife  within  the  short  space  of  six 
weeks,  so  as  to  be  able  to  attend  the  General  Synod  of 
the   Japanese   Church   in   April.     The  interval  before 


380  lilSlIOr  EDWARD  15ICKERSTETII 

starting  was  well  employed  by  Bishop  Bickersteth. 
Never  was  he  more  vigorous,  nor  pleaded  with*  more 
ability  and  persuasion  for  the  Far  Eastern  Church  which 
he  loved  so  well.  He  thus  happened  to  be  in  England 
on  February  2,  the  anniversary  of  his  consecration,  and 
he  wrote  to  his  wife  from  Cambridge  : 

Pembroke  College,  Cambridge  :  Feast  of  the  Purification,  1896. 

To  think  that  I  have  held  the  holy  office  of  a  Bishop 
now  for  ten  years — the  average  time,  I  believe.  It  is  very 
humbling  in  the  thought  of  how  much  more  might  have 
been  done,  and  how  much  better  done  what  has  been  taken 
in  hand  ;  and  at  the  same  time  to  have  been  allowed  to 
work  at  all  during  so  long  a  period  is  reason  enough  for 
thanksgiving. 

The  two  Bishops  left  England  on  February  21,  and 
Bishop  and  Mrs.  Bickersteth  reached  Tokyo  on  the 
eve  of  Palm  Sunday  (March  28)  after  an  absence  of 
exactly  five  months,  and  great  was  their  joy  to  be  '  at 
horne '  again.  They  received  a  warm  welcome,  and  the 
Bishop  was  able  to  write  to  his  mother-in-law  :  '  I  never 
returned  to  find  work  going  on  more  harmoniously  and 
hopefully.' 

This  Easter,  too,  was  one  of  the  happiest  times  of  the 
Bishop's  life.  Some  idea  of  it  is  given  in  the  following- 
letter,  written  by  his  wife  on  Easter  Day  to  her  mother  in 
England  : 

I  would  not  have  changed  our  Easter  for  any  in  the 
world  :  it  has  been  so  perfect.  .  .  .  This  morning  dawned 
more  brightly  than  we  had  dared  to  hope  after  last  night's 
clouds,  and  the  whole  day  has  been  one  of  unclouded  love- 
liness with  a  real  foretaste  of  sumtner.  We  went  to  the 
7  o'clock  celebration  (Japanese),  and  E.  celebrated.  The 
church  [St.  Andrew's,  Shiba]  looked  beautifully  festal,  and 
we  were  very  thankful  for  the  fifty-five  communicants 
(quite  forty-five  of  them  Japanese). 

At  the  9  o'clock  Japanese  service  the  church  was  quite 


A  MISSIONARY  P.ISIIOP'S  LIFE.   1893-I897  381 


full  (165  for  Mattins  and  sermon,  and  some  30  communi- 
cants), and  the  service  was  so  bright  and  hearty.  Arch- 
deacon Shaw  preached,  and  it  was  very  nice  to  see  him 
among  the  people  he  loves  so  much.  He  is  exceedingly 
happy  to  be  back.  I  stayed  on  for  English  Mattins.  E. 
preached  on  '  Christ  our  Passover  is  sacrificed  for  us,'  &c. 
You  know  that  the  Resurrection  is  the  very  centre  and 
mainspring  of  his  life,  and  he  always  glows  with  joy  on 
Easter  Day.  We  had  a  delightful  party  to  luncheon,  as 
our  guests  were  Imai  San  and  Yoshizawa  San  [two 
Japanese  priests]  and  Isobe  San  and  Sakai  San  [two 
Japanese  lady-workers].  They  were  all  so  happy  and 
Easter-like.  This  afternoon  E.  and  I  walked  to  see  the 
Shaws.  Mr.  Batchelor  (of  Ainu  fame)  has  been  to  tea 
with  us,  and  we  have  been  to  the  five  o'clock  English 
evensong. 

That  Easter  evening  all  the  members  of  St.  Andrew's 
and  St.  Hilda's  Missions  came  to  supper  at  Bishopstowe, 
and  the  day  closed  with  English  compline  in  the  House 
chapel. 

On  Easter  Tuesday  the  Bishop  and  Mrs.  Bickersteth 
went  to  Osaka,  where  they  were  the  guests  of  Archdeacon 
and  Mrs.  Warren  for  the  General  Japanese  Synod  and  the 
C.M.S.  conference  which  followed  it.  The  fatigue  of  pre- 
siding at  a  synod  of  such  importance,  with  the  delibera- 
tions conducted  of  course  entirely  in  Japanese,  immediately 
after  a  five  months'  absence  from  the  country,  told  severely 
upon  the  Bishop's  health  (though  many  of  those  present 
remarked  at  the  time  on  the  ability  of  his  chairmanship), 
and,  in  fact,  he  never  wholly  recovered  from  the  strain. 

He  was,  however,  full  of  hopefulness,  and  he  thoroughly 
enjoyed  receiving  Bishop  and  Mrs.  Awdry  in  May  as 
guests  at  Bishopstowe  and  introducing  to  them  as  many 
as  possible  of  his  friends  and  fellow-workers,  little  dream- 
ing that  in  God's  providence  he  was  preparing  a  welcome 
for  his  successor.  In  June  he  travelled  with  the  Rev.  A. 
V.  King  through  a  hitherto  unvisited  portion  of  his  diocese, 


382 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


purposely  choosing  a  new  route  to  Matsumoto  in  order  to 
'  survey'  the  land  and  to  decide  on  possible  new  openings 
for  work.  He  had  joyfully  planned  many  such  'pioneer' 
journeys  owing  to  the  now  more  compassable  size  of  his 
diocese.  The  following  extracts  may  be  given  from  letters 
to  his  wife  before  she  joined  him  in  Nagano,  where,  as 
always  in  that  busy  centre  of  work  (the  house  of  the  Rev. 
J.  G.  and  Mrs.  Waller),  they  spent  a  few  happy  days. 

Kofu  :  June  4,  1896. 

I  hope  that  my  Saru  Hashi  postcard  will  have  reached 
you  a  day  before  this  letter,  and  my  telegram  a  day  before 
the  postcard.  Both  yesterday  and  to-day  we  have  been  in 
a  basha}  The  Hachioji  Kurumaya  asked  most  extrava- 
gant prices,  so  we  had  a  basha  to  go  half  a  day's  journey  to 
a  place  called  Yoshino,  but  then  we  were  forced  to  do  the 
same  thing  again  as  there  were  no  kurumas  to  be  had.  Our 
second  basha  would  only  take  us  one  short  stage  and  landed 
us  in  a  place  called  Ueno  Machi,  still  twelve  miles  from 
our  destination.  Fortunately  a  more  venturesome  driver, 
who  knew  the  road  well  and  had  an  excellent  horse,  undertook 
to  take  us  on,  and  did  so  safely  and  easily.  At  Saruhashi 
we  got  rooms  all  right,  and  were  not  sorry  to  turn  in.  It 
had  been  pouring  from,  I  suppose,  about  three  o'clock. 
When  we  woke  this  morning  the  prospect  was  most  dreary. 
However,  we  felt  that  there  was  nothing  for  it  but  to  go 
on,  so  we  again  got  a  basha  (shaking  notwithstanding  it  is 
better  as  taking  our  luggage  and  as  being  much  cheaper), 
and  were  rewarded  by  the  weather  clearing  when  we  were 
about  half-way  here.  We  had  no  view  from  the  pass, 
though  the  flowers  were  lovely,  but  before  we  got  in  Fuji 
San  had  put  its  top  out  of  the  clouds,  and  the  whole 
Koshu  range  (the  same  that  you  and  I  saw  last  year  from 
the  other  side)  was  clearing.  We  got  some  tea,  and  then 
went  and  called  on  the  Methodist  mission  here,  whom 
we  found  to  consist  of  three  ladies.  They  were  quite 
delighted  to  see  us,  saying  that  to  have  foreign  visi- 
tors was  such  a  pleasure  and  insisting  on  our  staying 
for  a  kind  of  tea-supper.    Then  we  walked  up  to  the  old 

'  A  rough,  springless  vehicle  dignified  by  the  name  of  a  carriage. 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.   1893-1897  383 

castle.  I  do  wish  you  could  have  been  there,  such  views 
of  mountains  in  the  direction  we  are  to  go  to-morrow. 

I  have  scarcely  been  able  to  open  a  book,  though  I 
have  made  some  attempts.  In  a  kurmna  it  is  difficult,  in 
a  basha  it  is  hopeless,  even  when  the  road  is  good,  which  is 
very  seldom. 

Matsumoto  :  5  P.M.  June  6,  1896. 

We  got  in  an  hour  ago,  and  Kakuzen  San  [a  Japanese 
deacon]  has  sent  off  a  Japanese  telegram  to  you. 

Yesterday  we  were  again  in  basha  or  walking  all  day. 
The  first  part  of  the  road  was  good,  but  the  last  ten  to 
fifteen  miles  of  the  forty  all  stones  and  furrows  and  ditches. 
We  walked  a  good  part  of  it.  Mr.  Kennedy  and  Kakuzen 
San  were  waiting  for  us  at  Kami  no  Suwa.  They  had 
been  out  paying  some  visits  in  the  district,  and  went  on 
with  us  to  Shimo  no  Suwa,  where  we  got  in  just  at  dark. 
It  was  lovely  all  day,  very  little  dust  and  not  too  hot.  The 
views  from  the  higher  points  are  very  beautiful.  The  lake 
is  not  so  beautiful  as  Hakone,  and  they  are  gradually 
encroaching  on  it  by  redeeming  lands  for  rice  fields. 
Kami  no  Suwa  is  the  bigger  place.  We  ought  to  have  a 
mission  there.  Our  only  accident  was  the  horse  coming 
down  once  and  breaking  a  shaft,  but  the  man  tied  it  up  as 
if  it  were  quite  a  matter  of  course.  I  did  not  sleep  at  Kofu, 
so  went  to  bed  early  at  Shimo  no  Suwa  and  slept  for  hours, 
but  the  result  was  that  I  did  not  see  the  chief  of  police  last 
night.  However,  good  man  !  he  called  again  this  morning 
and  I  had  a  talk  with  him.  He  seems  a  genuine  man  and 
I  hope  will  prove  a  believer.  Your  two  letters  were  waiting 
me  here. 

I  think  there  will  not  be  water  enough  in  the  river  to 
bring  us  down,  so  we  shall  come  over  Hofukuji,  and  perhaps 
catch  your  train  at  Ueda.  Look  out  for  us,  but  of  course 
it  is  uncertain,  with  so  long  a  tramp  and  kurunias,  &c.,  if 
we  shall  get  in. 

August  was  again  spent  at  Karuizawa,  where  the 
Bishop  had  now  built  a  wooden  chalet,  and  some  account 
of  the  happy  weeks  there,  as  well  as  some  reminiscences  of 
Bishopstowe,  will  be  found  in  the  following  recollections 
kindly  furnished  by  Miss  Ranken,  daughter  of  the  late 
Dean  of  Aberdeen,  a  frequent  guest  and  valued  friend. 


384 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


When  I  came  to  Japan  in  the  early  spring  of  1892  the 
Bishop  was  absent  in  another  part  of  the  diocese.  I  had 
taken  in  hand  some  work  in  Tokyo  under  certain  restric- 
tions of  a  non-missionary  character,  which  gave  rise  to 
more  or  less  adverse  criticism  on  the  part  of  some  of  those 
who  had  at  heart  the  Christianising  of  Japan. 

I  knew  that  there  was  ground  for  disappointment  on 
the  Bishop's  part,  because  the  hopes  which  had  been  enter- 
tained, hopes  in  which  I  knew  he  had  shared,  of  being  able 
to  carry  out  the  work  referred  to  on  proselytising  lines  had, 
for  the  present  at  any  rate,  to  be  set  aside.  This  being  the 
case,  I  looked  forward  to  his  return  with  a  certain  amount 
of  anxiety,  for  it  would  not  have  been  possible  for  me  to  go 
on  with  work  under  conditions  of  which  he  disapproved. 

The  open  mind  which  he  brought  to  the  judgment  of 
the  case,  the  clear  manner  in  which  he  stated  it — these 
were  my  first  experiences  of  the  Bishop,  and  they  gave  me 
encouragement  amid  the  difficulties  of  unaccustomed  work. 
His  interest  never  tired,  nor  did  his  support  in  the  conten- 
tion that  there  might  be  other  ways  besides  those  most 
obvious  of  doing  work  for  the  cause  of  missions. 

It  was  not,  however,  till  after  his  return  from  England 
with  Mrs.  Bickersteth  in  the  end  of  1893  that  1  had  any 
opportunity  for  intimate  personal  intercourse  with  him.  I 
think  there  were  few  of  us  who  did  not  hail  with  delight 
that  new  home  at  Bishopstowe,  or  who  did  not  soon  dis- 
cover that  we  could  go  there  with  the  certainty  of  finding 
ourselves,  in  a  special  sense,  at  home,  in  touch  with  all  that 
is  best  and  highest  in  English  home  life,  while  none  the 
less  fully  in  touch  with  the  mission  work  to  which  the  lives 
of  the  Bishop  and  his  wife  (I  knew  them  together,  and 
cannot  separate  them)  were  dedicated. 

The  characteristic  which  first  impressed  me  with  a  sense 
of  enjoyment  is  still,  to  my  mind,  that  which  distinguished 
the  Bishop,  the  clear  expression  of  a  clear  knowledge.  I 
do  not  mean  to  separate  this  from  the  deeply  devotional 
and  reverent  side  of  his  character,  for,  indeed,  the  two 
seemed  to  be  very  closely  knit  together.  But  there  is 
surely  no  one  who  has  realised  in  Japan  the  pity  of  the 
confusion  of  half-informed,  or  more  than  half  ;///j--informed, 
missionary  effort,  clashing  aimlessly  against  the  confused 
creeds  of  the  country  who  will  not  acknowledge  that  a 
first  requisite  was  the  trained  theological  mind,  able  to  give 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     1893-1897  385 


utterance  to  the  truths  of  the  creed  in  unfaltering  words, 
the  exact,  and  not  only  the  approximate,  expression  of 
that  which  he  desired  to  set  forth. 

I  was  much  struck  also  by  his  manner  with  children, 
and  by  the  ease  with  which  simplicity  of  expression  came 
to  him  in  addressing  them.  He  seemed  to  have  found  out 
that  a  child  can  follow  reasoning  if  it  is  presented  in 
simple  and  intelligible  language.  I  have  heard  a  child 
reproduce  his  train  of  thought  in  the  same  ordered 
sequence  in  which  it  had  been  delivered,  and  with  a 
pleasure  in  having  understood  such  as  no  talking  down  to 
a  supposed  child-level  could  have  given. 

In  conversation  it  did  not  often  seem  possible  for  him 
to  skim  lightly  over  the  surface  of  things,  implying  a 
knowledge  which  he  did  not  possess,  and  consequently  one 
found  oneself  brought  to  book,  as  it  were,  by  questions  put 
simply  with  the  desire  to  know  all  that  could  be  known  on 
the  subject,  but  having  naturally  the  effect  now  and  then 
of  bringing  to  light  a  general  ignorance  where  those  around 
him  had  been  dogmatising  with  all  the  lightness  of  society 
talk.  His  talk  on  historical  or  political  subjects,  or  on 
social  questions,  was  always  full  of  interest,  informed  and 
informing. 

His  sense  of  humour  and  power  of  enjoying  a  joke  did 
not  strike  one  immediately,  but  they  were  great  neverthe- 
less, and  as  valuable  as,  when  wisely  directed,  they  always 
are  in  bringing  minds  into  touch  and  smoothing  away 
difficulties.  I  have  often  heard  it  remarked  :  '  The  Bishop 
has  plenty  of  fun  in  him  when  you  get  to  know  him,'  which 
might,  perhaps,  have  been  put  equally  well  in  a  reverse 
form.  There  were  people  who,  beginning  to  know  him  on 
some  such  common  ground,  were  the  more  readily  to  be 
brought  under  his  influence. 

However  busy  his  life  might  be,  there  was  always  time 
for  the  ready  courtesy  of  an  unselfish  nature  to  show  itself, 
and  nothing  seemed  to  come  in  the  way  of  the  restful, 
helpful  prayer-time  in  the  chapel.  Whether  the  prayers 
were  in  the  old  familiar  language,  consecrated  by  all  our 
dearest  memories,  or  in  the  unfamiliar  words  of  the 
Japanese,  telling  of  great  hopes  for  a  future  so  full  of 
promise,  and  with  its  soft  Italian  vowels  seeming  peculiarly 
fitted  for  the  expression  of  devotion,  these  services  seemed 

C  C 


386 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


expressly  meant  for  the  setting  forth  of  the  doctrine  of  the 
communion  of  saints. 

I  spent  some  weeks  of  the  summer  of  1896  partly  in, 
and  partly  quite  near,  the  cottage  which  the  Bishop  had 
just  built  at  Karuizawa.  From  the  city  of  Tokyo  the  road 
across  the  island  to  the  western  sea,  following  the  line  of 
least  width,  crosses  a  mountain  chain  by  the  Usui  Togi,  a 
pass  4.050  feet  above  the  sea.  By  means  of  a  wonderful 
chain  of  tunnels  the  railway  from  Tokyo  to  Navetzu,  on 
the  Sea  of  Japan,  opened  within  the  last  six  or  seven  years, 
avoids  the  crown  of  the  pass  or  Togi,  and  comes  out  nearly 
eight  hundred  feet  lower  on  a  wide  grassy  plain,  once 
evidently  the  bed  of  a  great  mountain  tarn,  dominated  by 
the  peak  of  Asama  Yama,  the  highest  active  volcano  in 
Japan,  over  the  top  of  which  rises  always  a  grey  pillar  of 
smoke,  glowing  red  after  nightfall. 

At  the  upper  end  of  the  plain,  below  the  abrupt  ascent 
to  the  Usui  Togi,  lies  the  village  of  Karuizawa.  Half 
way  up  the  track  leading  from  the  village  to  the  top  of 
the  pass,  where  a  level  space  overhangs  a  clear  mountain 
stream,  stands  the  Bishop's  cottage,  looking  across  the 
plain,  and  seen  to  great  advantage  from  the  lower  level. 
It  was  not  begun,  however,  till  after  the  opening  of  the 
little  wooden  church  which  stands  among  the  pine  trees  at 
the  foot  of  the  ascent.  Here  by  the  beginning  of  August 
1896  the  cottage  was  ready  for  its  first  guests.  In  building 
this  summer  home,  as  in  the  life  at  Bishopstowe,  the  main 
idea  and  motive  was  to  make  a  centre  for  rest  and  home 
life  for  as  many  as  possible  of  the  mission  workers  and 
others,  like  myself,  for  whom  the  ever  ready  kindness  of 
the  Bishop  and  Mrs.  Bickersteth  saw  an  opportunity  for 
exercising  itself 

The  dainty  simplicity  of  the  cottage  at  Karuizawa  must 
have  had  its  own  value.  There  were  books  and  flowers, 
the  latter  most  easy  of  attainment,  for  we  lived  in  a  limit- 
less garden.  We  were  amused  to  find  that  three  sets  of 
our  party,  of  whom  the  Bishop  and  Mrs.  Bickersteth  made 
one,  had  fixed  on  Dante  as  a  good  staying  study  for  leisure 
moments.  As  usual,  the  Bishop  must  have  found  that  he 
had  but  little  time  for  that  sort  of  thing,  for  much  work 
went  on.  All  through  the  morning  the  thin  wooden  parti- 
tions allowed  one  to  hear  the  subdued  murmur  of  voices, 
to  which  sounds  was  attached  an  interest  coming  from  the 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     1 893- 1 897  387 


knowledge  that  they  were  the  echoes  of  discussions  vital  to 
the  establishing  of  the  Church  in  Japan.  The  morning 
prayer  in  the  upper  chamber,  which  was  his  study,  wide 
open  to  the  air  from  those  grand  mountains,  with  their  sug- 
gestion of  '  Even  so  standeth  the  Lord  round  about  His 
people  ;  from  this  time  forth  for  ever  more,'  the  solemn 
inflections  of  the  Bishop's  voice  intoning  the  Japanese 
prayers,  the  reverent  responses  of  the  worshippers — all  was 
full  of '  the  beauty  of  holiness. 

On  a  Sunday  evening,  just  at  the  end  of  the  holiday, 
tidings  reached  Karuizawa  of  great  and  disastrous  floods  in 
a  remote  corner  of  the  diocese,  on  the  Gifu  plain,  and,  in 
spite  of  recent  ill-health,  the  Bishop  at  once  felt  that  his 
place  was  with  his  people  in  their  trouble.  So  he  started  oft" 
at  daybreak  next  morning,  and  the  following  letters  to  his 
wife  tell  of  his  experiences  : 

St.  Andrew's  House,  Tokyo  :  September  14,  1896. 

Just  one  line  I  must  leave  to  tell  you  of  my  journey. 
Except  an  hour's  stop  at  Takasaki,  the  journey  was  quite 
easy  and  comfortable,  by  no  means  very  hot.  I  read  the 
'Expositor'  and  a  good  deal  of  my  Latin  book,  which  I 
am  taking  on  with  me.  Mr.  Webb  met  me  here.  My 
letter  and  telegram  had  both  arrived,  and  Mr.  King  was 
seeking  information  as  to  routes.  I  had  some  tea,  and 
then  went  up  to  St.  Hilda's,  where  I  saw  the  new  buildings 
(very  nice)  and  settled  about  your  going  there  to-morrow. 
On  my  return  Mr.  King  had  come  in  with  the  unexpected 
news  that  the  line  is  open,  so  I  start  to-night.  I  shall  be 
rather  tired,  but  I  think  it  is  best  to  go  on  at  once. 
Probably  I  shall  not  be  away  more  than  two  or  three  days  ; 
but  I'll  telegraph  again  to-morrow.  God  bless  you,  my 
dear  one,  and  bring  you  safely  here  to-morrow.  These 
would  have  been  such  a  nice  three  days  with  you  ;  but  still, 
it  is  all  right,  and  I  am  sure  I  do  right  to  go. 

Nagoya  :  September  15,  1896. 

Just  a  line  to  tell  you  that  I  had  a  good  sleep  in  the 
train  last  night,  and  reached  here  (Mr.  Robinson's  house) 
at  noon.  I  have  now  had  a  talk.  The  accounts  about  loss 
of  life,  &c.,  in  this  part  of  the  country  are  exaggerated. 


388 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


In  the  Gifu  ken  [district]  things  are  worse,  and  I  am  going 
on  there  to-night,  and  to-morrow  shall  get  out,  if  possible, 
to  Takasu  and  Imau.  If  I  can,  I  shall  get  back  on  Thurs- 
day by  the  express.    I  must  start,  so  only  this. 

Gifu  :  Thursday. 

We  were  all  yesterday  going  and  coming  from  Ogaki. 
The  rain  prevented  us  reaching  Imau,  but  we  are  just 
starting  there,  and  do  not  expect  to  be  back  till  late  to- 
night. 

There  were  four  breaks  in  embankments,  besides  the 
two  rivers,  between  here  and  Ogaki,  and  the  damage  done 
most  saddening. 

The  Bishop  returned  to  Tokyo,  and  at  once  plunged 
into  full  work,  though  increasingly  unfit  for  the  strain.  At 
the  end  of  September  he  took  part  in  a  gathering  by  the 
seaside  for  devotion  and  mutual  counsel  of  Japanese  clergy 
and  catechists,  and  from  this  he  returned  full  of  thankful- 
ness and  hope.  Then,  early  in  October,  he  conducted  a 
Retreat  at  St.  Hilda's  Mission  House,  the  depth  and 
beauty  of  his  addresses  on  '  The  Life  of  Perfection '  being 
remarked  by  many  present.  Within  a  few  days  came  the 
attack  of  illness  which,  though  none  suspected  it,  was  the 
beginning  of  the  end,  and  the  Bishop  was  compelled  to 
take  to  his  bed  in  the  midst  of  a  C.M.S.  Conference 
through  which  he  was  painfully  struggling.  On  the  second 
day  of  his  illness  came  the  news  of  the  sudden  call  to  rest 
of  his  beloved  friend  and  revered  leader.  Archbishop 
Benson.  The  shock  of  the  tidings  was  severe,  and  for  long 
he  could  think  or  speak  of  little  else.  As  soon  as  he  could 
stand,  and  long  before  he  was  fit  for  it,  the  Bishop  was 
back  at  his  desk  and  his  work.  On  November  8  he  cele- 
brated in  his  own  chapel,  and  on  November  14  confirmed 
two  Japanese  boys  there,  while  on  Sunday,  November  15, 
he  preached  at  the  English  service  at  St.  Andrew's,  Tokyo, 
and  in  the  afternoon  baptised  a  little  English  baby,  the  .son 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOr'S  LIFE.     1893-1897  389 


of  one  of  the  Legation  Secretaries.  But  the  following  day- 
there  came  another  severe  relapse,  and  the  doctors  ordered 
an  immediate  return  to  England.  It  was  a  sore  trial  to  the 
Bishop  to  leave  undone  the  winter's  work  which  had  been 
so  joyfully  planned,  and  several  questions  unsettled  which 
seemed  to  demand  his  presence.  But  the  call  of  God  was 
plain,  and  obedience  was  instant  and  unquestioning. 

In  spite  of  his  hurried  departure,  he  found  time  to  leave 
a  few  lines  for  his  valued  worker  and  friend,  the  Rev.  A.  F. 
King,  who,  with  the  Rev.  John  Imai,  was  expected  shortly 
to  return  from  a  visit  of  inquiry  to  Formosa,  to  which  they 
had  been  commissioned  by  the  Bishops  in  Japan  : 

You  will  be  surprised  to  find  me  gone  on  your  return. 
It  is  a  great  grief  to  me  from  all  points  of  view,  but  it 
seemed  right  to  obey  the  doctors'  very  clear  orders. 

Some  of  those  v/ho  saw  the  Bishop  leave  Japan  recalled 
afterwards  their  fears  that  he  could  never  so  recover 
as  to  resume  his  work  there.  But  no  such  thought 
was  present  to  his  own  mind.  Indeed,  through  all  the 
long  weary  months  of  illness  that  followed,  one  great 
characteristic  was  his  buoyant  hopefulness  and  eager  anti- 
cipation of  return  to  work.  The  words  of  his  farewell  to 
his  clergy  given  below  are  rather  a  proof  of  his  constant 
and  habitual  realisation  of  the  continuity  of  life  and  of  the 
nearness  of  the  unseen  world  than  a  sign  that  he  felt  his 
days  on  earth  were  numbered. 

To  the  Reverend  the  Clergy  and  the  Laity  of  the 
South  Tokyo  Chiho 

Bishopstowe,  ligura,  Azabu,  Tokyo  : 
The  Vigil  of  St.  Andrew,  1896. 

My  dear  Brethren, — It  is  a  great  grief  to  me  to  be 
leaving  Japan  just  at  the  present  time.  Now,  however, 
that  many  weeks  have  passed  by  since  I  was  first  laid  aside 
by  illness,  and  I  am,  though  better,  unable  to  undertake  my 


390 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


ordinary  duties,  there  seems  to  be  no  doubt  that  it  is  my 
duty  to  accept  the  medical  decision,  and  seek  a  full  restora- 
tion of  my  health  and  strength  by  a  change  of  climate.  I 
know  that  you  will  give  me  the  help  of  your  special  prayers 
that  if  it  is  God's  will  I  may  before  long  resume  my  work 
among  you. 

Let  me  only  add,  dear  brethren,  that  it  is  perhaps 
well  for  us  to  be  reminded  in  this  way  how  little  the  work 
of  any  one  person  is  necessary  to  the  certain  final  triumph 
of  the  Kingdom  of  Christ  ;  and,  on  the  other  hand,  how 
important  it  is  that  each  of  us  should  '  redeem  the  oppor- 
tunity '  which  each  day  offers  as  it  passes,  remembering  the 
great  teaching  of  our  Advent  season  that  '  the  time  is 
short '  and  '  the  Master  near.' 

Asking  for  you  the  peace  and  blessing  of  God,  I  am, 
Yours  faithfully  and  affectionately  in  Christ, 

Edw.  Bickersteth,  Bishop. 

But  there  can  be  no  doubt  that  the  strenuous  labour  of 
the  past  three  years,  together  with  the  strain  and  worry  of 
special  anxieties  in  his  work,  had  wearied  him  and  taken 
more  out  of  him  than  he  or  others  knew. 

A  vivid  picture  of  the  life  at  Bishopstovve,  and  of  the 
impression  made  by  the  Bishop  on  those  who  came  into 
touch  with  him,  is  given  in  the  following  recollections  most 
kindly  furnished  by  Mrs.  J.  F.  Bishop,  the  well-known 
lady  traveller  and  now  equally  well-known  advocate  of  the 
missionarj'  cause : 

20  Earl's  Terrace,  London,  W.  :  October  6,  1898. 

Dear  Mr.  Bickersteth, — The  first  time  that  I  met  the 
late  Bishop  Edward  Bickersteth  was  in  1888  at  dinner  at 
the  house  of  the  late  Bishop  and  Mrs.  Perry.  He  was  the 
only  guest  besides  myself  The  prospect  of  his  presence 
had  been  held  out  to  me  as  a  great  treat,  and  so  truly  I 
found  it. 

His  portraits  are  very  like  him,  but  they  do  not  repre- 
sent his  great  height,  the  rapidity  and  energy  of  his 
movements,  or  the  vitality  and  earnestness  of  his  expres- 
sion, all  the  more  noticeable  because  he  had  then  only 
recently  recovered  from  the  breakdown  of  his  health  at 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIKE.      1893-1897        39 1 


Delhi,  from  which,  indeed,  he  never  did  tully  recover. 
Mental  vigour,  physical  energy,  and  broad  and  large  in- 
tellectual vitality  were  my  first  impressions  of  him. 

During  dinner  Bishop  Perry,  with  a  graceful  courtesy 
peculiarly  his  own,  declared  that  he  should  '  retire  from  the 
conversation,'  upon  which  I  took  upon  myself  to  elicit 
Bishop  Bickersteth's  opinions  upon  .several  Japanese  sub- 
jects, on  all  of  which  he  had  evidently  thought  carefully, 
and  finally,  after  we  had  left  the  dinner-table,  on  the 
position  of  Christianity  in  Japan  and  its  probable  future. 

This  was  a  congenial  subject,  and  the  evening  passed 
swiftly  by  in  listening  to  Bishop  Bickersteth's  broad  and 
luminous  views.  The  graphic  account  he  gave  of  the  dis- 
cussions in  the  synod  of  the  Japanese  Church  then 
recently  held,  on  doctrine,  constitution,  the  Prayer  Book, 
the  proposed  National  Episcopal  Church,  and  the  adoption 
or  non-adoption  of  the  Thirty-nine  Articles  was  .so  lucid 
and  brilliant,  and  so  lightened  by  touches  of  humour  and 
picturesqueness,  that  I  have  never  forgotten  it,  and  it 
prepared  me  for  taking  something  of  an  intelligent  interest 
in  the  Japanese  Church  when  I  revisited  Japan  six  years 
later. 

When  I  was  at  Osaka  in  Japan,  in  1894,  I  received  a 
message  from  Mrs.  Bickersteth  offering  me  hospitality 
whenever  1  should  go  to  Tokyo,  and  the  following  year  I 
visited  them  for  the  first  time.  Their  house,  Bishopstowe, 
in  the  green  and  hilly  suburb  of  Azabu,  stands  back  from 
a  pretty  Japanese  lane,  among  Japanese  houses  and  shady 
gardens.  It,  like  its  neighbours,  is  built  of  wood.  The 
back  has  a  very  pretty  view,  and  there  is  a  very  large 
lawn  bordered  by  maples  and  other  Japanese  trees,  pro- 
fusely blossoming  gardenias,  and  sunflowers.  The  front 
and  porch  are  hidden  by  a  clematis.  It  is  not  a  pretty 
house,  but  it  had  the  quiet  comfortable  look  of  home. 
The  house  is  roomy,  and  answered  admirably  for  the 
'  Hostel '  which  they  made  it.  The  clergy,  the  missionaries, 
strangers,  were  all  welcome,  and  both  in  Tokyo  and  at  a 
house  which  the  Bishop  built  in  the  Karuizawa  hills,  they 
received  and  nursed  and  fed  into  health  invalids  and  people 
recovering  from  illness,  not  only  of  the  mission  but  out- 
siders. During  one  of  my  visits  diphtheria  attacked  the 
youngest  of  a  large  family,  ai)d  as  soon  as  the  malady  was 
heard  of,  the  other  children  were  immediately  sent  for  to 


392 


BISHOl'  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


Bishopstowe,  where  they  remained  for  a  considerable  time  ; 
the  risk  of  receiving  them  being  cheerfully  run  by  both  host 
and  hostess. 

The  Bishop's  study  was  a  bright  room  upstairs,  nobly 
lined  with  a  very  fine  library,  to  which  the  best  books  as 
they  came  out  were  constantly  added,  producing  an  over- 
flow on  tables  and  even  chairs.  It  was  the  library  of  a 
man  of  severe  yet  eclectic  literary  tastes,  as  well  as  of  a 
student.  The  servants  were  Japanese.  The  head  man, 
having  lived  nine  years  with  the  Bishop,  was  absolutely 
devoted  to  him.  No  English  was  spoken.  The  domestic 
arrangements  were  as  harmonious  as  all  else. 

I  have  dwelt  thus  long  on  the  house,  because  such  were 
the  surroundings  among  which  Bishop  Bickersteth's  brief 
and  blessed  married  life  was  spent — an  ideal  married  life, 
beautiful  in  mutual  love  and  reverence,  and  in  the  strength 
of  twain  for  all  good  and  loving  works. 

I  was  with  them  immediately  on  their  return  from  Eng- 
land (in  June  1896),  and  was  grieved  to  see  that  the  Bishop 
had  not  benefited  by  the  voyage.  He  seemed  languid  and 
weak,  and  found  his  head  less  able  than  usual  for  continu- 
ous work.  For  the  summer  they  went  to  Karuizawa,  but  it 
failed  to  restore  him,  and  when  I  returned  to  what  had  by 
this  time  become  my  home,  Bishopstowe,  I  was  shocked  at 
the  manifest  change.  His  movements  were  languid,  he 
no  longer  leapt  energetically  and  eagerly  to  his  work,  but 
goaded  himself  to  it ;  his  head  not  only  ached  with  a  weary 
ache,  but,  as  he  said,  '  felt  vacant,'  and  his  digestive  powers 
had  failed  so  m.uch  that  he  was  living  on  a  very  light  diet. 
Weak  and  ill  as  he  was,  he  made  the  effort  to  preach.  He 
looked  very  ill  and  found  a  difficulty  in  standing  ;  but 
there  was  no  failure  in  vigour  of  thought  and  expression, 
or  in  that  deep  spirituality  of  tone  which  was  one  of  his 
marked  characteristics.  The  same  evening,  I  think,  the 
illness  began  which  ended  fatally  ten  months  later. 

I  cannot  venture  to  give  any  sketch  of  his  character, 
but  I  must  mention  some  of  the  points  which  came  out 
very  prominently  during  my  acquaintance  with  him.  Every 
part  of  his  nature  seemed  under  strict  discipline,  and  yet 
there  was  a  great  spontaneity  about  him,  nothing  rigid  or 
strait-laced,  and  he  threw  himself  very  sympathetically 
into  the  intellectual  and  other  interests  of  other  people,  and 
children,  when  he  played  with  them,  recognised  him  as  a 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     1893-1S97  393 


playmate.  He  was  very  bright  in  conversation,  and  saw 
the  humorous  aspects  of  events  and  characters  very  keenly. 
His  domestic  life  was  harmonious  and  beautiful.  His 
courtesy  to  the  Japanese  servants  was  unfailing.  His  time 
was  always  at  the  disposal  of  anyone  who  sought  him,  and 
the  seekers  were  many,  and  might  often  have  been  regarded 
in  the  light  of  interruptions  solely.  But  that  was  not  his 
view.  He  used  hospitality  without  grudging,  and  indeed 
when  yesterday,  in  Westminster  Abbey,  at  the  consecra- 
tion of  two  prelates,  I  heard  the  passage  read  on  the 
qualifications  essential  for  a  Bishop,  I  thought  how  your 
lamented  brother  possessed  them  all. 

Naturally  I  saw  much  of  his  relations  with  his  '  fellow 
workers,'  both  English  and  Japanese,  and  they  were  of  a 
very  happy  nature.  The  workers  all  had  the  certainty  of 
the  personal  interest  of  the  Bishop  in  themselves,  their 
work,  and  their  difficulties,  and  they  consulted  him  regard- 
ing everything,  well  assured  of  the  soundness  of  his 
judgment  and  the  thorough  disinterestedness  of  his  advice. 
The  wholesome  ascendancy  which  his  strong  character  and 
personal  devoutness  gave  him,  though  possibly  unsuspected 
by  himself,  and  used  only  in  the  exercise  of  his  mission  as 
the  '  chief  pastor  of  the  flock,'  together  with  extreme  tact, 
as  well  as  high  intellectual  ability,  enabled  him,  by  simply 
being  what  he  was,  to  prevent  friction  arising  among  the 
workers,  and  helped  him  to  help  them  to  rise  above  the 
littlenesses  and  undue  absorption  with  the  pettinesses  of 
detail  which  infest  mission  work,  and  ofttimcs  render  it 
unfruitful.  I  have  never  seen  a  mission  in  which  a  brighter 
spirit  and  greater  harmony  prevailed. 

Also  I  noticed,  and  with  very  great  pleasure,  that  no 
difference  was  made  by  the  Bishop  between  the  English 
priests  and  deacons  and  the  Japanese.  It  seems  almost 
natural  for  the  European  to  treat  the  Oriental  as  his 
inferior,  an  assumption  of  superiority  greatly  resented  by 
the  high-spirited  Japanese,  as  well  as  the  attempt  made 
in  some  quarters  to  treat  them  like  children.  Bishop 
Bickersteth,  on  the  contrary,  helped  the  native  clergy  and 
other  workers  to.  occupy  a  position  of  equality.  He 
treated  them  with  the  utmost  courtesy,  received  them 
socially  and  frequently,  and  encouraged  them  to  a  free 
expression  of  opinion  regarding  controverted  points  and 
methods  of  work.    I  feel  sure  that  the  result  was  that  they 


394 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


were  very  much  more  disposed  to  consult  him  on  all 
points  and  to  accept  his  guidance  than  if  there  had  been 
anything  tutorial  in  his  manner  of  dealing  with  them. 

Then  he  never  spared  himself  In  bad  health  he 
travelled  through  his  diocese,  including  the  remote  parts 
of  the  Hokkaido,  when  the  facilities  for  travel  were  fewer 
than  they  are  now  ;  never  shrinking  from  fatigue,  exposure 
to  deleterious  weather,  unsuitable  and  insufficient  food, 
ofttimes  wretched  accommodation,  and  hosts  of  vermin. 

His  being  at  once  a  scholar,  a  student,  and  a  man  of 
the  world,  also  helped  him  with  the  Japanese.  His 
scholarly  acquisition  of  their  language  enabled  him  to 
converse  readily  on  the  topics  of  the  day  with  educated 
men,  and  his  knowledge  of  the  world  saved  him  from 
falling  into  the  mistakes  so  naturally  made  in  coming  to 
reside  in  a  country  with  a  very  elaborate  civilisation.  He 
had  adopted  Japan  as  his  country,  purposing  to  live  and 
die  there,  and  none  of  its  interests  were  foreign  to  him. 
He  had  grasped  the  political  situation,  recognised  the 
relative  values  of  the  factors  in  it,  and  the  dangers  which 
are  arising  on  the  hitherto  triumphal  march  of  progress. 
The  singular  grasp  and  breadth  of  his  mind  gave  him  a 
power  of  taking  in  the  situation  and  future  of  the  Church 
in  Japan  in  all  its  bearings,  and  all  detail  in  his  view  was 
to  be  regarded  as  the  laying  the  foundation  of  an  ecclesi- 
astical edifice,  which  was  to  be  a  Japanese  Holy  Catholic 
Society,  with  its  own  constitution.  Canons,  and  peculiarities, 
not  an  exotic  offshoot  of  a  foreign  Church.  It  was 
obvious  that  in  his  ideas  and  hopes  the  work  to  which  he 
daily  attended  carefully  and  laboriously  was  but  in  the 
direction  of  preparation  for  this  great  end.  He  often  said 
that  he  regarded  his  work  as  one  of  foundation  laying, 
preparation,  and  instruction,  and  that  he  hoped  to  see  the 
day  when  a  Japanese  Bishop  would  occupy  his  place. 
This  breadth  of  outlook,  to  which  details  were  subordinate, 
gave  him  such  a  peculiar  fitness  for  guiding  the  infancy  of 
the  Church  to  what  he  regarded  as  its  adult  destinies  that 
the  Providence  which  to  our  thinking  removed  him  prema- 
turely must  always  remain  a  mystery. 

When  I  recall  the  earnestness  of  the  daily  intercessory 
service  in  the  quiet  chapel  at  Bishopstowe,  I  am  reminded 
that,  dear  as  Church  ordinances  and  methods  were  to  him, 
they  were  but  the  means  to  the  great  end  of  the  creation 


A  MISSIONARY  BISHOP'S  LIFE.     1 893- 1 897  395 


of  a  body  of  faithful  men  and  women  who  should  adorn 
the  doctrine  of  God  our  Saviour  in  all  things. 

Before  I  saw  Bishop  Bickersteth  in  Japan  a  missionary, 
now  himself  a  Bishop,  who  was  very  far  from  sympathising 
with  some  of  your  brother's  Church  views,  remarked  to 
me  :  '  It  is  a  great  privilege  to  receive  him  as  a  guest  ;  he 
does  us  good,  he  is  such  a  very  holy  man.'  In  his  own 
perfectly  ordered  home  I  felt  the  truth  of  this  verdict. 
He  obviously  lived  under  '  the  powers  of  the  world  to 
come,'  in  the  vision  of  that  unseen  on  which  he  was  so 
soon  to  enter.  The  deep  spirituality  of  his  nature  which 
impressed  those  who  knew  him  at  Delhi  was  not  the  less 
remarkable  in  Japan.  He  turned  from  conversation  on 
things  so-called  secular  to  things  spiritual  so  easily  and 
naturally  as  to  deprive  his  auditor  of  all  sense  of  abrupt- 
ness or  dislocation  in  the  transition. 

Trained  under  Bishop  Lightfoot  and  Bi.shop  Westcott, 
I  was  not  surprised  at  his  scholarship,  at  once  profound 
and  graceful,  his  erudition,  his  remarkable  knowledge  of 
the  history  of  Churches  and  of  dogma,  and  the  intellectual 
equipment  which  fitted  him,  as  few  are  fitted,  to  face  the 
elaboration  and  fine  spun  metaphysics  of  the  faiths  of  the 
East.  But  it  was  a  matter  for  daily  astonishment  how  he 
found  leisure  in  his  laborious  life  to  keep  in  touch  with 
political  and  social  movements,  and  to  be  well  acquainted 
with  Church  affairs  and  home  politics. 

My  letter  is  exceeding  all  reasonable  limits,  and  yet 
fails  to  include  much  of  what  I  should  like  to  say  of  his 
great  conversational  powers,  his  keen  acumen  and  insight, 
the  breadth  of  his  views,  his  very  strong  Churchmanship, 
combined  with  his  full  and  hearty  recognition  of  the 
spiritual  attainments  and  work  of  members  of  other  com- 
munions, his  intense  earnestness,  his  broad  views  as  to  the 
future  of  the  Japanese  Church,  and  his  recognition  of  the 
adaptations  of  Western  to  Eastern  methods  which  would 
be  an  essential  element  of  its  growth  ;  his  self-sacrificing  and 
single  minded  effort,  his  devotion  to  mission  work,  which 
compelled  him  to  plead  for  it  at  the  Lambeth  Conference 
even  with  the  hand  of  death  upon  him,  his  self-denial  in 
daily  life,  his  love  of  children,  his  playfulness,  his  thought- 
fulness  for  others,  his  intellectual  honesty,  which  compelled 
him  to  state  the  views  of  opponents  as  fully  and  clearly  as 
his  own,  and  the  purity  and  sincerity  of  his  life. 


396 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


Of  his  thoughtful  kindness  to  myself  I  cannot  speak  too 
gratefully.  In  the  peaceful  atmosphere  of  Bishopstowe 
and  in  that  busy  life  of  work  which  never  degenerated 
into  hurry,  no  one  was  overlooked  or  forgotten  ;  kindness 
in  word  and  act  was  both  rule  and  habit.  I  felt  more 
and  more,  as  I  knew  the  Bishop  better,  that  the  beauty 
of  his  life  and  character  came  from  his  lifelong  habit  of 
living  in  the  realisation  of  the  Divine  Presence,  and 
under  '  the  powers  of  the  world  to  come.'  When  I  left 
Tokyo  for  Yumoto  in  June  1896  he  asked  if  I  had  with 
me  a  copy  of  '  The  Imitation  of  Christ,'  and  on  finding  that 
I  had  not  he  gave  me  a  copy  which  he  had  used  himself. 
It  is  very  touching  to  find  that  all  the  passages  on  selfish 
ness,  worldliness,  and  humility  are  marked. 

His  power  of  organisation  appeared  to  me  great,  but  he 
recognised  the  need  of  something  more.  Miss  Thornton 
mentioned  that  in  speaking  to  her  with  reference  to  her 
co-workers,  he  said,  '  You  must  do  more  than  organise — 
you  must  inspire.'  So  his  own  words  and  the  breadth  of 
his  outlook  on  the  future  of  mission  work  in  Japan  ofttimes 
came  to  his  own  fellow-workers  with  the  stimulating  and 
sustaining  power  of  an  inspiration,  making  them  feel  '  like 
doing  double  the  work  they  had  been  doing,  or  doing 
it  doubly  as  well.' 

Recalling  what  he  was  in  himself,  what  he  was  to  his 
fellow-workers,  and  what  he  was  to  the  present  and  future 
of  the  Church  in  Japan,  his  own  daily  life  appears  to  me 
the  fulfilment  of  the  striking  sentence  in  his  last  words 
written  in  Japan  :  '  How  important  it  is  that  each  one  of  us 
should  redeem  the  opportunity  which  each  day  offers  as  it 
passes,  remembering  the  great  teaching  of  our  Advent 
season,  that  '  the  time  is  short  and  the  Master  near.'  In 
view  of  the  loss  he  is  to  his  own  family,  who  leant  upon 
him  and  looked  up  to  him,  to  the  councils  of  the  Church 
at  large,  and  very  specially  to  missions  in  Japan,  it  is  less 
easy  to  sympathise  fully  with  his  words  in  the  earlier  part  of 
the  same  sentence :  '  It  is  perhaps  well  for  us  to  be  reminded 
how  little  the  work  of  any  one  person  is  essential  to  the 
certain  final  triumph  of  the  Kingdom  of  Christ.' 

Yours  sincerely, 

Isabella  L.  Bishop. 


397 


CHAPTER  XI 

INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 

'  A  few  have  fallen  away  from  us,  whom  may  (jOcI  restore  !  but  on  the 
other  hand  many  who  had  before  accepted  their  religious  opinions  on  the 
authority  of  their  teachers  have  been  led  to  apprehend  with  more  explicit  an 
certain  conviction  how  entirely  the  Catholic  Creed  rests  on  the  Incarnation  of 
the  Son  of  God,  and  how  all  religious  systems  alike,  which  deny  this  verity, 
arc  antitheses  of  the  Gospel  as  understood  and  taught  by  the  Church  since 
apostolic  days.  They  have  learnt  too — and  the  lesson  is  worth  laying  to 
heart  -that  the  Gospel  of  the  Incarnation  and  the  Cross  is  not  to  be  defended 
as  an  abstract  system  of  doctrine  but  in  vital  connection  with  the  Sacraments 
and  means  of  grace  through  which  its  blessings  are  brought  home  to  believing 
souls  ;  in  other  words,  that  the  Person  and  acts  of  the  Lord,  not  primarily 
His  words,  are  the  substance  of  the  Gospel,  and  that  in  consequence  to  be  a 
Christian  is  not  merely  to  believe  in  His  teaching,  but  to  believe  in  Himself 
and  to  be  united  with  Him  in  the  sacred  society  of  which  He  is  the  Life  and 
Head.  Those  who  have  been  able  to  occupy  this  standpoint  are  on  a  vantage 
ground  for  the  defence  of  their  faith.' — Address  of  Bishop  Edward 
BlcKERSTETH  io  Fourth  Biennial  Synod  of  the  Nippon  Sci  Kokwai,  Novem- 
ber 29,  1893. 

The  early  love  of  reading  which  marked  Edward  Bicker- 
steth's  boyhood  grew  with  his  growth  and  ensured  that  he 
would  become  richer  in  knowledge  and  riper  in  judgment 
as  the  years  ran  on.  The  theological  bent  of  his  mind 
made  it  no  hard  thing  for  him,  even  before  his  ordi- 
nation, '  to  apply  himself  wholly  to  this  one  thing,  and  to 
draw  all  his  cares  and  studies  this  way.'  The  veriest 
fragments  of  time  he  would  turn  to  account,  not  only 
while  waiting  for  a  train,  but  even  while  being  whisked 
along  in  a  jinriksha,  he  would  dive  into  some  of  the 
volumes,  a  bag  of  which  invariably  accompanied  him  on 
all  his  journeys  whether  short  or  long.    He  was  seldom 


398 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


without  a  book  in  his  hand.  In  this  way  he  got  through 
an  enormous  quantity  of  reading,  not  only  of  patristic 
theology  and  of  standard  works,  but  also  of  more  ephemeral 
literature,  though  he  never  greatly  cared  for  novels. 

Passages  like  the  following  abound  in  his  home 
letters : 

To  his  Fatlier 

August  2,  1889. 

I  have  nearly  got  through  one  or  two  books  which 
have  been  some  time  on  hand — one  a  book  by  Gralry  on 
the  Creed.  He  was  a  Galilean  of  remarkable  parts  and 
powers.  I  fear  Ultramontanism  is  crushing  out  such 
men.  Then  I  have  all  but  completed  Origen's  '  De 
principiis.'  Truly  he  was  an  inquisitive  soul.  It  is  tire- 
some to  have  so  little  of  the  original  Greek.  Also,  I  have 
reached  the  15th  chapter  of  Evans's  'Commentary  on 
I  Corinthians.'  I  see  that  the  author,  whom  I  met  at 
Bishop  Auckland  last  October,  died  a  few  weeks  ago.  He 
was  a  remarkable  Greek  scholar  shortly  before  you  at 
Cambridge,  who  failed  to  pass  the  mathematical,  and  so 
could  not  enter  for  the  classical,  tripos. 

To  his  Sister  May 

August  2,  1889. 

I  have  nearly  finished  Gratry.  It  is  interesting  to  see 
how  an  able  and  devout  Galilean  slips  over  and  round  the 
difficulties  of  the  Roman  system — indulgences,  for  instance. 
It  is  impossible  that  what  he  says  about  the  Blessed  Virgin 
should  be  true,  and  so  vast  a  system  not  have  left  a  trace 
in  the  apostolic  writings  or  primitive  documents. 

To  his  Father 

Haruna  :  August  31,  1 889. 

It  is  a  big  party  here, ^  a  thing  most  inimical  to  reading, 
and  I  have  read  nothing  during  the  week  but  part  of 
Mozley  on  '  Predestination  ' — a  stiff  subject  and  volume, 
but  one  which  I  have  long  wished  to  study.  Also  I  got 
through  in  French  part  of  De  Sacy's  '  Commentary  on 
I  and  2  Timothy.'    De  Sacy  and  Quesnel  (to  judge  from 

'  He  was  then  the  guest  of  the  Ladies'  Institute  at  their  holiday  home. 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


399 


the  extracts  from  the  latter  in  Sadler),  the  two  Port 
Royalist  commentators,  are  both  still  worth  study.  The 
criticism  of  the  day  was,  of  course,  defective,  but  the 
substantial  truth  is  often  excellently  illustrated.  Matthew 
Henry  is  said  to  have  been  much  indebted  to  Quesnel, 
and  to  have  made  scant,  if  any,  acknowledgment. 

To  Miss  M.  Forsyth 

Nevin,  North  Wales  :  July  29,  1893. 

Yesterday  I  began  reading  a  French  theological  book 
with  May,  which  seems  interesting.  The  subject  is  early 
Christian  worship,  and  the  author  Duchesne.  He  is  the 
only  really  learned  person  (of  the  type  of  Lightfoot,  who 
had  a  great  respect  for  him,  among  Anglicans)  whom  the 
Galilean  Church  has  produced  for  many  years.  I  suppose 
that  the  hope  of  an  ultimately  reunited  Christendom  lies 
ver)'  largely  in  the  results  of  Christian  scholarship  and 
study,  especially  antiquarian  and  historical  study.  At 
least  it  is  bound  up  with  this,  as  bringing  out  what 
primitive  conceptions  of  the  Church  and  her  worship  and 
work  were  ;  where  there  have  been  legitimate  develop- 
ments, and  where  mere  incongruous  and  harmful  additions 
to  the  original  idea  and  methods. 

To  his  Father 

Kobe  :  May  I,  1890 
I  am  thinking  of  Dr.  Westcott  as  probably  to-day 
being  consecrated  to  Durham.  !t  is  pleasant  to  think  how 
the  traditions  of  the  See  will  be  maintained.  I  suppose  he 
will  continue  the  clergy  school  plan  in  part  of  Auckland 
Castle.  How  your  friends  have  mostly  reached  the 
episcopate!  I  travelled  down  last  night  from  Tokyo.  I 
brought  with  me  several  books  :  Bishop  Fraser's  '  Man- 
chester Life,'  which  seems  interesting  but  rather  spun  out 
His  was  not  the  kind  of  mind  which  attracts  me,  though  I 
admire  him.  '  Lux  Mundi,'  which  I  am  curious  to  read — 
the  book  seems  to  mark  a  cleft  between  the  old  and  new 
High  Churchmen — and  the  Bishop  of  Durham's  'Hebrews,' 
which  is  sure  to  be  crammed  with  thought.  I  have  written 
to  him  .saying  that  though  we  cannot  expect  many  com- 
mentaries, he  ought  to  publish  his  lectures  on  doctrine, 
which  I  know  he  has  ready  or  nearly  so. 


400 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


To  his  Sister  May 

May  14,  1890. 

I  have  finished  Bishop  Eraser's  '  Manchester  Life.'  He 
certainly  was  a  noble  example  of  a  man  who  brought  the 
faith  to  bear  on  social  problems,  but  he  does  not  interest 
me  like  the  men  who  study  the  problems  of  the  faith 
itself  (the  Bishop  of  Durham,  Dean  Church,  &c.).  All 
these  he  put  on  one  side  with  the  remark  that  nothing 
could  be  known. 

To  J  lis  Father 

Kobe  :  March  20,  1890. 

I  have  been  reading  the  second  volume  of  Burgon's 
'  Twelve  Good  Men.'  It  is  a  very  entertaining  book.  I 
doubt  if  quite  a  like  book  could  be  compiled  of  Cambridge 
life,  and  certainly  there  is  no  second  Burgon. 

Bishop  Westcott's  '  Commentary  on  the  Epistle  to  the 
Hebrews,'  alluded  to  above,  became  one  of  his  most 
favourite  books,  as  will  be  gathered  from  the  following 
extracts  : 

To  Miss  M.  Forsyth 

Exeter  :  July  18,  1 893. 

I  was  enjoying  half-an-hour  this  morning  over  the 
Bishop  of  Durham's  '  Hebrews.'  He  always  .seems  to  me 
to  penetrate  right  to  the  heart  of  things,  even  if  in  doing 
so  he  touches  '  great  deeps,'  where  his  paths  become  in- 
distinct and  hard  for  his  pupils  to  follow  him  in.  But  with 
all  his  minute  learning  he  never  becomes  small  or  narrow, 
and  so  his  teaching  is  always  inspiring  and  uplifting.  I 
was  reading  him  on  our  Lord's  Priesthood — '  His  ability 
to  help,'  which  it  shall  be  ours,  I  trust,  always  to  know 
and  prove. 

To  his  Wife 

Kobe  :  March  18,  1895. 

Bishop  Westcott's  '  Commentary  on  the  Hebrews '  is 
quite  one  of  my  favourites,  though  I  do  not  think  it  is 
generally  appreciated.  The  stress  the  Bishop  has  laid  on 
those  two  doctrines  you  mention — '  the  absolute  motive,'  as 
he  calls  it,  of  the  Incarnation  (do  you  know  his  essay  on 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


401 


this  at  the  end  of  his  '  Commentary  on  the  ist  Epistle  of 
St.  John  '  ?),  and  the  true  meaning  of  to  alfia  tov  Xpiarov — 
is  one  of  his  greatest  services  to  theology.  Not  that  in 
the  latter  of  these  two  the  old  meaning  is  wrong — only 
insufficient — though,  of  course,  the  old  was  often  wrongly 
stated. 

To  his  Father 

Tokyo:  January  12,  1894. 

Have  you  seen  Dr.  Hort's  '  The  Way,  the  Truth,  and  the 
Life  '  ?  It  seems  to  me  very  helpful.  Even  the  Bishop  of 
Durham's  preface  scarcely  explains  the  long  delay  in 
bringing  out  the  lectures.  The  Cambridge  love  of  perfec- 
tion is  sometimes  an  enemy  of 'the  good,'  if  it  occasionally 
produces  '  the  best.'  I  am  glad  to  have  known  what  I  did 
of  Professor  Hort,  and  should  have  valued  further  acquain- 
tance. One  wonders  what  Cambridge  theology  will  become 
without  its  leaders,  in  what  direction  it  will  tend  ? 

I  also  occasionally  get  a  short  time  over  St.  Athanasius. 
Especially  on  Sunday  afternoon  I  have,  if  I  am  at  home, 
a  short  read  of  him.  Certainly  the  old  Greek  Fathers  had 
a  very  strong  hold  of  the  Creed  in  a  way  to  which  later 
times  have  scarcely  attained,  and  so  their  writings  seem 
especially  useful  for  modern  missions  in  the  East. 

This  belief  in  the  value  of  the  early  Fathers  to  a  modern 
missionary  was  the  fruit  of  an  earlier  conviction,  he  having 
written  to  me  some  years  previously  (November  2,  1887)  : 

Whatever  else  evolution  teaches,  it  reveals  a  great  unity 
of  nature  such  as  we  did  not  before  conceive  of ;  but  from 
the  Christian  point  of  view  this  unity  leads  up  to  and  is 
summed  up  in  the  Person  of  Christ.  If,  then,  the  fourth 
century  Fathers  (Athanasius,  Basil,  Gregory  of  Nyssa)  can 
tell  us  something  more  about  the  meaning  and  the  bearing 
of  the  truth  of  Christ's  Person,  then  what  they  knew  and 
taught  will  have  a  direct  relation  to  meeting  the  dif¥iculties 
and  assimilating  the  teachings  of  modern  discovery.  I 
doubt  if  we  have  got  beyond  what  their  keen  Greek 
intellects  saw  and  the  Greek  language  expressed  ;  intellect 
and  language  being  both  instruments  of  a  fervid  piety.  I 
express  badly  what  I  only  see  imperfectly,  but  I  think  this 
is  true  as  far  as  it  goes. 


D  D 


402 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


To  Ids  Father 

Tokyo  :  July  27,  1890. 

I  am  reading  in  my  patristic  studies  some  treatises  on 
the  Lord's  Prayer.  I  have  read  Cyprian  and  Tertullian. 
I  mean  to  read  Origen,  Gregory  of  Nyssa,  and  Augustine. 
The  series  is  remarkable.  I  know  no  very  good  book  of 
modern  times,  do  you  I  have  not  seen  the  late  Bishop 
of  Salisbury's.  Tertullian  is  certainly  a  master  of 
phrases — for  instance,  when  he  calls  the  Prayer  '  Evangelii 
Breviarium.' 

Being  a  missionary  to  such  nimble-witted  people  as 
the  Japanese,  he  also,  as  in  duty  bound,  read  largely 
books  of  criticism,  whether  they  took  the  form  of  direct  or 
indirect  attacks  on  the  faith,  though  he  wrote  (August  23, 
1893)  :  '  I  have  never  been  able  to  take  so  much  interest  in 
mere  critical  studies  as  in  those  which  are  more  positive 
and  constructive.' 

To  his  Sister  May 

1889. 

I  am  reading  Laing's  '  Modern  Science  and  Modern 
Thought,'  ^  a  heavy  attack  on  the  faith,  or  rather,  so  far  as 
as  I  have  yet  seen,  on  the  faith  misapprehended.  This  is 
the  usual  case.  Well,  we  Christians  have  largely  ourselves 
to  blame  when  it  is  so,  and  should  be  thankful  for  being 
made  to  state  our  creed  more  carefully.  In  this  respect 
such  books  as  '  The  Historic  Faith  '  and  '  The  Faith  of  the 
Gospel '  are  an  immense  advance.  Only  may  we  live  by 
what  we  learn  more  and  more. 

Again  : 

Haruna  :  Ninth  Sunday  after  Trinity,  1889. 

I  have  had  a  week  here  and  have  enjoyed  it.  During 
it  I  have  read  through  '  Robert  Elsmere.'    It  might  do 

'  In  his  Lenten  Pastoral  (1890),  Note  I,  he  wrote  :  'This  book  collects 
in  a  convenient  form  a  series  of  the  latest  objections  to  Christianity,  scientific 
and  critical.  Its  summary  of  the  results  of  modern  scientific  discovery  is 
brilliant  and  interesting,  though,  I  am  told,  inaccurate.  This  fault  is  certainly 
very  apparent  in  its  attempted  estimate  of  the  Christian  argument.' 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


403 


some  good,  perhaps,  to  unbelievers  of  the  Huxley  type,  or 
a  Broad  Churchman  who  was  untrue  to  the  Church  and  her 
teaching. 

To  the  ordinary  Churchman  I  fear  it  would  often  do 
harm,  but  much  less  harm  than  the  excellent  telling  of  the 
story,  the  description  of  the  characters,  and  knowledge  of 
various  spiritual  states  on  the  part  of  the  authoress  might 
in  themselves  have  produced,  because  nothing  could  be 
thinner  or  less  satisfying  than  the  proposed  substitute  for 
the  faith  (inferior  to  Hinduism).  Also  the  historical  argu- 
ment is  mis-stated  twenty  times — e.g.  the  proposed  com- 
parison of  the  Gospel  miracles  with  others,  real  or  alleged, 
in  the  first  century  only  leads  to  the  conviction  of  the 
solitary  supremacy  of  those  of  our  Lord.  But  it  is  part  of 
the  cruelty  of  the  book  that  it  hints  at  difficulties  in 
general  terms  which  would  have  been  seen  to  be  unreal 
and  baseless  had  the  particulars  been  filled  in. 

Part  of  the  line  taken  by  Mrs.  H.  Ward  has,  I  think, 
been  given  occasion  to  by  false  methods  of  evidence  on 
the  part  of  Christian  apologists — e.g.  the  right  order  of 
things  is  this :  (a)  The  general  historic  truth  of  the  Bible, 
leading  to  a  belief  in  (J?)  revelation,  justifying,  and  making 
possible  a  consideration  of  (c)  inspiration.  Mrs.  Ward 
assumes  throughout  that  the  true  order  is  inspiration,  irutli^ 
revelation  ;  and  much  Christian  writing  does  the  same,  but 
most  mistakenly.  Again,  like  Paley,  the  squire  claims  to 
appeal  to  reason  only,  all  else  is  condemned  as  mysticism  ; 
but  in  truth  the  faith  appeals  to  man's  whole  complex 
being,  including  feeling  and  heart,  with  the  senses  of 
reverence,  fear,  love,  dissatisfaction,  &c.  Lastly,  I  conceive 
that  the  God  on  whom  Elsmere  ultimately  falls  back  is 
the  Christian  God,  and  that  the  love  which  is  predicated 
of  Him  essentially  demands  some  such  doctrine  as  the 
Incarnation  as  its  complement. 

The  book  is  therefore  illogical,  except  in  the  character 
of  the  squire,  which  is  the  last  thing  Mrs.  H.  W.  would 
like  to  admit. 

No  biography  of  any  eminent  man  made  a  stir  in 
England,  but  we  could  count  on  his  criticism  as  soon  as 
the  mails  had  given  him  time  to  read  it  and  write  about 
it.    I  may  give  as  instances  the  following : 

D  n  2 


404 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


To  his  Mother -in- Laiv 

Tokyo  :  January  3,  1895. 

It  is  the  day  of  the  S.P.G.  Annual  Conference  here,  but 
Imust  not  let  the  mail  go  out  without  just  a  few  lines  to 
thank  you  for  the  volume  of  Dr.  Pusey's  Life  which  you 
so  lovingly,  sent  me.  I  am  reading  it  with  great  interest. 
It  is  quite  a  history  of  the  Church  of  England  during  the 
long  years  of  his  life,  as  there  were  very  few  events  of  any 
importance  in  which  he  had  not  some  share,  if  only  by  way 
of  expression  of  opinion.  One  feels  on  reading  the  book 
with  what  a  very  holy  soul  one  is  brought  into  touch  ;  as  a 
teacher  he  was  in  no  way  original,  and  varied  tiresomely  at 
different  stages  of  his  career,  but  as  a  saint  he  was  always 
an  example  which  one  is  thankful  to  have  set  before  one. 

To  his  Sister  May 

Karuizawa  :  September  9,  1896. 

I  have  read  Manning  with  deepest  interest.    I  feel 

(1)  That  the  book  does  nothing  towards  bridging  the 
gulf  from  the  true  position  '  God  wills  to  lead  us  through 
His  Church '  to  the  assumed  position  '  God  wills  to  lead  us 
through  the  Pope  of  Rome.' 

Manning  leapt  the  chasm,  but  I  cannot  see  that  he  did 
anything  to  bridge  it. 

(2)  That  which  was  best  in  him  as  a  Roman  (e.g.  his 
insistence  on  the  great  truths  of  the  creed)  he  learnt  as  an 
Anglican.  Even  to  the  end,  he  was  not  a  mere  Roman 
Catholic.  The  last  chapter  is,  I  think,  the  most  instructive. 
His  tribute  to  the  Church  of  England  in  his  last  paper  is 
remarkable. 

But  if  the  Church  of  England  wishes  to  retain  men  of 
that  stamp  it  really  must  be  freer  to  do  its  work  than  it  is 
now,  and  I  think  that  in  time  she  will  be.  Already  there 
is  a  great  difference  between  our  condition  now  and  in 
1830. 

To  his  Sister  May 

Karuizawa  :  September  21,  1896. 

Best  thanks  for  yours  on  Manning.  How  extraordinary 
it  is  that  he  did  not  see  that  when  an  QEcumenical  Council 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


405 


became  for  the  time  impossible,  God  could  still  guide  His 
Church  to  real  decisions,  and  did  do  so. 

Thus,  for  instance,  the  Anselmic  doctrine  of  satisfaction, 
the  Lutheran  doctrine  of  the  imputation  of  Christ's  active 
obedience,  the  Calvinistic  doctrine  of  election,  are  all  quite 
as  dead  as  if  an  CKcumenical  Council  had  decided  against 
them. 

It  looks  so  like  mere  impatience  to  jump  without  proof 
to  an  infallible  City  or  Pope,  because  one  mode  of  decision 
is,  owing  to  our  sins,  for  the  time  being  debarred  us. 

The  above  extracts,  a  few  out  of  many,  are  a  sample 
of  his  habit  and  tone  of  mind,  and  justify  the  assertion 
that  in  books  he  found  unfailing  companionship.  The 
Japanese  seldom  failed  to  remark  on  this  love  of  reading 
evinced  by  their  Bishop,  and  there  is  no  doubt  that  his 
reputation  for  a  wide  knowledge  made  them  the  more 
ready  to  accept  his  leadership  in  crucial  times  and  in 
critical  cases. 

If  reading  makes  a  full  man,  we  know  on  high  authority 
that  writing  makes  an  exact  one ;  and  the  Bishop, 
although  not  fond  of  writing  and  finding  it  a  real  labour, 
since  he  was  never  satisfied  without  much  revision  and  re- 
revision,  yet  would  never  grudge  the  time  to  set  down  his 
views  in  black  and  white,  especially  when  asked  to  do 
so  by  younger  men  or  by  those  who  had  a  right  to  look 
to  him  for  guidance. 

When  I  was  at  St.  John's  College,  Oxford,  and,  after 
taking  my  degree,  was  preparing  for  Holy  Orders,  I 
remember  well  the  help  and  comfort  it  was  to  me  to 
receive  from  him  the  following  carefully  thought  out 
statement  on  the  doctrine  of  the  Atonement,  a  subject 
about  which  I  had  written  to  ask  him  for  guidance. 

Cambridge  Mission,  Delhi  :  March  28,  1881. 

My  dearest  Sam, — This  paper  has  been  due  to  you  a 
long  time.    I  have  written  it  out  in  haste,  but  hope  you 


4o6 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


will  be  able  to  read  it.  Whether  it  will  convey  to  you 
what  it  does  to  me,  I  do  not  know.  When  one  has 
thought  long  over  a  subject,  scraps  may  be  useful  which 
are  almost  useless  to  another.  Only  may  we  not,  in 
thinking  of  what  the  Atonement  was,  cool  in  any  way 
through  a  mere  intellectualism  in  love  towards  the  Atoner. 
I  feel  myself  the  great  danger  of  this. 

If  there  is  anything  you  care  for  in  this  paper,  copy  it 
out  and  then  please  return  it  to  me  again.  Remember  it 
is  speculation,  not  Gospel — Gospel  being  fact,  not  explana- 
tion of  fact.  St.  Francis  of  Assisi  preached  the  Cross 
through  Italy  and  to  the  Moslem,  I  doubt  if  he  ever 
thought  of  the  '  why  '  thereof  Still,  to  do  so  is  a  duty  to 
our  day,  as  Origen  thought  it  to  his.  .  .  .  Tell  me  the  day 
of  your  ordination.  I  suppose  Trinity  Sunday.  That 
day  I  shall  be  preaching  an  ordination  sermon  at  Amballa, 
D.V.,  at  Lefroy's  ordination.    Be  assured  of  my  prayers. 

Your  very  affectionate  Brother, 

Edw.  Bickersteth. 

The  Atonement 

All  theories  of  Atonement  seem  to  be  reducible  ulti- 
mately to  two,  which  may  be  called  (I.)  the  logical  or  legal, 
and  (II.)  the  moral  theories. 

I.  The  logical  theory,  or  the  theory  of  substituted 
punishment  (whether  quantitative  or  infinite),  is  commonly 
founded  on  certain  texts  in  Isa.  liii.,  Rom.  iii.,  and  the  use 
of  the  preposition  clvtL 

Difficulties  in  the  way  of  its  acceptance  are : 

(a)  That  it  does  not  seem  clear  that  justice  is  thereby 
satisfied,  or  that  the  means  whereby  it  is  proposed  to 
satisfy  divine  justice  is  otherwise  than  it.self  unjust. 

{b)  That  it  is  very  difficult  to  apprehend  what  the 
character  of  the  punishment  supposed  to  have  been  borne 
by  our  Lord  was;  if  (i)  temporal  death — plainly  Christ 
did  not  bear  this  by  way  of  substitution  ;  if  (2)  eternal 
death — our  Lord  did  not  bear  this  at  all  ;  if  (3)  the 
temporary  wrath  of  God — a  division  of  will  between  the 
Father  and  the  Son  is  implied  which  is  inconsistent  with 
the  unity  of  the  Godhead  :  if  (4)  the  sense  of  having  sinned 
(which  is  itself  to  the  truest  minds  the  chief  part  of  all 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


407 


punishment),  the  idea  is  inconsistent  with  our  Lord's 
sinlessness. 

{c)  The  theory  tatces  no  account  of  the  constant 
expressions  of  Scripture,  (i)  'dying  with  Christ,'  'being 
buried  with  Him,'  and  their  equivalents  ;  indeed,  it  seems 
ahnost  to  exclude  the  possibility  of  their  rightful  use  ;  also 
(2)  '  the  Son  of  Man,'  'the  second  Adam,'  which  imply  the 
unity  of  Christ  with  humanity  and  its  summing-up 
(uvaKccl)a\ai(vatg)  in  Him,  which  is  inconsistent  with  mere 
substitution. 

n.  T/ie  moral  theory  of  Atonement,  which  holds  that 
the  life  and  death  of  Christ  were  : 

1.  A  supreme  revelation  of  God's  love. 

2.  An  exhibition  of  sin  in  its  true  character. 

3.  A  satisfaction  of  the  broken  law  of  holiness.  (See 
Norris's  '  Rudiments  '  &c.) 

4.  A  supreme  act  of  repentance  and  confession  of  sin 
on  the  part  of  the  representative  man,  the  second  Adam — 
*  He  died  to  sin.'    (McLeod  Campbell, /^zjj/w.) 

5.  An  acknowledgment  in  a  typical  instance  (i.e.  by  the 
Head  of  the  race)  of  the  justice  of  the  punishment  of 
death  originally  imposed  as  the  penalty  of  sin,  sis  hSsi^iv 
rrjs  BtKaioovv>)s,  Rom.  iii.  25,  26. 

6.  The  elevation  of  the  whole  human  race  through 
suffering  borne  on  its  behalf  (See  Mozley,  '  Sermon  on 
Atonement.') 

7.  The  fontal  source  of  repentance  and  true  faith  in 
those  in  whom  the  mind  of  Christ  towards  both  sin  and 
God  is  reproduced,  through  a  true  and  real  union  with 
Him,  wrought  in  them  by  the  indwelling  of  the  Holy 
Spirit  and  the  grace  of  the  sacraments. 

Soi/ie  scattered  points  connected  with  the  above  theory  : 

{a)  This  theory  is  founded  on  the  belief  that  the  Atoner 
was  : 

(1)  True  Man. 

(2)  The  Man,  the  second  Adam  (otherwise  He 
would  have  atoned  for  Himself  alone). 

(3)  Sinless  (otherwise  a  perfect  realisation  of 
and  repentance  for  sin  in  its  essential  character  would 
have  been  impossible). 


408 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


(/')  Probably  the  easiest  way  of  representing  the  theory 
is  to  consider  the  position  of  Adam  immediately  after  the 
fall.  Two  ways  were  open  to  him  :  the  way  of  continued 
sinning,  issuing  in  death  and  wrath  ;  the  way  of  repentance, 
issuing  in  forgiveness,  death,  and  glory.  Either  way 
involved  the  infliction  of  the  original  sentence  of  death. 
Grace  prevented  him  from  taking  the  first,  but,  the  sin 
which  he  had  committed  involving  weakness,  prevented 
his  taking  the  second.  Christ,  being  sinless,  submitted  to 
death  with  a  full  recognition  of  the  justice  of  the  penalty 
on  the  human  race,  and  so  won  forgiveness  and  glory 
for  all  who  die  with  Him  (-maTavsLv  ds — avvdavdv  avv). 
That  which  man  unaided  could  not  do,  he  can  now  since 
the  cross  perform  sv  XpiaToj,  Rom.  viii.  3. 

From  II.  3,  4,  5,  the  Atonement  may  rightly  be  said 
to  have  been  a  satisfaction  of  God's  claim  on  sinners,  and 
5  may  partly  explain  the  connection  of  Christ's  death  in 
Scripture  with  the  forgiveness  of  sins.    (See  Creed.) 

III.  Two  defective  theories. 

(a)  The  theory  of  those  who  confine  the  whole  idea  of 
Atonement  to  a  revelation  of  the  love  of  God  ;  but  to  die 
in  order  to  display  love,  if  there  were  no  other  adequate 
cause  for  dying,  would  be  to  reduce  the  Atonement  to  a 
mere  pageant. 

(d)  The  theory  of  Mr.  McCleod  Campbell,  which  (i)  is 
founded  on  the  thought  of  the  spirit  of  sonship  displayed 
in  the  life  of  Christ  to  the  practical  exclusion  of  the 
thought  of  His  essential  Sonship  and  of  Headship  of 
humanity,  (2)  excludes  all  definite  reference  to  sacra- 
mental means  and  channels,  (3)  attaches  no  special  signifi- 
cance to  our  Lord's  death  as  distinguished  from  His 
life. 

IV.  No  theory  can  be  complete— mystery  must  always 
remain  around  (i)  the  relation  of  Christ  to  sin  ;  (2)  the 
effect  of  Atonement  on  the  mind  of  God  ;  (3)  the  origin  of 
sin.  Of  these  (i)  is  to  us  wholly  insoluble,  and  (2)  and  (3) 
are  strictly  dependent  on  the  other  mysteries  of  the 
Incarnation  and  the  Trinity. 

'  The  mystery  of  Adam  is  the  mystery  of  the  Messiah  ' 
— J  elvish  Rabbi. 

'Jesus  Christus  Victima  sacerdoti  suo,  et  sacerdos  suae 
Victimae.' — St.  Paulinus. 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


409 


'  fMOvoyevhs  uior,  irpwroroKOS  Ttjs  icTiascos,  o  Trpwros 
avOpcoTTos  'ASa/i,  6  scr^^^aTOS  'ABa/n,  ikaarrjpLOv,  aTToXvTpcoais, 
a(f>£ais,  KaTaWayt),  irpcoTOTOKog  sk  rwu  vsKpcbv,  Trjs  Tn'aTScos 
ap'^rj'yov  tal  tsXslcott^v.' —  St.  Paulus. 

'  'O  XptCTToy  evT)vdpcoT7r]acv,  iva  OeoTToii'jdcofiev.' — Si. 
A  tJianasuis. 

Subsequently  my  brother  supplemented  this  paper  by 
the  addition  of  the  following  :  ^ 

Sacrifice  and  Atonement 

Essential  Idea  of  Sacrifice,  surrender  of  will  (self-life) 
to  God. 

Heb.  X.  4-10  :  rjKw  tov  TrotrjaaL  to  OsXrjfMd  crov. 
This  idea  : 

A.  Foreshadoived  in  Levitical  Law  in  tripartite  form. 

{a)  Burnt  offering  (the  primary  sacrifice)  of  '  sweet 
savour ' — life  (voluntarily)  rendered  back  to  its  Author. 

{b)  Sin  offering — life  surrendered  to  God  in  view  of  its 
forfeiture  through  sin. 

(c)  Peace  offering — life  surrendered  in  order  to  complete 
communion  with  God. 

B.  Fulfilled  in  the  Death  of  Christ. 

Christ  meets  sin  in  its  supreme  act — deicide — without 
any  deflection  of  His  own  (human)  will  from  that  of  the 
Father,  and  surrenders  His  life  on  man's  behalf,  thus  at 
the  same  time  perfectly  revealing  both  :  (i)  Love.  St.  John 
iii.  16.  (ii)  Righteousness — especially  in  relation  to  pre- 
Incarnation  history.    Rom.  iii.  25. 

C.  Tlie  Results  of  the  Fulfilment. 

( rt)  ikacnrjpiQv  ;  (<5)  KaraXXayi] ;  (c)  dvoXvTpwais  ',  {d 
a<j)s<Tis. 

(a)  Propitiatioft,  Rom.  iii.  25.  Negatively,  cessation  of 
wrath  or  the  essential  alienation  between  God  and  sinners  ; 
positively,  recovery  of  access  through  Christ  ('Himself 
man ')  having  exhibited  in  life  and  death  the  '  mind ' 
(Phil.  ii.  6)  which  God  required.    This  Propitiation  is  said 

'  See  also  Appendix  C,  p.  490,  for  another  paper  on  '  Sacrifice.' 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


to  be  Ev  T(p  aLfjLdTi  avTov — that  is,  in  His  life  laid  down  and 
taken  again.    St.  John  x.  28. 

(b)  Reconciliation,  Rom.  v.  11.  The  spiritual  relation 
having  been  restored  between  God  and  man  which  man 
had  broken. 

{c)  Redemption.  Man's  salvation  having  been  accom- 
plished not  by  a  fiat  of  omnipotence,  but  at  the  cost  of 
Christ's  sufferings  and  death. 

id)  Forgiveness.  Release  from  the  consequences  of 
sin  ;  immediately  as  regards  acceptance,  adoption,  and 
union  with  God  in  Christ  (Eph.  i.  5)  ;  progressively,  as 
regards  the  attainment  of  holiness  (2  Peter  iii.  1 8) ; 
finally,  as  regards  the  redemption  of  the  body  (Rom. 
viii.  23). 

[N.B. — The  phrase  alpe'iv  rrjv  ajxapriav  rov  Koaftov 
(St.  John  i.  29)  involves  a  mystery  insoluble  to  us,  as 
being  correlative  with  the  mystery  of  the  assumption  of 
humanity  by  the  Word.  The  Atonement  not  a  bearing  of 
the  wrath  of  the  Father  by  the  Son,  nor  of  an  equivalent 
punishment  for  sin,  for  there  is  no  such  phrase  in  the  New 
Testament  as  these  theories  would  demand  (e.g.  KaraXXdacrsiv 
TO''  dsov,  'CKaadai  tqv  6s6v).  The  Xvrpov  is  not  said  to  be 
paid  to  the  Father  (Calvin)  or  to  Satan  (Origen) ;  BtaWayr^ 
(8ta-  involves  equivalence)  is  not  used.] 

D.  T/ie  Extent  of  the  Efficacy  of  Sacrifice  so  considered. 

Potentially,  by  virtue  of  the  unique  personality  of 
Christ,  Son  of  God  and  son  of  Man,  the  Word.  Actually, 
01  iriaroi — i.e.  those  who,  having  been  baptised  into  the 
Divine  Nature  (St.  Matt,  xxviii.  19),  die  to  sin  (fMsravoLa, 
Rom.  vi.  2  ffi),  and  live  in  Christ  Risen. 

Cf  Clement  R.  vii.  :  -navrl  tm  Koafxa  iisravoias  ^aptv 

E.  The  Perpetuation  of  the  Sacrifice. 

(i)  h  Tols  sTTovpaviois.  The  Presence  of  Christ  in 
heaven,  perfected  through  suffering  and  resurrection 
ceaselessly  {eU  to  Bltivskes,  Heb.  x.  12  ;  KaO'  rjiiipav,  Heb. 
vii.  26)  pleads  on  man's  behalf  (Heb.  vii.  25),  and  is  '  the 
constant  display  before  the  P'ather,  and  inner  repetition,  of 
the  one  sacrifice '  of  the  Cross. 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


411 


Cf.  ispsvs  et'y  tov  uloiva.     Heb.  v.  6. 

dvayKalov  i L  Kul  tovtov  0  irpoaivi^Kr}.  Heb.  viii.  3- 

f^oyLiSj/  6vaiaori']pLov.     Heb.  xiii.  10. 
apvLov  ft)y  iacf>a'y/j,£Vov.     Rev.  v.  6. 

(ii)  7^/^^  Church  on  earth  in  and  through  her  Head 
pleads  the  sacrifice  of  Calvary,  and  offers  herself  to  God. 
Rom.  xii.  i,  2  ;  cf  Eph.  v.  27  ;  Heb.  xiii.  12,  13.  Of  this 
sacrificial  worship  the  Eucharist  is  the  chief  act  and 
collective  expression,  i  Cor.  xi.  25,  26.  Other  acts  are 
efficacious  only  so  far  as  they  partake  in  the  same  principle — 
e.g.  praises  (Heb.  xiii.  15);  good  deeds  and  alms  (Heb. 
xiii.  16  ;  cf  Acts  x.  4).  (The  unconsecrated  bread  and 
wine  are  not  the  characteristic  sacrifice  of  the  New  Cove- 
nant. This  would  be  a  reversion  to  Judaism.)  Christians 
are  severally  consecrated  to  take  part  as  priests  in  the 
sacrificial  acts  of  the  Church  by  the  laying  on  of  hands 
following  on  baptism  (Acts  ii.  38  ;  viii.  17  ;  cf  i  Peter 
ii.  9).  The  official  ministry  of  the  Church,  in  succession 
from  the  Apostles,  is  set  apart  by  a  second  use  of  the  same 
sign  (Acts  vi.  6  ;  2  Tim.  i.  6).  The  Eucharist  feast  follows 
(as  in  the  typical  system)  on  the  sacrificial  oblation. 

This  sacrifice  is  in  principle  identical  throughout,  from 
its  earliest  anticipation  to  its  fullest  and  latest  accomplish- 
ment. 

Bishop  Bickersteth  was  intensely  interested  in  such 
efforts  as  were  made  in  '  Lux  Mundi  '  to  interpret  the  faith, 
so  it  might  be  better  understood  '  in  an  age  of  profound 
transformation  '  He  followed  the  criticisms  and  rejoinders 
to  the  criticisms  with  unfailing  attention,  jotting  down  his 
own  impressions  from  a  country  inn  or  wayside  station. 

With  regard  to  Canon  Gore's  contributions  to  the 
controversy  in  '  Lux  Mundi '  and  in  the  Bampton  Lectures 
of  1 89 1  as  to  the  Holy  Spirit  and  Inspiration,  he  wrote  : 

To  his  Father 

Tokyo  :  June  10,  1890. 

In  itself  I  feel  it  is  just  one  of  those  questions  on  which 
it  is  wisdom  to  allow  large  liberty.  The  penalty  of  over- 
statement on  either  side  is  to  be  upset  by  some  more  scholarly 


412 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETll 


mind  and  more  balanced  judgment.  It  is  not  a  matter  for 
ecclesiastical  censure.    Do  you  agree  with  me  ? 

Again  : 

Gore  is  perfectly  clear  on  the  infallibility  of  our  Lord, 
but  thinks  He  did  not  authorise  any  view  of  the  authority 
of  Old  Testament  books.  I  disagree  with  him,  but  still 
the  two  main  questions  involved  seem  to  me  very  difficult. 

1.  The  effect,  if  any,  of  the  assumption  of  humanity 
on  our  Lord's  Divine  Nature. 

2.  The  communication,  if  any  or  more  or  less,  of  divine 
knowledge  to  His  human  mind  directly,  or  whether  His 
superhuman  knowledge  was  rather  8ta  rou  -nvsufxaTos. 

On  the  first  there  seems  but  little  light  of  any  kind. 
On  the  second  a  full  study  of  the  Gospels  ought  to  throw 
some,  but  I  have  seen  nothing  satisfactory.  Please  tell  me 
if  you  have  any  thoughts  on  these  deep  matters.  I  thought 
of  writing  a  pastoral  in  the  autumn. 

The  Bishop  enjoyed  and  valued  some  personal  friend- 
ship with  Canon  Gore,  of  whom  he  wrote  : 

To  his  Father 

June  1892. 

I  have  got  as  far  as  Gore's  sixth  Lecture.  If  Arch- 
deacon Hare  was  right  that  a  poet  is  the  greatest  gift  God 
gives  to  a  nation,  I  suppose  a  theologian  is  among  the 
greatest  gifts  to  a  Church  ;  and  though  I  fancy  he  has  got 
off  the  lines  on  a  point  or  two,  yet  I  cannot  but  think  that 
Gore  may  really  be  counted  among  the  few  masters  in 
theology. 

On  the  difficult  question  of  Old  Testament  criticism 
his  natural  disinclination  to  write  or  speak  strongly  where 
he  had  not  deeply  studied  for  himself  the  authorities  on 
either  side  led  him  always  to  qualify  his  judgment  and 
to  take  a  place  among  the  Ephectici,  the  men  who  in  every 
age  have  been  ready  to  suspend  their  judgment.  But  as  a 
missionary  Bishop  he  was  well  aware  of  the  duty  inseparable 
from  his  office  to  act  as  watchman  as  well  as  steward  of 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


the  Divine  deposit  of  truth,  and  with  this  view  he  carried 
out  his  intention  mentioned  above  of  referring  in  a  Pastoral 
to  the  higher  criticism,  regarding  it  solely  from  the  mis- 
sionary's standpoint.  A  passage  from  a  letter  to  his  sister 
May,  as  well  as  some  extracts  from  the  Pastoral,  are  here 
given  : 

Inland  Sea,  October  15,  1890. 

I  agree  with  what  you  say  on  the  Inspiration  question. 
I  do  not  believe  that  we  shall  loseanjoi  the  Old  Testament 
— though  parts  may  be  symbolical  or  dramatic  which  had 
been  taken  to  be  purely  historical.  What  I  would  wish 
people  to  see  more  and  more,  and  to  get  a  continually 
stronger  hold  on,  is  that  the  development  of  the  Kingdom 
of  God  and  the  revelation  of  the  catholic  faith  in  their 
majesty  and  beauty  are  so  surprising,  marvellous,  and 
lovable,  if  once  they  are  seen  and  recognised  in  their  true 
character,  as  to  dwarf  all  questions  about  the  literary 
medium  through  which  the  knowledge  of  them  has  come 
down  to  us.  I  do  not  say  that  such  questions  have  not 
their  own  great  importance,  but  it  is  the  greatness  of  hills 
compared  to  great  mountain  ranges. 


Also  in  his  Advent  Pastoral  1890  he  thus  wrote : 

On  one  subject  I  had  hoped  to  write  something  at  The 

length,  but  must  not  now  attempt  it  in  the  short  time  that  g^g^f 

remains  to  me  before  leaving  Japan.    I  refer  to  the  higher  the  new 

criticism  of  the  Old  Testament,  and  may  I  say  that  I  am  criticism 

a  little  disappointed  that  there  are  not  as  yet,  as  far  as  I  °"  "^'^^ 

J  ,  .  .  .      ,  Japanese 

am  aware,  miy  among  ourselves  who  are  givmg  sustamed  church 
and  serious  study  to  the  Old  Testament  with  the  view  of 
eventually  forming  opinions  as  to  the  new  questions  raised. 
Mere  study  of  the  negative  criticism  by  itself  would  indeed 
be  of  little  value  ;  but  it  might  be  a  serious  danger  to  us  in 
time  to  come  if  some  of  us  were  not  prepared  by  positive 
knowledge  to  act  as  guides  in  fields  which  till  recently 
have  only  been  very  partially  open  to  investigation.  No 
doubt  the  mature  judgment  of  the  Church  may  ultimately 
reject — as  I  myself  anticipate — many  of  the  theories  which 
are  now  somewhat  confidently  declared  to  be  proven.  At 
the  same  time,  we  cannot  afford  to  neglect  or  ignore  views 


414 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


Men  have 
forgotten 
that  the 
question 
of  inspira- 
tion fol- 
lows after 
that  of 
revelation 


of  Holy  Scripture  which  come  to  us  accredited  by  the 
names  of  men  who  are  not  only  eminent  linguists  and 
critics,  but  hold  the  Nicene  faith  with  unwavering  loyalty. 
We  are  bound  to  take  count  of  them,  if  only  for  the  sake  of 
those  committed  to  our  charge.  That  the  new  criticism 
must  have  an  important  bearing  on  the  work  of  the  Church 
in  Japan  seems  to  me  certain.  Among  Japanese  Christians 
are  an  exceptional  number  of  inquiring  men,  widely  rather 
than  deeply  read,  of  the  class  to  whom  critical  uncertainty 
is  especially  likely  to  suggest  spiritual  doubt.  In  a  young 
Church,  too,  very  serious  might  be  the  shock  to  the  faith 
of  the  uninquiring  majority,  if  theories  of  the  Old  Testa- 
ment were  accepted  which  are  radically  different  to  the 
traditional  view  in  regard  to  its  historical  truthfulness. 
For  the  most  part  their  faith  has  been  cast  into  the  form, 
'  The  Bible  is  God's  Word.  This  is  what  the  Bible  says,' 
and  they  have  not  as  a  rule  gone  behind  the  former  of  the 
two  statements.  For  the  sake,  then,  alike  of  both  divisions 
of  our  flock,  the  subject  demands  our  diligent  and  careful 
attention. 

From  one  point  of  view,  whatever  be  the  result  of  the 
controversy,  I  can  see  valuable  compensation  to  ourselves  ; 
namely,  if  it  lead  us  to  a  reconsideration  of  the  best  mode 
of  presenting  Christian  truth  to  heathen  minds.  Plainly, 
the  mode  now  chiefly  in  vogue  was  inapplicable  in  the 
earliest  days.  Belief  could  not  then  have  been  held  to  be 
normally  the  outcome  of  either  a  predetermination  on,  or  a 
literary  investigation  into,  the  claims  of  the  Church's  Sacred 
Writings.  Conviction  was  due  to  the  character  and  sub- 
stance of  what  was  presented  to  the  acceptance  of  faith, 
not  to  an  opinion  about  the  manner  or  vehicle  in  which  it 
was  conveyed.  This  was  matter  for  later  consideration. 
The  question  of  inspiration  was  subsequent  to  that  of 
revelation.  We,  perhaps,  on  the  other  hand,  while  rightly 
valuing  the  Sacred  Record,  have  too  much  forgotten  that 
'  the  faith  claims  to  be  a  Gospel,  a  message  of  glad 
tidings  addressed  directly  to  the  toiling,  the  sorrowing,  the 
sinning  ;  that  it  claims  to  speak  to  the  soul  with  a  voice 
immediately  intelligible,  and  fitted  to  call  out  an  answer  of 
joyful  allegiance,  that  it  claims  to  open  springs  of  power, 
which  are  able  to  quicken  and  purify,  in  the  daily  conduct 
of  life,  every  energy  of  our  being.'  In  the  words  of  another, 
'  the  central  object  of  the  faith  is  not  the  Bible,  but  our 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


Lord.'  If  the  present  distress  and  uncertainty  in  the  ininds 
of  some  leads  us  back  to  a  more  confident  use  of  this 
earher  and  better  method  of  presenting  our  message,  the 
trial  will  not  have  been  borne  in  vain. 

The  far-reaching  importance  to  the  future  of  Japanese 
Christianity  of  teaching  all  the  articles  of  the  Apostles' 
Creed  in  their  simplicity  and  in  their  fulness,  without 
addition  and  without  subtraction,  was  always  present  to 
him,  and  made  him  shy  of  all  forms  of  Christian  teaching 
which  were  not  re-statements  of  the  facts  of  the  creed  or 
legitimate  developments  of  the  doctrines  which  elucidated 
the  meaning  of  the  facts. 

Within  a  few  months  of  his  landing  in  Japan  he  came 
across  proofs  of  how  the  American  Nonconformists  needed 
the  steadying  influence  of  the  creed,  and  he  wrote  to  his 
father  from  Nagasaki,  December  28,  1886  : 

On  the  way  the  catechist  told  me  of  some  Christian 
preachers  (not  Church-people)  who  have  recently  been 
preaching  a  spiritual  resurrection  of  Christ  as  a  substitute 
for  the  old  doctrine  of  the  creed.  This  is  the  result  of 
the  weak  doctrinal  teaching  of  the  Nonconformist  sects, 
and  will  be  a  fruitful  cause  of  trouble  in  the  future,  I  fear. 
But  truly  our  own  missionaries  need  more  doctrinal 
accuracy. 

The  part  which  the  two  sacraments  ordained  of  Christ 
in  the  Gospel  were  meant  to  play  as  safeguards  of  the 
creed,  made  him  critical  of  the  books  which  issued  from 
another  school  of  Cambridge  thought,  much  as  he 
revered  the  character  of  its  exponents,  because  in  his 
judgment  they  failed  to  give  their  proper  place  to  those 
sacraments. 

To  this  he  refers  in  another  passage  of  the  letter 
quoted  above  : 

I  read  Moule's  little  book  on  '  Union  with  Christ '  

very  devotional  and  fervent  in  tone,  as  all  his  papers 


4i6 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


are — but  his  doctrine,  both  of  atonement  and  sacraments, 
seems  to  me  erroneous.  The  latter  he  only  makes  signs 
of  a  pre-existing  covenant,  which,  as  he  admits,  puts  them 
on  a  level  with  the  '  signs '  of  the  Old  Testament ;  but  if 
so  they  would  plainly  have  no  place  in  the  religion  of 
'  grace  and  truth,'  '  old  things  were  done  away.'  As  they 
were  instituted,  they  must  have  the  characteristics  of  the 
'  new.' 

He  also  felt  the  danger  of  diluting  the  truth  in  the  so- 
called  '  Keswick  teaching,'  to  which  he  alludes  as  follows  : 

To  his  Father 

Kobe  :  March  5 ,  1 890. 

 is  a  little  influenced  with  the  so-called  Keswick 

teaching,  which  runs  perhaps  near  a  heresy,  and  yet  has 
sufficient  in  it  to  quicken  some  lives.  The  truth  of  it  seems 
to  be  St.  Paul's  Xpto-ros  hv  vfx.cv,  as  distinguished  from  a 
semi-Pelagian  notion  of  the  believer  merely  assisted  by 
Christ,  and  the  heresy  a  sort  of  quietism.  Moreover,  all 
big  meetings,  as  distinguished  from  quiet  gatherings  in 
churches  and  oratories,  seem  to  me  to  have  a  tendency  to 
degenerate. 

The  Langham  Street  Conference  on  '  Reunion '  held 
in  1889,  which  was  presided  over  by  Lord  Nelson,  and 
attended  by  such  Churchmen  as  B.  F.  Westcott,  John 
Gott,  Charles  Gore,  and  by  such  Nonconformists  as  Henry 
Allen,  H.  R.  Reynolds,  J.  B.  Baton,  was  concerned  with 
the  Christian  Faith,  Christian  Morality,  Christian  Dis- 
cipline, Christian  Worship,  Christian  Sacraments,  and 
Christian  Ministry,  on  all  of  which  points  theses  were  agreed 
upon  and  published.  While  the  Bishop  was  greatly  in- 
terested in  its  conclusions  and  printed  and  circulated  them 
among  his  clergy,  he  found  fault  with  them  on  the  ground 
that  in  their  opening  words  ('  We  agree  in  accepting  the 
general  teaching  of  the  Apostles'  Creed  and  the  Nicene 
Creed ')  they  failed  to  do  justice  to  the  inflexible  character 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


of  a  creed.  He  wrote :  '  The  phrase  "  acceptance  of  the 
general  teaching  of  the  creed  "  is  unfortunate.  A  creed, 
from  the  nature  of  the  case,  is  either  accepted  or  denied. 
Such  a  term  would  be  applicable  rather  to  a  sermon.' 

With  regard  to  the  possibility  of  reunion  with  the 
great  see  of  the  West,  he  indulged  in  no  delusions,  though 
he  was  free  from  Protestant  prejudice.  The  following 
letter  written  within  a  year  of  his  death  to  his  friend  and 
chaplain,  the  Rev.  L.  B.  Cholmondeley,  who  had  written 
to  him  while  on  a  holiday  to  ask  his  opinion  on  the  Pope's 
Encyclical,  shows  his  attitude  : 

Karuizawa  :  August  31,  1896. 

My  dear  Cholmondeley, — I  need  not  say  that  I  read 
the  Pope's  Encyclical  with  greatest  interest.  It  is  really  a 
blessed  thing  to  have  a  Pope  who  can  write  in  so  dignified 
a  tone  and  so  wholly  Christian  a  spirit,  so  very  different 
from  the  rhapsodical  style  of  his  predecessor.  All  the 
earlier  part  of  the  document  expresses  what  all  Anglicans 
believe  ;  with  the  latter  part,  of  course,  we  disagree.  Its 
weak  part  certainly  is  the  quotations.  Even  those  from 
Holy  Scripture  are  in  some  cases  misunderstood.  Not 
only  is  the  '  Tu  es  Petrus '  taken  in  the  sense  which  the 
majority  of  the  Fathers  deny  without  any  mention  of  the 
disagreement,  but  other  texts  are  strangely  misinterpreted. 

Thus, '  the  gates  of  hell  shall  not  prevail  against  it '  does  not 
refer  to  the  authority  of  the  Church,  as  the  Pope  supposes, 
but  to  its  success  in  aggressive  action  on  hostile  powers 
(^<z^^j  =  fortresses).  Again,  the  words  '/  have  prayed 
for  thee  that  thy  faith  fail  not  '  certainly  did  not  insure 
the  infallibility  of  St.  Peter.  As  a  matter  of  fact,  St.  Peter's 
faith  did  fail.    But  the  word  is  e«\tV7;  =  fail  not  utterly. 

But  the  quotations  from  the  Fathers  are  even  more 
open  to  criticism  than  those  from  Holy  Scripture.  The 
only  second  century  quotation  is  from  St.  Ireneeus.  Un- 
fortunately the  passage  only  exists  in  the  Latin  trans- 
lation. But  it  is  practically  certain  that  it  has  no  such 
meaning  as  the  Pope  assigns  to  it.  It  has  been  discussed 
times  without  number  by  Lightfoot  (if  I  remember  right 
in  his  '  Ignatius  '),  Puller,  &c. 

E  E 


4i8 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


Again,  the  Roman  references  in  St.  Cyprian  are  particu- 
larly doubtful.  The  letters  were  so  constantly  interpolated. 
But  if  the  one  which  the  Pope  quotes  stands,  it  cannot 
mean  what  he  makes  of  it ;  for  nothing  is  more  certain 
than  that  St.  Cyprian  admonished  a  Pope  of  his  day 
(Stephen),  and  declared  his  judgment  null  and  void  again 
and  again. 

The  fact  is  that  while  the  Fathers,  especially  after  the 
middle  of  the  fourth  century,  often  used  extravagant  lan- 
guage in  making  appeals  for  the  support  of  the  Roman  see, 
their  real  opinions  can  only  be  ascertained  by  taking  into 
account  their  whole  attitude  and  action,  as  well  as  their 
words  under  special  circumstances.  And  when  this  is 
done  it  becomes  plain  that  the  conception  of  the  Roman 
Pontiff  as  a  divinely  appointed  universal  umpire  had  no 
place  among  them.  In  the  Gnostic  and  Arian  contro- 
versies, if  ever,  the  appeal  would  have  been  made,  but  it 
was  not.  This  absence  of  practical  action  when  it  would 
have  been  most  in  place  is  fatal,  I  believe,  to  the  theory  of 
the  Vatican  Council. 

To  take  only  one  other  point,  the  Pope's  statements  in 
reference  to  his  predecessors'  action  in  relation  to  Councils. 
He  says  :  '  Leo  tJie  Great  rescinded  tJie  acts  of  tJie  Concilia- 
bulum  of  Ephesus.'  Well !  He  refused  to  accept  them,  as 
did  other  Bishops.    The  Council  was  the  Latrocinium. 

'  Damascus  rejected  the  Acts  of  Rimini!  So  (and  far 
more  important)  did  St.  Athanasius.  The  Fathers  of  that 
Council  had  been  beguiled  into  semi-Arianism. 

'  TJie  2%th  Canon  of  tJie  Comicil  of  Chalcedon,  by  the  very 
fact  that  it  lacks  the  assent  and  approval  of  the  apostolic 
see,  is  admitted  by  all  to  be  worthless.'  On  the  contrary, 
the  greatest  stress  has  been  laid  upon  it  by  the  Eastern 
Church  ever  since.  The  Papal  legate's  protest  at  the 
Council  was  disallowed.  Moreover,  it  was  the  Council  at 
Chalcedon  which  only  accepted  the  doctrinal  accuracy  of 
the  Pope's  letters  (the  '  Tome ')  after  examination,  thus 
placing  itself  above  the  Pope.  When  Leo  XHI.  refers 
to  the  words  which  the  Council  used,  '  Peter  has  spoken 
through  Leo'  he  seems  to  have  forgotten  this. 

But  I  must  not  go  on.  The  latter  part  of  the  Ency- 
clical you  will  gather  I  feel  to  be  on  a  sandy  basis.  Still, 
it  is  something — yes,  a  great  deal — that  the  appeal  is 
made  to  history  :  and  that  without  any  such  boastings  as 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDTOINT 


419 


Other  Pontiffs  have  indulged  in.  Such  an  appeal  cannot 
be  without  result,  even  on  the  Roman  Church.  Not  that 
I  expect  any  great  change  at  once  ;  but  I  do  think  that 
the  new  tone  and  method  augur  happily  for  the  future. 

Affectionately  yours, 

Edw.  Bickersteth,  Bishop. 

The  Bishop  never  lost  sight  of  the  fact  that  the  way  in 
which  the  Church  of  England  settled  her  own  problems 
at  home  must  react  on  their  solution  by  the  Missionary 
Church  abroad.  This  tax  of  responsibility,  the  inevitable 
result  of  a  mother  Church  being  a  trustee  for  her  children's 
interest,  was  due,  as  he  clearly  saw,  to  '  the  imperial  posi- 
tion of  the  Church  of  England  and  of  England  herself,' 
to  quote  his  own  phrase  at  the  Birmingham  Church  Con- 
gress. Speaking  there  (October  5,  1893)  he  threw  out  a 
spirited  challenge  to  the  home  Church  to  rise  to  the 
responsibility  of  her  position,  which  made  imitation  of  her 
methods  either  a  strength  or  a  weakness  to  her  daughter 
Churches  : 

In  conclusion,  I  should  like  to  add  one  thing  only.  I 
have  said  that  the  Japanese  will  never  join  the  Church 
of  England  ;  but  still,  may  I  ask,  have  you  in  England 
realised  how  immense  is  your  responsibility  in  being  a 
mother  Church  ?  Churches  which  will  never  dream  of 
amalgamation  with  you  will  be  influenced  during  the  next 
hundred  years  by  what  you  are  and  do  beyond  estimate  of 
words.  '  How  do  they  manage  this  or  that  in  England  ?  ' 
is  a  question  I  am  constantly  asked  on  matters  of  Church 
organisation  ;  and  if — to  mention  only  two  or  three  points 
which  are,  or  will  be  directly,  as  much  to  the  front  with  us 
in  Japan  as  ever  they  can  be  in  England — (will  you 
pardon  my  straight  speech)  I  have  to  reply  that  your 
system  of  patronage  is  disgraceful,  your  synodical  organi- 
sation antiquated,  your  Church  courts  only  the  bad  legacy 
of  a  bygone  age,  your  Canons  utterly  inapplicable  to  the 
circumstances  of  the  day,  your  discipline  in  abeyance, 
your  clergy  badly  paid,  your  Churchmanship  sometimes 
grievously  at  fault,  coquetting  now  with  Rome  and  now 

E  E  2 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


with  Dissent,  and  by  the  mere  fact  that  you  do  so  inde- 
finitely delaying  all  hope  of  future  reunion,  the  result  in 
the  East  is  very  bad.  I  implore  you  to  realise  the  im- 
perial position  and  influence  of  the  Church  of  England 
and  of  England  herself  to-day.  The  day  of  insular  isola- 
tion is  gone  by.  And  while  you  do  all  you  can  to  extend 
direct  evangelistic  agencies,  remember  also  that  it  is  quite 
as  important  that  you  should  offer  in  the  English  Church 
to  India  and  China  and  Japan  in  the  nearest  future  an 
example  which  they  may  rightly  follow,  as  it  was  important 
a  generation  or  two  since  to  gather  the  first  converts  into 
the  fold  of  Christ. 

Long  residence  in  the  East  had  slowly  matured  this 
conviction  in  his  mind.  Three  years  before  he  had 
written  to  his  father  (September  9,  i8go)  : 

What  we  want,  I  think,  is  limited  (legalised)  noncon- 
formity— all  liberty  within  wide  limits,  and  no  transgres- 
sion. At  the  same  time,  I  feel  that  all  else  is  a  palliative 
until  the  Church  makes  up  her  mind  to  demand  new 
courts  and  the  power  of  revising  her  old  laws.  To 
suppose  that  sixteenth  century  rules,  many  of  which  are 
uncertain  in  language  and  meaning,  can  be  suitable  or 
enforced  in  the  nineteenth  century  seems  in  itself  un- 
reasonable, almost  like  a  forgetfulness  of  the  abiding 
Spirit. 

Again,  December  26,  1890 : 

I  cannot  but  think  that  the  surest  foundation  for  ritual 
peace  would  be  laid  (i)  by  the  admission  that  the  interpre- 
tation of  the  Ornaments  Rubric  which  permits  the  old  vest- 
ments is  correct.  The  opposite  interpretation  has  fallen 
with  the  practical  demolition  of  the  authority  of  the 
Elizabethan  Advertisements  ;  (2)  by  claiming  that  even 
legal  revivals  ought  not  to  be  made  wholly  motu  suo  by 
individual  clergy  without  their  Bishop's  cognisance  ;  (3) 
by  the  Bishops  pledging  themselves  to  aim  steadily  at  new 
law  courts.  This  seems  essential,  yet  years  pass  without 
any  step  being  taken. 

Accordingly,  the  need  of  Church  Reform  was  strongly 
felt  by  him.    In  October  1894  n^Y  father  presided  at  the 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


421 


Church  Congress  at  Exeter,  and  in  the  previous  April  my 
brother  wrote  : 

I  think  your  address  should  be  on  one  subject,  '  The 
Reform  of  Church  Organisation  as  distinguished  from 
Church  Doctrine  the  work  of  the  next  decade,  as  that  of 
Church  Doctrine  was  the  work  of  a  period  in  the  six- 
teenth century.'  This  is  the  thought  which  is  always 
uppermost  in  my  mind  when  I  think  of  the  Church  of 
England.  To  begin  with,  it  is  immensely  needed,  and 
then  it  is  the  true  Church  Defence.  A  real  enthusiasm 
for  reform  would  sweep  Liberationism  out  of  the  country. 
Our  danger  still  seems  to  be  contentedness  with  evil.  But 
I  dare  say  I  am  all  wrong  in  this.  One's  vision  gets  dis- 
turbed at  the  distance  of  half  the  world,  and  what  looks 
possible  here  may  really  be  out  of  place  and  range.  Still, 
I  cannot  help  feeling  that  if  '  Reform,  Reform,  Reform ' 
were  the  united  cry  of  the  Church  it  could  be  done. 

This  incidental  proof  of  the  Bishop's  keen  interest  in 
the  fortunes  of  his  mother  Church  is  such  as  is  not  always 
shown  by  those  living  at  so  great  a  distance  from  the 
scene  of  her  activities,  and  it  witnesses  to  the  discriminat- 
ing loyalty  of  his  affection  for  her.  Certainly  events  in 
the  past  five  years  have  proved  that  the  Bishop's  perspec- 
tive was  not  much  out,  and  show  that  each  year  the 
Church  has  refused  to  face  the  thorny  question  of  reform, 
she  has  only  increased  her  own  difficulty  in  handling  it. 
There  may  prove  to  be  something  prophetic  in  his  fore- 
cast of  the  danger  of  still  further  delays  : 

To  his  Father 

Tokyo  :  Easter  Eve  1894. 

I  am  very  glad  you  are  going  only  to  act  in  your  own 
court  in  the  ritual  matters.  The  source  of  the  difficulties 
seems  to  me  to  lie  in  the  practical  disuse  of  the  Church's 
synodical  and  legal  system.  Convocations  only  imper- 
fectly represent  the  Church,  and  their  power  is  too  re- 
stricted. The  existing  courts  were  condemned  with 
practical  unanimity  by  the  Ecclesiastical  Courts  Commis- 


422 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


sion.  The  result  is  that  law  is  set  at  naught  partly 
because  it  is  antiquated  and  the  machinery  which  should 
renew  it  cannot,  partly  because  its  natural  vindicators,  the 
courts,  if  they  are  put  in  action,  at  once  supply  the  culprit, 
however  guilty,  with  a  case  and  a  good  one.  He  may 
have  broken  the  Church's  law  a  thousand  times,  but  that 
does  not  make  it  right  or  wise  that  he  should  be  tried  in  a 
bad  or  defective  court.  I  think  and  have  long  thought 
that  the  right  thing  to  do  is  to  bend  all  energies  to 
strengthening  convocation  and  reforming  the  courts.  If 
the  Supreme  Court  is  such  a  difficulty,  still  I  think  that 
that  might  well  be  left  on  one  side,  while  thoroughly 
good  diocesan  and  provincial  courts  were  established.  I 
doubt  if  the  decision  of  a  really  good  provincial  court 
would  be  challenged  ;  if  it  were,  the  result  would  almost 
certainly  be  the  same  as  in  the  Lincoln  case.  If  Lord 
Salisbury  gets  in  for  another  term  of  office,  and  some 
reforms  are  not  carried  through,  it  will  seem  to  many,  I 
fear,  that  disestablishment  is  the  lesser  of  two  ills,  and 
that  the  Church  will  deserve  her  loss  of  temporal  goods 
for  her  supineness  in  matters  of  greater  importance. 
Anyhow,  I  feel  sure  that  the  present  state  of  things  cannot 
go  on  for  long  without  disaster  ;  while  action  on  the  part 
of  a  body  like  the  Church  Association,  of  which  the 
members  err  as  much  by  deficiency  as  the  right  wing  of 
the  Ritualists  by  excess,  only  makes  the  matter  much 
worse.  The  Bishops  are  the  right  people  to  move,  and 
the  Government  would  support  them  if  they  were  agreed, 
do  you  not  think  ?  I  did  not  mean  to  write  this  long 
scrawl ;  only  you  asked  my  opinion.  Don't  trouble  to 
decipher  it ! 

And  in  a  postscript : 

Is  there  any  harm  in  'Stations  of  the  Cross'  if  the 
legendary  ones  (Veronica  &c.)  are  omitted  ?  No  one 
would  object  to  them  in  windows,  perhaps  two  feet  higher 
on  the  wall.  I  rather  should  accept  them,  as  part  of  what 
Ruskin  calls  '  the  People's  Bible.'  Shrines  of  the  Blessed 
Virgin  cannot  claim  an  inch  of  Catholic  standing  for 
themselves.  It  really  is  disgraceful  that  they  should  be 
put  up  in  our  churches,  and,  as  you  say,  without  leave. 

But  if  there  was  one  article  of  the  Creed  more  than 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


another  which  was  the  inspiration  of  his  own  joy,  and  in 
the  defence  of  which  he  found  an  unfaiHng  spring  of  glad- 
ness, it  was  that  which  affirms  the  Resurrection  of  our 
Lord. 

'  If  the  Resurrection  was  accepted,  the  beUever  would 
not  care  to  dispute  the  other  miracles  of  Christ ;  if  it  was 
denied,  there  was  nothing  to  be  gained  by  maintaining 
them ' — that  was  the  way  in  which  he  was  wont  to  state 
the  argument.  On  the  eve  of  his  return  home  to  the 
Lambeth  Conference  of  1888,  the  English  paper  most 
widely  circulated  among  the  official  classes  in  Japan  con- 
tained a  series  of  articles  against  miracles  and  the  creed 
under  the  title,  '  The  Japanese  in  Search  of  a  Basis  of 
Morals.'  They  were  founded  on  an  article  which  Pro- 
fessor Huxley  had  contributed  the  previous  autumn  to 
the  '  Contemporary  Review,'  in  which  he  had  maintained 
that  the  moral  teaching  of  Christianity  can  only  be  main- 
tained by  the  sacrifice  of  its  doctrines.  The  Bishop  felt 
the  need  of  combating  such  views,  and  he  wrote  the 
following  letter,  which  was  courteously  inserted  by  the 
editor  of  the  'Japan  Mail.'  The  allusion  'to  the  member 
of  the  collegiate  body  (Pembroke  College,  Cambridge)  to 
which  he  had  the  honour  to  belong,'  was  to  Professor 
Sir  George  Stokes,  F.R.S.  : 

Christianity  itself  a  Miracle 

To  the  Editor  of  the  'Japan  Mail' 

Sir, — The  leading  articles  in  your  issues  of  March  i 
to  5  have  contained  extracts  and  summaries  of  the 
opinions  of  various  writers  in  Europe  and  the  East  on 
the  subject  of  miracles.  All  the  writers  whom  you  quote 
or  refer  to  are  adverse  to  the  reality  of  miraculous 
occurrences.  It  would  be  easy  to  make  a  catena  of 
quotations  on  the  other  side.  If  Professor  Huxley  denies 
the  miraculous,  a  member  of  the  collegiate  body  to  which 


424 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


I  have  the  honour  to  belong,  his  no  less  illustrious  suc- 
cessor in  the  Presidency  of  the  Royal  Society,  is  a  devout 
believer  in  it.  But  I  will  not  attempt  to  pursue  this  mode 
of  reply.  I,  too,  entirely  agree  with  your  remark — what 
Christian  would  do  otherwise  who  had  regard  to  the  early 
history  of  his  faith  i* — that  '  the  method  of  deciding  a 
controversy  by  numbers  has  been  shown  to  be  untrust- 
worthy over  and  over  again.' 

Still  less  do  I  propose  to  make  any  reply  to  Professor 
Huxley's  accusation  against  Christians  of  intellectual 
inveracity.  Intellectual  and  moral  inveracity  are  in- 
separable, and  as  we  do  not  charge  them  against  our 
opponents,  so  we  know  that  when  they  are  charged 
against  us  the  accusation  is  best  refuted  by  the  strength 
of  its  own  recoil. 

I  would  rather,  if  you  can  afford  me  the  space,  venture 
to  state  in  my  own  words  what  I  conceive  to  be  the 
fundamental  Christian  position  on  this  question. 

(l)  Christianity,  then,  as  I  understand  it,  like  the 
natural  and  mental  sciences,  rests  on  an  assumption.  The 
assumption  of  natural  science  is  the  existence  of  the 
external  universe  ;  of  mental  science,  the  trustworthiness 
of  the  mental  processes  ;  and  of  theology,  the  being  of 
God.  Each  assumption  in  turn  has  been  denied  ;  but 
each  has  maintained  its  place  in  human  belief,  as  requisite 
to  any  complete  view  of  the  life  of  man,  as  essential  to 
the  co-ordination  of  all  the  facts  at  our  disposal  ;  as,  if  I 
may  so  term  it,  part  of  an  original  Credo  on  which  argu- 
ment is  only  admitted  by  courtesy.  With  this  assump- 
tion, Professor  Huxley,  following  Mr.  Mill,  admits  that  all 
a  priori  objection  to  miracle  falls  to  the  ground.  As 
Mr.  Sugiura  arid  those  for  whom  he  speaks  are  in  search 
of  a  religion,  it  is  possible  that  they  may  be  prepared  to 
accompany  me  so  far.  If  not,  it  may  be  at  least  worth 
their  while  to  consider  that  the  repudiation  of  atheism  by 
the  East  has  been  as  emphatic  as  by  the  West.  On  this 
point  the  rejection  in  India  of  the  original  atheistic 
system  of  Gautama  the  Buddha  and  the  acceptance  by 
the  later  Buddhism  of  a  belief  in  the  supernatural,  before 
it  becamfc  a  power  in  Central  Asia  or  in  this  country,  are 
irreproachable  evidence.  If  the  history  of  thought  in  the 
past  is  any  guide,  the  present  tendency  to  give  exclusive 
regard  to  the  investigations  and  results  of  the  natural 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


425 


sciences  can  only  in  an  eastern  land  be  due  to  temporary 
causes, 

(2)  But,  further,  starting  from  a  belief  in  God,  Chris- 
tianity proposes  itself  as  the  final  solution  of  what 
Professor  Huxley  justly  calls  'the  terrible  problems  of 
existence.'  It  would  not  be  difficult  to  enumerate  these, 
but  let  me  be  content  to  point  out  that  the  greatest  of 
them  all,  the  answer  to  which  if  given  will  illuminate  the 
rest,  is  a  problem  not  of  life's  course  but  of  its  ending. 
What  is  the  right  view  to  hold  and  the  meaning  which  we 
are  to  attach  to  the  fact  of  death  .''  If  death  is  the  end  of 
conscious  existence,  then  not  the  noble  guesses  of  the 
Phaidrus,  but  the  philosophy  of  the  later  Epicureans  and 
the  pessimism  of  Schopenhauer  have  a  great  deal  to  say 
for  themselves.  If,  on  the  other  hand,  there  is  reason  to 
think  that  it  is  not  so,  then  Hedonism  and  pessimism  have 
but  little  standing  ground.  And  Christianity  dares  to 
base  its  whole  claim  for  acceptance  on  having  answered 
this  question  in  one  way.  It  asserts  that  One  who  acted 
entirely  during  His  life  on  earth  under  the  conditions  of 
our  humanity,  carried  His  human  nature  in  its  complete- 
ness through  the  shock  of  death  into  another  and  loftier 
sphere  of  being.  It  maintains  that  this  fact  is  unique,  and 
differs  entirely  from  Jewish  and  Greek  speculations  on  the 
immortality  of  the  soul.  If  it  be  accepted,  it  involves  the 
consequence  that  life  here  has  an  eternal  not  a  transitory 
significance,  and  there  is  nothing  unreasonable  in  holding 
it  to  be  an  education  for  another.  Moreover,  where  it  is 
fully  held  it  will  commonly  carry  with  it  the  acceptance  of 
the  whole  Catholic  Creed. 

Accordingly  around  the  fact,  as  they  held  it  to  be, 
of  the  Resurrection  of  Christ,  the  first  Christian  teachers 
grouped  an  abundance  of  contemporary  testimony  which 
would  be  more  than  sufficient  to  establish  the  occurrence 
of  any  event  not  claiming  a  miraculous  character.  And 
against  the  undoubted  d  priori  improbability  of  miracle 
must  in  this  case  be  set  two  considerations:  (0  the  time 
in  the  world's  history  at  which,  according  to  Christian 
belief,  the  Resurrection  occurred.  It  was  the  moment  '  of 
fulness  alike  of  despair  and  hope '  in  the  old  world.  At 
the  Christian  era  Greek  thought  had  ended  in  universal 
scepticism,  and  in  Rome  the  worship  of  the  Emperor  was 
about  to  supersede  all  other  devotions.    On  the  other  hand 


426 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


a  section  of  the  Jewish  nation  had  been  prepared  by  every 
form  of  discipline  to  be  the  messenger  of  a  new  hope  to  the 
nations.  It  was  a  moment  when  the  direct  interference  of 
God  in  man's  affairs  was  rather  to  be  expected  than  other- 
wise. And  (2)  the  evidential  value  of  the  one  admittedly 
perfect  Life,  the  Life  which  all  men  alike  turn  to  as  the  one 
point  of  shadeless  light  and  perfect  beauty  in  the  chequered 
moral  history  of  their  race.  The  Christian  finds  it  no 
strain  to  believe  that  a  life  which  itself  has  no  parallel, 
ended  unlike  other  lives,  especially  when  the  alternative  is 
to  hold  that  the  moral  teachings  of  Christianity  are  inextri- 
cably mingled  with  fraud. 

It  was  as  supported  by  this  evidence,  and  set  in  this 
environment,  that  Christianity  first  presented  itself  to  the 
world.  It  was  capable  of  dogmatic  statement,  but  it 
claimed  to  be  essentially  not  a  system  of  doctrine  sup- 
ported by  miracle,  but  itself  a  new  and  supernatural  life, 
life  in  union  with  Him  who  had  won  the  one  victory  ;  life 
which  already  in  part  reflected  His,  and  of  necessity  like 
His  had  only  its  beginning  here;  life  which  united  all  who 
shared  it  into  a  new  and  regenerate  society,  capable  of 
taking  the  place  of  those  which  were  just  passing  away. 
As  regards  the  miracles  which  accompanied  the  appearance 
of  its  Founder  and  the  teaching  of  His  first  disciples,  it  laid 
but  little  evidential  stress  on  them,  except  as  facts  which 
harmonised  with  their  whole  entourage.  They  were  for  the 
most  part  the  natural  '  works  '  of  one  like  Christ  when  in 
touch  with  sorrow  or  suffering.  If  the  Resurrection  was 
accepted,  the  believer  would  not  desire  to  dispute  them  ;  if 
it  was  denied,  there  was  nothing  to  be  gained  by  main- 
taining them.  But  at  all  times  and  everywhere  the  first 
faith  was  content,  in  the  words  of  its  greatest  teacher,  to 
'  commend  itself  to  men's  consciences  in  the  sight  of  God.' 
It  claimed  to  be  self-evidencing,  like  light  in  the  natural 
universe.  At  the  same  time,  from  the  nature  of  the  case 
it  did  not  expect  to  be  universally  accepted.  As  was 
made  an  objection  to  it  as  early  as  the  days  of  Celsus,  it 
appealed  to  one  class  only  of  the  community,  to  men  who 
were  in  search  not  for  a  moral  basis,  but  for  a  moral  ideal, 
who  lamented  their  own  failures,  and,  in  the  more  ancient 
phrase  of  the  Jewish  Psalmist,  were  '  athirst  for  God.'  It 
took  comparatively  little  account  of  mere  conformity  to  an 
external  rule  of  ethics.  It  conceived  a  larger  hope  for 
passionate  sin  than  for  Pharisaic  integrity. 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


427 


On  the  results  which  followed  its  first  proclamation 
I  must  not  ask  to  be  allowed  to  dwell. 

But  I  may  venture  to  point  out  that  my  view  of  the 
essential  meaning  of  Christianity  is  so  different  from  that 
of  the  authors  whom  you  quote  as  to  render  comparison 
impossible.  They  hold  it  to  be  mainly  a  system  of 
doctrine,  I  a  new  life  in  a  divine  society.  They  rest  their 
denial  of  it  on  the  want  of  external  evidence  for  such 
miracles  as  that  of  the  withering  of  the  fig  tree  ;  I  for 
other  reasons  believe  in  the  miracle,  but  hold  that  if  the 
required  evidence  were  forthcoming,  it  would  have  little  or 
nothing  to  do  with  the  real  point  at  issue.  They  demand 
a  quasi  mathematical  proof  of  its  veracity  ;  I  hold  that  if 
this  were  possible,  the  loss  would  be  far  greater  than  the 
gain.  They  desire  to  conserve  the  ethical  system  of 
Christianity  ;  I  fail  to  find  any  such  system  in  the  New 
Testament  apart  from  the  life  and  Resurrection  of  Christ, 
and  if  it  were  there,  should  not  set  great  store  by  it  if 
dissevered  from  some  motive  power  which  might  secure  its 
practice.  But  I  will  not  do  more  than  ask  of  your  courtesy 
to  let  my  conception  stand  over  against  theirs. 

I  am.  Sir,  your  faithful  and  obliged  Servant, 

Edw.  Bickersteth,  Bishop. 

St.  Andrew's  House,  Shiba  : 
March  6,  1888. 

Two  years  later  he  preached  '  to  the  English  congre- 
gation of  St.  Andrew's  Church,  Shiba,  Tokyo,  on  '  The 
Witness  of  the  Church  to  the  Resurrection,'  from  Acts  x. 
40,  41.  After  enumerating  three  things  which  were  quite 
certain,  on  the  testimony  alike  of  friend  and  foe  :  (l)  that 
the  Jewish  nation  really  went  through  a  unique  training, 
and  exhibited  an  exceptional  type  of  national  life,  and  so 
was  the  organ  of  the  divine ;  (2)  that  the  character  of 
Jesus  Christ  is  a  great  fact,  quite  impossible  of  delineation 
unless  it  had  been  exhibited  ;  and  (3)  that  the  Christian 
societies  undoubtedly  arose  in  the  first  century,  and  that 
the  basis  of  their  common  belief  was  that  Christ  had  risen 
from  the  dead — he  passed  on  to  ask  his  hearers  '  to  put 
back  the  fact  of  the  Resurrection  among  these  clustered 

'  A  sermon  which  was  printed  at  the  request  of  those  who  heard  it. 


428 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


certainties,'  and,  thus  thinking  of  it,  to  see  that  the 
evidence  for  the  Resurrection  was  something  very  much 
more  than  the  page  of  a  book ;  that  if  it  was  said  by  some, 
'  We  should  Hke  another  form  of  evidence,'  then  let  them 
note  that  one  form  of  evidence  did  not  cease  to  be  good 
and  cogent  because  another  form  might  have  been  granted 
them.  They  had  the  evidence  of  the  Church  :  the  Resur- 
rection was  not  less  true  because  they  had  not  the  evidence 
of  the  world. 

In  conclusion,  the  Bishop  said  : 

But  brethren,  this  Easter  morning  let  us  answer  our 
critics  no  longer.  To  us  the  Resurrection  is  as  sure  a  fact 
as  those  others  on  the  ground  of  which  we  ask  them  to 
believe  it.  We  add  ourselves  in  faithful  confidence  to-day 
to  the  long  unfaltering  line  of  the  faithful  who  have 
preceded  us.  And  what  follows?  We  have  seen  that  it  is 
the  Church,  not  the  world,  which  is  the  witness  of  the 
Lord's  Resurrection  ;  but  none  the  less  it  is  to  the  world 
that  its  witness  is  borne.  Are  we  in  such  a  sense  that  the 
world  can  understand  it  bearing  our  witness  to  His  Resur- 
rection to-day?  If  so,  all  experience  tells  that  it  is  by  life 
and  deed  more  than  by  mere  argument  that  we  are  bringing 
home  to  others  what  we  believe  ourselves.  From  the 
nature  of  the  case  there  is  no  statement  of  the  Christian 
creed  at  the  end  of  which  you  can  write  the  words  which 
close  a  theorem  of  Euclid,  but  equally  certainly  men  are  so 
made  as  not  seldom  to  yield  to  the  force  of  an  unwaver- 
ing conviction  when  exemplified  in  a  life  of  love.  Christ 
manifested  in  the  life  of  the  Church  is  both  the  primary 
evidence  of  the  Resurrection  of  Christ  and  the  means  of 
the  Church's  extension. 

It  was  so  in  earlier  days.  It  was  impossible  for  men  to 
deny  that  a  great  change  had  come  over  the  first  disciples, 
over  their  thought,  motives,  principles,  conduct.  They  had 
to  win  their  daily  bread  as  other  men,  but  their  treasure 
was  in  another  world  than  this.  They  owed  obedience  to 
Emperor  and  magistrates,  as  did  others,  and,  as  they  confi- 
dently affirmed,  they  were  the  best  subjects  in  the  State  ; 
but,  all  the  same,  their  '  citizenship  was  in  heaven.'  They 
were  tempted  as  others,  but  on  the  whole  they  overcame 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


429 


as  others  did  not.  They  suffered  as  much  or  more  than 
other  men,  but  they  took  their  sufferings  gladly.  They 
sorrowed  as  did  others  at  human  griefs,  but  the  grace  of 
resignation  grew  up  amid  their  tears.  '  Once  I  was  not ; 
now  I  am  not ;  I  know  nothing  about  it ;  it  does  not  con- 
cern me,'  ran  an  inscription  on  the  tomb  of  a  heathen. 
'  Here  lieth  Maria,  summoned  by  the  angels,'  '  Eternal 
Peace  be  to  thee,  Timothea,  in  Christ,' '  are  the  quiet, 
restful  words  which  tell  of  the  faith  inspired  by  the  Resur- 
rection. As  one  of  themselves  put  it,  they  were  '  pressed 
on  every  side  yet  not  straitened,  perplexed  yet  not  unto 
despair,  pursued  yet  not  forsaken,  smitten  down  yet  not 
destroyed,  always  bearing  about  in  the  body  the  dying  of 
Jesus,  that  the  life  also  of  Jesus ' — the  life  which  He  re- 
sumed at  Easter — '  might  be  manifested  in  their  body.' 

It  was  only  natural  that  one  who  thus  strove  vividly 
to  grasp  the  reality  of  the  Resurrection,  and  the  present 
activity  of  the  Risen  Lord,  should  regard  the  Holy  Com- 
munion not  as  a  service  held  in  memory  of  an  absent  Lord, 
but  as  a  means  of  grace  wherein  a  present  and  risen  Lord 
imparted  to  His  Church  more  of  the  fulness  of  His  life. 

The  Bishop  was  therefore  keenly  aware  of  the  great 
influence  for  good  or  evil  which  certain  habits  of  the  religious 
life,  each  closely  connected  with  the  Holy  Communion, 
must  have  on  Christian  worship  and  Christian  workers, 
such  as  (i)  private  confession  prior  to  the  reception  of  the 
Holy  Communion,  (2)  non-communicating  attendance  at  the 
celebration  of  the  Divine  Mysteries,  and  (3)  fasting  Com- 
munion. His  personal  standpoint  with  regard  to  the 
historic  schools  of  thought  in  the  Church  of  England  could 
hardly  be  better  illustrated  than  by  his  treatment  of  these 
matters,  which  have  been  so  prominently  thrust  forward 
of  late  years,  and  towards  which,  as  will  be  seen,  he  took 
up  a  position  founded  on  primitive  custom  but  safeguarded 

'  For  the  first  and  third  of  these  inscriptions  I  am  indebted  to  Canon 
Farrar's  Lives  of  the  Fathers,  i.  17-18.  The  second  I  observed  some  years 
since  in  the  collection  of  copies  in  the  Latcran  Museum. 


430 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


by  common  sense  from  those  encroachments  on  Christian 
liberty  to  which  pict}'  in  every  age  has  been  prone. 

Here  are  passages  from  two  letters,  one  written  in  1 889 
and  the  other  in  1896,  which,  together  with  a  paper  drawn 
up  and  sent  to  England  for  one  who  had  sought  his 
guidance  (1891),  clearly  show  what  he  believed  and  taught 
on  the  subject  of  Confession  : 

St.  Andrew's  House,  Tokyo  :  September  27,  18S9. 

Nothing  much  more  strikes  me  to  say  about  confes- 
sion. It  should  only  be  adopted  from  the  deliberate  Con- 
viction that  it  is  good  for  oneself,  not  because  others  urge 
it  as  a  duty.  Such  arguments  as  that  there  is  no  true  self- 
abasement  in  confession  to  GOD  are  not  worthy  a  reply. 
It  would  mean  that  David  was  not  truly  humble  when  he 
wrote  the  51st  Psalm,  only  when  he  was  in  the  presence  of 
Nathan ! 

More  or  less  of  direction  is  a  matter  of  spiritual  ex- 
pediency. To  direct  others  is  no  doubt  consonant  with 
the  office  of  a  pastor  of  souls,  but  that  is  all  that  can 
be  said.  Is  there  not  a  bit  of  danger  in  being  misled  by 
words  ?  Suppose  that  for  '  confession  '  was  read  '  acknow- 
ledgment of  sins,'  and  for  '  direction  '  '  counselling,'  would 
not  the  case  sometimes  be  clearer? 

Exeter  :  Quinquagesima,  1896. 

Is  not  the  absolution,  whether  public  or  private,  what 
it  is  answerably  to  the  spiritual  state  of  those  who  receive 
it }  That  is  not  very  clear — I  mean  that  to  the  forgiven 
it  is  a  seal  of  forgiveness,  to  the  penitent  a  channel 
of  forgiveness,  so  that  it  is  never  inoperative,  but  brings 
with  it  what  each  needs. 

Notes  on  Confession,  1891 

These  points  about  Confession  may  be  useful : 

1.  It  should  not  be  confounded  in  thought  with  Abso- 
lution. 

2.  To  absolve  in  some  way  or  other  is  the  very  duty 
and  work  of  the  Church,  for  which  in  large  part  she  exists. 
This  duty  she  must  perform,  as  she  does  others,  ordinarily 
through  her  ordained  ministers  (cf  the  body  and  the 
hands),  though  there  may  be  exceptions.    (St.  Louis  and 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


his  armour-bearer  absolving  one  another  is  the  classical 
instance.) 

3.  TJie  method  of  absolution  varies.  Its  greatest  exer- 
cise is  in  Holy  Baptism.  Holy  Communion,  again,  has 
attached  to  it  promises  of  forgiveness.  So,  again,  there 
are  public  and  private  absolutions  provided  in  the  service- 
books  of  all  orthodox  Churches. 

4.  Tlic  result  of  absolution  must  vary  in  relation  to  the 
spiritual  state  of  the  recipient.  To  the  unrepentent  it 
brings  added  condemnation  ;  to  the  penitent,  forgiveness  ; 
to  the  forgiven,  assurance. 

On  the  divine  side — i.e.  as  regards  the  grace  conferred 
there  is  absolutely  no  difference  between  absolution  said 
publicly  to  a  congregation  or  privately  to  an  individual. 

5.  Confession,  on  the  other  hand,  does  not  demand  the 
aid  of  the  Church's  priesthood  as  a  matter  of  ordinary 
necessity.  The  child  may  and  ought  to  confess  to  its 
parent  when  it  has  done  wrong.  The  only  case  in  which 
the  Church  can  demand  confession  is  after  excommunica- 
tion. At  the  same  time,  the  pastoral  relationship  of  the 
clergy  to  their  people  renders  them  the  natural  recipients 
of  their  confidence. 

It  is,  then,  on  the  one  hand,  a  most  unwarrantable 
infringement  of  the  liberty  of  the  children  of  God  secured 
to  them  in  their  baptism  to  make  Confession  a  necessary 
condition  for  Holy  Communion,  i.e.,  as  all  Christians  are 
presumably  communicants,  compulsory.  This  the  Church 
of  Rome  does  in  all  cases,  with  the  exception  of  persons 
of  spiritual  attainment  so  rare  as  not  to  be  worth  taking 
into  account. 

On  the  other  hand,  it  is  a  mistake  either  to  forbid 
Confession  or  to  confine  the  permission  for  it  to  certain 
persons  of  presumably  the  very  weakest  character.  Experi- 
ence shows  that  this  is  not  the  case.  Very  strong  and 
noble  natures  have  found  the  greatest  help  in  it. 

From  the  above  it  is  plain  that  the  responsibility  of 
confessing  sins  to  another  or  not  rests  with  the  penitent ; 
also,  that  when  confession  is  made  to  a  priest  he  has  no 
right  to  demand  the  divulging  of  all  secrets. 

The  Prayer  Book  compilers  seem  to  have  been  provi- 
dentially guided  in  this,  as  in  so  much  else,  to  conclusions 
which  fit  the  Church  of  England  for  her  mission  to  the 
nineteenth  century. 


432 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


In  answer  to  further  question  he  wrote  : 

January  30,  1892. 

Confession  is  both  allowed  and  practised  at  St.  Andrew's 
and  St.  Hilda's.  But  while  it  is  allowed,  it  is  not  enforced 
either  by  rule  or  precept.  I  heartily  approve  of  it  for 
many  persons,  but  I  am  equally  sure  it  is  not,  like  the  two 
great  sacraments,  incumbent  on  all  or  good  for  all.  Its  use 
or  non-use  should,  I  hold,  depend  on  character,  circum- 
stances, training,  &c.  It  would  be  hopeless  to  reconcile 
either  antiquity  or  the  English  Church  with  the  view  that 
it  is  compulsory  in  the  sense  of  the  two  sacraments  ;  and, 
on  the  other  hand,  its  practical  disuse  has  greatly  weakened 
the  Church's  efficiency  and  lowered,  in  many  cases,  the 
standard  of  spiritual  life. 

I  do  not  think  that  I  shall  change  or  even  modify  my 
opinion  in  the  matter.  I  hold  it  to  be  the  duty  of  Anglican 
Bishops  just  now  to  guard  the  liberty  of  those  who  do  and 
alike  of  those  who  do  not  use  this  special  discipline. 

The  '  deliberate  conviction  '  mentioned  above  as  being 
a  distinct  factor  in  determining  its  use  or  non-use  led  him 
personally  to  avail  himself  of  its  occasional  use,  as  will  be 
seen  by  the  following  letter  written  to  one  with  whom  he 
was  very  intimate : 

Tokyo  :  April  4,  1892. 

You  have  written  to  me  so  much  on  the  subject  that  I 
wish  to  tell  you  that  I  made  use  for  myself  of  Confession 
for  the  first  time  this  Lent.  Several  reasons  weighed  with 
me.  Among  them  was  not  that  I  had  changed  my  views 
materially  on  the  subject  at  all,  nor  any  doubt  of  the  entire 
validity  of  public  absolutions  in  the  Eucharistic  service, 
nor  any  belief  that  confession  to  a  priest  ought  to  be 
imposed  on  all  alike,  but  partly  the  increasing  number  of 
those  who  seek  my  help  in  this  way  ;  partly,  and  far  more, 
the  sense  that  it  would  be  good  for  myself,  specially  as  a 
Bishop  with  the  temptations  of  a  Bishop's  office  ;  partly 
the  opportunity  offered,  .  .  .  None  of  these  reasons  need 
apply,  you  see,  to  you  or  many  others,  but  I  shall,  I  have 
no  doubt,  continue  it  for  myself  from  time  to  time,  as  I  feel 
that  the  definiteness  which  it  gives  to  self-examination 
and  effort  is  valuable  to  myself     This  does  not  alter 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT  433 

my  opinion  that  the  immense  growth  of  the  practice 
requires  careful  guarding  in  the  Church  of  England.  I  put 
'  Private  '  above,  but  do  not  mind  reasonable  people  knowing 
what  I  think  in  these  matters.  They  are  best  avoided  with 
the  unreasonable,  and  those  who  would  be  only  grieved  at 
hearing  opinions  other  than  their  own. 

Notwithstanding  all  the  reckless  writing  on  either  side, 
the  Bishop  never  swerved  from  his  position  of  condemning 
the  compulsory  use  of  Confession,  while  sure  of  its  help- 
fulness and  allowableness  for  himself  and  many  others. 
When  told  shortly  before  his  death  how  a  young  priest  at 
a  retreat  had  differentiated  between  the  gift  of  public  and 
private  absolution,  he  looked  up  quickly  and  said,  '  How 
these  young  men  do  talk.  It  is  inconceivable  that  the 
Church  should  have  gone  unabsolved  for  just  1,300  years.' 

On  the  subject  of  '  Non-communicating  Attendance,' 
he  acutely  pointed  out  in  a  note  in  his  addresses  to 
Japanese  Divinity  students — now  reprinted  in  English,  and 
published  under  the  title'  of  '  Our  Heritage  in  the  Church  ' 
— that  '  It  was  not  customaiy  in  the  early  Church  to  have  more 
than  one  celebration  in  one  church  on  the  same  day.  There 
is  no  analogy,  therefore,  to  be  found  in  antiquity  to  the 
modern  practice  of  attending  more  than  one  Eucharist  on 
the  same  day.' 

On  this  subject  he  wrote  : 

Ajiril  II,  1890. 

In  my  judgment  non-communicating  attendance  is  not 
to  be  forbidden  to  devout  persons  on  occasions.  No  sacra- 
mental grace  is  to  be  obtained  through  it,  still  less  a  parti- 
cipation in  the  sacramental  commemoration  of  Christ's 
sacrifice  before  God.  This  last  is  participated  in  by  feeding 
on  Christ's  Body  and  Blood — and  not  elscwise — cf.  through- 
out the  Levitical  sacrifices,  in  which  feeding  was  the  means 
of  participation  to  the  offerer.  All  that  can  be  said  is  that 
it  is  a  favourable  time  of  devotion  in  concert  with  others. 

'  See  Note  74  on  p.  173  of  Oar  Herila^e  in  the  Church. 

F  F 


434 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


The  idea  of  some  Anglican  people  that  they  go  to 
Communion  at  8  and  to  the  Sacrifice  at  11.45  is  a  travesty 
of  the  Primitive  and  Catholic  Eucharist,  never  heard  of  till 
(not  mediaeval  times,  but)  yesterday. 

And  against  'the  fierce  insistence  '  upon  '  Fasting  Com- 
munion advocated  sometimes,  he  wrote  : 

The  suggestion  that  a  person  who  takes  a  cup  of  tea 
should  be  required  to  '  notably  diminish  '  the  number  of 
his  Communions  requires  no  comment  except  that  our 
Jerusalem  is  not  Mount  Sinai  in  Arabia. 

With  regard  to  Fasting  Communion,  the  following 
paper  will  not  entirely  please  either  those  who  insist  on  or 
those  who  protest  against  this  custom,  but  none  the  less  it 
is  expressive  of  his  way  of  looking  out  for  historical  pre- 
cedent, and  of  allowing  for  the  consequences  of  the  im- 
partial application  of  a  great  principle  : 

Fasting  Communion 

1.  There  is  evidence  that  the  earliest  custom  of  the 
Church  was  to  celebrate  after  a  meal,  as  at  the  Institution. 

Therefore  there  is  no  essential  irreverence  in  prior 
taking  of  food  :  or  ipso  facto  spiritual  gain  in  not  doing  so. 

2.  There  is  evidence  that  the  Eucharist  was  celebrated 
early  in  Asia  Minor  at  the  end  of  the  second  century,  and 
also  at  Rome  a  generation  later,  on  the  Lord's  Day.  Pre- 
sumably these  celebrations  were  before  a  regular  meal. 
There  is  no  contrary  evidence. 

It  is  probable  that  a  custom  thus  widely  spread,  and  the 
complete  disappearance  of  an  earlier  custom,  were  due  to 
Apostolic  suggestion  or  command.  But  to  think  that  the 
Apostles  enacted  a  law  of  perpetual  obligation  for  the 
whole  Church  in  the  matter  is  to  misconceive  the  spirit  of 
the  Apostolic  Age  (cf.  Col.  ii.,  and  notice  that  St.  Paul  set 
aside  at  Corinth  even  the  decree  of  Jerusalem).  The  new 
custom  (i  Cor.  x.,  xi.)  rested  on  the  moral  obligation  of 
'  disengagedness '  (Archbishop  Benson)  at  the  charac- 
teristic Christian  worship. 

'  Cf.  Archbishop  Benson's  Seven  Gif/s,  p.  97  :  '  Let  us  not  corrupt 
Reverence  into  Superstition  by  a  fierce  insistence  upon  Fasting  Communion.' 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


435 


3.  Tliere  is  evidence  that  celebrations,  whether  early 
or  late,  were  fasting  in  the  time  of  Tertullian  (a.d.  200), 
Augustine,  and  Chrysostom  (a.d.  400),  and  probably  in 
the  whole  Church  (though  see  Scudamore  on  this  point 
suggesting  exceptions),  and  this  rule  obtained  till  the 
sixteenth  century. 

There  is  no  evidence  whatever  that  the  Apostles 
established  the  distinction  between  festal  and  ferial  cele- 
brations. 

On  the  whole.  Early  Communions  may  be  called  a 
counsel  which  has  in  its  favour  ancient  prescription  and 
practical  spiritual  gain,  and  which  (apart  from  argument) 
commends  itself  now,  as  in  earlier  days,  to  the  Catholic 
mind.  A  rule  of  fasting  (where  it  does  not  engender  a 
dulness  of  spiritual  faculties  or  bodily  illness)  is  a  safe- 
guard in  the  maintenance  of  the  right  spiritual  disposition. 
But  no  authority  of  absolute  law  can  be  pleaded  :  nor 
are  formal  dispensations  requisite  as  conditions  of  relief, 
though  they  may  be  granted  when  desired. 

To  sum  up.  It  will  be  seen  that  he  felt  the  duty  of 
Anglican  Bishops  was  clearly  defined  by  the  fact  that  they 
ought  to  act  as  moderators  in  times  of  controversy,  and 
also  as  trustees  of  the  faith,  so  to  prevent  times  of  contro- 
versy becoming  times  of  loss. 

When  called  upon  himself  to  act  as  a  spiritual  guide 
he  was  found  by  those  who  sought  his  aid  to  be  searching, 
inspiring,  and,  above  all,  determined  not  to  allow  the 
wasteful  luxury  of  depression. 

A  few  extracts  are  given  from  his  letters  of  counsel  : 

I  preached  yesterday  on  '  Knowing  God.'  People 
make  Lent  too  much,  too  exclusively  a  season  of  trying  to 
know  themselves,  and  so  defeat  their  own  end.  .  .  . 

Either  plan  which  you  mention  would  be  satisfactory. 
Interruptions  are  fewest  before  breakfast.  The  main  point 
is  regularity.  Insensibly  spiritual  strength  grows  with 
continual  exercise  of  spiritual  faculties.  If  you  have  not 
been  accustomed  to  try,  you  will  find  it  hard  to  attain  to 
great  precision  in  devotional  practices ;  but  it  is  well  worth 

F  F  2 


436 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


the  effort.  One  thing  which  you  will  prove  is  that  other 
duties  must  be  attended  to  quite  punctually  too,  or  they 
will  crowd  out  devotion.  The  day  only  goes  well  when  it 
is  all  kept  to  time.  I  am  sure  that  you  will  aim  at  this» 
because  it  has  an  immediate  bearing  on  your  highest  life. 
Of  course  no  rules  are  of  cast  iron.  Interruptions  will 
come,  and  when  they  are  unavoidable,  to  go  from  prayer 
to  another  duty  is  to  go  '  from  God  to  God.'  But  they 
should  be  kept  well  in  check. 

Yours  in  our  Lord, 

Edw.  Bickersteth,  Bishop. 

Thursday  before  Easter. 

Dear  , — I  send  you  a  book  of  devotion,  which  you 

will  find  it,  I  think,  a  help  to  use  regularly.  I  should  use 
it  just  as  it  is  for  awhile,  except  that  you  might  add  certain 
petitions  and  intercessions,  but  of  the  subjects  of  these  I 
should  make  a  list.  Begin  by  a  real  effort  to  realise  the 
Presence  of  God,  and  a  petition — just  one  sentence — against 
wandering  thoughts.  It  will,  perhaps,  not  be  long  before 
you  will  be  able  to  give  yourself  greater  freedom  ;  but  even 
if  it  is,  be  not  discouraged.  Remember  that,  if  it  may  be 
said  with  reverence,  our  Lord  takes  special  interest  in  lives 
which  have  in  them  conflict  and  difficulties. 

May  you  have  much  comfort  and  help  this  week  and  a 
bright  Easter. 

Yours  in  our  Lord, 

Edw.  Bickersteth,  Bishop. 

Easter  Eve. 

Dear  , — I  have  a  few  minutes  to  spare — so  must 

just  write  you  a  few  lines. 

I  hope  that  you  will  have  a  really  happy  Easter  

I  hope  that  you  will  try,  as  I  said  to  you,  partly  for 
your  own  comfort's  sake,  to  look  more  at  the  bright  side 
of  your  own  spiritual  life,  the  times  God  helps  you,  the 
victories,  the  happy  days  and  hours,  and  to  give  thanks 
for  them — and,  again,  to  meet  all  troubles  and  battle  all 
temptations  in  the  strength  of  Christ  Risen — not  by  your- 
self May  God  be  with  you,  and  give  you  much  to  do  for 
Him  in  this  country. 

Yours  in  Christ, 

Edw.  Bickersteth,  Bishop. 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


437 


My  favourite  text  in  times  of  depression  is  '  I  will  lift 
up  mine  eyes  to  the  hills,  whence  cometh  my  help?  My 
help  cometh  even  from  the  Lord.'  It  was  only  when  the 
Psalmist  looked  away  from  himself  to  the  great  mountain 
tops  that  he  knew  whence  strength  came.  His  own  foot- 
prints would  never  have  taught  it  him.  Of  this  the  New 
Testament  version  is  '  I  apprehend,  yea  rather  I  was 
apprehended  by  (or  of)  Him.'  St.  Paul  goes  straight 
through  the  thought  of  himself  and  his  own  faith  and  his 
own  needs,  to  the  thought  of  God  and  God's  care  for  him 
and  God's  grasp  of  him. 

It  was  his  constant  aim  to  be  a  true  father  in  God  to 
men  of  all  opinions  among  his  clergy.  All  of  them  knew 
they  could  rely  on  his  sympathy.  Mrs.  Bishop,  in  her 
reminiscences '  recorded  in  this  volume,  and  the  Rev.  F. 
Armine  King,  in  his  sketch  at  the  end  of  this  chapter,  both 
alike,  from  two  different  standpoints,  record  their  apprecia- 
tion of  his  power  of  throwing  himself  into  the  joys  and 
sorrows  of  those  who  sought  him  for  advice  or  counsel. 
When  he  went  to  stay  with  his  clergy,  especially  if  there 
were  children  in  the  house,  he  was  probably  at  his  very 
best.  As  a  guest  he  tried  to  give  as  little  trouble  as 
possible,  and  whenever  he  could,  he  delighted  in  doing 
good  by  stealth.  He  would  devise  some  way  of  easing  a 
domestic  burden  which  might  unconsciously  have  been 
revealed  to  him,  or  of  securing  a  respite  from  work  for 
some  over-tired  worker,  so  that  he  was  united  to  his  clergy 
and  their  families  by  a  true  bond  of  sympathy. 

The  ideal  of  the  episcopal  office  which  he  set  before 
himself  could  be  filled  in,  if  it  were  desirable,  from  quota- 
tions in  his  MS.  book  of  devotion  from  all  sorts  of  writers, 
ancient  and  modern,  in  which  he  grouped  together  the  chief 
functions  which  a  Bishop  might  fulfil.  That  ideal  no 
doubt  towered  above  him  like  a  mountain  peak  hard  to 


'  See  chapter  x.  p.  390. 


438 


BISHOP  EDWARD 


BICKERSTETH 


scale,  but  a  combination  of  calm  strength  and  innate 
vigour,  and  the  maintenance  of  a  just  proportion  between 
affection  and  thought,  between  feeling  and  truth,  was  his 
aim.  The  questions  of  self-examination  which  he  drew 
up  for  himself  were  thorough  and  piercing,  and  he  headed 
them,  '  Amplius  lava  me,  Domine.'  '  Devotion  to  be  kept 
pure  needs  ideas  as  well  as  feelings,'  was  a  thought  of 
Dean  Church '  which  was  dear  to  him,  as  also  St.  Austin's 
'  Oratio  sine  meditatione  tepida  est.' 

He  tried  to  remember  the  rule,  'Praedicatio  Evangelii 
est  praecipuum  munus  episcoporum '  (Concil.  Trid.  de  Ref. 
ii.),  and  he  felt  the  office  of  a  Bishop  was  to  be  like 
Christ's  in  preaching  constantly  and  diligently  the  truth 
which  he  had  received.  The  picture  of  Bishop  Hamilton 
(of  Salisbury)  dying  with  a  map  of  his  diocese  before 
him  was  an  incentive  to  him,  as  well  as  the  thought  of 
the  Cure  d'Ars,  '  It  is  an  awful  thing  to  pass  from  the 
cure  of  souls  to  the  tribunal  of  God.'  He  was  as  ready  to 
cull  some  .  inspiration  from  Charles  Spurgeon's  words: 
'  Some  of  us  could  honestly  say  that  we  are  seldom  a 
quarter  of  an  hour  without  speaking  to  God,  and  that  not 
as  a  duty  but  as  an  instinct,  a  habit  of  the  new  nature 
for  which  we  claim  no  more  credit  than  a  babe  does  for 
crying  after  its  mother,'  as  to  gather  a  lesson  from  the 
following  passage  of  Charles  Borromeo  : 

Multum  interest  ut  ab  initio  earn  tibi  vitae  formam 
rationemque  constituas,  quam  in  postremum  perpetuo 
sequaris,  nihilque  de  recto  vivendi  modo  quem  inchoaveris 
remittas  aut  relaxes  ;  deinde  etiam  istud  omnino  enitaris 
et  efficias  ut  des  certas  et  statas  horas  lectioni,  meditationi, 
orationi,  quas  neque  salutationes  interrumpere  nec  alia 
externa  negotia  minus  urgentia  impedire  possunt. 

Perhaps  by  giving  one  of  the  latest  pages  just  as  it 

'  Lecture  on  Pascal's  Pensees,  by  Dean  Church. 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


439 


stands  from  his  MS.  book  of  devotions  used  in  preparing 
for  Holy  Communion,  I  may  best  convey  an  idea  of  how 
the  work  of  watching  unto  prayer  begun  by  him  at  Delhi 
was  maintained  to  the  end  : 

'Mundamini  qui  fertis  vasa  Domini.' 

'  Episcopum  oportet  judicare,  interpretari,  con.secrare, 
ordinare,  offerre,  baptizare,  et  confirmare.'  '  Pontijicale 
Roinatnun,'  p.  78.) 

Ep.  Mnncm. 

(BLUKpLcns  Trvsv/jidTaJv) 


Ordination 
Confirmation 
Teaching 
Adminstration 
Visitation 
Discipline 

Ministration  of  Sacra-  ] 
ments  (Jus  liturgicum,  - 
&c.)  J 


(a7a.7r?/) 

{dKpl/3sia) 
(BiKcnoauvT],  sXso?) 

(svas/Ssta) 


Humility 
Self-sacrifice 
Wisdom 
Firmness 
Moderation 
Constancy 
RecoUectedness 
Dignity,  reticence 
Reserve 


Ep.  Exaincn. 

Energy 

Gentleness 

Sympathy 

Detachment 

Patience 

Justice 

Fatherlincss 


correspondence 
study 


I-)iliQ"cricc  in 

Boldness  (e.g.  in  reproof)       °  |  episcopal  duties 

Calmness  ^devotion 

Zeal  for  souls 

Sense  of  responsibility. 

Episcopate  a  call  to  perfection. 

timber  seasons  time  of  fasting  and  prayer 

'  Vacare  meditationi.' 

Work  in  spirit  of  prayer  subservient  to  spiritual  life. 

Fervent  in  intercession. 

Bishop  of  whole  diocese,  not  of  party. 

Personal  knowledge  of  clergy. 

Liberal  in  discharge  of  public  functions. 


440 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


Hospitable  to  clergy. 

Elder  clergy  as  fathers,  younger  as  brethren. 

Relying  on  gift  of  God  the  Holy  Ghost  (His  grace  for 

office). 
Looking  to  the  reward. 
Vows  of  priesthood  and  consecration. 

'  Nos  autem  orationi  et  ministerio  verbi  instantes 
erimus.' 

'  Only  unto  the  tribe  of  Levi  He  gave  no  inheritance. 
The  sacrifices  of  the  Lord  God  of  Israel  made  by  fire  are 
their  inheritance,  as  he  said  unto  them.' 

Qiy-in  -iv-i^  IK-Ifn  ^"hn.    Ezek.  xxxiv.  2. 

'  Fort  comme  le  diamant,  plus  tendre  qu'une  mere.' 

Laco7'daire  of  a  priest. 

'  Make  his  life  to  be  more  holy  than  that  of  any  of  his 
people  without  any  deviation.' — Ordination  of  a  Bishop 
and  Pi'iest,  Canons  of  Hippolytus. 

The  effect  of  such  an  inner  life  was  to  make  him,  as  a 
Bishop,  '  grave  but  joyous,'  to  quote  Archbishop  Benson's 
phrase  about  Cyprian,  and  the  children  whom  he  came 
across  were  quick  to  notice  this  union  of  two  qualities 
not  always  combined.  As  a  matter  of  fact,  he  was  greatly 
devoted  to  children,  and  as  a  rule  they  to  him.  Like  is 
known  by  like,  and  so  it  needed  perhaps  the  simplicity 
and  insight  of  the  child-heart  to  see  as  deeply  and  truly 
into  the  character  of  this  child  of  God  as  a  boy  in 
Japan  showed  himself  capable  of  doing.  This  little 
lad  (about  seven  or  eight  years  old)  and  his  sister  were 
overheard  learning  the  article  of  the  Creed  '  I  believe  in  the 
communion  of  saints,'  and  to  her  puzzled  objection,  '  Oh, 
but  there  are  no  saints  now,'  came  the  instant  rejoinder,  '  Oh 
yes,  there  are ;  Bishop  Bickersteth  is  one,  you  can  see  it  in 
his  face.' 

I  cannot  do  better  than  close  this  chapter  by  giving  a 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


441 


triple  appreciation  of  the  Bishop's  character  (i)  from  the 
pen  of  his  friend  and  fellow-missionary,  the  Rev.  F.  Armine 
King  ;  (2)  from  a  priest  of  the  Japanese  Church  ;  and  (3) 
from  the  Bishop  of  St.  Andrews. 

Memories  of  Bishop  Edivard  BickerstetJi 

I  felt  a  strong  attachment  for  our  Bishop  from  the  very 
first.  Just  before  my  first  interview  with  him  in  London 
in  1888  I  went  to  hear  him  give  a  missionary  address  in 
St.  Paul's  Cathedral,  and  was  greatly  struck  with  it.  There 
was  a  simplicity  and  pleasing  plaintiveness  in  his  appeal 
that  quite  won  my  heart,  and  that  brief  sermon  did  much 
to  strengthen  my  resolve  to  go  to  Japan  if  the  way  were 
clear.  At  the  interview  afterwards  I  remember  being 
attracted  by  his  wonderful  gentleness  of  manner ;  indeed, 
he  was  ever  ready  to  deal  tenderly,  and  from  that  day 
onward  I  can  recall  no  instance  of  harshness  or  even  stern- 
ness towards  myself,  though  I  fear  I  sometimes  provoked 
him.  And  yet,  though  I  say  this,  it  is  true  he  knew  well 
how  to  rebuke  firmly  and  sharply. 

His  illness  in  1891  was  a  pecularly  trying  one,  just  as 
his  last  long  illness  must  have  been.  His  strong,  quick, 
ever-active  brain  suffered  only  a  brief  weariness,  when  he 
was  glad  to  lie  still  and  do  nothing.  After  that  he  felt  full 
of  his  usual  intellectual  vigour,  and  had  no  pain  of  body 
It  was  this  that  made  the  strict  dieting  and  yet  stricter  rule 
of  lying  still  exceedingly  trying.  Nevertheless,  there  was 
the  constant  self-reminding  that  it  was  God's  will,  and  that 
his  duty  was  implicitly  to  obey  doctors'  orders,  even  though 
they  seemed  unduly  on  the  side  of  caution  and  care.  The 
extreme  sensitiveness  of  his  nature  made  him  open  to 
annoyance  from  little  things  that  others  would  hardly 
notice.  But  even  when  he  could  not  refrain  from  showing 
what  was  an  irritation  to  him,  it  was  always  clear  that  the 
strong  rein  of  self-restraining  recollectedness  was  keeping 
his  thoughts  and  words  in  check. 

It  seems  to  me,  looking  back,  that  the  gifts  of  character 
our  Bishop  had  were  rather  the  rarer  gifts.  On  this 
account  he  could  not,  in  the  usual  sense  of  the  term,  be  a 
popular  man  ;  rather  among  the  many  he  was  respected, 
among  those  who  took  any  pains  to  observe  his  work  and 


442 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


character  he  was  revered  and  valued,  and  by  the  few  he 
was  loved. 

The  rarer  gifts  he  possessed  were  such  as  these. 
Intellectually,  he  was  a  man  of  singular  power  and  exact- 
ness ;  his  fine  discernment  and  freedom  from  exaggei'ation 
made  him  in  all  matters  of  an  intellectual  kind  a  safe  guide 
and  leader.  He  was  an  exact  scholar  and  diligent  reader, 
with  a  fairly  wide  range  of  study  :  and  he  had  a  retentive 
memory  for  facts  as  well  as  for  lines  of  argument. 

In  particular,  he  showed  a  refinement  of  mind,  a 
delicacy  of  thought,  that  enabled  him  to  see  subtle 
differences  others  hardly  thought  of  And  the  same 
refinement  was  a  marked  characteristic  of  his  whole  self. 
It  was  felt  by  all  who  had  even  but  a  brief  acquaintance 
with  him.  The  sensitive  delicacy  of  mind  passed  over  into 
his  inner  heart  also.  You  saw  it  in  the  striking  pureness 
of  his  life  and  conversation,  in  the  total  inability  to  give 
even  a  hesitating  smile  to  the  joke  that  bordered  on  the 
vulgar.  Yes,  and  in  some  degrees  it  was  a  trial  to  him, 
making  him  feel  more  than  most  any  misinterpretations  of 
his  work  for  God. 

The  Bishop  had  a  distinct  gift  of  courage  ;  not  so  much  of 
natural  courage,  though  he  was  not  wanting  in  that,  but  of 
moral  courage.  This  was  seen  very  clearly  in  the  time  of  the 
Japanese  Church  Synod.  The  Bishop  never  swerved  when 
he  felt  any  principle  was  at  stake ;  careless  what  his  hearers 
might  say  or  think  of  him,  with  all  boldness  he  spoke  out 
his  mind.  And  this  courage  was  the  more  valuable  a  gift 
as  it  never  led  him  to  be  careless  of  other  people's  feelings, 
or  to  refuse  compromise  where  he  felt  he  could  con- 
scientiously accept  it. 

This  gift  of  courage  took  also  the  form  of  persistency 
and  perseverence  in  the  face  of  apparent  failure.  Some  of 
us  in  the  field  have  stood  by  and  wondered,  not  so  much 
at  the  Bishop's  bold  schemes  of  work  as  at  his  undaunted 
spirit  that  met  every  reverse  and  every  failure  with  ready 
resource  and  renewed  energy. 

He  had  also  the  gift  of  discerning  the  times.  More 
quickly  and  surely  than  most,  he  saw  whither  things  were 
tending  in  the  country  and  what  was  wanted  in  the  Church. 
And  all  these  special  powers  and  gifts  of  character  made 
him  singularly  fitted  for  the  special  work  to  which  we  now 
think  we  can  see  he  was  called  when  consecrated  missionary 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


443 


Bishop  for  Japan.  That  work,  in  a  word,  was  the  bringing 
together  of  all  the  Christians  attached  to  the  missions  of 
the  Anglican  Church  in  Japan  into  one  organisation,  with 
its  Canons  and  completed  Prayer  Book.  While  we  should 
by  no  means  ignore  the  fact  that  he  had  able  co-operators 
in  this,  we  may  safely  say  he  was  the  leading  spirit  in  it  all 
during  the  eleven  years  of  his  episcopate,  and  we  can 
hardly  over-estimate  the  importance  of  his  labours  in  this 
direction. 

His  interests,  however,  in  Church  organisation  and 
kindred  objects  cannot  be  said  to  have  really  turned  his 
attention  from  the  central  work  of  evangelisation.  This, 
after  all,  was  nearest  to  his  heart.  It  was  more  with  purely 
evangelistic  aims  than  any  love  of  organisation  that  he 
pressed  for  the  extension  of  the  episcopate  in  Japan  till  he 
saw  his  own  original  sphere  of  work  shared  by  three  other 
Bishops  from  England.  It  was  from  the  same  love  of  souls 
that  he  so  constantly  pleaded  for  more  workers  from 
England.  Nothing  gave  him  greater  joy  than  to  hear  of 
souls  being  brought  in  to  Christ ;  nothing  saddened  him 
more  than  to  find,  in  busy  Tokyo  for  instance,  how  slowly 
the  number  of  converts  increased.  He  often  reproached 
himself  for  sharing  so  little  in  direct  evangelistic  work;  but 
indeed  it  hardly  seemed  that  as  things  were  he  could  have 
spent  his  time  more  wisely  than  he  did. 

Perhaps  the  scheme  for  evangelistic  extension  most  near 
to  his  heart,  as  being  specially  his  own  creation  and  all 
along  under  his  own  immediate  control  and  direction,  was 
that  which  he  was  enabled  to  carry  out  in  Tokyo  through 
the  founding  of  the  St.  Andrew's  and  the  St.  Hilda's 
Missions.  With  his  quick  comprehensive  glance  the 
Bishop  saw  when  he  first  came  to  Japan  that  the  one  real 
centre  and  capital  of  the  country  was  Tokyo,  and  that 
there,  at  all  hazards,  the  Church  should  be  strongly 
represented  in  all  its  manifold  ways  of  witness  and  work. 
Very  far  in  those  early  days  was  it  from  being  so 
represented. 

The  Bishop's  ideal  was  something  higher  and  nobler 
than  he  was  ever  permitted  to  see  realised,  so  far  as  the 
two  Community  Missions  are  concerned.  In  the  very  last 
letter  he  wrote  for  the  Guild  Paper,  he  reminded  the 
members  of  the  Guild  of  St.  Paul  that  neither  St.  Andrew's 
nor  St.  Hilda's  Mission  was  yet  equipped  with  more  than 


444 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


half  the  number  of  workers  he  desired  to  see.  The  scheme, 
the  ideal,  was  undeniably  noble  ;  and  even  though  during 
the  eleven  years  of  attempt  to  realise  it  we  recognise  in 
the  actual  working  of  both  missions  some  failure  other 
than  that  traceable  to  lack  of  numbers,  we  cannot  but 
thank  God  for  the  measure  of  success  which  has  been 
vouchsafed  to  them. 

Until  his  marriage  in  1893,  the  Bishop  resided,  when  in 
Tokyo  and  not  visiting  other  parts  of  his  jurisdiction, 
in  St.  Andrew's  House,  Shiba,  with  the  members  of 
St.  Andrew's  Mission.  Looking  back  to  that  time  one 
remembers  not  so  much  individual  sayings  or  acts  of  the 
Bishop  such  as  might  be  recorded  for  the  further  filling  in 
of  his  portrait ;  rather  there  comes  back  to  my  mind  a 
general  recollection  of  his  even  temperament,  his  gentle 
control  of  conversation  at  meals,  his  quiet  reproof,  his  long 
suffering.  As  a  lesser  point,  I  recall  with  pleasure  his  love 
of  a  brisk  afternoon  walk  with  one  of  us  when  his  head 
was  tired  with  overmuch  writing  or  study.  It  seemed  to 
rest  him  more  than  anything  else. 

To  all  of  us  he  set  a  good  example  in  the  study  of 
Japanese :  and  he  certainly  had  his  reward,  even  if  he 
could  hardly  be  called  a  really  good  speaker  in  that  most 
difficult  language. 

Those  who  wished  to  speak  with  him  seriously  on  any 
difficulties  of  belief  would  always  find  a  patient  listener 
who  never  interrupted.  His  strong  intellectual  power, 
combined  as  it  was  with  a  truly  sympathetic  tenderness  of 
manner,  helped  some  at  least  to  see  things  clearer.  Those 
who  sought  for  spiritual  counsel  certainly  found  in  him  a 
true  father  in  God,  a  wise  and  gentle  shepherd  of  souls. 

As  a  preacher  he  was,  as  a  rule,  I  am  inclined  to  think, 
too  much  lacking  in  simplicity  of  language  and  subject  to 
appeal  to  the  many,  but  there  were  signal  exceptions  to 
this.  His  addresses  on  Quiet  Days  were  always  able  and 
often  most  helpful.  The  Bishop  himself  specially  de- 
lighted at  those  times  in  treating  of  some  subject  bearing 
closely  on  the  m}'stery  of  our  Lord's  Incarnation,  and 
many  precious  thoughts  he  left  with  us  on  this  and  other 
mysteries  of  the  faith.  In  all  such  traching  it  was 
noticeable  how  careful  he  was  to  be  strictly  accurate  in 
his  handling  of  any  passages  of  Holy  Scripture  ;  he  was 
a  specially  close  student  of  the  New  Testament  Greek. 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


445 


I  may  supplement  what  I  said  about  his  preaching  by 
saying  that  the  Japanese  valued  his  sermons  much.  I  am 
myself  witness,  and  have  the  witness  of  others  to  this. 
They  generally  felt  he  was  a  true  teacher  among  them, 
telling  them  something  it  did  them  good  to  hear  :  in  a 
special  way  they  were  ready  to  sit  at  his  feet  as  willing 
learners  and  listeners. 

The  Bishop  was  a  High  Churchman  who  had  reached 
his  opinions  rather  by  intellectual  conviction  than  by 
obedience  to  the  authority  of  the  Church  as  such.  It 
was  easily  noticeable,  however,  that  any  modification  in 
his  views  during  the  years  we  knew  him  was  in  the  direc- 
tion of  more  pronounced  Church  teaching,  rather  than  in 
that  of  the  broad  school  of  theology.  On  the  subject  of 
the  New  Criticism  he  was  specially  well  read,  but  on 
principle  had  not  formed  any  final  opinions.  He  desired 
above  all  things  to  see  a  patient  hearing  given  to  all  that 
the  new  critics  might  have  to  say,  and  he  believed  that 
while  some  years  must  elapse  before  a  balanced  judgment 
of  the  whole  question  would  be  forthcoming,  the  result 
could  not,  whichever  way  it  went,  affect  the  essentials  of 
the  faith. 

His  constitution  made  it  most  difficult  for  him  to 
observe  rules  of  fasting,  though  he  did  not  ignore  them. 
He  never  pressed  them  at  all  strongly  on  others.  His 
whole  cast  of  mind  was  against  laying  stress  on  the  strict 
observance  of  the  letter  in  connection  with  Church  rules. 
With  regard  to  the  Daily  Office,  he  was  strong  in  urging 
the  clergy  to  say  it  at  least  privately  when  not  duly 
hindered ;  and  he  viewed  it  as  a  serious  loss  to  the 
Japanese  Church  that  the  rule  on  the  subject  as  found  in 
the  English  Prayer  Book  (though  not  in  the  American) 
did  not  meet  with  enough  support  to  enable  it  to  be 
introduced  into  the  present  Japanese  Prayer  Book  at  the 
last  revision.  His  anxiety  to  have  this  rule  made  authori- 
tative and  observed  by  all  the  clergy  of  the  Japanese 
Church  was  real. 

To  gather  up  into  one  sentence  the  weight  and 
beauty  of  his  character,  those  who  came  into  close  contact 
with  him  were  aware  not  only  of  a  great  reserve  of 
strength  lying  behind  the  outward  gentleness  of  his  man- 
ner and  conversation,  but  of  something  more  than  that  — 
of  a  deep  purity  of  soul  which   constrained  them  to 


446 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


recognise  that  in  his  innermost  being  he  was  continually 
walking  with  God. 

Armine  F.  King, 

St.  Andrew's  House,  Shiba,  Tokyo. 

June  22,  1898. 

Recollections  '  by  the  Rev.  John  Iinai,  Priest  of  the 
Nippon  Sci  Kokwai 

I  look  back  these  ten  years  in  which  our  dear  late 
Bishop  was  with  us,  and  during  which  days  I  had  the 
privilege  of  being  with  him  in  intimate  contact,  and  as  I 
look  back  it  is  like  thinking  of  the  days  of  childhood. 
For  those  years  are  the  days  of  my  childhood,  not  of  my 
natural  life,  but  of  the  new-born  life  in  the  Christian  faith. 
There  is  one  who  bare  me  in  it,  but  it  was  the  Bishop  to 
a  great  extent  who  brought  me  up  in  its  ministerial  life. 
I  bless  those  daj-s  gone  by,  and  turn  to  them  with 
inexpressible  feelings  of  tenderness  and  love. 

I  had  already  been  a  catechist  some  years  when  the 
Bishop  came  to  Tokyo,  and  though  I  was  not  doing  much 
work  with  responsibility  I  was  already  enlisted  among  the 
workers,  and  my  work  was  to  teach  or  preach  to  Christians 
and  heathen.  But  how  scanty  and  poor  was  my  own  self- 
instruction  in  the  devotional  life  at  that  time,  and  how  the 
Bishop  opened  before  me  a  higher  ideal  of  the  Christian 
life,  can  be  seen  in  an  incident  which,  though  it  may  seem 
a  commonplace  matter  to  many,  yet  to  me  it  was  a  time 
of  spiritual  awakening.  One  day  we  were  together  in  his 
study,  where  I  often  was  called  in  for  private  instruction  or 
prayer ;  he  asked  me  how  I  prepared  myself  for  the  Holy 
Communion,  and  how  I  tried  to  advance  in  the  devotional 
life.  I  told  him  plainly  what  I  did  and  what  I  did  not 
know.  The  Bishop  understood  me  to  be  in  ignorance  of 
proper  method  in  these  important  duties.  After  telling 
me  what  I  ought  to  do,  and  how  I  ought  to  be  systematic 
in  self-examination,  he  gave  me  a  small  volume  of  Pre- 
bendary Sadler's,  called  '  The  Communicant's  Manual.'  I 
obeyed  his  instructions  and  used  the  manual,  and  felt 
myself  in  quite  a  new  atmosphere,  in  which  I  found  a 
deeper  sense  of  my  own  sinfulness  as  well  as  higher  mean- 

'  These  recollections  were  written  in  Englisli,  and  are  given  with  but  few 
verbal  alterations. 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


447 


ings  of  the  Divine  Presence  and  Mysteries  in  the  Sacra- 
ment. I  also  found  myself  in  touch  with  such  portions  of 
the  Bible  where  I  can  learn  more  of  the  Divine  Love  in 
the  Sacrament.  This  may  seem  strange  to  my  readers, 
but  I  was  myself  a  sample  of  Christian  workers  eleven 
years  ago ;  the  teachers  were  simpler  and  more  ignorant 
than  a  child  beginning  to  learn  his  catechism.  The 
Bishop  had  to  educate  such  child-like  workers  to  a  higher 
devotional  life  and  deeper  knowledge  of  the  Christian 
faith  before  he  could  lead  them  to  the  battlefield  to  begin 
more  systematic  and  organised  fight  against  unbelief  and 
sin.  Well,  I  felt  ashamed  of  my  own  ignorance  and  shallow- 
ness, I  felt  joy  to  see  the  way  opened  before  me,  and  at 
the  same  time  I  felt  deepest  sympathy  with  my  fellow- 
workers  and  Christians  who,  because  of  their  ignorance  of 
the  English  language,  could  not  receive  the  benefit  of  such 
light  either  from  the  Bishop  himself,  who  knew  not  enough 
Japanese  then,  or  from  books.  This  sympathy  stirred  me 
to  edit  a  manual  of  private  devotion  in  the  Japanese 
language,  and  a  few  years  afterwards  I  was  able  to  offer 
to  the  Church  a  little  volume,  entitled  the  '  Inori  no  Sono ' 
(Garden  of  Prayer). 

But  such  instructions  on  the  part  of  the  Bishop  were 
but  a  small  matter  compared  to  the  living  voice  heard  by 
those  around  him  in  the  devotional  loftiness  of  his  private 
life.  I  used  often  to  be  with  him  in  his  study,  and  very 
seldom  said  good-bye  without  kneeling  down  together 
quietly.  And  when  we  rose  up  he  used  to  look  like  one 
returned  from  a  furious  conflict  in  which  he  fought  for 
someone  else  ;  the  moisture  in  his  eyes  and  tender 
expression  of  his  countenance  told  his  burning  zeal  in 
devotion  for  one  of  his  flock,  and  I  always  felt  ashamed  to 
think  that  he  prayed  for  me  more  intensely  than  I  did  for 
myself.  No  one  who  was  not  constantly  placing  himself 
before  the  Throne  of  Grace  could  pray  as  our  Bishop  did. 
The  following  story  will  give  a  glimpse  of  his  devotional 
life. 

Eight  or  nine  years  ago  the  Bishop  used  to  take  with 
him  his  servant,  Masajiro,  on  his  journeys,  and  often  in 
poor  village  inns  he  used  to  attend  his  master.  The 
Bishop,  perhaps,  had  walked  the  whole  morning  over 
broken  roads  or  mountain  passes  ;  he  had  seen  Christians 
and  inquirers  from  this  and  neighbouring  villages  during 


448 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


the  afternoon,  they  having  called  on  him  one  after  the 
other,  so  that  always  someone  was  talking  with  him  ;  in 
the  evening  the  Bishop  had  preached  to  a  congregation, 
some  of  whom  had  stayed  behind  for  further  talk  till  quite 
late  in  the  night.  Towards  midnight  the  Bishop  is  free 
and  alone  for  the  first  time  ;  Masajiro  expects  his  master 
to  retire  to  bed  and  get  his  needed  rest.  The  village  and 
the  inn  itself  are  all  quiet ;  he  goes  to  see  if  the  Bishop  is 
asleep,  but  finds  him  standing  straight  and  still  without 
moving.  The  servant  goes  back  to  his  own  quarters,  and 
after  some  time  past  steals  again  to  the  Bishop's  room  and 
looks  through  the  screen  where  the  paper  is  torn  ;  the 
Bishop  is  still  standing  in  the  same  position.  Time  passes 
on,  and  at  last,  after  having  been  in  vain  several  times,  he 
finds  the  Bishop  in  bed.  Masajiro  failed  to  understand 
this,  but  came  to  the  conclusion  that  it  must  be  a  kind  of 
religious  duty,  a  Gio  (the  tortures  inflicted  by  heathen 
priests  on  their  bodies  to  make  them  holy)  ;  but  when  the 
servant  himself  began  to  understand  the  Christian  faith 
he  knew  that  the  Bishop  had  been  quietly  spending  his 
lonely  hours  with  God  in  prayer  and  meditation.  Such 
stories  connected  with  his  private  life  cannot  but  influence 
others  towards  higher  spiritual  holiness  ;  how  much  more 
to  those  who  have  seen  such  incidents  actually  before  their 
eyes  ! 

I  also  remember  the  Bishop  as  most  studious  in 
reading,  specially  Bible-study.  His  knowledge  of  the 
Bible  was  felt  by  all  who  knew  him  ;  no  one  whom  I 
have  known  has  been  able  to  quote  the  Bible  so  freely  and 
easily,  and  yet,  as  he  told  me  himself,  he  never  ceased  to 
read  some  commentary  every  morning.  He  was  already 
well  read  in  theology,  but  I  found  him  always  diligent  in 
reading.  When  he  travelled  he  carried  many  volumes 
with  him,  and  he  never  ceased  to  read  in  trains,  jin- 
rikshas,  and  in  inns.  I  remember  one  day  going  to  his 
study  and  finding  him  deeply  immersed  in  reading.  I 
said  I  wished  he  would  take  care  of  himself  more ;  he 
answered  with  tender  graveness  :  'You  see,  it  is  not  an  easy 
thing  to  be  a  Bishop  ;  one  must  read  hard  to  be  able  to 
teach  others.'  I  knew  he  told  me  this  in  order  to  remind 
me,  as  he  always  told  his  workers,  that  I  myself  ought  to 
study  more  as  a  teacher  of  God's  Truth. 

I  was  called  '  Bishop's  mouth  '  by  himself.    I  had  the 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


449 


privilege  of  being  his  interpreter  in  early  days  at  synodical 
meetings  and  when  he  preached.  Many  friends,  both 
foreign  and  Japanese,  have  said  how  difficult  it  must  be 
to  interpret  for  the  Bishop,  because  of  his  deep  discourses, 
long  sentences,  difficult  words,  and  way  of  pronunciation. 
But  I  used  always  to  tell  them  that  of  all  foreigners  for 
whom  I  had  to  interpret  the  Bishop  was  the  easiest,  and 
my  reason  was  always  the  same.  To  quote  my  ow^n 
words :  '  An  interpreter  must  be  first  inspired  by  the 
preacher  himself  before  he  can  convey  the  meaning  to 
others.  And  nobody  is  able  to  inspire  me  and  to  stir  up 
the  zeal  and  life  in  me  as  our  Bishop  does.  When  I 
interpret  for  him,  it  is  no  longer  someone  else's  words 
and  convictions  that  come  out  of  my  mouth,  but  I  feel  as 
if  I  were  speaking  my  own  conviction  and  belief,  so  that 
I  can  interpret  with  life  and  zeal.  In  the  case  of  other 
foreigners,  I  often  forget  the  words  I  am  listening  to 
because  I  am  occasionally  drawn  into  criticism,  opposition 
of  thought,  or  even  fear  of  not  doing  much  benefit  ;  and 
the  very  endeavour  to  keep  down  such  thoughts  distracts 
my  faculties.'  I  write  this  to  show  how  the  Bishop's 
sermons  and  addresses  were  powerful  and  effective  with 
his  audience  no  less  than  his  personal  influence. 

I  need  not  say  that  he  had  a  wonderful  memory  and 
gifts  as  a  linguist.  His  progress  in  the  Japanese  language 
was  simply  marvellous.  But  sometimes  mistaken  words 
told  him  were  also  well  remembered  1  I  remember  on 
one  occasion,  when  suddenly  asked,  telling  him  the  wrong 
words,  and  when  some  weeks  after  I  mentioned  the  right 
words  for  the  same  thing,  the  Bishop  asked  me  if  that 
word  had  exactly  the  same  meaning  as  the  one  I  had  told 
him  before.  I  had  to  privately  warn  his  Japanese  teacher  : 
'  Mind  you  tell  the  Bishop  the  right  words,  because  he  will 
never  forget  what  once  he  has  been  taught,  and  if  wrong 
words  are  told  him  he  will  carry  them  with  him,  to  his 
great  disadvantage.' 

Everyone  who  sat  with  him  in  the  first  synod  at 
Osaka,  when  the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai  was  duly  constituted, 
was  astonished  at  his  great  power  of  understanding  what 
was  going  on  in  the  midst  of  the  hot  debates  in  the 
Japanese  language.  He  often  stood  up  in  the  midst  of 
much  excited  debate  to  express  his  own  opinion.  And 
when  he  spoke  he  never  missed  the  points  which  were  in 


G  G 


450 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


hot  discussion.  It  was  quite  wonderful,  because  no  one 
had  time  to  tell  him  what  was  going  on,  and  he  had  not 
then  been  in  Japan  more  than  twelve  months.  We  all 
thought  him  to  be  a  born  president.  We  were  able  more 
fully  to  know  his  ability  on  this  point  when  he  presided 
over  later  synods,  when  his  knowledge  of  the  language 
enabled  his  power  to  show  itself. 

The  Bishop  was  the  hardest  worker  I  ever  knew. 
Though  he  was  constantly  fighting  against  fatigue  and 
weariness,  he  worked  on  and  on.  It  seemed  as  if  work 
were  not  only  duty  to  him,  but  even  rest.  Once  when  I 
was  with  him  an  English  gentleman  came  in.  Seeing  the 
Bishop  very  tired  and  overworked,  he  spoke  to  him  of  the 
great  need  of  taking  care  of  himself  and  of  rest.  '  But  what 
is  life '  said  the  Bishop.  '  Life  is  work  .  .  .  life  without 
work  is  unworthy  of  being  lived.'  I  hope  to  remember 
these  words  all  my  life.  Some  years  ago  I  read  Dr. 
Westcott's  pastoral,  in  which  he  says  :  '  Life  is  an  oppor- 
tunity for  service,'  and  I  thought  how  our  Bishop  realised 
the  idea  of  the  master,  of  whom  he  always  spoke  with 
great  admiration  and  love. 

It  is  no  wonder  that  such  a  man  as  he  should  be  always 
filled  with  burning  enthusiasm  for  God's  glory  and  the 
kingdom  of  Christ.  Nay,  the  fire  in  him  was  the  source 
from  which  his  work  and  devotion  were  produced.  To  be 
with  him  was  to  be  in  touch  with  a  consuming  fire.  In 
persons  of  such  enthusiasm  there  is  often  a  tendency  to 
impatience.  But  I  was  often  as  much  struck  with  the 
Bishop's  patience  and  contentedness  as  with  his  zeal  and 
energy.  I  was  often  impatient  and  precipitate,  and  ex- 
pressed my  feelings  unreservedly  before  the  Bishop.  To 
speak  plainly,  I  was  sometimes  annoyed  at  seeing  the 
Bishop  patient  and  hopeful  in  the  midst  of  small  begin- 
nings. I  wished  for  grand  foundations,  for  some  great 
beginning,  to  attract  the  attention  of  the  surrounding 
heathen.  It  made  me  the  more  impatient  because  I 
believed  in  the  greatness  of  his  power,  position,  and  ability. 
But  whenever  1  poured  out  my  hot,  indignant  protests,  the 
Bishop  met  me  with  unfailing  tenderness  and  patience.  I 
remember  his  often -repeated  words  :  '  If  it  is  only  begun — 
if  it  be  continued — it  will  surely  grow  and  be  enlarged.' 
I  confess  I  was  often  disappointed  with  these  words.  But 
now  I  thank  God  for  the  Bishop's  exhortations,  not  only 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


to  zeal,  but  to  humility  and  patience,  to  entire  trust  in  the 
Almighty  Providence,  and  to  firmest  conviction  of  the 
final  conquest  of  the  Church.  Yes,  he  was  patient  and 
contented,  because  he  knew  '  the  work,  once  begun,  will 
be  perfected.'  How  often  he  looked  like  a  mighty  con- 
queror commanding  a  conquered  nation,  even  in  the  midst 
of  failure  and  difficulties  in  the  Church's  work.  He  was 
patient  and  obedient  on  his  death-bed,  and  died  a 
conqueror's  death,  but  lived  a  martyr-life  in  the  martyr- 
spirit,  most  becoming  a  disciple  of  Him  Who  said  :  '  Be 
of  good  cheer,  I  have  overcome  the  world.' 

John  Toshimichi  Imal 

July  27,  1898. 


Recollections  by  the  Right  Rev.  G.  H.  Wilkinson, 
Bishop  of  St.  A  ndrews 

Pitfour,  Glencarse,  Perthshire,  N.B.  :  July  28,  1899. 

My  dear  Bickersteth, — I  gladly  comply  with  your 
request  that  I  should  write  a  few  words  for  the  biography 
of  your  brother,  the  late  Bishop  of  South  Tokyo. 

I  will  not  here  refer  to  his  intellectual  gifts — '  the  far- 
seeing  wisdom,  the  power  of  counsel  and  organisation,'  of 
which  the  Bishop  of  Durham  has  spoken  in  his  preface  to 
'  Our  Heritage  in  the  Church.'  I  will  confine  myself  to 
certain  characteristics  which  seem  to  account,  in  part  at 
any  rate,  for  his  influence  at  home  and  abroad,  and,  in  the 
truest  sense  of  the  words,  his  successful  life. 

I.  There  was  a  whole-hearted  devotion  to  a  living 
Saviour.  He  had  learned  in  his  own  experience  what  is 
meant  by  the  burden  of  sin  and  the  peace  of  a  realised  for- 
giveness. He  knew  the  price  at  which  that  blessing  of 
acceptance  with  God  had  been  purchased — even  the  agony 
and  bloody  sweat,  the  cross  and  passion,  of  the  Incarnate 
God.    So  he  had  yielded  himself  entirely  to  his  Saviour. 

At  all  times  and  in  all  places,  in  sickness  and  in  health, 
in  joy  and  in  sorrow,  in  hours  of  recreation  no  less  than  in 
days  of  active  effort,  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  was  the  ever 
present  Ruler  of  his  life. 

Those  who  knew  him.  best  could  not  fail  to  recognise 
how  the  inner  force  of  his  life  was  the  constraining  love  of 
Jesus  Christ.    'The  life  which  I  now  live,'  he  might  have 

i;  G  2 


452 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


said,  '  I  live  in  faith,  the  faith  which  is  in  the  Son  of  God, 
Who  loved  me,  and  gave  up  Himself  for  me.' 

II.  This  recognition  of  the  Presence  of  a  living  Lord 
made  him  hold  fast  to  every  portion  of  the  divine  revelation 
which  he  had  once  received.  He  was  thus  saved  from  the 
abandonment  of  old  truths  and  the  exaggeration  of  new 
teaching.  He  believed  that  every  fragment  of  truth  was 
precious,  because  it  came  from  Him  who  is  emphatically 
'  The  Truth,'  and  who  has  promised  by  the  Holy  Spirit  to 
guide  us  into  all  the  Truth.  For  instance,  the  individual 
relation  to  God  of  every  soul  which  has  been  baptised  into 
Christ,  the  free  access  of  the  children  of  God  to  their 
Heavenly  Father  through  the  one  Mediator,  the  privilege 
and  responsibility  of  exercising  the  individual  judgment 
in  dependence  on  the  Holy  Spirit — these  and  similar 
truths,  once  apprehended,  held  their  own  place  in  his  heart 
and  mind  to  the  end  of  his  life. 

And  yet  what  is  technically  called  Catholic  teaching 
as  to  the  Church  and  her  sacraments,  as  to  the  power 
entrusted  by  God  to  a  fully  ordained  ministry,  these  facts 
in  the  divine  economy  were  held  with  a  firm  grasp  and 
taught  with  unhesitating  courage.  As  the  result  of  this  God- 
given  sincerity,  he  seemed  to  be  '  ever  increasing  in  the 
knowledge  of  God  and  growing  up,  in  all  things,  unto  Him 
who  is  the  Head,  even  Christ.' 

III.  To  this  same  realisation  of  the  Presence  of  the 
crucified  and  living  Lord,  we  may  ascribe  his  brave  and 
patient  perseverance.  These  characteristics  have  been 
noted  in  the  history  of  his  public  work  alike  at  Delhi  and 
in  Japan.  I  had  rather  the  opportunity  of  watching  their 
manifestation  in  his  individual  life.  Two  illustrations  alike 
of  his  patience  and  perseverance  may  suffice. 

A.  There  was  patience. 

When  the  will  of  his  Lord  was  clearly  revealed  and  he 
was  obliged  by  illness  to  give  up  his  work  at  Delhi,  he 
submitted  himself  to  what  seemed  to  be  the  demand  of  his 
King.  He  came  home  to  England,  and,  in  his  English 
parish,  he  laboured  as  if  his  soul  had  never  been  kindled 
by  the  fire  of  missionary  zeal,  as  if  he  had  never  known  the 
glory  of  witnessing  for  God  in  the  outposts  of  Christendom. 

It  was  a  hard  trial,  as  those  know  to  whom  he  was 
accustomed  to  write  unreservedly  ;  but  he  endured  because 
he  saw  '  Him  who  is  invisible,'  and  recognised  the  severe 


INTELLECTUAL  STANDPOINT 


453 


discipline  as  the  outcome  of  His  Divine  Will.  So  also  in 
his  last  illness,  again  and  again  he  faced  the  possibility 
of  being  obliged  to  resign  the  diocese  which  he  loved  so 
dearly.  He  shrank  from  the  trial.  He  prayed  that  if  it 
were  possible  the  cup  might  pass  away.  But  that  prayer 
was  always  followed  by  the  utterance  of  his  yielded  will — 
'  Nevertheless,  not  my  will,  but  Thine  be  done.' 

B.  There  was  steadfast,  unflinching  perseverance. 

Through  all  the  quiet  of  his  work  in  England  he  held 
fast  to  the  hope  that,  once  more,  he  might  venture  his  all 
on  foreign  service.  The  moment  that  leave  was  given  he 
went  out,  carrying  his  life  in  His  hands.  So  also,  when 
the  end  was  approaching,  he  never  lost  the  conviction  that 
a  message  had  been  given  him  by  his  Lord,  which  must  be 
delivered.  So  he  went  up  from  his  bed  of  sickness,  and 
with  real  courage  faced  the  strain  of  the  last  Lambeth 
Conference,  and  spoke  the  strong  words  which  some  of  his 
brethren  will  never  forget.  Then,  having  finished  his 
work  on  earth,  he  went  away  into  the  quiet  country  home 
in  which  his  spirit  was  to  be  yielded  up  to  the  God  who 
gave  it. 

It  was  a  noble  life — courageous,  enduring,  surrendered. 
God  help  us  all  to  follow  his  example. 

Affectionately  yours, 

George  St.  Andrews. 


454 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


CHAPTER  XII 

THE  CALL  HOME 

'  For  your  constant  hospitality,  loyal  support  and  loving  co-operation 
during  these  years,  accept  my  sincere  and  heartfelt  thanks.  The  earliest  ex- 
tant Pastoral  of  an  English  Bishop,  Aelfric,  of  Ravensbury,  994  A.D.,  closes 
with  these  words,  "  Christ  saith  of  His  ministers  who  serve  Him  that  they 
shall  always  be  with  Him  in  bliss,  where  He  Himself  is,  in  life  truly  so  called." 
May  the  words  be  indeed  fulfilled  to  you  and  to  me. ' — Pastoral  Letter  to  his 
Clergy  by  Bishop  Edward  Bickersteth,  Advent  1892. 

It  only  remains  to  put  on  record  the  circumstances 
attending  '  the  calling  home '  of  Bishop  Edward  Bicker- 
steth at  the  comparatively  early  age  of  forty-seven,  as  well 
as  some  of  the  comments  made  on  hearing  of  his  death  by 
those  who  knew  and  loved  him,  and  had  worked  with 
him  or  had  watched  his  work  from  a  distance.  In  a  sense, 
death  at  his  age  is  premature,  and  yet  in  his  case  the  con- 
current though  independent  testimony  which  saw  in  his 
death  a  completion  rather  than  a  cutting-off  is  remarkable. 
This  was  the  feeling  of  those  who  had  known  him  in 
Japan,  as  is  shown  by  the  following  extract  from 
Archdeacon  Shaw's  letter.  Writing  to  me  from  Tokyo  on 
September  7,  1897,  the  Archdeacon  said  : 

.  .  .  The  feeling  of  our  loss  comes  on  one  again  and 
again  with  renewed  and  overwhelming  force.  We  were  so 
dependent  on  him,  his  strong  intellect  and  clear  judgment. 
His  life,  however,  does  give  one  a  sense  of  completeness. 
His  great  work  here  which  God  had  raised  him  up  to  do 
was  finished  in  the  organisation  of  the  native  Church  and 
its  division  into  dioceses. 


THE  CALL  HOME 


455 


While  to  his  father,  the  Bishop  of  Durham  wrote  from 
Robin  Hood's  Bay,  Yorks  (August  6,  1897) : 

My  dear  Brother, — This  is  the  Festival  of  the  Transfigu- 
ration, and  that  revelation  will  speak  all  I  could  wish  to  say 
to  you  in  your  great  and  unlooked-for  sorrow.  Thoughts  of 
work  ended  have  been  very  near  to  me  for  some  time,  and 
Edward  has  had  the  great  joy  of  seeing  fruits  of  his  work, 
which  multiply.  Your  book  made  me  think  of  Banningham 
again,  where  I  saw  him  as  a  baby.  How  wonderfully  God 
uses  us.  .  .  .  Since  Cambridge  days  Edward  has  been  con- 
stantly in  my  mind.  He  gave  shape  to  one  of  my  most 
earnest  desires.    With  deepest  sympathy. 

Ever  yours  affectionately, 

B.  F.  Dun  ELM. 

On  the  day  before  he  died,  many  of  his  own  disjointed 
words,  spoken  when  he  was  quite  unconscious,  were  yet 
full  of  characteristic  force.  Once  he  turned  to  me,  and 
with  eyes  fixed  full  on  me,  he  said, '  What  is  the  Hindustani 
for  achieving  your  purpose  ? '  and  after  a  minute's  pause  he 
repeated  what  I  take  to  have  been  the  word  which  his  failing 
powers  of  memory  were  trying  to  recover.  This  shows 
that  his  own  mind  was  turning  on  that  same  subject — the 
thought  of  work  accomplished — which  found  its  most 
sublime  and  only  perfect  utterance  in  our  Lord's  own  cry 
of  triumph,  '  It  is  finished.'  Possibly  this  also  was  the 
reason  which  caused  him  on  the  day  he  died,  when  he  had 
passed  quite  beyond  any  power  of  recognising  us,  to  take 
off  his  episcopal  ring  and  lay  it  quietly  on  his  breast. 

When  the  Bishop,  however,  left  Japan  in  December 
1896  he  had  no  presentiment  that  he  would  not  return, 
and  even  when,  more  than  six  months  later  (July  1897),  he 
left  London  and  the  Lambeth  Conference  for  Chisledon, 
where  he  died  after  ten  days,  he  still  was  apparently  with- 
out any  feeling  that  his  course  was  run.  Many  of  those, 
however,  who  saw  him  in  London  felt  that  his  days  of 


456 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


earthly  work  were  numbered,  and  the  Bishops  assembled 
at  the  Lambeth  Conference  observed  with  much  concern 
the  great  effort  which  it  cost  him  to  take  part  in  their 
earHer  discussions.  He  intervened  more  than  once,  but  on 
the  one  occasion  when  he  formally  introduced  the  subject 
on  which  the  late  Archbishop  Benson  more  than  a  year 
previously  had  asked  him  to  speak,  his  mental  vigour  was 
unimpaired,  but  his  bodily  frailty  was  apparent  to  all.  He 
so  handled  his  theme  that  many  of  the  Bishops  present 
said  they  never  could  forget  the  impression  left  by  his 
words,  and  as  one  of  them  wrote  :  '  He  touched  the  whole 
subject  of  foreign  missions  with  the  fire  of  the  Lord,  and 
set  the  note  vibrating  that  sounded  as  the  predominant 
blessing  of  our  recent  gathering.' 

As  regards  those  last  months  and  days  on  earth,  no 
one  can  write  with  the  same  authority  as  his  wife. 
I  am  thankful  to  be  allowed  to  give  the  following  account, 
written  by  Mrs.  Edward  Bickersteth : 

We  left  Japan  on  Friday,  December  4,  1896,  travelling 
vt'd  Vancouver  and  New  York,  as  the  doctors  wished  us  to 
avoid  the  Tropics.  The  sea-air  seemed  at  once  to  revive 
my  husband,  and  though  he  could  hardly  stand  when  we 
went  on  board,  by  Sunday  he  insisted  on  taking  service, 
and  when  we  landed  at  Vancouver  he  seemed  almost 
himself,  and  received  congratulations  from  the  kind 
captain  and  officers  of  the  '  Empress  of  India.'  But  the 
journey  across  Canada  in  the  bitter  winter  was  too  much 
for  the  newly  acquired  strength,  and  there  were  two 
relapses,  first  at  Ottawa  (where  we  were  the  guests  of 
Bishop  and  Mrs.  Hamilton),  and  then  at  New  York.  At 
this  latter  city  we  spent  Christmas  Day,  and  my  husband's 
old  friend.  Dr.  Body,  most  kindly  came  to  celebrate  the 
Holy  Communion  in  our  room  at  the  hotel,  so  that  we 
should  not  lo.se  the  Christmas  Feast.  The  following  day 
we  sailed  for  England,  which  we  reached  on  January  2, 
much  cheered  by  the  improvement  caused  by  the  short 
voyage.     But  then  followed  a  weary  three  months  of  con- 


THE  CALL  HOME 


457 


finement  to  bed  and  sofa,  with  perpetual  hopes  of  real  con- 
valescence which  always  proved  illusory,  and  were  followed 
by  a  fresh  relapse.  We  were  staying  at  my  father's  house 
in  Rutland  Gate,  and  many  were  the  friends  and  relations 
who  found  their  way  to  my  husband's  room  and  helped 
to  cheer  the  tedious  hours.  Among  these  he  specially 
valued  the  visits  of  the  Bishop  of  St.  Andrews,  the  Rev. 
G.  A.  Lefroy(on  furlough  from  Delhi),  and  Canon  Body  of 
Durham.  There  was  all  through  this  time  of  hope  deferred 
a  patient  cheerfulness,  an  entire  trustfulness,  and  a  keen 
interest  in  all  around  which  struck  all  who  came  to  that 
sick-room.  Letters  from  Japan  were  eagerly  looked  for, 
and  every  detail  of  diocesan  work  was  dear  as  ever  to  the 
Bishop's  heart.  Much  writing  was  forbidden  by  the 
doctors,  but  the  following  extracts  from  letters  to  the  Rev. 
A.  F.  King  are  given. 

6l  Rutland  Gate,  S.W.  :  Jan.  31,  1897. 

My  dear  King, — This  will  only  be  a  very  few  lines. 
At  the  beginning  of  last  week  I  got  a  severe  relapse,  from 
which  I  am  only  just  recovering  I  am  forbidden  all  work 
till  April  or  May.  But  I  have  much  to  be  thankful  for  : 
an  excellent  doctor,  and  (I  need  not  say)  all  else  that 
alleviates  illness,  certainly  not  least,  visits  from  my  dear 
friend  the  Bishop  of  St.  Andrews,  who  is  taking  his  winter 
holiday  in  London. 

I  had  meant  to  write  a  letter  to  the  diocese  for  the 
'  Nichiyo  Soshi  ' '  on  Lent,  but  have  never  liked  to  tax  my 
head.  If  this  reaches  you  in  time  write  a  few  lines  from  me 
to  the  effect  that  I  earnestly  desire  God's  special  blessing 
on  all  workers  and  people  in  Lent,  and  hope  that  to  this 
end  the  season  will  be  observed  in  all  our  stations  by 
special  services,  and  that  each  member  of  the  Church 
will  give  thoughtful  attention  both  to  the  needs  of  his  own 
spiritual  life  and  of  the  congregation  to  which  he  belongs. 

Assure  them  of  my  sympathy  and  prayers, 
Ever  affectionately  yours, 

Edward  Bickersteth,  Bishop. 

61  Rutland  Gate,  S.W.  :  March  26,  1897. 

My  dear  King, —  I  am  still  kept  lying  down  and 
drinking  milk,  but  on  the  whole  am  certainly  stronger  and 

'  A  church  magazine  pubhshed  monthly  in  Japanese. 


458 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


hope  next  week  to  get  to  Exeter.  We  have  had  no  letters 
or  papers  for  three  weeks,  so  that  I  am  still  quite  ignorant 
of  what  took  place  at  the  Bishops'  meeting.  But  I  suppose 
Bishop  Awdry  will  be  here  now  in  a  few  days.  .  .  . 

Lent  will  be  over  by  the  time  that  this  reaches  you. 
Would  that  we  could  have  spent  our  Easter  with  you. 
But  the  gaudia  Paschalia  are  the  same  and  a  true  bond  in 
East  or  West. 

Ever  affectionately  yours,  and  with  loving  greetings  to 
all,  Edward  Bickersteth,  Bishop. 

His  interest  in  political  matters  and  in  questions 
affecting  the  Church  at  home  and  abroad  was  keen  as  ever, 
and  books  were  an  unfailing  source  of  delight.  In  spite  of 
exhortations  not  to  overtax  his  brain,  he  had  always  some 
theological  work  on  hand  (marks  remain  in  unfinished 
copies  of  Strong's  '  Christian  Ethics '  and  Hort's  '  Christian 
Ecclesia ')  ;  but  there  was  also  enjoyment  of  general 
literature,  specially  when  read  aloud,  and  I  find  mention 
in  my  journal  of  such  books  as  Lord  Roberts'  '  Twenty- 
one  Years  in  India,'  Justin  McCarthy's  '  History  of  Our 
Own  Times,'  Nansen's  '  Furthest  North,'  Lord  Selborne's 
'  Life,'  Archbishop  Benson's  '  Cyprian,'  and  others. 

One  source  of  pleasure  and  interest  was  the  arrival  of 
the  first  copies  of  the  '  South  Tokyo  Diocesan  Magazine,' a 
new  venture  to  which  the  Bishop  attached  importance  both 
as  a  sign  of  '  the  excellent  spirit  of  brotherly  love  and  unity 
among  us,'  for  which  he  expressed  his  thankfulness,  and 
as  a  pledge  and  means  of  its  continuance,  for  it  contains 
accounts  of  all  Church  work  within  the  diocese,  irre- 
spective of  parties  or  societies. 

]My  husband's  engagement  book  bears  witness  to  his 
strong  desire  and  to  his  efforts  to  be  at  work  again,  for 
again  and  again  there  are  entries  of  sermons  promised  and 
meetings  arranged  on  behalf  of  his  diocese  only  to  be 
cancelled  as  the  time  approached,  or  transferred  to  a  later 
date  which  never  came. 

At  the  end  of  Lent,  however,  we  were  able  to  move  to 
Exeter,  and  during  the  bright  Eastertide  there  seemed 
real  hopes  of  recovery.  On  Easter  Day  my  husband  made 
his  Communion  at  the  Cathedral  altar,  and  during 
that  week  he  much  enjoyed  a  visit  from  his  friend  and 
brother  Bishop  (now  his  successor).  Bishop  Awdr>',  when 


THE  CALL  HOME 


459 


the  talk  between  the  two  of  future  work  together  in  the 
land  of  their  adoption  was  eager  and  hopeful.  He  rejoiced 
in  the  loving  home  circle  which  surrounded  us  at  Exeter, 
and  the  drives  in  the  Devonshire  lanes  in  their  spring 
loveliness  were  a  source  of  keen  pleasure.  Early  in  May 
we  settled  in  a  flat  in  Westminster,  and  towards  the  end 
of  the  month  we  went  up  to  Scotland  to  pay  a  long-planned 
visit  to  the  Bishop  of  St.  Andrews,  then  living  at  Birnam. 
Here  a  long-continued  and  severe  relapse  brought  great 
disappointment  and  trial,  cheered  and  softened  though  it 
was  by  the  exceeding  kindness  and  unfailing  thoughtful- 
ness  and  sympathy  of  our  hosts.  The  visit,  planned  for  a 
week,  extended  itself  to  a  month,  and  it  was  not  till  the 
end  of  June  that  we  were  able  to  return  to  London.  From 
his  sick-bed  at  Birnam  my  husband  had  dictated  the  paper 
he  hoped  to  read  at  the  S.P.G.  meeting  in  St.  James's  Hall 
on  June  25,  but  at  the  last  moment  he  had  to  give  up  the 
hope  of  being  present,  and  his  paper  was  read  for  him  by 
his  brother,  the  Vicar  of  Lewisham. 

All  through  the  months  of  illness  the  goal  of  the 
Bishop's  hopes  had  been  the  Lambeth  Conference,  and 
though  he  was  too  weak  to  attempt  any  of  the  preliminary 
gatherings  at  Ebbsfleet  or  Canterbury,  yet  by  God's  great 
mercy  the  wish  of  his  heart  was  granted,  and  he  was  able 
to  take  his  place  among  his  brother  Bishops  on  July  4,  the 
opening  day  of  the  Conference  itself.  For  four  days  he 
attended  the  sessions,  following  the  debates  with  keenest 
interest,  and  on  July  7  he  was  able  to  speak  on  the  subject 
allotted  him  :  '  The  Development  of  Native  Churches.'  On 
his  return  that  evening  he  was  full  of  joyous  thankfulness 
at  having  been  allowed  to  plead  the  cause  he  loved  so  well, 
and  he  gave  his  whole  mind  to  the  problems  which  would  be 
discussed  the  following  week  by  the  committees  on  which  he 
was  appointed  to  serve.  But  before  those  committees  met 
a  sudden  return  of  illness  while  on  a  visit  to  the  Vicarage, 
Lewisham,  made  all  work  impossible,  and  there  was  fur- 
ther the  disappointment  of  having  to  forgo  a  meeting  ' 
on  behalf  of  Church  work  in  Japan  which  had  been  planned 
from  his  sick-bed  in  the  early  spring,  and  at  which  all  the 

'  The  meeting  was  Viekl  at  the  Church  House  on  July  12,  under  the  presi- 
dency of  the  Bishop  of  St.  Andrews,  and  speeches  were  made  by  the  Bishops 
of  North  Tokyo,  Kiushiu,  and  Osaka,  who  on  that  day  four  weeks  met  round 
the  grave  of  him  who  had  planned  that  day's  gathering. 


460 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


six  dioceses  in  Japan  were  to  be  represented,  either  by 
their  Bishops  in  person  or  by  their  commissaries. 

During  these  days  of  renewed  illness  many  friends 
came  to  our  rooms,  and  much  pleasure  was  given  by  the 
visits  of  Bishop  McKim  (the  American  Bishop  of  Tokyo, 
whose  warm  personal  friendship  was  of  many  years' 
standing).  Archdeacon  Warren  of  Osaka  (who  has  quite 
recently  been  called  to  his  rest),  the  Bishop  of  St  Andrews, 
Bishop  Evington,  Bishop  Awdry,  the  Rev.  S.  S.  Allnutt, 
from  Delhi,  Dr.  Body,  from  New  York,  and  many  others. 
We  noticed  afterwards  how  many  old  links  were  reknit  and 
strengthened  during  those  days.  As  always,  the  Bishop's 
father  and  stepmother  and  the  brothers  and  sisters  came  con- 
tinually, and  were  gladly  welcomed.  On  Sunday,  July  25, 
the  Bishop  of  Exeter  came  to  celebrate  the  Holy  Com- 
munion for  us,  and  thus  the  Bread  of  Life  was  received 
for  the  last  time  with  full  consciousness  from  the  hands  of 
the  father  always  so  tenderly  loved  and  so  deeply  honoured. 
On  July  20  there  had  been  a  consultation  of  doctors,  who 
gave  the  most  hopeful  verdict  as  to  ultimate  recovery,  but 
who  prescribed  a  further  year  of  complete  rest,  and  a  winter 
in  the  Canary  Islands.  This  was  a  severe  blow  to  the 
eager  spirit  of  the  Bishop,  longing  to  return  to  his  work 
and  his  people  ;  but  those  who  were  with  him  will  never 
forget  the  immediate  and  unhesitating  acceptance  of  the 
will  of  God,  and  the  brave  cheerfulness  with  which  he 
threw  himself  into  plans  for  the  most  unwelcome  holiday. 
Real  help  in  this  trial  was  brought  by  a  kind  note  from 
the  Archbishop  of  Canterbury,  who  with  delicate  sympathy 
reminded  his  suffragan  that  he  was  bound  to  rest  '  for  the 
sake  of  his  work.' 

On  Monday,  July  26,  we  went  down  to  a  house  which 
my  father  had  taken  for  the  summer  in  the  little  village  of 
Chisledon,  under  the  Wiltshire  downs.  The  heat  in  London 
had  been  very  great,  and  my  husband  expressed  much 
pleasure  in  his  new  surroundings,  in  the  flowers  which 
filled  his  room,  and  in  the  fresh  air  which  came  in  at  the 
windows.  But  there  was  no  return  of  strength,  and  though 
at  first  we  hoped  that  it  was  only  the  fatigue  of  the  journey 
which  confined  him  to  bed,  yet  a  new  development  of  the 
illness  and  increase  of  fever  filled  us  with  grave  anxiety. 
Even  listening  to  reading  seemed  to  tire  his  head,  and  he 
chiefly  enjoyed  quiet  talks  and  the  constant  visits  to  his  room 


THE  CALL  HOME 


of  my  mother  and  sister,  for  whom  he  had  tender  affection. 
His  diocese  was  constantly  in  his  thoughts  and  prayers,  and 
he  was  most  anxious  for  news  of  the  Lambeth  Conference. 

On  Monday,  August  2  (the  day  of  the  concluding  service 
in  St.  Paul's  Cathedral  of  the  Lambeth  Conference,  and 
the  anniversary  of  his  mother's  death),  came  the  first  fore- 
boding of  immediate  danger,  and  my  husband's  next 
brother  (who  has  written  this  biography)  came  down  to 
us  and  brought  all  possible  strength  and  comfort.  The 
following  day  the  Bishop  of  Exeter  and  our  sister  May 
arrived,  and  were  joyfully  welcomed  in  an  interval  of 
consciousness.  For  God  in  His  tender  mercy  spared  His 
servant  all  pain  of  parting,  and  all  anxiety  as  to  the  future 
of  his  beloved  mission.  Before  any  thought  of  danger  had 
come  to  us  the  fever  had  clouded  the  weary  brain  ;  and 
so  all  through  the  hours  that  followed,  though  there  was 
much  eager  talk  (generally  of  Japan  or  of  the  Conference) 
and  many  gleams  of  loving  recognition,  many  broken  words 
of  faith  and  prayer,  yet  there  was  no  realisation  of  our 
sorrow,  there  was  never  a  cloud  on  his  face,  it  was  all  a 
passing  onwards  into  light,  and  the  Valley  of  the  Shadow 
cast  no  reflection  as  he  went  through.  Knowing  what  would 
be  his  wish,  on  the  Wednesday  morning  I  tried  to  tell  him 
that  the  call  had  come  ;  the  trend  of  his  life  showed  itself 
in  the  immediate  response  :  '  If  God  calls,  of  course  we 
should  like  to  follow,  but  how  do  we  know  He  calls  and 
where?  '  and  it  was  with  a  calm  surprise  that  he  repeated 
the  answer  '  To  Paradise.'  Earlier  in  the  morning  he  had 
suddenly  said  to  me  :  '  My  hearty  thanks  to  all  who  have 
supplied  my  lack  of  service,  yes,  my  hearty  thanks  to  all,  if 
it  is  not  too  much  trouble ; '  and  in  answer  to  a  question  as 
to  whether  he  sent  his  blessing  to  the  '  Nippon  Sei  K5kwai,' 
he  said  '  Yes  '  very  clearly  and  brightly. 

On  that  morning  my  brother-in-law  felt  justified  in 
celebrating  the  Holy  Communion  as  we  all  knelt  round 
(the  dear  father  pronouncing  with  broken  voice  the  final 
Benediction),  and  my  husband  certainly  followed  a  great 
part  of  the  service  and  consciously  received  the  Holy 
Mysteries,  the  '  alimenta  vitalia '  as  he  wrote  of  them  in 
his  MS.  book  of  devotion.  During  most  of  the  day  I  read 
to  him  poems  from  the  '  Christian  Year,'  and  other  hymns 
and  passages  of  Holy  Scripture.  They  always  .soothed 
him,  and  at  times  as  I  ceased  his  voice  repeated  the  well 


462 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


known  words.  Sometimes  he  would  speak  in  Japanese, 
and  once  in  Hindustani.  All  the  wandering  showed  the 
intensity  of  his  purpose,  and  the  trained  nurse  told  us 
that  never  before  had  she  known  such  concentration  of 
the  whole  being  on  ivork,  and  at  the  same  time  such  un- 
failing patience  and  thankfulness  for  the  smallest  service. 
As  the  strength  waned  the  power  of  speech  lessened,  and 
for  hours  there  had  been  silence  when  suddenly,  at  midday 
on  Thursday,  August  5  (the  eve  of  the  Transfiguration,  as 
it  has  since  helped  us  to  remember),  he  repeated  several 
times  the  names  of  Alice  and  Irene  (the  two  sisters  who 
had  been  gathered  home  twenty-five  years  before)  ;  and 
then  quietly  and  imperceptibly,  as  our  brother  read  the 
Commendatory  Prayer,  the  breath  ceased,  the  tired  soldier 
laid  down  his  weapons,  and  God  took  him  to  Himself 

All  then  and  afterwards  was  most  peaceful  and  beauti- 
ful. Everything  in  his  room  spoke  of  life,  not  death. 
Flowers  were  everywhere,  and  over  him  as  he  lay  at  rest 
we  laid  his  Bishop's  robes,  stole  and  pectoral  cross, 
and  placed  his  chalice  and  paten  at  his  feet.  To  the 
Vicar  of  Chisledon  (the  Rev.  Charles  Gott)  and  his  wife 
is  owed  a  debt  of  gratitude  which  can  never  be  repaid 
for  their  thoughtful  sympathy,  which  found  an  echo  in  that 
of  their  villagers,  and  from  far  and  near  came  expressions 
and  tokens  of  love  and  reverence. 

The  funeral  service  was  simple,  but  most  beautiful, 
both  in  its  surroundings  and  in  its  sure  signs  of  Christian 
hope.  Many  who  would  have  wished  to  be  present  were 
far  away,  owing  to  the  summer  holidays  ;  but  some — and 
those  representative  people — who  might  easily  have  been 
far  distant  were  there,  having  been  brought  together  in 
England  either  by  the  Lambeth  Conference  or  by  the 
wish  to  attend  the  Queen's  Diamond  Jubilee.  Thus, 
besides  the  members  of  the  family,  not  only  the  English 
Bishops  of  Kiushiu  and  Osaka  were  able  to  come  to 
Chisledon,  and  Bishop  McKim  of  North  Tokyo  (repre- 
senting the  American  Church),  but  also  Sir  Ernest  Satow, 
the  British  representative  at  the  Court  of  the  Mikado,  who 
was  at  home  on  furlough,  came  to  show  his  affection  for 


THE  CALL  HOME 


the  Bishop.  Archdeacon  Warren  (C.M.S.)  of  Osaka,  who 
has  since  been  called  to  his  rest,  was  there,  and  Miss 
Bullock,  the  member  in  charge  of  St.  Hilda's,  Tokyo. 

At  one  o'clock  on  August  9,  there  having  been  an  early 
celebration  of  the  Holy  Communion,  the  funeral  procession 
was  formed.  First  came  a  cross-bearer  leading  the  village 
choir  of  Chisledon  and  some  of  the  neighbouring  clergy, 
then  the  Vicar  of  the  parish  (the  Rev.  Charles  Gott), 
followed  by  the  three  Bishops  of  the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai 
(Dr.  McKim,  Dr.  Evington,  Dr.  Awdry)  walking  abreast, 
next  a  second  processional  cross  preceding  the  village  bier, 
on  which  rested  the  body  of  the  Bishop  followed  by  his 
wife,  his  father,  and  other  chief  mourners.  As  the  pro- 
cession left  the  lovely  grounds  of  Chisledon  House,  the 
hymn  '  Lord,  her  watch  Thy  Church  is  keeping '  was  sung, 
and  as  it  wound  its  way  down  into  the  picturesque  village, 
where  the  cottagers  lined  the  road,  the  choir  took  up  the 
strains  of  'Jesus  shall  reign  where'er  the  sun,'  with  its 
suggestive  reference  to  the  sure  and  certain  triumph  of 
Christianity,  for  to  the  eye  of  faith  '  the  kingdoms  of  this 
world  are  become  the  Kingdom  of  our  Lord,  and  He  shall 
reign  for  ever  and  ever.' 

When  the  lych-gate  was  reached  a  note  of  gladness 
was  sounded,  and  the  words  '  Alleluia,  Alleluia,  hearts  to 
Heaven  and  voices  raise,'  floated  out  over  the  quiet  village 
nestling  under  the  shelter  of  the  Wiltshire  downs,  for 
Christian  believers  sorrow  not  like  those  sitting  in  dark- 
ness and  the  shadow  of  death,  who  in  bereavement  have 
no  hope.  In  the  churchyard  the  voice  of  Bishop  Awdry 
was  heard  as  with  deepest  feeling  he  recited  the  opening 
sentences  of  the  Burial  Service.  The  appointed  lesson  was 
read  by  Bishop  McKim,  and  while  the  body  was  carried 
from  its  resting-place  before  the  altar  the  hymn  '  Now  the 
labourer's  task  is  o'er  '  reminded  the  congregation  that  the 


464 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


souls  of  the  righteous  are  in  the  hand  of  God,  and  that  no 
torment  shall  touch  them. 

The  little  churchyard  being  closed,  a  new  cemetery 
(KOLfji7)TrjpLov)  had  been  recently  consecrated,  and  thither 
the  procession  in  the  same  order  now  wended  its  way.  As 
the  steep  ascent  leading  to  the  cemetery  was  climbed  the 
hymn  'For  all  the  saints  who  from  their  labours  rest'  was 
sung,  foretelling  the  day  when  from  earth's  wide  bounds 
and  ocean's  furthest  coasts,  through  the  witness  borne  to 
the  Christ  by  many  missionaries  in  every  land,  would 
stream  in  countless  converts  to  the  Christian  faith.  Thus 
compassed  about  with  the  thought  of  so  great  a  cloud  of 
witnesses,  the  ear  could  better  hear,  and  the  heart 
better  respond  to,  the  prayers  which  at  the  graveside 
were  offered  up  by  Bishop  Evington,  who  pronounced 
the  closing  Benediction.  One  more  pathetic  incident 
completed  the  simple  beauty  of  this  Christian  service,  in 
itself  such  a  striking  contrast  to  what  Hindu  rites  and 
Buddhist  or  Shinto  ceremonies  can  provide  for  stricken 
hearts  ;  that  was  the  singing  of  my  father's  well-known 
hymn,  '  Peace,  perfect  peace,'  as  he  stood  at  the  head  of 
his  eldest  son's  open  grave.  This  hymn,  so  often  quoted 
in  the  hour  of  death  or  sung  on  the  day  of  burial,  was 
never  more  appropriate,  and  it  also  struck  a  note  of 
Christian  hope  as  in  low-breathed  tones  the  choir  gave  the 
words : 

Peace,  perfect  peace,  death  shadowing  us  and  ours, 
Jesus  has  vanquished  death  and  all  its  powers. 

Close  to  his  graveside  the  early  harvest  was  being 
gathered  fully  ripe,  and  a  shepherd  could  be  seen  folding 
his  flock. 

In  Delhi  the  news  of  the  Bishop's  death  av/oke  many 
memories,  as  is  proved  by  the  address  already  quoted  ;  '  but 

'  See  chapter  iv.  p.  108. 


THE  CALL  HOME 


in  Tokyo,  and  elsewhere  in  Japan,  it  was  received  by  those 
with  whonnhe  had  so  recently  worked  with  the  keen  sorrow 
inseparable  from  the  sharpness  of  death.  The  Japanese 
-Christians  sent  to  the  Bishop's  wife  the  following  character- 
istic proof  of  the  sincerity  of  their  grief,  one  among  several 
other  letters  of  sympathy  from  the  Japanese  : 

From  the  Japanese  Congregation  of  St.  Michael's 
Churcli,  Kobe 

St.  Michael's  Day,  1897. 

Dear  Madam, — At  the  beginning  of  August  a  brief 
message  reached  us  that  Bishop  Edward  Bickersteth  of 
Japan  had  been  called  to  his  rest,  and  we  could  but  wait 
with  closed  eyes  and  bowed  heads,  hoping  that  the  tidings 
would  prove  false  ;  but  when  it  became  more  and  more 
certain  that  the  news  was  true,  with  overflowing  hearts,  our 
feelings  too  deep  for  words,  we  seemed  as  in  a  dream, 
moaning  in  uncontrollable  grief 

Alas  !  alas  !  When  we  reflect  upon  what  is  past,  we 
cannot  but  remember  that  when  he-  first  entered  upon  his 
duties  as  Bishop  here  the  Church  in  Japan  was  but  in  an 
embryo  state,  everything  was  weak  and  unsettled  ;  but 
Bishop  Bickersteth  suddenly  came  forward,  framed  a  con- 
stitution and  Canons,  summoned  a  synod,  and  the  Church 
of  Japan  was  then  and  there  born.  Not  only  so,  but  in 
evangelisation,  in  education,  in  works  of  mercy,  he  ever 
took  the  lead,  always  himself  giving  liberally  to  help 
forward  such  undertakings.  Without  sparing  himself,  he 
sailed  to  the  south  and  journeyed  to  the  north  for  confirma- 
tions and  consecration  of  churches  with  hardly  a  day  for 
rest.  Moreover,  on  such  matters  as  the  revision  of  the 
Prayer  Book  he  bestowed  no  little  mental  labour  and 
anxious  thought.  We  doubt  not  but  that  the  Church  of 
Japan  is  what  she  is  through  the  protection  and  blessing  of 
the  Most  High,  but  we  cannot  but  acknowledge  that  the 
instrumentality  used  was  the  wisdom  and  energy  of  Bishop 
Bickersteth,  with  his  self-denying,  whole-hearted  zeal  for 
the  welfare  of  the  Church. 

In  Churches  like  this  of  ours,  what  can  we  say  ?  The 
sacred  building  was  consecrated  by  him  ;  from  him  most 
of  us  have  received  the  laying  on  of  hands  ;  is  it  not  natural 


H  H 


466 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


that  we  should  long  have  looked  up  to  his  high  and  holy 
character  with  love  and  veneration  ?  And  now  our  Bishop 
has  departed  from  us  to  the  world  unseen.    Alas  !  Alas  ! 

Our  grief  seems  boundless ;  but  though  we  shed  tears 
of  blood  our  father  cannot  return.  Death  and  life  are  as 
God  in  Heaven  wills,  and  no  man  can  say  Him  nay. 
Though  he  is  gone,  the  foundations  he  has  planned 
remain  firm,  and  the  living  power  of  God's  Word  will 
ere  long  spread  through  the  land.  He  has  run  the  race 
that  was  set  before  him,  he  has  finished  the  work  that  was 
given  him  to  do,  and  now  he  is  at  rest  in  the  garden  of 
Paradise,  where  flowers  ever  bloom  and  birds  ever  sing. 
Let  us  not  then  ignorantly  weep  ;  rather  let  us  pray  that 
we  may  again  meet  each  other  face  to  face  in  the  Halls  of 
Heaven  ! 

P.  R.  Tsujii,  X        For  the 

Catechist-in-Charge.  I     members  of 

T.  MISHIMA,  j    St.  Michael's 

Churchwarden.        J  Church. 

To  Mrs.  Bickersteth. 

The  news  of  the  Bishop's  death  reached  Japan  on 
August  9,  and  next  day  ^  the  '  Japan  Daily  Mail,'  the 
leading  journal  of  Tokyo,  said  : 

Bishop  Bickersteth  was  a  man  of  deep  erudition,  wide 
sympathies,  and  profound  religious  convictions.  Ill-health 
never  succeeded  in  impairing  the  even  geniality  of  his 
temper  or  narrowing  the  range  of  his  interests.  His  in- 
fluence for  good  owed  little  to  his  personality,  but  he  pre- 
sented to  all  that  knew  him  a  fine  symmetry  of  mind  and 
character,  strong  without  exaggeration,  steadfast  without 
intolerance  ;  and  the  simple,  unostentatious,  and  unselfish 
zeal  that  he  brought  to  the  discharge  of  every  duty  as  a 
priest  and  every  obligation  as  a  friend,  hallowed  the  sphere 
in  which  he  moved,  and  elevated  and  purified  those  with 
whom  he  came  in  contact.  We  deeply  mourn  his  loss,  and 
sympathise  keenly  with  the  sorrow  of  his  young  widow. 

Memorial  services  were  held  on  the  13th  at  the  health 
resort  of  Karuizawa,  where  many  of  the  missionaries  were 
assembled,  and  on  the  14th  at  St.  Andrew's,  Tokyo,  where 

'  See  also  Appendix  A.,  p.  475. 


THE  CALL  HOME 


467 


the  Rev.  John  Imai  was  the  preacher,  and  among  those 
present  were  the  Ven.  Archdeacon  Shaw,  Rev.  A.  F.  King, 
L.  F.  Ryde,  A.  E.  Webb,  W.  F.  Madeley,  W.  C.  Gemmill, 
C.  N.  Yoshizawa,  P.  S.  Yamada,  A.  G.  Shimada,  S.  M. 
Tomita,  and  Mr.  C.  H.  B.  Woodd,  of  the  English  Mission  ; 
Bishop  WiUiams,  Rev.  C.  H.  Evans,  Dr.  Motoda,  M.  Tai, 
G.  Sugiura,  K.  Seito,  and  S.  H.  Kobayashi,  of  the 
American  Mission.^ 

At  Karuizawa,  in  a  Httle  church,  which  owed  its 
existence  largely  to  the  Bishop's  liberality,  the  Venerable 
Archdeacon  Shaw  delivered  an  address,  from  which  the 
following  are  extracts  : 

It  has  pleased  God  to  take  from  amongst  us,  in  the 
fulness  of  his  power  and  in  the  midst  of  his  work,  one 
whose  death  no  one  who  had  been  brought  into  contact 
with  him  while  here  can  help  acknowledging  to  be  a  great 
and,  to  human  discerning,  a  well-nigh  irreparable  loss  to 
the  work  of  God's  Church  in  this  land.  His  great  intel- 
lectual powers,  his  wide  knowledge  of  the  history  of  re- 
ligion, his  strong  hold  and  deep  insight  into  the  founda- 
tion doctrine  of  Christianity — the  Incarnation  of  the  Son  of 
God — with  all  its  far-reaching  and  glorious  consequences 
for  man,  made  him  a  fit  leader  in  bearing  forward  the 
Standard  of  the  Cross,  and  a  well-equipped  champion  in 
the  face  of  this  heathen  world  in  repelling  infidel  attacks 
upon  the  faith. 

Trained  under,  and  an  earnest  follower  of,  the  theo- 
logical methods  of  the  late  and  present  Bishops  of  Durham, 
Bishop  Lightfoot  and  Bishop  Westcott,  he  possessed  in  no 
slight  degree  the  painstaking  and  polished  scholarship, 
the  keen  critical  acumen,  and  the  unswerving  devotion 
to  truth,  the  intellectual  honesty,  which  distinguished  both 

'  Froui  a  Canadian  priest  in  Japan. — '  Since  that  dreadful  tele- 
gram came,  and  specially  since  our  Christians  have  asked  me  to  write  you 
a  letter  in  their  name,  I  have  thought  and  thought  what  I  .can  say.  Al- 
though our  Memorial  Service  was  at  7  a.m.  because  of  the  great  heat, 
it  was  attended  by  more  Christians  than  any  service  this  year  except  the 
confirmation  in  April.  The  catechists  at  the  out -stations  each  had  his  own 
service,  but  from  other  places  where  there  is  no  catechist  they  came  some  of 
them  over  ten  miles  on  foot,  leaving  home  at  2.30  and  3  in  the  morning. 


H  JI  2 


468 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


his  masters.  These  are  matters  which  lay  upon  the 
surface,  open  to  all  who  cared  to  see  them.  To  those 
whose  privilege  it  was  to  know  him  with  personal  intimacy 
(as  it  was  mine),  there  was  revealed  in  his  character  an 
affectionate  tenderness,  a  helpfulness,  a  playful  humour, 
which  endeared  him  to  all  around,  and  at  the  same 
time  a  depth  of  devotional  feeling,  of  humble  piet\-,  of 
transparent  sincerity  in  all  his  life,  which  could  not  but 
have  a  strengthening  and  purifying  influence  on  all  with 
whom  he  was  brought  in  contact.  .  .  . 

During  the  eleven  years  of  his  life  and  work  in  Japan, 
amidst  the  constant  interruptions  of  ill-health,  he  gave 
himself  with  single-hearted  and  unceasing  devotion  to  his 
Master's  work.  He  never  spared  himself,  but  worked  in 
every  cause  he  took  in  hand  to  the  limit  of  his  powers,  and  ' 
beyond  his  powers,  in  a  manner  which  should,  now  more 
than  ever,  in  these  sad  days  which  have  come  upon  us,  be 
an  inspiration  and  example  to  those  he  has  left  behind. 
It  fell  to  his  lot  to  be  instrumental  in  consolidating  the 
work  of  the  Church  in  this  country,  and  it  is  largely  due  to 
him,  to  his  wisdom  and  his  energy,  that  the  scattered 
congregations  of  the  various  missions  of  the  English  and 
American  Episcopal  Churches  are  now  organised  into  one 
body,  and  that  the  number  of  the  Bishops  has  increased 
from  two  to  five.  These  are  the  outward  and  visible 
manifested  results  of  his  unceasing  toil  and  care.  Of  the 
inward  spiritual  results  of  his  life  and  work,  of  the  example 
of  his  personal  character  and  piety,  and  of  his  direct  teach- 
ing, no  one  can  speak — they  are  known  to  God  alone. 
They  have  passed  into  the  lives  of  so  many  who  came 
under  his  influence.  They  are  the  immortal  fruit  formed 
in  the  souls  of  men  by  contact  with  him  who  was  himself 
in  contact  with  '  the  Head,  even  Christ,' and  who  himself 
drank  deeply  day  by  day  from  the  Fountain  of  living  waters. 
Nor  was  his  love  and  sympathy  confined  to  his  own 
communion.  To  no  one  whom  I  have  known  was  the 
idea  and  hope  of  union  among  all  who  name  the  Name  of 
Christ  dearer  than  to  him.  It  was  a  subject  of  his  daily 
prayers  and  often  of  his  active  effort.  .  .  . 

He  was  then  such  a  one — a  leader  in  Israel,  pure  in 
heart,  strong  in  intellect,  earnest  and  self-sacrificing  in 
effort.  And  we  are  called  upon  to-day  to  face  the  in- 
scrutable mystery  of  his  earl)'  death — to  face  the  fact 


THE  CALL  HOME 


469 


that  when  to  human  eyes  his  hfc  was  so  greatly  needed, 
he  has  been  taken  from  among  us — to  face  the  fact  that 
we  who  were  about  him  shall  no  longer  have  the  stay  of 
his  strong  intellect,  the  sympathy  of  his  loving  heart,  the 
example  of  his  pure  and  blameless  life.  Thank  God,  that 
though  we  have  not  the  key  to  these  mysteries  of  life  and 
death  and  earthly  sorrow,  and  though  now  in  this  time  of 
our  sojourn  here,  we  see  but  as  in  a  glass  darkly,  we  know 
with  a  certainty  that  passes  knowledge  that  in  Christ  all  is 
well — well  with  him  and  well  with  us.  He  is  the  faithful 
soldier  who  has  accomplished  his  warfare  and  has  entered 
into  his  rest.  He  has  finished  the  work  in  the  vineyard  of 
God  which  it  was  given  him  to  do,  and  if  we  seem  to  be 
left  the  weaker  and  the  poorer  for  his  absence,  we  know 
that  it  really  is  not  and  cannot  be  so.  God  has  other 
work  in  his  heavenly  kingdom — larger,  freer,  fuller — for 
him  whom  in  his  passage  through  this  world  He  had  trained 
and  disciplined  and  made  fit  to  receive  the  vision  of  His 
eternal  glory.  And  we  may  be  assured  that  in  the  nearer 
approach  to  his  divine  Master  which  has  been  granted  to 
him,  and  in  that  fuller  knowledge  in  the  ways  and  purposes 
of  God's  Providence  which  he  possesses,  he  remembers, 
and  will  remember  with  unceasing  love  and  prayer,  us  his 
fellow-workers  in  our  weakness,  our  failure,  our  dis- 
appointment, until  the  time  of  God's  w^aiting  be  fulfilled 
and  the  number  of  His  elect  accomplished. 

On  September  15  a  special  Chih5kwai  (Diocesan 
Synod)  was  held,  thirteen  priests,  eight  deacons,  and  sixteen 
catechists  and  lay  delegates  being  present,  with  the  Rev. 
J.  T.  Imai  as  chairman,  when  a  resolution  of  sympathy  with 
the  family  of  Bishop  Edward  Bickersteth  was  passed,  in 
which  was  '  placed  on  record  the  synod's  sense  of  the 
eminent  services  rendered  by  the  Bishop  to  the  Church  of 
Japan  during  the  eleven  years  of  his  episcopate,  by  the 
single-minded  devotion  to  her  service  of  his  great  intellec- 
tual gifts  and  powers  of  organisation,  and  by  the  high  and 
noble  example  of  piety,  holiness,  and  zeal  which  he  had 
left  to  her  as  a  precious  memorial  and  inheritance.' 

On  the  evening  of  the  same  day  as  the  synod,  the 


470 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


15th,  a  kinenkwai  (memorial  meeting)  was  held  in  the  St. 
Andrew's  Divinity  School,  of  which  Archdeacon  Shaw 
wrote  to  me  : 

Tokyo,  Japan  :  September  22,  1897 

My  dear  Mr.  Bickersteth, — We  have  now  received  full 
details  of  our  dear  Bishop's  death  and  of  the  funeral.  I 
cannot  realise  that  I  shall  see  his  face  no  more  here.  At 
the  synod,  which  as  Chairman  of  the  Standing  Committee 
I  called  last  Wednesday,  the  15th  inst.,  resolutions  of 
sympathy  were  passed,  copies  of  which  are  being  sent  to 
Mrs.  Bickersteth  and  the  Bishop  of  Exeter. 

In  the  evening  of  the  same  day  as  the  synod  we  held 
a  memorial  meeting  attended  by  numbers  of  Japanese 
Christians  from  the  churches  of  our  communion  in  Tokyo. 
Addresses  were  given  by  several  Japanese  and  myself  on 
the  subject  so  near  our  hearts,  and  I  had  taken  the  liberty 
of  having  your  beautiful  and  pathetic  letter  written  from 
our  dear  Bishop's  dying  room  translated  into  Japanese.  It 
was  read  by  Yoshizawa  San,  one  of  our  priests,  and  made 
a  very  deep  impression.  One  told  me  that  listening  to 
sermons  all  his  life  would  not  have  the  same  effect  as  the 
story  so  told  of  the  death-bed  of  our  blessed  saint. 

The  Japanese  purpose  to  raise  some  memorial  here 
according  to  their  means.  I  should  like,  however,  to  make 
an  appeal  at  home  for  funds  to  maintain  two  scholarships 
or  exhibitions  in  the  Divinity  School  here  to  be  called  the 
Bishop  Bickersteth  Scholarships  or  Exhibitions.  From 
350/.  to  400/.  would  be  needed  for  this  purpose,  and  if  an 
appeal  were  made  at  once  there  ought  to  be  no  difficulty 
in  raising  this.  I  can  conceive  of  no  memorial  better  suit- 
able, or  that  the  Bishop  would  be  better  pleased  with,  than 
one  like  this  that  would  aid  in  establishing  the  living 
Church  in  Japan.  Of  course,  I  leave  it  entirely  to  your 
decision.  Only  if  you  consider  the  idea  a  proper  one  will 
you  see  that  the  appeal  is  made,  using  my  name  in  any 
way  that  you  think  advisable  ? 

I  remain. 

Gratefully  and  affectionately  yours  in  Christ, 

A.  C.  Shaw. 

The  memorial  took  the  form  suggested  in  this  letter,  a 
similar  wish  having  been  already  expressed  in  England, 


THE  CALL  HOME 


and  the  sum  of  500Z.  was  raised  within  a  very  few  weeks 
and  is  held  in  trust  by  the  Society  for  the  Propagation  of 
the  Gospel  for  the  object  of  maintaining  in  perpetuity 
'  Bickersteth  Memorial  Studentships '  at  St.  Andrew's 
Divinity  School,  Tokyo.  In  Exeter  Cathedral  the  Bishop 
erected  to  the  memory  of  his  son  a  brass  tablet,  for  which 
the  Dean  and  Chapter  found  a  place  immediately  facing 
the  private  door  which  leads  from  the  palace  into  the 
cathedral,  and  a  facsimile  of  which  is  given  at  the  close  of 
this  chapter. 

Also  at  St.  Andrew's  Church,  Tokyo,  a  memorial  brass 
has  been  affixed  to  the  chancel  wall  ;  and  at  Delhi  the 
Cambridge  Brotherhood  purpose  to  place  a  brass  in  their 
chapel  for  which,  at  their  request,  Canon  A.  J.  Mason, 
Lady  Margaret  Reader  in  Divinity  at  Cambridge,  has 
written  the  following  inscription  : 

EDWARDUS  BICKERSTETH 

COLLEGII  PEMBROCHIANI  APUD  CANTABRIGIENSES  SOCIUS 

ANNO  SALUTIS  MDCCCLXXII 
AMPLISSIMORUM  VIRORUM  LIGHTFOOT  WESTCOTT  FRENCH 
DOCTRINA  HORTATIONIBUSQUE  PERMOTUS 
EXAMEN  PRINCIPALE  EDUXIT 
AD  OPUS  HUIUS  SCHOL^  CONDEND^ 
GUI  CUM  SEPTE.M  ANNIS  CUM  MAXIMA   OMNIUM   UTILITATE  PR^- 

FUISSET 

NASCENTI  JAPONIORUM  ECCLESI^E  PRvEPOSITUS 
ANIMAM  LABORUM  MORBORUMQUE  PERPESSIONE 
ENECATAM  EXPIRAVIT 
ANNO  INCARNATI  DOMINI  MDCCCXCVII 
^TATIS  SU^  XLVII 
ACERRIMO  FUIT  ANIMO  IDEMQUE  DULCISSIMO 
DOCTUS  SAGAX  AUDAX 
MEDIOCRITATIS  ANGLICAN.^  CANTABRIGIENSISQUE  TENAX 
CATHOLICS  LIBERTATIS  STRENUUS  PROPUGNATOR 
HANG  TABULAM  FRATRES  DELHIENSES 
HONORIS  DESIDERIIQUE  CAUSA  POSUERUNT 

My  brother's  death — which  was  followed  five  days 
later  by  that  of  Bishop  Walsham  How  of  Wakefield — made 


472 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


the  first  gap  in  the  ranks  of  the  Bishops  attending  the 
Lambeth  Conference  of  that  year.  Many  of  them  wrote 
to  the  Bishop  of  Exeter  to  express  their  sense  of  the  value 
of  his  son's  '  work  and  noble  example,'  some  alluding  to 
'  his  gallant  effort  to  join  and  help  the  conference,' 
to  which  another  thus  referred  :  '  One  listened  to  no 
voice  at  the  conference  with  greater  attention  and  interest 
than  to  his,  which  is  now  hushed  for  us  who  remain.' 
Perhaps  nothing  would  have  caused  greater  thankfulness 
to  Bishop  Edward  Bickersteth  himself  than  the  sentence 
added  by  the  present  Bishop  of  Ely :  '  I  have  always  felt 
drawn  to  your  son  because  we  were  consecrated  together 
at  St.  Paul's,  ajid  have  ahvays  remembered  him  and  his 
churcJi  itt  my  intercessions}  The  '  Guardian  '  ^  newspaper 
at  the  close  of  an  obituary  article  wrote  :  '  Thus  has  ended 
the  life  of  a  modern  missionary  Bishop,  who  has  surely 
been  raised  up  by  God  to  do  for  the  islands  of  Japan  a 
work  similar  to  that  done  in  these  (British)  islands  centuries 
ago  by  Columba,  Aidan,  or  Augustine — men  of  whom  the 
Church  has  rightly  heard  so  much  during  this  memorable 
year.' 

One  of  the  clergy  of  the  C.M.S.  in  Japan  wrote  thus  : 

I  am  sure  that  there  are  none  who  knew  the  Bishop 
well  who  will  not  feel  what  a  sad  and  serious  blow  we 
have  all  received,  and  how  sorely  he  will  be  missed  in  the 
counsels  of  our  native  Church.  Notwithstanding  some  un- 
avoidable differences  of  opinion,  I  am  glad  to  be  able  ta 
testify  to  the  uniform  kindness,  courtesy,  and  considerate- 
ness,  as  well  as  warm  sympathy,  manifested  towards  us 
who  were  privileged  to  serve  our  common  Master  under 
his  leadership. 

And  from  another  of  his  clergy  came  this  testimony,. 
'  Never  before  have  I  quite  known  such  gentleness,  when 
all  the  time  there  was  such  strength  and  courage  to  rebuke 

'  See  chap.  v.  p.  148.  ^  See  Guardian,  August  11,  1897. 


THE  CALL  HOME 


473 


lying  behind  it.'  Also  many  kindly  expressions  of  sym- 
pathy and  appreciation  of  the  Bishop's  character  came 
from  Nonconformist  bodies  in  Japan. 

Nearly  two  years  later  the  Sixth  General  Synod  of  the 
Nippon  Sei  Kokwai  assembled  in  Trinity  Hall,  Tsukiji, 
Tokyo,  and  on  the  first  day  of  the  synod  (April  20,  1 899) 
the  following  resolution  was  passed.  Bishop  McKim,  as 
senior  Bishop,  presided,  and  after  introducing  with  words  of 
welcome  Bishops  Fyson  and  Foss,  a  Kushiu  D5gi  (urgent 
motion)  was  proposed  by  the  Reverends  Terasawa,  Naida, 
Motoda,  Ogawa,  Ko  and  Imai  (i.e.  six  priests  respectively 
of  the  six  dioceses  in  Japan),  and  supported  by  a  sym- 
pathetic and  touching  address  from  the  presiding  Bishop, 
after  which  the  whole  House  stood  solemnly  and  reverently 
and  passed  the  motion,  which  read  thus  : 

That  this,  the  Sixth  General  Synod  of  the  Nippon  Sei 
K5kwai,  feels  the  deepest  sorrow  at  not  being  able  to  see 
in  this  House  the  late  Right  Rev.  Edward  Bickersteth,  D.D., 
who  at  the  period  of  founding  and  organising  this  Church 
laboured  at  the  task,  and  in  its  government  for  a  long 
time  presided  as  the  chairman  of  the  General  Synods.  The 
House  therefore  orders  that  this  motion  should  be  pre- 
served in  its  Minutes,  in  order  to  remember  all  his  labour 
and  merits  for  the  years  to  come. 

In  bringing  this  biography  to  a  close  it  is  impossible 
not  to  feel  how  surprised  Bishop  Edward  Bickersteth 
would  have  been  at  the  thought  that  an  account  of  his  life 
would  have  been  published,  or  that  his  letters,  written  amid 
the  press  of  work,  would  be  ever  reproduced. 

In  the  twentieth  century,  now  coming  on  apace,  mis- 
sionary enterprise  is  surely  destined  to  find  its  greatest 
opportunity.  The  current  encyclical  of  the  Lambeth  Con- 
ference (1897),  and  its  ringing  challenge  to  take  up  the 
missionary's  burden,  has  committed  the  Anglican  com- 
munion throughout  the  world  to  that  large  measure  of 


474 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


responsibility  which  belongs  to  a  clear  call  and  to  the 
noble  expectation  that  every  Churchman  will  do  his  duty. 
The  watchword  of  the  Student  Volunteer  Missionary 
Union,  '  the  evangelisation  of  the  world  in  this  generation,' 
has  already  proved  an  inspiration  to  multitudes  outside  the 
Anglican  communion.  The  actual  results  already  given 
to  the  earnest  labours  of  a  comparatively  few  men  and 
women  have  been  described  '  as  samples  surely  of  what 
awaits  the  labours  of  an  awakened  Church.' 

If  it  should  please  God  to  use  this  biography  to  quicken 
missionary  enthusiasm,  and  direct  it  along  the  channels 
which  '  a  sound  rule  of  faith  and  a  sober  standard  of  feeling, 
of  so  much  consequence  in  matters  of  practical  religion,' 
alike  help  to  define,  then  I  am  sure  my  brother  would 
pardon  the  publicity  which  a  biographer  must  necessarily 
give  even  to  the  private  side  of  a  public  life,  and  would  say 

Non  nobis,  Doviinc. 


MEiMORIAL  DRASS  PLACED  BY  THE  BISHOP  OF  EXETER  IK  EXETER  CATHEDRAL. 


THE  DlSHl.il'>  i.K.WE,  CHISLEDON,  WILTS. 


APPENDICES 


APPENDIX  A 

At  the  General  Committee  of  the  Church  Missionary  Society 
(August  lo)  the  following  resolution  was  adopted  : 

That  the  committee  learn  with  much  regret  of  the  death  of  the 
Right  Rev.  Edward  Bickersteth,  Bishop  of  the  Church  of  England 
in  South  Tokyo,  Japan.  They  recall  with  thankfulness  to  God 
the  devotion  and  missionary  zeal  which  characterised  the  late 
Bishop's  life  and  ministry.  His  visitations  of  the  mission  stations, 
accomplished  often  at  an  expenditure  of  no  small  measure  of 
physical  fatigue,  were  ever  occasions  of  deep  spiritual  profit  and 
enjoyment  to  the  Society's  missionaries  and  native  agents.  His 
sympathy  and  interest  in  all  the  problems  and  difficulties,  as  well 
as  the  joys  and  successes,  of  the  work  made  the  bond  between 
him  and  them  a  very  close  and  warm  one.  He  was  mainly 
instrumental  in  organising  the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai,  or  'Japan 
Church  '  :  to  his  initiative  and  energy  also  was  due  the  formation 
of  the  dioceses  of  Kiushiu  and  Hokkaido  ;  and  the  division  of 
the  Main  Island  into  four  episcopal  jurisdictions,  to  receive, 
pending  the  attainment  of  maturity  by  the  native  Church,  two 
Bishops  from  the  American  Church  and  two  from  the  Church  of 
England,  was  owing  to  his  active  efforts  in  conjunction  with  the 
American  Bishop,  Dr.  McKim.  That  the  secretaries  be  instructed 
to  express  the  committee's  deep  sympathy  with  the  widow  of 
the  late  Bishop,  and  also  to  assure  the  Bishop  of  Exeter,  his 
honoured  father,  their  old  and  true  friend,  of  their  respectful  and 
affectionate  sorrow  with  him  in  the  bereavement  which,  in  God's 
Providence,  he  has  been  called  to  bear. 

The  appreciation  in  which  the  Society  for  the  Propagation 
of  the  Gospel  held  the  Bishop's  work  found  expression  in  the 
resolution  passed  by  the  Standing  Committee  on  October  15, 
1897: 

The  Society,  at  this  its  first  meeting  after  the  decease  of  the 
late  Bishop  of  South  Tokyo,  desires  to  place  on  record  its  sense 
of  the  great  loss  sustained  by  the  young  Church  in  the  Empire  of 


476  BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


Japan  by  the  removal  of  one  whose  far-seeing  mind  and  states- 
manhke  judgment  had  done  so  much  in  laying  the  foundations  of 
that  distant  offshoot  of  the  mother  Church. 

In  1877  Mr.  Bickersteth  was  one  of  the  two  Cambridge 
graduates  whom  the  University  of  Cambridge  sent  to  the  Society's 
old  mission  at  Delhi.  Seven  years  of  fruitful  work  proved  his 
constitutional  unfitness  for  work  in  India.  For  a  few  months  he 
was  Vicar  of  Framlingham,  a  benefice  in  the  gift  of  his  college, 
but  in  1886  Archbishop  Benson  sent  him  to  Japan,  which  has 
been  the  scene  of  his  wise  and  abundant  labours  for  more  than 
eleven  years. 


APPENDIX  B 
CANONS  OF  THE  NIPPON  SEI  KOKWAI  ' 
CANON  I 

Of  the  Admission  of  Cattdidates  for  Holy  Orders 

§  I.  Every  person  seeking  admission  to  the  ministry  of  this 
Church  shall  lay  before  the  Bishop  and  before  the  Standing 
Committee  testimonials  in  the  following  words  :  '  We,  whose 
names  are  hereunder  written,  testify,  from  our  personal  knowledge 
and  belief,  that  A.  B.  is  pious,  sober,  and  honest,  that  he  is 
attached  to  the  doctrine  and  discipline  and  worship  of  the 
Nippon  Sei  Kokwai,  and  that  he  is  a  communicant  of  the  said 
Church  in  good  standing  ;  and  do  furthermore  declare  that  in 
our  opinion  he  possesses  such  qualifications  as  fit  him  for 
entrance  on  a  course  of  study  for  the  Holy  Ministry.'  Such 
testimonials  shall  be  signed  by  his  Spiritual  Pastor  and  the 
Vestry  of  the  congregation  to  which  he  belongs  ;  or  in  circum- 
stances justifying  such  alternative,  by  at  least  one  Presbyter  and 
six  laymen,  communicants  of  the  Church. 

§  2.  The  Standing  Committee  on  receipt  of  such  testimonials, 
being  satisfied  with  regard  to  the  physical,  intellectual,  moral, 
and  religious  qualifications  of  the  person  so  applying,  may 
proceed  to  recommend  him  to  the  Bishop  by  a  certificate  bearing 

'  In  this  copy  of  the  Canons  I  have  incorporated  some  additions  made  at 
subsequent  synods,  though  not  those  made  this  year  (1S99).    S.  B. 
'  Canon  IX. 


APPENDICES 


477 


the  signature  of  a  majority  of  all  the  members  of  the  committee 
in  the  following  words  : 

'  We,  whose  names  are  hereunder  written,  do  certify  that 
(from  personal  knowledge  or  from  testimonials  laid  before  us — as 
the  case  may  be)  we  believe  A.  B.  to  be  pious,  sober,  and  honest ; 
that  he  is  attached  to  the  doctrine,  discipline,  and  worship  of  the 
Nippon  Sei  Kokwai,  and  that  he  is  a  communicant  of  the  said 
Church  in  good  standing  ;  and  do  furthermore  declare  that, 
in  our  opinion,  he  possesses  such  qualifications  as  fit  him  for 
entrance  on  a  course  of  preparation  for  the  Holy  Ministry.' 

§  3.  It  is  always  understood,  and  it  is  also  at  proper 
opportunities  to  be  made  known  to  the  candidate,  for  whatever 
order  of  the  ministry,  and  enforced  upon  his  consideration  by 
the  Bishop  and  Standing  Committee,  that  the  Church  expects  of 
all  such  candidates,  what  can  never  be  brought  to  the  test  of  any 
outward  standard — an  inward  fear  and  worship  of  Almighty  God, 
a  love  of  religion  and  a  sensibility  to  its  holy  influences,  a  habit 
of  devout  affection,  and,  in  short,  a  cultivation  of  all  those  graces 
which  are  called  in  Scripture  the  fruits  of  the  Spirit,  and  by 
which  alone  His  sacred  influences  can  be  manifested. 

§  4.  The  Bishop  on  receipt  of  such  certificates  may  admit 
the  person  recommended  by  the  Standing  Committee  as  a 
candidate  for  Deacon's  Orders,  and  shall  thereupon  record  his 
name  with  the  date  of  admission,  and  the  names  of  the  Presbyters 
signing  such  certificate,  in  a  book  to  be  kept  for  that  purpose,  and 
notify  the  candidate  of  such  record,  and  inform  him  at  the  same 
time  of  the  course  of  study  which  is  required  of  him,  and  of  the 
texts  of  Scripture  upon  which  he  is  expected  to  prepare  discourses 
for  presentation  at  his  examination. 

If  the  Bishop  and  the  majority  of  the  Standing  Committee 
are  not  in  agreement  in  regard  to  the  acceptance  of  any  candi- 
date the  question  shall  be  referred  to  all  the  Bishops  who  are 
members  of  the  Synod,  and  their  decision  shall  be  final. 

§  5.  An  examination  of  the  literary  qualifications  of  a  candi- 
date shall  extend  to  his  knowledge  of  the  Japanese  Language 
and  Literature,  of  the  first  principles  and  general  outlines  of 
Geography,  History,  Mental  and  Moral  Philosophy,  Logic, 
Physics,  and  of  Chinese  and  English.  It  is  most  desirable  that 
he  present  himself  also  for  examination  in  Greek  and  Hebrew. 

The  Bishop  may,  for  sufficient  reasons,  after  consulting  his 


478 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


Standing  Committee,  dispense  a  candidate  from  examination 
in  particular  subjects. 

The  examination  shall  be  conducted  by  the  Bishop's  examin- 
ing chaplains. 

CANON  II 

Of  Admitted  Catididate 

§  I.  The  superintendence  of  a  candidate  for  Holy  Orders 
and  direction  of  his  theological  studies  pertain  in  consultation 
with  the  tutor  or  tutors  (if  any)  with  whom  he  is  studying  to  the 
Bishop  during  the  year  preceding  his  ordination. 

§  2.  A  report  to  the  Bishop  of  the  progress  and  manner  of  life 
of  each  candidate  for  Holy  Orders  shall  be  made  by  his  tutor,  or, 
if  studying  privately,  by  himself  once  in  every  six  months. 

CANON  III 

Of  Examinations  for  Ordination 

§  I.  Every  candidate  for  Deacon's  Orders  shall  undergo  an 
examination,  partly  oral,  partly  written,  conducted  by  the  examin- 
ing chaplains — the  Bishop  at  his  discretion  being  present  and 
taking  part  in  such  examination. 

§  2.  The  subjects  shall  be  as  follows  :  (i)  A  general  knowledge 
of  the  Holy  Scriptures.  (2)  Selected  books  of  the  Old  and  New 
Testaments.  (3)  The  Book  of  Common  Prayer,  its  History  and 
Contents.  (4)  Church  History  and  Polity.  (5)  Pastoral  Theo- 
logy. (6)  Christian  Doctrine,  including  the  three  Creeds  and 
the  Articles  of  Religion.  (7)  Evidences  of  Christianity.  (8) 
Christian  Ethics. 

Note  i.^ — Such  candidate  shall  be  examined  as  to  his  ability 
to  conduct  with  reverence  the  services  of  the  Church  and  deliver 
sermons. 

Note  2. — The  Bishop  may,  for  sufficient  reasons,  after  consult- 
ing with  his  Standing  Committee,  dispense  a  candidate  from 
examination  in  particular  subjects,  with  the  exception  of  the 
Holy  Scriptures  in  the  Japanese  language,  the  Prayer  Book,  and 
the  Articles. 

Note  3. — To  every  candidate  for  Priest's  Orders  books  shall 
be  assigned  by  the  Bishop,  for  examination  in  which  he  shall 
present  himself  when  required. 


APPENDICES 


479 


CANON  IV 
Of  Ordination 

§  I.  No  person  shall  be  admitted  to  Holy  Orders  until  he 
shall  have  subscribed  the  following  declaration  :  '  I  do  believe 
the  Holy  Scriptures  of  the  Old  and  New  Testaments  to  be  the 
Word  of  God,  and  to  contain  all  things  necessary  to  salvation ; 
and  I  do  solemnly  engage  to  conform  to  the  doctrines  and 
worship  of  the  Nippon  Sei  Kdkwai.' 

§  2.  A  candidate  for  Holy  Orders  shall  not  be  ordained 
within  three  years  from  his  admission  as  a  candidate,  unless  the 
Bishop  for  special  reasons  shall  see  fit  to  ordain  him  after  a 
shorter  period  of  probation. 

§  3.  No  person  shall  be  ordained  Deacon  in  this  Church 
unless  he  lay  before  the  Bishop  and  Standing  Committee 
testimonials  from  two  Presbyters  (of  whom  it  is  desirable  that 
one  be  his  Spiritual  Pastor)  and  two-thirds  of  the  Vestry  of  the 
congregation  of  which  he  is  a  member,  or,  if  occasion  so  require, 
six  laymen,  communicants  of  the  Church,  testifying  to  his  piety 
and  good  conduct  in  the  following  words  :  '  We  do  certify  that 
A.  B.  for  the  space  of  three  years  last  past  hath  lived  piously, 
soberly,  and  honestly ;  and  hath  not,  so  far  as  we  know  or 
believe,  written,  taught,  or  held  anything  contrary  to  the  doctrine 
or  discipline  of  the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai  ;  and  moreover  we  think 
him  a  fit  person  to  be  admitted  to  the  Sacred  Order  of  Deacons. 

'  These  testimonials  are  founded  on  our  personal  knowledge  of 
the  said  A.  B.  for  one  year  last  past,  and  for  the  residue  of  the 
said  time  upon  evidence  that  is  satisfactory  to  us.  In  witness 
whereof  we  have  hereunto  set  our  hands  this  —  day  of  —  in  the 
year  of  Our  Lord — ' 

If  these  testimonials  should  ];e  deemed  satisfactory  by  the 
Bishop  and  Standing  Committee,  the  Bishop  may  proceed  to 
ordain  the  candidate. 

§  4.  Deacon's  Orders  shall  not  be  conferred  on  any  person 
under  the  age  of  twenty-one  years. 

§  5.  No  person  shall  be  ordained  Priest  until  he  shall  have 
laid  before  the  Bishop  and  Standing  Committee  testimonials 
similar  to  those  required  by  §  3  of  this  Canon. 


48o 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


§  6.  Priest's  Orders  shall  not  be  conferred  on  any  person 
until  he  shall  have  attained  the  age  of  twenty-four  years. 

§  7.  Foreign  clergy  who  desire  to  exercise  their  ministry  in  the 
Nippon  Sei  Kokwai  shall  sign  a  declaration  in  the  following 
terms  :  '  I  do  solemnly  engage  to  conform  to  the  doctrine  and 
worship  of  the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai.'  Of  the  declaration  one 
copy  shall  be  retained  by  the  Bishop,  and  one  sent  to  the  Stand- 
ing Committee  of  the  District  in  which  the  Foreign  clergyman  is 
licensed. 

CANON  V 

General  Regulations 

§  I.  Wherever  there  is  a  congregation  of  this  Church  under 
the  charge  of  a  licensed  minister  or  lay  agent,  he  shall  not 
permit  any  person  to  officiate  in  the  public  services  of  the  Church 
without  sufficient  evidence  of  his  being  duly  authorised  to 
minister  therein,  nor  to  preach  in  opposition  to  the  wishes  of  the 
Vestry. 

§  2.  The  right  to  elect  a  minister  to  any  church  or  congre- 
gation shall  rest  with  the  Vestry  thereof  and  a  Patronage 
Committee,'  who  having  agreed  upon  a  name  shall  forward  it  to 
the  Bishop.  The  Bishop,  if  he  be  satisfied  that  the  person  so 
chosen  is  a  qualified  minister  of  the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai,  shall 
institute  him  in  the  customary  manner,  provided  that  the  Bishop 
shall  not  institute  to  the  care  of  such  church  or  congregation 
until  he  has  received  a  letter  from  the  Vestry  in  the  following 
terms  : 

'We,  the  undersigned  members  of  the  congregation  of  — , 
do  guarantee  a  salary  of  —  for  A.  B.' 

§  3.  The  minister,  or,  if  there  be  no  minister,  the  Vestry  of 
each  congregation,  shall  keep  a  list  of  the  families  and  adult 
persons  belonging  to  the  same  ;  and  a  Register  of  Baptisms, 
Confirmations,  Communicants,  Offerings,  Marriages,  Funerals, 
Services  and  Sermons,  and  transmit  an  annual  report  thereof  in 
January  to  the  Bishop,  together  with  a  statement  showing  the 
condition  of  Sunday  and  Day  Schools  connected  therewith. 

§  4.  A  member  of  this  Church  or  a  catechumen  removing 
from  one  congregation  to  another  shall  procure  from  the  minister 

'  Canon  X.  §  6. 


APPENDICES 


and  Vestry  of  the  congregation  of  his  last  residence  a  com- 
mendatory letter  in  the  following  form  : 

'We  do  hereby  commend  our  beloved  in  Christ  A.  B.  (or 
A.  B.  a  catechumen)~now  removing  from  this  congregation— to 
the  kind  offices  of  every  member  of  Christ's  Holy  Church,  and 

especially  to  the  pastoral  care  of  our  brother  the  Rev.  

Minister  of  

Signed  

Minister  of  

Dated  at  

The —day  of —1 8  —  ' 

Note. — This  Canon  might  be  suitably  observed  in  the  case  of 
persons  on  a  journey  who  may  wish  to  attend  the  Services  and 
receive  the  Holy  Communion  in  other  Churches. 

§  5.  The  ministers  of  this  Church  shall  be  diligent  in 
instructing  the  members  of  their  congregation  in  the  Holy 
Scriptures,  the  Prayer  Book,  the  Catechism,  and  the  Constitution 
of  the  Church,  and  also  in  the  duty  of  observing  the  Lord's  Day 
and  the  festivals  and  fasts  of  the  Church. 

§  6.  Every  minister  shall  on  all  ordinary  occasions  of  Public 
Worship  use  the  Book  of  Common  Prayer. 

CANON  VI 

Of  Bishops 

§  I.  As  soon  as  the  progress  of  the  Church  in  Japan  or  any 
part  thereof  shall  allow,  Territorial  Dioceses  shall  be  established 
under  the  jurisdiction  of  Japanese  Bishops. 

§  2.  Such  Bishops  shall  be  elected  by  the  clergy  and  laity 
of  the  proposed  dioceses,  voting  by  orders. 

§  3.  Bishops  of  this  Church  shall  be  consecrated  by  at  least 
three  Bishops  in  communion  therewith. 

§  4.  No  person  shall  be  consecrated  Bishop  who  is  not  at 
least  thirty  years  of  age. 

Note. — Before  the  consecration  of  any  such  Bishop,  Canons 
with  regard  to  election,  jurisdiction,  &c.,  shall  be  drawn  up  and 
approved  by  the  Synod. 

I  I 


482 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


CANON  VII 

Of  Unordained  Age?its 

§  I.  A  lay  communicant  of  this  Church  may  receive  from 
the  Bishop  a  written  license  :  (i)  to  minister  to  a  congregation 
not  provided  with  an  Ordained  Pastor,  and  to  read  services  and 
preach  in  church  ;  (2)  to  teach  ;  (3)  to  act  as  an  Evangelist  to 
the  heathen.  This  license  may  be  revoked  at  the  discretion  of 
the  Bishop. 

Note. — Communicants  of  this  Church  desiring  to  obtain  such 
a  license  are  required  to  have  the  following  qualifications  :  (i)  He 
shall  have  been  baptised  at  least  two  full  years.  (2)  He  must 
have  a  testimonial  from  the  Pastor  and  one-third  of  the  Vestry  of 
his  own  Church  or  from  any  six  communicants  of  the  Nippon 
Sei  Kokwai.  (3)  He  must  have  passed  a  general  examination  in 
Holy  Scripture,  Prayer  Book,  Expositions  of  the  Creed,  General 
Outline  of  Church  History  and  Polity,  and  of  Christian  Evidences, 
unless  specially  exempted  by  the  Bishop. 

§  2.  He  shall  not  use  the  Absolution  nor  the  Benediction, 
nor  the  offices  of  the  Church,  except  those  for  the  Burial  of  the 
Dead  and  for  the  Visitation  of  the  Sick  and  of  Prisoners  : 
omitting  in  these  last  the  Absolutions  and  Benedictions. 

§  3.  A  Bishop  shall  not  license  an  unordained  agent  to 
minister  to  a  congregation  which  undertakes  to  provide  his 
salary  (wholly  or  in  part)  without  a  letter  signed  by  its  principal 
members  in  the  following  terms  :  '  We,  the  undersigned  members 
of  the  congregation  of  — ,  do  guarantee  a  salary  of  —  for  A.  B.' 

§  4.  Every  such  agent  shall  be  diligent  in  visiting  both 
Christians  and  unbelievers  in  the  district  assigned  to  him,  and 
shall  submit  written  reports  of  his  work  at  short  intervals  to  the 
minister  in  charge.  If  there  be  no  minister  in  charge,  the 
report  shall  be  made  to  the  Bishop. 

§  5.  Every  licensed  unordained  agent  shall  work  under  the 
direction  of  a  minister  appointed  by  the  Bishop,  or  under  the 
Bishop  himself;  and  no  such  agent  or  catechist  shall  in  the 
presence  of  a  minister  of  this  Church  say  any  of  the  services  of 
the  same,  save  at  such  minister's  request. 

The  Bishop  shall  appoint  a  Presbyter  to  administer  the  Sacra- 


APPENDICES 


483 


ment,  and  shall  determine  the  minimum  number  of  times  the 
Holy  Communion  shall  be  administered  during  the  year. 

§  6.  Women,  communicants  of  this  Church,  may  receive  from 
the  Bishop  a  written  license  to  visit  among  both  heathen  and 
Christian  women,  to  hold  meetings  for  Christian  instruction  in 
private  houses  and  unconsecrated  buildings,  or  to  nurse  the  sick. 

The  license  may  be  revoked  at  the  discretion  of  the  Bishop. 

They  shall  act  under  the  supervision  of  the  minister  to  whose 
district  or  mission  they  are  attached. 

CANON  VIII 

Of  Discipline 

§  I.  Every  minister  for  offences  committed  by  him  shall  be 
amenable  to  the  Bishop,  it  being  provided  that  he  be  tried  by  a 
court  of  Presbyters. 

§  2.  Five  communicants  of  the  Church,  of  whom  two  shall 
be  Presbyters,  may  present  a  minister  to  the  Standing  Com- 
mittee. 

§  3.  If  in  the  opinion  of  the  majority  of  the  Standing 
Committee  there  be  sufficient  ground  for  so  doing,  they  shall 
present  the  said  minister  to  the  Bishop.  The  Bishop  shall  then 
proceed  in  the  manner  hereafter  to  be  provided. 

Upon  the  receipt  of  the  foregoing  presentment,  the  Bishop 
shall  nominate  five  Presbyters  unconnected  with  the  accused  by 
relationship  or  marriage  and  not  parties  to  the  original  present- 
ment, and  not  members  of  the  Standing  Committee,  and  shall 
communicate  their  names  to  the  accused,  who  shall  have  a  right 
to  object  to  any  two  of  the  same.  Should  he  make  no  objection, 
or  object  to  only  one,  the  Bishop  shall  nominate  three  of  those  to 
whom  no  objection  has  been  made,  who  shall  form  the  Court. 
Should  he  object  to  two,  the  remaining  three  shall  form  the  Court. 
If  one  be  unable  to  serve  the  Bishop  shall  nominate  two  others,  of 
whom  the  accused  shall  have  a  right  to  object  to  one.  If  he 
make  no  objection  the  Bishop  shall  select  one  of  the  two. 

§  4.  The  Bishop  shall  cause  a  written  notice  of  the  time  and 
place  appointed  for  the  trial  to  be  served  on  the  accused  and  also 
on  one  of  the  presenters,  at  least  thirty  days  previous  thereto. 

§  5.  All  accusations  and  citations  shall  be  in  writing,  and  all 

1 1  2 


484 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


testimony  shall  be  in  writing,  or  if  given  verbally  shall  be  reduced 
to  writing  and  signed  by  the  witness. 

§  6.  If  a  Clergyman  presented  shall  at  any  time  before  the 
commencement  of  the  trial  confess  the  fact  charged  in  the  pre- 
sentment, the  Bishop  shall,  with  the  consent  and  approval  of  the 
Clerical  members  of  the  Standing  Committee,  proceed  to  pass 
sentence  ;  otherwise  he  shall  be  considered  as  denying  them. 

§  7.  The  three  Presbyters  having  duly  met,  they  shall  receive 
such  evidence  as  may  be  adduced  in  accordance  with  the  pro- 
visions of  this  Canon,  and,  having  deliberately  considered  the 
same,  shall  declare  in  a  writing  signed  by  them,  or  a  majority  of 
them,  their  verdict  on  the  several  charges  and  specifications- 
contained  in  the  presentment,  distinctly  stating  whether  the 
accused  is  guilty  or  not  guilty  of  each,  respectively,  and  stating 
also  the  sentence  which  in  their  opinion  should  be  pronounced. 
A  copy  of  such  verdict  shall,  without  delay,  be  communicated  to 
the  accused,  and  the  original  verdict,  together  with  the  evidence, 
shall  be  delivered  to  the  Bishop,  who  shall  pronounce  such 
Canonical  sentence  thereon  as  shall  appear  to  him  proper,  provided 
the  same  exceed  not  in  severity  the  sentence  awarded  by  the  Court, 
and  such  sentence  shall  be  final. 

Provided,  however,  that  the  Bishop,  and  if  there  be  no  Bishop 
the  Ecclesiastical  authority,  may  grant  a  new  trial  to  the  accused. 
If  a  new  trial  should  be  granted  the  Court  shall  be  constituted  of 
other  members  than  those  sitting  at  the  former  trial,  to  be 
selected  in  the  same  manner  as  is  provided  in  §.  3.  Not  more 
than  one  new  trial  shall  be  granted. 

§  8.  Every  minister  of  this  Church  shall  be  liable  to  present- 
ment and  trial  for  the  following  offences,  viz.  :  i.  Crime  or 
immorality.  2.  Holding  and  teaching  publicly  or  privately  and 
advisedly  any  doctrine  contrary  to  that  held  by  the  Nippon 
Sei  Kokwai.  3.  Violation  of  the  Constitution  or  Canons  of  this 
Church  after  warning  by  the  Bishop  of  the  diocese.  4.  Any  act 
which  involves  a  breach  of  his  ordination  vows. 

And  on  being  found  guilty  he  shall  be  admonished,  suspended, 
or  degraded,  according  to  the  Canons. 

§  9.  If  any  Minister  of  the  Church  shall  declare  in  writing  to 
the  Bishop  his  renunciation  of  the  ministry  of  the  Church,  it 
shall  be  the  duty  of  the  Bishop,  in  the  presence  of  two  or  more 
Presbyters,  after  waiting  such  time  as  in  his  discretion  shall  be 


APPENDICES 


485 


desirable,  to  pronounce  and  record  that  the  person  so  declaring 
has  been  deposed  from  the  ministry  of  this  Church. 

§  10.  If  any  person  in  this  Church  offend  the  brethren  by  any 
wickedness  of  life  or  denial  of  the  Christian  Faith,  such  person 
shall  be  repelled  by  the  Presbyter  from  the  Holy  Communion. 
Any  Presbyter  so  repelling  from  the  Holy  Communion  shall 
make  a  report  thereof  to  the  Bishop,  stating  whether  in  his 
opinion  it  be  also  needful  that  the  offender  be  publicly  excom- 
municated. The  Bishop  shall  then  proceed  in  the  matter 
according  to  his  discretion,  providing  that  before  authorising 
the  public  excommunication  of  any  person  he  shall  afford  him  an 
opportunity  of  making  a  statement,  should  he  so  desire,  orally  or 
by  writing,  in  his  own  defence. 

The  above  rule  is  not  to  be  understood  as  prohibiting  the 
Presbyter  from  administering  the  Sacraments  to  a  penitent  person 
in  imminent  danger  of  death. 

CANON  IX 

Of  Standing  Cotntniffees 

In  each  district  there  shall  be  a  Standing  Committee  consist- 
ing of  four  members,  two  Presbyters  and  two  laymen  ;  one  of  the 
Presbyters  shall  be  appointed  by  the  Bishop  or  Bishops  in  charge  of 
the  district,  and  the  other  three  members  shall  be  elected  by  the 
Local  Council  at  their  Annual  Meeting.  The  duties  of  the  Stand- 
ing Committee  shall  be  to  act  in  all  matters  for  which  provision  is 
made  in  these  Canons  and  to  assist  the  Bishop  as  a  Council  of 
Advice  ;  and  so  far  as  is  practicable  it  shall  be  the  Ecclesiastical 
Authority  in  the  absence  of  the  Bishop.  The  representation  of 
Japanese  and  foreigners  on  the  Standing  Committee  shall  be  as 
far  as  possible  equal. 

CANON  X 

Of  Local  Councils 

§  I.  Each  Local  Council  shall  consist  of  representatives 
elected  annually  by  the  adult  members  of  the  congregations  in 
an  assigned  district,  and  shall  meet  at  least  annually. 

Note  I. — Tokyo,  Osaka,  Kumamoto,  and  Hakodate  shall  be 
considered  centres  of  districts  for  Local  Councils. 


486 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


Note  2. — All  delegates  to  Local  Councils  shall  be  adult  male 
communicants  in  good  standing. 

§  2.  All  ordained  missionaries,  pastors,  and  unordained 
agents  licensed  to  minister  to  congregations  shall  be  ex  officio 
members  of  the  council. 

§  3.  Each  congregation  numbering  twenty  communicants 
shall  be  entitled  to  send  one  representative  ;  and  a  congregation 
numbering  forty  or  more  communicants  shall  be  entitled  to  send 
two  representatives  to  the  council. 

Note  I. — In  the  case  of  a  congregation  not  being  sufficiently 
large  to  be  entitled  to  send  a  delegate  to  the  council  it  may 
unite  with  one  or  more  congregations  similarly  circumstanced  to 
send  one  representative,  or,  such  congregation  being  isolated, 
may  with  the  assent  of  the  council  be  affiliated  for  the  time  being 
with  a  large  congregation  for  the  purpose  of  voting. 

Note  2. — Communicants  who  without  sufficient  reason  have 
not  received  the  Holy  Communion  for  a  year  shall  not  be  counted 
among  the  present  communicants. 

§  4.  The  Bishop  if  present  shall  preside,  and  in  his  absence 
a  Presbyter,  to  be  elected  by  the  council. 

The  council  shall  elect  two  secretaries  and  two  treasurers. 

§  5.  The  clergy  and  laity  shall  sit  and  vote  together,  provided 
that  on  the  demand  of  two  Presbyters  or  two  laymen  a  vote 
shall  be  taken  by  orders. 

§  6.  The  duties  of  a  Local  Council  shall  be  : 

a.  To  deliberate  on  matters  relating  to  the  welfare  of  the 
Church  in  the  district. 

b.  The  election  of  clerical  and  lay  delegates  to  the  General 
Synod. 

Note  I. — The  lay  delegates  shall  be  equal  in  number  to  the 
clerical  delegates  in  the  district,  and  shall  be  elected  by  the  laity 
only,  out  of  nominees  of  the  congregations  who  shall  be  commu- 
nicants.   Clerical  delegates  to  be  elected  by  clergy  only. 

Note  2. — Only  communicants  in  good  standing  shall  be 
eligible. 

Note  3.^ — Where  there  are  ten  or  less  clergy  in  a  district  all  shall 
attend  the  Synod,  but  in  cases  where  they  exceed  ten,  ten  only 
shall  be  sent  as  delegates.  The  clerical  delegates  shall  be  elected 
by  the  clergy. 

c.  The  election  of  a  Patronage  Committee. 


ArrENDICES 


487 


Note. — This  committee  shall  consist  of  two  Presbyters  and 
two  laymen. 

d.  The  election  of  a  Local  Missionary  Committee  as  pro- 
vided for  in  Canon  XII. 


CANON  XI 
Of  Vestries 

§  I.  The  Vestry  of  a  congregation  shall  consist  of  the  pastor 
or  licensed  agent  in  charge  and  of  at  least  three  and  not  more 
than  five  lay  male  communicants,  to  be  elected  in  the  second 
week  of  each  year  by  the  communicants  of  the  congregation. 

Note  I. — It  is  desirable  that  the  Vestry  meet  at  least  once  a 
month. 

Note  2. — No  licensed  agent  or  catecliist  other  than  the  agent 
in  charge  shall  be  a  member  of  the  Vestry. 

§  2.  The  pastor  or  licensed  agent  shall  be  ex  officio  chair- 
man, and  have  a  casting  vote.  In  his  absence  a  member  shall 
be  elected  by  the  Vestry  to  act  in  his  place. 

§  3.  The  duties  of  a  Vestry  shall  be  : 

a.  The  management  of  the  temporalities  of  the  congrega- 
tion. 

b.  The  collection  of  funds  and  the  auditing  of  accounts. 

c.  The  superintendence  and  repairing  of  buildings. 

d.  On  the  vacancy  of  a  pastorate,  in  conjunction  with  the 
Church  Patronage  Committee  after  taking  counsel  with 
the  communicants  of  the  congregation,  to  nominate  a 
pastor. 

e.  When  a  congregation  in  charge  of  a  licensed  agent 
requires  the  services  of  a  minister  for  any  ecclesiastical 
purpose,  the  Vestry  shall  make  application  to  a  minister 
holding  the  Bishop's  license. 


CANON  XII 

Of  the  Missionary  Society 

§  I.  This  society  shall  be  called  'The  Missionary  Society  of 
the  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai.' 

§  2.  The  society  shall  consist  of  all  members  of  the  Church 
who  subscribe  to  the  funds  of  the  society. 


488 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


§  3.  There  shall  be  a  Board  of  Managers,  consisting  of  the 
Bishops  and  six  members  appointed  by  each  Synod,  of  whom,  so 
long  as  a  grant  is  received  from  foreign  sources,  three  shall  be 
Japanese  and  three  foreigners.  The  headquarters  of  the  board 
shall  be  in  Tokyo,  and  all  the  members  of  the  board  shall  be 
residents  in  Tokyo. 

§  4.  The  senior  Bishop  present  shall  be  chairman  of  the 
meetings  of  the  board,  and  in  the  absence  of  a  Bishop  the 
meeting  shall  elect  its  own  chairman. 

The  board  shall  elect  annually  two  treasurers  and  two 
secretaries,  of  whom  one  treasurer  and  one  secretary  shall  be 
a  Japanese,  and  one  treasurer  and  one  secretary  shall  be  a 
foreigner. 

§  5.  The  duties  of  the  Board  shall  be  : 

a.  To  take  charge  of  all  funds  collected  by  the  congrega- 
tions or  contributed  from  other  sources  for  the  society. 

b.  To  receive  applications  from  the  Local  Committees  for 
grants  in  aid,  and  to  make  grants  to  them. 

c.  To  make  general  regulations  for  the  guidance  of  the 
Local  Committees. 

d.  To  appoint  inspectors  of  the  missionary  work  in  the 
various  missionary  districts. 

e.  To  prepare  and  publish  annually  a  statement  of  accounts, 
and  make  a  report  to  the  Synod  of  the  general  progress 
of  the  work. 

§  6.  There  shall  be  Local  Committees  appointed  by  the  Local 
Councils,  and  each  committee  shall  consist  of  an  equal  number 
of  Japanese  and  foreigners,  so  long  as  it  receives  a  grant  in  aid 
from  foreign  sources. 

§  7.  The  Local  Committee  shall  elect  its  own  chairman  and 
two  treasurers  and  two  secretaries,  of  whom  one  treasurer  and  one 
secretary  shall  be  a  Japanese,  and  one  treasurer  and  one  secretary 
a  foreigner. 

§  8.  The  duties  of  the  Local  Committee  shall  be  : 

a.  To  receive  and  disburse  the  grants  made  by  the  board. 

b.  To  appoint  missionarj'  agents  and  to  superintend  their 
work. 

c.  To  make  quarterly  reports  to  the  secretaries  of  the 
board. 

d.  To  collect  subscriptions  from  members  of  the  Society. 


APPENDICES 


489 


§  9.  No  agent  shall  be  employed  by  the  Local  Committee 
without  a  license  from  the  Bishop. 

CANON  XIII 
Of  Consecrated  Buildings 

§  I.  No  church  shall  be  consecrated  until  the  Bishop  shall 
have  been  sufficiently  certified  that  the  building  is  free  from  debt 
and  adequately  secured  from  the  danger  of  alienation  from  the 
Nippon  Sei  Kokwai.  And  no  consecrated  building  shall  be  sold 
or  otherwise  parted  with,  without  the  consent  of  the  Bishop, 
acting  with  the  advice  of  his  Standing  Committee. 

§  2.  No  consecrated  building  shall  be  used  for  any  other 
purpose  than  the  services  of  the  Church  and  the  worship  of 
Almighty  God. 

Note. — This  section  does  not  refer  to  the  Vestry  or  other 
room  contiguous  to  the  church. 

CANON  XIV 

Of  Marriage  and  Divorce  {Deferred)  ' 

CANON  XV 
Of  the  Requisites  of  a  Quorum 

In  all  meetings  of  the  Synod,  Standing  Committee,  or  any 
other  body,  consisting  of  several  members,  a  majority  of  the 
members  (the  whole  having  been  duly  cited  to  meet)  shall  be  a 
quorum  :  and  a  majority  of  the  quorum  so  convened  shall  be 
competent  to  act. 

'  This  subject  was  discussed,  but  the  drafting  of  the  Canon  again  deferred 
at  the  General  .Synod,  April  20,  1899. 


490 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


APPENDIX  C  ' 


As  a  further  illustration  of  the  care  with  which  he  would  write 
himself  clear  on  any  subject  submitted  to  him,  the  following 
paper  on  Sacrifice  may  be  given. 


the  essential  Trinity  ;  that  is,  as  we  conceive  of  it  in  the  relation 
of  the  Divine  Persons,  of  the  Son  to  the  Father  through  the 
Spirit.    N.B.  St.  John  i.  i. 

Sacrifice  may  be  defined  as  the  return  to  God  the  Father  of 
that  which  originates  in  Him  (17  Tr-rjy-lj  tijs  BiUTyjro';).  As  such  it 
includes : 

1.  Koivtovia  (cf.  St.  Austin  :  Sacrificium  id  opus  est  quo 
agitur  ut  quasi  divina  societate  inhsereamus  in  Deo). 

2.  Jlpocrtfiopa.. 

But  the  two  are  ultimately  identical. 
2.  Oeconomically. 

(a)  Sacrifice  was  foreshadowed  in  the  Law  under  three 
forms  : 

1.  Burnt  offering — consecration. 

2.  Sin  offering — reconciliation. 

3.  Peace  offering — communion. 

[d)  The  life  and  death  of  the  Incarnate  was  the  absolute 
and  ideal  embodiment  and  exhibition  of  Sacrifice  under 
this  threefold  form.  N.B. — In  Him  the  distinction  of 
form  can  only  be  maintained  in  thought,  not  in  fact. 

(c)  The  sacrificial  life  is  continued  under  new  conditions  in 
the  unseen  order  by  'the  High  Priest  for  ever.'  His 

'  For  another  paper  on  this  subject  see  chapter  xi.  p.  409. 


I.  The 


arche 
anti 


Sacrifice 

type  of  sacrifice,  as  of  all  positive  truth,  is  in 


APPENDICES 


491 


Divine  Humanity  is  still  the  one  burnt  offering,  the  sin 
offering  (now  by  way  of  representation  and  remembrance), 
and  the  peace  offering.  Cf.  ela-rjXOiv — et/)a7ra^  i/j.(f)aviaOrjvai, 

Heb.  ix.  12,  24. 

(d)  The  Church  is  the  extension  to  the  elect,  and  ideally  to 
humanity,  of  the  Incarnation.  Cf.  ek  'iva  Kaivhv  avOpni-n-ov, 
Eph.  ii.  15. 

This  prerogative  position  involves  her  in  like  sacrificial 
offices  with  her  Head.    Cf.  i  Peter  ii.  5. 

1.  In  Him  she  offers  herself  (prayers,  praises,  suffer- 
ings, alms)  to  the  Father.    Burnt  offering. 

2.  In  Him  she  pleads  the  sacrifice  of  His  death.  Sin 
offering,  so  far  as  now  possible  or  needed.  Cf. 
Mozley  on  sacrifice  in  subordinate  sense. 

3.  In  Him  she  holds  communion  with  God.  Peace 
offering. 

[N.B. — Sacrifice  as  burnt  offering  and  peace  offering  in  accord- 
ance with  the  eternal  purpose  of  God  and  dependent  on  the 
Incarnation.  Sacrifice  as  sin  offering  due  to  the  fall,  con- 
summated on  the  cross,  represented  in  Heaven.] 

{e)  The  Eucharist  gathers  up  in  one  outward  act  of  the 
Christian  society  all  her  characteristic  functions.  Its 
sacrificial  aspect  is  not  to  be  found  merely  or  chiefly  in 
the  words  of  Institution  (ttouw  '  and  dm/xi/Tjcris),^  though 
these  may  be  significant ;  but  in  its  whole  nature.  In  it  the 
Church  is  united  with  her  Head  (in  fact,  not  in  symbol) 
around  the  heavenly  altar,  and  joins  in  His  actions.  This 
of  necessity  gives  a  sacrificial  character  to  the  service, 
the  idea  of  sacrifice  being  inseparable  from  the  presence 
of  the  Divine  Humanity,  which  is  specially  guaranteed  in 
the  Eucharist. 

[N.B. — The  controversy  as  to  the  mode  of  Christ's  Presence 
is  unreal.  We  have  no  faculties  for  the  apprehension  of  a  '  supra- 
local  '  presence,  such  as  Christ's  has  become  since  the  Ascension. 
'  Christ  so  came  to  earth  that  He  did  not  leave  His  Father's 
throne.  Christ  so  returned  to  His  Father  that  He  did  not  leave 
His  Church  on  earth.' — St.  Austin.] 

'  Cp.  with  noKiTf,  St.  Matt,  xxvii.  18  and  Exodus  xxix.  26,  39. 
^  Cp.  however,  the  following  reft",  on  avd/xfriais,  avafiifivricrKw,  Lcvit.  xxiv.  7, 
Numbers  v.  15,  x.  9,  10,  Psalm  xxxvii.  i,  Ixix.  i,  and  cp.  liv-qixdavvov. 


492 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETII 


IVe  have  an  Altar — 

Essentially,  Christ  ; 
Historically,  the  Cross  ; 
Instrumentally,  the  Eucharist  ; 
[the  Lord's  Table  only  conventionally]. 
Limitations  of  the  truth  of  the  real,  substantial,  supra-local 
Presence  of  Christ  in  the  Eucharist. 

1.  Permanence  of  elements. 

ct.  Transubstantiation. 

2.  Absence  of  local  limitation — supra-local. 

ct.  Consubstantiation. 

3.  No  new  humiliation  {Iv  rots  iTrovpavioii). 

The  mystery  is  in  the  unseen  order. 

4.  In  usum  Sacramenti. 

No  sacramental  blessing  to  non-communicants. 
The  Presence  is — 
Objective  ; 

For  salvation  of  body  and  soul ; 
Real. 


INDEX 


Allnutt,  Rev.  S.  S.,  27,  46,  69,  95, 
460 

letters  to,  iii,  114,  127,  130, 

144,  151 
Alcock,  Sir  Rutherford,  176 
American  Church  Mission  in  Japan, 

154,  164,  175,  242,  255,  270,  301, 

335>  367 

Articles,  XXXIX.,  unsuitability  for 

an  Eastern  Church,  338-341 
Atonement,  the,  paper  on,  406 
Awdry,  Bishop,  251,  364,  379,  381, 
458,  460,  463 

Barnett,  Rev.  Canon,  287 
Batchelor,  Rev.  J.,  178,  271,  296 
Bazars,  preaching  in,  59,  61 
Benson,  Rt.  Rev.  E.  W.,  see  Canter- 
bury, Archbishop  of 
Bickersteth,  Rev.  Edward  (ofWatton), 
2,  3 

Bickersteth,  Rev.  Edward  Henry,  see 

Exeter,  Bishop  of 
Bickersteth,  Rev.  H.  V.,  letters  to, 
187 

Bickersteth,  Rev.  Samuel,  462 

letters  to,  34,  45,  83,  96,  131, 
139.  235,  273,  320,  401, 
405 

Bickersteth,  Mrs.  Edward,  letters  to, 
18,  373,  377,  380,  382,  387 
letters  from,  351,  378,  380, 
456 

Bickersteth,  Mrs.  (the  Bishop's 
mother),  4,  12-14,  17,  188,  262, 
269 

Bickersteth,  Mrs.  (the  Bishop's  step- 
mother), 44,  75,  205,  291 
Bickersteth,  Miss  Alice,  13,  462 
Bickersteth,  Miss  May,  122 

letters  to,  223,  237,  300,  338, 
378,  398,  400,  402,  404, 
413 

Bignold,  Sir  Samuel,  4,  9 


Birks,  Rev.  E.  B.,  7,  8 
Bishop,  Mrs.  J.  F.,  241,  376 

recollections  by,  390-396 
Bishops  in  Japan,  joint  letters  from, 

170,  335,  345 
meeting  of,  377 
Blackett,  Rev.  H.  F.,  46,  59 
Body,  Rev.  C.  W.  E.,  11,  363,  456, 

460 

recollections  by,  21 
Brandram,  Rev.  J.,  161,  259,  267, 
282 

Brooks,  Bishop  Phillips,  91 
Buddhism,  157,  182,  237 
Bullock,  Rev.  R.,  41 

letters  to,  54,  92 
Bullock,  Miss,  recollections  by,  252 

Calcutta,  Bishop  of  (Rt.  Rev.  E. 

Johnson),  40,  49,  79 
Cambridge,  life  at,  II.  See  Pembroke 

College 

Cambridge  Mission  to  Delhi,  forma- 
tion of,  25-30 
work  of,  48-108 
Cambridge  Church   Society,  paper 

before,  29 
Canadian  Church  Mission  in  Japan, 

23,  257,  362-364,  368  _ 
Canons  of  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai  167, 

309.    See  Appendix  B 
Canterbury,  Archbishop  of  (Dr.  Ben- 
son),   18,    141,   168,  202, 
314,  320,  360,  368 
letters  from,  303,  321,  343 
Canterbury,    Archbishop    of  (Dr. 

Temple),  147,  292,  460 
Carlyon,  Rev.  H.  C,  46,  59,  112, 
134,297 

Catechists,  care  for,  in  India,  51, 
57,  85,  95 
m  Japan,  377,  38S 
Chamars,  work  among,  61 
Charles,  Mrs.  Rundle,  15,  127 


494 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


Children,  the  Bishop's  love  of,  253, 
3S5.  440 

Cholmondeley,  Rev.  L.  B.,  197,  216, 
225,  268,  373 
letter  to,  417 
Church  Congress,  speeches  at,  98, 
208,  419 

Church  Missionary  Society,  negotia- 
tions of  Cambridge  Mission 
with,  32-36 
work  in  Japan,  163,  207,  227, 

274,  289,  36  I 
the   Bishop's  relations  with, 
304,  356,  475 
Church  in   England,   the  Bishop's 
interest  in  the,  264,  419,  421,  458 
Church  in  Japan,  the,  see  Nippon 

Sei  Kokwai 
Church  parlies,  the  Bishop's  attitude 

towards,  17-19.  266,  452 
Church  reform,  need  of,  266,  421 
Commentaries,  plans  for,  in  India, 
124 

in  Japan,  285 
Community  missions,  advantages  of, 
29,  80,  218.   See  Cambridge  Mis- 
sion, also  St.  Andrew's  and  St. 
Hilda's  Missions 
Confession,  the  Bishop's  views  on, 

238,  430 
Conferences  of  C. M.S.,  163,  289 

of  Church  missions  in  Japan, 

167,  168,  1S8,  305 
with  Nonconformist  mission- 
aries, 312 
Consecration  as  Bishop  in  Japan,  147 
Constitution  of  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai, 
31S 

Corfe,  Bishop,  280 
Counsel,  letters  of,  435-437 
Criticism,  Old  Testament,  412 
Crowfoot,  Canon,  38,  117,  132,  220 
Curacy  at  Hampstead,  14,  15 

Delhi,  why  chosen  by  Cambridge 
Mission,  31-40 
Bickersteth's  arrival  at,   49  ; 
return  from,  109  ;  efforts  to 
return  to,  112,  129,  137,  139 
Delhi,  the  Bishop's  visit  to,  297 

Christians,  letter  from,  108 
Devotional  life,  80,  82,  86-90,  437- 
440 

Discipline,  Church,  92,  350 
Divinity  Students,  letter  to,  274-278 
Durham,  Bishop  of  (Rt.  Rev.  J.  B. 

Lightfool),  17,  42,  73>  125,  203, 

272 


Durham,  Bishop  of  (Rt.  Rev.  B.  F. 
Westcott),  13,  17,  21,  26,  29,  47, 
74,  160,  280,  301,  378,  399,  400, 
455 

Dyne,  Dr. ,  letter  from,  8 
letter  to,  132 

Educational  work,  at  Delhi,  50, 
58,  69-74 
in  Japan,  171,  210,  214,  256 
Ely,  Bishop  of  (Dr.  Woodford),  43 

Ely,  Bishop  of  (Lord  Alwyne 
Compton),  147,  472 
Episcopate,  call  to,  41 

ideals  for,  438,  439 
Episcopate  in  Japan,  extension  of, 

273.  353,  360,  361,  368,  379 
Evangelical  party,   appreciation  of, 
17-19 

Evangelistic  work,  in  India,  64-66 
in  Japan,  209,  227,  249,  443 
Evington,  Rev.  H.  (Bishop  of  Kin- 
shire),  177,  181,  267,  279,  361,  377, 
460,  463 

recollections  by,  357-359 
Exeter,  Bishop  of  (Rt.  Rev.  E.  H. 

Bickersteth),  4,  5,  16,  75, 
138,  291,  292,  460,  461 
letters  to,  149,  151,  152,  164, 
177,  185,  188,  189,  205, 
256,  258,  261,  267,  268, 
270,  272,  273,  281,  283, 
289,  291,  294,  343,  366, 
367,  398,  399.  401,  416, 
421,  422 

Fasting  Communion,  the  Bishop's 

views  on,  434 
Fathers,  Early  Christian,  the  Bishop's 

study  of,  179,  357,  401 
Fellowship  at  Pembroke  College,  12 

20,  21 
Forsyth,  W.,  299 

Foss,  Rev.  H.  J.  (Bishop  of  Osaka), 
143,  279,  290,  370 

Framlingham,  appointment  as  rector 
of,  130  ;  work  at,  132,  133  ;  resig- 
nation of,  140 

Francis,  Rev.  J.  M.,  280 

Fraser,  H.,  367 

Freese,  Rev.  F.  E.,  199,  217,  225 
French,  Rev.  T.  V.,   see  Lahore, 

Bishop  of 
Frere,  Sir  Bartle,  39 
Fyson,  Rev.  P.  K.  (Bishop  of  the 

Hokkaido),  143,  164,  362, 

373 

recollections  by,  355,  356 


INDEX 


495 


Gore,  Canon,  411 

Greek   Church  Missions  in  Japan, 

160,  166,  263 
Guild  of  St.  Paul,  145,  199,  250,  298 
letters  to,  226,  241,  295,  364 

Hamilton,  Bishop,  363,  456 
Hamilton,  Admiral  Sir  Vesey,  177 
Hampstead,  home  life  at,  5,  6  ;  curacy 

at,  14,  15 
Hare,  Bishop,  175,  289,  366 
Heritage  in  the  Church,  Our,  161, 

301.  433 
Highgate,  schooldays  at,  7 
Hinduism,  criticism  of,  67 
Hoar,  Miss,  197,  207 
Hokkaido,  Bishop  of,  see  Fyson 
Hort,  Dr.,  41,  401 
Howard,  Dr.,  290 

Hutchinson,  Rev.  A.  B.,  161,  261, 
282 

I.MAI,  Rev.  John,  178,  198,  271,  298, 
389,  469,  473 
recollections  by,  446-451 
Institute,  Ladies',  in  Tokyo,  181,  214 

Japan,  review  of,  154-160;  arrival 

in,  161 
Japanese  women,  228 
Johnson,  Rt.  Rev.  E. ,  see  Calcutta, 

Bishop  of 
Julian,  Sister,  128 

Jurisdiction,  episcopal,  in  Japan,  175, 
366 

King,  Rev.  A.  F.,  199,  204,  217, 
225,  279,  291,  373,  381, 
389 

recollections  by,  441-446 
King,  Rev.  A.  F.,  letters  to,  457, 
458 

Kirkes,  Mrs.,  212,  226,  298 
Kiushiu,  tours  in,  256,  281 

Bishop  of,  see  Evington 
Korea,  visit  to,  1 93- 1 97 

Lahore,  Bishop  of  (Rt.  Rev.  T.  V. 

French),   26,  32,  40,  70, 
118,  133,  231 
letters  to,  137,  203 
Lahore,  Bishop   of  (Ri.    Rev.  H. 
Matthew),  16 
recollections  by,  103- 105 
Lahore,    Bishop-designate    of,  see 
Lefroy 

Lambeth  Conference,  198,  202,  456, 
459 


Lefroy,  Rev.  G.  A.,  42,  46,  69,  457 
recollections  by,  99-I03 
letters  to,  no,  115,  121,  122, 
126,  129,  134,  135,  139,  142, 
146,  225,  240 
Letter  to  Bishops  of  Anglican  Com- 
munion, 170 
Lloyd,  Rev.  A.,  143,  159,  165,  174 

McKiM,  Bishop,  365,  377,  460,  463, 
473 

Maitland,  Rev.  A.  C,  54,  371 
Manning,  Cardinal,  404 
Marriage,  the  Bishop's,  299 
Marriage  laws,  341-349 
Mason,  Rev.  A.  J.,  11,  41,  471 
Matthew,  Rev.  H.  J.,  see  Lahore, 

Bishop  of 
Maundrell,  Rev.  H.  (Archdeacon), 

149,  186,  191,  267,  272 
Methods  of  missionary  work,  speech 

on,  208 
Missionary  vocation,  24 
Motto  of  Cambridge  Mission,  45 
Muhammadanism,  criticism  of,  68 
Murray,  Rev.  T.  D.  M.,  43,  45,  53, 

129 

Native  Church  in  India,  care  for, 
29,  98,  116,  151 
in  Japan,  142,  161,  169,  306 
See  also  Nippon  Sei  Kokwai 
Nicolai,  Bishop,  160,  166,  263,  377 
Nippon  Sei  Kokwai  (Holy  Catholic 
Church  of  Japan),  212,  278, 
30I73S9,  461 
Nippon  Sei  Kokwai,  constitution  of, 
318-320 
canons  of,  167,  309,  352 
Non-communicating  attendance,  the 

Bishop's  views  on,  433 
Nonconformist   missions  in  Japan, 
160,  165,  232,  312,  415 

Ordination,  14,  15 
Ordination  in  Japan,  190,  198,  267, 
271 

Osaka,  Bishop  of,  see  Awdry  and 
Foss 

Papal  encyclical,  letter  on,  418 
Paradise,  thoughts  on,  127 
Parsons,  Mrs.,  recollections  by,  55 
Pastoral  letters,  extracts  from,  198, 

261,  284,  331,  333,  339,  344,  361, 

375.  413 

Pembroke  College,  Cambridge,  life 
at,  II,  20  ff. 


496 


BISHOP  EDWARD  BICKERSTETH 


Poole,  Bishop,  141,  167,  279 
Prayer,  thoughts  on,  90 
Prayer-book   of  Japanese  Church, 
331-338,  370 

Quiet  days,  see  Retreats 

Ranken,  Miss,  recollections  by,  384- 
387 

Resurrection,  the,  teaching  on,  423- 
429 

Retreats,  80,  81,  166,  388 
Reunion,  desires  and  efforts  for,  98, 

262,  312-317,  416 
Ritual  questions,  the  Bishop's  views 

on,  264,  323-326,  421 
Roman  Church  Missions  in  Japan, 

160,  161,  258 
Rule  of  Life  for  Community  Missions, 

220,  233 

Sacrifice,  paper  on,  409,  and  see 

Appendix  C 
St.  Andrews,  Bishop  of  (Rt.  Rev.  G. 

H.  Wilkinson),  13,  80,  128, 
231,  457,  459,  460 
recollections  by,  451-453 
St.  Andrew's  University  Mission,  145, 

197,  216-228 
St.  Hilda's  Community  Mission,  145, 

197,  231-250 
St.    Michael's  Church,  letter  from, 
465 

St.  Stephen's  High  School,  Delhi,  57 
Satow,  Sir  Ernest,  376,  462 
Scott,  Bishop,  193,  198 
Searle,  Dr.  C.  E.,  11  ;  '  open'  letters 

to,  154,  173;  letter  from,  203 
Shaw,  Rev.  A.  C.  (Archdeacon),  165, 

190,  199,  206,  215,  243,  365,  454, 

467,  470 

Society  for  the  Propagation  of  the 
Gospel,  connection  of  Cam- 
bridge Mission  with,  37, 
116-I18 
work  in  Japan,  174,  206,  379 
the  Bishop's  speeches  at  meet- 
ings of,  200,  459 


Society  for  Promoting  Christian, 
Knowledge,  198,  225,  267 

Stanton,  Rev.  V.  H.,  II,  28,  219, 
224,  232 

Synods  of  Japanese  Church,  188,  267, 
288,  326,  351,  365,  366, 
381 

presidential  addresses  at,  326, 
332,  365 

Temple, Rt.  Rev.  F.,  see  Canterbury, 

Archbishop  of 
Thornton,  Miss,  recollections  by,  251 
Treaty  Revision,  281,  369 
Tristram,  Canon,  290 

recollections  by,  213 
Tsuda,  Miss,  abstract  of  paper  by, 

228 

University  Missions,  159,  174,  216, 
219.  See  also  Community  Missions, 
Cambridge  Mission,  St.  Andrew's 
Mission 

Vows,  letter  on,  223 

Waller,  Rev.  J.  G.,  362,  382 
War  between  Japan  and  China,  368- 

370,  372,  375 
Warren,  Rev.  C.  (Archdeacon),  156, 

293,  381,  460,  463 
Weitbrecht,  Rev.  H.  U.,  34,  290; 

recollections  by,  76 
West  Coast,  tours  on,  181,  284,  373 
Westcott,  Rev.  B.  F.,  see  Durham, 

Bishop  of 
Wilkinson,    Rev.   G.    H.,    see  St. 

Andrews,  Bishop  of 
Williams,  Bishop,  164,  166,  170,  268, 

270,  279,  301,  365 
Winter,  Rev.  R.  R.,  38,  50,  52,  116, 

119,  120 

Women's  work,  care  for,  55,  120- 
122,  211,  231,  252 

Yezo,  tours  in,  178,  268,  296 
Young,  Col.  Gordon,  recollections  by, 

1D3 


Spottiswoode     Co.  Prinics,  Nevi-street  Square,  London.